This is a modern-English version of The Great Boer War, originally written by Doyle, Arthur Conan. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





THE GREAT BOER WAR



By Arthur Conan Doyle










CONTENTS


PREFACE TO THE FINAL EDITION.

CHAPTER 1.   THE BOER NATIONS.

CHAPTER 2.   THE CAUSE OF QUARREL.

CHAPTER 3.   THE NEGOTIATIONS.

CHAPTER 4.   THE EVE OF WAR.

CHAPTER 5.   TALANA HILL.

CHAPTER 6.   ELANDSLAAGTE AND RIETFONTEIN.

CHAPTER 7.   THE BATTLE OF LADYSMITH.

CHAPTER 8.   LORD METHUEN'S ADVANCE.

CHAPTER 9.   BATTLE OF MAGERSFONTEIN.

CHAPTER 10.   THE BATTLE OF STORMBERG.

CHAPTER 11.   BATTLE OF COLENSO.

CHAPTER 12.   THE DARK HOUR.

CHAPTER 13.   THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH.

CHAPTER 14.   THE COLESBERG OPERATIONS.

CHAPTER 15.   SPION KOP.

CHAPTER 16.   VAALKRANZ.

CHAPTER 17.   BULLER'S FINAL ADVANCE.

CHAPTER 18.   THE SIEGE AND RELIEF OF KIMBERLEY.

CHAPTER 19.   PAARDEBERG.

CHAPTER 20.   ROBERTS'S ADVANCE ON BLOEMFONTEIN.

CHAPTER 21.   STRATEGIC EFFECTS OF LORD ROBERTS'S MARCH.

CHAPTER 22.   THE HALT AT BLOEMFONTEIN.

CHAPTER 23.   THE CLEARING OF THE SOUTH-EAST.

CHAPTER 24.   THE SIEGE OF MAFEKING.

CHAPTER 25.   THE MARCH ON PRETORIA.

CHAPTER 26.   DIAMOND HILL—RUNDLE'S OPERATIONS.

CHAPTER 27.   THE LINES OF COMMUNICATION.

CHAPTER 28.   THE HALT AT PRETORIA.

CHAPTER 29.   THE ADVANCE TO KOMATIPOORT.

CHAPTER 30.   THE CAMPAIGN OF DE WET.

CHAPTER 31.   THE GUERILLA WARFARE IN THE TRANSVAAL: NOOITGEDACHT.

CHAPTER 32.   THE SECOND INVASION OF CAPE COLONY.

CHAPTER 33.   THE NORTHERN OPERATIONS FROM JANUARY TO APRIL, 1901.

CHAPTER 34.   THE WINTER CAMPAIGN (APRIL TO SEPTEMBER, 1901).

CHAPTER 35.   THE GUERILLA OPERATIONS IN CAPE COLONY.

CHAPTER 36.   THE SPRING CAMPAIGN (SEPTEMBER TO DECEMBER, 1901).

CHAPTER 37.   THE CAMPAIGN OF JANUARY TO APRIL, 1902.

CHAPTER 38.   DE LA REY'S CAMPAIGN OF 1902.

CHAPTER 39.     THE END.

CONTENTS


__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__  THE BOER NATIONS.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__  THE REASON FOR CONFLICT.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__  THE TALKS.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__  THE BRINK OF WAR.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__  TALANA HILL.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__  ELANDSLAAGTE AND RIETFONTEIN.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__  THE BATTLE OF LADYSMITH.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__  LORD METHUEN'S ADVANCE.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__  BATTLE OF MAGERSFONTEIN.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__  THE BATTLE OF STORMBERG.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__  BATTLE OF COLENSO.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__  THE DARK HOUR.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__  THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__  THE COLESBERG OPERATIONS.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__  SPION KOP.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__  VAALKRANZ.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__  BULLER'S FINAL ADVANCE.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__  THE SIEGE AND RELIEF OF KIMBERLEY.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__  PAARDEBERG.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__  ROBERTS'S ADVANCE ON BLOEMFONTEIN.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__  STRATEGIC IMPACTS OF LORD ROBERTS'S MARCH.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__  THE STOP AT BLOEMFONTEIN.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__  THE CLEARING OF THE SOUTHEAST.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__  THE SIEGE OF MAFEKING.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_25__  THE MARCH ON PRETORIA.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_26__  DIAMOND HILL—RUNDLE'S OPERATIONS.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_27__  THE LINES OF COMMUNICATION.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_28__  THE STOP AT PRETORIA.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_29__  THE ADVANCE TO KOMATIPOORT.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_30__  THE CAMPAIGN OF DE WET.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_31__  GUERRILLA WARFARE IN THE TRANSVAAL: NOOITGEDACHT.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_32__  THE SECOND INVASION OF CAPE COLONY.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_33__  THE NORTHERN OPERATIONS FROM JANUARY TO APRIL, 1901.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_34__  THE WINTER CAMPAIGN (APRIL TO SEPTEMBER, 1901).

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_35__  GUERRILLA OPERATIONS IN CAPE COLONY.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_36__  THE SPRING CAMPAIGN (SEPTEMBER TO DECEMBER, 1901).

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_37__  THE CAMPAIGN OF JANUARY TO APRIL, 1902.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_38__  DE LA REY'S CAMPAIGN OF 1902.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_39__  THE END.






PREFACE TO THE FINAL EDITION.

During the course of the war some sixteen Editions of this work have appeared, each of which was, I hope, a little more full and accurate than that which preceded it. I may fairly claim, however, that the absolute mistakes made have been few in number, and that I have never had occasion to reverse, and seldom to modify, the judgments which I have formed. In this final edition the early text has been carefully revised and all fresh available knowledge has been added within the limits of a single volume narrative. Of the various episodes in the latter half of the war it is impossible to say that the material is available for a complete and final chronicle. By the aid, however, of the official dispatches, of the newspapers, and of many private letters, I have done my best to give an intelligible and accurate account of the matter. The treatment may occasionally seem too brief but some proportion must be observed between the battles of 1899-1900 and the skirmishes of 1901-1902.

During the war, around sixteen editions of this work have been published, each one hopefully being a bit more complete and accurate than the last. I can confidently say that the outright mistakes I made have been few, and I’ve rarely had to change or significantly alter the opinions I formed. In this final edition, the original text has been thoroughly revised, and all new relevant information has been incorporated within the scope of a single-volume narrative. For the various events in the later part of the war, it’s impossible to claim that the information is sufficient for a complete and definitive account. However, with the help of official reports, newspapers, and numerous private letters, I’ve done my best to provide a clear and accurate description of the situation. The coverage might sometimes seem too brief, but a balance must be maintained between the battles of 1899-1900 and the skirmishes of 1901-1902.

My private informants are so numerous that it would be hardly possible, even if it were desirable, that I should quote their names. Of the correspondents upon whose work I have drawn for my materials, I would acknowledge my obligations to Messrs. Burleigh, Nevinson, Battersby, Stuart, Amery, Atkins, Baillie, Kinneir, Churchill, James, Ralph, Barnes, Maxwell, Pearce, Hamilton, and others. Especially I would mention the gentleman who represented the 'Standard' in the last year of the war, whose accounts of Vlakfontein, Von Donop's Convoy, and Tweebosch were the only reliable ones which reached the public.

My private informants are so numerous that it would be nearly impossible, even if it were desirable, for me to name them all. I would like to acknowledge the contributions of my correspondents whose work I’ve used for my materials, including Messrs. Burleigh, Nevinson, Battersby, Stuart, Amery, Atkins, Baillie, Kinneir, Churchill, James, Ralph, Barnes, Maxwell, Pearce, Hamilton, and others. I especially want to highlight the gentleman who represented the 'Standard' in the last year of the war, as his reports on Vlakfontein, Von Donop's Convoy, and Tweebosch were the only reliable accounts that reached the public.

Arthur Conan Doyle, Undershaw, Hindhead: September 1902.

Arthur Conan Doyle, Undershaw, Hindhead: September 1902.




5_south_africa (131K)






CHAPTER 1. THE BOER NATIONS.

Take a community of Dutchmen of the type of those who defended themselves for fifty years against all the power of Spain at a time when Spain was the greatest power in the world. Intermix with them a strain of those inflexible French Huguenots who gave up home and fortune and left their country for ever at the time of the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. The product must obviously be one of the most rugged, virile, unconquerable races ever seen upon earth. Take this formidable people and train them for seven generations in constant warfare against savage men and ferocious beasts, in circumstances under which no weakling could survive, place them so that they acquire exceptional skill with weapons and in horsemanship, give them a country which is eminently suited to the tactics of the huntsman, the marksman, and the rider. Then, finally, put a finer temper upon their military qualities by a dour fatalistic Old Testament religion and an ardent and consuming patriotism. Combine all these qualities and all these impulses in one individual, and you have the modern Boer—the most formidable antagonist who ever crossed the path of Imperial Britain. Our military history has largely consisted in our conflicts with France, but Napoleon and all his veterans have never treated us so roughly as these hard-bitten farmers with their ancient theology and their inconveniently modern rifles.

Take a community of Dutch men who fought fiercely against Spain for fifty years when it was the most powerful nation in the world. Mix in a group of determined French Huguenots who gave up their homes and wealth and left their country forever during the revocation of the Edict of Nantes. The result would obviously be one of the toughest, strongest, and most resilient races ever seen on Earth. Train this formidable group for seven generations in ongoing battles against savage people and fierce beasts, in conditions where only the strong survive, so they develop exceptional skills with weapons and riding. Provide them with a land that is perfect for hunting, marksmanship, and equestrian tactics. Finally, refine their military traits with a stern, fatalistic Old Testament religion and a passionate, all-consuming patriotism. Combine all these characteristics and impulses in one person, and you have the modern Boer—the most formidable opponent who ever faced Imperial Britain. Our military history has largely been shaped by our conflicts with France, but Napoleon and all his experienced soldiers have never challenged us as fiercely as these tough farmers with their old beliefs and annoyingly modern rifles.

Look at the map of South Africa, and there, in the very centre of the British possessions, like the stone in a peach, lies the great stretch of the two republics, a mighty domain for so small a people. How came they there? Who are these Teutonic folk who have burrowed so deeply into Africa? It is a twice-told tale, and yet it must be told once again if this story is to have even the most superficial of introductions. No one can know or appreciate the Boer who does not know his past, for he is what his past has made him.

Look at the map of South Africa, and there, right in the center of the British territories, like the pit in a peach, lies the vast area of the two republics, a huge territory for such a small population. How did they get there? Who are these Germanic people who have settled so deeply in Africa? It's a story that's been told before, but it needs to be shared again if this narrative is to have even the slightest introduction. No one can truly understand or appreciate the Boer without knowing his history, because he is a product of his past.

It was about the time when Oliver Cromwell was at his zenith—in 1652, to be pedantically accurate—that the Dutch made their first lodgment at the Cape of Good Hope. The Portuguese had been there before them, but, repelled by the evil weather, and lured forwards by rumours of gold, they had passed the true seat of empire and had voyaged further to settle along the eastern coast. Some gold there was, but not much, and the Portuguese settlements have never been sources of wealth to the mother country, and never will be until the day when Great Britain signs her huge cheque for Delagoa Bay. The coast upon which they settled reeked with malaria. A hundred miles of poisonous marsh separated it from the healthy inland plateau. For centuries these pioneers of South African colonisation strove to obtain some further footing, but save along the courses of the rivers they made little progress. Fierce natives and an enervating climate barred their way.

It was around the time when Oliver Cromwell was at his peak—in 1652, to be precise—that the Dutch made their first settlement at the Cape of Good Hope. The Portuguese had been there before them, but they were turned away by the harsh weather and tempted by rumors of gold, which led them to bypass the actual center of power and settle further along the eastern coast. There was some gold, but not a lot, and the Portuguese settlements never really brought wealth to their home country, nor will they until the day Great Britain pays a hefty sum for Delagoa Bay. The area they settled in was plagued with malaria. A hundred miles of toxic marshlands stood between it and the healthy inland plateau. For centuries, these early South African colonizers tried to gain a stronger foothold, but aside from along the rivers, they made little progress. Hostile natives and an exhausting climate blocked their way.

But it was different with the Dutch. That very rudeness of climate which had so impressed the Portuguese adventurer was the source of their success. Cold and poverty and storm are the nurses of the qualities which make for empire. It is the men from the bleak and barren lands who master the children of the light and the heat. And so the Dutchmen at the Cape prospered and grew stronger in that robust climate. They did not penetrate far inland, for they were few in number and all they wanted was to be found close at hand. But they built themselves houses, and they supplied the Dutch East India Company with food and water, gradually budding off little townlets, Wynberg, Stellenbosch, and pushing their settlements up the long slopes which lead to that great central plateau which extends for fifteen hundred miles from the edge of the Karoo to the Valley of the Zambesi. Then came the additional Huguenot emigrants—the best blood of France three hundred of them, a handful of the choicest seed thrown in to give a touch of grace and soul to the solid Teutonic strain. Again and again in the course of history, with the Normans, the Huguenots, the Emigres, one can see the great hand dipping into that storehouse and sprinkling the nations with the same splendid seed. France has not founded other countries, like her great rival, but she has made every other country the richer by the mixture with her choicest and best. The Rouxs, Du Toits, Jouberts, Du Plessis, Villiers, and a score of other French names are among the most familiar in South Africa.

But it was different with the Dutch. The harshness of the climate that had so affected the Portuguese adventurer became the key to their success. Cold, poverty, and storms nurture the qualities needed for empire. It is the people from the bleak and barren lands who dominate those from sunny and warm regions. As a result, the Dutch at the Cape thrived and grew stronger in that tough climate. They didn't venture far inland because they were few in number, and all they wanted was to be close to the coastline. But they built houses, provided food and water for the Dutch East India Company, and slowly developed small towns like Wynberg and Stellenbosch, extending their settlements up the long slopes leading to the vast central plateau that stretches for fifteen hundred miles from the edge of the Karoo to the Valley of the Zambezi. Then, the additional Huguenot immigrants arrived—three hundred of the best from France, a small but valuable group intended to add a touch of charm and depth to the solid Teutonic lineage. Throughout history, with the Normans, Huguenots, and Emigrés, you can see a larger force selecting from that rich pool and enriching nations with remarkable contributions. France didn't establish other countries like her main rival, but she has made every other country better through the blend of her finest and best. Names like Roux, Du Toit, Joubert, Du Plessis, and Villiers, along with many other French surnames, are some of the most recognizable in South Africa.

For a hundred more years the history of the colony was a record of the gradual spreading of the Afrikaners over the huge expanse of veld which lay to the north of them. Cattle raising became an industry, but in a country where six acres can hardly support a sheep, large farms are necessary for even small herds. Six thousand acres was the usual size, and five pounds a year the rent payable to Government. The diseases which follow the white man had in Africa, as in America and Australia, been fatal to the natives, and an epidemic of smallpox cleared the country for the newcomers. Further and further north they pushed, founding little towns here and there, such as Graaf-Reinet and Swellendam, where a Dutch Reformed Church and a store for the sale of the bare necessaries of life formed a nucleus for a few scattered dwellings. Already the settlers were showing that independence of control and that detachment from Europe which has been their most prominent characteristic. Even the sway of the Dutch Company (an older but weaker brother of John Company in India) had caused them to revolt. The local rising, however, was hardly noticed in the universal cataclysm which followed the French Revolution. After twenty years, during which the world was shaken by the Titanic struggle between England and France in the final counting up of the game and paying of the stakes, the Cape Colony was added in 1814 to the British Empire.

For another hundred years, the colony's history recorded the gradual expansion of the Afrikaners across the vast stretches of veld to the north. Cattle farming became an industry, but in a land where six acres can barely support a sheep, large farms were necessary even for small herds. Six thousand acres was the typical size, and the annual rent payable to the government was five pounds. The diseases that followed the white settlers had, in Africa as in America and Australia, been deadly to the natives, and a smallpox epidemic cleared the way for the newcomers. They pushed further north, establishing little towns like Graaf-Reinet and Swellendam, where a Dutch Reformed Church and a store selling basic necessities created a center for a few scattered homes. Already, the settlers were demonstrating their independence and distancing themselves from Europe, which has been their most notable trait. Even the rule of the Dutch Company (an older but weaker counterpart to the British East India Company) had led them to revolt. However, the local uprising barely got any attention amid the global upheaval that followed the French Revolution. After twenty years of a monumental struggle between England and France, which profoundly reshaped the world, the Cape Colony became part of the British Empire in 1814.

In all our vast collection of States there is probably not one the title-deeds to which are more incontestable than to this one. We had it by two rights, the right of conquest and the right of purchase. In 1806 our troops landed, defeated the local forces, and took possession of Cape Town. In 1814 we paid the large sum of six million pounds to the Stadholder for the transference of this and some South American land. It was a bargain which was probably made rapidly and carelessly in that general redistribution which was going on. As a house of call upon the way to India the place was seen to be of value, but the country itself was looked upon as unprofitable and desert. What would Castlereagh or Liverpool have thought could they have seen the items which we were buying for our six million pounds? The inventory would have been a mixed one of good and of evil; nine fierce Kaffir wars, the greatest diamond mines in the world, the wealthiest gold mines, two costly and humiliating campaigns with men whom we respected even when we fought with them, and now at last, we hope, a South Africa of peace and prosperity, with equal rights and equal duties for all men. The future should hold something very good for us in that land, for if we merely count the past we should be compelled to say that we should have been stronger, richer, and higher in the world's esteem had our possessions there never passed beyond the range of the guns of our men-of-war. But surely the most arduous is the most honourable, and, looking back from the end of their journey, our descendants may see that our long record of struggle, with its mixture of disaster and success, its outpouring of blood and of treasure, has always tended to some great and enduring goal.

In all our vast collection of states, there’s probably none with more unquestionable ownership than this one. We acquired it through two means: conquest and purchase. In 1806, our troops landed, defeated the local forces, and took control of Cape Town. In 1814, we paid a hefty six million pounds to the Stadholder for this land and some in South America. It was a deal likely made quickly and carelessly during the general reshuffling happening at that time. The area was recognized as valuable as a stopping point on the route to India, but the land itself was seen as unprofitable and barren. What would Castlereagh or Liverpool have thought if they could see what we were actually buying for our six million pounds? The inventory would have included a mix of good and bad: nine fierce Kaffir wars, the world's biggest diamond mines, the richest gold mines, two expensive and humiliating campaigns against people we respected even when fighting them, and now, at last, we hope for a peaceful and prosperous South Africa with equal rights and responsibilities for everyone. The future should hold great promise for us in that land, because if we only focus on the past, we must admit that we would have been stronger, richer, and held in higher regard if our possessions there had never gone beyond the range of our warships' guns. But surely, the hardest paths are the most honorable, and looking back from the end of their journey, our descendants may realize that our long history of struggle, filled with both failures and successes, and the sacrifices of blood and treasure, has always aimed toward a significant and lasting goal.

The title-deeds to the estate are, as I have said, good ones, but there is one singular and ominous flaw in their provisions. The ocean has marked three boundaries to it, but the fourth is undefined. There is no word of the 'Hinterland;' for neither the term nor the idea had then been thought of. Had Great Britain bought those vast regions which extended beyond the settlements? Or were the discontented Dutch at liberty to pass onwards and found fresh nations to bar the path of the Anglo-Celtic colonists? In that question lay the germ of all the trouble to come. An American would realise the point at issue if he could conceive that after the founding of the United States the Dutch inhabitants of the State of New York had trekked to the westward and established fresh communities under a new flag. Then, when the American population overtook these western States, they would be face to face with the problem which this country has had to solve. If they found these new States fiercely anti-American and extremely unprogressive, they would experience that aggravation of their difficulties with which our statesmen have had to deal.

The title deeds to the property are, as I mentioned, legitimate, but there’s one unique and concerning flaw in their terms. The ocean has set three borders, but the fourth one is unclear. There’s no mention of the 'Hinterland' since neither the term nor the concept had been considered at that time. Did Great Britain acquire those vast areas beyond the settlements? Or were the dissatisfied Dutch free to move on and establish new nations that would block the path of the Anglo-Celtic colonists? The answer to that question held the seeds of all the future problems. An American would understand the issue if they could imagine that after the United States was founded, the Dutch residents of New York had moved west and created new communities under a different flag. Then, when the American population caught up with these western States, they would confront the same dilemma this country has faced. If they found these new States to be fiercely anti-American and very unprogressive, they would face the same aggravation of challenges that our leaders have had to address.

At the time of their transference to the British flag the colonists—Dutch, French, and German—numbered some thirty thousand. They were slaveholders, and the slaves were about as numerous as themselves. The prospect of complete amalgamation between the British and the original settlers would have seemed to be a good one, since they were of much the same stock, and their creeds could only be distinguished by their varying degrees of bigotry and intolerance. Five thousand British emigrants were landed in 1820, settling on the Eastern borders of the colony, and from that time onwards there was a slow but steady influx of English speaking colonists. The Government had the historical faults and the historical virtues of British rule. It was mild, clean, honest, tactless, and inconsistent. On the whole, it might have done very well had it been content to leave things as it found them. But to change the habits of the most conservative of Teutonic races was a dangerous venture, and one which has led to a long series of complications, making up the troubled history of South Africa. The Imperial Government has always taken an honourable and philanthropic view of the rights of the native and the claim which he has to the protection of the law. We hold and rightly, that British justice, if not blind, should at least be colour-blind. The view is irreproachable in theory and incontestable in argument, but it is apt to be irritating when urged by a Boston moralist or a London philanthropist upon men whose whole society has been built upon the assumption that the black is the inferior race. Such a people like to find the higher morality for themselves, not to have it imposed upon them by those who live under entirely different conditions. They feel—and with some reason—that it is a cheap form of virtue which, from the serenity of a well-ordered household in Beacon Street or Belgrave Square, prescribes what the relation shall be between a white employer and his half-savage, half-childish retainers. Both branches of the Anglo-Celtic race have grappled with the question, and in each it has led to trouble.

At the time they switched to the British flag, the colonists—Dutch, French, and German—numbered around thirty thousand. They were slaveholders, with their slaves being about as numerous. The idea of complete integration between the British and the original settlers seemed promising since they were of similar backgrounds, and their beliefs could only be differentiated by degrees of intolerance. In 1820, five thousand British emigrants arrived, settling on the eastern borders of the colony, and from that point on, there was a slow but steady influx of English-speaking colonists. The government displayed both the historical shortcomings and strengths of British rule. It was mild, clean, honest, tactless, and inconsistent. Overall, it might have succeeded if it had simply left things as they were. However, trying to change the habits of some of the most conservative Germanic people was a risky endeavor, leading to a long history of complications that contributed to South Africa's troubled past. The Imperial Government has always taken a dignified and compassionate stance on the rights of natives and their claims for legal protection. We believe that British justice, though not entirely blind, should at least be color-blind. This perspective is commendable in theory and undeniable in debate, but it can be frustrating when presented by a moralist from Boston or a philanthropist from London to people whose entire society is based on the belief that Black individuals are inferior. Such a group prefers to determine their own higher standards of morality instead of having them imposed by those living under completely different circumstances. They feel, and to some extent are justified in feeling, that it’s a shallow form of virtue when someone from a stable household in Beacon Street or Belgrave Square dictates the nature of the relationship between a white employer and his rough, half-savage, half-childlike workers. Both branches of the Anglo-Celtic race have confronted this issue, and in each case, it has resulted in problems.

The British Government in South Africa has always played the unpopular part of the friend and protector of the native servants. It was upon this very point that the first friction appeared between the old settlers and the new administration. A rising with bloodshed followed the arrest of a Dutch farmer who had maltreated his slave. It was suppressed, and five of the participants were hanged. This punishment was unduly severe and exceedingly injudicious. A brave race can forget the victims of the field of battle, but never those of the scaffold. The making of political martyrs is the last insanity of statesmanship. It is true that both the man who arrested and the judge who condemned the prisoners were Dutch, and that the British Governor interfered on the side of mercy; but all this was forgotten afterwards in the desire to make racial capital out of the incident. It is typical of the enduring resentment which was left behind that when, after the Jameson raid, it seemed that the leaders of that ill-fated venture might be hanged, the beam was actually brought from a farmhouse at Cookhouse Drift to Pretoria, that the Englishmen might die as the Dutchmen had died in 1816. Slagter's Nek marked the dividing of the ways between the British Government and the Afrikaners.

The British Government in South Africa has always taken on the unpopular role of being the friend and protector of the local servants. This very issue sparked the initial conflict between the old settlers and the new administration. A rebellion with violence broke out after a Dutch farmer was arrested for abusing his slave. It was put down, and five of those involved were executed. This punishment was excessively harsh and extremely unwise. A courageous people can overlook the casualties of a battle but will never forget those who were executed. Creating political martyrs is the last foolishness of governance. It is true that both the person who made the arrest and the judge who sentenced the prisoners were Dutch, and that the British Governor intervened on the side of mercy; however, all of this was overlooked later in the wish to exploit the incident for racial gain. It illustrates the lasting resentment that remained that when, after the Jameson raid, it seemed the leaders of that doomed expedition might be hanged, the gallows were actually brought from a farmhouse at Cookhouse Drift to Pretoria, so the Englishmen could die as the Dutchmen did in 1816. Slagter's Nek signified the split between the British Government and the Afrikaners.

And the separation soon became more marked. There were injudicious tamperings with the local government and the local ways, with a substitution of English for Dutch in the law courts. With vicarious generosity, the English Government gave very lenient terms to the Kaffir tribes who in 1834 had raided the border farmers. And then, finally, in this same year there came the emancipation of the slaves throughout the British Empire, which fanned all smouldering discontents into an active flame.

And the separation quickly became more obvious. There were unwise interferences with the local government and customs, including replacing Dutch with English in the courts. Generously, the English Government offered very lenient terms to the Kaffir tribes who had raided the border farmers in 1834. Finally, in that same year, the emancipation of slaves throughout the British Empire sparked all the underlying frustrations into a full-blown conflict.

It must be confessed that on this occasion the British philanthropist was willing to pay for what he thought was right. It was a noble national action, and one the morality of which was in advance of its time, that the British Parliament should vote the enormous sum of twenty million pounds to pay compensation to the slaveholders, and so to remove an evil with which the mother country had no immediate connection. It was as well that the thing should have been done when it was, for had we waited till the colonies affected had governments of their own it could never have been done by constitutional methods. With many a grumble the good British householder drew his purse from his fob, and he paid for what he thought to be right. If any special grace attends the virtuous action which brings nothing but tribulation in this world, then we may hope for it over this emancipation. We spent our money, we ruined our West Indian colonies, and we started a disaffection in South Africa, the end of which we have not seen. Yet if it were to be done again we should doubtless do it. The highest morality may prove also to be the highest wisdom when the half-told story comes to be finished.

It must be admitted that on this occasion the British philanthropist was willing to pay for what he believed was right. It was a commendable national decision, ahead of its time, for the British Parliament to approve the enormous amount of twenty million pounds to compensate slaveholders, thus addressing a problem with which the mother country had no direct involvement. It was fortunate that this was done when it was, because if we had waited until the affected colonies had their own governments, it could never have been achieved through constitutional means. With many complaints, the average British citizen took out their wallet and paid for what they felt was right. If any special recognition is given to virtuous actions that result in nothing but hardship in this world, then we can hope for that with this emancipation. We spent our money, we devastated our West Indian colonies, and we sparked discontent in South Africa, the outcome of which is still unfolding. Yet if it had to be done again, we would undoubtedly do it. The highest morality can also turn out to be the greatest wisdom when the full story is told.

But the details of the measure were less honourable than the principle. It was carried out suddenly, so that the country had no time to adjust itself to the new conditions. Three million pounds were ear-marked for South Africa, which gives a price per slave of from sixty to seventy pounds, a sum considerably below the current local rates. Finally, the compensation was made payable in London, so that the farmers sold their claims at reduced prices to middlemen. Indignation meetings were held in every little townlet and cattle camp on the Karoo. The old Dutch spirit was up—the spirit of the men who cut the dykes. Rebellion was useless. But a vast untenanted land stretched to the north of them. The nomad life was congenial to them, and in their huge ox-drawn wagons—like those bullock-carts in which some of their old kinsmen came to Gaul—they had vehicles and homes and forts all in one. One by one they were loaded up, the huge teams were inspanned, the women were seated inside, the men, with their long-barrelled guns, walked alongside, and the great exodus was begun. Their herds and flocks accompanied the migration, and the children helped to round them in and drive them. One tattered little boy of ten cracked his sjambok whip behind the bullocks. He was a small item in that singular crowd, but he was of interest to us, for his name was Paul Stephanus Kruger.

But the details of the measure were less honorable than the principle. It was implemented suddenly, so the country had no time to adapt to the new conditions. Three million pounds were allocated for South Africa, which set the price per slave at between sixty and seventy pounds, a sum significantly lower than the current local rates. Finally, the compensation was made payable in London, causing the farmers to sell their claims at reduced prices to middlemen. Indignation meetings were held in every little town and cattle camp on the Karoo. The old Dutch spirit was alive—the spirit of the men who built the dykes. Rebellion was futile. But a vast empty land stretched to the north of them. The nomadic lifestyle suited them, and in their large ox-drawn wagons—like those bullock carts in which some of their ancestors traveled to Gaul—they had vehicles, homes, and forts all in one. One by one, they loaded up, the huge teams were harnessed, the women took their seats inside, the men, with their long-barreled guns, walked alongside, and the great exodus began. Their herds and flocks followed the migration, and the children helped gather and drive them. One scruffy little boy of ten cracked his whip behind the bullocks. He was a small part of that unique crowd, but he caught our interest because his name was Paul Stephanus Kruger.

It was a strange exodus, only comparable in modern times to the sallying forth of the Mormons from Nauvoo upon their search for the promised land of Utah. The country was known and sparsely settled as far north as the Orange River, but beyond there was a great region which had never been penetrated save by some daring hunter or adventurous pioneer. It chanced—if there be indeed such an element as chance in the graver affairs of man—that a Zulu conqueror had swept over this land and left it untenanted, save by the dwarf bushmen, the hideous aborigines, lowest of the human race. There were fine grazing and good soil for the emigrants. They traveled in small detached parties, but their total numbers were considerable, from six to ten thousand according to their historian, or nearly a quarter of the whole population of the colony. Some of the early bands perished miserably. A large number made a trysting-place at a high peak to the east of Bloemfontein in what was lately the Orange Free State. One party of the emigrants was cut off by the formidable Matabeli, a branch of the great Zulu nation. The survivors declared war upon them, and showed in this, their first campaign, the extraordinary ingenuity in adapting their tactics to their adversary which has been their greatest military characteristic. The commando which rode out to do battle with the Matabeli numbered, it is said, a hundred and thirty-five farmers. Their adversaries were twelve thousand spearmen. They met at the Marico River, near Mafeking. The Boers combined the use of their horses and of their rifles so cleverly that they slaughtered a third of their antagonists without any loss to themselves. Their tactics were to gallop up within range of the enemy, to fire a volley, and then to ride away again before the spearmen could reach them. When the savages pursued the Boers fled. When the pursuit halted the Boers halted and the rifle fire began anew. The strategy was simple but most effective. When one remembers how often since then our own horsemen have been pitted against savages in all parts of the world, one deplores that ignorance of all military traditions save our own which is characteristic of our service.

It was a strange exodus, comparable in modern times to the Mormons' departure from Nauvoo in search of the promised land of Utah. The area was known and sparsely populated as far north as the Orange River, but beyond that lay a vast region that had only been traversed by a few daring hunters or adventurous pioneers. It just so happened—if there truly is such a thing as chance in the serious matters of mankind—that a Zulu conqueror had swept through this land, leaving it uninhabited except for the dwarf bushmen, the grotesque aborigines, considered the lowest of the human race. There was excellent grazing land and good soil for the emigrants. They traveled in small groups, but their total numbers were significant, ranging from six to ten thousand according to their historian, nearly a quarter of the entire colony's population. Some of the early groups met with tragic ends. A large number gathered at a high peak to the east of Bloemfontein in what used to be the Orange Free State. One group of emigrants was ambushed by the formidable Matabeli, a faction of the great Zulu nation. The survivors declared war on them, and in this, their first campaign, demonstrated extraordinary ingenuity in adapting their tactics to their opponent—a trait that has become their greatest military characteristic. The commando that set out to battle the Matabeli reportedly numbered one hundred and thirty-five farmers. Their opponents consisted of twelve thousand spearmen. They clashed at the Marico River, near Mafeking. The Boers expertly combined the use of their horses and rifles, managing to kill a third of their enemies without suffering any losses themselves. Their tactic was to charge within range of the enemy, fire a volley, and then ride away before the spearmen could reach them. When the savages pursued, the Boers fled. When the pursuit stopped, the Boers halted, and the rifle fire began again. The strategy was straightforward but highly effective. When one recalls how often since then our own horsemen have faced savages worldwide, it's disappointing to witness the lack of understanding of military traditions beyond our own that is typical in our service.

This victory of the 'voortrekkers' cleared all the country between the Orange River and the Limpopo, the sites of what has been known as the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. In the meantime another body of the emigrants had descended into what is now known as Natal, and had defeated Dingaan, the great Chief of the Zulus. Being unable, owing to the presence of their families, to employ the cavalry tactics which had been so effective against the Matabeli, they again used their ingenuity to meet this new situation, and received the Zulu warriors in a square of laagered wagons, the men firing while the women loaded. Six burghers were killed and three thousand Zulus. Had such a formation been used forty years afterwards against these very Zulus, we should not have had to mourn the disaster of Isandhlwana.

This victory of the 'voortrekkers' cleared all the land between the Orange River and the Limpopo, which areas are now known as the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. Meanwhile, another group of emigrants had moved into what is now called Natal and defeated Dingaan, the great Chief of the Zulus. Unable to use the cavalry tactics that had worked so well against the Matabeli due to the presence of their families, they used their creativity to adapt to this new situation and received the Zulu warriors in a square of laagered wagons, with the men firing while the women reloaded. Six burghers were killed and three thousand Zulus. If such a formation had been used forty years later against these same Zulus, we would not have had to mourn the disaster at Isandhlwana.

And now at the end of their great journey, after overcoming the difficulties of distance, of nature, and of savage enemies, the Boers saw at the end of their travels the very thing which they desired least—that which they had come so far to avoid—the flag of Great Britain. The Boers had occupied Natal from within, but England had previously done the same by sea, and a small colony of Englishmen had settled at Port Natal, now known as Durban. The home Government, however, had acted in a vacillating way, and it was only the conquest of Natal by the Boers which caused them to claim it as a British colony. At the same time they asserted the unwelcome doctrine that a British subject could not at will throw off his allegiance, and that, go where they might, the wandering farmers were still only the pioneers of British colonies. To emphasise the fact three companies of soldiers were sent in 1842 to what is now Durban—the usual Corporal's guard with which Great Britain starts a new empire. This handful of men was waylaid by the Boers and cut up, as their successors have been so often since. The survivors, however, fortified themselves, and held a defensive position—as also their successors have done so many times since—until reinforcements arrived and the farmers dispersed. It is singular how in history the same factors will always give the same result. Here in this first skirmish is an epitome of all our military relations with these people. The blundering headstrong attack, the defeat, the powerlessness of the farmer against the weakest fortifications—it is the same tale over and over again in different scales of importance. Natal from this time onward became a British colony, and the majority of the Boers trekked north and east with bitter hearts to tell their wrongs to their brethren of the Orange Free State and of the Transvaal.

And now, at the end of their long journey, after dealing with challenges of distance, nature, and hostile enemies, the Boers found at the conclusion of their travels the very thing they least wanted—that which they had gone so far to escape—the flag of Great Britain. The Boers had settled in Natal internally, but England had previously established a presence by sea, with a small colony of English settlers in Port Natal, now known as Durban. However, the home government had acted inconsistently, and it was only after the Boers conquered Natal that they began to claim it as a British colony. At the same time, they asserted the unwelcome idea that a British subject couldn't simply renounce their allegiance at will, and that, no matter where they went, the roaming farmers were still merely pioneers of British colonies. To underline this point, three companies of soldiers were sent in 1842 to what is now Durban—the typical small guard that Great Britain sends to start a new empire. This small group was ambushed by the Boers and decimated, just as their successors have been many times since. However, the few survivors managed to fortify themselves and held a defensive position—just as their successors have repeatedly done—until reinforcements arrived and the farmers scattered. It’s striking how history shows the same elements will consistently produce the same outcomes. This first skirmish is a summary of all our military interactions with these people. The reckless, headstrong attack, the defeat, the helplessness of the farmers against the weakest fortifications—it’s the same story, repeated over and over on different scales. From this point forward, Natal became a British colony, and most of the Boers trekked north and east with heavy hearts to share their grievances with their fellow countrymen in the Orange Free State and the Transvaal.

Had they any wrongs to tell? It is difficult to reach that height of philosophic detachment which enables the historian to deal absolutely impartially where his own country is a party to the quarrel. But at least we may allow that there is a case for our adversary. Our annexation of Natal had been by no means definite, and it was they and not we who first broke that bloodthirsty Zulu power which threw its shadow across the country. It was hard after such trials and such exploits to turn their back upon the fertile land which they had conquered, and to return to the bare pastures of the upland veld. They carried out of Natal a heavy sense of injury, which has helped to poison our relations with them ever since. It was, in a way, a momentous episode, this little skirmish of soldiers and emigrants, for it was the heading off of the Boer from the sea and the confinement of his ambition to the land. Had it gone the other way, a new and possibly formidable flag would have been added to the maritime nations.

Did they have any grievances to share? It's tough to achieve that level of philosophical detachment that allows a historian to remain completely unbiased when their own country is involved in the conflict. But at least we can acknowledge that our opponents have a valid point. Our claim to Natal was far from certain, and it was they—not us—who first took down that brutal Zulu power that loomed over the region. After such struggles and achievements, it was difficult for them to turn away from the rich land they had conquered and return to the barren pastures of the upland veld. They left Natal with a deep sense of injury, which has continued to sour our relationship with them ever since. In a way, this small clash between soldiers and settlers was a significant moment, as it blocked the Boer from access to the sea and limited their ambitions to the land. If things had turned out differently, a new and potentially powerful flag might have been added to the maritime nations.

The emigrants who had settled in the huge tract of country between the Orange River in the south and the Limpopo in the north had been recruited by newcomers from the Cape Colony until they numbered some fifteen thousand souls. This population was scattered over a space as large as Germany, and larger than Pennsylvania, New York, and New England. Their form of government was individualistic and democratic to the last degree compatible with any sort of cohesion. Their wars with the Kaffirs and their fear and dislike of the British Government appear to have been the only ties which held them together. They divided and subdivided within their own borders, like a germinating egg. The Transvaal was full of lusty little high-mettled communities, who quarreled among themselves as fiercely as they had done with the authorities at the Cape. Lydenburg, Zoutpansberg, and Potchefstroom were on the point of turning their rifles against each other. In the south, between the Orange River and the Vaal, there was no form of government at all, but a welter of Dutch farmers, Basutos, Hottentots, and halfbreeds living in a chronic state of turbulence, recognising neither the British authority to the south of them nor the Transvaal republics to the north. The chaos became at last unendurable, and in 1848 a garrison was placed in Bloemfontein and the district incorporated in the British Empire. The emigrants made a futile resistance at Boomplaats, and after a single defeat allowed themselves to be drawn into the settled order of civilised rule.

The emigrants who had settled in the large area between the Orange River in the south and the Limpopo in the north had been joined by newcomers from the Cape Colony until their numbers reached around fifteen thousand people. This population was spread out over an area as large as Germany and bigger than Pennsylvania, New York, and New England combined. Their form of government was highly individualistic and democratic, allowing for only minimal cohesion. Their conflicts with the Kaffirs and their fear and dislike of the British Government seemed to be the only things holding them together. They divided and subdivided within their own territory, much like a germinating egg. The Transvaal was filled with vibrant, strong-willed communities that fought among themselves just as fiercely as they fought with the authorities at the Cape. Lydenburg, Zoutpansberg, and Potchefstroom were on the brink of turning their weapons against each other. In the south, between the Orange River and the Vaal, there was no government at all; instead, there was a mix of Dutch farmers, Basutos, Hottentots, and mixed-race people living in a constant state of unrest, acknowledging neither the British authority to the south nor the Transvaal republics to the north. Eventually, the chaos became unbearable, and in 1848 a garrison was established in Bloemfontein, integrating the district into the British Empire. The emigrants made a futile stand at Boomplaats, and after one defeat, they allowed themselves to be absorbed into the established order of civilized governance.

At this period the Transvaal, where most of the Boers had settled, desired a formal acknowledgment of their independence, which the British authorities determined once and for all to give them. The great barren country, which produced little save marksmen, had no attractions for a Colonial Office which was bent upon the limitation of its liabilities. A Convention was concluded between the two parties, known as the Sand River Convention, which is one of the fixed points in South African history. By it the British Government guaranteed to the Boer farmers the right to manage their own affairs, and to govern themselves by their own laws without any interference upon the part of the British. It stipulated that there should be no slavery, and with that single reservation washed its hands finally, as it imagined, of the whole question. So the South African Republic came formally into existence.

At this time, the Transvaal, where most of the Boers had settled, wanted a formal recognition of their independence, which the British authorities decided to grant once and for all. The vast, barren land, which produced little except skilled marksmen, held no appeal for a Colonial Office focused on limiting its responsibilities. A convention was reached between both parties, known as the Sand River Convention, which is a key moment in South African history. Through this agreement, the British Government guaranteed the Boer farmers the right to manage their own affairs and govern themselves according to their own laws without British interference. It specified that there would be no slavery, and with that one exception, it believed it had completely disengaged from the issue. Thus, the South African Republic came into formal existence.

In the very year after the Sand River Convention a second republic, the Orange Free State, was created by the deliberate withdrawal of Great Britain from the territory which she had for eight years occupied. The Eastern Question was already becoming acute, and the cloud of a great war was drifting up, visible to all men. British statesmen felt that their commitments were very heavy in every part of the world, and the South African annexations had always been a doubtful value and an undoubted trouble. Against the will of a large part of the inhabitants, whether a majority or not it is impossible to say, we withdrew our troops as amicably as the Romans withdrew from Britain, and the new republic was left with absolute and unfettered independence. On a petition being presented against the withdrawal, the Home Government actually voted forty-eight thousand pounds to compensate those who had suffered from the change. Whatever historical grievance the Transvaal may have against Great Britain, we can at least, save perhaps in one matter, claim to have a very clear conscience concerning our dealings with the Orange Free State. Thus in 1852 and in 1854 were born those sturdy States who were able for a time to hold at bay the united forces of the empire.

In the year after the Sand River Convention, the Orange Free State was established when Great Britain intentionally pulled out of the territory it had occupied for eight years. The Eastern Question was becoming critical, and the threat of a major war was becoming apparent to everyone. British leaders realized they had significant commitments across the globe, and the South African annexations had always had questionable benefits and clear difficulties. Against the wishes of many residents, though it’s hard to say if they were a majority or not, we withdrew our troops as smoothly as the Romans left Britain, leaving the new republic completely free and independent. When a petition against the withdrawal was submitted, the Home Government actually allocated forty-eight thousand pounds to compensate those who had been affected by the change. Whatever historical grievances the Transvaal may hold against Great Britain, we can at least, except perhaps in one instance, claim to have acted with a clear conscience in our dealings with the Orange Free State. Thus, in 1852 and 1854, those strong states were formed that could, for a time, resist the combined forces of the empire.

In the meantime Cape Colony, in spite of these secessions, had prospered exceedingly, and her population—English, German, and Dutch—had grown by 1870 to over two hundred thousand souls, the Dutch still slightly predominating. According to the Liberal colonial policy of Great Britain, the time had come to cut the cord and let the young nation conduct its own affairs. In 1872 complete self-government was given to it, the Governor, as the representative of the Queen, retaining a nominal unexercised veto upon legislation. According to this system the Dutch majority of the colony could, and did, put their own representatives into power and run the government upon Dutch lines. Already Dutch law had been restored, and Dutch put on the same footing as English as the official language of the country. The extreme liberality of such measures, and the uncompromising way in which they have been carried out, however distasteful the legislation might seem to English ideas, are among the chief reasons which made the illiberal treatment of British settlers in the Transvaal so keenly resented at the Cape. A Dutch Government was ruling the British in a British colony, at a moment when the Boers would not give an Englishman a vote upon a municipal council in a city which he had built himself. Unfortunately, however, 'the evil that men do lives after them,' and the ignorant Boer farmer continued to imagine that his southern relatives were in bondage, just as the descendant of the Irish emigrant still pictures an Ireland of penal laws and an alien Church.

In the meantime, Cape Colony, despite these separations, had thrived significantly, and its population—English, German, and Dutch—had grown by 1870 to over two hundred thousand people, with the Dutch still slightly in the lead. Following the Liberal colonial policy of Great Britain, the time had come to sever ties and allow the young nation to govern itself. In 1872, complete self-government was granted, with the Governor, representing the Queen, holding a nominal, unused veto over legislation. Under this system, the Dutch majority in the colony was able to elect their own representatives and run the government according to Dutch principles. Dutch law had already been restored, and Dutch was placed on equal footing with English as an official language of the country. The extreme openness of these measures, and the strict way they were implemented—regardless of how unappealing they may have seemed to English sensibilities—are among the main reasons why the harsh treatment of British settlers in the Transvaal was so strongly resented at the Cape. A Dutch government was ruling the British in a British colony at a time when the Boers would not allow an Englishman a vote on a municipal council in a city he had built himself. Unfortunately, however, "the evil that men do lives after them," and the uninformed Boer farmer continued to believe that his southern relatives were in bondage, just as the descendant of the Irish emigrant still envisions an Ireland of harsh laws and an alien Church.

For twenty-five years after the Sand River Convention the burghers of the South African Republic had pursued a strenuous and violent existence, fighting incessantly with the natives and sometimes with each other, with an occasional fling at the little Dutch republic to the south. The semi-tropical sun was waking strange ferments in the placid Friesland blood, and producing a race who added the turbulence and restlessness of the south to the formidable tenacity of the north. Strong vitality and violent ambitions produced feuds and rivalries worthy of medieval Italy, and the story of the factious little communities is like a chapter out of Guicciardini. Disorganisation ensued. The burghers would not pay taxes and the treasury was empty. One fierce Kaffir tribe threatened them from the north, and the Zulus on the east. It is an exaggeration of English partisans to pretend that our intervention saved the Boers, for no one can read their military history without seeing that they were a match for Zulus and Sekukuni combined. But certainly a formidable invasion was pending, and the scattered farmhouses were as open to the Kaffirs as our farmers' homesteads were in the American colonies when the Indians were on the warpath. Sir Theophilus Shepstone, the British Commissioner, after an inquiry of three months, solved all questions by the formal annexation of the country. The fact that he took possession of it with a force of some twenty-five men showed the honesty of his belief that no armed resistance was to be feared. This, then, in 1877 was a complete reversal of the Sand River Convention and the opening of a new chapter in the history of South Africa.

For twenty-five years after the Sand River Convention, the people of the South African Republic lived a tough and violent life, constantly battling with the natives and sometimes with each other, plus the occasional conflict with the small Dutch republic to the south. The semi-tropical sun stirred unusual tensions in the calm Friesland blood, creating a population that blended the restlessness and volatility of the south with the strong persistence of the north. Their vigorous spirit and intense ambitions led to feuds and rivalries that resembled those of medieval Italy, and the saga of these factional communities reads like a chapter from Guicciardini. Disorganization followed. The burghers refused to pay taxes, leaving the treasury empty. One fierce Kaffir tribe threatened them from the north, and the Zulus loomed from the east. It's an exaggeration from English supporters to claim that our intervention saved the Boers, as anyone can see from their military history that they were capable of facing both the Zulus and Sekukuni together. However, a significant invasion was certainly on the horizon, and the scattered farmhouses were just as vulnerable to the Kaffirs as the farmers' homes were in the American colonies during Indian attacks. Sir Theophilus Shepstone, the British Commissioner, concluded three months of investigation by formally annexing the country. The fact that he took control with a force of just about twenty-five men demonstrated his genuine belief that there would be no armed resistance. Thus, in 1877, this marked a complete reversal of the Sand River Convention and the beginning of a new chapter in the history of South Africa.

There did not appear to be any strong feeling at the time against the annexation. The people were depressed with their troubles and weary of contention. Burgers, the President, put in a formal protest, and took up his abode in Cape Colony, where he had a pension from the British Government. A memorial against the measure received the signatures of a majority of the Boer inhabitants, but there was a fair minority who took the other view. Kruger himself accepted a paid office under Government. There was every sign that the people, if judiciously handled, would settle down under the British flag. It is even asserted that they would themselves have petitioned for annexation had it been longer withheld. With immediate constitutional government it is possible that even the most recalcitrant of them might have been induced to lodge their protests in the ballot boxes rather than in the bodies of our soldiers.

There didn’t seem to be any strong opposition at the time to the annexation. The people were burdened by their problems and tired of fighting. Burgers, the President, filed a formal protest and moved to Cape Colony, where he received a pension from the British Government. A petition against the decision gathered signatures from most Boer residents, but there was a substantial minority who disagreed. Kruger even accepted a paid position with the Government. Everything indicated that the people, if managed wisely, would settle down under the British flag. Some even claimed they would have asked for annexation themselves if it had been delayed longer. With immediate constitutional government, it’s possible that even the most resistant among them might have chosen to express their objections at the ballot box instead of confronting our soldiers.

But the empire has always had poor luck in South Africa, and never worse than on that occasion. Through no bad faith, but simply through preoccupation and delay, the promises made were not instantly fulfilled. Simple primitive men do not understand the ways of our circumlocution offices, and they ascribe to duplicity what is really red tape and stupidity. If the Transvaalers had waited they would have had their Volksraad and all that they wanted. But the British Government had some other local matters to set right, the rooting out of Sekukuni and the breaking of the Zulus, before they would fulfill their pledges. The delay was keenly resented. And we were unfortunate in our choice of Governor. The burghers are a homely folk, and they like an occasional cup of coffee with the anxious man who tries to rule them. The three hundred pounds a year of coffee money allowed by the Transvaal to its President is by no means a mere form. A wise administrator would fall into the sociable and democratic habits of the people. Sir Theophilus Shepstone did so. Sir Owen Lanyon did not. There was no Volksraad and no coffee, and the popular discontent grew rapidly. In three years the British had broken up the two savage hordes which had been threatening the land. The finances, too, had been restored. The reasons which had made so many favour the annexation were weakened by the very power which had every interest in preserving them.

But the empire has always had bad luck in South Africa, and it was never worse than that time. Not out of bad intentions, but simply due to distractions and delays, the promises made weren’t fulfilled right away. Simple, primitive people don’t understand our complicated bureaucratic processes, and they misinterpret what is really just red tape and incompetence as deceit. If the Transvaalers had been patient, they would have had their Volksraad and everything they wanted. But the British Government had other local issues to manage first, like dealing with Sekukuni and subduing the Zulus, before they could honor their commitments. The delay was deeply resented. We were also unlucky in choosing our Governor. The burghers are down-to-earth folks who appreciate sharing a cup of coffee with the person trying to lead them. The three hundred pounds a year spent on coffee by the Transvaal for its President is definitely not just a formality. A wise administrator would embrace the friendly and democratic ways of the people. Sir Theophilus Shepstone did this. Sir Owen Lanyon did not. There was no Volksraad and no coffee, and public discontent grew quickly. In three years, the British had dismantled the two savage groups that had been threatening the land. The finances had also been restored. The reasons that had led many to support annexation weakened due to the very power that had every interest in maintaining them.

It cannot be too often pointed out that in this annexation, the starting-point of our troubles, Great Britain, however mistaken she may have been, had no obvious selfish interest in view. There were no Rand mines in those days, nor was there anything in the country to tempt the most covetous. An empty treasury and two native wars were the reversion which we took over. It was honestly considered that the country was in too distracted a state to govern itself, and had, by its weakness, become a scandal and a danger to its neighbours. There was nothing sordid in our action, though it may have been both injudicious and high-handed.

It’s important to emphasize that in this annexation, which marked the beginning of our problems, Great Britain, although it may have been wrong, didn’t have any obvious selfish motives. There were no gold mines back then, and nothing in the country that would attract even the greediest. We took over an empty treasury and two ongoing conflicts with local tribes. It was genuinely believed that the country was too unstable to rule itself and that its weakness had become a scandal and a threat to its neighbors. Our actions weren’t driven by greed, though they might have been thoughtless and overbearing.

In December 1880 the Boers rose. Every farmhouse sent out its riflemen, and the trysting-place was the outside of the nearest British fort. All through the country small detachments were surrounded and besieged by the farmers. Standerton, Pretoria, Potchefstroom, Lydenburg, Wakkerstroom, Rustenberg, and Marabastad were all invested and all held out until the end of the war. In the open country we were less fortunate. At Bronkhorst Spruit a small British force was taken by surprise and shot down without harm to their antagonists. The surgeon who treated them has left it on record that the average number of wounds was five per man. At Laing's Nek an inferior force of British endeavoured to rush a hill which was held by Boer riflemen. Half of our men were killed and wounded. Ingogo may be called a drawn battle, though our loss was more heavy than that of the enemy. Finally came the defeat of Majuba Hill, where four hundred infantry upon a mountain were defeated and driven off by a swarm of sharpshooters who advanced under the cover of boulders. Of all these actions there was not one which was more than a skirmish, and had they been followed by a final British victory they would now be hardly remembered. It is the fact that they were skirmishes which succeeded in their object which has given them an importance which is exaggerated. At the same time they may mark the beginning of a new military era, for they drove home the fact—only too badly learned by us—that it is the rifle and not the drill which makes the soldier. It is bewildering that after such an experience the British military authorities continued to serve out only three hundred cartridges a year for rifle practice, and that they still encouraged that mechanical volley firing which destroys all individual aim. With the experience of the first Boer war behind them, little was done, either in tactics or in musketry, to prepare the soldier for the second. The value of the mounted rifleman, the shooting with accuracy at unknown ranges, the art of taking cover—all were equally neglected.

In December 1880, the Boers revolted. Every farmhouse sent out its riflemen, and the meeting point was outside the nearest British fort. Across the country, small groups of British forces were surrounded and besieged by farmers. Standerton, Pretoria, Potchefstroom, Lydenburg, Wakkerstroom, Rustenberg, and Marabastad were all under siege and held out until the end of the war. In the open country, we had less luck. At Bronkhorst Spruit, a small British force was caught off guard and shot down without any damage to the attackers. The surgeon who treated them recorded that the average number of wounds was five per man. At Laing's Nek, a smaller British force tried to charge a hill held by Boer riflemen. Half of our men were killed or injured. Ingogo may be considered a draw, though our losses were heavier than those of the enemy. Finally, there was the defeat at Majuba Hill, where four hundred infantry on a mountain were beaten and driven off by a group of sharpshooters who advanced behind boulders. None of these actions were more than skirmishes, and if they had been followed by a final British victory, they would likely be forgotten. The fact that they were successful skirmishes has given them an inflated significance. At the same time, they might signify the start of a new military era, as they highlighted the lesson—only too painfully learned—that it is the rifle, not drill, that makes a soldier. It's surprising that after such an experience, British military leaders continued to provide only three hundred cartridges a year for rifle practice, and that they still promoted mechanical volley firing, which ruins individual aim. With the first Boer War behind them, little was done in terms of tactics or marksmanship to prepare soldiers for the second. The importance of the mounted rifleman, shooting accurately at unknown ranges, and the skill of taking cover—all were equally overlooked.

The defeat at Majuba Hill was followed by the complete surrender of the Gladstonian Government, an act which was either the most pusillanimous or the most magnanimous in recent history. It is hard for the big man to draw away from the small before blows are struck but when the big man has been knocked down three times it is harder still. An overwhelming British force was in the field, and the General declared that he held the enemy in the hollow of his hand. Our military calculations have been falsified before now by these farmers, and it may be that the task of Wood and Roberts would have been harder than they imagined; but on paper, at least, it looked as if the enemy could be crushed without difficulty. So the public thought, and yet they consented to the upraised sword being stayed. With them, as apart from the politicians, the motive was undoubtedly a moral and Christian one. They considered that the annexation of the Transvaal had evidently been an injustice, that the farmers had a right to the freedom for which they fought, and that it was an unworthy thing for a great nation to continue an unjust war for the sake of a military revenge. It was the height of idealism, and the result has not been such as to encourage its repetition.

The defeat at Majuba Hill led to the complete surrender of the Gladstonian Government, an act seen as either incredibly cowardly or remarkably generous in recent history. It's tough for a powerful person to step back from a lesser one before any conflict starts, but when the powerful person has been knocked down three times, it's even harder. An overwhelming British force was on the battlefield, and the General claimed he had the enemy completely under control. Our military predictions have been proven wrong before by these farmers, and it might be that the jobs of Wood and Roberts would have been more challenging than they expected; but at least on paper, it seemed like the enemy could be easily defeated. This is what the public believed, yet they agreed to hold back the raised sword. For them, apart from the politicians, the motive was undoubtedly moral and Christian. They thought that the annexation of the Transvaal was obviously an injustice, that the farmers deserved the freedom they were fighting for, and that it was dishonorable for a great nation to continue an unjust war out of a desire for military revenge. It was the height of idealism, and the outcome has not encouraged its repetition.

An armistice was concluded on March 5th, 1881, which led up to a peace on the 23rd of the same month. The Government, after yielding to force what it had repeatedly refused to friendly representations, made a clumsy compromise in their settlement. A policy of idealism and Christian morality should have been thorough if it were to be tried at all. It was obvious that if the annexation were unjust, then the Transvaal should have reverted to the condition in which it was before the annexation, as defined by the Sand River Convention. But the Government for some reason would not go so far as this. They niggled and quibbled and bargained until the State was left as a curious hybrid thing such as the world has never seen. It was a republic which was part of the system of a monarchy, dealt with by the Colonial Office, and included under the heading of 'Colonies' in the news columns of the 'Times.' It was autonomous, and yet subject to some vague suzerainty, the limits of which no one has ever been able to define. Altogether, in its provisions and in its omissions, the Convention of Pretoria appears to prove that our political affairs were as badly conducted as our military in this unfortunate year of 1881.

An armistice was reached on March 5th, 1881, leading to a peace agreement on the 23rd of that month. The Government, after yielding to pressure what it had consistently rejected from friendly requests, made a clumsy compromise in their resolution. A policy based on idealism and Christian ethics should have been thorough if it was to be attempted at all. It was clear that if the annexation was unjust, then the Transvaal should have returned to the state it was in before the annexation, as outlined by the Sand River Convention. But for some reason, the Government wouldn’t go that far. They nitpicked and haggled and negotiated until the State ended up as a strange hybrid that the world has never seen. It was a republic that was part of a monarchy system, managed by the Colonial Office, and categorized as 'Colonies' in the news sections of the 'Times.' It was autonomous yet subject to some vague overlordship, the boundaries of which no one has ever been able to define. Overall, both in what it included and what it left out, the Convention of Pretoria shows that our political dealings were as poorly managed as our military efforts in that unfortunate year of 1881.

It was evident from the first that so illogical and contentious an agreement could not possibly prove to be a final settlement, and indeed the ink of the signatures was hardly dry before an agitation was on foot for its revision. The Boers considered, and with justice, that if they were to be left as undisputed victors in the war then they should have the full fruits of victory. On the other hand, the English-speaking colonies had their allegiance tested to the uttermost. The proud Anglo-Celtic stock is not accustomed to be humbled, and yet they found themselves through the action of the home Government converted into members of a beaten race. It was very well for the citizen of London to console his wounded pride by the thought that he had done a magnanimous action, but it was different with the British colonist of Durban or Cape Town, who by no act of his own, and without any voice in the settlement, found himself humiliated before his Dutch neighbour. An ugly feeling of resentment was left behind, which might perhaps have passed away had the Transvaal accepted the settlement in the spirit in which it was meant, but which grew more and more dangerous as during eighteen years our people saw, or thought that they saw, that one concession led always to a fresh demand, and that the Dutch republics aimed not merely at equality, but at dominance in South Africa. Professor Bryce, a friendly critic, after a personal examination of the country and the question, has left it upon record that the Boers saw neither generosity nor humanity in our conduct, but only fear. An outspoken race, they conveyed their feelings to their neighbours. Can it be wondered at that South Africa has been in a ferment ever since, and that the British Africander has yearned with an intensity of feeling unknown in England for the hour of revenge?

It was clear from the start that such a illogical and controversial agreement could never be seen as a final settlement, and in fact, the signatures were barely dry before there was a movement to revise it. The Boers legitimately thought that if they were to be recognized as the clear winners of the war, then they should enjoy all the benefits of that victory. On the flip side, the English-speaking colonies faced extreme tests of loyalty. The proud Anglo-Celtic lineage isn’t used to being humiliated, yet they found themselves, due to the actions of the home Government, in the position of a defeated race. It was easy for a London citizen to soothe his bruised pride by thinking he had acted generously, but for the British colonist in Durban or Cape Town, who had no say in the resolution and was simply subjected to humiliation by his Dutch neighbor, it was quite different. An ugly sense of resentment lingered, which might have faded if the Transvaal had accepted the settlement as it was intended, but it only grew more dangerous as our people, over eighteen years, perceived—rightly or wrongly—that every concession led to new demands, and that the Dutch republics were not just seeking equality, but aiming for dominance in South Africa. Professor Bryce, a sympathetic critic who personally examined the country and its issues, recorded that the Boers saw nothing but fear in our actions, not generosity or humanity. Being an outspoken people, they expressed their feelings to their neighbors. Can it be surprising that South Africa has been in constant turmoil ever since, and that the British Africander has longed with an intensity of feeling unknown in England for the moment of revenge?

The Government of the Transvaal after the war was left in the hands of a triumvirate, but after one year Kruger became President, an office which he continued to hold for eighteen years. His career as ruler vindicates the wisdom of that wise but unwritten provision of the American Constitution by which there is a limit to the tenure of this office. Continued rule for half a generation must turn a man into an autocrat. The old President has said himself, in his homely but shrewd way, that when one gets a good ox to lead the team it is a pity to change him. If a good ox, however, is left to choose his own direction without guidance, he may draw his wagon into trouble.

The government of the Transvaal after the war was run by a three-person team, but after a year, Kruger became President, a position he held for eighteen years. His time as a leader shows the wisdom of that unspoken part of the American Constitution that limits how long someone can hold this office. Holding power for half a generation can make anyone an autocrat. The old President himself said in a simple but insightful way that when you have a good ox to pull the cart, it’s a shame to replace him. However, if a good ox is allowed to choose its own path without direction, it could lead the cart into trouble.

During three years the little State showed signs of a tumultuous activity. Considering that it was as large as France and that the population could not have been more than 50,000, one would have thought that they might have found room without any inconvenient crowding. But the burghers passed beyond their borders in every direction. The President cried aloud that he had been shut up in a kraal, and he proceeded to find ways out of it. A great trek was projected for the north, but fortunately it miscarried. To the east they raided Zululand, and succeeded, in defiance of the British settlement of that country, in tearing away one third of it and adding it to the Transvaal. To the west, with no regard to the three-year-old treaty, they invaded Bechuanaland, and set up the two new republics of Goshen and Stellaland. So outrageous were these proceedings that Great Britain was forced to fit out in 1884 a new expedition under Sir Charles Warren for the purpose of turning these freebooters out of the country. It may be asked, why should these men be called freebooters if the founders of Rhodesia were pioneers? The answer is that the Transvaal was limited by treaty to certain boundaries which these men transgressed, while no pledges were broken when the British power expanded to the north. The upshot of these trespasses was the scene upon which every drama of South Africa rings down. Once more the purse was drawn from the pocket of the unhappy taxpayer, and a million or so was paid out to defray the expenses of the police force necessary to keep these treaty-breakers in order. Let this be borne in mind when we assess the moral and material damage done to the Transvaal by that ill-conceived and foolish enterprise, the Jameson Raid.

For three years, the small State showed signs of intense activity. Considering it was as large as France and had a population of no more than 50,000, one would think there would be enough space without any inconvenient crowding. However, the citizens went beyond their borders in every direction. The President loudly claimed he was trapped in a kraal and sought ways to escape. A significant trek to the north was planned, but fortunately, it failed. To the east, they invaded Zululand and managed, in defiance of the British settlement in that area, to take away one-third of it and add it to the Transvaal. To the west, disregarding the three-year-old treaty, they invaded Bechuanaland and established the two new republics of Goshen and Stellaland. These actions were so outrageous that Great Britain felt compelled to launch a new expedition in 1884 under Sir Charles Warren to remove these freebooters from the country. One might wonder why these individuals are called freebooters while the founders of Rhodesia are referred to as pioneers. The difference is that the Transvaal was restricted by treaty to specific boundaries, which these individuals violated, whereas the British expansion to the north did not break any promises. The result of these violations was the scene where every conflict in South Africa ultimately unfolds. Once again, the unfortunate taxpayer had to foot the bill, and about a million was spent to cover the costs of the police force needed to control these treaty-breakers. It’s important to remember this when we consider the moral and material damage inflicted on the Transvaal by that poorly conceived and foolish venture, the Jameson Raid.

In 1884 a deputation from the Transvaal visited England, and at their solicitation the clumsy Treaty of Pretoria was altered into the still more clumsy Convention of London. The changes in the provisions were all in favour of the Boers, and a second successful war could hardly have given them more than Lord Derby handed them in time of peace. Their style was altered from the Transvaal to the South African Republic, a change which was ominously suggestive of expansion in the future. The control of Great Britain over their foreign policy was also relaxed, though a power of veto was retained. But the most important thing of all, and the fruitful cause of future trouble, lay in an omission. A suzerainty is a vague term, but in politics, as in theology, the more nebulous a thing is the more does it excite the imagination and the passions of men. This suzerainty was declared in the preamble of the first treaty, and no mention of it was made in the second. Was it thereby abrogated or was it not? The British contention was that only the articles were changed, and that the preamble continued to hold good for both treaties. They pointed out that not only the suzerainty, but also the independence, of the Transvaal was proclaimed in that preamble, and that if one lapsed the other must do so also. On the other hand, the Boers pointed to the fact that there was actually a preamble to the second Convention, which would seem, therefore, to have taken the place of the first. The point is so technical that it appears to be eminently one of those questions which might with propriety have been submitted to the decision of a board of foreign jurists—or possibly to the Supreme Court of the United States. If the decision had been given against Great Britain, we might have accepted it in a chastened spirit as a fitting punishment for the carelessness of the representative who failed to make our meaning intelligible. Carlyle has said that a political mistake always ends in a broken head for somebody. Unfortunately the somebody is usually somebody else. We have read the story of the political mistakes. Only too soon we shall come to the broken heads.

In 1884, a delegation from the Transvaal visited England, and at their request, the awkward Treaty of Pretoria was changed into the even more awkward Convention of London. The changes favored the Boers, and a second successful war wouldn’t have benefited them more than what Lord Derby offered them during peacetime. The name was changed from the Transvaal to the South African Republic, a shift that hinted at future expansion. Great Britain's control over their foreign policy was loosened, though they retained a veto power. However, the most significant issue, which would lead to future problems, was something that was left out. Suzerainty is a vague term, but in politics, just like in theology, the more unclear something is, the more it stirs people's imaginations and passions. This suzerainty was mentioned in the preamble of the first treaty, but it was not referred to in the second. Did that mean it was nullified or not? The British argued that only the articles were revised, and that the preamble still applied to both treaties. They pointed out that not only was the suzerainty declared, but also the independence of the Transvaal in that preamble, and if one fell away, so should the other. On the other hand, the Boers highlighted that there was indeed a preamble to the second Convention, which seemed to replace the first one. The issue is so technical that it seems suitable to be decided by a panel of foreign legal experts—or perhaps by the Supreme Court of the United States. If the ruling had gone against Great Britain, we might have accepted it humbly as a deserved punishment for the negligence of the representative who failed to clarify our intentions. Carlyle once said that a political mistake always results in someone getting hurt. Unfortunately, that someone is usually someone else. We’ve read about the political errors. Soon enough, we’ll see the consequences.

This, then, is a synopsis of what had occurred up to the signing of the Convention, which finally established, or failed to establish, the position of the South African Republic. We must now leave the larger questions, and descend to the internal affairs of that small State, and especially to that train of events which has stirred the mind of our people more than anything since the Indian Mutiny.

This is a summary of what happened leading up to the signing of the Convention, which ultimately defined, or didn't define, the status of the South African Republic. Now we must shift our focus from the bigger issues and delve into the internal matters of that small country, particularly the series of events that have engaged our people's thoughts more than anything since the Indian Mutiny.





CHAPTER 2. THE CAUSE OF QUARREL.

There might almost seem to be some subtle connection between the barrenness and worthlessness of a surface and the value of the minerals which lie beneath it. The craggy mountains of Western America, the arid plains of West Australia, the ice-bound gorges of the Klondyke, and the bare slopes of the Witwatersrand veld—these are the lids which cover the great treasure chests of the world.

There might almost seem to be a subtle connection between how barren and worthless a surface appears and the value of the minerals hiding beneath it. The jagged mountains of Western America, the dry plains of West Australia, the icy gorges of the Klondike, and the bare slopes of the Witwatersrand veld—these are the covers that hide the world's great treasure chests.

Gold had been known to exist in the Transvaal before, but it was only in 1886 that it was realised that the deposits which lie some thirty miles south of the capital are of a very extraordinary and valuable nature. The proportion of gold in the quartz is not particularly high, nor are the veins of a remarkable thickness, but the peculiarity of the Rand mines lies in the fact that throughout this 'banket' formation the metal is so uniformly distributed that the enterprise can claim a certainty which is not usually associated with the industry. It is quarrying rather than mining. Add to this that the reefs which were originally worked as outcrops have now been traced to enormous depths, and present the same features as those at the surface. A conservative estimate of the value of the gold has placed it at seven hundred millions of pounds.

Gold had been known to exist in the Transvaal before, but it was only in 1886 that it was recognized that the deposits located about thirty miles south of the capital are exceptional and highly valuable. The amount of gold in the quartz isn’t particularly high, and the veins aren’t extraordinarily thick, but the unique aspect of the Rand mines is that throughout this 'banket' formation, the metal is so evenly distributed that the operation can guarantee a level of certainty that’s usually not seen in the industry. It’s more like quarrying than traditional mining. Additionally, the reefs that were initially worked as outcrops have now been traced to great depths and show the same characteristics as those at the surface. A conservative estimate of the gold's value has placed it at seven hundred million pounds.

Such a discovery produced the inevitable effect. A great number of adventurers flocked into the country, some desirable and some very much the reverse. There were circumstances, however, which kept away the rowdy and desperado element who usually make for a newly opened goldfield. It was not a class of mining which encouraged the individual adventurer. There were none of those nuggets which gleamed through the mud of the dollies at Ballarat, or recompensed the forty-niners in California for all their travels and their toils. It was a field for elaborate machinery, which could only be provided by capital. Managers, engineers, miners, technical experts, and the tradesmen and middlemen who live upon them, these were the Uitlanders, drawn from all the races under the sun, but with the Anglo-Celtic vastly predominant. The best engineers were American, the best miners were Cornish, the best managers were English, the money to run the mines was largely subscribed in England. As time went on, however, the German and French interests became more extensive, until their joint holdings are now probably as heavy as those of the British. Soon the population of the mining centres became greater than that of the whole Boer community, and consisted mainly of men in the prime of life—men, too, of exceptional intelligence and energy.

Such a discovery had an expected impact. A lot of adventurers poured into the country, some welcome and some definitely not. However, certain factors kept away the rowdy and reckless people who usually swarm to a newly opened goldfield. This wasn’t a type of mining that favored individual adventurers. There were none of those nuggets shining through the mud that the diggers at Ballarat found, or that compensated the forty-niners in California for all their journeys and hard work. It was a field that required complex machinery, which could only be supplied by investment. Managers, engineers, miners, technical experts, and the tradespeople making a living off them comprised the Uitlanders, coming from all races around the world, but with a significant Anglo-Celtic majority. The top engineers were American, the best miners were Cornish, the best managers were English, and most of the funding for the mines came from England. Over time, however, German and French investments grew larger, to the point where their combined holdings are now likely as substantial as those of the British. Soon, the population of the mining centers exceeded that of the entire Boer community, mainly consisting of men in their prime—men of remarkable intelligence and drive.

The situation was an extraordinary one. I have already attempted to bring the problem home to an American by suggesting that the Dutch of New York had trekked west and founded an anti-American and highly unprogressive State. To carry out the analogy we will now suppose that that State was California, that the gold of that State attracted a large inrush of American citizens, who came to outnumber the original inhabitants, that these citizens were heavily taxed and badly used, and that they deafened Washington with their outcry about their injuries. That would be a fair parallel to the relations between the Transvaal, the Uitlanders, and the British Government.

The situation was truly extraordinary. I've already tried to explain the issue to an American by suggesting that the Dutch in New York had moved west and created an anti-American and very unprogressive state. To extend the analogy, let’s assume that this state was California, where the gold attracted a massive influx of American citizens, who ended up outnumbering the original inhabitants. These citizens were heavily taxed and mistreated, and they bombarded Washington with complaints about their mistreatment. That would be a fair comparison to the relationships between the Transvaal, the Uitlanders, and the British Government.

That these Uitlanders had very real and pressing grievances no one could possibly deny. To recount them all would be a formidable task, for their whole lives were darkened by injustice. There was not a wrong which had driven the Boer from Cape Colony which he did not now practise himself upon others—and a wrong may be excusable in 1885 which is monstrous in 1895. The primitive virtue which had characterised the farmers broke down in the face of temptation. The country Boers were little affected, some of them not at all, but the Pretoria Government became a most corrupt oligarchy, venal and incompetent to the last degree. Officials and imported Hollanders handled the stream of gold which came in from the mines, while the unfortunate Uitlander who paid nine-tenths of the taxation was fleeced at every turn, and met with laughter and taunts when he endeavoured to win the franchise by which he might peaceably set right the wrongs from which he suffered. He was not an unreasonable person. On the contrary, he was patient to the verge of meekness, as capital is likely to be when it is surrounded by rifles. But his situation was intolerable, and after successive attempts at peaceful agitation, and numerous humble petitions to the Volksraad, he began at last to realise that he would never obtain redress unless he could find some way of winning it for himself.

That these Uitlanders had very real and urgent grievances is something no one could possibly deny. Listing them all would be a daunting task, as their entire lives were overshadowed by injustice. There wasn’t a wrong that had pushed the Boer from Cape Colony that he didn’t now inflict on others—and a wrong that may have been excusable in 1885 became monstrous by 1895. The simple virtue that once defined the farmers crumbled when faced with temptation. The rural Boers were hardly impacted, some not at all, but the Pretoria Government turned into a highly corrupt oligarchy, completely greedy and incompetent. Officials and imported Dutch managed the flow of gold coming in from the mines, while the unfortunate Uitlander, who paid nine-tenths of the taxes, was robbed at every opportunity and mocked with laughter when he tried to acquire the franchise to peacefully correct the injustices he faced. He wasn’t an unreasonable person. In fact, he was patient almost to the point of meekness, as capital tends to be when surrounded by rifles. But his situation was unbearable, and after several attempts at peaceful protests and numerous respectful petitions to the Volksraad, he finally began to understand that he would never find relief unless he could somehow secure it for himself.

Without attempting to enumerate all the wrongs which embittered the Uitlanders, the more serious of them may be summed up in this way.

Without trying to list all the grievances that angered the Uitlanders, the more significant ones can be summarized like this.

1. That they were heavily taxed and provided about seven-eighths of the revenue of the country. The revenue of the South African Republic—which had been 154,000 pounds in 1886, when the gold fields were opened—had grown in 1899 to four million pounds, and the country through the industry of the newcomers had changed from one of the poorest to the richest in the whole world (per head of population).

1. They were heavily taxed and contributed about seven-eighths of the country's revenue. The revenue of the South African Republic—which had been £154,000 in 1886, when the gold fields were opened—had grown to £4 million by 1899, and the country, thanks to the efforts of the newcomers, had transformed from one of the poorest to the richest in the world (per capita).

2. That in spite of this prosperity which they had brought, they, the majority of the inhabitants of the country, were left without a vote, and could by no means influence the disposal of the great sums which they were providing. Such a case of taxation without representation has never been known.

2. That despite this prosperity they had created, the majority of the people in the country were left without a vote and could not influence how the large amounts of money they were generating were spent. This kind of taxation without representation has never been seen before.

3. That they had no voice in the choice or payment of officials. Men of the worst private character might be placed with complete authority over valuable interests. Upon one occasion the Minister of Mines attempted himself to jump a mine, having officially learned some flaw in its title. The total official salaries had risen in 1899 to a sum sufficient to pay 40 pounds per head to the entire male Boer population.

3. That they had no say in selecting or paying officials. People with terrible personal character could be given full control over important assets. On one occasion, the Minister of Mines even tried to take over a mine after finding out about a flaw in its title. By 1899, the total salaries for officials had increased to an amount enough to give 40 pounds each to every male Boer.

4. That they had no control over education. Mr. John Robinson, the Director General of the Johannesburg Educational Council, has reckoned the sum spent on Uitlander schools as 650 pounds out of 63,000 pounds allotted for education, making one shilling and tenpence per head per annum on Uitlander children, and eight pounds six shillings per head on Boer children—the Uitlander, as always, paying seven-eighths of the original sum.

4. They had no control over education. Mr. John Robinson, the Director General of the Johannesburg Educational Council, calculated that the total spent on Uitlander schools was 650 pounds out of the 63,000 pounds allocated for education, which amounts to one shilling and ten pence per year for each Uitlander child, compared to eight pounds six shillings per year for each Boer child—the Uitlander, as always, covering seven-eighths of the total amount.

5. No power of municipal government. Watercarts instead of pipes, filthy buckets instead of drains, a corrupt and violent police, a high death-rate in what should be a health resort—all this in a city which they had built themselves.

5. No power of local government. Water trucks instead of pipes, dirty buckets instead of drains, a corrupt and violent police force, a high death rate in what should be a health resort—all of this in a city they built themselves.

6. Despotic government in the matter of the press and of the right of public meeting.

6. Authoritarian government regarding the press and the right to gather in public.

7. Disability from service upon a jury.

7. Disability from serving on a jury.

8. Continual harassing of the mining interest by vexatious legislation. Under this head came many grievances, some special to the mines and some affecting all Uitlanders. The dynamite monopoly, by which the miners had to pay 600,000 pounds extra per annum in order to get a worse quality of dynamite; the liquor laws, by which one-third of the Kaffirs were allowed to be habitually drunk; the incompetence and extortions of the State-owned railway; the granting of concessions for numerous articles of ordinary consumption to individuals, by which high prices were maintained; the surrounding of Johannesburg by tolls from which the town had no profit—these were among the economical grievances, some large, some petty, which ramified through every transaction of life.

8. Ongoing harassment of the mining sector through frustrating legislation. This included many issues, some specific to the mines and some affecting all foreigners. The dynamite monopoly forced miners to pay an extra £600,000 a year for lower quality dynamite; the liquor laws allowed one-third of the locals to be drunk all the time; the incompetence and exploitation by the state-owned railway; the granting of concessions for various everyday items to individuals, which kept prices high; and the tolls around Johannesburg that brought no benefit to the town—these were some of the economic grievances, varying in severity, that influenced every aspect of life.

And outside and beyond all these definite wrongs imagine to a free born progressive man, an American or a Briton, the constant irritation of being absolutely ruled by a body of twenty-five men, twenty-one of whom had in the case of the Selati Railway Company been publicly and circumstantially accused of bribery, with full details of the bribes received, while to their corruption they added such crass ignorance that they argue in the published reports of the Volksraad debates that using dynamite bombs to bring down rain was firing at God, that it is impious to destroy locusts, that the word 'participate' should not be used because it is not in the Bible, and that postal pillar boxes are extravagant and effeminate. Such obiter dicta may be amusing at a distance, but they are less entertaining when they come from an autocrat who has complete power over the conditions of your life.

And outside and beyond all these clear injustices, just picture the constant frustration for a free-thinking progressive person, whether American or British, of being completely governed by a group of twenty-five men, twenty-one of whom were publicly and specifically accused of bribery in the case of the Selati Railway Company, with detailed accounts of the bribes they took. To their corruption, they added such sheer ignorance that in the published reports of the Volksraad debates, they claimed that using dynamite bombs to make it rain was like firing at God, that it's wrong to destroy locusts, that the word 'participate' shouldn't be used because it's not in the Bible, and that postal pillar boxes are wasteful and overly fancy. Such offhand remarks might be amusing from afar, but they're far less entertaining when they come from a ruler who has total control over your life.

From the fact that they were a community extremely preoccupied by their own business, it followed that the Uitlanders were not ardent politicians, and that they desired to have a share in the government of the State for the purpose of making the conditions of their own industry and of their own daily lives more endurable. How far there was need of such an interference may be judged by any fair-minded man who reads the list of their complaints. A superficial view may recognise the Boers as the champions of liberty, but a deeper insight must see that they (as represented by their elected rulers) have in truth stood for all that history has shown to be odious in the form of exclusiveness and oppression. Their conception of liberty has been a selfish one, and they have consistently inflicted upon others far heavier wrongs than those against which they had themselves rebelled.

Given that they were a community deeply focused on their own affairs, it followed that the Uitlanders weren’t particularly passionate about politics and wanted to be involved in the government of the State to improve the conditions of their work and daily lives. How much they needed such involvement can be assessed by any fair-minded person who looks at their list of complaints. A superficial perspective might see the Boers as defenders of freedom, but a closer look reveals that they (as represented by their elected leaders) have actually embodied everything history has shown to be negative in terms of exclusivity and oppression. Their idea of freedom has been a self-serving one, and they have consistently imposed much greater injustices on others than those they themselves rebelled against.

As the mines increased in importance and the miners in numbers, it was found that these political disabilities affected some of that cosmopolitan crowd far more than others, in proportion to the amount of freedom to which their home institutions had made them accustomed. The continental Uitlanders were more patient of that which was unendurable to the American and the Briton. The Americans, however, were in so great a minority that it was upon the British that the brunt of the struggle for freedom fell. Apart from the fact that the British were more numerous than all the other Uitlanders combined, there were special reasons why they should feel their humiliating position more than the members of any other race. In the first place, many of the British were British South Africans, who knew that in the neighbouring countries which gave them birth the most liberal possible institutions had been given to the kinsmen of these very Boers who were refusing them the management of their own drains and water supply. And again, every Briton knew that Great Britain claimed to be the paramount power in South Africa, and so he felt as if his own land, to which he might have looked for protection, was conniving at and acquiescing in his ill treatment. As citizens of the paramount power, it was peculiarly galling that they should be held in political subjection. The British, therefore, were the most persistent and energetic of the agitators.

As the mines grew more important and the number of miners increased, it was clear that these political restrictions affected some of that diverse group much more than others, based on how accustomed they were to freedom in their home countries. The continental Uitlanders were more tolerant of things that were unbearable for the Americans and Brits. However, the Americans were such a small group that it was mostly the British who took on the main struggle for freedom. Besides the fact that the British outnumbered all the other Uitlanders combined, there were specific reasons why they felt their humiliating situation more acutely than any other nationality. First, many British were British South Africans, who knew that in the neighboring countries where they were born, the most generous possible governments had been established for the relatives of the very Boers who were denying them control over their own drainage and water supply. Additionally, every Briton understood that Great Britain claimed to be the leading power in South Africa, which made them feel as if their own country, where they might have sought protection, was ignoring and accepting their mistreatment. As citizens of the leading power, it was especially frustrating for them to be politically oppressed. Therefore, the British were the most persistent and energetic of the activists.

But it is a poor cause which cannot bear to fairly state and honestly consider the case of its opponents. The Boers had made, as has been briefly shown, great efforts to establish a country of their own. They had travelled far, worked hard, and fought bravely. After all their efforts they were fated to see an influx of strangers into their country, some of them men of questionable character, who outnumbered the original inhabitants. If the franchise were granted to these, there could be no doubt that though at first the Boers might control a majority of the votes, it was only a question of time before the newcomers would dominate the Raad and elect their own President, who might adopt a policy abhorrent to the original owners of the land. Were the Boers to lose by the ballot-box the victory which they had won by their rifles? Was it fair to expect it? These newcomers came for gold. They got their gold. Their companies paid a hundred per cent. Was not that enough to satisfy them? If they did not like the country why did they not leave it? No one compelled them to stay there. But if they stayed, let them be thankful that they were tolerated at all, and not presume to interfere with the laws of those by whose courtesy they were allowed to enter the country.

But it's a weak cause that can't honestly present and consider the arguments of its opponents. The Boers had made, as has been briefly shown, significant efforts to create their own country. They traveled long distances, worked hard, and fought valiantly. After all their efforts, they were destined to witness an influx of outsiders into their land, some of whom had questionable motives, and who outnumbered the original inhabitants. If the right to vote was granted to these newcomers, there was little doubt that although the Boers might initially have a majority, it was only a matter of time before the newcomers would take control of the Raad and elect their own President, who might implement policies that the original landowners would find unacceptable. Were the Boers really expected to lose the victory they achieved through their rifles to a vote? Was that fair? These newcomers came for gold. They got their gold. Their companies made a hundred percent profit. Wasn't that enough? If they disliked the country so much, why didn't they just leave? No one forced them to stay. But if they chose to remain, they should be grateful for the hospitality they received and not presume to interfere with the laws of those who graciously allowed them to enter the country.

That is a fair statement of the Boer position, and at first sight an impartial man might say that there was a good deal to say for it; but a closer examination would show that, though it might be tenable in theory, it is unjust and impossible in practice.

That’s a reasonable way to describe the Boer position, and at first glance, an unbiased person might think there’s a lot of merit to it; however, a deeper look would reveal that while it could be defensible in theory, it is unfair and unfeasible in reality.

In the present crowded state of the world a policy of Thibet may be carried out in some obscure corner, but it cannot be done in a great tract of country which lies right across the main line of industrial progress. The position is too absolutely artificial. A handful of people by the right of conquest take possession of an enormous country over which they are dotted at such intervals that it is their boast that one farmhouse cannot see the smoke of another, and yet, though their numbers are so disproportionate to the area which they cover, they refuse to admit any other people upon equal terms, but claim to be a privileged class who shall dominate the newcomers completely. They are outnumbered in their own land by immigrants who are far more highly educated and progressive, and yet they hold them down in a way which exists nowhere else upon earth. What is their right? The right of conquest. Then the same right may be justly invoked to reverse so intolerable a situation. This they would themselves acknowledge. 'Come on and fight! Come on!' cried a member of the Volksraad when the franchise petition of the Uitlanders was presented. 'Protest! Protest! What is the good of protesting?' said Kruger to Mr. W. Y. Campbell; 'you have not got the guns, I have.' There was always the final court of appeal. Judge Creusot and Judge Mauser were always behind the President.

In today's overcrowded world, a policy like that of Tibet might work in some remote area, but it can't operate in a vast region that sits right in the path of industrial progress. The situation is too completely artificial. A small group of people has taken control of a huge country by conquest, spread out so thinly that they proudly claim one farmhouse can’t see the smoke from another. Yet, despite their numbers being so small compared to the land they occupy, they refuse to let anyone else in on equal terms, insisting they are a privileged class meant to completely dominate newcomers. They are outnumbered in their own territory by immigrants who are much more educated and forward-thinking, yet they keep them suppressed in a way that doesn’t happen anywhere else in the world. What gives them this right? The right of conquest. That same right can justly be used to change such an unbearable situation. They would acknowledge this themselves. 'Come on and fight! Come on!' shouted a member of the Volksraad when the franchise petition from the Uitlanders was introduced. 'Protest! Protest! What good is protesting?' Kruger said to Mr. W. Y. Campbell; 'you don’t have the guns, I do.' There was always that final appeal. Judge Creusot and Judge Mauser were always right behind the President.

Again, the argument of the Boers would be more valid had they received no benefit from these immigrants. If they had ignored them they might fairly have stated that they did not desire their presence. But even while they protested they grew rich at the Uitlander's expense. They could not have it both ways. It would be consistent to discourage him and not profit by him, or to make him comfortable and build the State upon his money; but to ill-treat him and at the same time to grow strong by his taxation must surely be an injustice.

Once again, the Boers' argument would hold more weight if they hadn't benefited from these immigrants. If they had completely disregarded them, they could reasonably claim they didn't want them around. But even while complaining, they became wealthy at the Uitlander's expense. They can't have it both ways. They could either discourage him and not gain anything from him, or make him feel welcome and build the State on his contributions; but to mistreat him while simultaneously growing stronger from his taxes is undoubtedly unfair.

And again, the whole argument is based upon the narrow racial supposition that every naturalised citizen not of Boer extraction must necessarily be unpatriotic. This is not borne out by the examples of history. The newcomer soon becomes as proud of his country and as jealous of her liberty as the old. Had President Kruger given the franchise generously to the Uitlander, his pyramid would have been firm upon its base and not balanced upon its apex. It is true that the corrupt oligarchy would have vanished, and the spirit of a broader more tolerant freedom influenced the counsels of the State. But the republic would have become stronger and more permanent, with a population who, if they differed in details, were united in essentials. Whether such a solution would have been to the advantage of British interests in South Africa is quite another question. In more ways than one President Kruger has been a good friend to the empire.

And once again, the entire argument relies on the narrow racial assumption that every naturalized citizen who isn't of Boer descent must automatically be unpatriotic. History doesn't support this idea. The newcomer quickly becomes just as proud of their country and protective of its freedom as the locals. If President Kruger had generously given voting rights to the Uitlander, his foundation would have been solid instead of teetering on its peak. It's true that the corrupt ruling class would have disappeared, and a more inclusive and tolerant spirit would have guided the state's decisions. However, the republic would have become stronger and more lasting, with a population that, despite differing on specifics, was united on core issues. Whether this solution would have benefited British interests in South Africa is a different matter. In many ways, President Kruger has been a true ally to the empire.

So much upon the general question of the reason why the Uitlander should agitate and why the Boer was obdurate. The details of the long struggle between the seekers for the franchise and the refusers of it may be quickly sketched, but they cannot be entirely ignored by any one who desires to understand the inception of that great contest which was the outcome of the dispute.

So much for the overall question of why the Uitlander should push for change and why the Boer remained stubborn. The details of the lengthy struggle between those

At the time of the Convention of Pretoria (1881) the rights of burghership might be obtained by one year's residence. In 1882 it was raised to five years, the reasonable limit which obtains both in Great Britain and in the United States. Had it remained so, it is safe to say that there would never have been either an Uitlander question or a great Boer war. Grievances would have been righted from the inside without external interference.

At the time of the Pretoria Convention (1881), you could gain citizenship after living there for a year. In 1882, that requirement was increased to five years, which is a reasonable standard in both Great Britain and the United States. If it had stayed that way, it's safe to say there wouldn't have been an Uitlander issue or a major Boer war. Problems would have been resolved from within without outside interference.

In 1890 the inrush of outsiders alarmed the Boers, and the franchise was raised so as to be only attainable by those who had lived fourteen years in the country. The Uitlanders, who were increasing rapidly in numbers and were suffering from the formidable list of grievances already enumerated, perceived that their wrongs were so numerous that it was hopeless to have them set right seriatim, and that only by obtaining the leverage of the franchise could they hope to move the heavy burden which weighed them down. In 1893 a petition of 13,000 Uitlanders, couched in most respectful terms, was submitted to the Raad, but met with contemptuous neglect. Undeterred, however, by this failure, the National Reform Union, an association which organised the agitation, came back to the attack in 1894. They drew up a petition which was signed by 35,000 adult male Uitlanders, a greater number than the total Boer male population of the country. A small liberal body in the Raad supported this memorial and endeavoured in vain to obtain some justice for the newcomers. Mr. Jeppe was the mouthpiece of this select band. 'They own half the soil, they pay at least three quarters of the taxes,' said he. 'They are men who in capital, energy, and education are at least our equals.

In 1890, the influx of outsiders worried the Boers, and they raised the requirements for voting so that only those who had lived in the country for fourteen years could qualify. The Uitlanders, who were rapidly increasing in number and were facing a long list of grievances, realized that their issues were too many to fix one by one and that they could only hope to alleviate their burdens by gaining the right to vote. In 1893, a petition signed by 13,000 Uitlanders, worded very respectfully, was presented to the Raad but was met with disdainful disregard. Nonetheless, the National Reform Union, the group that organized the protests, pressed on in 1894. They drafted another petition signed by 35,000 adult male Uitlanders, exceeding the total number of Boer men in the country. A small liberal faction within the Raad backed this petition and tried in vain to secure justice for the newcomers. Mr. Jeppe represented this select group, stating, "They own half the land, they pay at least three-quarters of the taxes. They are individuals who, in terms of capital, energy, and education, are at least our equals."

What will become of us or our children on that day when we may find ourselves in a minority of one in twenty without a single friend among the other nineteen, among those who will then tell us that they wished to be brothers, but that we by our own act have made them strangers to the republic?' Such reasonable and liberal sentiments were combated by members who asserted that the signatures could not belong to law-abiding citizens, since they were actually agitating against the law of the franchise, and others whose intolerance was expressed by the defiance of the member already quoted, who challenged the Uitlanders to come out and fight. The champions of exclusiveness and racial hatred won the day. The memorial was rejected by sixteen votes to eight, and the franchise law was, on the initiative of the President, actually made more stringent than ever, being framed in such a way that during the fourteen years of probation the applicant should give up his previous nationality, so that for that period he would really belong to no country at all. No hopes were held out that any possible attitude upon the part of the Uitlanders would soften the determination of the President and his burghers. One who remonstrated was led outside the State buildings by the President, who pointed up at the national flag. 'You see that flag?' said he. 'If I grant the franchise, I may as well pull it down.' His animosity against the immigrants was bitter. 'Burghers, friends, thieves, murderers, newcomers, and others,' is the conciliatory opening of one of his public addresses. Though Johannesburg is only thirty-two miles from Pretoria, and though the State of which he was the head depended for its revenue upon the gold fields, he paid it only three visits in nine years.

What will happen to us or our children on the day when we find ourselves one in twenty, with not a single friend among the other nineteen, who will then tell us that they wish to be our brothers, but that we have, through our own actions, made them strangers to the republic? Such reasonable and open-minded ideas were challenged by members who claimed that the signatures couldn’t belong to law-abiding citizens, as they were agitating against the franchise law. Others, whose intolerance showed through their defiance, echoed the sentiment of the quoted member, daring the Uitlanders to come out and fight. The supporters of exclusivity and racial hatred prevailed. The memorial was rejected by a vote of sixteen to eight, and, at the President's initiative, the franchise law was made even stricter, crafted in such a way that during the fourteen years of probation, the applicant had to give up their previous nationality, meaning they wouldn’t belong to any country at all during that time. There were no expectations that any possible change in attitude from the Uitlanders would ease the determination of the President and his supporters. One person who protested was led outside the State buildings by the President, who directed their gaze to the national flag. "Do you see that flag?" he asked. "If I grant the franchise, I might as well bring it down." His resentment towards immigrants was intense. "Burghers, friends, thieves, murderers, newcomers, and others," was the friendly introduction to one of his public speeches. Even though Johannesburg is only thirty-two miles from Pretoria, and the State he led relied on the gold fields for its income, he visited it only three times in nine years.

This settled animosity was deplorable, but not unnatural. A man imbued with the idea of a chosen people, and unread in any book save the one which cultivates this very idea, could not be expected to have learned the historical lessons of the advantages which a State reaps from a liberal policy. To him it was as if the Ammonites and Moabites had demanded admission into the twelve tribes. He mistook an agitation against the exclusive policy of the State for one against the existence of the State itself. A wide franchise would have made his republic firm-based and permanent. It was a small minority of the Uitlanders who had any desire to come into the British system. They were a cosmopolitan crowd, only united by the bond of a common injustice. But when every other method had failed, and their petition for the rights of freemen had been flung back at them, it was natural that their eyes should turn to that flag which waved to the north, the west, and the south of them—the flag which means purity of government with equal rights and equal duties for all men. Constitutional agitation was laid aside, arms were smuggled in, and everything prepared for an organised rising.

This deep-seated hostility was unfortunate, but not surprising. A man who believed in the idea of a chosen people and who had only read books that reinforce this notion couldn’t be expected to understand the historical lessons about the benefits a state gains from a more open policy. To him, it was like the Ammonites and Moabites asking to be part of the twelve tribes. He confused resistance to the state's exclusive approach with opposition to the state's very existence. A broader voting franchise would have strengthened and stabilized his republic. Only a small number of the Uitlanders wanted to embrace the British system. They were a diverse group, united only by a shared injustice. But when all other options had failed, and their request for the rights of free citizens was rejected, it made sense for them to look toward that flag which flew to the north, west, and south of them—the flag that symbolizes clean governance with equal rights and responsibilities for everyone. Constitutional efforts were set aside, weapons were smuggled in, and everything was prepared for an organized uprising.

The events which followed at the beginning of 1896 have been so thrashed out that there is, perhaps, nothing left to tell—except the truth. So far as the Uitlanders themselves are concerned, their action was most natural and justifiable, and they have no reason to exculpate themselves for rising against such oppression as no men of our race have ever been submitted to. Had they trusted only to themselves and the justice of their cause, their moral and even their material position would have been infinitely stronger. But unfortunately there were forces behind them which were more questionable, the nature and extent of which have never yet, in spite of two commissions of investigation, been properly revealed. That there should have been any attempt at misleading inquiry, or suppressing documents in order to shelter individuals, is deplorable, for the impression left—I believe an entirely false one—must be that the British Government connived at an expedition which was as immoral as it was disastrous.

The events that followed at the beginning of 1896 have been discussed so much that there’s probably nothing new to share—except the truth. For the Uitlanders, their actions were completely natural and justifiable, and they have no reason to absolve themselves for rising against oppression that no one of our race has ever faced. If they had relied solely on themselves and the justice of their cause, their moral and even material positions would have been much stronger. Unfortunately, there were questionable forces behind them, the nature and extent of which have never been fully revealed, despite two investigations. It’s unfortunate that there was any attempt to mislead inquiries or suppress documents to protect individuals, because the impression left—I believe it’s a completely false one—must be that the British Government supported an expedition that was as immoral as it was disastrous.

It had been arranged that the town was to rise upon a certain night, that Pretoria should be attacked, the fort seized, and the rifles and ammunition used to arm the Uitlanders. It was a feasible device, though it must seem to us, who have had such an experience of the military virtues of the burghers, a very desperate one. But it is conceivable that the rebels might have held Johannesburg until the universal sympathy which their cause excited throughout South Africa would have caused Great Britain to intervene. Unfortunately they had complicated matters by asking for outside help. Mr. Cecil Rhodes was Premier of the Cape, a man of immense energy, and one who had rendered great services to the empire. The motives of his action are obscure—certainly, we may say that they were not sordid, for he has always been a man whose thoughts were large and whose habits were simple. But whatever they may have been—whether an ill-regulated desire to consolidate South Africa under British rule, or a burning sympathy with the Uitlanders in their fight against injustice—it is certain that he allowed his lieutenant, Dr. Jameson, to assemble the mounted police of the Chartered Company, of which Rhodes was founder and director, for the purpose of co-operating with the rebels at Johannesburg. Moreover, when the revolt at Johannesburg was postponed, on account of a disagreement as to which flag they were to rise under, it appears that Jameson (with or without the orders of Rhodes) forced the hand of the conspirators by invading the country with a force absurdly inadequate to the work which he had taken in hand. Five hundred policemen and three field guns made up the forlorn hope who started from near Mafeking and crossed the Transvaal border upon December 29th, 1895. On January 2nd they were surrounded by the Boers amid the broken country near Dornkop, and after losing many of their number killed and wounded, without food and with spent horses, they were compelled to lay down their arms. Six burghers lost their lives in the skirmish.

It was decided that the town would rise on a specific night to attack Pretoria, seize the fort, and use the rifles and ammunition to arm the Uitlanders. While this plan seemed viable, to those of us who have seen the military capabilities of the burghers, it appeared quite desperate. However, it's possible the rebels could have held Johannesburg long enough for the widespread sympathy their cause generated across South Africa to prompt Great Britain to intervene. Unfortunately, they complicated things by asking for outside assistance. Mr. Cecil Rhodes was the Premier of the Cape, a highly energetic man who had done significant service for the empire. The reasons behind his actions are unclear—certainly, we can say they were not self-serving, as he was always someone with broad thoughts and simple habits. But whatever his motivations—whether a misguided desire to unify South Africa under British rule or genuine sympathy for the Uitlanders in their struggle against injustice—it is clear that he allowed his lieutenant, Dr. Jameson, to gather the mounted police of the Chartered Company, which Rhodes had founded and directed, to collaborate with the rebels in Johannesburg. Furthermore, when the revolt in Johannesburg was delayed due to disagreements over which flag they would support, it seems that Jameson (with or without Rhodes' orders) forced the conspirators' hand by invading the country with a force that was ridiculously inadequate for the task at hand. Five hundred policemen and three field guns comprised the hopeless mission that set out from near Mafeking and crossed the Transvaal border on December 29th, 1895. By January 2nd, they were surrounded by the Boers in the rugged area near Dornkop, and after suffering many casualties and running out of food with exhausted horses, they were forced to surrender. Six burghers lost their lives in the skirmish.

The Uitlanders have been severely criticised for not having sent out a force to help Jameson in his difficulties, but it is impossible to see how they could have acted in any other manner. They had done all they could to prevent Jameson coming to their relief, and now it was rather unreasonable to suppose that they should relieve their reliever. Indeed, they had an entirely exaggerated idea of the strength of the force which he was bringing, and received the news of his capture with incredulity. When it became confirmed they rose, but in a halfhearted fashion which was not due to want of courage, but to the difficulties of their position. On the one hand, the British Government disowned Jameson entirely, and did all it could to discourage the rising; on the other, the President had the raiders in his keeping at Pretoria, and let it be understood that their fate depended upon the behaviour of the Uitlanders. They were led to believe that Jameson would be shot unless they laid down their arms, though, as a matter of fact, Jameson and his people had surrendered upon a promise of quarter. So skillfully did Kruger use his hostages that he succeeded, with the help of the British Commissioner, in getting the thousands of excited Johannesburgers to lay down their arms without bloodshed. Completely out-manoeuvred by the astute old President, the leaders of the reform movement used all their influence in the direction of peace, thinking that a general amnesty would follow; but the moment that they and their people were helpless the detectives and armed burghers occupied the town, and sixty of their number were hurried to Pretoria Gaol.

The Uitlanders have faced harsh criticism for not sending a force to assist Jameson during his troubles, but it’s hard to understand how they could have acted differently. They had done everything they could to stop Jameson from coming to help them, so it seemed unreasonable to expect them to now help their helper. In fact, they had an inflated perception of the strength of the force he was bringing and reacted with disbelief when they heard he had been captured. Once the news was confirmed, they took action, but their efforts were half-hearted, not because they lacked courage, but because of their difficult situation. On one side, the British Government completely disassociated from Jameson and did everything possible to discourage the uprising; on the other, the President had the raiders at his disposal in Pretoria and made it clear that their fate depended on the Uitlanders' actions. They were led to believe that Jameson would be executed unless they surrendered, even though Jameson and his men had actually given up based on a promise of safety. Kruger skillfully manipulated the situation with his hostages and, with the support of the British Commissioner, managed to get the thousands of agitated Johannesburgers to disarm without any violence. Outmaneuvered by the clever old President, the leaders of the reform movement pushed for peace, hoping for a general amnesty, but as soon as they and their followers were vulnerable, the detectives and armed citizens took control of the town, hurriedly sending sixty of them to Pretoria Gaol.

To the raiders themselves the President behaved with great generosity. Perhaps he could not find it in his heart to be harsh to the men who had managed to put him in the right and won for him the sympathy of the world. His own illiberal and oppressive treatment of the newcomers was forgotten in the face of this illegal inroad of filibusters. The true issues were so obscured by this intrusion that it has taken years to clear them, and perhaps they will never be wholly cleared. It was forgotten that it was the bad government of the country which was the real cause of the unfortunate raid. From then onwards the government might grow worse and worse, but it was always possible to point to the raid as justifying everything. Were the Uitlanders to have the franchise? How could they expect it after the raid? Would Britain object to the enormous importation of arms and obvious preparations for war? They were only precautions against a second raid. For years the raid stood in the way, not only of all progress, but of all remonstrance. Through an action over which they had no control, and which they had done their best to prevent, the British Government was left with a bad case and a weakened moral authority.

To the raiders themselves, the President acted with great generosity. Maybe he couldn’t bring himself to be harsh with the men who had managed to put him in the right and gained him the world's sympathy. His own unfair and oppressive treatment of the newcomers was overlooked in light of this illegal invasion by mercenaries. The real issues were so clouded by this intrusion that it has taken years to untangle them, and maybe they will never be fully resolved. It was forgotten that the real cause of the unfortunate raid was the bad governance of the country. From that point on, the government could get worse and worse, but it was always possible to point to the raid as justification for everything. Would the Uitlanders get the right to vote? How could they expect it after the raid? Would Britain be concerned about the massive importation of arms and clear preparations for war? They were just precautions against a second raid. For years, the raid blocked not just all progress but also any complaints. Through an event they could not control and did their best to prevent, the British Government was left with a weak case and diminished moral authority.

The raiders were sent home, where the rank and file were very properly released, and the chief officers were condemned to terms of imprisonment which certainly did not err upon the side of severity. Cecil Rhodes was left unpunished, he retained his place in the Privy Council, and his Chartered Company continued to have a corporate existence. This was illogical and inconclusive. As Kruger said, 'It is not the dog which should be beaten, but the man who set him on to me.' Public opinion—in spite of, or on account of, a crowd of witnesses—was ill informed upon the exact bearings of the question, and it was obvious that as Dutch sentiment at the Cape appeared already to be thoroughly hostile to us, it would be dangerous to alienate the British Africanders also by making a martyr of their favourite leader. But whatever arguments may be founded upon expediency, it is clear that the Boers bitterly resented, and with justice, the immunity of Rhodes.

The raiders were sent home, where the regular members were properly released, and the chief officers were given prison sentences that were certainly not overly harsh. Cecil Rhodes went unpunished; he kept his position in the Privy Council, and his Chartered Company continued to exist. This was unreasonable and inconclusive. As Kruger said, 'It is not the dog who should be punished, but the man who set him on me.' Public opinion—despite having many witnesses—was poorly informed about the specifics of the situation, and it was clear that, since Dutch sentiment at the Cape was already completely against us, it would be risky to alienate the British Afrikaners as well by turning their favored leader into a martyr. Regardless of any arguments based on practicality, it’s obvious that the Boers justly resented Rhodes' immunity.

In the meantime, both President Kruger and his burghers had shown a greater severity to the political prisoners from Johannesburg than to the armed followers of Jameson. The nationality of these prisoners is interesting and suggestive. There were twenty-three Englishmen, sixteen South Africans, nine Scotchmen, six Americans, two Welshmen, one Irishman, one Australian, one Hollander, one Bavarian, one Canadian, one Swiss, and one Turk. The prisoners were arrested in January, but the trial did not take place until the end of April. All were found guilty of high treason. Mr. Lionel Phillips, Colonel Rhodes (brother of Mr. Cecil Rhodes), George Farrar, and Mr. Hammond, the American engineer, were condemned to death, a sentence which was afterwards commuted to the payment of an enormous fine. The other prisoners were condemned to two years' imprisonment, with a fine of 2000 pounds each. The imprisonment was of the most arduous and trying sort, and was embittered by the harshness of the gaoler, Du Plessis. One of the unfortunate men cut his throat, and several fell seriously ill, the diet and the sanitary conditions being equally unhealthy. At last at the end of May all the prisoners but six were released. Four of the six soon followed, two stalwarts, Sampson and Davies, refusing to sign any petition and remaining in prison until they were set free in 1897. Altogether the Transvaal Government received in fines from the reform prisoners the enormous sum of 212,000 pounds. A certain comic relief was immediately afterwards given to so grave an episode by the presentation of a bill to Great Britain for 1,677, 938 pounds 3 shillings and 3 pence—the greater part of which was under the heading of moral and intellectual damage.

In the meantime, both President Kruger and his supporters showed greater harshness toward the political prisoners from Johannesburg than to the armed followers of Jameson. The backgrounds of these prisoners are interesting and noteworthy. There were twenty-three Englishmen, sixteen South Africans, nine Scots, six Americans, two Welshmen, one Irishman, one Australian, one Dutchman, one Bavarian, one Canadian, one Swiss, and one Turk. The prisoners were arrested in January, but their trial didn't happen until the end of April. All were found guilty of high treason. Mr. Lionel Phillips, Colonel Rhodes (brother of Mr. Cecil Rhodes), George Farrar, and Mr. Hammond, the American engineer, were sentenced to death, which was later changed to a huge fine. The other prisoners were given two years in prison, with a fine of 2,000 pounds each. The imprisonment was extremely hard and was made worse by the cruelty of the warden, Du Plessis. One of the unfortunate men committed suicide, and several others became seriously ill due to the poor diet and unsanitary conditions. Finally, at the end of May, all the prisoners except six were released. Four of the six were released soon after, while two determined men, Sampson and Davies, refused to sign any petition and remained in prison until their release in 1897. In total, the Transvaal Government collected an enormous sum of 212,000 pounds in fines from the reform prisoners. A certain comic relief was soon provided to such a serious situation by a bill sent to Great Britain for 1,677,938 pounds 3 shillings and 3 pence—the majority of which was claimed as compensation for moral and intellectual damage.

The raid was past and the reform movement was past, but the causes which produced them both remained. It is hardly conceivable that a statesman who loved his country would have refrained from making some effort to remove a state of things which had already caused such grave dangers, and which must obviously become more serious with every year that passed. But Paul Kruger had hardened his heart, and was not to be moved. The grievances of the Uitlanders became heavier than ever. The one power in the land to which they had been able to appeal for some sort of redress amid their grievances was the law courts. Now it was decreed that the courts should be dependent on the Volksraad. The Chief Justice protested against such a degradation of his high office, and he was dismissed in consequence without a pension. The judge who had condemned the reformers was chosen to fill the vacancy, and the protection of a fixed law was withdrawn from the Uitlanders.

The raid was over, and the reform movement was over, but the reasons behind both still existed. It’s hard to imagine that a statesman who truly cared for his country would have ignored the situation that had already created such serious dangers, which would only become worse with each passing year. But Paul Kruger had closed himself off and was not going to change. The complaints of the Uitlanders grew heavier than ever. The one authority they could turn to for some form of justice in their grievances was the courts. Now it was decided that the courts would have to answer to the Volksraad. The Chief Justice protested against such a demotion of his prestigious position, and as a result, he was dismissed without a pension. The judge who had sentenced the reformers was appointed to take his place, and the protection of a stable law was taken away from the Uitlanders.

A commission appointed by the State was sent to examine into the condition of the mining industry and the grievances from which the newcomers suffered. The chairman was Mr. Schalk Burger, one of the most liberal of the Boers, and the proceedings were thorough and impartial. The result was a report which amply vindicated the reformers, and suggested remedies which would have gone a long way towards satisfying the Uitlanders. With such enlightened legislation their motives for seeking the franchise would have been less pressing. But the President and his Raad would have none of the recommendations of the commission. The rugged old autocrat declared that Schalk Burger was a traitor to his country for having signed such a document, and a new reactionary committee was chosen to report upon the report. Words and papers were the only outcome of the affair. No amelioration came to the newcomers. But at least they had again put their case publicly upon record, and it had been endorsed by the most respected of the burghers. Gradually in the press of the English-speaking countries the raid was ceasing to obscure the issue. More and more clearly it was coming out that no permanent settlement was possible where the majority of the population was oppressed by the minority. They had tried peaceful means and failed. They had tried warlike means and failed. What was there left for them to do? Their own country, the paramount power of South Africa, had never helped them. Perhaps if it were directly appealed to it might do so. It could not, if only for the sake of its own imperial prestige, leave its children for ever in a state of subjection. The Uitlanders determined upon a petition to the Queen, and in doing so they brought their grievances out of the limits of a local controversy into the broader field of international politics. Great Britain must either protect them or acknowledge that their protection was beyond her power. A direct petition to the Queen praying for protection was signed in April 1899 by twenty-one thousand Uitlanders. From that time events moved inevitably towards the one end. Sometimes the surface was troubled and sometimes smooth, but the stream always ran swiftly and the roar of the fall sounded ever louder in the ears.

A commission appointed by the State was sent to look into the state of the mining industry and the complaints the newcomers faced. The chairman was Mr. Schalk Burger, one of the more progressive Boers, and the process was thorough and unbiased. The result was a report that strongly supported the reformers and recommended solutions that would have largely addressed the Uitlanders' issues. With such progressive laws, their reasons for seeking voting rights would have been less urgent. However, the President and his Raad ignored the commission's suggestions. The tough old autocrat claimed that Schalk Burger was a traitor for signing such a document, and a new reactionary committee was set up to review the report. In the end, only words and papers came from this effort. The newcomers saw no improvement. But at least they had once again made their case publicly known, and it had been supported by the most respected burghers. Gradually, in the press of English-speaking countries, the raid was no longer overshadowing the issue. It became increasingly clear that no lasting resolution could exist while the majority of the population was oppressed by a minority. They had tried peaceful methods and failed. They had tried military action and failed. What else could they do? Their own country, the dominant power in South Africa, had never assisted them. Perhaps if it was directly appealed to, it might help. It could not, for its own imperial prestige, leave its citizens permanently in a state of subjugation. The Uitlanders decided to petition the Queen, and in doing so, they elevated their grievances beyond a local dispute into the broader realm of international politics. Great Britain had to either protect them or admit that it was powerless to do so. A direct petition to the Queen asking for protection was signed in April 1899 by twenty-one thousand Uitlanders. From that moment, events inevitably moved toward one outcome. Sometimes the situation was turbulent and sometimes calm, but the current always flowed swiftly and the sound of the waterfall grew louder in their ears.





CHAPTER 3. THE NEGOTIATIONS.

The British Government and the British people do not desire any direct authority in South Africa. Their one supreme interest is that the various States there should live in concord and prosperity, and that there should be no need for the presence of a British redcoat within the whole great peninsula. Our foreign critics, with their misapprehension of the British colonial system, can never realise that whether the four-coloured flag of the Transvaal or the Union Jack of a self-governing colony waved over the gold mines would not make the difference of one shilling to the revenue of Great Britain. The Transvaal as a British province would have its own legislature, its own revenue, its own expenditure, and its own tariff against the mother country, as well as against the rest of the world, and England be none the richer for the change. This is so obvious to a Briton that he has ceased to insist upon it, and it is for that reason perhaps that it is so universally misunderstood abroad. On the other hand, while she is no gainer by the change, most of the expense of it in blood and in money falls upon the home country. On the face of it, therefore, Great Britain had every reason to avoid so formidable a task as the conquest of the South African Republic. At the best she had nothing to gain, and at the worst she had an immense deal to lose. There was no room for ambition or aggression. It was a case of shirking or fulfilling a most arduous duty.

The British Government and the British people do not want any direct control in South Africa. Their main concern is that the various states there should exist in harmony and prosperity, without needing a British soldier on the entire peninsula. Our foreign critics, misunderstanding the British colonial system, can never grasp that whether the four-colored flag of the Transvaal or the Union Jack of a self-governing colony flies over the gold mines wouldn’t affect Britain’s revenue by even a penny. The Transvaal as a British province would have its own legislature, its own revenue, its own spending, and its own tariff against the mother country and against the rest of the world, with England gaining nothing from the change. This is so clear to a Briton that they no longer insist on it, which might explain why it is so widely misunderstood abroad. On the other hand, while Britain doesn't benefit from the change, most of the cost in blood and money falls on the homeland. So, on the surface, Great Britain had every reason to avoid the daunting task of conquering the South African Republic. At best, she had nothing to gain, and at worst, she had a lot to lose. There was no room for ambition or aggression; it was a matter of avoiding or fulfilling a very tough duty.

There could be no question of a plot for the annexation of the Transvaal. In a free country the Government cannot move in advance of public opinion, and public opinion is influenced by and reflected in the newspapers. One may examine the files of the press during all the months of negotiations and never find one reputable opinion in favour of such a course, nor did one in society ever meet an advocate of such a measure. But a great wrong was being done, and all that was asked was the minimum change which would set it right, and restore equality between the white races in Africa. 'Let Kruger only be liberal in the extension of the franchise,' said the paper which is most representative of the sanest British opinion, 'and he will find that the power of the republic will become not weaker, but infinitely more secure. Let him once give the majority of the resident males of full age the full vote, and he will have given the republic a stability and power which nothing else can. If he rejects all pleas of this kind, and persists in his present policy, he may possibly stave off the evil day, and preserve his cherished oligarchy for another few years; but the end will be the same.' The extract reflects the tone of all of the British press, with the exception of one or two papers which considered that even the persistent ill usage of our people, and the fact that we were peculiarly responsible for them in this State, did not justify us in interfering in the internal affairs of the republic. It cannot be denied that the Jameson raid and the incomplete manner in which the circumstances connected with it had been investigated had weakened the force of those who wished to interfere energetically on behalf of British subjects. There was a vague but widespread feeling that perhaps the capitalists were engineering the situation for their own ends. It is difficult to imagine how a state of unrest and insecurity, to say nothing of a state of war, can ever be to the advantage of capital, and surely it is obvious that if some arch-schemer were using the grievances of the Uitlanders for his own ends the best way to checkmate him would be to remove those grievances. The suspicion, however, did exist among those who like to ignore the obvious and magnify the remote, and throughout the negotiations the hand of Great Britain was weakened, as her adversary had doubtless calculated that it would be, by an earnest but fussy and faddy minority. Idealism and a morbid, restless conscientiousness are two of the most dangerous evils from which a modern progressive State has to suffer.

There could be no doubt about a scheme to annex the Transvaal. In a free country, the Government can't act ahead of public opinion, and public opinion is shaped by and shown in the newspapers. One can look through press archives during all the months of negotiations and never find a credible opinion supporting such an action, nor did anyone in society advocate for such a measure. However, a significant injustice was happening, and all that was requested was the smallest change that would correct it and bring equality among the white races in Africa. "If Kruger would just be open

It was in April 1899 that the British Uitlanders sent their petition praying for protection to their native country. Since the April previous a correspondence had been going on between Dr. Leyds, Secretary of State for the South African Republic, and Mr. Chamberlain, Colonial Secretary, upon the existence or non-existence of the suzerainty. On the one hand, it was contended that the substitution of a second convention had entirely annulled the first; on the other, that the preamble of the first applied also to the second. If the Transvaal contention were correct it is clear that Great Britain had been tricked and jockeyed into such a position, since she had received no quid pro quo in the second convention, and even the most careless of Colonial Secretaries could hardly have been expected to give away a very substantial something for nothing. But the contention throws us back upon the academic question of what a suzerainty is. The Transvaal admitted a power of veto over their foreign policy, and this admission in itself, unless they openly tore up the convention, must deprive them of the position of a sovereign State. On the whole, the question must be acknowledged to have been one which might very well have been referred to trustworthy arbitration.

It was in April 1899 that the British Uitlanders submitted their petition asking for protection from their home country. Since the previous April, there had been ongoing discussions between Dr. Leyds, Secretary of State for the South African Republic, and Mr. Chamberlain, Colonial Secretary, about whether suzerainty existed or not. On one side, it was argued that the introduction of a second convention had completely nullified the first; on the other, that the preamble of the first convention also applied to the second. If the Transvaal's argument was correct, it clearly meant that Great Britain had been deceived and maneuvered into a position where they received nothing in return from the second convention. Even the most careless Colonial Secretaries wouldn't be expected to give away something of significant value for nothing. However, this argument leads us back to the theoretical question of what suzerainty actually means. The Transvaal acknowledged there was a power of veto over their foreign policy, and this admission alone—unless they openly disregarded the convention—would undermine their status as a sovereign state. Overall, the question really should have been taken to a reliable arbitration process.

But now to this debate, which had so little of urgency in it that seven months intervened between statement and reply, there came the bitterly vital question of the wrongs and appeal of the Uitlanders. Sir Alfred Milner, the British Commissioner in South Africa, a man of liberal views who had been appointed by a Conservative Government, commanded the respect and confidence of all parties. His record was that of an able, clear-headed man, too just to be either guilty of or tolerant of injustice. To him the matter was referred, and a conference was arranged between President Kruger and him at Bloemfontein, the capital of the Orange Free State. They met on May 30th. Kruger had declared that all questions might be discussed except the independence of the Transvaal. 'All, all, all!' he cried emphatically. But in practice it was found that the parties could not agree as to what did or what did not threaten this independence. What was essential to one was inadmissible to the other. Milner contended for a five years' retroactive franchise, with provisions to secure adequate representation for the mining districts. Kruger offered a seven years' franchise, coupled with numerous conditions which whittled down its value very much, promised five members out of thirty-one to represent a majority of the male population, and added a provision that all differences should be subject to arbitration by foreign powers, a condition which is incompatible with any claim to suzerainty. The proposals of each were impossible to the other, and early in June Sir Alfred Milner was back in Cape Town and President Kruger in Pretoria, with nothing settled except the extreme difficulty of a settlement. The current was running swift, and the roar of the fall was already sounding louder in the ear.

But now to this debate, which was so lacking in urgency that seven months passed between the statement and the reply, came the crucial question of the grievances and demands of the Uitlanders. Sir Alfred Milner, the British Commissioner in South Africa, a man with progressive views who had been appointed by a Conservative Government, earned the respect and trust of all sides. His background showed him to be an able, clear-minded individual, too fair to be either guilty of or tolerant of injustice. The issue was handed over to him, and a meeting was set up between President Kruger and him in Bloemfontein, the capital of the Orange Free State. They met on May 30th. Kruger had declared that all topics could be discussed except for the independence of the Transvaal. "All, all, all!" he insisted emphatically. But in practice, it turned out that the parties couldn’t agree on what did or didn’t threaten this independence. What was vital for one was unacceptable to the other. Milner pushed for a five-year retroactive franchise, with provisions to ensure adequate representation for the mining districts. Kruger proposed a seven-year franchise, attached to numerous conditions that significantly reduced its value, promised five members out of thirty-one to represent a majority of the male population, and added a clause stating that all disputes should be settled by arbitration from foreign powers, a condition incompatible with any claim to authority. Each proposal was unacceptable to the other, and by early June, Sir Alfred Milner was back in Cape Town and President Kruger was in Pretoria, with nothing resolved except the clear difficulty of reaching an agreement. The situation was escalating quickly, and the sound of impending trouble was growing louder in the background.

On June 12th Sir Alfred Milner received a deputation at Cape Town and reviewed the situation. 'The principle of equality of races was,' he said, essential for South Africa. The one State where inequality existed kept all the others in a fever. Our policy was one not of aggression, but of singular patience, which could not, however, lapse into indifference.' Two days later Kruger addressed the Raad. 'The other side had not conceded one tittle, and I could not give more. God has always stood by us. I do not want war, but I will not give more away. Although our independence has once been taken away, God has restored it.' He spoke with sincerity no doubt, but it is hard to hear God invoked with such confidence for the system which encouraged the liquor traffic to the natives, and bred the most corrupt set of officials that the modern world has seen.

On June 12th, Sir Alfred Milner met with a delegation in Cape Town to discuss the situation. "The principle of equality among races is," he said, essential for South Africa. The one State where inequality existed kept all the others in turmoil. Our policy is one of not aggression, but of remarkable patience, which cannot, however, become indifference." Two days later, Kruger spoke to the Raad. "The other side hasn't conceded anything, and I can't give more. God has always supported us. I don't want war, but I won't give anything else away. Even though our independence was once taken away, God has restored it." He spoke with sincerity, no doubt, but it's difficult to hear God invoked with such certainty for a system that supported the liquor trade to the natives and produced the most corrupt officials the modern world has ever seen.

A dispatch from Sir Alfred Milner, giving his views upon the situation, made the British public recognise, as nothing else had done, how serious the position was, and how essential it was that an earnest national effort should be made to set it right. In it he said:

A message from Sir Alfred Milner, sharing his thoughts on the situation, made the British public understand, more than anything else could, just how serious things were and how important it was for the nation to make a genuine effort to fix it. In it, he stated:

'The case for intervention is overwhelming. The only attempted answer is that things will right themselves if left alone. But, in fact, the policy of leaving things alone has been tried for years, and it has led to their going from bad to worse. It is not true that this is owing to the raid. They were going from bad to worse before the raid. We were on the verge of war before the raid, and the Transvaal was on the verge of revolution. The effect of the raid has been to give the policy of leaving things alone a new lease of life, and with the old consequences.

The case for intervention is clear. The only argument against it is that things will fix themselves if just left alone. However, the truth is that this hands-off approach has been attempted for years, and it has only caused things to get worse. It's not accurate to say this decline is due to the raid. Conditions were deteriorating before the raid happened. We were close to war before that, and the Transvaal was on the brink of revolution. The impact of the raid has renewed the hands-off policy with the same old results.

'The spectacle of thousands of British subjects kept permanently in the position of helots, constantly chafing under undoubted grievances, and calling vainly to her Majesty's Government for redress, does steadily undermine the influence and reputation of Great Britain within the Queen's dominions. A section of the press, not in the Transvaal only, preaches openly and constantly the doctrine of a republic embracing all South Africa, and supports it by menacing references to the armaments of the Transvaal, its alliance with the Orange Free State, and the active sympathy which, in case of war, it would receive from a section of her Majesty's subjects. I regret to say that this doctrine, supported as it is by a ceaseless stream of malignant lies about the intentions of her Majesty's Government, is producing a great effect on a large number of our Dutch fellow colonists. Language is frequently used which seems to imply that the Dutch have some superior right, even in this colony, to their fellow-citizens of British birth. Thousands of men peaceably disposed, and if left alone perfectly satisfied with their position as British subjects, are being drawn into disaffection, and there is a corresponding exasperation upon the part of the British.

The sight of thousands of British citizens permanently in the role of oppressed individuals, constantly frustrated with real issues and calling out in vain to the Queen's Government for help, is steadily damaging Great Britain's influence and reputation within the Queen's territories. A part of the media, not just in the Transvaal, is openly and repeatedly promoting the idea of a republic that includes all of South Africa, backing it up with frightening warnings about the Transvaal's military power, its alliance with the Orange Free State, and the support it would get from some of the Queen's subjects if war broke out. Unfortunately, this idea, which is fueled by a relentless flow of harmful lies about the intentions of the Queen's Government, is significantly impacting many of our Dutch fellow colonists. Some language used suggests that the Dutch hold some kind of superior right, even here in this colony, over their fellow citizens of British descent. Thousands of peace-loving individuals, who would be perfectly content with their status as British subjects if left undisturbed, are being pulled into discontent, leading to increased frustration among the British.

'I can see nothing which will put a stop to this mischievous propaganda but some striking proof of the intention of her Majesty's Government not to be ousted from its position in South Africa.'

'I can't see anything that will put an end to this harmful propaganda except for some clear evidence that Her Majesty's Government is committed to maintaining its position in South Africa.'

Such were the grave and measured words with which the British pro-consul warned his countrymen of what was to come. He saw the storm-cloud piling in the north, but even his eyes had not yet discerned how near and how terrible was the tempest.

Such were the serious and careful words with which the British pro-consul warned his fellow countrymen of what was ahead. He noticed the storm clouds gathering in the north, but even he had not yet realized how close and how frightening the storm really was.

Throughout the end of June and the early part of July much was hoped from the mediation of the heads of the Afrikander Bond, the political union of the Dutch Cape colonists. On the one hand, they were the kinsmen of the Boers; on the other, they were British subjects, and were enjoying the blessings of those liberal institutions which we were anxious to see extended to the Transvaal. 'Only treat our folk as we treat yours! Our whole contention was compressed into that prayer. But nothing came of the mission, though a scheme endorsed by Mr. Hofmeyer and Mr. Herholdt, of the Bond, with Mr. Fischer of the Free State, was introduced into the Raad and applauded by Mr. Schreiner, the Africander Premier of Cape Colony. In its original form the provisions were obscure and complicated, the franchise varying from nine years to seven under different conditions. In debate, however, the terms were amended until the time was reduced to seven years, and the proposed representation of the gold fields placed at five. The concession was not a great one, nor could the representation, five out of thirty-one, be considered a generous provision for the majority of the population; but the reduction of the years of residence was eagerly hailed in England as a sign that a compromise might be effected. A sigh of relief went up from the country. 'If,' said the Colonial Secretary, 'this report is confirmed, this important change in the proposals of President Kruger, coupled with previous amendments, leads Government to hope that the new law may prove to be the basis of a settlement on the lines laid down by Sir Alfred Milner in the Bloemfontein Conference.' He added that there were some vexatious conditions attached, but concluded, 'Her Majesty's Government feel assured that the President, having accepted the principle for which they have contended, will be prepared to reconsider any detail of his scheme which can be shown to be a possible hindrance to the full accomplishment of the object in view, and that he will not allow them to be nullified or reduced in value by any subsequent alterations of the law or acts of administration.' At the same time, the 'Times' declared the crisis to be at an end. 'If the Dutch statesmen of the Cape have induced their brethren in the Transvaal to carry such a Bill, they will have deserved the lasting gratitude, not only of their own countrymen and of the English colonists in South Africa, but of the British Empire and of the civilised world.'

Throughout late June and early July, there were high hopes for the mediation efforts of the leaders of the Afrikander Bond, the political union of the Dutch Cape colonists. They were related to the Boers, yet they were also British subjects benefiting from the liberal institutions that we wanted to see extended to the Transvaal. "Just treat our people the same way you treat yours! Our whole argument boiled down to that plea. However, nothing came of the mission, even though a proposal backed by Mr. Hofmeyer and Mr. Herholdt of the Bond and Mr. Fischer from the Free State was put forward in the Raad and supported by Mr. Schreiner, the Africander Premier of Cape Colony. In its original form, the provisions were unclear and complicated, with the franchise varying from nine years to seven under different conditions. During the discussions, though, the terms were revised to shorten the residency requirement to seven years, and the proposed representation for the gold fields was set at five. The concession wasn’t significant, nor could the representation of five out of thirty-one be seen as generous for the majority of the population; however, the reduction of the residency years was welcomed in England as a sign of potential compromise. A collective sigh of relief was heard across the country. "If," said the Colonial Secretary, "this report is confirmed, this important change in President Kruger's proposals, along with previous adjustments, leads the Government to believe that the new law might serve as a foundation for a settlement along the lines outlined by Sir Alfred Milner during the Bloemfontein Conference." He added that there were some annoying conditions tied to this, but concluded, "Her Majesty's Government is confident that the President, having accepted the principle they have been advocating, will be willing to reconsider any detail of his plan that could obstruct the complete achievement of the intended goal and that he will not let them be invalidated or diminished in value by any later changes to the law or administrative actions." Simultaneously, the 'Times' announced that the crisis had ended. "If the Dutch leaders of the Cape have persuaded their counterparts in the Transvaal to pass such a Bill, they will have earned the lasting gratitude not only of their fellow countrymen and the English colonists in South Africa but also of the British Empire and the civilized world."

But this fair prospect was soon destined to be overcast. Questions of detail arose which, when closely examined, proved to be matters of very essential importance. The Uitlanders and British South Africans, who had experienced in the past how illusory the promises of the President might be, insisted upon guarantees. The seven years offered were two years more than that which Sir Alfred Milner had declared to be an irreducible minimum. The difference of two years would not have hindered their acceptance, even at the expense of some humiliation to our representative. But there were conditions which excited distrust when drawn up by so wily a diplomatist. One was that the alien who aspired to burghership had to produce a certificate of continuous registration for a certain time. But the law of registration had fallen into disuse in the Transvaal, and consequently this provision might render the whole Bill valueless. Since it was carefully retained, it was certainly meant for use. The door had been opened, but a stone was placed to block it. Again, the continued burghership of the newcomers was made to depend upon the resolution of the first Raad, so that should the mining members propose any measure of reform, not only their Bill but they also might be swept out of the house by a Boer majority. What could an Opposition do if a vote of the Government might at any moment unseat them all? It was clear that a measure which contained such provisions must be very carefully sifted before a British Government could accept it as a final settlement and a complete concession of justice to its subjects. On the other hand, it naturally felt loth to refuse those clauses which offered some prospect of an amelioration in their condition. It took the course, therefore, of suggesting that each Government should appoint delegates to form a joint commission which should inquire into the working of the proposed Bill before it was put into a final form. The proposal was submitted to the Raad upon August 7th, with the addition that when this was done Sir Alfred Milner was prepared to discuss anything else, including arbitration without the interference of foreign powers.

But this promising situation was soon overshadowed. Questions about the details came up that, when looked at closely, turned out to be really important issues. The Uitlanders and British South Africans, who had seen how deceptive the President's promises could be in the past, demanded guarantees. The seven years offered were two years more than what Sir Alfred Milner stated was the absolute minimum. The extra two years wouldn't have stopped them from accepting, even if it meant some embarrassment for our representative. However, there were conditions that raised suspicions, especially coming from such a clever diplomat. One requirement was that anyone wanting to become a citizen had to provide proof of continuous registration for a certain period. But the registration law had fallen out of use in the Transvaal, making this requirement potentially useless. Since it was carefully kept in the draft, it was clearly intended for a reason. The door was slightly opened, but a stone was placed to block it. Furthermore, the continued citizenship of the newcomers depended on the decision of the first Raad, meaning that if the mining members proposed any reforms, not only could their Bill be rejected, but they could also be pushed out by a Boer majority. What could the Opposition do if a vote from the Government could remove them all at any moment? It was clear that any measure containing such provisions needed to be thoroughly examined before a British Government could accept it as a final settlement and a complete justice concession to its subjects. On the other hand, it was naturally reluctant to dismiss those clauses that offered some hope of improving their situation. Therefore, it suggested that each Government appoint delegates to create a joint commission to look into how the proposed Bill would function before it was finalized. This proposal was presented to the Raad on August 7th, with the added note that once this was done, Sir Alfred Milner was willing to discuss anything else, including arbitration without any interference from foreign powers.

The suggestion of this joint commission has been criticised as an unwarrantable intrusion into the internal affairs of another country. But then the whole question from the beginning was about the internal affairs of another country, since the internal equality of the white inhabitants was the condition upon which self-government was restored to the Transvaal. It is futile to suggest analogies, and to imagine what France would do if Germany were to interfere in a question of French franchise. Supposing that France contained as many Germans as Frenchmen, and that they were ill-treated, Germany would interfere quickly enough and continue to do so until some fair modus vivendi was established. The fact is that the case of the Transvaal stands alone, that such a condition of things has never been known, and that no previous precedent can apply to it, save the general rule that a minority of white men cannot continue indefinitely to tax and govern a majority. Sentiment inclines to the smaller nation, but reason and justice are all on the side of England.

The idea of this joint commission has been criticized as an unacceptable interference in another country's internal matters. However, the entire discussion from the start was about another country's internal situation, since the equality of the white population was the condition for restoring self-government in the Transvaal. It's pointless to draw comparisons and speculate on how France would react if Germany intervened in a French voting issue. If France had as many Germans as French people and they were mistreated, Germany would intervene quickly and would keep doing so until a fair way of coexisting was found. The reality is that the situation in the Transvaal is unique, that such a scenario has never been seen before, and that no previous examples can apply, except the general principle that a minority of white people cannot keep taxing and governing a majority indefinitely. Sentiment tends to favor the smaller nation, but logic and fairness are clearly on England's side.

A long delay followed upon the proposal of the Secretary of the Colonies. No reply was forthcoming from Pretoria. But on all sides there came evidence that those preparations for war which had been quietly going on even before the Jameson raid were now being hurriedly perfected. For so small a State enormous sums were being spent upon military equipment. Cases of rifles and boxes of cartridges streamed into the arsenal, not only from Delagoa Bay, but even, to the indignation of the English colonists, through Cape Town and Port Elizabeth. Huge packing-cases, marked 'Agricultural Instruments' and 'Mining Machinery,' arrived from Germany and France, to find their places in the forts of Johannesburg or Pretoria. Men of many nations but of a similar type showed their martial faces in the Boer towns. The condottieri of Europe were as ready as ever to sell their blood for gold, and nobly in the end did they fulfill their share of the bargain. For three weeks and more during which Mr. Kruger was silent these eloquent preparations went on. But beyond them, and of infinitely more importance, there was one fact which dominated the situation. A burgher cannot go to war without his horse, his horse cannot move without grass, grass will not come until after rain, and it was still some weeks before the rain would be due. Negotiations, then, must not be unduly hurried while the veld was a bare russet-coloured dust-swept plain. Mr. Chamberlain and the British public waited week after week for their answer. But there was a limit to their patience, and it was reached on August 26th, when the Colonial Secretary showed, with a plainness of speech which is as unusual as it is welcome in diplomacy, that the question could not be hung up for ever. 'The sands are running down in the glass,' said he. 'If they run out, we shall not hold ourselves limited by that which we have already offered, but, having taken the matter in hand, we will not let it go until we have secured conditions which once for all shall establish which is the paramount power in South Africa, and shall secure for our fellow-subjects there those equal rights and equal privileges which were promised them by President Kruger when the independence of the Transvaal was granted by the Queen, and which is the least that in justice ought to be accorded them.' Lord Salisbury, a little time before, had been equally emphatic. 'No one in this country wishes to disturb the conventions so long as it is recognised that while they guarantee the independence of the Transvaal on the one side, they guarantee equal political and civil rights for settlers of all nationalities upon the other. But these conventions are not like the laws of the Medes and the Persians. They are mortal, they can be destroyed...and once destroyed they can never be reconstructed in the same shape.' The long-enduring patience of Great Britain was beginning to show signs of giving way.

A long delay followed the Secretary of the Colonies' proposal. No response came from Pretoria. However, it became clear from all sides that preparations for war, which had been quietly underway even before the Jameson raid, were now being rushed. For such a small state, enormous amounts were being spent on military supplies. Cases of rifles and boxes of ammunition flowed into the arsenal, not just from Delagoa Bay, but also, much to the anger of the English colonists, through Cape Town and Port Elizabeth. Huge crates labeled 'Agricultural Instruments' and 'Mining Machinery' arrived from Germany and France, destined for the forts in Johannesburg or Pretoria. Men from various nations, but all of similar backgrounds, displayed their fighting spirit in the Boer towns. The mercenaries of Europe were just as willing as ever to sell their services for money, and they ultimately fulfilled their part of the deal. For more than three weeks, while Mr. Kruger remained silent, these significant preparations continued. But even more crucial, there was one fact that dominated the situation: a burgher can't go to war without his horse, a horse can't move without grass, grass won't grow until it rains, and rain was still weeks away. Therefore, negotiations couldn't be rushed while the land was a barren, dusty plain. Mr. Chamberlain and the British public waited week after week for a response. But there was a limit to their patience, reached on August 26th, when the Colonial Secretary made it clear, in a blunt manner that's both rare and refreshing in diplomacy, that the issue couldn't be postponed indefinitely. "The sands are running out," he stated. "If they run out, we won’t be bound by what we’ve already offered. Once we take this on, we won't back down until we secure terms that will clearly establish the dominant power in South Africa and ensure that our fellow subjects there receive the equal rights and privileges promised by President Kruger when the Queen granted the Transvaal independence—this is the very least that in fairness should be granted to them." Lord Salisbury had recently been just as forceful. "No one in this country wants to disrupt the agreements as long as it's acknowledged that, while they guarantee the Transvaal's independence, they also guarantee equal political and civil rights for settlers of all nationalities. But these agreements aren’t like the laws of the Medes and Persians. They’re not permanent; they can be destroyed...and once destroyed, they can never be restored in the same way." Britain's long-held patience was starting to show signs of wearing thin.

In the meantime a fresh dispatch had arrived from the Transvaal which offered as an alternative proposal to the joint commission that the Boer Government should grant the franchise proposals of Sir Alfred Milner on condition that Great Britain withdrew or dropped her claim to a suzerainty, agreed to arbitration, and promised never again to interfere in the internal affairs of the republic. To this Great Britain answered that she would agree to arbitration, that she hoped never again to have occasion to interfere for the protection of her own subjects, but that with the grant of the franchise all occasion for such interference would pass away, and, finally, that she would never consent to abandon her position as suzerain power. Mr. Chamberlain's dispatch ended by reminding the Government of the Transvaal that there were other matters of dispute open between the two Governments apart from the franchise, and that it would be as well to have them settled at the same time. By these he meant such questions as the position of the native races and the treatment of Anglo-Indians.

Meanwhile, a new message had come in from the Transvaal, suggesting an alternative proposal to the joint commission. It stated that the Boer Government should accept Sir Alfred Milner’s franchise proposals as long as Great Britain withdrew its claim to suzerainty, agreed to arbitration, and promised not to interfere in the republic's internal affairs again. Great Britain responded that it would agree to arbitration and hoped it wouldn't need to interfere again for the protection of its own citizens. However, with the granting of the franchise, all reasons for such interference would cease, and ultimately, it would never agree to give up its status as a suzerain power. Mr. Chamberlain's message concluded by reminding the Transvaal Government that there were other disputes between the two Governments beyond the franchise that should also be resolved simultaneously. He was referring to issues such as the status of the native populations and the treatment of Anglo-Indians.

On September 2nd the answer of the Transvaal Government was returned. It was short and uncompromising. They withdrew their offer of the franchise. They re-asserted the non-existence of the suzerainty. The negotiations were at a deadlock. It was difficult to see how they could be re-opened. In view of the arming of the burghers, the small garrison of Natal had been taking up positions to cover the frontier. The Transvaal asked for an explanation of their presence. Sir Alfred Milner answered that they were guarding British interests, and preparing against contingencies. The roar of the fall was sounding loud and near.

On September 2nd, the Transvaal Government's response arrived. It was brief and uncompromising. They retracted their offer of the franchise and reiterated that suzerainty did not exist. The negotiations had reached a standstill, making it hard to see how they could resume. With the burghers arming themselves, the small garrison in Natal had been positioning itself to secure the border. The Transvaal requested an explanation for their presence. Sir Alfred Milner replied that they were protecting British interests and preparing for any eventualities. The sound of conflict was growing louder and closer.

On September 8th there was held a Cabinet Council—one of the most important in recent years. A message was sent to Pretoria, which even the opponents of the Government have acknowledged to be temperate, and offering the basis for a peaceful settlement. It begins by repudiating emphatically the claim of the Transvaal to be a sovereign international State in the same sense in which the Orange Free State is one. Any proposal made conditional upon such an acknowledgment could not be entertained.

On September 8th, a Cabinet Council took place—one of the most important in recent years. A message was sent to Pretoria, which even the Government's opponents have recognized as reasonable, offering a basis for a peaceful settlement. It starts by strongly rejecting the Transvaal's claim to be a sovereign international State in the same way the Orange Free State is. Any proposal that depends on such an acknowledgment couldn't be considered.

The British Government, however, was prepared to accept the five years' 'franchise' as stated in the note of August 19th, assuming at the same time that in the Raad each member might talk his own language.

The British Government, however, was willing to accept the five years' 'franchise' as mentioned in the note from August 19th, while also assuming that in the Raad, each member could speak their own language.

'Acceptance of these terms by the South African Republic would at once remove tension between the two Governments, and would in all probability render unnecessary any future intervention to secure redress for grievances which the Uitlanders themselves would be able to bring to the notice of the Executive Council and the Volksraad.

'If the South African Republic accepts these terms, it would immediately eliminate tension between the two governments and likely make any future intervention unnecessary to address grievances. The Uitlanders would be able to bring their concerns directly to the Executive Council and the Volksraad.'

'Her Majesty's Government are increasingly impressed with the danger of further delay in relieving the strain which has already caused so much injury to the interests of South Africa, and they earnestly press for an immediate and definite reply to the present proposal. If it is acceded to they will be ready to make immediate arrangements...to settle all details of the proposed tribunal of arbitration...If, however, as they most anxiously hope will not be the case, the reply of the South African Republic should be negative or inconclusive, I am to state that her Majesty's Government must reserve to themselves the right to reconsider the situation de novo, and to formulate their own proposals for a final settlement.'

Her Majesty's Government is becoming increasingly aware of the risks that further delays pose in addressing the strain that has already caused significant harm to the interests of South Africa. They strongly urge for an immediate and clear response to the current proposal. If accepted, they will be ready to make immediate arrangements to finalize all details of the proposed arbitration tribunal. However, if the South African Republic's response is negative or unclear, which they sincerely hope won’t happen, I must indicate that Her Majesty's Government will reserve the right to reevaluate the situation and develop their own proposals for a final settlement.

Such was the message, and Great Britain waited with strained attention for the answer. But again there was a delay, while the rain came and the grass grew, and the veld was as a mounted rifleman would have it. The burghers were in no humour for concessions. They knew their own power, and they concluded with justice that they were for the time far the strongest military power in South Africa. 'We have beaten England before, but it is nothing to the licking we shall give her now,' cried a prominent citizen, and he spoke for his country as he said it. So the empire waited and debated, but the sounds of the bugle were already breaking through the wrangles of the politicians, and calling the nation to be tested once more by that hammer of war and adversity by which Providence still fashions us to some nobler and higher end.

That was the message, and Great Britain waited with intense anticipation for the response. But once again, there was a delay, while the rain fell and the grass grew, and the landscape looked just as a mounted soldier would prefer. The locals were not in the mood for compromises. They recognized their own power and rightly determined that, for the time being, they were the strongest military force in South Africa. "We've beaten England before, but that’s nothing compared to the defeat we’ll hand her now," shouted a well-known citizen, and he spoke for his country as he said it. So the empire waited and discussed, but the sounds of the bugle were already cutting through the politicians' arguments, calling the nation to be tested once more by that hammer of war and hardship that Providence still uses to shape us towards a nobler and greater purpose.





CHAPTER 4. THE EVE OF WAR.

The message sent from the Cabinet Council of September 8th was evidently the precursor either of peace or of war. The cloud must burst or blow over. As the nation waited in hushed expectancy for a reply it spent some portion of its time in examining and speculating upon those military preparations which might be needed. The War Office had for some months been arranging for every contingency, and had made certain dispositions which appeared to them to be adequate, but which our future experience was to demonstrate to be far too small for the very serious matter in hand.

The message from the Cabinet Council on September 8th was clearly a sign of either peace or war. The tension had to be resolved one way or another. As the nation waited in anxious anticipation for a response, it also took time to consider and speculate about the military preparations that might be necessary. The War Office had been planning for every possible situation for several months and had made arrangements that seemed sufficient to them, but future events would show that these measures were far too inadequate for the serious situation at hand.

It is curious in turning over the files of such a paper as the 'Times' to observe how at first one or two small paragraphs of military significance might appear in the endless columns of diplomatic and political reports, how gradually they grew and grew, until at last the eclipse was complete, and the diplomacy had been thrust into the tiny paragraphs while the war filled the journal. Under July 7th comes the first glint of arms amid the drab monotony of the state papers. On that date it was announced that two companies of Royal Engineers and departmental corps with reserves of supplies and ammunition were being dispatched. Two companies of engineers! Who could have foreseen that they were the vanguard of the greatest army which ever at any time of the world's history has crossed an ocean, and far the greatest which a British general has commanded in the field?

It's interesting to go through the archives of a publication like the 'Times' and notice how, at first, only a couple of small paragraphs about military events popped up among the endless columns of diplomatic and political news. Gradually, these military reports expanded until, ultimately, the diplomacy was pushed into tiny paragraphs while the war took over the pages. On July 7th, there was the first hint of military action breaking the dull routine of state papers. On that day, it was announced that two companies of Royal Engineers and some support units with supplies and ammunition were being sent out. Two companies of engineers! Who could have predicted that they would be the front line of the largest army to ever cross an ocean in history, and by far the largest commanded by a British general in the field?

On August 15th, at a time when the negotiations had already assumed a very serious phase, after the failure of the Bloemfontein conference and the dispatch of Sir Alfred Milner, the British forces in South Africa were absolutely and absurdly inadequate for the purpose of the defence of our own frontier. Surely such a fact must open the eyes of those who, in spite of all the evidence, persist that the war was forced on by the British. A statesman who forces on a war usually prepares for a war, and this is exactly what Mr. Kruger did and the British authorities did not. The overbearing suzerain power had at that date, scattered over a huge frontier, two cavalry regiments, three field batteries, and six and a half infantry battalions—say six thousand men. The innocent pastoral States could put in the field forty or fifty thousand mounted riflemen, whose mobility doubled their numbers, and a most excellent artillery, including the heaviest guns which have ever been seen upon a battlefield. At this time it is most certain that the Boers could have made their way easily either to Durban or to Cape Town. The British force, condemned to act upon the defensive, could have been masked and afterwards destroyed, while the main body of the invaders would have encountered nothing but an irregular local resistance, which would have been neutralised by the apathy or hostility of the Dutch colonists. It is extraordinary that our authorities seem never to have contemplated the possibility of the Boers taking the initiative, or to have understood that in that case our belated reinforcements would certainly have had to land under the fire of the republican guns.

On August 15th, while the negotiations were getting serious after the failure of the Bloemfontein conference and the sending of Sir Alfred Milner, the British forces in South Africa were completely and ridiculously unprepared to defend our own border. This should be a wake-up call for those who, despite all evidence, insist that the British forced the war. A statesman who pushes for war typically gets ready for it, which is exactly what Mr. Kruger did while the British authorities did not. By that time, the dominant suzerain power had, scattered across a vast border, two cavalry regiments, three field batteries, and six and a half infantry battalions—around six thousand men. The peaceful pastoral States could deploy forty or fifty thousand mounted riflemen, whose mobility effectively doubled their numbers, along with excellent artillery, including the heaviest guns ever seen on a battlefield. At that moment, it was quite clear that the Boers could have easily advanced either to Durban or Cape Town. The British force, limited to a defensive role, could have been outmaneuvered and subsequently destroyed, while the main group of attackers would have faced nothing but irregular local resistance, which would have been neutralized by the indifference or hostility of the Dutch colonists. It’s remarkable that our authorities never seemed to consider the possibility of the Boers taking the initiative or realized that, in that scenario, our delayed reinforcements would have had to land under fire from republican guns.

In July Natal had taken alarm, and a strong representation had been sent from the prime minister of the colony to the Governor, Sir W. Hely Hutchinson, and so to the Colonial Office. It was notorious that the Transvaal was armed to the teeth, that the Orange Free State was likely to join her, and that there had been strong attempts made, both privately and through the press, to alienate the loyalty of the Dutch citizens of both the British colonies. Many sinister signs were observed by those upon the spot. The veld had been burned unusually early to ensure a speedy grass-crop after the first rains, there had been a collecting of horses, a distribution of rifles and ammunition. The Free State farmers, who graze their sheep and cattle upon Natal soil during the winter, had driven them off to places of safety behind the line of the Drakensberg. Everything pointed to approaching war, and Natal refused to be satisfied even by the dispatch of another regiment. On September 6th a second message was received at the Colonial Office, which states the case with great clearness and precision.

In July, Natal had become alarmed, and a strong message was sent from the prime minister of the colony to the Governor, Sir W. Hely Hutchinson, and then to the Colonial Office. It was well-known that the Transvaal was heavily armed, that the Orange Free State was likely to join in, and that there had been significant efforts, both privately and through the media, to undermine the loyalty of the Dutch citizens in both British colonies. Many worrying signs were noted by those on the ground. The grasslands had been burned unusually early to ensure a quick regrowth after the first rains, horses were being gathered, and rifles and ammunition were being distributed. The Free State farmers, who graze their sheep and cattle on Natal land during the winter, had moved them to safer locations behind the Drakensberg mountains. Everything indicated that war was imminent, and Natal was not satisfied even with the dispatch of another regiment. On September 6th, a second message was received at the Colonial Office, which outlined the situation with great clarity and precision.

1_northern_natal (137K)

'The Prime Minister desires me to urge upon you by the unanimous advice of the Ministers that sufficient troops should be dispatched to Natal immediately to enable the colony to be placed in a state of defence against an attack from the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. I am informed by the General Officer Commanding, Natal, that he will not have enough troops, even when the Manchester Regiment arrives, to do more than occupy Newcastle and at the same time protect the colony south of it from raids, while Laing's Nek, Ingogo River and Zululand must be left undefended. My Ministers know that every preparation has been made, both in the Transvaal and the Orange Free State, which would enable an attack to be made on Natal at short notice. My Ministers believe that the Boers have made up their minds that war will take place almost certainly, and their best chance will be, when it seems unavoidable, to deliver a blow before reinforcements have time to arrive. Information has been received that raids in force will be made by way of Middle Drift and Greytown and by way of Bond's Drift and Stangar, with a view to striking the railway between Pietermaritzburg and Durban and cutting off communications of troops and supplies. Nearly all the Orange Free State farmers in the Klip River division, who stay in the colony usually till October at least, have trekked, at great loss to themselves; their sheep are lambing on the road, and the lambs die or are destroyed. Two at least of the Entonjanani district farmers have trekked with all their belongings into the Transvaal, in the first case attempting to take as hostages the children of the natives on the farm. Reliable reports have been received of attempts to tamper with loyal natives, and to set tribe against tribe in order to create confusion and detail the defensive forces of the colony. Both food and warlike stores in large quantities have been accumulated at Volksrust, Vryheid and Standerton. Persons who are believed to be spies have been seen examining the bridges on the Natal Railway, and it is known that there are spies in all the principal centres of the colony. In the opinion of Ministers, such a catastrophe as the seizure of Laing's Nek and the destruction of the northern portion of the railway, or a successful raid or invasion such as they have reason to believe is contemplated, would produce a most demoralising effect on the natives and on the loyal Europeans in the colony, and would afford great encouragement to the Boers and to their sympathisers in the colonies, who, although armed and prepared, will probably keep quiet unless they receive some encouragement of the sort. They concur in the policy of her Majesty's Government of exhausting all peaceful means to obtain redress of the grievances of the Uitlanders and authoritatively assert the supremacy of Great Britain before resorting to war; but they state that this is a question of defensive precaution, not of making war.'

The Prime Minister wants me to emphasize, based on the unanimous advice of the Ministers, that enough troops should be sent to Natal immediately to put the colony in a defensive position against potential attacks from the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. The General Officer Commanding, Natal, has informed me that he won’t have sufficient troops, even when the Manchester Regiment arrives, to do more than occupy Newcastle and simultaneously protect the area south from raids. Additionally, Laing’s Nek, Ingogo River, and Zululand will remain undefended. My Ministers are aware that thorough preparations have been made in both the Transvaal and the Orange Free State, allowing for an attack on Natal on short notice. They believe the Boers have decided that war is almost certain, and their best chance will be to strike before reinforcements can arrive once war seems inevitable. We have received information that substantial raids will be launched via Middle Drift and Greytown, as well as Bond’s Drift and Stangar, aiming to target the railway between Pietermaritzburg and Durban and disrupt troop and supply communications. Most Orange Free State farmers in the Klip River area, who usually stay in the colony until at least October, have left, incurring significant losses; their sheep are lambing on the journey, leading to many lambs dying or being destroyed. At least two farmers from the Entonjanani district have moved all their belongings into the Transvaal, with one trying to take local children as hostages. We have credible reports about attempts to sway loyal natives and to incite conflict among tribes to create confusion and weaken the colony's defensive forces. Both food supplies and military equipment have been stockpiled in large amounts at Volksrust, Vryheid, and Standerton. People suspected of being spies have been seen inspecting the bridges on the Natal Railway, and it is known that there are spies in all major centers of the colony. The Ministers believe that a disaster like the capture of Laing’s Nek and the destruction of the northern railway section, or a successful raid or invasion that they have reason to think is planned, would have a severely demoralizing impact on both the natives and the loyal Europeans in the colony, while significantly boosting morale for the Boers and their supporters in the colonies. These supporters, although armed and ready, are likely to remain quiet unless they receive some form of encouragement. They agree with the policy of her Majesty's Government to explore all peaceful options for addressing the Uitlanders' grievances and to firmly assert the supremacy of Great Britain before resorting to war; however, they clarify that this is about taking defensive precautions, not about initiating war.

In answer to these and other remonstrances the garrison of Natal was gradually increased, partly by troops from Europe, and partly by the dispatch of five thousand British troops from India. The 2nd Berkshires, the 1st Royal Munster Fusiliers, the 1st Manchesters, and the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers arrived in succession with reinforcements of artillery. The 5th Dragoon Guards, 9th Lancers, and 19th Hussars came from India, with the 1st Devonshires, 1st Gloucesters, 2nd King's Royal Rifles and 2nd Gordon Highlanders. These with the 21st, 42nd, and 53rd batteries of Field Artillery made up the Indian Contingent. Their arrival late in September raised the number of troops in South Africa to 22,000, a force which was inadequate to a contest in the open field with the numerous, mobile, and gallant enemy to whom they were to be opposed, but which proved to be strong enough to stave off that overwhelming disaster which, with our fuller knowledge, we can now see to have been impending.

In response to these and other objections, the garrison in Natal was gradually increased, partly by troops from Europe and partly by sending five thousand British soldiers from India. The 2nd Berkshires, the 1st Royal Munster Fusiliers, the 1st Manchesters, and the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers arrived one after the other with artillery reinforcements. The 5th Dragoon Guards, 9th Lancers, and 19th Hussars came from India, along with the 1st Devonshires, 1st Gloucesters, 2nd King's Royal Rifles, and 2nd Gordon Highlanders. These, along with the 21st, 42nd, and 53rd batteries of Field Artillery, made up the Indian Contingent. Their arrival in late September increased the number of troops in South Africa to 22,000, a force that was insufficient for open field battles against the numerous, mobile, and brave enemy they were up against, but strong enough to prevent the overwhelming disaster that, with our greater understanding now, we can see was looming.

As to the disposition of these troops a difference of opinion broke out between the ruling powers in Natal and the military chiefs at the spot. Prince Kraft has said, 'Both strategy and tactics may have to yield to politics '; but the political necessity should be very grave and very clear when it is the blood of soldiers which has to pay for it. Whether it arose from our defective intelligence, or from that caste feeling which makes it hard for the professional soldier to recognise (in spite of deplorable past experiences) a serious adversary in the mounted farmer, it is certain that even while our papers were proclaiming that this time, at least, we would not underrate our enemy, we were most seriously underrating him. The northern third of Natal is as vulnerable a military position as a player of kriegspiel could wish to have submitted to him. It runs up into a thin angle, culminating at the apex in a difficult pass, the ill-omened Laing's Nek, dominated by the even more sinister bulk of Majuba. Each side of this angle is open to invasion, the one from the Transvaal and the other from the Orange Free State. A force up at the apex is in a perfect trap, for the mobile enemy can flood into the country to the south of them, cut the line of supplies, and throw up a series of entrenchments which would make retreat a very difficult matter. Further down the country, at such positions as Ladysmith or Dundee, the danger, though not so imminent, is still an obvious one, unless the defending force is strong enough to hold its own in the open field and mobile enough to prevent a mounted enemy from getting round its flanks. To us, who are endowed with that profound military wisdom which only comes with a knowledge of the event, it is obvious that with a defending force which could not place more than 12,000 men in the fighting line, the true defensible frontier was the line of the Tugela. As a matter of fact, Ladysmith was chosen, a place almost indefensible itself, as it is dominated by high hills in at least two directions.

Regarding the placement of these troops, a disagreement arose between the governing authorities in Natal and the military leaders on the ground. Prince Kraft stated, 'Both strategy and tactics may have to yield to politics'; however, the political need should be extremely critical and clear when it involves the lives of soldiers. Whether this came from our lack of accurate intelligence or from the elitism that makes it difficult for professional soldiers to recognize, despite past experiences, a serious threat in the mounted farmer, it’s clear that even as our reports claimed we wouldn’t underestimate our enemy this time, we were seriously underestimating him. The northern third of Natal is a highly vulnerable military position, exactly what a player of kriegspiel would dread to face. It forms a narrow angle that culminates at the challenging Laing's Nek, overshadowed by the even more foreboding Majuba. Each side of this angle is open to invasion—one from the Transvaal and the other from the Orange Free State. A force stationed at the apex is in a perfect trap, as the agile enemy can sweep into the south, sever the supply lines, and establish a series of fortifications that would make retreat extremely challenging. Further south, at locations like Ladysmith and Dundee, the danger, though not immediate, is still evident, unless the defending force is strong enough to withstand open combat and agile enough to keep a mounted enemy from flanking them. For us, with the deep military insight that only comes from hindsight, it's clear that with a defending force that couldn’t place more than 12,000 men in the front lines, the real defensible border was the Tugela River. In fact, Ladysmith was selected, a place that is nearly indefensible itself, being overlooked by high hills in at least two directions.

Such an event as the siege of the town appears never to have been contemplated, as no guns of position were asked for or sent. In spite of this, an amount of stores, which is said to have been valued at more than a million of pounds, was dumped down at this small railway junction, so that the position could not be evacuated without a crippling loss. The place was the point of bifurcation of the main line, which divides at this little town into one branch running to Harrismith in the Orange Free State, and the other leading through the Dundee coal fields and Newcastle to the Laing's Nek tunnel and the Transvaal. An importance, which appears now to have been an exaggerated one, was attached by the Government of Natal to the possession of the coal fields, and it was at their strong suggestion, but with the concurrence of General Penn Symons, that the defending force was divided, and a detachment of between three and four thousand sent to Dundee, about forty miles from the main body, which remained under General Sir George White at Ladysmith. General Symons underrated the power of the invaders, but it is hard to criticise an error of judgment which has been so nobly atoned and so tragically paid for. At the time, then, which our political narrative has reached, the time of suspense which followed the dispatch of the Cabinet message of September 8th, the military situation had ceased to be desperate, but was still precarious. Twenty-two thousand regular troops were on the spot who might hope to be reinforced by some ten thousand colonials, but these forces had to cover a great frontier, the attitude of Cape Colony was by no means whole-hearted and might become hostile, while the black population might conceivably throw in its weight against us. Only half the regulars could be spared to defend Natal, and no reinforcements could reach them in less than a month from the outbreak of hostilities. If Mr. Chamberlain was really playing a game of bluff, it must be confessed that he was bluffing from a very weak hand.

Such an event as the siege of the town seems to have never been anticipated, as no heavy guns were requested or sent. Despite this, a stockpile of supplies, reportedly worth over a million pounds, was dumped at this small railway junction, making it impossible to leave without suffering significant losses. The location was where the main line split, dividing at this small town into one branch heading to Harrismith in the Orange Free State and the other going through the Dundee coal fields and Newcastle to the Laing's Nek tunnel and the Transvaal. The Government of Natal seemed to have attached an exaggerated importance to controlling the coal fields, and it was at their strong suggestion, along with General Penn Symons's agreement, that the defending force was divided, sending a detachment of about three to four thousand to Dundee, roughly forty miles from the main body under General Sir George White at Ladysmith. General Symons underestimated the strength of the invaders, but it’s tough to criticize a judgment error that has been so nobly atoned for and tragically paid. At the point our political narrative has reached, during the tense period following the Cabinet message sent on September 8th, although the military situation was no longer desperate, it was still precarious. Twenty-two thousand regular troops were on the ground, hoping to be reinforced by about ten thousand colonials, but these forces had to cover a vast frontier, the stance of Cape Colony was by no means entirely supportive and could turn hostile, while the local black population might potentially side against us. Only half of the regulars could be spared for the defense of Natal, and no reinforcements could arrive in less than a month after hostilities began. If Mr. Chamberlain was really trying to bluff, it must be admitted that he was doing so from a very weak position.

For purposes of comparison we may give some idea of the forces which Mr. Kruger and Mr. Steyn could put in the field, for by this time it was evident that the Orange Free State, with which we had had no shadow of a dispute, was going, in a way which some would call wanton and some chivalrous, to throw in its weight against us. The general press estimate of the forces of the two republics varied from 25,000 to 35,000 men. Mr. J. B. Robinson, a personal friend of President Kruger's and a man who had spent much of his life among the Boers, considered the latter estimate to be too high. The calculation had no assured basis to start from. A very scattered and isolated population, among whom large families were the rule, is a most difficult thing to estimate. Some reckoned from the supposed natural increase during eighteen years, but the figure given at that date was itself an assumption. Others took their calculation from the number of voters in the last presidential election: but no one could tell how many abstentions there had been, and the fighting age is five years earlier than the voting age in the republics. We recognise now that all calculations were far below the true figure. It is probable, however, that the information of the British Intelligence Department was not far wrong. According to this the fighting strength of the Transvaal alone was 32,000 men, and of the Orange Free State 22,000. With mercenaries and rebels from the colonies they would amount to 60, 000, while a considerable rising of the Cape Dutch would bring them up to 100,000. In artillery they were known to have about a hundred guns, many of them (and the fact will need much explaining) more modern and powerful than any which we could bring against them. Of the quality of this large force there is no need to speak. The men were brave, hardy, and fired with a strange religious enthusiasm. They were all of the seventeenth century, except their rifles. Mounted upon their hardy little ponies, they possessed a mobility which practically doubled their numbers and made it an impossibility ever to outflank them. As marksmen they were supreme. Add to this that they had the advantage of acting upon internal lines with shorter and safer communications, and one gathers how formidable a task lay before the soldiers of the empire. When we turn from such an enumeration of their strength to contemplate the 12,000 men, split into two detachments, who awaited them in Natal, we may recognise that, far from bewailing our disasters, we should rather congratulate ourselves upon our escape from losing that great province which, situated as it is between Britain, India, and Australia, must be regarded as the very keystone of the imperial arch.

For comparison, we can give an idea of the forces that Mr. Kruger and Mr. Steyn could mobilize, as it was clear by this time that the Orange Free State, with which we had no disagreement, was going to throw its weight against us in a manner some would see as reckless and others as noble. The general estimate of the forces of the two republics ranged from 25,000 to 35,000 men. Mr. J. B. Robinson, a personal friend of President Kruger's and someone who had spent much of his life among the Boers, thought the higher estimate was too much. The calculations didn’t have a reliable basis. A widely scattered and isolated population, where large families were common, is really hard to estimate. Some based their estimates on supposed natural growth over eighteen years, but the figure at that time was itself an assumption. Others calculated based on the number of voters from the last presidential election, but no one could tell how many people had abstained, and men could fight five years earlier than they could vote in the republics. We now understand that all these calculations were far below the actual number. However, it’s likely that the British Intelligence Department wasn’t far off. According to them, the fighting strength of the Transvaal alone was 32,000 men, and the Orange Free State had 22,000. With mercenaries and rebels from the colonies, they would total around 60,000, and if there was a significant uprising from the Cape Dutch, they could reach 100,000. They were known to have about a hundred artillery pieces, many of which (and this will require much explanation) were more modern and powerful than anything we could bring against them. There’s no need to elaborate on the quality of this large force. The men were brave, tough, and driven by a strange religious fervor. They were all from the seventeenth century, except for their rifles. Mounted on their sturdy little ponies, they had a mobility that practically doubled their numbers and made it impossible to outflank them. They were outstanding marksmen. Plus, they had the advantage of acting on internal lines with shorter and safer communications, making it clear how formidable a challenge the empire's soldiers faced. When we shift from detailing their strength to considering the 12,000 men, divided into two groups, waiting for them in Natal, we can see that instead of mourning our setbacks, we should be thankful we avoided losing that large province, which, located as it is between Britain, India, and Australia, must be seen as a key part of the imperial structure.

At the risk of a tedious but very essential digression, something must be said here as to the motives with which the Boers had for many years been quietly preparing for war. That the Jameson raid was not the cause is certain, though it probably, by putting the Boer Government into a strong position, had a great effect in accelerating matters. What had been done secretly and slowly could be done more swiftly and openly when so plausible an excuse could be given for it. As a matter of fact, the preparations were long antecedent to the raid. The building of the forts at Pretoria and Johannesburg was begun nearly two years before that wretched incursion, and the importation of arms was going on apace. In that very year, 1895, a considerable sum was spent in military equipment.

At the risk of a boring but important side note, it's necessary to discuss the reasons why the Boers had been quietly getting ready for war for many years. It's clear that the Jameson raid wasn't the primary cause, although it likely helped the Boer Government by putting them in a strong position and speeding things up. What had been happening slowly and discreetly could now be done more quickly and openly with such a convincing excuse. In reality, the preparations had started long before the raid. The construction of forts in Pretoria and Johannesburg began nearly two years before that unfortunate invasion, and the importation of weapons was already underway. In that very year, 1895, a significant amount was spent on military supplies.

But if it was not the raid, and if the Boers had no reason to fear the British Government, with whom the Transvaal might have been as friendly as the Orange Free State had been for forty years, why then should they arm? It was a difficult question, and one in answering which we find ourselves in a region of conjecture and suspicion rather than of ascertained fact. But the fairest and most unbiased of historians must confess that there is a large body of evidence to show that into the heads of some of the Dutch leaders, both in the northern republics and in the Cape, there had entered the conception of a single Dutch commonwealth, extending from Cape Town to the Zambesi, in which flag, speech, and law should all be Dutch. It is in this aspiration that many shrewd and well-informed judges see the true inner meaning of this persistent arming, of the constant hostility, of the forming of ties between the two republics (one of whom had been reconstituted and made a sovereign independent State by our own act), and finally of that intriguing which endeavoured to poison the affection and allegiance of our own Dutch colonists, who had no political grievances whatever. They all aimed at one end, and that end was the final expulsion of British power from South Africa and the formation of a single great Dutch republic. The large sum spent by the Transvaal in secret service money—a larger sum, I believe, than that which is spent by the whole British Empire—would give some idea of the subterranean influences at work. An army of emissaries, agents, and spies, whatever their mission, were certainly spread over the British colonies. Newspapers were subsidised also, and considerable sums spent upon the press in France and Germany.

But if it wasn’t the raid, and if the Boers had no reason to fear the British Government, with whom the Transvaal could have been just as friendly as the Orange Free State had been for forty years, then why should they arm themselves? It’s a tough question, and when we try to answer it, we find ourselves in a realm of guesswork and suspicion rather than verified facts. Yet, the most fair and unbiased historians have to admit that there’s a significant amount of evidence showing that some of the Dutch leaders, both in the northern republics and in the Cape, had the idea of a single Dutch commonwealth, stretching from Cape Town to the Zambezi, where the flag, language, and laws would all be Dutch. It’s in this ambition that many sharp and knowledgeable observers see the real underlying meaning of this ongoing militarization, the constant hostility, the connections formed between the two republics (one of which was reconstituted and made a sovereign state by our own actions), and ultimately, the scheming aimed at undermining the loyalty and affection of our own Dutch colonists, who had no political grievances whatsoever. They all had one goal, and that was the complete removal of British power from South Africa and the establishment of a large, unified Dutch republic. The substantial amount spent by the Transvaal on secret service—more than what the entire British Empire spends—gives some indication of the hidden influences at play. An army of messengers, agents, and spies, regardless of their mission, were undoubtedly spread across the British colonies. Newspapers were also funded, and significant amounts were spent on the press in France and Germany.

In the very nature of things a huge conspiracy of this sort to substitute Dutch for British rule in South Africa is not a matter which can be easily and definitely proved. Such questions are not discussed in public documents, and men are sounded before being taken into the confidence of the conspirators. But there is plenty of evidence of the individual ambition of prominent and representative men in this direction, and it is hard to believe that what many wanted individually was not striven for collectively, especially when we see how the course of events did actually work towards the end which they indicated. Mr. J.P. FitzPatrick, in 'The Transvaal from Within'—a book to which all subsequent writers upon the subject must acknowledge their obligations—narrates how in 1896 he was approached by Mr. D.P. Graaff, formerly a member of the Cape Legislative Council and a very prominent Afrikander Bondsman, with the proposition that Great Britain should be pushed out of South Africa. The same politician made the same proposal to Mr. Beit. Compare with this the following statement of Mr. Theodore Schreiner, the brother of the Prime Minister of the Cape:

In the nature of things, a large conspiracy like this to replace British rule with Dutch rule in South Africa isn't something that can be easily or definitively proven. These kinds of issues aren't discussed in public documents, and people are gauged before being brought into the conspirators' inner circle. However, there's plenty of evidence showing the individual ambitions of key figures moving in this direction, and it's hard to believe that what many desired individually wasn’t pursued collectively, especially when we observe how events unfolded towards the outcomes they wanted. Mr. J.P. FitzPatrick, in 'The Transvaal from Within'—a book that all later writers on the topic must credit—recounts how in 1896 he was approached by Mr. D.P. Graaff, a former member of the Cape Legislative Council and a well-known Afrikander Bondsman, with the suggestion that Great Britain should be removed from South Africa. The same politician made this suggestion to Mr. Beit. Compare this with the following statement from Mr. Theodore Schreiner, the brother of the Prime Minister of the Cape:

'I met Mr. Reitz, then a judge of the Orange Free State, in Bloemfontein between seventeen and eighteen years ago, shortly after the retrocession of the Transvaal, and when he was busy establishing the Afrikander Bond. It must be patent to every one that at that time, at all events, England and its Government had no intention of taking away the independence of the Transvaal, for she had just “magnanimously” granted the same; no intention of making war on the republics, for she had just made peace; no intention to seize the Rand gold fields, for they were not yet discovered. At that time, then, I met Mr. Reitz, and he did his best to get me to become a member of his Afrikander Bond, but, after studying its constitution and programme, I refused to do so, whereupon the following colloquy in substance took place between us, which has been indelibly imprinted on my mind ever since:

'I met Mr. Reitz, who was then a judge of the Orange Free State, in Bloemfontein about seventeen or eighteen years ago, shortly after the Transvaal was returned, and while he was busy establishing the Afrikander Bond. It was clear to everyone that at that time, England and its Government had no intention of taking away the independence of the Transvaal, since they had just “magnanimously” granted it; no intention of waging war on the republics, as they had just made peace; and no intention of seizing the Rand goldfields, which had not yet been discovered. So, at that time, I met Mr. Reitz, and he tried his best to persuade me to join his Afrikander Bond. However, after reviewing its constitution and program, I declined. This led to a conversation between us that has stayed with me ever since:'

'REITZ: Why do you refuse? Is the object of getting the people to take an interest in political matters not a good one?

'REITZ: Why do you refuse? Isn't the goal of getting people involved in political issues a good one?

'MYSELF: Yes, it is; but I seem to see plainly here between the lines of this constitution much more ultimately aimed at than that.

'MYSELF: Yes, it is; but I clearly see something much deeper between the lines of this constitution.'

'REITZ: What?

'REITZ: Huh?

'MYSELF: I see quite clearly that the ultimate object aimed at is the overthrow of the British power and the expulsion of the British flag from South Africa.

'MYSELF: I see clearly that the ultimate goal is to overthrow British power and remove the British flag from South Africa.'

'REITZ (with his pleasant conscious smile, as of one whose secret thought and purpose had been discovered, and who was not altogether displeased that such was the case): Well, what if it is so?

'REITZ (with his charming smile, like someone whose hidden thoughts and intentions have been found out, and who isn't entirely unhappy about it): So what if that's true?

'MYSELF: You don't suppose, do you, that that flag is going to disappear from South Africa without a tremendous struggle and fight?

'MYSELF: You don't think that flag is just going to vanish from South Africa without a huge struggle and fight, do you?

'REITZ (with the same pleasant self-conscious, self satisfied, and yet semi-apologetic smile): Well, I suppose not; but even so, what of that?

'REITZ (with the same pleasant, self-aware, smug, and somewhat apologetic smile): Well, I guess not; but even so, what does that matter?'

'MYSELF: Only this, that when that struggle takes place you and I will be on opposite sides; and what is more, the God who was on the side of the Transvaal in the late war, because it had right on its side will be on the side of England, because He must view with abhorrence any plotting and scheming to overthrow her power and position in South Africa, which have been ordained by Him.

'MYSELF: Just this – when that struggle happens, you and I will be on opposite sides; and what's more, the God who sided with the Transvaal in the recent war, because it was in the right, will be on England's side, as He must despise any plotting and scheming to undermine her power and position in South Africa, which He has established.'

'REITZ: We'll see.

'REITZ: We'll find out.'

'Thus the conversation ended, but during the seventeen years that have elapsed I have watched the propaganda for the overthrow of British power in South Africa being ceaselessly spread by every possible means—the press, the pulpit, the platform, the schools, the colleges, the Legislature—until it has culminated in the present war, of which Mr. Reitz and his co-workers are the origin and the cause. Believe me, the day on which F.W. Reitz sat down to pen his ultimatum to Great Britain was the proudest and happiest moment of his life, and one which had for long years been looked forward to by him with eager longing and expectation.'

'So the conversation came to a close, but over the past seventeen years, I've seen the relentless campaign to weaken British power in South Africa grow through every possible channel—the media, religious leaders, public speeches, schools, universities, and government—until it has led to the current war, which Mr. Reitz and his associates initiated. Believe me, the day F.W. Reitz wrote his ultimatum to Great Britain was the proudest and happiest moment of his life, something he had long anticipated with eager hope and excitement.'

Compare with these utterances of a Dutch politician of the Cape, and of a Dutch politician of the Orange Free State, the following passage from a speech delivered by Kruger at Bloemfontein in the year 1887:

Compare with these statements from a Dutch politician from the Cape and a Dutch politician from the Orange Free State, the following excerpt from a speech given by Kruger in Bloemfontein in 1887:

'I think it too soon to speak of a United South Africa under one flag. Which flag was it to be? The Queen of England would object to having her flag hauled down, and we, the burghers of the Transvaal, object to hauling ours down. What is to be done? We are now small and of little importance, but we are growing, and are preparing the way to take our place among the great nations of the world.'

'I think it's too soon to discuss a United South Africa under one flag. Which flag would it be? The Queen of England wouldn’t be happy about having her flag taken down, and we, the burghers of the Transvaal, don’t want to take down ours. What should we do? We may be small and insignificant now, but we're growing and getting ready to take our place among the great nations of the world.'

'The dream of our life,' said another, 'is a union of the States of South Africa, and this has to come from within, not from without. When that is accomplished, South Africa will be great.'

'The dream of our life,' said another, 'is to unite the States of South Africa, and that has to come from us, not from others. Once we achieve that, South Africa will become great.'

Always the same theory from all quarters of Dutch thought, to be followed by many signs that the idea was being prepared for in practice. I repeat that the fairest and most unbiased historian cannot dismiss the conspiracy as a myth.

Always the same theory from all areas of Dutch thought, followed by numerous signs that the idea was being put into practice. I emphasize that even the fairest and most unbiased historian cannot dismiss the conspiracy as just a myth.

And to this one may retort, why should they not conspire? Why should they not have their own views as to the future of South Africa? Why should they not endeavour to have one universal flag and one common speech? Why should they not win over our colonists, if they can, and push us into the sea? I see no reason why they should not. Let them try if they will. And let us try to prevent them. But let us have an end of talk about British aggression, of capitalist designs upon the gold fields, of the wrongs of a pastoral people, and all the other veils which have been used to cover the issue. Let those who talk about British designs upon the republics turn their attention for a moment to the evidence which there is for republican designs upon the colonies. Let them reflect that in the one system all white men are equal, and that on the other the minority of one race has persecuted the majority of the other, and let them consider under which the truest freedom lies, which stands for universal liberty and which for reaction and racial hatred. Let them ponder and answer all this before they determine where their sympathies lie.

And to this, one might ask, why shouldn’t they conspire? Why shouldn’t they have their own ideas about the future of South Africa? Why shouldn’t they strive for a single universal flag and a common language? Why shouldn’t they try to win over our colonists, if they can, and push us out to sea? I see no reason why they shouldn’t. Let them give it a shot if they want. And let us try to stop them. But let’s stop discussing British aggression, capitalist interests in the gold fields, the injustices faced by a pastoral people, and all the other distractions that have been used to hide the real issue. Let those who talk about British interests in the republics take a moment to consider the evidence for republican interests in the colonies. Let them realize that in one system, all white men are equal, while in the other, a minority from one race has oppressed the majority of another. Let them think about which system truly supports freedom, which advocates for universal liberty, and which promotes backlash and racial hatred. Let them reflect on all this before deciding where their loyalties lie.

Leaving these wider questions of politics, and dismissing for the time those military considerations which were soon to be of such vital moment, we may now return to the course of events in the diplomatic struggle between the Government of the Transvaal and the Colonial Office. On September 8th, as already narrated, a final message was sent to Pretoria, which stated the minimum terms which the British Government could accept as being a fair concession to her subjects in the Transvaal. A definite answer was demanded, and the nation waited with sombre patience for the reply.

Leaving aside the broader political questions and putting aside for now the military factors that would soon become crucial, we can now return to the unfolding events in the diplomatic conflict between the Transvaal government and the Colonial Office. On September 8th, as previously mentioned, a final message was sent to Pretoria, outlining the minimum terms that the British government could accept as a fair concession to its citizens in the Transvaal. A firm response was requested, and the nation waited with heavy anticipation for the reply.

There were few illusions in this country as to the difficulties of a Transvaal war. It was clearly seen that little honour and immense vexation were in store for us. The first Boer war still smarted in our minds, and we knew the prowess of the indomitable burghers. But our people, if gloomy, were none the less resolute, for that national instinct which is beyond the wisdom of statesmen had borne it in upon them that this was no local quarrel, but one upon which the whole existence of the empire hung. The cohesion of that empire was to be tested. Men had emptied their glasses to it in time of peace. Was it a meaningless pouring of wine, or were they ready to pour their hearts' blood also in time of war? Had we really founded a series of disconnected nations, with no common sentiment or interest, or was the empire an organic whole, as ready to thrill with one emotion or to harden into one resolve as are the several States of the Union? That was the question at issue, and much of the future history of the world was at stake upon the answer.

There were few illusions in this country about the challenges of a Transvaal war. It was clear that we were facing little honor and a lot of frustration. The memory of the first Boer war still stung, and we recognized the skill of the relentless burghers. But our people, despite feeling downcast, were still determined, for that instinct shared by the nation, which goes beyond what politicians understand, made it clear that this was no local dispute, but one that could determine the survival of the entire empire. The strength of that empire was about to be tested. People had raised their glasses to it in times of peace. Was it just a meaningless toast, or were they willing to give their lives for it in times of war? Had we really created a series of disconnected nations without a shared feeling or interest, or was the empire a united entity, capable of feeling the same emotion and making a common decision like the various States of the Union? That was the pressing question, and much of the future history of the world depended on the answer.

Already there were indications that the colonies appreciated the fact that the contention was no affair of the mother country alone, but that she was upholding the rights of the empire as a whole, and might fairly look to them to support her in any quarrel which might arise from it. As early as July 11th, Queensland, the fiery and semitropical, had offered a contingent of mounted infantry with machine guns; New Zealand, Western Australia, Tasmania, Victoria, New South Wales, and South Australia followed in the order named. Canada, with the strong but more deliberate spirit of the north, was the last to speak, but spoke the more firmly for the delay. Her citizens were the least concerned of any, for Australians were many in South Africa but Canadians few. None the less, she cheerfully took her share of the common burden, and grew the readier and the cheerier as that burden came to weigh more heavily. From all the men of many hues who make up the British Empire, from Hindoo Rajahs, from West African Houssas, from Malay police, from Western Indians, there came offers of service. But this was to be a white man's war, and if the British could not work out their own salvation then it were well that empire should pass from such a race. The magnificent Indian army of 150,000 soldiers, many of them seasoned veterans, was for the same reason left untouched. England has claimed no credit or consideration for such abstention, but an irresponsible writer may well ask how many of those foreign critics whose respect for our public morality appears to be as limited as their knowledge of our principles and history would have advocated such self denial had their own countries been placed in the same position.

There were already signs that the colonies understood that this conflict was not just the mother country's issue, but a matter involving the rights of the entire empire, and they could reasonably be expected to support her in any disputes that arose from it. As early as July 11th, Queensland, passionate and semi-tropical, had offered a group of mounted infantry with machine guns; followed by New Zealand, Western Australia, Tasmania, Victoria, New South Wales, and South Australia in that order. Canada, with its strong but more cautious northern spirit, was the last to respond, but spoke more firmly due to the delay. Its citizens were the least concerned, as there were many Australians in South Africa, while Canadians were few. Nevertheless, Canada willingly shouldered its share of the common burden and became even more eager and cheerful as that burden grew heavier. Men of many backgrounds from the British Empire, including Hindu Rajahs, West African Houssas, Malay police, and Western Indians, offered their services. However, this was to be a white man's war; if the British couldn’t secure their own salvation, it would be better for the empire to fall from such a race. The impressive Indian army of 150,000 soldiers, many of them experienced veterans, remained untouched for the same reason. England hasn't sought credit or acknowledgment for this restraint, but a careless writer might wonder how many of those foreign critics, whose respect for our public morality seems as limited as their understanding of our principles and history, would have supported such self-denial if their own countries had been in a similar situation.

On September 18th the official reply of the Boer Government to the message sent from the Cabinet Council was published in London. In manner it was unbending and unconciliatory; in substance, it was a complete rejection of all the British demands. It refused to recommend or propose to the Raad the five years' franchise and the other measures which had been defined as the minimum which the Home Government could accept as a fair measure of justice towards the Uitlanders. The suggestion that the debates of the Raad should be bilingual, as they have been in the Cape Colony and in Canada, was absolutely waived aside. The British Government had stated in their last dispatch that if the reply should be negative or inconclusive they reserved to themselves the right to 'reconsider the situation de novo and to formulate their own proposals for a final settlement.' The reply had been both negative and inconclusive, and on September 22nd a council met to determine what the next message should be. It was short and firm, but so planned as not to shut the door upon peace. Its purport was that the British Government expressed deep regret at the rejection of the moderate proposals which had been submitted in their last dispatch, and that now, in accordance with their promise, they would shortly put forward their own plans for a settlement. The message was not an ultimatum, but it foreshadowed an ultimatum in the future.

On September 18th, the official response from the Boer Government to the message sent by the Cabinet Council was published in London. The tone was stiff and unyielding; in essence, it completely dismissed all the British demands. It did not suggest or recommend to the Raad the five-year franchise or the other measures that had been outlined as the minimum the Home Government could accept as fair treatment for the Uitlanders. The proposal for the Raad's debates to be bilingual, as they are in the Cape Colony and Canada, was completely disregarded. The British Government had stated in their last dispatch that if the reply was negative or unclear, they reserved the right to 'reconsider the situation from scratch and to formulate their own proposals for a final settlement.' The reply was both negative and unclear, and on September 22nd, a council convened to decide what the next message should be. It was brief and assertive, yet crafted to keep the door open for peace. The essence of the message was that the British Government expressed deep disappointment at the rejection of the moderate proposals they had presented in their last dispatch, and that, as promised, they would soon put forward their own plans for a resolution. The message was not an ultimatum, but it hinted at one in the future.

In the meantime, upon September 21st the Raad of the Orange Free State had met, and it became more and more evident that this republic, with whom we had no possible quarrel, but, on the contrary, for whom we had a great deal of friendship and admiration, intended to throw in its weight against Great Britain. Some time before, an offensive and defensive alliance had been concluded between the two States, which must, until the secret history of these events comes to be written, appear to have been a singularly rash and unprofitable bargain for the smaller one. She had nothing to fear from Great Britain, since she had been voluntarily turned into an independent republic by her and had lived in peace with her for forty years. Her laws were as liberal as our own. But by this suicidal treaty she agreed to share the fortunes of a State which was deliberately courting war by its persistently unfriendly attitude, and whose reactionary and narrow legislation would, one might imagine, have alienated the sympathy of her progressive neighbour. There may have been ambitions like those already quoted from the report of Dr. Reitz's conversation, or there may have been a complete hallucination as to the comparative strength of the two combatants and the probable future of South Africa; but however that may be, the treaty was made, and the time had come to test how far it would hold.

In the meantime, on September 21st, the Raad of the Orange Free State met, and it became increasingly clear that this republic, with whom we had no conflict but, on the contrary, held a lot of friendship and respect, planned to side against Great Britain. Some time earlier, an offensive and defensive alliance had been formed between the two States, which, until the real story behind these events is revealed, will seem like a remarkably foolish and unbeneficial deal for the smaller one. They had nothing to fear from Great Britain, since they had willingly become an independent republic thanks to her and had lived in peace with her for forty years. Their laws were as liberal as ours. But by entering into this self-destructive treaty, they agreed to share the fate of a country that was actively seeking war through its consistently hostile actions, and whose outdated and narrow-minded laws would likely have driven away the support of its progressive neighbor. There might have been ambitions like those mentioned in Dr. Reitz’s conversation report, or there may have been a total misunderstanding of the relative strength of the two combatants and the likely future of South Africa; but whatever the case, the treaty was signed, and the time had come to see how strong it would prove to be.

The tone of President Steyn at the meeting of the Raad, and the support which he received from the majority of his burghers, showed unmistakably that the two republics would act as one. In his opening speech Steyn declared uncompromisingly against the British contention, and declared that his State was bound to the Transvaal by everything which was near and dear. Among the obvious military precautions which could no longer be neglected by the British Government was the sending of some small force to protect the long and exposed line of railway which lies just outside the Transvaal border from Kimberley to Rhodesia. Sir Alfred Milner communicated with President Steyn as to this movement of troops, pointing out that it was in no way directed against the Free State. Sir Alfred Milner added that the Imperial Government was still hopeful of a friendly settlement with the Transvaal, but if this hope were disappointed they looked to the Orange Free State to preserve strict neutrality and to prevent military intervention by any of its citizens. They undertook that in that case the integrity of the Free State frontier would be strictly preserved. Finally, he stated that there was absolutely no cause to disturb the good relations between the Free State and Great Britain, since we were animated by the most friendly intentions towards them. To this the President returned a somewhat ungracious answer, to the effect that he disapproved of our action towards the Transvaal, and that he regretted the movement of troops, which would be considered a menace by the burghers. A subsequent resolution of the Free State Raad, ending with the words, 'Come what may, the Free State will honestly and faithfully fulfill its obligations towards the Transvaal by virtue of the political alliance existing between the two republics,' showed how impossible it was that this country, formed by ourselves and without a shadow of a cause of quarrel with us, could be saved from being drawn into the whirlpool. Everywhere, from over both borders, came the news of martial preparations. Already at the end of September troops and armed burghers were gathering upon the frontier, and the most incredulous were beginning at last to understand that the shadow of a great war was really falling across them. Artillery, war munitions, and stores were being accumulated at Volksrust upon the Natal border, showing where the storm might be expected to break. On the last day of September, twenty-six military trains were reported to have left Pretoria and Johannesburg for that point. At the same time news came of a concentration at Malmani, upon the Bechuanaland border, threatening the railway line and the British town of Mafeking, a name destined before long to be familiar to the world.

The tone of President Steyn at the meeting of the Raad, along with the support he received from most of his burghers, clearly indicated that the two republics would act as one. In his opening speech, Steyn firmly opposed the British stance and stated that his State was closely linked to the Transvaal by everything that mattered to them. One obvious military measure the British Government could no longer ignore was sending a small force to secure the long and vulnerable railway line just outside the Transvaal border, stretching from Kimberley to Rhodesia. Sir Alfred Milner communicated with President Steyn regarding this troop movement, emphasizing that it was not aimed at the Free State. He added that the Imperial Government still hoped for a peaceful resolution with the Transvaal, but if that hope failed, they expected the Orange Free State to stay neutral and prevent any military involvement by its citizens. They promised that, in that case, the integrity of the Free State's borders would be maintained. Finally, he mentioned there was absolutely no reason to disrupt the good relations between the Free State and Great Britain since they were genuinely friendly towards them. In response, the President offered a somewhat curt reply, expressing his disapproval of their actions toward the Transvaal, and saying he regretted the troop movement, which the burghers would see as a threat. A subsequent resolution from the Free State Raad, concluding with the statement, "Come what may, the Free State will honestly and faithfully fulfill its obligations toward the Transvaal by virtue of the political alliance existing between the two republics," demonstrated how impossible it was for this nation, created by our own efforts and having no genuine reason to quarrel with us, to avoid being caught in the turmoil. News of military preparations poured in from both borders. By the end of September, troops and armed burghers were gathering at the frontier, and even the most skeptical were starting to realize that the specter of a significant war was truly descending upon them. Artillery, war supplies, and equipment were stockpiling at Volksrust along the Natal border, indicating where the storm was likely to erupt. On the last day of September, reports indicated that twenty-six military trains had departed from Pretoria and Johannesburg for that location. Simultaneously, news arrived of a buildup at Malmani, near the Bechuanaland border, posing a threat to the railway line and the British town of Mafeking, a name that would soon become well known worldwide.

On October 3rd there occurred what was in truth an act of war, although the British Government, patient to the verge of weakness, refused to regard it as such, and continued to draw up their final state paper. The mail train from the Transvaal to Cape Town was stopped at Vereeniging, and the week's shipment of gold for England, amounting to about half a million pounds, was taken by the Boer Government. In a debate at Cape Town upon the same day the Africander Minister of the Interior admitted that as many as 404 trucks had passed from the Government line over the frontier and had not been returned. Taken in conjunction with the passage of arms and cartridges through the Cape to Pretoria and Bloemfontein, this incident aroused the deepest indignation among the Colonial English and the British public, which was increased by the reports of the difficulty which border towns, such as Kimberley and Vryburg, had had in getting cannon for their own defence. The Raads had been dissolved, and the old President's last words had been a statement that war was certain, and a stern invocation of the Lord as final arbiter. England was ready less obtrusively but no less heartily to refer the quarrel to the same dread Judge.

On October 3rd, an act of war actually took place, although the British Government, patient to the point of weakness, refused to see it that way and continued to finalize their official statement. The mail train from the Transvaal to Cape Town was stopped at Vereeniging, and the week’s shipment of gold for England, worth about half a million pounds, was taken by the Boer Government. During a debate in Cape Town on the same day, the Africander Minister of the Interior admitted that as many as 404 trucks had crossed from the Government line into the frontier and had not been returned. When combined with the transfer of arms and ammunition through the Cape to Pretoria and Bloemfontein, this incident sparked outrage among the Colonial English and the British public, which was heightened by reports of the struggles faced by border towns like Kimberley and Vryburg in obtaining cannons for their own defense. The Raads had been dissolved, and the old President's last words expressed that war was inevitable, along with a serious appeal to the Lord as the final decision-maker. England, while less overt, was just as ready to bring the dispute to the same formidable Judge.

On October 2nd President Steyn informed Sir Alfred Milner that he had deemed it necessary to call out the Free State burghers—that is, to mobilise his forces. Sir A. Milner wrote regretting these preparations, and declaring that he did not yet despair of peace, for he was sure that any reasonable proposal would be favourably considered by her Majesty's Government. Steyn's reply was that there was no use in negotiating unless the stream of British reinforcements ceased coming into South Africa. As our forces were still in a great minority, it was impossible to stop the reinforcements, so the correspondence led to nothing. On October 7th the army reserves for the First Army Corps were called out in Great Britain and other signs shown that it had been determined to send a considerable force to South Africa. Parliament was also summoned that the formal national assent might be gained for those grave measures which were evidently pending.

On October 2nd, President Steyn let Sir Alfred Milner know that he found it necessary to mobilize the Free State burghers, meaning he was calling out his forces. Sir A. Milner expressed regret over these preparations and stated that he still held out hope for peace, believing any reasonable proposal would be positively considered by Her Majesty's Government. Steyn responded that there was no point in negotiating unless the flow of British reinforcements into South Africa stopped. Since their forces were still greatly outnumbered, it was impossible to halt the reinforcements, so the correspondence led nowhere. On October 7th, the army reserves for the First Army Corps were called out in Great Britain, and other signs indicated that a significant force was set to be sent to South Africa. Parliament was also convened so that formal national approval could be obtained for the serious actions that seemed to be imminent.

It was on October 9th that the somewhat leisurely proceedings of the British Colonial Office were brought to a head by the arrival of an unexpected and audacious ultimatum from the Boer Government. In contests of wit, as of arms, it must be confessed that the laugh has been usually upon the side of our simple and pastoral South African neighbours. The present instance was no exception to the rule. While our Government was cautiously and patiently leading up to an ultimatum, our opponent suddenly played the very card which we were preparing to lay upon the table. The document was very firm and explicit, but the terms in which it was drawn were so impossible that it was evidently framed with the deliberate purpose of forcing an immediate war. It demanded that the troops upon the borders of the republic should be instantly withdrawn, that all reinforcements which had arrived within the last year should leave South Africa, and that those who were now upon the sea should be sent back without being landed. Failing a satisfactory answer within forty-eight hours, 'the Transvaal Government will with great regret be compelled to regard the action of her Majesty's Government as a formal declaration of war, for the consequences of which it will not hold itself responsible.' The audacious message was received throughout the empire with a mixture of derision and anger. The answer was dispatched next day through Sir Alfred Milner.

It was on October 9th that the somewhat relaxed discussions at the British Colonial Office were abruptly changed by the arrival of a surprising and bold ultimatum from the Boer Government. In battles of strategy, as well as of weapons, it's true that the advantage has often been with our straightforward and rural South African neighbors. This situation was no different. While our Government was cautiously paving the way for an ultimatum, our opponent unexpectedly played the very card we were getting ready to put on the table. The document was strong and clear, but the terms were so unreasonable that it was clearly designed to force an immediate war. It demanded that the troops at the borders of the republic be pulled back immediately, that all reinforcements that had arrived in the past year leave South Africa, and that those currently at sea be turned back without landing. If a satisfactory response wasn't received within forty-eight hours, "the Transvaal Government will, with great regret, be forced to consider the action of Her Majesty's Government as a formal declaration of war, for which it will not accept responsibility." This bold message was met across the empire with a mix of scorn and anger. The reply was sent the next day through Sir Alfred Milner.

'10th October.—Her Majesty's Government have received with great regret the peremptory demands of the Government of the South African Republic, conveyed in your telegram of the 9th October. You will inform the Government of the South African Republic in reply that the conditions demanded by the Government of the South African Republic are such as her Majesty's Government deem it impossible to discuss.'

'10th October.—Her Majesty's Government has received with great regret the urgent demands from the Government of the South African Republic, as communicated in your telegram of the 9th October. Please inform the Government of the South African Republic in response that the conditions they are demanding are seen by Her Majesty's Government as impossible to discuss.'

And so we have come to the end of the long road, past the battle of the pens and the wrangling of tongues, to the arbitration of the Lee-Metford and the Mauser. It was pitiable that it should come to this. These people were as near akin to us as any race which is not our own. They were of the same Frisian stock which peopled our own shores. In habit of mind, in religion, in respect for law, they were as ourselves. Brave, too, they were, and hospitable, with those sporting instincts which are dear to the Anglo-Celtic race. There was no people in the world who had more qualities which we might admire, and not the least of them was that love of independence which it is our proudest boast that we have encouraged in others as well as exercised ourselves. And yet we had come to this pass, that there was no room in all vast South Africa for both of us. We cannot hold ourselves blameless in the matter. 'The evil that men do lives after them,' and it has been told in this small superficial sketch where we have erred in the past in South Africa. On our hands, too, is the Jameson raid, carried out by Englishmen and led by officers who held the Queen's Commission; to us, also, the blame of the shuffling, half-hearted inquiry into that most unjustifiable business. These are matches which helped to set the great blaze alight, and it is we who held them. But the fagots which proved to be so inflammable, they were not of our setting. They were the wrongs done to half the community, the settled resolution of the minority to tax and vex the majority, the determination of a people who had lived two generations in a country to claim that country entirely for themselves. Behind them all there may have been the Dutch ambition to dominate South Africa. It was no petty object for which Britain fought. When a nation struggles uncomplainingly through months of disaster she may claim to have proved her conviction of the justice and necessity of the struggle. Should Dutch ideas or English ideas of government prevail throughout that huge country? The one means freedom for a single race, the other means equal rights to all white men beneath one common law. What each means to the coloured races let history declare. This was the main issue to be determined from the instant that the clock struck five upon the afternoon of Wednesday, October the eleventh, eighteen hundred and ninety-nine. That moment marked the opening of a war destined to determine the fate of South Africa, to work great changes in the British Empire, to seriously affect the future history of the world, and incidentally to alter many of our views as to the art of war. It is the story of this war which, with limited material but with much aspiration to care and candour, I shall now endeavour to tell.

And so we have reached the end of this long journey, past the pen battles and the debates, to the disagreement over the Lee-Enfield and the Mauser. It’s sad that it has come to this. These people were as closely related to us as any other race. They were from the same Frisian background that settled on our shores. In mindset, religion, and respect for the law, they were just like us. They were brave and welcoming, with a love for sports that resonates with the Anglo-Celtic spirit. No other people had more qualities that we admired, and one of the biggest was their love for independence, which we take pride in promoting in others as well as exercising ourselves. And yet, we find ourselves in a situation where there’s no space in all of South Africa for both of us. We can’t pretend to be innocent in this issue. "The evil that men do lives on," and this brief overview highlights where we have gone wrong in South Africa. We also bear the burden of the Jameson raid, executed by Englishmen led by officers who were sworn to the Queen; we are also to blame for the half-hearted inquiry into that outrageous event. These were matches that ignited the great fire, and we were the ones holding them. But the kindling that burned so easily was not of our making. It stemmed from the injustices done to half the population, the determined efforts of the minority to impose taxes and hardships on the majority, and the decision of people who had lived in the country for two generations to claim it entirely for themselves. Behind it all may have been the Dutch ambition to control South Africa. Britain fought not for a trivial goal. When a nation endures months of hardship without complaint, it shows its belief in the justice and necessity of its struggle. Should Dutch or English ideas of governance prevail in that vast country? One allows freedom for a single race, while the other grants equal rights to all white men under one law. What each means for the colored races is something history will reveal. This was the key issue to be resolved from the moment the clock struck five on the afternoon of Wednesday, October 11, 1899. That moment marked the beginning of a war that would determine South Africa’s fate, bring significant changes to the British Empire, impact future history, and also change many of our perspectives on warfare. It is the story of this war, with limited resources but a strong desire for care and honesty, that I will now attempt to tell.





CHAPTER 5. TALANA HILL.

It was on the morning of October 12th, amid cold and mist, that the Boer camps at Sandspruit and Volksrust broke up, and the burghers rode to the war. Some twelve thousand of them, all mounted, with two batteries of eight Krupp guns each, were the invading force from the north, which hoped later to be joined by the Freestaters and by a contingent of Germans and Transvaalers who were to cross the Free State border. It was an hour before dawn that the guns started, and the riflemen followed close behind the last limber, so that the first light of day fell upon the black sinuous line winding down between the hills. A spectator upon the occasion says of them: 'Their faces were a study. For the most part the expression worn was one of determination and bulldog pertinacity. No sign of fear there, nor of wavering. Whatever else may be laid to the charge of the Boer, it may never truthfully be said that he is a coward or a man unworthy of the Briton's steel.' The words were written early in the campaign, and the whole empire will endorse them to-day. Could we have such men as willing fellow-citizens, they are worth more than all the gold mines of their country.

It was the morning of October 12th, cold and misty, when the Boer camps at Sandspruit and Volksrust packed up, and the burghers set off for war. About twelve thousand of them, all mounted and equipped with two batteries of eight Krupp guns each, formed the invading force from the north, which hoped to be joined later by the Freestaters along with a group of Germans and Transvaalers crossing the Free State border. The guns fired an hour before dawn, followed closely by the riflemen trailing behind the last limber, so that the first light of day illuminated the dark, winding line moving between the hills. An observer at the time noted: 'Their faces were a study. Mostly, they wore an expression of determination and stubborn resolve. There was no sign of fear or uncertainty. Whatever else may be said about the Boer, it can never be truthfully claimed that he is a coward or unworthy of the Briton's steel.' These words were penned early in the campaign, and the whole empire would agree with them today. If we could have such men as willing fellow-citizens, they are worth more than all the gold mines of their country.

This main Transvaal body consisted of the commando of Pretoria, which comprised 1800 men, and those of Heidelberg, Middelburg, Krugersdorp, Standerton, Wakkerstroom, and Ermelo, with the State Artillery, an excellent and highly organised body who were provided with the best guns that have ever been brought on to a battlefield. Besides their sixteen Krupps, they dragged with them two heavy six-inch Creusot guns, which were destined to have a very important effect in the earlier part of the campaign. In addition to these native forces there were a certain number of European auxiliaries. The greater part of the German corps were with the Free State forces, but a few hundred came down from the north. There was a Hollander corps of about two hundred and fifty and an Irish—or perhaps more properly an Irish-American-corps of the same number, who rode under the green flag and the harp.

This main Transvaal group included the commando from Pretoria, which had 1,800 men, along with those from Heidelberg, Middelburg, Krugersdorp, Standerton, Wakkerstroom, and Ermelo, as well as the State Artillery, a well-organized unit equipped with the best weapons ever taken to a battlefield. Besides their sixteen Krupp guns, they also brought two heavy six-inch Creusot guns, which were set to have a significant impact early in the campaign. In addition to these local forces, there were some European volunteers. Most of the German corps was with the Free State forces, but a few hundred came down from the north. There was a Dutch corps of about 250 and an Irish—or more accurately an Irish-American—corps of the same size, who rode under the green flag and harp.

The men might, by all accounts, be divided into two very different types. There were the town Boers, smartened and perhaps a little enervated by prosperity and civilisation, men of business and professional men, more alert and quicker than their rustic comrades. These men spoke English rather than Dutch, and indeed there were many men of English descent among them. But the others, the most formidable both in their numbers and in their primitive qualities, were the back-veld Boers, the sunburned, tangle-haired, full-bearded farmers, the men of the Bible and the rifle, imbued with the traditions of their own guerrilla warfare. These were perhaps the finest natural warriors upon earth, marksmen, hunters, accustomed to hard fare and a harder couch. They were rough in their ways and speech, but, in spite of many calumnies and some few unpleasant truths, they might compare with most disciplined armies in their humanity and their desire to observe the usages of war.

The men could be clearly divided into two very different types. On one side, there were the town Boers, polished and maybe a bit softened by success and modern life—business people and professionals, more alert and quicker than their rural counterparts. These men spoke English instead of Dutch, and many of them were of English descent. On the other side were the back-veld Boers, the most formidable in both numbers and their raw qualities. They were the sunburned, wild-haired, full-bearded farmers—the men of the Bible and the rifle—shaped by the traditions of their own guerrilla warfare. They were possibly the best natural warriors on earth, skilled marksmen and hunters, used to tough food and even tougher living conditions. They were rough around the edges in demeanor and speech, but despite many negative stories and a few unpleasant truths, they could stand up to most disciplined armies in their compassion and willingness to follow the rules of war.

A few words here as to the man who led this singular host. Piet Joubert was a Cape Colonist by birth—a fellow countryman, like Kruger himself, of those whom the narrow laws of his new country persisted in regarding as outside the pale. He came from that French Huguenot blood which has strengthened and refined every race which it has touched, and from it he derived a chivalry and generosity which made him respected and liked even by his opponents. In many native broils and in the British campaign of 1881 he had shown himself a capable leader. His record in standing out for the independence of the Transvaal was a very consistent one, for he had not accepted office under the British, as Kruger had done, but had remained always an irreconcilable. Tall and burly, with hard grey eyes and a grim mouth half hidden by his bushy beard, he was a fine type of the men whom he led. He was now in his sixty-fifth year, and the fire of his youth had, as some of the burghers urged, died down within him; but he was experienced, crafty, and warwise, never dashing and never brilliant, but slow, steady, solid, and inexorable.

A few words here about the man who led this unique group. Piet Joubert was born a Cape Colonist—a fellow countryman, like Kruger, of those whom the strict laws of his new country continued to view as outsiders. He came from French Huguenot ancestry, which has strengthened and refined every race it has touched, and from it he inherited a sense of chivalry and generosity that earned him respect and affection even from his rivals. In various conflicts with natives and during the British campaign of 1881, he proved to be a capable leader. His commitment to the independence of the Transvaal was consistent; he had not accepted a position under the British, as Kruger had, but had always remained unyielding. Tall and sturdy, with hard grey eyes and a serious mouth partially hidden by his bushy beard, he was a prime example of the men he led. He was now sixty-five years old, and the vigor of his youth had, as some of the burghers claimed, faded within him; however, he was experienced, cunning, and knowledgeable about war—never flashy and never brilliant, but slow, steady, solid, and relentless.

Besides this northern army there were two other bodies of burghers converging upon Natal. One, consisting of the commandoes from Utrecht and the Swaziland districts, had gathered at Vryheid on the flank of the British position at Dundee. The other, much larger, not less probably than six or seven thousand men, were the contingent from the Free State and a Transvaal corps, together with Schiel's Germans, who were making their way through the various passes, the Tintwa Pass, and Van Reenen's Pass, which lead through the grim range of the Drakensberg and open out upon the more fertile plains of Western Natal. The total force may have been something between twenty and thirty thousand men. By all accounts they were of an astonishingly high heart, convinced that a path of easy victory lay before them, and that nothing could bar their way to the sea. If the British commanders underrated their opponents, there is ample evidence that the mistake was reciprocal.

Besides this northern army, there were two other groups of locals making their way to Natal. One group, made up of commandoes from Utrecht and the Swaziland areas, had gathered at Vryheid, positioned on the side of the British forces at Dundee. The other group, much larger—probably around six or seven thousand men—consisted of reinforcements from the Free State and a Transvaal unit, along with Schiel's Germans, who were navigating various passes like the Tintwa Pass and Van Reenen's Pass. These passes led through the rugged Drakensberg mountain range and opened up to the more fertile plains of Western Natal. The overall force may have numbered between twenty and thirty thousand men. Reports suggest they had an incredibly high morale, firmly believing that an easy victory was within reach and that nothing could stand in their way to the coast. If the British commanders underestimated their opponents, there is plenty of evidence that this mistake was mutual.

A few words now as to the disposition of the British forces, concerning which it must be borne in mind that Sir George White, though in actual command, had only been a few days in the country before war was declared, so that the arrangements fell to General Penn Symons, aided or hampered by the advice of the local political authorities. The main position was at Ladysmith, but an advance post was strongly held at Glencoe, which is five miles from the station of Dundee and forty from Ladysmith. The reason for this dangerous division of force was to secure each end of the Biggarsberg section of the railway, and also to cover the important collieries of that district. The positions chosen seem in each case to show that the British commander was not aware of the number and power of the Boer guns, for each was equally defensible against rifle fire and vulnerable to an artillery attack. In the case of Glencoe it was particularly evident that guns upon the hills above would, as they did, render the position untenable. This outlying post was held by the 1st Leicester Regiment, the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, and the first battalion of Rifles, with the 18th Hussars, three companies of mounted infantry, and three batteries of field artillery, the 13th, 67th, and 69th. The 1st Royal Irish Fusiliers were on their way to reinforce it, and arrived before the first action. Altogether the Glencoe camp contained some four thousand men.

A few words now about the position of the British forces, keeping in mind that Sir George White, although in charge, had only been in the country for a few days before war was declared. So, the arrangements were handled by General Penn Symons, assisted or hindered by advice from local political leaders. The main position was in Ladysmith, but a strong advance post was held at Glencoe, which is five miles from the Dundee station and forty from Ladysmith. This risky division of forces was to secure both ends of the Biggarsberg section of the railway and to protect the important coal mines in the area. The chosen positions seem to indicate that the British commander was unaware of the number and firepower of the Boer guns, as each was defensible against rifle fire but vulnerable to an artillery attack. In Glencoe’s case, it was especially clear that the guns on the hills above would, as they did, make the position impossible to hold. This outpost was held by the 1st Leicester Regiment, the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, and the first battalion of Rifles, along with the 18th Hussars, three companies of mounted infantry, and three field artillery batteries, the 13th, 67th, and 69th. The 1st Royal Irish Fusiliers were on their way to reinforce it and arrived before the first action. In total, the Glencoe camp had about four thousand men.

The main body of the army remained at Ladysmith. These consisted of the 1st Devons, the 1st Liverpools, and the 2nd Gordon Highlanders, with the 1st Gloucesters, the 2nd King's Royal Rifles, and the 2nd Rifle Brigade, reinforced later by the Manchesters. The cavalry included the 5th Dragoon Guards, the 5th Lancers, a detachment of 19th Hussars, the Natal Carabineers, the Natal Mounted Police, and the Border Mounted Rifles, reinforced later by the Imperial Light Horse, a fine body of men raised principally among the refugees from the Rand. For artillery there were the 21st, 42nd, and 53rd batteries of field artillery, and No. 10 Mountain Battery, with the Natal Field Artillery, the guns of which were too light to be of service, and the 23rd Company of Royal Engineers. The whole force, some eight or nine thousand strong, was under the immediate command of Sir George White, with Sir Archibald Hunter, fresh from the Soudan, General French, and General Ian Hamilton as his lieutenants.

The main body of the army stayed in Ladysmith. This included the 1st Devons, the 1st Liverpools, and the 2nd Gordon Highlanders, along with the 1st Gloucesters, the 2nd King's Royal Rifles, and the 2nd Rifle Brigade, later reinforced by the Manchesters. The cavalry comprised the 5th Dragoon Guards, the 5th Lancers, a detachment of 19th Hussars, the Natal Carabineers, the Natal Mounted Police, and the Border Mounted Rifles, with later reinforcements from the Imperial Light Horse, a distinguished group primarily made up of refugees from the Rand. For artillery, there were the 21st, 42nd, and 53rd batteries of field artillery, along with No. 10 Mountain Battery, as well as the Natal Field Artillery, whose guns were too light to be helpful, and the 23rd Company of Royal Engineers. The entire force, numbering around eight or nine thousand, was under the direct command of Sir George White, with Sir Archibald Hunter, recently returned from the Soudan, General French, and General Ian Hamilton serving as his lieutenants.

The first shock of the Boers, then, must fall upon 4000 men. If these could be overwhelmed, there were 8000 more to be defeated or masked. Then what was there between them and the sea? Some detachments of local volunteers, the Durban Light Infantry at Colenso, and the Natal Royal Rifles, with some naval volunteers at Estcourt. With the power of the Boers and their mobility it is inexplicable how the colony was saved. We are of the same blood, the Boers and we, and we show it in our failings. Over-confidence on our part gave them the chance, and over-confidence on theirs prevented them from instantly availing themselves of it. It passed, never to come again.

The first shock for the Boers would hit 4,000 men. If they could be overwhelmed, there were another 8,000 to be defeated or distracted. So, what was standing between them and the sea? A few local volunteer groups, the Durban Light Infantry at Colenso, and the Natal Royal Rifles, along with some naval volunteers at Estcourt. Given the strength and mobility of the Boers, it’s hard to understand how the colony was saved. We share the same heritage as the Boers, and it shows in our weaknesses. Our overconfidence gave them an opportunity, while their overconfidence stopped them from taking advantage of it right away. That moment passed, and it never came back.

The outbreak of war was upon October 11th. On the 12th the Boer forces crossed the frontier both on the north and on the west. On the 13th they occupied Charlestown at the top angle of Natal. On the 15th they had reached Newcastle, a larger town some fifteen miles inside the border. Watchers from the houses saw six miles of canvas-tilted bullock wagons winding down the passes, and learned that this was not a raid but an invasion. At the same date news reached the British headquarters of an advance from the western passes, and of a movement from the Buffalo River on the east. On the 13th Sir George White had made a reconnaissance in force, but had not come in touch with the enemy. On the 15th six of the Natal Police were surrounded and captured at one of the drifts of the Buffalo River. On the 18th our cavalry patrols came into touch with the Boer scouts at Acton Homes and Besters Station, these being the voortrekkers of the Orange Free State force. On the 18th also a detachment was reported from Hadders Spruit, seven miles north of Glencoe Camp. The cloud was drifting up, and it could not be long before it would burst.

The war officially began on October 11th. On the 12th, the Boer forces crossed the border both to the north and the west. By the 13th, they had taken over Charlestown, located at the northern tip of Natal. On the 15th, they reached Newcastle, a larger town about fifteen miles inside the border. Observers from the houses saw a six-mile-long line of canvas-covered bullock wagons winding down the hills and realized that this was not just a raid but an invasion. On the same day, news reached the British headquarters about an advance from the western passes and a movement from the Buffalo River to the east. On the 13th, Sir George White conducted a reconnaissance mission but did not make contact with the enemy. On the 15th, six members of the Natal Police were surrounded and captured at one of the crossings of the Buffalo River. On the 18th, our cavalry patrols encountered Boer scouts at Acton Homes and Besters Station, who were the voortrekkers of the Orange Free State force. On the 18th, a detachment was also reported from Hadders Spruit, seven miles north of Glencoe Camp. The storm clouds were gathering, and it wouldn’t be long before they burst.

Two days later, on the early morning of October 20th, the forces came at last into collision. At half-past three in the morning, well before daylight, the mounted infantry picket at the junction of the roads from Landmans and Vants Drifts was fired into by the Doornberg commando, and retired upon its supports. Two companies of the Dublin Fusiliers were sent out, and at five o'clock on a fine but misty morning the whole of Symons's force was under arms with the knowledge that the Boers were pushing boldly towards them. The khaki-clad lines of fighting men stood in their long thin ranks staring up at the curves of the saddle-back hills to the north and east of them, and straining their eyes to catch a glimpse of the enemy. Why these same saddle-back hills were not occupied by our own people is, it must be confessed, an insoluble mystery. In a hollow on one flank were the 18th Hussars and the mounted infantry. On the other were the eighteen motionless guns, limbered up and ready, the horses fidgeting and stamping in the raw morning air.

Two days later, early in the morning on October 20th, the forces finally clashed. At 3:30 AM, well before dawn, the mounted infantry picket at the junction of the roads from Landmans and Vants Drifts was fired upon by the Doornberg commando and fell back to its supports. Two companies of the Dublin Fusiliers were dispatched, and by five o'clock on a clear but misty morning, all of Symons's forces were mobilized, aware that the Boers were boldly advancing towards them. The khaki-clad lines of soldiers stood in their long, thin ranks, gazing up at the rolling hills to the north and east, trying to spot the enemy. It's a puzzling mystery why our troops didn’t occupy those same hills. On one side, the 18th Hussars and the mounted infantry were positioned in a hollow, while on the other side, eighteen motionless guns were limbered up and ready, the horses fidgeting and stamping in the chilly morning air.

And then suddenly—could that be they? An officer with a telescope stared intently and pointed. Another and another turned a steady field glass towards the same place. And then the men could see also, and a little murmur of interest ran down the ranks.

And then suddenly—could that be them? An officer with a telescope stared intently and pointed. Another and another turned their binoculars towards the same spot. And then the men could see too, and a slight murmur of interest spread through the ranks.

A long sloping hill—Talana Hill—olive-green in hue, was stretching away in front of them. At the summit it rose into a rounded crest. The mist was clearing, and the curve was hard-outlined against the limpid blue of the morning sky. On this, some two and a half miles or three miles off, a little group of black dots had appeared. The clear edge of the skyline had become serrated with moving figures. They clustered into a knot, then opened again, and then—

A long, sloping hill—Talana Hill—olive-green in color was stretching out in front of them. At the top, it formed a rounded crest. The mist was lifting, and the curve stood out clearly against the bright blue of the morning sky. About two and a half to three miles away, a small group of black dots had appeared. The clear edge of the skyline had become jagged with moving figures. They gathered together, then spread apart, and then—

There had been no smoke, but there came a long crescendo hoot, rising into a shrill wail. The shell hummed over the soldiers like a great bee, and sloshed into soft earth behind them. Then another—and yet another—and yet another. But there was no time to heed them, for there was the hillside and there the enemy. So at it again with the good old murderous obsolete heroic tactics of the British tradition! There are times when, in spite of science and book-lore, the best plan is the boldest plan, and it is well to fly straight at your enemy's throat, facing the chance that your strength may fail before you can grasp it. The cavalry moved off round the enemy's left flank. The guns dashed to the front, unlimbered, and opened fire. The infantry were moved round in the direction of Sandspruit, passing through the little town of Dundee, where the women and children came to the doors and windows to cheer them. It was thought that the hill was more accessible from that side. The Leicesters and one field battery—the 67th—were left behind to protect the camp and to watch the Newcastle Road upon the west. At seven in the morning all was ready for the assault.

There hadn’t been any smoke, but then there was a long, rising hoot that turned into a piercing wail. The shell hummed overhead like a giant bee and slammed into the soft ground behind the soldiers. Then another one—and another—and yet another. But there was no time to pay attention to them, because there was the hillside and the enemy right there. So they launched into action again with the classic, brutal, old-school tactics of the British tradition! Sometimes, despite all the science and theory, the boldest approach is the best approach, and it’s smart to charge straight at the enemy, even if it means your strength might falter before you reach them. The cavalry moved around the enemy's left flank. The guns rushed to the front, set up, and began firing. The infantry headed toward Sandspruit, passing through the small town of Dundee, where women and children came to their doors and windows to cheer them on. It was believed that the hill would be easier to reach from that side. The Leicesters and one field battery—the 67th—were left behind to guard the camp and watch the Newcastle Road to the west. By seven in the morning, everything was set for the assault.

Two military facts of importance had already been disclosed. One was that the Boer percussion-shells were useless in soft ground, as hardly any of them exploded; the other that the Boer guns could outrange our ordinary fifteen-pounder field gun, which had been the one thing perhaps in the whole British equipment upon which we were prepared to pin our faith. The two batteries, the 13th and the 69th, were moved nearer, first to 3000, and then at last to 2300 yards, at which range they quickly dominated the guns upon the hill. Other guns had opened from another crest to the east of Talana, but these also were mastered by the fire of the 13th Battery. At 7.30 the infantry were ordered to advance, which they did in open order, extended to ten paces. The Dublin Fusiliers formed the first line, the Rifles the second, and the Irish Fusiliers the third.

Two important military facts had already come to light. One was that the Boer percussion shells were ineffective in soft ground, as very few of them detonated; the other was that the Boer guns could outdistance our regular fifteen-pound field gun, which was probably the one piece of British equipment we had genuinely relied on. The two batteries, the 13th and the 69th, were moved closer, first to 3000 yards, and then finally to 2300 yards, where they quickly took control of the guns on the hill. Other guns had opened fire from another ridge to the east of Talana, but these were also overpowered by the fire from the 13th Battery. At 7:30, the infantry were ordered to advance, which they did in an open formation, spread out ten paces apart. The Dublin Fusiliers made up the front line, the Rifles the second, and the Irish Fusiliers the third.

The first thousand yards of the advance were over open grassland, where the range was long, and the yellow brown of the khaki blended with the withered veld. There were few casualties until the wood was reached, which lay halfway up the long slope of the hill. It was a plantation of larches, some hundreds of yards across and nearly as many deep. On the left side of this wood—that is, the left side to the advancing troops—there stretched a long nullah or hollow, which ran perpendicularly to the hill, and served rather as a conductor of bullets than as a cover. So severe was the fire at this point that both in the wood and in the nullah the troops lay down to avoid it. An officer of Irish Fusiliers has narrated how in trying to cut the straps from a fallen private a razor lent him for that purpose by a wounded sergeant was instantly shot out of his hand. The gallant Symons, who had refused to dismount, was shot through the stomach and fell from his horse mortally wounded. With an excessive gallantry, he had not only attracted the enemy's fire by retaining his horse, but he had been accompanied throughout the action by an orderly bearing a red pennon. 'Have they got the hill? Have they got the hill?' was his one eternal question as they carried him dripping to the rear. It was at the edge of the wood that Colonel Sherston met his end.

The first thousand yards of the advance were across open grassland, where the distance was long, and the yellow-brown of the khaki blended with the dry veld. There were few casualties until they reached the woods, which were halfway up the long slope of the hill. It was a forest of larches, several hundred yards wide and almost as deep. On the left side of this forest—that is, the left side for the advancing troops—there was a long nullah or hollow, which ran perpendicular to the hill and acted more as a channel for bullets than as a shield. The gunfire was so intense at this point that both in the woods and in the nullah, the troops lay down to avoid it. An officer of the Irish Fusiliers recounted how, while trying to cut the straps from a fallen soldier, a razor borrowed from a wounded sergeant was instantly shot out of his hand. The brave Symons, who refused to dismount, was shot through the stomach and fell from his horse, fatally wounded. In a display of remarkable bravery, he not only drew enemy fire by staying on his horse, but he was also accompanied throughout the battle by a soldier carrying a red pennon. "Do they have the hill? Do they have the hill?" was his constant question as they carried him, bleeding, to the rear. It was at the edge of the woods that Colonel Sherston met his fate.

From now onwards it was as much a soldiers' battle as Inkermann. In the shelter of the wood the more eager of the three battalions had pressed to the front until the fringe of the trees was lined by men from all of them. The difficulty of distinguishing particular regiments where all were clad alike made it impossible in the heat of action to keep any sort of formation. So hot was the fire that for the time the advance was brought to a standstill, but the 69th battery, firing shrapnel at a range of 1400 yards, subdued the rifle fire, and about half-past eleven the infantry were able to push on once more.

From this point on, it was just as much a soldiers' battle as Inkermann. In the safety of the woods, the more eager of the three battalions had pushed to the front until the edge of the trees was filled with men from all of them. The difficulty of telling different regiments apart, since they all wore the same uniforms, made it impossible to maintain any sort of formation in the heat of the action. The fire was so intense that the advance temporarily came to a halt, but the 69th battery, firing shrapnel from a distance of 1400 yards, suppressed the rifle fire, and around half-past eleven, the infantry were able to move forward again.

Above the wood there was an open space some hundreds of yards across, bounded by a rough stone wall built for herding cattle. A second wall ran at right angles to this down towards the wood. An enfilading rifle fire had been sweeping across this open space, but the wall in front does not appear to have been occupied by the enemy, who held the kopje above it. To avoid the cross fire the soldiers ran in single file under the shelter of the wall, which covered them to the right, and so reached the other wall across their front. Here there was a second long delay, the men dribbling up from below, and firing over the top of the wall and between the chinks of the stones. The Dublin Fusiliers, through being in a more difficult position, had been unable to get up as quickly as the others, and most of the hard-breathing excited men who crowded under the wall were of the Rifles and of the Irish Fusiliers. The air was so full of bullets that it seemed impossible to live upon the other side of this shelter. Two hundred yards intervened between the wall and the crest of the kopje. And yet the kopje had to be cleared if the battle were to be won.

Above the woods, there was an open area several hundred yards wide, surrounded by a rough stone wall built for herding cattle. A second wall ran perpendicular to this one, extending down toward the woods. An enfilading rifle fire had been sweeping across this open space, but the wall in front didn’t seem to be occupied by the enemy, who held the hill above it. To avoid the crossfire, the soldiers moved in single file under the protection of the wall, which covered them on the right, and made it to the other wall in front of them. Here, there was another long delay, with men trickling up from below, firing over the top of the wall and through the gaps between the stones. The Dublin Fusiliers, being in a tougher position, were unable to regroup as quickly as the others, and most of the out-of-breath, excited men crowded under the wall were from the Rifles and the Irish Fusiliers. The air was so filled with bullets that it seemed impossible to survive on the other side of this cover. There were two hundred yards between the wall and the top of the hill. Still, the hill had to be cleared if the battle was going to be won.

Out of the huddled line of crouching men an officer sprang shouting, and a score of soldiers vaulted over the wall and followed at his heels. It was Captain Connor, of the Irish Fusiliers, but his personal magnetism carried up with him some of the Rifles as well as men of his own command. He and half his little forlorn hope were struck down—he, alas! to die the same night—but there were other leaders as brave to take his place. 'Forrard away, men, forrard away!' cried Nugent, of the Rifles. Three bullets struck him, but he continued to drag himself up the boulder-studded hill. Others followed, and others, from all sides they came running, the crouching, yelling, khaki-clad figures, and the supports rushed up from the rear. For a time they were beaten down by their own shrapnel striking into them from behind, which is an amazing thing when one considers that the range was under 2000 yards. It was here, between the wall and the summit, that Colonel Gunning, of the Rifles, and many other brave men met their end, some by our own bullets and some by those of the enemy; but the Boers thinned away in front of them, and the anxious onlookers from the plain below saw the waving helmets on the crest, and learned at last that all was well.

Out of the group of crouching men, an officer jumped up shouting, and a bunch of soldiers jumped over the wall to follow him. It was Captain Connor of the Irish Fusiliers, but his charisma also drew in some of the Rifles as well as men from his own unit. He and half of his small group were taken down—tragically, he would die the same night—but there were other brave leaders ready to step up. "Forward, men, forward!" shouted Nugent of the Rifles. Three bullets hit him, but he kept pulling himself up the rocky hill. Others followed, and from all sides they came running, the crouching, shouting figures in khaki, while reinforcements rushed up from the back. For a while, they were pushed back by their own shrapnel hitting them from behind, which is surprising considering the distance was under 2000 yards. It was here, between the wall and the top, that Colonel Gunning of the Rifles and many other brave men lost their lives, some from our own bullets and some from the enemy's; but the Boers thinned out in front of them, and the worried onlookers from the plain below saw the helmets waving on the crest and finally realized that everything was okay.

But it was, it must be confessed, a Pyrrhic victory. We had our hill, but what else had we? The guns which had been silenced by our fire had been removed from the kopje. The commando which seized the hill was that of Lucas Meyer, and it is computed that he had with him about 4000 men. This figure includes those under the command of Erasmus, who made halfhearted demonstrations against the British flank. If the shirkers be eliminated, it is probable that there were not more than a thousand actual combatants upon the hill. Of this number about fifty were killed and a hundred wounded. The British loss at Talana Hill itself was 41 killed and 180 wounded, but among the killed were many whom the army could ill spare. The gallant but optimistic Symons, Gunning of the Rifles, Sherston, Connor, Hambro, and many other brave men died that day. The loss of officers was out of all proportion to that of the men.

But it has to be admitted, it was a hollow victory. We held the hill, but what else did we gain? The artillery that we had silenced had been taken away from the ridge. The commando that took the hill was led by Lucas Meyer, and it's estimated he had around 4000 men with him. This number includes those under Erasmus, who only made half-hearted attempts against the British flank. If we exclude the slackers, it's likely there were no more than a thousand actual fighters on the hill. Of that group, about fifty were killed and a hundred were wounded. The British casualties at Talana Hill itself were 41 killed and 180 wounded, but among the dead were many officers that the army could hardly afford to lose. The brave but overly optimistic Symons, Gunning of the Rifles, Sherston, Connor, Hambro, and many other courageous men lost their lives that day. The loss of officers was disproportionately high compared to that of the soldiers.

An incident which occurred immediately after the action did much to rob the British of the fruits of the victory. Artillery had pushed up the moment that the hill was carried, and had unlimbered on Smith's Nek between the two hills, from which the enemy, in broken groups of 50 and 100, could be seen streaming away. A fairer chance for the use of shrapnel has never been. But at this instant there ran from an old iron church on the reverse side of the hill, which had been used all day as a Boer hospital, a man with a white flag. It is probable that the action was in good faith, and that it was simply intended to claim a protection for the ambulance party which followed him. But the too confiding gunner in command appears to have thought that an armistice had been declared, and held his hand during those precious minutes which might have turned a defeat into a rout. The chance passed, never to return. The double error of firing into our own advance and of failing to fire into the enemy's retreat makes the battle one which cannot be looked back to with satisfaction by our gunners.

An incident that happened right after the battle significantly diminished the British’s victory. Artillery had moved up as soon as the hill was taken, positioning itself on Smith's Nek between the two hills, where we could see the enemy retreating in groups of 50 to 100. It was a prime opportunity for shrapnel to be used. But at that moment, a man carrying a white flag came running from an old iron church on the other side of the hill, which had served all day as a Boer hospital. It’s likely that the action was sincere and meant to provide protection for the ambulance team that followed him. However, the overly trusting gunner in charge seems to have thought an armistice was in effect and hesitated during those crucial minutes that might have turned a defeat into a rout. The opportunity was lost, never to return. The dual mistake of firing on our own forces and not targeting the enemy’s retreat means this battle can't be viewed with satisfaction by our gunners.

In the meantime some miles away another train of events had led to a complete disaster to our small cavalry force—a disaster which robbed our dearly bought infantry victory of much of its importance. That action alone was undoubtedly a victorious one, but the net result of the day's fighting cannot be said to have been certainly in our favour. It was Wellington who asserted that his cavalry always got him into scrapes, and the whole of British military history might furnish examples of what he meant. Here again our cavalry got into trouble. Suffice it for the civilian to chronicle the fact, and leave it to the military critic to portion out the blame.

In the meantime, several miles away, another sequence of events had led to a complete disaster for our small cavalry unit—a disaster that diminished the significance of our hard-won infantry victory. That battle was undoubtedly a win, but the overall outcome of the day's fighting can't be said to have clearly favored us. It was Wellington who claimed that his cavalry always landed him in trouble, and British military history provides plenty of examples of what he meant. Once again, our cavalry found itself in a tough spot. It's enough for civilians to note the fact and let military experts assign the blame.

One company of mounted infantry (that of the Rifles) had been told off to form an escort for the guns. The rest of the mounted infantry with part of the 18th Hussars (Colonel Moller) had moved round the right flank until they reached the right rear of the enemy. Such a movement, had Lucas Meyer been the only opponent, would have been above criticism; but knowing, as we did, that there were several commandoes converging upon Glencoe it was obviously taking a very grave and certain risk to allow the cavalry to wander too far from support. They were soon entangled in broken country and attacked by superior numbers of the Boers. There was a time when they might have exerted an important influence upon the action by attacking the Boer ponies behind the hills, but the opportunity was allowed to pass. An attempt was made to get back to the army, and a series of defensive positions were held to cover the retreat, but the enemy's fire became too hot to allow them to be retained. Every route save one appeared to be blocked, so the horsemen took this, which led them into the heart of a second commando of the enemy. Finding no way through, the force took up a defensive position, part of them in a farm and part on a kopje which overlooked it.

One unit of mounted infantry (the Rifles) had been assigned to escort the artillery. The rest of the mounted infantry, along with some of the 18th Hussars (under Colonel Moller), had moved around to the right flank, reaching the rear of the enemy. If Lucas Meyer had been their only opponent, this maneuver would have been unimpeachable; however, knowing that several commandoes were converging on Glencoe, it was clearly a serious and risky decision to allow the cavalry to stray too far from support. They soon found themselves caught in rough terrain and were attacked by larger numbers of Boers. There was a moment when they could have made a significant impact on the battle by attacking the Boer ponies behind the hills, but they missed that chance. They tried to return to the main army and held a series of defensive positions to cover their retreat, but the enemy's fire became too intense to maintain those positions. Every route except one seemed blocked, so the horsemen took the open path, which led them into the center of a second enemy commando. Finding no exit, they established a defensive position, with some taking shelter in a farm and others on a hill overlooking it.

The party consisted of two troops of Hussars, one company of mounted infantry of the Dublin Fusiliers, and one section of the mounted infantry of the Rifles—about two hundred men in all. They were subjected to a hot fire for some hours, many being killed and wounded. Guns were brought up, and fired shell into the farmhouse. At 4.30 the force, being in a perfectly hopeless position, laid down their arms. Their ammunition was gone, many of their horses had stampeded, and they were hemmed in by very superior numbers, so that no slightest slur can rest upon the survivors for their decision to surrender, though the movements which brought them to such a pass are more open to criticism. They were the vanguard of that considerable body of humiliated and bitter-hearted men who were to assemble at the capital of our brave and crafty enemy. The remainder of the 18th Hussars, who under Major Knox had been detached from the main force and sent across the Boer rear, underwent a somewhat similar experience, but succeeded in extricating themselves with a loss of six killed and ten wounded. Their efforts were by no means lost, as they engaged the attention of a considerable body of Boers during the day and were able to bring some prisoners back with them.

The party was made up of two troops of Hussars, one company of mounted infantry from the Dublin Fusiliers, and a section of mounted infantry from the Rifles—about two hundred men total. They faced heavy gunfire for several hours, resulting in many casualties. Artillery was brought in and fired shells at the farmhouse. At 4:30, the force, finding themselves in a completely hopeless situation, surrendered. They had run out of ammunition, many of their horses had panicked and fled, and they were surrounded by much larger numbers. No blame should be placed on the survivors for choosing to surrender, even though the decisions that led them to this point can be critiqued. They were at the forefront of a significant group of defeated and disheartened men set to gather at the capital of our brave and cunning enemy. The remainder of the 18th Hussars, under Major Knox, who had been separated from the main force and sent around the Boer rear, experienced a somewhat similar situation but managed to escape with six killed and ten wounded. Their efforts were not in vain, as they drew the attention of a large group of Boers that day and managed to bring back some prisoners.

The battle of Talana Hill was a tactical victory but a strategic defeat. It was a crude frontal attack without any attempt at even a feint of flanking, but the valour of the troops, from general to private, carried it through. The force was in a position so radically false that the only use which they could make of a victory was to cover their own retreat. From all points Boer commandoes were converging upon it, and already it was understood that the guns at their command were heavier than any which could be placed against them. This was made more clear on October 21st, the day after the battle, when the force, having withdrawn overnight from the useless hill which they had captured, moved across to a fresh position on the far side of the railway. At four in the afternoon a very heavy gun opened from a distant hill, altogether beyond the extreme range of our artillery, and plumped shell after shell into our camp. It was the first appearance of the great Creusot. An officer with several men of the Leicesters, and some of our few remaining cavalry, were bit. The position was clearly impossible, so at two in the morning of the 22nd the whole force was moved to a point to the south of the town of Dundee. On the same day a reconnaissance was made in the direction of Glencoe Station, but the passes were found to be strongly occupied, and the little army marched back again to its original position. The command had fallen to Colonel Yule, who justly considered that his men were dangerously and uselessly exposed, and that his correct strategy was to fall back, if it were still possible, and join the main body at Ladysmith, even at the cost of abandoning the two hundred sick and wounded who lay with General Symons in the hospital at Dundee. It was a painful necessity, but no one who studies the situation can have any doubt of its wisdom. The retreat was no easy task, a march by road of some sixty or seventy miles through a very rough country with an enemy pressing on every side. Its successful completion without any loss or any demoralisation of the troops is perhaps as fine a military exploit as any of our early victories. Through the energetic and loyal co-operation of Sir George White, who fought the actions of Elandslaagte and of Rietfontein in order to keep the way open for them, and owing mainly to the skillful guidance of Colonel Dartnell, of the Natal Police, they succeeded in their critical manoeuvre. On October 23rd they were at Beith, on the 24th at Waselibank Spruit, on the 25th at Sunday River, and next morning they marched, sodden with rain, plastered with mud, dog-tired, but in the best of spirits, into Ladysmith amid the cheers of their comrades. A battle, six days without settled sleep, four days without a proper meal, winding up with a single march of thirty-two miles over heavy ground and through a pelting rain storm—that was the record of the Dundee column. They had fought and won, they had striven and toiled to the utmost capacity of manhood, and the end of it all was that they had reached the spot which they should never have left. But their endurance could not be lost—no worthy deed is ever lost. Like the light division, when they marched their fifty odd unbroken miles to be present at Talavera, they leave a memory and a standard behind them which is more important than success. It is by the tradition of such sufferings and such endurance that others in other days are nerved to do the like.

The battle of Talana Hill was a tactical win but a strategic loss. It was a straightforward frontal assault without any attempts to flank the enemy, yet the bravery of the troops, from the general down to the private, saw them through. They were in such a poor position that the only value of a victory would be to cover their own retreat. Boer commandos were closing in from all sides, and it was already clear that the artillery they had was more powerful than anything they could face. This became even more evident on October 21st, the day after the battle, when the force pulled back overnight from the useless hill they had taken and moved to a new position on the far side of the railway. At four in the afternoon, a heavy gun fired from a distant hill, well beyond the reach of our artillery, shelling our camp relentlessly. This was the first appearance of the infamous Creusot. An officer from the Leicesters, along with some of our remaining cavalry, were hit. The situation was clearly untenable, so at two in the morning on the 22nd, the entire force was moved to a location south of Dundee. On the same day, a reconnaissance was carried out towards Glencoe Station, but they found the passes heavily occupied, leading the small army to return to their original position. Command had passed to Colonel Yule, who rightly felt that his men were dangerously exposed and that it was better to fall back, if possible, and reunite with the main force at Ladysmith, even if it meant leaving behind the two hundred sick and wounded with General Symons at the hospital in Dundee. It was a tough decision, but anyone who examines the situation can see it was wise. The retreat was no simple task; they had to march about sixty or seventy miles through rough terrain with the enemy closing in on all sides. Accomplishing it without losses or demoralization of the troops is one of the most impressive military feats of our early victories. Thanks to the energetic and loyal support of Sir George White, who fought in the battles of Elandslaagte and Rietfontein to keep their path clear, and primarily due to the skilled leadership of Colonel Dartnell from the Natal Police, they succeeded in their crucial maneuver. On October 23rd, they reached Beith, on the 24th they were at Waselibank Spruit, on the 25th at Sunday River, and by the next morning, they marched, soaked with rain and caked in mud, utterly exhausted but in high spirits, into Ladysmith to the cheers of their comrades. They had battled for six days with no proper sleep, four days without a decent meal, culminating in a single march of thirty-two miles over difficult ground in pouring rain—this was the record of the Dundee column. They had fought and conquered; they had pushed themselves to the limit, and in the end, they returned to the place they should never have left. Yet their perseverance was not in vain—no honorable deed goes unrecognized. Just like the light division, when they marched their fifty-odd unbroken miles to be at Talavera, they leave behind a legacy and a standard that is more meaningful than mere success. It is through the tradition of such suffering and endurance that inspires future generations to do the same.





CHAPTER 6. ELANDSLAAGTE AND RIETFONTEIN.

While the Glencoe force had struck furiously at the army of Lucas Meyer, and had afterwards by hard marching disengaged itself from the numerous dangers which threatened it, its comrades at Ladysmith had loyally co-operated in drawing off the attention of the enemy and keeping the line of retreat open.

While the Glencoe troops had attacked Lucas Meyer's army fiercely and had later managed to escape from the many dangers that surrounded them by marching hard, their allies at Ladysmith had faithfully helped by distracting the enemy and maintaining the escape route.

On October 20th—the same day as the Battle of Talana Hill—the line was cut by the Boers at a point nearly midway between Dundee and Ladysmith. A small body of horsemen were the forerunners of a considerable commando, composed of Freestaters, Transvaalers, and Germans, who had advanced into Natal through Botha's Pass under the command of General Koch. They had with them the two Maxim-Nordenfelds which had been captured from the Jameson raiders, and were now destined to return once more to British hands. Colonel Schiel, the German artillerist, had charge of these guns.

On October 20th—the same day as the Battle of Talana Hill—the Boers cut the line at a spot almost halfway between Dundee and Ladysmith. A small group of horsemen led the way for a larger commando made up of Freestaters, Transvaalers, and Germans, who had entered Natal through Botha's Pass under General Koch's command. They brought with them the two Maxim-Nordenfeld guns that had been captured from the Jameson raiders, and these were now set to return to British control. Colonel Schiel, the German artillery expert, was in charge of these guns.

On the evening of that day General French, with a strong reconnoitering party, including the Natal Carabineers, the 5th Lancers, and the 21st battery, had defined the enemy's position. Next morning (the 21st) he returned, but either the enemy had been reinforced during the night or he had underrated them the day before, for the force which he took with him was too weak for any serious attack. He had one battery of the Natal artillery, with their little seven-pounder popguns, five squadrons of the Imperial Horse, and, in the train which slowly accompanied his advance, half a battalion of the Manchester Regiment. Elated by the news of Talana Hill, and anxious to emulate their brothers of Dundee, the little force moved out of Ladysmith in the early morning.

On the evening of that day, General French, with a strong reconnoitering party that included the Natal Carabineers, the 5th Lancers, and the 21st battery, had identified the enemy's position. The next morning (the 21st), he returned, but either the enemy had been reinforced overnight or he had underestimated them the day before, as the force he took with him was too weak for any serious attack. He had one battery of the Natal artillery, with their small seven-pounder popguns, five squadrons of the Imperial Horse, and, in the train that slowly followed his advance, half a battalion of the Manchester Regiment. Excited by the news from Talana Hill and eager to match the efforts of their comrades in Dundee, the small force set out from Ladysmith in the early morning.

Some at least of the men were animated by feelings such as seldom find a place in the breast of the British soldier as he marches into battle. A sense of duty, a belief in the justice of his cause, a love for his regiment and for his country, these are the common incentives of every soldier. But to the men of the Imperial Light Horse, recruited as they were from among the British refugees of the Rand, there was added a burning sense of injustice, and in many cases a bitter hatred against the men whose rule had weighed so heavily upon them. In this singular corps the ranks were full of wealthy men and men of education, who, driven from their peaceful vocations in Johannesburg, were bent upon fighting their way back to them again. A most unmerited slur had been cast upon their courage in connection with the Jameson raid—a slur which they and other similar corps have washed out for ever in their own blood and that of their enemy. Chisholm, a fiery little Lancer, was in command, with Karri Davis and Wools-Sampson, the two stalwarts who had preferred Pretoria Gaol to the favours of Kruger, as his majors. The troopers were on fire at the news that a cartel had arrived in Ladysmith the night before, purporting to come from the Johannesburg Boers and Hollanders, asking what uniform the Light Horse wore, as they were anxious to meet them in battle. These men were fellow townsmen and knew each other well. They need not have troubled about the uniform, for before evening the Light Horse were near enough for them to know their faces.

Some of the men were filled with feelings that rarely find a place in the heart of a British soldier as he heads into battle. A sense of duty, a belief in the righteousness of his cause, a love for his regiment and his country—these are the usual motivations of any soldier. But for the men of the Imperial Light Horse, who were recruited from among the British refugees of the Rand, there was an intense feeling of injustice, and in many cases, a deep resentment against the people whose rule had oppressed them. In this unique unit, the ranks were filled with wealthy and educated individuals who, forced from their peaceful lives in Johannesburg, were determined to fight their way back to them. They faced an undeserved blow to their bravery related to the Jameson raid— a blow they and other similar groups have avenged with their own blood and that of their enemies. Chisholm, a fiery little Lancer, was in command, along with Karri Davis and Wools-Sampson, the two strong leaders who had chosen Pretoria Jail over the favors of Kruger, as his majors. The troopers were fired up by the news that a message had arrived in Ladysmith the night before, claiming to come from the Johannesburg Boers and Hollanders, asking what uniform the Light Horse wore, as they were eager to confront them in battle. These men were from the same town and knew each other well. They didn’t need to worry about the uniform, because by evening, the Light Horse were close enough for them to recognize each other’s faces.

It was about eight o'clock on a bright summer morning that the small force came in contact with a few scattered Boer outposts, who retired, firing, before the advance of the Imperial Light Horse. As they fell back the green and white tents of the invaders came into view upon the russet-coloured hillside of Elandslaagte. Down at the red brick railway station the Boers could be seen swarming out of the buildings in which they had spent the night. The little Natal guns, firing with obsolete black powder, threw a few shells into the station, one of which, it is said, penetrated a Boer ambulance which could not be seen by the gunners. The accident was to be regretted, but as no patients could have been in the ambulance the mischance was not a serious one.

It was around eight o'clock on a bright summer morning when the small group came across a few scattered Boer outposts, who retreated while shooting at the advancing Imperial Light Horse. As they fell back, the green and white tents of the invaders appeared on the reddish hillside of Elandslaagte. Down at the red brick train station, the Boers could be seen rushing out of the buildings where they had spent the night. The small Natal cannons, firing with outdated black powder, launched a few shells into the station, one of which reportedly hit a Boer ambulance that the gunners couldn't see. The incident was unfortunate, but since there were no patients in the ambulance, the mishap wasn't too serious.

But the busy, smoky little seven-pounder guns were soon to meet their master. Away up on the distant hillside, a long thousand yards beyond their own furthest range, there was a sudden bright flash. No smoke, only the throb of flame, and then the long sibilant scream of the shell, and the thud as it buried itself in the ground under a limber. Such judgment of range would have delighted the most martinet of inspectors at Okehampton. Bang came another, and another, and another, right into the heart of the battery. The six little guns lay back at their extremest angle, and all barked together in impotent fury. Another shell pitched over them, and the officer in command lowered his field-glass in despair as he saw his own shells bursting far short upon the hillside. Jameson's defeat does not seem to have been due to any defect in his artillery. French, peering and pondering, soon came to the conclusion that there were too many Boers for him, and that if those fifteen-pounders desired target practice they should find some other mark than the Natal Field Artillery. A few curt orders, and his whole force was making its way to the rear. There, out of range of those perilous guns, they halted, the telegraph wire was cut, a telephone attachment was made, and French whispered his troubles into the sympathetic ear of Ladysmith. He did not whisper in vain. What he had to say was that where he had expected a few hundred riflemen he found something like two thousand, and that where he expected no guns he found two very excellent ones. The reply was that by road and by rail as many men as could be spared were on their way to join him.

But the busy, smoky little seven-pounder guns were soon to encounter their master. Far up on the distant hillside, a sudden bright flash appeared, a thousand yards beyond their maximum range. No smoke, just the pulse of flame, followed by the long, whistling scream of the shell and the thud as it struck the ground beneath a limber. Such accuracy would have impressed even the strictest inspectors at Okehampton. Boom went another, and another, and another, hitting right in the heart of the battery. The six little guns positioned at their extreme angle all barked together in powerless rage. Another shell fell over them, and the officer in charge lowered his field-glass in despair as he saw his own shells bursting far short on the hillside. Jameson's defeat didn’t seem to be due to any flaw in his artillery. French, watching and thinking, quickly realized there were too many Boers for him, and if those fifteen-pounders wanted target practice, they should look for a different target than the Natal Field Artillery. A few quick orders, and his entire force began to retreat. There, out of reach of those dangerous guns, they stopped; the telegraph wire was cut, a telephone line was set up, and French confided his troubles into the sympathetic ear of Ladysmith. He didn’t whisper in vain. What he had to say was that where he had expected a few hundred riflemen, he found around two thousand, and where he expected no guns, he discovered two very good ones. The response was that as many men as could be spared were on their way to join him by road and rail.

Soon they began to drop in, those useful reinforcements—first the Devons, quiet, business-like, reliable; then the Gordons, dashing, fiery, brilliant. Two squadrons of the 5th Lancers, the 42nd R.F.A., the 21st R.F.A., another squadron of Lancers, a squadron of the 5th Dragoon Guards—French began to feel that he was strong enough for the task in front of him. He had a decided superiority of numbers and of guns. But the others were on their favourite defensive on a hill. It would be a fair fight and a deadly one.

Soon they started to arrive, those helpful reinforcements—first the Devons, calm, efficient, dependable; then the Gordons, flashy, passionate, impressive. Two squadrons of the 5th Lancers, the 42nd R.F.A., the 21st R.F.A., another squadron of Lancers, a squadron of the 5th Dragoon Guards—French began to feel that he was strong enough for the task ahead. He had a clear advantage in numbers and artillery. But the others were on their favorite defensive position on a hill. It would be a fair fight and a deadly one.

It was late after noon before the advance began. It was hard, among those billowing hills, to make out the exact limits of the enemy's position. All that was certain was that they were there, and that we meant having them out if it were humanly possible. 'The enemy are there,' said Ian Hamilton to his infantry; 'I hope you will shift them out before sunset—in fact I know you will.' The men cheered and laughed. In long open lines they advanced across the veld, while the thunder of the two batteries behind them told the Boer gunners that it was their turn now to know what it was to be outmatched.

It was late afternoon before the advance started. It was tough, among those rolling hills, to clearly see the boundaries of the enemy's position. What was certain was that they were there, and we intended to move them out if it was possible. "The enemy is up ahead," Ian Hamilton told his infantry; "I hope you'll push them out before sunset—in fact, I know you will." The men cheered and laughed. In long open lines, they moved forward across the open land, while the thunder from the two batteries behind them informed the Boer gunners that it was now their turn to face being outmatched.

The idea was to take the position by a front and a flank attack, but there seems to have been some difficulty in determining which was the front and which the flank. In fact, it was only by trying that one could know. General White with his staff had arrived from Ladysmith, but refused to take the command out of French's hands. It is typical of White's chivalrous spirit that within ten days he refused to identify himself with a victory when it was within his right to do so, and took the whole responsibility for a disaster at which he was not present. Now he rode amid the shells and watched the able dispositions of his lieutenant.

The plan was to seize the position with both a front and a flank attack, but there seemed to be some confusion about which was the front and which was the flank. In fact, the only way to know was to give it a try. General White had arrived from Ladysmith with his staff but chose not to take command away from French. It's typical of White's noble character that within ten days he declined to associate himself with a victory he could claim and instead took full responsibility for a disaster he didn't witness. Now he rode through the shellfire, observing the smart maneuvers of his lieutenant.

About half-past three the action had fairly begun. In front of the advancing British there lay a rolling hill, topped by a further one. The lower hill was not defended, and the infantry, breaking from column of companies into open order, advanced over it. Beyond was a broad grassy valley which led up to the main position, a long kopje flanked by a small sugar-loaf one Behind the green slope which led to the ridge of death an ominous and terrible cloud was driving up, casting its black shadow over the combatants. There was the stillness which goes before some great convulsion of nature. The men pressed on in silence, the soft thudding of their feet and the rattle of their sidearms filling the air with a low and continuous murmur. An additional solemnity was given to the attack by that huge black cloud which hung before them.

Around 3:30, the action had really started. In front of the advancing British troops was a rolling hill topped by another one. The lower hill was unprotected, and the infantry broke from their organized formation into open order as they moved forward. Beyond it was a wide grassy valley leading up to the main position, a long ridge flanked by a smaller one shaped like a sugar loaf. Behind the green slope leading to the ridge of death, a menacing and terrible cloud was gathering, casting its dark shadow over the fighters. There was a stillness that comes before a major natural upheaval. The men moved on silently, with the soft thumping of their feet and the clinking of their sidearms creating a low, continuous hum in the air. The presence of that massive black cloud added an extra sense of seriousness to the attack.

The British guns had opened at a range of 4400 yards, and now against the swarthy background there came the quick smokeless twinkle of the Boer reply. It was an unequal fight, but gallantly sustained. A shot and another to find the range; then a wreath of smoke from a bursting shell exactly where the guns had been, followed by another and another. Overmatched, the two Boer pieces relapsed into a sulky silence, broken now and again by short spurts of frenzied activity. The British batteries turned their attention away from them, and began to search the ridge with shrapnel and prepare the way for the advancing infantry.

The British guns opened fire from 4,400 yards away, and soon against the dark background, the quick flashes from the Boer response appeared. It was an unfair fight, but it was bravely held. A shot and then another to gauge the distance; then a burst of smoke from a shell exploding right where the guns had been, followed by more blasts. Outmatched, the two Boer guns fell into a sullen silence, occasionally interrupted by brief bursts of chaotic activity. The British batteries shifted their focus away from them and started targeting the ridge with shrapnel, clearing the path for the advancing infantry.

The scheme was that the Devonshires should hold the enemy in front while the main attack from the left flank was carried out by the Gordons, the Manchesters, and the Imperial Light Horse. The words 'front' and 'flank,' however, cease to have any meaning with so mobile and elastic a force, and the attack which was intended to come from the left became really a frontal one, while the Devons found themselves upon the right flank of the Boers. At the moment of the final advance the great black cloud had burst, and a torrent of rain lashed into the faces of the men. Slipping and sliding upon the wet grass, they advanced to the assault.

The plan was for the Devonshires to hold the enemy in place while the main attack came from the left flank, led by the Gordons, Manchesters, and the Imperial Light Horse. However, the terms 'front' and 'flank' lost their meaning with such a dynamic and flexible force, and the attack that was supposed to come from the left actually turned out to be a frontal assault, while the Devons found themselves on the right flank of the Boers. At the moment of the final push, the heavy black cloud had opened up, and a torrential rain poured down on the men. Slipping and sliding on the wet grass, they moved forward to the attack.

And now amid the hissing of the rain there came the fuller, more menacing whine of the Mauser bullets, and the ridge rattled from end to end with the rifle fire. Men fell fast, but their comrades pressed hotly on. There was a long way to go, for the summit of the position was nearly 800 feet above the level of the railway. The hillside, which had appeared to be one slope, was really a succession of undulations, so that the advancing infantry alternately dipped into shelter and emerged into a hail of bullets. The line of advance was dotted with khaki-clad figures, some still in death, some writhing in their agony. Amid the litter of bodies a major of the Gordons, shot through the leg, sat philosophically smoking his pipe. Plucky little Chisholm, Colonel of the Imperials, had fallen with two mortal wounds as he dashed forward waving a coloured sash in the air. So long was the advance and so trying the hill that the men sank panting upon the ground, and took their breath before making another rush. As at Talana Hill, regimental formation was largely gone, and men of the Manchesters, Gordons, and Imperial Light Horse surged upwards in one long ragged fringe, Scotchman, Englishman, and British Africander keeping pace in that race of death. And now at last they began to see their enemy. Here and there among the boulders in front of them there was the glimpse of a slouched hat, or a peep at a flushed bearded face which drooped over a rifle barrel. There was a pause, and then with a fresh impulse the wave of men gathered themselves together and flung themselves forward. Dark figures sprang up from the rocks in front. Some held up their rifles in token of surrender. Some ran with heads sunk between their shoulders, jumping and ducking among the rocks. The panting breathless climbers were on the edge of the plateau. There were the two guns which had flashed so brightly, silenced now, with a litter of dead gunners around them and one wounded officer standing by a trail. A small body of the Boers still resisted. Their appearance horrified some of our men. 'They were dressed in black frock coats and looked like a lot of rather seedy business men,' said a spectator. 'It seemed like murder to kill them.' Some surrendered, and some fought to the death where they stood. Their leader Koch, an old gentleman with a white beard, lay amidst the rocks, wounded in three places. He was treated with all courtesy and attention, but died in Ladysmith Hospital some days afterwards.

And now, amid the sound of the rain, the sharper, more threatening whine of the Mauser bullets filled the air, and the ridge shook from end to end with gunfire. Men fell quickly, but their comrades pressed on fiercely. There was still a long way to go, as the highest point was nearly 800 feet above the level of the railway. The hillside, which had seemed like a single slope, was actually a series of rises and dips, causing the advancing infantry to alternate between finding shelter and being exposed to a barrage of bullets. The line of advance was scattered with figures in khaki, some already lifeless and others writhing in pain. Among the chaos of bodies, a major from the Gordons, shot in the leg, sat calmly smoking his pipe. Brave little Chisholm, Colonel of the Imperials, had fallen with two fatal wounds as he rushed forward waving a colored sash in the air. The advance was so grueling and the hill so challenging that the men dropped down to catch their breath before rushing again. Just like at Talana Hill, the regiment formation had mostly disappeared, with men from the Manchesters, Gordons, and Imperial Light Horse surging upward in one long, disorganized line, Scotsman, Englishman, and British Africander keeping pace in that deadly race. At last, they began to see their enemy. Here and there among the boulders ahead, they caught glimpses of slouched hats or a glimpse of a flushed bearded face leaning over a rifle barrel. There was a moment's pause, and then with renewed energy, the wave of men gathered themselves and charged forward. Dark figures rose up from the rocks in front. Some raised their rifles in surrender. Others ducked and ran with their heads down, dodging between the boulders. The exhausted climbers reached the edge of the plateau. There were the two guns that had flashed so brightly, now silenced, surrounded by dead gunners and one wounded officer standing by a trail. A small group of Boers still fought back. Their appearance shocked some of our men. "They were wearing black frock coats and looked like a group of somewhat shabby businessmen," said an observer. "It felt like murder to kill them." Some surrendered, while others fought to the death where they stood. Their leader, Koch, an elderly man with a white beard, lay among the rocks, injured in three places. He was treated with courtesy and care but died in Ladysmith Hospital a few days later.

In the meanwhile the Devonshire Regiment had waited until the attack had developed and had then charged the hill upon the flank, while the artillery moved up until it was within 2000 yards of the enemy's position. The Devons met with a less fierce resistance than the others, and swept up to the summit in time to head off some of the fugitives. The whole of our infantry were now upon the ridge.

In the meantime, the Devonshire Regiment waited until the attack was underway and then charged the hill from the side, while the artillery advanced until it was within 2000 yards of the enemy's position. The Devons faced less intense resistance than the others and reached the top just in time to cut off some of the fleeing soldiers. Now, our entire infantry was on the ridge.

But even so these dour fighters were not beaten. They clung desperately to the further edges of the plateau, firing from behind the rocks. There had been a race for the nearest gun between an officer of the Manchesters and a drummer sergeant of the Gordons. The officer won, and sprang in triumph on to the piece. Men of all regiments swarmed round yelling and cheering, when upon their astonished ears there sounded the 'Cease fire' and then the 'Retire.' It was incredible, and yet it pealed out again, unmistakable in its urgency. With the instinct of discipline the men were slowly falling back. And then the truth of it came upon the minds of some of them. The crafty enemy had learned our bugle calls. 'Retire be damned! shrieked a little bugler, and blew the 'Advance' with all the breath that the hillside had left him. The men, who had retired a hundred yards and uncovered the guns, flooded back over the plateau, and in the Boer camp which lay beneath it a white flag showed that the game was up. A squadron of the 5th Lancers and of the 5th Dragoon Guards, under Colonel Gore of the latter regiment, had prowled round the base of the hill, and in the fading light they charged through and through the retreating Boers, killing several, and making from twenty to thirty prisoners. It was one of the very few occasions in the war where the mounted Briton overtook the mounted Boer.

But even so, these grim fighters weren’t defeated. They clung desperately to the outer edges of the plateau, shooting from behind the rocks. There had been a race for the nearest gun between an officer of the Manchesters and a drummer sergeant of the Gordons. The officer won and sprang triumphantly onto the artillery piece. Men from all regiments rushed around, yelling and cheering, when suddenly they heard the ‘Cease fire’ and then the ‘Retire.’ It was unbelievable, but it echoed again, unmistakably urgent. Following their training, the men began to fall back slowly. Then the reality hit some of them. The cunning enemy had learned our bugle calls. ‘Retire be damned!’ shouted a young bugler, and he blew the ‘Advance’ with every breath he had left. The men, who had fallen back a hundred yards and uncovered the guns, surged back over the plateau. In the Boer camp below, a white flag signaled that they were finished. A squadron of the 5th Lancers and the 5th Dragoon Guards, led by Colonel Gore of the latter regiment, had circled around the base of the hill. In the fading light, they charged through the retreating Boers, killing several and capturing twenty to thirty prisoners. It was one of the rare instances in the war where British cavalry caught up with Boer cavalry.

'What price Majuba?' was the cry raised by some of the infantry as they dashed up to the enemy's position, and the action may indeed be said to have been in some respects the converse of that famous fight. It is true that there were many more British at Elandslaagte than Boers at Majuba, but then the defending force was much more numerous also, and the British had no guns there. It is true, also, that Majuba is very much more precipitous than Elandslaagte, but then every practical soldier knows that it is easier to defend a moderate glacis than an abrupt slope, which gives cover under its boulders to the attacker while the defender has to crane his head over the edge to look down. On the whole, this brilliant little action may be said to have restored things to their true proportion, and to have shown that, brave as the Boers undoubtedly are, there is no military feat within their power which is not equally possible to the British soldier. Talana Hill and Elandslaagte, fought on successive days, were each of them as gallant an exploit as Majuba.

'What price Majuba?' was the shout from some of the soldiers as they rushed towards the enemy's position, and in some ways, this battle can be seen as the opposite of that famous clash. It's true there were many more British troops at Elandslaagte than there were Boers at Majuba, but the defending force was also much larger, and the British had no artillery there. It's also true that Majuba is much steeper than Elandslaagte, but any seasoned soldier knows that it's easier to defend a gentle slope than a sharp incline, which provides cover under its boulders for the attacker while the defender has to lean over the edge to see. Overall, this impressive little battle can be said to have put things back in perspective and shown that, while the Boers are undeniably brave, there is no military feat they can achieve that isn't also possible for the British soldier. Talana Hill and Elandslaagte, fought on consecutive days, were each as daring an exploit as Majuba.

We had more to show for our victory than for the previous one at Dundee. Two Maxim-Nordenfeld guns, whose efficiency had been painfully evident during the action, were a welcome addition to our artillery. Two hundred and fifty Boers were killed and wounded and about two hundred taken prisoners, the loss falling most heavily upon the Johannesburgers, the Germans, and the Hollanders. General Koch, Dr. Coster, Colonel Schiel, Pretorius, and other well-known Transvaalers fell into our hands. Our own casualty list consisted of 41 killed and 220 wounded, much the same number as at Talana Hill, the heaviest losses falling upon the Gordon Highlanders and the Imperial Light Horse.

We had more to show for our victory than we did for the previous one at Dundee. Two Maxim-Nordenfeld guns, which had clearly proven their effectiveness during the battle, were a great addition to our artillery. Two hundred and fifty Boers were killed and wounded, with around two hundred taken prisoner, the heaviest losses among the Johannesburgers, Germans, and Hollanders. General Koch, Dr. Coster, Colonel Schiel, Pretorius, and other well-known Transvaalers were captured. Our own casualty list included 41 killed and 220 wounded, similar to the numbers at Talana Hill, with the heaviest losses among the Gordon Highlanders and the Imperial Light Horse.

In the hollow where the Boer tents had stood, amid the laagered wagons of the vanquished, under a murky sky and a constant drizzle of rain, the victors spent the night. Sleep was out of the question, for all night the fatigue parties were searching the hillside and the wounded were being carried in. Camp-fires were lit and soldiers and prisoners crowded round them, and it is pleasant to recall that the warmest corner and the best of their rude fare were always reserved for the downcast Dutchmen, while words of rude praise and sympathy softened the pain of defeat. It is the memory of such things which may in happier days be more potent than all the wisdom of statesmen in welding our two races into one.

In the hollow where the Boer tents had been, surrounded by the wagons of the defeated, under a gloomy sky and a steady drizzle, the victors spent the night. Sleep was impossible because all night, fatigue teams were scouring the hillside and bringing in the wounded. Campfires were lit and soldiers and prisoners gathered around them, and it’s nice to remember that the warmest spot and the best of their simple food were always saved for the downcast Dutchmen, while rough words of praise and sympathy eased the pain of defeat. It's memories like these that may, in better times, be more powerful than all the wisdom of politicians in uniting our two races into one.

Having cleared the Boer force from the line of the railway, it is evident that General White could not continue to garrison the point, as he was aware that considerable forces were moving from the north, and his first duty was the security of Ladysmith. Early next morning (October 22nd), therefore, his weary but victorious troops returned to the town. Once there he learned, no doubt, that General Yule had no intention of using the broken railway for his retreat, but that he intended to come in a circuitous fashion by road. White's problem was to hold tight to the town and at the same time to strike hard at any northern force so as to prevent them from interfering with Yule's retreat. It was in the furtherance of this scheme that he fought upon October 24th the action of Rietfontein, an engagement slight in itself, but important on account of the clear road which was secured for the weary forces retiring from Dundee.

After driving the Boer forces away from the railway, it was clear that General White couldn't keep a garrison at that location, knowing that large forces were advancing from the north, and his top priority was the safety of Ladysmith. So, early the next morning (October 22nd), his tired but victorious troops returned to the town. Once there, he probably found out that General Yule planned to retreat by road instead of using the damaged railway. White's challenge was to hold on to the town while also launching attacks against any northern forces to stop them from interfering with Yule's retreat. To support this strategy, he engaged in the Battle of Rietfontein on October 24th, which, while minor, was significant due to the clear path it opened for the exhausted forces retreating from Dundee.

The army from the Free State, of which the commando vanquished at Elandslaagte was the vanguard, had been slowly and steadily debouching from the passes, and working south and eastwards to cut the line between Dundee and Ladysmith. It was White's intention to prevent them from crossing the Newcastle Road, and for this purpose he sallied out of Ladysmith on Tuesday the 24th, having with him two regiments of cavalry, the 5th Lancers and the 19th Hussars, the 42nd and 53rd field batteries with the 10th mountain battery, four infantry regiments, the Devons, Liverpools, Gloucesters, and 2nd King's Royal Rifles, the Imperial Light Horse, and the Natal Volunteers—some four thousand men in all.

The army from the Free State, which included the commando that was defeated at Elandslaagte, had been gradually moving out from the passes and making their way south and east to cut the route between Dundee and Ladysmith. White planned to stop them from crossing the Newcastle Road, so he left Ladysmith on Tuesday the 24th, bringing with him two regiments of cavalry, the 5th Lancers and the 19th Hussars, the 42nd and 53rd field batteries along with the 10th mountain battery, four infantry regiments—the Devons, Liverpools, Gloucesters, and 2nd King's Royal Rifles—the Imperial Light Horse, and the Natal Volunteers—totaling around four thousand men.

The enemy were found to be in possession of a line of hills within seven miles of Ladysmith, the most conspicuous of which is called Tinta Inyoni. It was no part of General White's plan to attempt to drive him from this position—it is not wise generalship to fight always upon ground of the enemy's choosing—but it was important to hold him where he was, and to engage his attention during this last day of the march of the retreating column. For this purpose, since no direct attack was intended, the guns were of more importance than the infantry—and indeed the infantry should, one might imagine, have been used solely as an escort for the artillery. A desultory and inconclusive action ensued which continued from nine in the morning until half-past one in the afternoon. A well-directed fire of the Boer guns from the hills was dominated and controlled by our field artillery, while the advance of their riflemen was restrained by shrapnel. The enemy's guns were more easily marked down than at Elandslaagte, as they used black powder. The ranges varied from three to four thousand yards. Our losses in the whole action would have been insignificant had it not happened that the Gloucester Regiment advanced somewhat incautiously into the open and was caught in a cross fire of musketry which struck down Colonel Wilford and fifty of his officers and men. Within four days Colonel Dick-Cunyngham, of the Gordons, Colonel Chisholm, of the Light Horse, Colonel Gunning, of the Rifles, and now Colonel Wilford, of the Gloucesters, had all fallen at the head of their regiments. In the afternoon General White, having accomplished his purpose and secured the safety of the Dundee column while traversing the dangerous Biggarsberg passes, withdrew his force to Ladysmith. We have no means of ascertaining the losses of the Boers, but they were probably slight. On our side we lost 109 killed and wounded, of which only 13 cases were fatal. Of this total 64 belonged to the Gloucesters and 25 to the troops raised in Natal. Next day, as already narrated, the whole British army was re-assembled once more at Ladysmith, and the campaign was to enter upon a new phase.

The enemy was found to be occupying a line of hills about seven miles from Ladysmith, the most notable of which is named Tinta Inyoni. General White's plan did not include trying to drive them from this position—it's not smart strategy to always fight on ground chosen by the enemy—but it was crucial to keep them there and keep their attention during the final day of the retreating column's march. Since no direct attack was planned, the artillery was more important than the infantry—in fact, one could argue that the infantry should have primarily served as an escort for the artillery. A scattered and inconclusive skirmish followed, lasting from nine in the morning to half-past one in the afternoon. Our field artillery effectively controlled the Boer gunfire from the hills, while shrapnel held back their riflemen. The enemy's guns were easier to locate than at Elandslaagte because they used black powder. The distances ranged from three to four thousand yards. Our losses would have been minimal if not for the fact that the Gloucester Regiment advanced rather carelessly into the open and was caught in a crossfire that resulted in the deaths of Colonel Wilford and fifty of his officers and men. Within four days, Colonel Dick-Cunyngham of the Gordons, Colonel Chisholm of the Light Horse, Colonel Gunning of the Rifles, and now Colonel Wilford of the Gloucesters had all fallen while leading their regiments. In the afternoon, General White, having achieved his goal and ensured the safety of the Dundee column while navigating the risky Biggarsberg passes, withdrew his forces to Ladysmith. We have no way of knowing the Boer losses, but they were likely small. On our side, we lost 109 killed and wounded, with only 13 fatalities. Of this total, 64 were from the Gloucesters and 25 from the troops raised in Natal. The next day, as previously noted, the entire British army regrouped at Ladysmith, and the campaign was set to enter a new phase.

At the end of this first vigorous week of hostilities it is interesting to sum up the net result. The strategical advantage had lain with the Boers. They had made our position at Dundee untenable and had driven us back to Ladysmith. They had the country and the railway for the northern quarter of the colony in their possession. They had killed and wounded between six and seven hundred of our men, and they had captured some two hundred of our cavalry, while we had been compelled at Dundee to leave considerable stores and our wounded, including General Penn Symons, who actually died while a prisoner in their hands. On the other hand, the tactical advantages lay with us. We had twice driven them from their positions, and captured two of their guns. We had taken two hundred prisoners, and had probably killed and wounded as many as we had lost. On the whole, the honours of that week's fighting in Natal may be said to have been fairly equal—which is more than we could claim for many a weary week to come.

At the end of this first intense week of fighting, it’s interesting to summarize the overall outcome. The strategic advantage was with the Boers. They made our position in Dundee untenable and pushed us back to Ladysmith. They controlled the land and the railway in the northern part of the colony. They had killed and wounded around six to seven hundred of our men and captured about two hundred of our cavalry, while we were forced to leave behind significant supplies and our wounded in Dundee, including General Penn Symons, who sadly died while a prisoner. On the other hand, the tactical advantages were with us. We drove them from their positions twice and captured two of their guns. We took two hundred prisoners and likely killed and wounded as many as we lost. Overall, it's fair to say the honors from that week of fighting in Natal were relatively equal—which is more than we could say for many tough weeks ahead.





CHAPTER 7. THE BATTLE OF LADYSMITH.

Sir George White had now reunited his force, and found himself in command of a formidable little army some twelve thousand in number. His cavalry included the 5th Lancers, the 5th Dragoons, part of the 18th and the whole of the 19th Hussars, the Natal Carabineers, the Border Rifles, some mounted infantry, and the Imperial Light Horse. Among his infantry were the Royal Irish Fusiliers, the Dublin Fusiliers, and the King's Royal Rifles, fresh from the ascent of Talana Hill, the Gordons, the Manchesters, and the Devons who had been blooded at Elandslaagte, the Leicesters, the Liverpools, the 2nd battalion of the King's Royal Rifles, the 2nd Rifle Brigade, and the Gloucesters, who had been so roughly treated at Rietfontein. He had six batteries of excellent field artillery—the 13th, 21st, 42nd, 53rd, 67th, 69th, and No. 10 Mountain Battery of screw guns. No general could have asked for a more compact and workmanlike little force.

Sir George White had now brought his troops back together and found himself in charge of a strong little army of about twelve thousand soldiers. His cavalry included the 5th Lancers, the 5th Dragoons, part of the 18th, and all of the 19th Hussars, the Natal Carabineers, the Border Rifles, some mounted infantry, and the Imperial Light Horse. Among his infantry were the Royal Irish Fusiliers, the Dublin Fusiliers, and the King's Royal Rifles, fresh from climbing Talana Hill, as well as the Gordons, the Manchesters, and the Devons who had seen action at Elandslaagte, the Leicesters, the Liverpools, the 2nd battalion of the King's Royal Rifles, the 2nd Rifle Brigade, and the Gloucesters, who had faced tough losses at Rietfontein. He had six batteries of excellent field artillery—the 13th, 21st, 42nd, 53rd, 67th, 69th, and No. 10 Mountain Battery of screw guns. No general could have asked for a more efficient and well-organized little force.

It had been recognised by the British General from the beginning that his tactics must be defensive, since he was largely outnumbered and since also any considerable mishap to his force would expose the whole colony of Natal to destruction. The actions of Elandslaagte and Rietfontein were forced upon him in order to disengage his compromised detachment, but now there was no longer any reason why he should assume the offensive. He knew that away out on the Atlantic a trail of transports which already extended from the Channel to Cape de Verde were hourly drawing nearer to him with the army corps from England. In a fortnight or less the first of them would be at Durban. It was his game, therefore, to keep his army intact, and to let those throbbing engines and whirling propellers do the work of the empire. Had he entrenched himself up to his nose and waited, it would have paid him best in the end.

It had been clear to the British General from the start that his strategy needed to be defensive, since he was greatly outnumbered and any significant loss to his forces could put the entire colony of Natal at risk. The battles of Elandslaagte and Rietfontein were necessary for him to save his trapped unit, but now there was no longer a reason for him to go on the offensive. He knew that out in the Atlantic, a convoy of ships stretching from the Channel to Cape Verde was getting closer to him, carrying army troops from England. In less than two weeks, the first of them would arrive in Durban. Therefore, his best option was to keep his army safe and let those powerful engines and fast-moving ships do the work for the empire. If he had just dug in and waited, it would have been the best strategy in the end.

But so tame and inglorious a policy is impossible to a fighting soldier. He could not with his splendid force permit himself to be shut in without an action. What policy demands honour may forbid. On October 27th there were already Boers and rumours of Boers on every side of him. Joubert with his main body was moving across from Dundee. The Freestaters were to the north and west. Their combined numbers were uncertain, but at least it was already proved that they were far more numerous and also more formidable than had been anticipated. We had had a taste of their artillery also, and the pleasant delusion that it would be a mere useless encumbrance to a Boer force had vanished for ever. It was a grave thing to leave the town in order to give battle, for the mobile enemy might swing round and seize it behind us. Nevertheless White determined to make the venture.

But such a dull and dishonorable approach is impossible for a soldier in the fight. He couldn't, with his impressive force, allow himself to be stuck without taking action. What strategy requires honor may also impose restrictions. On October 27th, there were already Boers and rumors of Boers all around him. Joubert and his main group were moving over from Dundee. The Freestaters were to the north and west. Their combined numbers were unclear, but it was already obvious that they were much more numerous and also more threatening than expected. We had also experienced their artillery, and the nice illusion that it would just be a useless burden for a Boer force was gone forever. It was a serious decision to leave the town to engage in battle, as the mobile enemy might maneuver around and take it from behind. Nonetheless, White decided to go for it.

On the 29th the enemy were visibly converging upon the town. From a high hill within rifleshot of the houses a watcher could see no fewer than six Boer camps to the east and north. French, with his cavalry, pushed out feelers, and coasted along the edge of the advancing host. His report warned White that if he would strike before all the scattered bands were united he must do so at once. The wounded were sent down to Pietermaritzburg, and it would bear explanation why the non-combatants did not accompany them. On the evening of the same day Joubert in person was said to be only six miles off, and a party of his men cut the water supply of the town. The Klip, however, a fair-sized river, runs through Ladysmith, so that there was no danger of thirst. The British had inflated and sent up a balloon, to the amazement of the back-veld Boers; its report confirmed the fact that the enemy was in force in front of and around them.

On the 29th, the enemy was clearly gathering around the town. From a high hill within rifle range of the houses, a watcher could see at least six Boer camps to the east and north. French, with his cavalry, extended his scouts and skirted the edge of the advancing forces. His report alerted White that if he wanted to strike before all the scattered groups were joined, he needed to act immediately. The wounded were sent down to Pietermaritzburg, and it should be explained why the non-combatants did not go with them. By that evening, it was reported that Joubert himself was only six miles away, and a group of his men had cut off the town's water supply. However, the Klip, a decent-sized river, flows through Ladysmith, so there was no risk of running out of water. The British inflated and launched a balloon, astonishing the back-veld Boers; its findings confirmed that the enemy was strong in front of and around them.

On the night of the 29th General White detached two of his best regiments, the Irish Fusiliers and the Gloucesters, with No. 10 Mountain Battery, to advance under cover of the darkness and to seize and hold a long ridge called Nicholson's Nek, which lay about six miles to the north of Ladysmith. Having determined to give battle on the next day, his object was to protect his left wing against those Freestaters who were still moving from the north and west, and also to keep a pass open by which his cavalry might pursue the Boer fugitives in case of a British victory. This small detached column numbered about a thousand men—whose fate will be afterwards narrated.

On the night of the 29th, General White sent two of his best regiments, the Irish Fusiliers and the Gloucesters, along with No. 10 Mountain Battery, to move under the cover of darkness and take control of a long ridge known as Nicholson's Nek, located about six miles north of Ladysmith. Planning to engage in battle the next day, his goal was to protect his left flank from the Freestaters who were still advancing from the north and west, and to keep a pass open for his cavalry to chase down the Boer retreat if the British emerged victorious. This small detached unit consisted of about a thousand men—whose fate will be recounted later.

At five o'clock on the morning of the 30th the Boers, who had already developed a perfect genius for hauling heavy cannon up the most difficult heights, opened fire from one of the hills which lie to the north of the town. Before the shot was fired, the forces of the British had already streamed out of Ladysmith to test the strength of the invaders.

At five in the morning on the 30th, the Boers, who had become incredibly skilled at moving heavy artillery up the toughest hills, started firing from one of the hills north of the town. Before the first shot rang out, British forces had already poured out of Ladysmith to challenge the strength of the invaders.

White's army was divided into three columns. On the extreme left, quite isolated from the others, was the small Nicholson's Nek detachment under the command of Colonel Carleton of the Fusiliers (one of three gallant brothers each of whom commands a British regiment). With him was Major Adye of the staff. On the right British flank Colonel Grimwood commanded a brigade composed of the 1st and 2nd battalions of the King's Royal Rifles, the Leicesters, the Liverpools, and the Royal Dublin Fusiliers. In the centre Colonel Ian Hamilton commanded the Devons, the Gordons, the Manchesters, and the 2nd battalion of the Rifle Brigade, which marched direct into the battle from the train which had brought them from Durban. Six batteries of artillery were massed in the centre under Colonel Downing. French with the cavalry and mounted infantry was on the extreme right, but found little opportunity for the use of the mounted arm that day.

White's army was split into three groups. On the far left, quite separate from the others, was the small Nicholson's Nek detachment led by Colonel Carleton of the Fusiliers (one of three courageous brothers, each in command of a British regiment). With him was Major Adye from the staff. On the right British side, Colonel Grimwood led a brigade made up of the 1st and 2nd battalions of the King's Royal Rifles, the Leicesters, the Liverpools, and the Royal Dublin Fusiliers. In the center, Colonel Ian Hamilton commanded the Devons, the Gordons, the Manchesters, and the 2nd battalion of the Rifle Brigade, which marched straight into battle from the train that had brought them from Durban. Six batteries of artillery were positioned in the center under Colonel Downing. French, with the cavalry and mounted infantry, was on the far right but found little opportunity to use the mounted troops that day.

The Boer position, so far as it could be seen, was a formidable one. Their centre lay upon one of the spurs of Signal Hill, about three miles from the town. Here they had two forty-pounders and three other lighter guns, but their artillery strength developed both in numbers and in weight of metal as the day wore on. Of their dispositions little could be seen. An observer looking westward might discern with his glass sprays of mounted riflemen galloping here and there over the downs, and possibly small groups where the gunners stood by their guns, or the leaders gazed down at that town which they were destined to have in view for such a weary while. On the dun-coloured plains before the town, the long thin lines, with an occasional shifting sparkle of steel, showed where Hamilton's and Grimwood's infantry were advancing. In the clear cold air of an African morning every detail could be seen, down to the distant smoke of a train toiling up the heavy grades which lead from Frere over the Colenso Bridge to Ladysmith.

The Boer position, as far as could be seen, was quite strong. Their center was situated on one of the ridges of Signal Hill, about three miles from the town. Here, they had two heavy guns and three lighter artillery pieces, but their artillery strength increased both in numbers and firepower as the day went on. Very little could be seen of their setup. An observer looking west might spot, through binoculars, groups of mounted riflemen galloping around the hills, and possibly small clusters of gunners standing by their artillery or leaders looking down at the town that they would have in sight for quite a long time. On the dusty plains in front of the town, the long, thin lines, with occasional glints of metal, indicated where Hamilton's and Grimwood's infantry were advancing. In the clear, crisp air of an African morning, every detail was visible, right down to the distant smoke of a train struggling up the steep grades leading from Frere over the Colenso Bridge to Ladysmith.

The scrambling, inconsequential, unsatisfactory action which ensued is as difficult to describe as it must have been to direct. The Boer front covered some seven or eight miles, with kopjes, like chains of fortresses, between. They formed a huge semicircle of which our advance was the chord, and they were able from this position to pour in a converging artillery fire which grew steadily hotter as the day advanced. In the early part of the day our forty-two guns, working furiously, though with a want of accuracy which may be due to those errors of refraction which are said to be common in the limpid air of the veld, preserved their superiority. There appears to have been a want of concentration about our fire, and at some periods of the action each particular battery was firing at some different point of the Boer half-circle. Sometimes for an hour on end the Boer reply would die away altogether, only to break out with augmented violence, and with an accuracy which increased our respect for their training. Huge shells—the largest that ever burst upon a battlefield—hurled from distances which were unattainable by our fifteen-pounders, enveloped our batteries in smoke and flame. One enormous Creusot gun on Pepworth Hill threw a 96-pound shell a distance of four miles, and several 40-pound howitzers outweighted our field guns. And on the same day on which we were so roughly taught how large the guns were which labour and good will could haul on to the field of battle, we learned also that our enemy—to the disgrace of our Board of Ordnance be it recorded—was more in touch with modern invention than we were, and could show us not only the largest, but also the smallest, shell which had yet been used. Would that it had been our officials instead of our gunners who heard the devilish little one-pound shells of the Vickers-Maxim automatic gun, exploding with a continuous string of crackings and bangings, like a huge cracker, in their faces and about their ears!

The chaotic and frustrating action that followed is just as hard to describe as it must have been to lead. The Boer front stretched about seven or eight miles, with hills acting like a series of fortresses between them. They created a massive semicircle, with our advance being the chord, and from this position, they were able to unleash a converging artillery fire that intensified as the day went on. In the morning, our forty-two guns worked hard, though they lacked accuracy, possibly due to the refraction errors common in the clear air of the veld. We maintained our edge, but our fire seemed scattered, with different batteries targeting various spots along the Boer half-circle. At times, the Boer return fire would completely fade away for an hour, only to explode back with even greater force, showcasing accuracy that heightened our respect for their training. Massive shells—the largest ever used in battle—were launched from distances unreachable by our fifteen-pounders, engulfing our batteries in smoke and flames. One huge Creusot gun on Pepworth Hill launched a 96-pound shell four miles away, and several 40-pound howitzers exceeded the weight of our field guns. On the same day we were starkly reminded of the formidable size of the guns that could be brought to the battlefield, we also discovered that our enemy—much to the shame of our Board of Ordnance—was more in tune with modern technology than we were, and could show us not just the biggest, but also the smallest shells used to date. If only it had been our officials instead of our gunners who witnessed the sinister little one-pound shells from the Vickers-Maxim automatic gun, exploding with a relentless series of cracks and bangs, like a giant firecracker, right in their faces and around their ears!

Up to seven o'clock our infantry had shown no disposition to press the attack, for with so huge a position in front of them, and so many hills which were held by the enemy, it was difficult to know what line of advance should be taken, or whether the attack should not be converted into a mere reconnaissance. Shortly after that hour, however, the Boers decided the question by themselves developing a vigorous movement upon Grimwood and the right flank. With field guns, Maxims, and rifle fire, they closed rapidly in upon him. The centre column was drafted off, regiment by regiment, to reinforce the right. The Gordons, Devons, Manchesters, and three batteries were sent over to Grimwood's relief, and the 5th Lancers, acting as infantry, assisted him to hold on.

Up until seven o'clock, our infantry showed no willingness to launch an attack, as the enormous position in front of them and the numerous hills occupied by the enemy made it hard to determine the best path forward or whether the attack should simply turn into a reconnaissance mission. Shortly after that time, however, the Boers took matters into their own hands, launching a strong movement against Grimwood and the right flank. Armed with field guns, Maxims, and rifle fire, they quickly advanced on him. The center column was diverted, regiment by regiment, to support the right. The Gordons, Devons, Manchesters, and three batteries were sent to aid Grimwood, while the 5th Lancers, acting as infantry, helped him hold the position.

At nine o'clock there was a lull, but it was evident that fresh commandoes and fresh guns were continually streaming into the firing line. The engagement opened again with redoubled violence, and Grimwood's three advanced battalions fell back, abandoning the ridge which they had held for five hours. The reason for this withdrawal was not that they could not continue to hold their position, but it was that a message had just reached Sir George White from Colonel Knox, commanding in Ladysmith, to the effect that it looked as if the enemy was about to rush the town from the other side. Crossing the open in some disorder, they lost heavily, and would have done so more had not the 13th Field Battery, followed after an interval by the 53rd, dashed forward, firing shrapnel at short ranges, in order to cover the retreat of the infantry. Amid the bursting of the huge 96-pound shells, and the snapping of the vicious little automatic one-pounders, with a cross-fire of rifles as well, Abdy's and Dawkins' gallant batteries swung round their muzzles, and hit back right and left, flashing and blazing, amid their litter of dead horses and men. So severe was the fire that the guns were obscured by the dust knocked up by the little shells of the automatic gun. Then, when their work was done and the retiring infantry had straggled over the ridge, the covering guns whirled and bounded after them. So many horses had fallen that two pieces were left until the teams could be brought back for them, which was successfully done through the gallantry of Captain Thwaites. The action of these batteries was one of the few gleams of light in a not too brilliant day's work. With splendid coolness and courage they helped each other by alternate retirements after the retreating infantry had passed them. The 21st Battery (Blewitt's) also distinguished itself by its staunchness in covering the retirement of the cavalry, while the 42nd (Goulburn's) suffered the heaviest losses of any. On the whole, such honours as fell to our lot were mainly with the gunners.

At nine o'clock, there was a pause, but it was clear that new troops and artillery were continuously pouring into the front. The fighting resumed with even greater intensity, and Grimwood's three forward battalions fell back, giving up the ridge they had held for five hours. This withdrawal wasn't because they couldn't maintain their position, but because Sir George White had just received a message from Colonel Knox, who was in command in Ladysmith, indicating that it appeared the enemy was about to launch an attack on the town from the opposite side. As they crossed the open ground in some disarray, they suffered heavy losses, and things could have been worse if the 13th Field Battery, followed after a short delay by the 53rd, hadn't rushed forward, firing shrapnel at close range to cover the infantry's retreat. Amid the explosions of the massive 96-pound shells and the rapid fire from the small one-pounders, along with a crossfire from rifles, Abdy's and Dawkins' brave batteries swung around to return fire, lighting up the scene against a backdrop of fallen horses and soldiers. The fire was so intense that the guns were hidden by the dust kicked up by the small shells from the automatic guns. When they had finished their role and the retreating infantry had moved over the ridge, the covering guns quickly followed. So many horses had fallen that two pieces were left behind until the teams could be brought back for them, which was successfully accomplished thanks to Captain Thwaites' bravery. The actions of these batteries were one of the few bright spots in an otherwise challenging day. With remarkable composure and bravery, they supported each other by taking turns retreating after the infantry had passed. The 21st Battery (Blewitt's) also distinguished itself for its steadfastness in covering the cavalry's retreat, while the 42nd (Goulburn's) suffered the highest casualties of all. Overall, most of the honors we received were largely due to the artillery men.

White must have been now uneasy for his position, and it had become apparent that his only course was to fall back and concentrate upon the town. His left flank was up in the air, and the sound of distant firing, wafted over five miles of broken country, was the only message which arrived from them. His right had been pushed back, and, most dangerous of all, his centre had ceased to exist, for only the 2nd Rifle Brigade remained there. What would happen if the enemy burst rudely through and pushed straight for the town? It was the more possible, as the Boer artillery had now proved itself to be far heavier than ours. That terrible 96-pounder, serenely safe and out of range, was plumping its great projectiles into the masses of retiring troops. The men had had little sleep and little food, and this unanswerable fire was an ordeal for a force which is retreating. A retirement may very rapidly become a rout under such circumstances. It was with some misgivings that the officers saw their men quicken their pace and glance back over their shoulders at the whine and screech of the shell. They were still some miles from home, and the plain was open. What could be done to give them some relief?

White must have been feeling uneasy about his position, and it had become clear that his only option was to fall back and focus on the town. His left flank was exposed, and the only update he got from them was the sound of distant firing, traveling over five miles of rough terrain. His right had been pushed back, and most concerning of all, his center had collapsed, with only the 2nd Rifle Brigade still holding that position. What would happen if the enemy suddenly broke through and charged straight for the town? This was more likely since the Boer artillery had proven to be significantly heavier than theirs. That massive 96-pounder, safely out of range, was launching its heavy shells into the masses of retreating troops. The men had gotten very little sleep and hardly any food, and this relentless fire was a tough test for a force that was already falling back. A retreat can quickly turn into a rout under such circumstances. The officers looked on with unease as their men quickened their pace and glanced back over their shoulders at the whine and screech of the shells. They were still a few miles from home, and the plains were wide open. What could be done to provide them with some relief?

And at that very moment there came the opportune and unexpected answer. That plume of engine smoke which the watcher had observed in the morning had drawn nearer and nearer, as the heavy train came puffing and creaking up the steep inclines. Then, almost before it had drawn up at the Ladysmith siding, there had sprung from it a crowd of merry bearded fellows, with ready hands and strange sea cries, pulling and hauling, with rope and purchase to get out the long slim guns which they had lashed on the trucks. Singular carriages were there, specially invented by Captain Percy Scott, and labouring and straining, they worked furiously to get the 12-pounder quick-firers into action. Then at last it was done, and the long tubes swept upwards to the angle at which they might hope to reach that monster on the hill at the horizon. Two of them craned their long inquisitive necks up and exchanged repartees with the big Creusot. And so it was that the weary and dispirited British troops heard a crash which was louder and sharper than that of their field guns, and saw far away upon the distant hill a great spurt of smoke and flame to show where the shell had struck. Another and another and another—and then they were troubled no more. Captain Hedworth Lambton and his men had saved the situation. The masterful gun had met its own master and sank into silence, while the somewhat bedraggled field force came trailing back into Ladysmith, leaving three hundred of their number behind them. It was a high price to pay, but other misfortunes were in store for us which made the retirement of the morning seem insignificant.

And at that very moment, the perfect and unanticipated answer arrived. That plume of engine smoke the watcher had seen in the morning had come closer and closer as the heavy train chugged and creaked up the steep hills. Then, almost before it had stopped at the Ladysmith siding, a crowd of cheerful bearded men jumped off, ready with their hands and shouting strange sea calls, pulling and hauling with ropes and gear to unload the long, slender guns they had secured on the flatcars. There were unique carriages, specially designed by Captain Percy Scott, and they worked feverishly to get the 12-pounder quick-firing guns ready for action. Finally, it was done, and the long barrels angled upward, aiming for the giant on the hill in the distance. Two of the guns craned their long, curious barrels up and bantered with the big Creusot. And so it was that the tired and discouraged British troops heard a crash that was louder and sharper than their field guns and saw, far away on the distant hill, a huge burst of smoke and flame showing where the shell had hit. Another shot, and another, and then they were no longer troubled. Captain Hedworth Lambton and his men had changed the situation. The formidable gun had faced its match and fell silent, while the somewhat disheveled field force returned to Ladysmith, leaving three hundred of their men behind. It was a steep price to pay, but other misfortunes awaited us that made the retreat of the morning seem trivial.

In the meantime we may follow the unhappy fortunes of the small column which had, as already described, been sent out by Sir George White in order, if possible, to prevent the junction of the two Boer armies, and at the same time to threaten the right wing of the main force, which was advancing from the direction of Dundee, Sir George White throughout the campaign consistently displayed one quality which is a charming one in an individual, but may be dangerous in a commander. He was a confirmed optimist. Perhaps his heart might have failed him in the dark days to come had he not been so. But whether one considers the non-destruction of the Newcastle Railway, the acquiescence in the occupation of Dundee, the retention of the non combatants in Ladysmith until it was too late to get rid of their useless mouths, or the failure to make any serious preparations for the defence of the town until his troops were beaten back into it, we see always the same evidence of a man who habitually hopes that all will go well, and is in consequence remiss in making preparations for their going ill. But unhappily in every one of these instances they did go ill, though the slowness of the Boers enabled us, both at Dundee and at Ladysmith, to escape what might have been disaster.

In the meantime, we can follow the unfortunate path of the small column that was sent out by Sir George White to try to prevent the joining of the two Boer armies and to threaten the right flank of the main force advancing from Dundee. Throughout the campaign, Sir George White consistently showed one characteristic that is admirable in a person but could be risky in a leader: he was a steadfast optimist. Perhaps he would have struggled in the dark days ahead if he hadn't been that way. However, whether it's the failure to destroy the Newcastle Railway, allowing the occupation of Dundee, retaining the non-combatants in Ladysmith until it was too late to send them away, or not making serious defense preparations for the town until his troops were pushed back into it, we always see evidence of a man who typically hopes for the best and thus neglects to prepare for the worst. Unfortunately, in all of these cases, things did go poorly, although the slow pace of the Boers allowed us, both at Dundee and Ladysmith, to avoid what could have been disastrous.

Sir George White has so nobly and frankly taken upon himself the blame of Nicholson's Nek that an impartial historian must rather regard his self-condemnation as having been excessive. The immediate causes of the failure were undoubtedly the results of pure ill-fortune, and depended on things outside his control. But it is evident that the strategic plan which would justify the presence of this column at Nicholson's Nek was based upon the supposition that the main army won their action at Lombard's Kop. In that case White might swing round his right and pin the Boers between himself and Nicholson's Nek. In any case he could then re-unite with his isolated wing. But if he should lose his battle—what then? What was to become of this detachment five miles up in the air? How was it to be extricated? The gallant Irishman seems to have waved aside the very idea of defeat. An assurance was, it is reported, given to the leaders of the column that by eleven o'clock next morning they would be relieved. So they would if White had won his action. But—

Sir George White has nobly and openly taken the blame for Nicholson's Nek, but a fair historian might see his self-condemnation as excessive. The immediate causes of the failure were clearly due to bad luck and were beyond his control. However, it’s clear that the strategic plan justifying this column's presence at Nicholson's Nek relied on the assumption that the main army would win their fight at Lombard's Kop. If that happened, White could maneuver his right flank and pin the Boers between himself and Nicholson's Nek. In that scenario, he could also reunite with his isolated wing. But if he lost the battle—then what? What would happen to this detachment five miles away? How would they be rescued? The brave Irishman seems to have dismissed the very idea of defeat. Reports say the leaders of the column were assured that by eleven o'clock the next morning, they would be relieved. They would be, if White won his battle. But—

The force chosen to operate independently consisted of four and a half companies of the Gloucester regiment, six companies of the Royal Irish Fusiliers, and No. 10 Mountain Battery of six seven-pounder screw-guns. They were both old soldier regiments from India, and the Fusiliers had shown only ten days before at Talana Hill the stuff of which they were made. Colonel Carleton, of the Fusiliers, to whose exertions much of the success of the retreat from Dundee was due, commanded the column, with Major Adye as staff officer. On the night of Sunday, October 29th, they tramped out of Ladysmith, a thousand men, none better in the army. Little they thought, as they exchanged a jest or two with the outlying pickets, that they were seeing the last of their own armed countrymen for many a weary month.

The force selected to operate independently included four and a half companies of the Gloucester regiment, six companies of the Royal Irish Fusiliers, and No. 10 Mountain Battery with six seven-pounder screw-guns. Both regiments were seasoned soldiers from India, and the Fusiliers had demonstrated their capabilities just ten days earlier at Talana Hill. Colonel Carleton of the Fusiliers, whose efforts were instrumental in the success of the retreat from Dundee, led the column, with Major Adye serving as staff officer. On the night of Sunday, October 29th, they marched out of Ladysmith, a thousand men, among the best in the army. Little did they know, as they shared a joke or two with the outlying pickets, that they were about to say goodbye to their fellow armed countrymen for many long months ahead.

The road was irregular and the night was moonless. On either side the black loom of the hills bulked vaguely through the darkness. The column tramped stolidly along, the Fusiliers in front, the guns and Gloucesters behind. Several times a short halt was called to make sure of the bearings. At last, in the black cold hours which come between midnight and morning, the column swung to the left out of the road. In front of them, hardly visible, stretched a long black kopje. It was the very Nicholson's Nek which they had come to occupy. Carleton and Adye must have heaved a sigh of relief as they realised that they had actually struck it. The force was but two hundred yards from the position, and all had gone without a hitch. And yet in those two hundred yards there came an incident which decided the fate both of their enterprise and of themselves.

The road was bumpy and the night was dark without a moon. On both sides, the dark shapes of the hills loomed vaguely in the darkness. The group marched steadily along, with the Fusiliers in the front and the guns and Gloucesters behind. They stopped briefly several times to check their direction. Finally, in the cold, dark hours between midnight and morning, the column turned left off the road. In front of them, barely visible, was a long dark hill. It was Nicholson's Nek, the very place they had come to take over. Carleton and Adye must have sighed in relief as they understood that they had actually reached it. The force was only two hundred yards away from the position, and everything had gone smoothly. Yet, in those two hundred yards, an incident occurred that would determine the fate of both their mission and themselves.

Out of the darkness there blundered and rattled five horsemen, their horses galloping, the loose stones flying around them. In the dim light they were gone as soon as seen. Whence coming, whither going, no one knows, nor is it certain whether it was design or ignorance or panic which sent them riding so wildly through the darkness. Somebody fired. A sergeant of the Fusiliers took the bullet through his hand. Some one else shouted to fix bayonets. The mules which carried the spare ammunition kicked and reared. There was no question of treachery, for they were led by our own men, but to hold two frightened mules, one with either hand, is a feat for a Hercules. They lashed and tossed and bucked themselves loose, and an instant afterwards were flying helter skelter through the column. Nearly all the mules caught the panic. In vain the men held on to their heads. In the mad rush they were galloped over and knocked down by the torrent of frightened creatures. In the gloom of that early hour the men must have thought that they were charged by cavalry. The column was dashed out of all military order as effectively as if a regiment of dragoons had ridden over them. When the cyclone had passed, and the men had with many a muttered curse gathered themselves into their ranks once more, they realised how grave was the misfortune which had befallen them. There, where those mad hoofs still rattled in the distance, were their spare cartridges, their shells, and their cannon. A mountain gun is not drawn upon wheels, but is carried in adjustable parts upon mule-back. A wheel had gone south, a trail east, a chase west. Some of the cartridges were strewn upon the road. Most were on their way back to Ladysmith. There was nothing for it but to face this new situation and to determine what should be done.

Out of the darkness stumbled five horsemen, their horses galloping and loose stones flying around them. In the dim light, they disappeared as quickly as they appeared. No one knows where they came from or where they were headed, and it’s unclear if they were acting on purpose, out of ignorance, or in a panic as they rode wildly through the night. Someone fired a shot. A sergeant of the Fusiliers took a bullet through his hand. Another shouted to fix bayonets. The mules carrying the extra ammunition kicked and reared. There was no question of treachery, as they were led by our own men, but managing two scared mules, one in each hand, is a challenge even for Hercules. They kicked and bucked until they broke free, and moments later, they were racing chaotically through the troops. Almost all the mules caught the panic. The men struggled to hold onto their heads. In the frenzy, they were trampled and knocked down by the stampede of frightened animals. In the early morning gloom, the men must have thought they were being charged by cavalry. The column was thrown into disarray as effectively as if a regiment of dragoons had charged over them. When the chaos subsided, and the men had gathered back into formation with many a muttered curse, they realized the serious misfortune that had struck them. There, where those frenzied hooves still echoed in the distance, lay their spare cartridges, shells, and cannons. A mountain gun isn’t pulled on wheels but is carried in separate pieces on mule-back. One wheel had gone south, a trail east, a chase west. Some cartridges were scattered along the road. Most were heading back to Ladysmith. They had no choice but to confront this new situation and figure out their next steps.

It has been often and naturally asked, why did not Colonel Carleton make his way back at once upon the loss of his guns and ammunition, while it was still dark? One or two considerations are evident. In the first place, it is natural to a good soldier to endeavour to retrieve a situation rather than to abandon his enterprise. His prudence, did he not do so, might become the subject of public commendation, but might also provoke some private comment. A soldier's training is to take chances, and to do the best he can with the material at his disposal. Again, Colonel Carleton and Major Adye knew the general plan of the battle which would be raging within a very few hours, and they quite understood that by withdrawing they would expose General White's left flank to attack from the forces (consisting, as we know now, of the Orange Freestaters and of the Johannesburg Police) who were coming from the north and west. He hoped to be relieved by eleven, and he believed that, come what might, he could hold out until then. These are the most obvious of the considerations which induced Colonel Carleton to determine to carry out so far as he could the programme which had been laid down for him and his command. He marched up the hill and occupied the position.

It’s often been asked why Colonel Carleton didn’t make his way back immediately after losing his guns and ammunition, while it was still dark. A couple of reasons are clear. First, it’s typical for a good soldier to try to fix a situation instead of just giving up on his mission. If he didn’t, people might praise his caution, but he could also face some private criticism. A soldier is trained to take risks and make the best of what he has. Additionally, Colonel Carleton and Major Adye were aware of the overall battle plan that would unfold in just a few hours, and they recognized that pulling back would leave General White’s left flank vulnerable to attack from the forces (which we now know included the Orange Free Staters and the Johannesburg Police) approaching from the north and west. He hoped to be relieved by eleven and believed that no matter what happened, he could hold out until then. These are the main reasons that led Colonel Carleton to decide to follow through as best he could with the plan laid out for him and his men. He marched up the hill and took position.

His heart, however, must have sunk when he examined it. It was very large—too large to be effectively occupied by the force which he commanded. The length was about a mile and the breadth four hundred yards. Shaped roughly like the sole of a boot, it was only the heel end which he could hope to hold. Other hills all round offered cover for Boer riflemen. Nothing daunted, however, he set his men to work at once building sangars with the loose stones. With the full dawn and the first snapping of Boer Mausers from the hills around they had thrown up some sort of rude defences which they might hope to hold until help should come.

His heart must have sunk when he looked at it. It was huge—way too big for the force he was in charge of. It stretched about a mile long and four hundred yards wide. Shaped somewhat like the sole of a boot, he could only hope to secure the heel. Surrounding hills provided cover for Boer snipers. Undeterred, he immediately had his men start building makeshift defenses with the loose stones. By the time dawn broke and the first shots from Boer Mausers rang out from the hills, they had managed to put together some kind of basic defenses that they might be able to hold until help arrived.

But how could help come when there was no means by which they could let White know the plight in which they found themselves? They had brought a heliograph with them, but it was on the back of one of those accursed mules. The Boers were thick around them, and they could not send a messenger. An attempt was made to convert a polished biscuit tin into a heliograph, but with poor success. A Kaffir was dispatched with promises of a heavy bribe, but he passed out of history. And there in the clear cold morning air the balloon hung to the south of them where the first distant thunder of White's guns was beginning to sound. If only they could attract the attention of that balloon! Vainly they wagged flags at it. Serene and unresponsive it brooded over the distant battle.

But how could they get help when there was no way to let White know about their situation? They had brought a heliograph with them, but it was on the back of one of those cursed mules. The Boers were all around them, and they couldn't send a messenger. They tried to turn a shiny biscuit tin into a heliograph, but it didn't work well. A local man was sent with promises of a big bribe, but he disappeared without a trace. And there, in the clear, cold morning air, the balloon hung to the south of them as the distant thunder of White's guns began to sound. If only they could catch the attention of that balloon! They waved flags at it in vain. Calm and indifferent, it loomed over the far-off battle.

And now the Boers were thickening round them on every side. Christian de Wet, a name soon to be a household word, marshaled the Boer attack, which was soon strengthened by the arrival of Van Dam and his Police. At five o'clock the fire began, at six it was warm, at seven warmer still. Two companies of the Gloucesters lined a sangar on the tread of the sole, to prevent any one getting too near to the heel. A fresh detachment of Boers, firing from a range of nearly one thousand yards, took this defence in the rear. Bullets fell among the men, and smacked up against the stone breastwork. The two companies were withdrawn, and lost heavily in the open as they crossed it. An incessant rattle and crackle of rifle fire came from all round, drawing very slowly but steadily nearer. Now and then the whisk of a dark figure from one boulder to another was all that ever was seen of the attackers. The British fired slowly and steadily, for every cartridge counted, but the cover of the Boers was so cleverly taken that it was seldom that there was much to aim at. 'All you could ever see,' says one who was present, 'were the barrels of the rifles.' There was time for thought in that long morning, and to some of the men it may have occurred what preparation for such fighting had they ever had in the mechanical exercises of the parade ground, or the shooting of an annual bagful of cartridges at exposed targets at a measured range. It is the warfare of Nicholson's Nek, not that of Laffan's Plain, which has to be learned in the future.

And now the Boers were closing in on them from every direction. Christian de Wet, a name that would soon be well-known, led the Boer assault, which was soon bolstered by the arrival of Van Dam and his police. At five o'clock, the shooting began; by six, it was getting intense; by seven, it was even hotter. Two companies of the Gloucesters took up position in a sangar on the toe of the foot, to stop anyone from getting too close to the heel. A fresh group of Boers, shooting from nearly a thousand yards away, attacked this defense from behind. Bullets rained down on the men and thudded against the stone wall. The two companies were pulled back but suffered heavy losses while crossing the open ground. An unending rattle and crackle of gunfire buzzed all around, slowly but steadily getting closer. Occasionally, a dark figure darting from one rock to another was all that could be seen of the attackers. The British fired slowly and steadily because every bullet mattered, but the Boers were so well hidden that there was rarely anything to aim at. "All you could ever see," said one who was there, "were the barrels of the rifles." There was time to reflect during that long morning, and some of the men might have wondered what kind of training they had for such battles in the mechanical drills on the parade ground or shooting at stationary targets with a set number of bullets. It is the warfare of Nicholson's Nek, not that of Laffan's Plain, that must be learned for the future.

During those weary hours lying on the bullet-swept hill and listening to the eternal hissing in the air and clicking on the rocks, the British soldiers could see the fight which raged to the south of them. It was not a cheering sight, and Carleton and Adye with their gallant comrades must have felt their hearts grow heavier as they watched. The Boers' shells bursting among the British batteries, the British shells bursting short of their opponents. The Long Toms laid at an angle of forty-five plumped their huge shells into the British guns at a range where the latter would not dream of unlimbering. And then gradually the rifle fire died away also, crackling more faintly as White withdrew to Ladysmith. At eleven o'clock Carleton's column recognised that it had been left to its fate. As early as nine a heliogram had been sent to them to retire as the opportunity served, but to leave the hill was certainly to court annihilation.

During those exhausting hours lying on the bullet-scarred hill and listening to the constant hissing in the air and the popping on the rocks, the British soldiers could see the battle raging to their south. It wasn't an encouraging sight, and Carleton and Adye, along with their brave comrades, must have felt their hearts sink as they watched. The Boers' shells exploded among the British batteries, while the British shells fell short of their targets. The Long Toms, angled at forty-five degrees, launched their massive shells into the British guns from a distance where the latter wouldn't even consider setting up. Slowly, the rifle fire faded away as well, crackling more faintly as White retreated to Ladysmith. At eleven o'clock, Carleton's column realized it had been left to fend for itself. As early as nine, a heliogram had been sent telling them to withdraw when they could, but leaving the hill was definitely inviting disaster.

The men had then been under fire for six hours, and with their losses mounting and their cartridges dwindling, all hope had faded from their minds. But still for another hour, and yet another, and yet another, they held doggedly on. Nine and a half hours they clung to that pile of stones. The Fusiliers were still exhausted from the effect of their march from Glencoe and their incessant work since. Many fell asleep behind the boulders. Some sat doggedly with their useless rifles and empty pouches beside them. Some picked cartridges off their dead comrades. What were they fighting for? It was hopeless, and they knew it. But always there was the honour of the flag, the glory of the regiment, the hatred of a proud and brave man to acknowledge defeat. And yet it had to come. There were some in that force who were ready for the reputation of the British army, and for the sake of an example of military virtue, to die stolidly where they stood, or to lead the 'Faugh-a-ballagh' boys, or the gallant 28th, in one last death-charge with empty rifles against the unseen enemy. They may have been right, these stalwarts. Leonidas and his three hundred did more for the Spartan cause by their memory than by their living valour. Man passes like the brown leaves, but the tradition of a nation lives on like the oak that sheds them—and the passing of the leaves is nothing if the bole be the sounder for it. But a counsel of perfection is easy at a study table. There are other things to be said—the responsibility of officers for the lives of their men, the hope that they may yet be of service to their country. All was weighed, all was thought of, and so at last the white flag went up. The officer who hoisted it could see no one unhurt save himself, for all in his sangar were hit, and the others were so placed that he was under the impression that they had withdrawn altogether. Whether this hoisting of the flag necessarily compromised the whole force is a difficult question, but the Boers instantly left their cover, and the men in the sangars behind, some of whom had not been so seriously engaged, were ordered by their officers to desist from firing. In an instant the victorious Boers were among them.

The men had been under fire for six hours, and with their losses increasing and their ammunition running low, all hope had vanished from their minds. But still, for another hour, and then another, and yet another, they held on stubbornly. For nine and a half hours, they clung to that pile of stones. The Fusiliers were still worn out from their march from Glencoe and the relentless work since then. Many fell asleep behind the rocks. Some sat resolutely with their useless rifles and empty pouches beside them. Some picked up cartridges from their fallen comrades. What were they fighting for? It was hopeless, and they knew it. But there was always the honor of their flag, the pride of the regiment, and the refusal of a proud, brave man to accept defeat. Yet it had to come. Some in that unit were willing to die where they stood for the reputation of the British army and as an example of military virtue, or to lead the 'Faugh-a-ballagh' boys, or the gallant 28th, in one last charge against the unseen enemy with empty rifles. They may have been right, those stalwarts. Leonidas and his three hundred did more for the Spartan cause through their memory than through their living valor. Man passes like brown leaves, but the tradition of a nation lives on like the oak that sheds them—and the falling of the leaves means nothing if the trunk is stronger for it. But it's easy to talk about perfection at a study table. There are other things to consider—the responsibility of officers for the lives of their men, the hope that they might still be of service to their country. Everything was weighed and thought through, and eventually, the white flag was raised. The officer who raised it could see no one unharmed except himself, as all in his position were hit, and the others were arranged so that he thought they had retreated completely. Whether raising the flag compromised the entire force is a complicated question, but the Boers quickly left their cover, and men in the positions behind, some of whom had not been heavily engaged, were ordered by their officers to stop firing. In an instant, the victorious Boers were among them.

It was not, as I have been told by those who were there, a sight which one would wish to have seen or care now to dwell upon. Haggard officers cracked their sword-blades and cursed the day that they had been born. Privates sobbed with their stained faces buried in their hands. Of all tests of discipline that ever they had stood, the hardest to many was to conform to all that the cursed flapping handkerchief meant to them. 'Father, father, we had rather have died,' cried the Fusiliers to their priest. Gallant hearts, ill paid, ill thanked, how poorly do the successful of the world compare with their unselfish loyalty and devotion!

It wasn’t, as I’ve been told by those who were there, something you’d want to see or think about now. Exhausted officers broke their sword blades and cursed the day they were born. Privates wept with their dirty faces hidden in their hands. Of all the tests of discipline they ever faced, the hardest for many was to accept what that damned fluttering handkerchief signified. 'Father, father, we’d rather have died,' cried the Fusiliers to their priest. Brave hearts, poorly paid and poorly appreciated, how little do the successful people of the world compare to their selfless loyalty and dedication!

But the sting of contumely or insult was not added to their misfortunes. There is a fellowship of brave men which rises above the feuds of nations, and may at last go far, we hope, to heal them. From every rock there rose a Boer—strange, grotesque figures many of them—walnut-brown and shaggy-bearded, and swarmed on to the hill. No term of triumph or reproach came from their lips. 'You will not say now that the young Boer cannot shoot,' was the harshest word which the least restrained of them made use of. Between one and two hundred dead and wounded were scattered over the hill. Those who were within reach of human help received all that could be given. Captain Rice, of the Fusiliers, was carried wounded down the hill on the back of one giant, and he has narrated how the man refused the gold piece which was offered him. Some asked the soldiers for their embroidered waist-belts as souvenirs of the day. They will for generations remain as the most precious ornaments of some colonial farmhouse. Then the victors gathered together and sang psalms, not jubilant but sad and quavering. The prisoners, in a downcast column, weary, spent, and unkempt, filed off to the Boer laager at Waschbank, there to take train for Pretoria. And at Ladysmith a bugler of Fusiliers, his arm bound, the marks of battle on his dress and person, burst in upon the camp with the news that two veteran regiments had covered the flank of White's retreating army, but at the cost of their own annihilation.

But the sting of insult didn’t add to their troubles. There’s a bond among brave men that rises above national conflicts and, hopefully, helps to heal them. From every rock, a Boer emerged—many of them strange, grotesque figures, walnut-brown and shaggy-bearded, swarming up the hill. No boasts or insults came from their lips. “You can’t say now that the young Boer can’t shoot,” was the harshest thing said by the least restrained among them. Between one and two hundred dead and wounded lay scattered across the hill. Those within reach of help received everything that could be provided. Captain Rice, from the Fusiliers, was carried down the hill wounded on the back of one giant, and he reported how the man refused the gold coin that was offered to him. Some asked the soldiers for their embroidered waist-belts as mementos of the day. They will remain cherished keepsakes in colonial farmhouses for generations. Then the victors gathered and sang psalms, not triumphantly but sadly and quaveringly. The prisoners, in a downcast line, tired, exhausted, and unkempt, made their way to the Boer laager at Waschbank to catch a train to Pretoria. Meanwhile, in Ladysmith, a bugler from the Fusiliers, his arm bandaged and bearing the marks of battle on his clothing and body, rushed into the camp with the news that two veteran regiments had covered the flank of White's retreating army, but at the cost of their own destruction.





2_orange_river_colony_south (135K)

CHAPTER 8. LORD METHUEN'S ADVANCE.

At the end of a fortnight of actual hostilities in Natal the situation of the Boer army was such as to seriously alarm the public at home, and to cause an almost universal chorus of ill-natured delight from the press of all European nations. Whether the reason was hatred of ourselves, or the sporting instinct which backs the smaller against the larger, or the influence of the ubiquitous Dr. Leyds and his secret service fund, it is certain that the continental papers have never been so unanimous as in their premature rejoicings over what, with an extraordinary want of proportion, and ignorance of our national character, they imagined to be a damaging blow to the British Empire. France, Russia, Austria, and Germany were equally venomous against us, nor can the visit of the German Emperor, though a courteous and timely action in itself, entirely atone for the senseless bitterness of the press of the Fatherland. Great Britain was roused out of her habitual apathy and disregard for foreign opinion by this chorus of execration, and braced herself for a greater effort in consequence. She was cheered by the sympathy of her friends in the United States, and by the good wishes of the smaller nations of Europe, notably of Italy, Denmark, Greece, Turkey, and Hungary.

At the end of two weeks of actual fighting in Natal, the Boer army's situation was alarming to the public back home and sparked a nearly universal wave of negativity from the press in all European countries. Whether this was due to animosity towards us, a sporting instinct that favors the underdog, or the influence of the ever-present Dr. Leyds and his secret service fund, it's clear that the continental newspapers had never been more united in their premature celebrations over what they mistakenly thought was a significant blow to the British Empire. France, Russia, Austria, and Germany were all equally hostile towards us, and the visit from the German Emperor, although polite and timely, couldn’t fully make up for the unreasonable hostility of the German press. Great Britain was jolted out of its usual indifference to foreign opinions by this wave of criticism and prepared itself for a more significant effort in response. She drew encouragement from the support of her friends in the United States and from the well-wishes of smaller European nations, including Italy, Denmark, Greece, Turkey, and Hungary.

The exact position at the end of this fortnight of hard slogging was that a quarter of the colony of Natal and a hundred miles of railway were in the hands of the enemy. Five distinct actions had been fought, none of them perhaps coming within the fair meaning of a battle. Of these one had been a distinct British victory, two had been indecisive, one had been unfortunate, and one had been a positive disaster. We had lost about twelve hundred prisoners and a battery of small guns. The Boers had lost two fine guns and three hundred prisoners. Twelve thousand British troops had been shut up in Ladysmith, and there was no serious force between the invaders and the sea. Only in those distant transports, where the grimy stokers shoveled and strove, were there hopes for the safety of Natal and the honour of the Empire. In Cape Colony the loyalists waited with bated breath, knowing well that there was nothing to check a Free State invasion, and that if it came no bounds could be placed upon how far it might advance, or what effect it might have upon the Dutch population.

The situation at the end of this two-week period of hard work was that a quarter of the colony of Natal and a hundred miles of railway were under enemy control. Five separate skirmishes had taken place, none of which could truly be classified as a battle. Out of these, one was a clear British victory, two were inconclusive, one was unfortunate, and one was a complete disaster. We had lost around twelve hundred prisoners and a battery of small guns. The Boers had lost two impressive guns and three hundred prisoners. Twelve thousand British troops were trapped in Ladysmith, and there was no significant force between the invaders and the sea. Only in those faraway transports, where the grimy stokers toiled, were there any hopes for the safety of Natal and the honor of the Empire. In Cape Colony, the loyalists waited anxiously, fully aware that there was nothing to prevent a Free State invasion and that, if it happened, there would be no limits on how far it could go or what impact it might have on the Dutch population.

Leaving Ladysmith now apparently within the grasp of the Boers, who had settled down deliberately to the work of throttling it, the narrative must pass to the western side of the seat of war, and give a consecutive account of the events which began with the siege of Kimberley and led to the ineffectual efforts of Lord Methuen's column to relieve it.

Leaving Ladysmith now seemingly at the mercy of the Boers, who had intentionally started the process of suffocating it, the story must shift to the western front of the conflict and provide a continuous account of the events that started with the siege of Kimberley and led to the unsuccessful attempts of Lord Methuen's unit to relieve it.

On the declaration of war two important movements had been made by the Boers upon the west. One was the advance of a considerable body under the formidable Cronje to attack Mafeking, an enterprise which demands a chapter of its own. The other was the investment of Kimberley by a force which consisted principally of Freestaters under the command of Wessels and Botha. The place was defended by Colonel Kekewich, aided by the advice and help of Mr. Cecil Rhodes, who had gallantly thrown himself into the town by one of the last trains which reached it. As the founder and director of the great De Beers diamond mines he desired to be with his people in the hour of their need, and it was through his initiative that the town had been provided with the rifles and cannon with which to sustain the siege.

At the start of the war, two significant moves were made by the Boers to the west. One was a large group led by the formidable Cronje, who aimed to attack Mafeking, a mission that deserves its own chapter. The other was the siege of Kimberley by a force mainly made up of Freestaters under Wessels and Botha. The town was defended by Colonel Kekewich, with the support and guidance of Mr. Cecil Rhodes, who had bravely entered the town on one of the last trains that arrived. As the founder and director of the huge De Beers diamond mines, he wanted to be with his people in their time of need, and it was through his efforts that the town was equipped with the rifles and cannons necessary to endure the siege.

The troops which Colonel Kekewich had at his disposal consisted of four companies of the Loyal North Lancashire Regiment (his own regiment), with some Royal Engineers, a mountain battery, and two machine guns. In addition there were the extremely spirited and capable local forces, a hundred and twenty men of the Cape Police, two thousand Volunteers, a body of Kimberley Light Horse, and a battery of light seven-pounder guns. There were also eight Maxims which were mounted upon the huge mounds of debris which surrounded the mines and formed most efficient fortresses.

The troops Colonel Kekewich had available included four companies from the Loyal North Lancashire Regiment (his own regiment), along with some Royal Engineers, a mountain artillery unit, and two machine guns. Additionally, there were the highly motivated and skilled local forces: 120 members of the Cape Police, 2,000 Volunteers, a group of Kimberley Light Horse, and a battery of light seven-pounder guns. There were also eight Maxims set up on the large piles of debris around the mines, creating effective fortifications.

A small reinforcement of police had, under tragic circumstances, reached the town. Vryburg, the capital of British Bechuanaland, lies 145 miles to the north of Kimberley. The town has strong Dutch sympathies, and on the news of the approach of a Boer force with artillery it was evident that it could not be held. Scott, the commandant of police, made some attempt to organise a defence, but having no artillery and finding little sympathy, he was compelled to abandon his charge to the invaders. The gallant Scott rode south with his troopers, and in his humiliation and grief at his inability to preserve his post he blew out his brains upon the journey. Vryburg was immediately occupied by the Boers, and British Bechuanaland was formally annexed to the South African Republic. This policy of the instant annexation of all territories invaded was habitually carried out by the enemy, with the idea that British subjects who joined them would in this way be shielded from the consequences of treason. Meanwhile several thousand Freestaters and Transvaalers with artillery had assembled round Kimberley, and all news of the town was cut off. Its relief was one of the first tasks which presented itself to the inpouring army corps. The obvious base of such a movement must be Orange River, and there and at De Aar the stores for the advance began to be accumulated. At the latter place especially, which is the chief railway junction in the north of the colony, enormous masses of provisions, ammunition, and fodder were collected, with thousands of mules which the long arm of the British Government had rounded up from many parts of the world. The guard over these costly and essential supplies seems to have been a dangerously weak one. Between Orange River and De Aar, which are sixty miles apart, there were the 9th Lancers, the Royal Munsters, the 2nd King's Own Yorkshire Light Infantry, and the 1st Northumberland Fusiliers, under three thousand men in all, with two million pounds' worth of stores and the Free State frontier within a ride of them. Verily if we have something to deplore in this war we have much also to be thankful for.

A small group of police reinforcement had, under tragic circumstances, arrived in the town. Vryburg, the capital of British Bechuanaland, is 145 miles north of Kimberley. The town has strong Dutch sympathies, and when news of an approaching Boer force with artillery came in, it was clear that it couldn't be held. Scott, the police commandant, made some effort to organize a defense, but lacking artillery and finding little support, he was forced to give up his post to the invaders. The brave Scott rode south with his troopers, and overwhelmed with humiliation and grief at his inability to defend his position, he took his own life during the journey. Vryburg was quickly taken over by the Boers, and British Bechuanaland was officially annexed to the South African Republic. The enemy routinely carried out a policy of immediate annexation of all invaded territories, believing that British subjects who joined them would be protected from the repercussions of treason. Meanwhile, thousands of Freestaters and Transvaalers with artillery gathered around Kimberley, cutting off all news from the town. Its rescue became one of the top priorities for the advancing army corps. The obvious base for such an operation had to be Orange River, where supplies for the advance began to pile up, especially at De Aar, the main railway junction in the north of the colony. There, massive amounts of provisions, ammunition, and fodder were gathered, along with thousands of mules that the British Government had gathered from various parts of the world. The guard over these crucial supplies seemed dangerously inadequate. Between Orange River and De Aar, which are sixty miles apart, were the 9th Lancers, the Royal Munsters, the 2nd King's Own Yorkshire Light Infantry, and the 1st Northumberland Fusiliers, totaling under three thousand men, alongside two million pounds' worth of supplies and the Free State border just a ride away. Truly, if there’s much to lament in this war, there’s also a lot to be grateful for.

Up to the end of October the situation was so dangerous that it is really inexplicable that no advantage was taken of it by the enemy. Our main force was concentrated to defend the Orange River railway bridge, which was so essential for our advance upon Kimberley. This left only a single regiment without guns for the defence of De Aar and the valuable stores. A fairer mark for a dashing leader and a raid of mounted riflemen was never seen. The chance passed, however, as so many others of the Boers' had done. Early in November Colesberg and Naauwpoort were abandoned by our small detachments, who concentrated at De Aar. The Berkshires joined the Yorkshire Light Infantry, and nine field guns arrived also. General Wood worked hard at the fortifying of the surrounding kopjes, until within a week the place had been made tolerably secure.

Up until the end of October, the situation was so dangerous that it’s really hard to understand why the enemy didn’t take advantage of it. Our main force was focused on defending the Orange River railway bridge, which was crucial for our advance on Kimberley. This left just one regiment without artillery to defend De Aar and the valuable supplies there. It was a perfect target for a bold leader and a raid by mounted riflemen. However, this opportunity slipped away, like so many others for the Boers. Early in November, our small units abandoned Colesberg and Naauwpoort and regrouped at De Aar. The Berkshires joined the Yorkshire Light Infantry, and nine field guns also arrived. General Wood worked diligently to fortify the surrounding hills, and within a week, the area had become fairly secure.

The first collision between the opposing forces at this part of the seat of war was upon November 10th, when Colonel Gough of the 9th Lancers made a reconnaissance from Orange River to the north with two squadrons of his own regiment, the mounted infantry of the Northumberland Fusiliers, the Royal Munsters, and the North Lancashires, with a battery of field artillery. To the east of Belmont, about fifteen miles off, he came on a detachment of the enemy with a gun. To make out the Boer position the mounted infantry galloped round one of their flanks, and in doing so passed close to a kopje which was occupied by sharpshooters. A deadly fire crackled suddenly out from among the boulders. Of six men hit four were officers, showing how cool were the marksmen and how dangerous those dress distinctions which will probably disappear hence forwards upon the field of battle. Colonel Keith-Falconer of the Northumberlands, who had earned distinction in the Soudan, was shot dead. So was Wood of the North Lancashires. Hall and Bevan of the Northumberlands were wounded. An advance by train of the troops in camp drove back the Boers and extricated our small force from what might have proved a serious position, for the enemy in superior numbers were working round their wings. The troops returned to camp without any good object having been attained, but that must be the necessary fate of many a cavalry reconnaissance.

The first clash between the opposing forces in this area of the battlefield occurred on November 10th, when Colonel Gough of the 9th Lancers conducted a reconnaissance from Orange River to the north, accompanied by two squadrons of his regiment, the mounted infantry of the Northumberland Fusiliers, the Royal Munsters, and the North Lancashires, along with a field artillery battery. To the east of Belmont, about fifteen miles away, he encountered an enemy detachment armed with a gun. To assess the Boer position, the mounted infantry rode around one of their flanks and, in doing so, passed close to a kopje held by sharpshooters. A sudden, deadly fire erupted from the boulders. Out of six men hit, four were officers, demonstrating the sharpshooters' skill and the peril of those rank distinctions that will likely vanish in future battles. Colonel Keith-Falconer of the Northumberlands, who had gained recognition in the Soudan, was shot dead, as was Wood of the North Lancashires. Hall and Bevan of the Northumberlands were wounded. An advance by train of the troops in camp forced the Boers to retreat and rescued our small force from what could have been a critical situation, as the enemy, outnumbering us, was attempting to flank them. The troops returned to camp without achieving any significant objectives, but that is often the inevitable outcome of many cavalry reconnaissance missions.

On November 12th Lord Methuen arrived at Orange River and proceeded to organise the column which was to advance to the relief of Kimberley. General Methuen had had some previous South African experience when in 1885 he had commanded a large body of irregular horse in Bechuanaland. His reputation was that of a gallant fearless soldier. He was not yet fifty-five years of age.

On November 12th, Lord Methuen arrived at Orange River and began organizing the unit that would move forward to relieve Kimberley. General Methuen had some prior experience in South Africa, as he had led a large group of irregular cavalry in Bechuanaland in 1885. He was known for being a brave and fearless soldier. He was not yet fifty-five years old.

The force which gradually assembled at Orange River was formidable rather from its quality than from its numbers. It included a brigade of Guards (the 1st Scots Guards, 3rd Grenadiers, and 1st and 2nd Coldstreams), the 2nd Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Northamptons, the 1st Northumberlands, and a wing of the North Lancashires whose comrades were holding out at Kimberley, with a naval brigade of seamen gunners and marines. For cavalry he had the 9th Lancers, with detachments of mounted infantry, and for artillery the 75th and 18th Batteries R.F.A.

The force that gradually gathered at Orange River was impressive more for its quality than its size. It included a brigade of Guards (the 1st Scots Guards, 3rd Grenadiers, and 1st and 2nd Coldstreams), the 2nd Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Northamptons, the 1st Northumberlands, and a wing of the North Lancashires whose comrades were holding out at Kimberley, along with a naval brigade of seamen, gunners, and marines. For cavalry, he had the 9th Lancers, with detachments of mounted infantry, and for artillery, the 75th and 18th Batteries R.F.A.

Extreme mobility was aimed at in the column, and neither tents nor comforts of any sort were permitted to officers or men—no light matter in a climate where a tropical day is followed by an arctic night. At daybreak on November 22nd the force, numbering about eight thousand men, set off upon its eventful journey. The distance to Kimberley was not more than sixty miles, and it is probable that there was not one man in the force who imagined how long that march would take or how grim the experiences would be which awaited them on the way. At the dawn of Wednesday, November 22nd, Lord Methuen moved forward until he came into touch with the Boer position at Belmont. It was surveyed that evening by Colonel Willoughby Verner, and every disposition made to attack it in the morning.

Extreme mobility was the goal of the column, and neither tents nor any comforts were allowed for officers or troops—no small challenge in a climate where a tropical day turns into an arctic night. At daybreak on November 22nd, the force, consisting of about eight thousand men, began its significant journey. The distance to Kimberley was no more than sixty miles, and it's likely that none of the men expected how long that march would take or how tough the experiences they would face along the way would be. At dawn on Wednesday, November 22nd, Lord Methuen advanced until he connected with the Boer position at Belmont. Colonel Willoughby Verner surveyed it that evening, making all necessary plans to launch an attack in the morning.

The force of the Boers was much inferior to our own, some two or three thousand in all, but the natural strength of their position made it a difficult one to carry, while it could not be left behind us as a menace to our line of communications. A double row of steep hills lay across the road to Kimberley, and it was along the ridges, snuggling closely among the boulders, that our enemy was waiting for us. In their weeks of preparation they had constructed elaborate shelter pits in which they could lie in comparative safety while they swept all the level ground around with their rifle fire. Mr. Ralph, the American correspondent, whose letters were among the most vivid of the war, has described these lairs, littered with straw and the debris of food, isolated from each other, and each containing its grim and formidable occupant. 'The eyries of birds of prey' is the phrase with which he brings them home to us. In these, with nothing visible but their peering eyes and the barrels of their rifles, the Boer marksmen crouched, and munched their biltong and their mealies as the day broke upon the morning of the 23rd. With the light their enemy was upon them.

The Boer force was much smaller than ours, around two or three thousand total, but the natural strength of their position made it tough to take. We couldn't leave it behind us as a threat to our supply lines. A double row of steep hills blocked the road to Kimberley, and the enemy was hiding among the boulders along the ridges, waiting for us. In their weeks of preparation, they built elaborate shelter pits where they could stay relatively safe while shooting at all the open ground around them. Mr. Ralph, the American correspondent, whose letters were some of the most vivid of the war, described these hideouts, filled with straw and food scraps, isolated from one another, each housing a grim and formidable occupant. He called them 'the eyries of birds of prey.' In these spots, with nothing visible but their watchful eyes and rifle barrels, the Boer marksmen lay low, munching on biltong and mealies as dawn broke on the 23rd. With the light, their enemy was upon them.

It was a soldiers' battle in the good old primeval British style, an Alma on a small scale and against deadlier weapons. The troops advanced in grim silence against the savage-looking, rock-sprinkled, crag-topped position which confronted them. They were in a fierce humour, for they had not breakfasted, and military history from Agincourt to Talavera shows that want of food wakens a dangerous spirit among British troops. A Northumberland Fusilier exploded into words which expressed the gruffness of his comrades. As a too energetic staff officer pranced before their line he roared in his rough North-country tongue, 'Domn thee! Get thee to hell, and let's fire!' In the golden light of the rising sun the men set their teeth and dashed up the hills, scrambling, falling, cheering, swearing, gallant men, gallantly led, their one thought to close with that grim bristle of rifle-barrels which fringed the rocks above them.

It was a soldiers' battle in the classic British style, a smaller version of Alma but with deadlier weapons. The troops moved forward in grim silence toward the fierce-looking, rocky, cliff-top position ahead of them. They were in a fighting mood, as they hadn’t eaten breakfast, and military history from Agincourt to Talavera shows that hunger sparks a dangerous spirit among British troops. A Northumberland Fusilier blurted out words that captured the gruffness of his fellow soldiers. As a rather enthusiastic staff officer pranced in front of their line, he shouted in his rough North-country accent, "Damn you! Get to hell, and let's fire!" In the golden light of the rising sun, the men gritted their teeth and charged up the hills, scrambling, falling, cheering, swearing—brave men, gallantly led, all focused on closing in on that grim line of rifle barrels that rimmed the rocks above them.

Lord Methuen's intention had been an attack from front and from flank, but whether from the Grenadiers losing their bearings, or from the mobility of the Boers, which made a flank attack an impossibility, it is certain that all became frontal. The battle resolved itself into a number of isolated actions in which the various kopjes were rushed by different British regiments, always with success and always with loss. The honours of the fight, as tested by the grim record of the casualty returns, lay with the Grenadiers, the Coldstreams, the Northumberlands, and the Scots Guards. The brave Guardsmen lay thickly on the slopes, but their comrades crowned the heights. The Boers held on desperately and fired their rifles in the very faces of the stormers. One young officer had his jaw blown to pieces by a rifle which almost touched him. Another, Blundell of the Guards, was shot dead by a wounded desperado to whom he was offering his water-bottle. At one point a white flag was waved by the defenders, on which the British left cover, only to be met by a volley. It was there that Mr. E. F. Knight, of the 'Morning Post,' became the victim of a double abuse of the usages of war, since his wound, from which he lost his right arm, was from an explosive bullet. The man who raised the flag was captured, and it says much for the humanity of British soldiers that he was not bayoneted upon the spot. Yet it is not fair to blame a whole people for the misdeeds of a few, and it is probable that the men who descended to such devices, or who deliberately fired upon our ambulances, were as much execrated by their own comrades as by ourselves.

Lord Methuen planned to attack from both the front and the side, but whether it was because the Grenadiers got lost or the Boers were too quick, it ended up being a full frontal assault. The battle turned into several separate fights where different British regiments charged the various hills, always experiencing success but also suffering losses. The honors of the battle, according to the grim casualty reports, belonged to the Grenadiers, Coldstreams, Northumberlands, and Scots Guards. The brave Guardsmen fell in large numbers on the slopes, while their fellow soldiers took the heights. The Boers held their ground fiercely and fired their rifles directly at the attackers. One young officer had his jaw shattered by a bullet fired from very close range. Another, Blundell of the Guards, was shot dead by a wounded man to whom he was offering his water bottle. At one point, a white flag was waved by the defenders, prompting the British to leave their cover, only to be met with gunfire. It was there that Mr. E. F. Knight of the 'Morning Post' suffered a wound from an explosive bullet, resulting in the loss of his right arm. The man who raised the flag was captured, and it speaks volumes about the humanity of British soldiers that he wasn’t bayoneted on the spot. However, it's unfair to hold an entire nation responsible for the actions of a few, and it’s likely that those who resorted to such tactics, or who deliberately targeted our ambulances, were as condemned by their own comrades as they were by us.

The victory was an expensive one, for fifty killed and two hundred wounded lay upon the hillside, and, like so many of our skirmishes with the Boers, it led to small material results. Their losses appear to have been much about the same as ours, and we captured some fifty prisoners, whom the soldiers regarded with the utmost interest. They were a sullen slouching crowd rudely clad, and they represented probably the poorest of the burghers, who now, as in the middle ages, suffer most in battle, since a long purse means a good horse. Most of the enemy galloped very comfortably away after the action, leaving a fringe of sharpshooters among the kopjes to hold back our pursuing cavalry. The want of horsemen and the want of horse artillery are the two reasons which Lord Methuen gives why the defeat was not converted into a rout. As it was, the feelings of the retreating Boers were exemplified by one of their number, who turned in his saddle in order to place his outstretched fingers to his nose in derision of the victors. He exposed himself to the fire of half a battalion while doing so, but he probably was aware that with our present musketry instruction the fire of a British half-battalion against an individual is not a very serious matter.

The victory was costly, with fifty dead and two hundred wounded lying on the hillside. Like many of our skirmishes with the Boers, it resulted in little material gain. Their losses seemed to be about the same as ours, and we captured around fifty prisoners, who fascinated the soldiers. They were a gloomy, slouching group dressed roughly, likely representing the poorest of the burghers, who, like in the Middle Ages, suffer the most in battle since having money means having a good horse. Most of the enemy rode off comfortably after the fight, leaving some sharpshooters behind among the hills to slow our pursuing cavalry. The lack of horsemen and horse artillery are the two reasons Lord Methuen stated that the defeat didn't turn into a rout. As it was, the feelings of the retreating Boers were illustrated by one of them, who turned in his saddle to sarcastically gesture to the victors with his fingers to his nose. He put himself in the line of fire of half a battalion while doing this, but he probably knew that with our current marksmanship training, the fire of a British half-battalion aimed at a single individual isn't very threatening.

The remainder of the 23rd was spent at Belmont Camp, and next morning an advance was made to Enslin, some ten miles further on. Here lay the plain of Enslin, bounded by a formidable line of kopjes as dangerous as those of Belmont. Lancers and Rimington's Scouts, the feeble but very capable cavalry of the Army, came in with the report that the hills were strongly held. Some more hard slogging was in front of the relievers of Kimberley.

The rest of the 23rd was spent at Belmont Camp, and the next morning, an advance was made to Enslin, about ten miles ahead. Here lay the Enslin plain, surrounded by a steep line of hills just as risky as those at Belmont. The Lancers and Rimington's Scouts, the weak but skilled cavalry of the Army, arrived with the news that the hills were heavily defended. The relievers of Kimberley still had more tough work ahead.

The advance had been on the line of the Cape Town to Kimberley Railway, and the damage done to it by the Boers had been repaired to the extent of permitting an armoured train with a naval gun to accompany the troops. It was six o' clock upon the morning of Saturday the 25th that this gun came into action against the kopjes, closely followed by the guns of the field artillery. One of the lessons of the war has been to disillusion us as to the effect of shrapnel fire. Positions which had been made theoretically untenable have again and again been found to be most inconveniently tenanted. Among the troops actually engaged the confidence in the effect of shrapnel fire has steadily declined with their experience. Some other method of artillery fire than the curving bullet from an exploding shrapnel shell must be devised for dealing with men who lie close among boulders and behind cover.

The advance had been along the Cape Town to Kimberley Railway, and the damage caused by the Boers had been repaired enough to allow an armored train with a naval gun to support the troops. It was six o'clock on the morning of Saturday the 25th when this gun came into action against the hills, closely followed by the field artillery guns. One of the lessons of the war has been to disillusion us about the effects of shrapnel fire. Positions that were thought to be theoretically untenable have repeatedly turned out to be very inconveniently occupied. Among the troops actually involved, confidence in the impact of shrapnel fire has steadily decreased with their experience. Some other method of artillery fire besides the curving bullet from an exploding shrapnel shell needs to be developed for dealing with soldiers who lie close among boulders and behind cover.

These remarks upon shrapnel might be included in the account of half the battles of the war, but they are particularly apposite to the action at Enslin. Here a single large kopje formed the key to the position, and a considerable time was expended upon preparing it for the British assault, by directing upon it a fire which swept the face of it and searched, as was hoped, every corner in which a rifleman might lurk. One of the two batteries engaged fired no fewer than five hundred rounds. Then the infantry advance was ordered, the Guards being held in reserve on account of their exertions at Belmont. The Northumberlands, Northamptons, North Lancashires, and Yorkshires worked round upon the right, and, aided by the artillery fire, cleared the trenches in their front. The honours of the assault, however, must be awarded to the sailors and marines of the Naval Brigade, who underwent such an ordeal as men have seldom faced and yet come out as victors. To them fell the task of carrying that formidable hill which had been so scourged by our artillery. With a grand rush they swept up the slope, but were met by a horrible fire. Every rock spurted flame, and the front ranks withered away before the storm of the Mauser. An eye-witness has recorded that the brigade was hardly visible amid the sand knocked up by the bullets. For an instant they fell back into cover, and then, having taken their breath, up they went again, with a deep-chested sailor roar. There were but four hundred in all, two hundred seamen and two hundred marines, and the losses in that rapid rush were terrible. Yet they swarmed up, their gallant officers, some of them little boy-middies, cheering them on. Ethelston, the commander of the 'Powerful,' was struck down. Plumbe and Senior of the Marines were killed. Captain Prothero of the 'Doris' dropped while still yelling to his seamen to 'take that kopje and be hanged to it!' Little Huddart, the middy, died a death which is worth many inglorious years. Jones of the Marines fell wounded, but rose again and rushed on with his men. It was on these gallant marines, the men who are ready to fight anywhere and anyhow, moist or dry, that the heaviest loss fell. When at last they made good their foothold upon the crest of that murderous hill they had left behind them three officers and eighty-eight men out of a total of 206—a loss within a few minutes of nearly 50 per cent. The bluejackets, helped by the curve of the hill, got off with a toll of eighteen of their number. Half the total British losses of the action fell upon this little body of men, who upheld most gloriously the honour and reputation of the service from which they were drawn. With such men under the white ensign we leave our island homes in safety behind us.

These comments about shrapnel could fit into the accounts of many battles from the war, but they are especially relevant to the action at Enslin. Here, a single large hill was crucial to the position, and a considerable amount of time was spent preparing it for the British assault by directing fire at it, which aimed to sweep across its surface and search every corner where a rifleman might hide. One of the two batteries involved fired at least five hundred rounds. Then the infantry advance was ordered, with the Guards held in reserve due to their efforts at Belmont. The Northumberlands, Northamptons, North Lancashires, and Yorkshires maneuvered around to the right, and with help from the artillery fire, cleared the trenches in front of them. However, the honor of the assault belongs to the sailors and marines of the Naval Brigade, who faced a challenge that few have endured and still emerged victorious. It was their job to take that daunting hill, which had been heavily bombarded by our artillery. With a grand rush, they charged up the slope but were met with devastating fire. Every rock erupted with gunfire, and the front ranks were decimated by the onslaught of the Mauser. An eyewitness noted that the brigade was barely visible amid the clouds of sand kicked up by the bullets. For a brief moment, they fell back for cover, but after catching their breath, they charged back up with a loud cheer from the sailors. There were only four hundred in total, two hundred seamen and two hundred marines, and the casualties in that swift charge were horrendous. Yet they pressed on, encouraged by their brave officers, some of whom were young midshipmen. Ethelston, the commander of the 'Powerful,' was struck down. Plumbe and Senior of the Marines were killed. Captain Prothero of the 'Doris' fell while still shouting for his seamen to 'take that kopje and be damned to it!' Young Huddart, the midshipman, died a death worth many years without glory. Jones of the Marines was wounded but got back up and rushed on with his men. It was among these valiant marines, the men who are always ready to fight, regardless of the conditions, that the heaviest losses occurred. When they finally secured their position on the crest of that deadly hill, they had lost three officers and eighty-eight men out of a total of 206—a staggering loss of nearly 50 percent in just a few minutes. The bluejackets, aided by the shape of the hill, had losses totaling eighteen. Half of the total British casualties from the action were suffered by this small group of men, who magnificently upheld the honor and reputation of the service from which they came. With such men under the white ensign, we can leave our island homes behind safely.

The battle of Enslin had cost us some two hundred of killed and wounded, and beyond the mere fact that we had cleared our way by another stage towards Kimberley it is difficult to say what advantage we had from it. We won the kopjes, but we lost our men. The Boer killed and wounded were probably less than half of our own, and the exhaustion and weakness of our cavalry forbade us to pursue and prevented us from capturing their guns. In three days the men had fought two exhausting actions in a waterless country and under a tropical sun. Their exertions had been great and yet were barren of result. Why this should be so was naturally the subject of keen discussion both in the camp and among the public at home. It always came back to Lord Methuen's own complaint about the absence of cavalry and of horse artillery. Many very unjust charges have been hurled against our War Office—a department which in some matters has done extraordinarily and unexpectedly well—but in this question of the delay in the despatch of our cavalry and artillery, knowing as we did the extreme mobility of our enemy, there is certainly ground for an inquiry.

The battle of Enslin cost us around two hundred men, either killed or wounded, and aside from the fact that we made some progress toward Kimberley, it's hard to pinpoint what benefit we gained from it. We took the hills, but we lost our soldiers. The Boer casualties were likely less than half of ours, and the exhaustion and weakness of our cavalry stopped us from pursuing them and prevented us from capturing their artillery. In three days, our troops fought two exhausting battles in a waterless region and under a scorching sun. Their efforts were significant but yielded no results. Naturally, this situation sparked intense discussions both in the camp and back home. The topic always returned to Lord Methuen's own complaint about the lack of cavalry and horse artillery. Many unfair accusations have been directed at our War Office—a department that has performed surprisingly well in some areas—but regarding the delay in sending our cavalry and artillery, considering our enemy's extreme mobility, there are definitely grounds for an investigation.

The Boers who had fought these two actions had been drawn mainly from the Jacobsdal and Fauresmith commandoes, with some of the burghers from Boshof. The famous Cronje, however, had been descending from Mafeking with his old guard of Transvaalers, and keen disappointment was expressed by the prisoners at Belmont and at Enslin that he had not arrived in time to take command of them. There were evidences, however, at this latter action, that reinforcements for the enemy were coming up and that the labours of the Kimberley relief force were by no means at an end. In the height of the engagement the Lancer patrols thrown out upon our right flank reported the approach of a considerable body of Boer horsemen, who took up a position upon a hill on our right rear. Their position there was distinctly menacing, and Colonel Willoughby Verner was despatched by Lord Methuen to order up the brigade of Guards. The gallant officer had the misfortune in his return to injure himself seriously through a blunder of his horse. His mission, however, succeeded in its effect, for the Guards moving across the plain intervened in such a way that the reinforcements, without an open attack, which would have been opposed to all Boer traditions, could not help the defenders, and were compelled to witness their defeat. This body of horsemen returned north next day and were no doubt among those whom we encountered at the following action of the Modder River.

The Boers who fought in these two battles mainly came from the Jacobsdal and Fauresmith commandoes, with some burghers from Boshof. The well-known Cronje, however, had been coming down from Mafeking with his old guard of Transvaalers, and the prisoners at Belmont and Enslin were disappointed that he hadn't arrived in time to lead them. There were signs at this latter battle that reinforcements for the enemy were on the way and that the efforts of the Kimberley relief force were far from over. During the height of the engagement, the Lancer patrols on our right flank reported a significant group of Boer horsemen approaching, who took up a position on a hill in our right rear. Their position there was quite threatening, and Colonel Willoughby Verner was sent by Lord Methuen to call up the brigade of Guards. Unfortunately, the brave officer injured himself seriously on his return due to a mishap with his horse. However, his mission was effective, as the Guards moved across the plain and intervened in such a way that the reinforcements, without launching an open attack—which would have gone against all Boer traditions—could not assist the defenders and had to watch their defeat. This group of horsemen returned north the next day and were likely among those we faced in the following battle at the Modder River.

The march from Orange River had begun on the Wednesday. On Thursday was fought the action of Belmont, on Saturday that of Enslin. There was no protection against the sun by day nor against the cold at night. Water was not plentiful, and the quality of it was occasionally vile. The troops were in need of a rest, so on Saturday night and Sunday they remained at Enslin. On the Monday morning (November 27th) the weary march to Kimberley was resumed.

The march from Orange River started on Wednesday. On Thursday, the battle at Belmont occurred, followed by the one at Enslin on Saturday. There was no shade from the sun during the day or warmth from the cold at night. Water was scarce, and sometimes it was really bad quality. The troops needed some downtime, so they stayed at Enslin on Saturday night and Sunday. On Monday morning (November 27th), the exhausted march to Kimberley continued.

On Monday, November 27th, at early dawn, the little British army, a dust-coloured column upon the dusty veld, moved forwards again towards their objective. That night they halted at the pools of Klipfontein, having for once made a whole day's march without coming in touch with the enemy. Hopes rose that possibly the two successive defeats had taken the heart out of them and that there would be no further resistance to the advance. Some, however, who were aware of the presence of Cronje, and of his formidable character, took a juster view of the situation. And this perhaps is where a few words might be said about the celebrated leader who played upon the western side of the seat of war the same part which Joubert did upon the east.

On Monday, November 27th, at dawn, the small British army, a dusty column on the dry veld, moved forward again towards their goal. That night they stopped at the pools of Klipfontein, having managed to make a whole day's march without encountering the enemy. Hopes rose that perhaps the two recent defeats had demoralized them and that there would be no further resistance to the advance. However, some, who knew about Cronje's presence and his formidable reputation, had a more accurate view of the situation. And this is perhaps where we should say a few words about the famous leader who played the same role on the western side of the battlefield as Joubert did on the eastern side.

Commandant Cronje was at the time of the war sixty-five years of age, a hard, swarthy man, quiet of manner, fierce of soul, with a reputation among a nation of resolute men for unsurpassed resolution. His dark face was bearded and virile, but sedate and gentle in expression. He spoke little, but what he said was to the point, and he had the gift of those fire-words which brace and strengthen weaker men. In hunting expeditions and in native wars he had first won the admiration of his countrymen by his courage and his fertility of resource. In the war of 1880 he had led the Boers who besieged Potchefstroom, and he had pushed the attack with a relentless vigour which was not hampered by the chivalrous usages of war. Eventually he compelled the surrender of the place by concealing from the garrison that a general armistice had been signed, an act which was afterwards disowned by his own government. In the succeeding years he lived as an autocrat and a patriarch amid his farms and his herds, respected by many and feared by all. For a time he was Native Commissioner and left a reputation for hard dealing behind him. Called into the field again by the Jameson raid, he grimly herded his enemies into an impossible position and desired, as it is stated, that the hardest measure should be dealt out to the captives. This was the man, capable, crafty, iron-hard, magnetic, who lay with a reinforced and formidable army across the path of Lord Methuen's tired soldiers. It was a fair match. On the one side the hardy men, the trained shots, a good artillery, and the defensive; on the other the historical British infantry, duty, discipline, and a fiery courage. With a high heart the dust-coloured column moved on over the dusty veld.

Commandant Cronje was sixty-five years old at the time of the war. He was a tough, dark-skinned man, calm in demeanor but fierce at heart, known among a nation of determined people for his unmatched resolve. His bearded, rugged face had a serious yet gentle expression. He spoke little, but his words were direct and impactful, inspiring and empowering those around him. He earned the respect of his fellow countrymen through his bravery and resourcefulness during hunting trips and native conflicts. In the 1880 war, he led the Boers who laid siege to Potchefstroom, pressing the attack with relentless determination that ignored the traditional codes of war. Eventually, he forced the garrison to surrender by hiding from them the fact that a general armistice had been signed, a tactic that his own government later disavowed. In the years that followed, he lived like an autocrat and patriarch on his farms and with his livestock, commanding respect from many and fear from all. For a period, he served as the Native Commissioner, earning a reputation for being tough in his dealings. Called back into action during the Jameson raid, he strategically trapped his enemies in a difficult situation and reportedly wished for the harshest treatment for the captives. This was the man—capable, cunning, unyielding, and charismatic—who positioned a strong and well-prepared army in the path of Lord Methuen's weary soldiers. It was a fair match: on one side, resilient men, sharpshooters, effective artillery, and a solid defense; on the other, the legendary British infantry, marked by duty, discipline, and fierce courage. With determined spirits, the dust-colored column advanced across the dry plains.

So entirely had hills and Boer fighting become associated in the minds of our leaders, that when it was known that Modder River wound over a plain, the idea of a resistance there appears to have passed away from their minds. So great was the confidence or so lax the scouting that a force equaling their own in numbers had assembled with many guns within seven miles of them, and yet the advance appears to have been conducted without any expectation of impending battle. The supposition, obvious even to a civilian, that a river would be a likely place to meet with an obstinate resistance, seems to have been ignored. It is perhaps not fair to blame the General for a fact which must have vexed his spirit more than ours—one's sympathies go out to the gentle and brave man, who was heard calling out in his sleep that he 'should have had those two guns'—but it is repugnant to common sense to suppose that no one, neither the cavalry nor the Intelligence Department, is at fault for so extraordinary a state of ignorance. [Footnote: Later information makes it certain that the cavalry did report the presence of the enemy to Lord Methuen.] On the morning of Tuesday, November 28th, the British troops were told that they would march at once, and have their breakfast when they reached the Modder River—a grim joke to those who lived to appreciate it.

So completely had hills and Boer fighting become linked in the minds of our leaders that when it was revealed that the Modder River stretched over a flat area, the thought of facing resistance there seemed to vanish from their minds. Their confidence was so high or their scouting so careless that a force matching their own numbers, equipped with many guns, had gathered within seven miles of them, yet the advance seemed to proceed without any anticipation of an imminent battle. The assumption, clear even to a civilian, that a river would be a likely spot for strong resistance, appears to have been overlooked. It might not be fair to blame the General for something that must have troubled him even more than us—one can't help but feel for the kind and courageous man who was heard calling out in his sleep that he 'should have had those two guns'—but it's just unreasonable to think that no one, neither the cavalry nor the Intelligence Department, can be held responsible for such an astonishing level of ignorance. [Footnote: Later information confirms that the cavalry did report the presence of the enemy to Lord Methuen.] On the morning of Tuesday, November 28th, the British troops were informed that they would march immediately and have their breakfast when they arrived at the Modder River—a grim joke for those who survived to realize it.

The army had been reinforced the night before by the welcome addition of the Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders, which made up for the losses of the week. It was a cloudless morning, and a dazzling sun rose in a deep blue sky. The men, though hungry, marched cheerily, the reek of their tobacco-pipes floating up from their ranks. It cheered them to see that the murderous kopjes had, for the time, been left behind, and that the great plain inclined slightly downwards to where a line of green showed the course of the river. On the further bank were a few scattered buildings, with one considerable hotel, used as a week-end resort by the businessmen of Kimberley. It lay now calm and innocent, with its open windows looking out upon a smiling garden; but death lurked at the windows and death in the garden, and the little dark man who stood by the door, peering through his glass at the approaching column, was the minister of death, the dangerous Cronje. In consultation with him was one who was to prove even more formidable, and for a longer time. Semitic in face, high-nosed, bushy-bearded, and eagle-eyed, with skin burned brown by a life of the veld—it was De la Rey, one of the trio of fighting chiefs whose name will always be associated with the gallant resistance of the Boers. He was there as adviser, but Cronje was in supreme command.

The army had been bolstered the night before by the welcome addition of the Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders, which made up for the losses of the week. It was a clear morning, and a bright sun rose in a deep blue sky. The men, though hungry, marched cheerfully, the smell of their tobacco pipes drifting up from their ranks. It lifted their spirits to see that the deadly kopjes had, for the time being, been left behind, and that the vast plain sloped gently downwards towards a line of green marking the course of the river. On the far bank were a few scattered buildings, including a sizable hotel that served as a weekend retreat for the businesspeople of Kimberley. It lay there now, calm and innocent, with its open windows overlooking a lovely garden; but death lingered at the windows and death lay in the garden, and the small dark man standing by the door, peering through his glasses at the approaching column, was the agent of death, the dangerous Cronje. With him was someone who would prove even more formidable and for a longer time. Semitic in appearance, high-nosed, bushy-bearded, and sharp-eyed, with skin bronzed from a life on the veld—it was De la Rey, one of the trio of fighting chiefs whose name will always be linked to the brave resistance of the Boers. He was there as an advisor, but Cronje was in overall command.

His dispositions had been both masterly and original. Contrary to the usual military practice in the defence of rivers, he had concealed his men upon both banks, placing, as it is stated, those in whose staunchness he had least confidence upon the British side of the river, so that they could only retreat under the rifles of their inexorable companions. The trenches had been so dug with such a regard for the slopes of the ground that in some places a triple line of fire was secured. His artillery, consisting of several heavy pieces and a number of machine guns (including one of the diabolical 'pompoms'), was cleverly placed upon the further side of the stream, and was not only provided with shelter pits but had rows of reserve pits, so that the guns could be readily shifted when their range was found. Rows of trenches, a broadish river, fresh rows of trenches, fortified houses, and a good artillery well worked and well placed, it was a serious task which lay in front of the gallant little army. The whole position covered between four and five miles.

His strategies were both brilliant and unique. Unlike the typical military approach to defending rivers, he hid his troops on both sides, positioning those he trusted the least on the British side, so they could only retreat under the fire of their relentless comrades. The trenches were dug with careful consideration of the land's slopes, allowing for a triple line of fire in some areas. His artillery, made up of several heavy guns and a number of machine guns (including one of the notorious 'pompoms'), was smartly stationed on the far side of the river, equipped with shelter pits and additional reserve pits, making it easy to adjust the guns once their range was established. With rows of trenches, a wide river, more rows of trenches, fortified houses, and well-positioned, efficiently operated artillery, the small but brave army faced a daunting challenge. The entire position stretched over four to five miles.

An obvious question must here occur to the mind of every non-military reader—Why should this position be attacked at all? Why should we not cross higher up where there were no such formidable obstacles?' The answer, so far as one can answer it, must be that so little was known of the dispositions of our enemy that we were hopelessly involved in the action before we knew of it, and that then it was more dangerous to extricate the army than to push the attack. A retirement over that open plain at a range of under a thousand yards would have been a dangerous and disastrous movement. Having once got there, it was wisest and best to see it through.

An obvious question must come to the mind of every non-military reader—Why should this position be attacked at all? Why shouldn't we cross higher up where there were no such tough obstacles? The answer, as far as we can give one, is that we knew so little about the enemy's positions that we were already caught up in the action before we realized it, and at that point, it was riskier to pull the army back than to continue the attack. Retreating across that open plain at under a thousand yards would have been a dangerous and disastrous move. Once we were there, it was smarter and better to see it through.

The dark Cronje still waited reflective in the hotel garden. Across the veld streamed the lines of infantry, the poor fellows eager, after seven miles of that upland air, for the breakfast which had been promised them. It was a quarter to seven when our patrols of Lancers were fired upon. There were Boers, then, between them and their meal! The artillery was ordered up, the Guards were sent forward on the right, the 9th Brigade under Pole-Carew on the left, including the newly arrived Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders. They swept onwards into the fatal fire zone—and then, and only then, there blazed out upon them four miles of rifles, cannon, and machine guns, and they realised, from general to private, that they had walked unwittingly into the fiercest battle yet fought in the war.

The dark Cronje waited thoughtfully in the hotel garden. Across the veld, lines of infantry marched, the poor guys eager for the breakfast they had been promised after seven miles in that high-altitude air. It was a quarter to seven when our patrols of Lancers came under fire. So there were Boers between them and their meal! The artillery was called in, the Guards were deployed on the right, and the 9th Brigade under Pole-Carew moved to the left, which included the newly arrived Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders. They advanced into the deadly fire zone—and then, only then, they faced four miles of rifles, cannons, and machine guns, realizing from general to private that they had unknowingly walked into the fiercest battle yet seen in the war.

Before the position was understood the Guards were within seven hundred yards of the Boer trenches, and the other troops about nine hundred, on the side of a very gentle slope which made it most difficult to find any cover. In front of them lay a serene landscape, the river, the houses, the hotel, no movement of men, no smoke—everything peaceful and deserted save for an occasional quick flash and sparkle of flame. But the noise was horrible and appalling. Men whose nerves had been steeled to the crash of the big guns, or the monotonous roar of Maxims and the rattle of Mauser fire, found a new terror in the malignant 'ploop-plooping' of the automatic quick-firer. The Maxim of the Scots Guards was caught in the hell-blizzard from this thing—each shell no bigger than a large walnut, but flying in strings of a score—and men and gun were destroyed in an instant. As to the rifle bullets the air was humming and throbbing with them, and the sand was mottled like a pond in a shower. To advance was impossible, to retire was hateful. The men fell upon their faces and huddled close to the earth, too happy if some friendly ant-heap gave them a precarious shelter. And always, tier above tier, the lines of rifle fire rippled and palpitated in front of them. The infantry fired also, and fired, and fired—but what was there to fire at? An occasional eye and hand over the edge of a trench or behind a stone is no mark at seven hundred yards. It would be instructive to know how many British bullets found a billet that day.

Before the situation was clear, the Guards were about seven hundred yards from the Boer trenches, and the other troops were around nine hundred yards away, on a very gentle slope that made it tough to find any cover. In front of them was a calm landscape— the river, the houses, the hotel— with no sign of people, no smoke; everything looked peaceful and deserted except for the occasional quick flash and sparkle of flame. But the noise was horrifying. Soldiers who had become accustomed to the booming of big guns, the constant roar of Maxims, and the rattle of Mauser fire faced a new terror in the sinister 'ploop-plooping' of the automatic quick-firer. The Maxim of the Scots Guards was caught in the hellish storm unleashed by this weapon—each shell no bigger than a large walnut, yet flying in strings of twenty—and men and their gun were obliterated in an instant. As for the rifle bullets, the air was buzzing and throbbing with them, and the sand looked speckled like a pond during a rain shower. Moving forward was impossible, and retreat felt unbearable. The men dropped to their faces and huddled close to the ground, grateful if a nearby ant hill offered them any small protection. And always, layer upon layer, the lines of rifle fire rippled and pulsed in front of them. The infantry fired continuously, but what were they aiming at? An occasional eye or hand peeking over the edge of a trench or from behind a stone isn't much of a target at seven hundred yards. It would be interesting to know how many British bullets hit their mark that day.

The cavalry was useless, the infantry was powerless—there only remained the guns. When any arm is helpless and harried it always casts an imploring eye upon the guns, and rarely indeed is it that the gallant guns do not respond. Now the 75th and 18th Field Batteries came rattling and dashing to the front, and unlimbered at one thousand yards. The naval guns were working at four thousand, but the two combined were insufficient to master the fire of the pieces of large calibre which were opposed to them. Lord Methuen must have prayed for guns as Wellington did for night, and never was a prayer answered more dramatically. A strange battery came lurching up from the British rear, unheralded, unknown, the weary gasping horses panting at the traces, the men, caked with sweat and dirt, urging them on into a last spasmodic trot. The bodies of horses which had died of pure fatigue marked their course, the sergeants' horses tugged in the gun-teams, and the sergeants staggered along by the limbers. It was the 62nd Field Battery, which had marched thirty-two miles in eight hours, and now, hearing the crash of battle in front of them, had with one last desperate effort thrown itself into the firing line. Great credit is due to Major Granet and his men. Not even those gallant German batteries who saved the infantry at Spicheren could boast of a finer feat.

The cavalry was useless, the infantry was powerless—only the guns were left. When any unit is struggling and under pressure, it always looks to the guns for help, and usually, the brave guns respond. Now the 75th and 18th Field Batteries rushed to the front and set up their equipment at one thousand yards. The naval guns were firing from four thousand, but together they weren't enough to take on the heavy artillery opposing them. Lord Methuen must have prayed for artillery just like Wellington prayed for night, and his prayer was answered dramatically. A strange battery unexpectedly arrived from the British rear, unannounced and unknown, with tired, gasping horses straining against the traces, and the men, covered in sweat and dirt, pushing them into one last desperate sprint. The bodies of horses that had died from exhaustion marked their path, the sergeants' horses pulled the gun teams, and the sergeants staggered beside the limbers. It was the 62nd Field Battery, which had marched thirty-two miles in eight hours, and now, hearing the sounds of battle ahead, had made one final effort to join the fight. Major Granet and his men deserve great credit. Even those brave German batteries that saved the infantry at Spicheren couldn't claim a more remarkable achievement.

Now it was guns against guns, and let the best gunners win! We had eighteen field-guns and the naval pieces against the concealed cannon of the enemy. Back and forward flew the shells, howling past each other in mid-air. The weary men of the 62nd Battery forgot their labours and fatigues as they stooped and strained at their clay-coloured 15-pounders. Half of them were within rifle range, and the limber horses were the centre of a hot fire, as they were destined to be at a shorter range and with more disastrous effect at the Tugela. That the same tactics should have been adopted at two widely sundered points shows with what care the details of the war had been pre-arranged by the Boer leaders. 'Before I got my horses out,' says an officer, 'they shot one of my drivers and two horses and brought down my own horse. When we got the gun round one of the gunners was shot through the brain and fell at my feet. Another was shot while bringing up shell. Then we got a look in.' The roar of the cannon was deafening, but gradually the British were gaining the upper hand. Here and there the little knolls upon the further side which had erupted into constant flame lay cold and silent. One of the heavier guns was put out of action, and the other had been withdrawn for five hundred yards. But the infantry fire still crackled and rippled along the trenches, and the guns could come no nearer with living men and horses. It was long past midday, and that unhappy breakfast seemed further off than ever.

Now it was guns against guns, and may the best marksmen win! We had eighteen field guns and naval pieces against the hidden cannons of the enemy. Shells flew back and forth, howling past each other in mid-air. The tired men of the 62nd Battery forgot their exhaustion as they bent and strained at their clay-colored 15-pounders. Half of them were within rifle range, and the limber horses were under heavy fire, as they were destined to be at a closer range with more devastating effects at the Tugela. The fact that the same tactics were used at two far-apart locations shows how carefully the details of the war had been planned by the Boer leaders. "Before I got my horses out," said an officer, "they shot one of my drivers and two horses and brought down my own horse. When we finally got the gun around, one of the gunners was shot through the brain and fell at my feet. Another was shot while bringing up shells. Then we got a chance to fight back." The roar of the cannons was deafening, but gradually the British were gaining the upper hand. Here and there, the small hills on the other side, which had been erupting in constant flames, lay cold and silent. One of the heavier guns was taken out of action, and the other had been moved back five hundred yards. But the infantry fire still crackled and rippled along the trenches, and the guns could come no closer with living men and horses. It was well past midday, and that miserable breakfast seemed further away than ever.

As the afternoon wore on, a curious condition of things was established. The guns could not advance, and, indeed, it was found necessary to withdraw them from a 1200 to a 2800-yard range, so heavy were the losses. At the time of the change the 75th Battery had lost three officers out of five, nineteen men, and twenty-two horses. The infantry could not advance and would not retire. The Guards on the right were prevented from opening out on the flank and getting round the enemy's line, by the presence of the Riet River, which joins the Modder almost at a right angle. All day they lay under a blistering sun, the sleet of bullets whizzing over their heads. 'It came in solid streaks like telegraph wires,' said a graphic correspondent. The men gossiped, smoked, and many of them slept. They lay on the barrels of their rifles to keep them cool enough for use. Now and again there came the dull thud of a bullet which had found its mark, and a man gasped, or drummed with his feet; but the casualties at this point were not numerous, for there was some little cover, and the piping bullets passed for the most part overhead.

As the afternoon went on, a strange situation developed. The guns couldn't move forward, and it was actually necessary to pull them back from a 1200 to a 2800-yard range due to heavy losses. At that point, the 75th Battery had lost three out of five officers, nineteen men, and twenty-two horses. The infantry couldn't advance and wouldn’t fall back. The Guards on the right were blocked from spreading out on the flank and circling around the enemy's line because of the Riet River, which joins the Modder almost at a right angle. All day long they lay under a blazing sun, with bullets whizzing over their heads. 'It came in solid streaks like telegraph wires,' a vivid correspondent said. The men chatted, smoked, and many of them dozed off. They rested their rifles on the barrels to keep them cool enough for use. Occasionally, there was the dull thud of a bullet hitting its target, and a man would gasp or drum his feet; but the injuries at this spot were not many, as there was some cover, and most of the bullets flew overhead.

But in the meantime there had been a development upon the left which was to turn the action into a British victory. At this side there was ample room to extend, and the 9th Brigade spread out, feeling its way down the enemy's line, until it came to a point where the fire was less murderous and the approach to the river more in favour of the attack. Here the Yorkshires, a party of whom under Lieutenant Fox had stormed a farmhouse, obtained the command of a drift, over which a mixed force of Highlanders and Fusiliers forced their way, led by their Brigadier in person. This body of infantry, which does not appear to have exceeded five hundred in number, were assailed both by the Boer riflemen and by the guns of both parties, our own gunners being unaware that the Modder had been successfully crossed. A small hamlet called Rosmead formed, however, a point d'appui, and to this the infantry clung tenaciously, while reinforcements dribbled across to them from the farther side. 'Now, boys, who's for otter hunting?' cried Major Coleridge, of the North Lancashires, as he sprang into the water. How gladly on that baking, scorching day did the men jump into the river and splash over, to climb the opposite bank with their wet khaki clinging to their figures! Some blundered into holes and were rescued by grasping the unwound putties of their comrades. And so between three and four o'clock a strong party of the British had established their position upon the right flank of the Boers, and were holding on like grim death with an intelligent appreciation that the fortunes of the day depended upon their retaining their grip.

But in the meantime, something had happened on the left that would change the fight into a British victory. There was plenty of space to spread out, so the 9th Brigade fanned out, testing the enemy's line until they found a spot where the fire was less intense and the path to the river was more favorable for an attack. Here, the Yorkshires, a group led by Lieutenant Fox who had charged a farmhouse, took control of a crossing, which a mixed force of Highlanders and Fusiliers pushed through, led by their Brigadier himself. This group of infantry, which seemed to have no more than five hundred men, was attacked by both Boer riflemen and the guns from both sides, with our own artillery not realizing that the Modder had been crossed successfully. However, a small village called Rosmead served as a stronghold, and the infantry held on tightly to it while reinforcements trickled across to them from further away. "Now, guys, who’s up for some otter hunting?" shouted Major Coleridge of the North Lancashires as he jumped into the water. How eagerly the men leaped into the river on that scorching day, splashing over to climb the opposite bank with their wet khaki sticking to them! Some stumbled into deep spots and were rescued by grabbing their comrades' loose putties. By around three or four o'clock, a strong group of the British had secured their position on the right flank of the Boers and were holding on fiercely, fully aware that the outcome of the day depended on maintaining their hold.

'Hollo, here is a river!' cried Codrington when he led his forlorn hope to the right and found that the Riet had to be crossed. 'I was given to understand that the Modder was fordable everywhere,' says Lord Methuen in his official despatch. One cannot read the account of the operations without being struck by the casual, sketchy knowledge which cost us so dearly. The soldiers slogged their way through, as they have slogged it before; but the task might have been made much lighter for them had we but clearly known what it was that we were trying to do. On the other hand, it is but fair to Lord Methuen to say that his own personal gallantry and unflinching resolution set the most stimulating example to his troops. No General could have done more to put heart into his men.

'Hollo, here's a river!' shouted Codrington when he led his desperate group to the right and realized they had to cross the Riet. 'I was told that the Modder could be crossed anywhere,' says Lord Methuen in his official report. You can't read the account of the operations without noticing the casual, incomplete knowledge that cost us dearly. The soldiers trudged through, just as they have done before; but the task could have been much easier for them if we had clearly understood what we were trying to accomplish. On the other hand, it’s fair to say that Lord Methuen’s personal bravery and unwavering determination inspired his troops. No General could have done more to boost the spirits of his men.

And now, as the long weary scorching hungry day came to an end, the Boers began at last to flinch from their trenches. The shrapnel was finding them out and this force upon their flank filled them with vague alarm and with fears for their precious guns. And so as night fell they stole across the river, the cannon were withdrawn, the trenches evacuated, and next morning, when the weary British and their anxious General turned themselves to their grim task once more, they found a deserted village, a line of empty houses, and a litter of empty Mauser cartridge-cases to show where their tenacious enemy had stood.

And now, as the long, exhausting, scorching, and hungry day came to an end, the Boers finally began to pull back from their trenches. The shrapnel was hitting its mark, and the pressure on their flank filled them with a vague sense of alarm and fears for their valuable guns. So, as night fell, they quietly crossed the river, the cannons were withdrawn, the trenches were abandoned, and by the next morning, when the weary British and their concerned General resumed their grim task, they discovered a deserted village, a row of empty houses, and a scattering of empty Mauser cartridge cases that marked where their stubborn enemy had stood.

Lord Methuen, in congratulating the troops upon their achievement, spoke of 'the hardest-won victory in our annals of war,' and some such phrase was used in his official despatch. It is hypercritical, no doubt, to look too closely at a term used by a wounded man with the flush of battle still upon him, but still a student of military history must smile at such a comparison between this action and such others as Albuera or Inkerman, where the numbers of British engaged were not dissimilar. A fight in which five hundred men are killed and wounded cannot be classed in the same category as those stern and desperate encounters where more of the victors were carried than walked from the field of battle. And yet there were some special features which will differentiate the fight at Modder River from any of the hundred actions which adorn the standards of our regiments. It was the third battle which the troops had fought within the week, they were under fire for ten or twelve hours, were waterless under a tropical sun, and weak from want of food. For the first time they were called upon to face modern rifle fire and modern machine guns in the open. The result tends to prove that those who hold that it will from now onwards be impossible ever to make such frontal attacks as those which the English made at the Alma or the French at Waterloo, are justified in their belief. It is beyond human hardihood to face the pitiless beat of bullet and shell which comes from modern quick-firing weapons. Had our flank not made a lodgment across the river, it is impossible that we could have carried the position. Once more, too, it was demonstrated how powerless the best artillery is to disperse resolute and well-placed riflemen. Of the minor points of interest there will always remain the record of the forced march of the 62nd Battery, and artillerymen will note the use of gun-pits by the Boers, which ensured that the range of their positions should never be permanently obtained.

Lord Methuen, while congratulating the troops on their achievement, referred to it as "the hardest-won victory in our history of war," and a similar phrase appeared in his official report. It's probably excessive to scrutinize a term coming from a wounded man still feeling the adrenaline of battle, but a student of military history might chuckle at comparing this action to others like Albuera or Inkerman, where the number of British troops involved were roughly equal. A battle in which five hundred soldiers are killed or injured can't be compared to those grim and desperate fights where more of the victors were carried off the battlefield than walked away. Yet, there were distinct features that set the battle at Modder River apart from the countless actions that our regiments commemorate. It was the third battle the troops had fought that week; they endured ten to twelve hours under fire, faced a scorching tropical sun without water, and suffered from hunger. For the first time, they confronted modern rifle fire and machine guns out in the open. The outcome supports the belief that those who argue it will be impossible to execute frontal attacks like the English did at the Alma or the French at Waterloo are right. It takes extraordinary courage to withstand the relentless barrage of bullets and shells from today's rapid-fire weapons. If our flank hadn't managed to secure a position across the river, it’s unlikely we could have taken the area. Once again, it was shown how ineffective even the best artillery is against determined and well-positioned riflemen. Among the smaller points of interest, the forced march of the 62nd Battery will be remembered, and artillerymen will note the Boers' use of gun-pits, which ensured that the range of their positions could never be fully targeted.

The honours of the day upon the side of the British rested with the Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders, the Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Coldstreams, and the artillery. Out of a total casualty list of about 450, no fewer than 112 came from the gallant Argylls and 69 from the Coldstreams. The loss of the Boers is exceedingly difficult to gauge, as they throughout the war took the utmost pains to conceal it. The number of desperate and long-drawn actions which have ended, according to the official Pretorian account, in a loss of one wounded burgher may in some way be better policy, but does not imply a higher standard of public virtue, than those long lists which have saddened our hearts in the halls of the War Office. What is certain is that the loss at Modder River could not have been far inferior to our own, and that it arose almost entirely from artillery fire, since at no time of the action were any large number of their riflemen visible. So it ended, this long pelting match, Cronje sullenly withdrawing under the cover of darkness with his resolute heart filled with fierce determination for the future, while the British soldiers threw themselves down on the ground which they occupied and slept the sleep of exhaustion.

The honors of the day for the British went to the Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders, the Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Coldstreams, and the artillery. Out of a total casualty list of about 450, 112 were from the brave Argylls and 69 from the Coldstreams. It's really tough to estimate the Boer losses since they went to great lengths to hide them throughout the war. The reports of numerous prolonged engagements that, according to the official Pretorian account, ended with just one wounded burgher might be a better strategy, but they don't reflect a higher standard of public integrity than the long lists of casualties that have saddened us in the War Office. What we do know is that the loss at Modder River couldn't have been much less than our own, and it was almost entirely due to artillery fire, as there were no large groups of their riflemen visible during the fighting. So it ended—this long exchange of fire—with Cronje reluctantly retreating under the cover of darkness, his heart filled with fierce determination for what was to come, while the British soldiers collapsed onto the ground they occupied and fell into an exhausted sleep.





CHAPTER 9. BATTLE OF MAGERSFONTEIN.

Lord Methuen's force had now fought three actions in the space of a single week, losing in killed and wounded about a thousand men, or rather more than one-tenth of its total numbers. Had there been evidence that the enemy were seriously demoralised, the General would no doubt have pushed on at once to Kimberley, which was some twenty miles distant. The information which reached him was, however, that the Boers had fallen back upon the very strong position of Spytfontein, that they were full of fight, and that they had been strongly reinforced by a commando from Mafeking. Under these circumstances Lord Methuen had no choice but to give his men a well-earned rest, and to await reinforcements. There was no use in reaching Kimberley unless he had completely defeated the investing force. With the history of the first relief of Lucknow in his memory he was on his guard against a repetition of such an experience.

Lord Methuen's army had now fought three battles in just one week, losing around a thousand men in killed and wounded, which was more than one-tenth of their total strength. If there had been clear signs that the enemy were seriously demoralized, the General would have likely pushed on to Kimberley, which was about twenty miles away. However, the information he received indicated that the Boers had retreated to the very strong position of Spytfontein, that they were eager to fight, and that they had received significant reinforcements from a commando in Mafeking. Given these conditions, Lord Methuen had no choice but to let his men rest and wait for reinforcements. There was no point in reaching Kimberley unless he had completely defeated the besieging force. With the memory of the first relief of Lucknow fresh in his mind, he was cautious about facing a similar situation.

It was the more necessary that Methuen should strengthen his position, since with every mile which he advanced the more exposed did his line of communications become to a raid from Fauresmith and the southern districts of the Orange Free State. Any serious danger to the railway behind them would leave the British Army in a very critical position, and precautions were taken for the protection of the more vulnerable portions of the line. It was well that this was so, for on the 8th of December Commandant Prinsloo, of the Orange Free State, with a thousand horsemen and two light seven-pounder guns, appeared suddenly at Enslin and vigorously attacked the two companies of the Northampton Regiment who held the station. At the same time they destroyed a couple of culverts and tore up three hundred yards of the permanent way. For some hours the Northamptons under Captain Godley were closely pressed, but a telegram had been despatched to Modder Camp, and the 12th Lancers with the ubiquitous 62nd Battery were sent to their assistance. The Boers retired with their usual mobility, and in ten hours the line was completely restored.

It was even more crucial for Methuen to solidify his position, since with every mile he advanced, his supply lines became increasingly vulnerable to an attack from Fauresmith and the southern regions of the Orange Free State. Any significant threat to the railway behind them would put the British Army in a very tough spot, so measures were taken to secure the more exposed areas of the line. Fortunately, this proved necessary, as on December 8th, Commandant Prinsloo of the Orange Free State, with a thousand horsemen and two light seven-pounder guns, suddenly appeared at Enslin and launched a vigorous attack on the two companies of the Northampton Regiment stationed there. At the same time, they destroyed a couple of culverts and ripped up three hundred yards of track. For several hours, the Northamptons, led by Captain Godley, faced intense pressure, but a telegram had been sent to Modder Camp, and the 12th Lancers with the ever-present 62nd Battery were dispatched to help them. The Boers fell back with their usual speed, and within ten hours, the line was fully repaired.

Reinforcements were now reaching the Modder River force, which made it more formidable than when it had started. A very essential addition was that of the 12th Lancers and of G battery of Horse Artillery, which would increase the mobility of the force and make it possible for the General to follow up a blow after he had struck it. The magnificent regiments which formed the Highland Brigade—the 2nd Black Watch, the 1st Gordons, the 2nd Seaforths, and the 1st Highland Light Infantry had arrived under the gallant and ill-fated Wauchope. Four five-inch howitzers had also come to strengthen the artillery. At the same time the Canadians, the Australians, and several line regiments were moved up on the line from De Aar to Belmont. It appeared to the public at home that there was the material for an overwhelming advance; but the ordinary observer, and even perhaps the military critic, had not yet appreciated how great is the advantage which is given by modern weapons to the force which acts upon the defensive. With enormous pains Cronje and De la Rey were entrenching a most formidable position in front of our advance, with a confidence, which proved to be justified that it would be on their own ground and under their own conditions that in this, as in the three preceding actions, we should engage them.

Reinforcements were now arriving for the Modder River force, making it stronger than it was initially. A key addition was the 12th Lancers and G Battery of Horse Artillery, which would enhance the force's mobility and allow the General to follow up after delivering a blow. The impressive regiments of the Highland Brigade—the 2nd Black Watch, 1st Gordons, 2nd Seaforths, and 1st Highland Light Infantry—had arrived under the brave but doomed Wauchope. Four five-inch howitzers had also been added to bolster the artillery. Meanwhile, the Canadians, Australians, and several line regiments were moved up along the line from De Aar to Belmont. To the public back home, it seemed like there was enough strength for a major advance; however, the average observer, and even military analysts, had not yet recognized how much of an advantage modern weapons give to the defending force. With great effort, Cronje and De la Rey were fortifying a very strong position in front of our advance, confident—justifiably—that we would engage them on their own ground and under their own terms, just like in the previous three battles.

On the morning of Saturday, December 9th, the British General made an attempt to find out what lay in front of him amid that semicircle of forbidding hills. To this end he sent out a reconnaissance in the early morning, which included G Battery Horse Artillery, the 9th Lancers, and the ponderous 4.7 naval gun, which, preceded by the majestic march of thirty-two bullocks and attended by eighty seamen gunners, creaked forwards over the plain. What was there to shoot at in those sunlit boulder-strewn hills in front? They lay silent and untenanted in the glare of the African day. In vain the great gun exploded its huge shell with its fifty pounds of lyddite over the ridges, in vain the smaller pieces searched every cleft and hollow with their shrapnel. No answer came from the far-stretching hills. Not a flash or twinkle betrayed the fierce bands who lurked among the boulders. The force returned to camp no wiser than when it left.

On the morning of Saturday, December 9th, the British General tried to figure out what was ahead of him in that semicircle of intimidating hills. To do this, he sent out a reconnaissance mission early that morning, which included G Battery Horse Artillery, the 9th Lancers, and the heavy 4.7 naval gun, which, pulled by thirty-two oxen and accompanied by eighty naval gunners, creaked forward across the plain. What was there to target in those sunlit, boulder-strewn hills ahead? They stood silent and empty in the harsh African daylight. The large gun fired its massive shell containing fifty pounds of lyddite over the ridges in vain, and the smaller artillery pieces searched every crack and hollow with their shrapnel without any response. Not a flash or glimmer revealed the enemy hiding among the boulders. The force returned to camp no wiser than when they left.

There was one sight visible every night to all men which might well nerve the rescuers in their enterprise. Over the northern horizon, behind those hills of danger, there quivered up in the darkness one long, flashing, quivering beam, which swung up and down, and up again like a seraphic sword-blade. It was Kimberley praying for help, Kimberley solicitous for news. Anxiously, distractedly, the great De Beers searchlight dipped and rose. And back across the twenty miles of darkness, over the hills where Cronje lurked, there came that other southern column of light which answered, and promised, and soothed. 'Be of good heart, Kimberley. We are here! The Empire is behind us. We have not forgotten you. It may be days, or it may be weeks, but rest assured that we are coming.'

Every night, there was a sight visible to everyone that could really motivate the rescuers in their mission. Over the northern horizon, behind those dangerous hills, a long, flashing beam of light flickered in the darkness, moving up and down like a heavenly sword. It was Kimberley calling for help, Kimberley eager for news. The powerful De Beers searchlight anxiously dipped and rose. Back across the twenty miles of darkness, over the hills where Cronje was hiding, another column of light came in response, promising and reassuring. "Stay hopeful, Kimberley. We are here! The Empire supports us. We haven't forgotten you. It might be days, or it could be weeks, but you can be sure that we are coming."

About three in the afternoon of Sunday, December 10th, the force which was intended to clear a path for the army through the lines of Magersfontein moved out upon what proved to be its desperate enterprise. The 3rd or Highland Brigade included the Black Watch, the Seaforths, the Argyll and Sutherlands, and the Highland Light Infantry. The Gordons had only arrived in camp that day, and did not advance until next morning. Besides the infantry, the 9th Lancers, the mounted infantry, and all the artillery moved to the front. It was raining hard, and the men with one blanket between two soldiers bivouacked upon the cold damp ground, about three miles from the enemy's position. At one o'clock, without food, and drenched, they moved forwards through the drizzle and the darkness to attack those terrible lines. Major Benson, R.A., with two of Rimington's scouts, led them on their difficult way.

About 3 PM on Sunday, December 10th, the force meant to clear a path for the army through the lines at Magersfontein set out on what turned out to be a desperate mission. The 3rd or Highland Brigade included the Black Watch, the Seaforths, the Argyll and Sutherland, and the Highland Light Infantry. The Gordons had just arrived at camp that day and didn’t move until the next morning. Along with the infantry, the 9th Lancers, the mounted infantry, and all the artillery moved to the front. It was raining heavily, and the men shared one blanket between two soldiers as they camped on the cold, damp ground, about three miles from the enemy's position. At 1 o'clock, without food and soaked, they advanced through the drizzle and darkness to attack those formidable lines. Major Benson, R.A., with two of Rimington's scouts, led them on their challenging path.

Clouds drifted low in the heavens, and the falling rain made the darkness more impenetrable. The Highland Brigade was formed into a column—the Black Watch in front, then the Seaforths, and the other two behind. To prevent the men from straggling in the night the four regiments were packed into a mass of quarter column as densely as was possible, and the left guides held a rope in order to preserve the formation. With many a trip and stumble the ill-fated detachment wandered on, uncertain where they were going and what it was that they were meant to do. Not only among the rank and file, but among the principal officers also, there was the same absolute ignorance. Brigadier Wauchope knew, no doubt, but his voice was soon to be stilled in death. The others were aware, of course, that they were advancing either to turn the enemy's trenches or to attack them, but they may well have argued from their own formation that they could not be near the riflemen yet. Why they should be still advancing in that dense clump we do not now know, nor can we surmise what thoughts were passing through the mind of the gallant and experienced chieftain who walked beside them. There are some who claim on the night before to have seen upon his strangely ascetic face that shadow of doom which is summed up in the one word 'fey.' The hand of coming death may already have lain cold upon his soul. Out there, close beside him, stretched the long trench, fringed with its line of fierce, staring, eager faces, and its bristle of gun-barrels. They knew he was coming. They were ready. They were waiting. But still, with the dull murmur of many feet, the dense column, nearly four thousand strong, wandered onwards through the rain and the darkness, death and mutilation crouching upon their path.

Clouds hung low in the sky, and the falling rain made the darkness even thicker. The Highland Brigade formed a column—the Black Watch at the front, followed by the Seaforths, with the other two regiments behind. To keep the men from getting separated in the night, the four regiments were packed tightly together in a quarter column, and the left guides held a rope to maintain the formation. With many trips and stumbles, the unfortunate detachment moved on, unsure of where they were headed or what they were supposed to do. There was complete confusion not just among the rank and file, but also among the senior officers. Brigadier Wauchope likely knew what was happening, but his life was soon to be cut short. The others understood they were moving to either flank the enemy's trenches or attack them, but they might have reasoned from their close formation that the riflemen couldn’t be near yet. We don’t know why they kept pressing forward in that tight group, nor can we guess the thoughts of the brave and seasoned leader walking beside them. Some claimed that the night before, they had seen a shadow of doom on his strangely ascetic face, a feeling often described with the word 'fey.' The touch of impending death might have already chilled his spirit. Just ahead, a long trench lay waiting, lined with eager, fierce faces and a forest of gun barrels. They knew he was coming. They were ready. They were waiting. Yet, still, with the dull sound of many footsteps, the nearly four thousand-strong column moved on through the rain and darkness, death and destruction lurking in their path.

It matters not what gave the signal, whether it was the flashing of a lantern by a Boer scout, or the tripping of a soldier over wire, or the firing of a gun in the ranks. It may have been any, or it may have been none, of these things. As a matter of fact I have been assured by a Boer who was present that it was the sound of the tins attached to the alarm wires which disturbed them. However this may be, in an instant there crashed out of the darkness into their faces and ears a roar of point-blank fire, and the night was slashed across with the throbbing flame of the rifles. At the moment before this outflame some doubt as to their whereabouts seems to have flashed across the mind of their leaders. The order to extend had just been given, but the men had not had time to act upon it. The storm of lead burst upon the head and right flank of the column, which broke to pieces under the murderous volley. Wauchope was shot, struggled up, and fell once more for ever. Rumour has placed words of reproach upon his dying lips, but his nature, both gentle and soldierly, forbids the supposition. 'What a pity!' was the only utterance which a brother Highlander ascribes to him. Men went down in swathes, and a howl of rage and agony, heard afar over the veld, swelled up from the frantic and struggling crowd. By the hundred they dropped—some dead, some wounded, some knocked down by the rush and sway of the broken ranks. It was a horrible business. At such a range and in such a formation a single Mauser bullet may well pass through many men. A few dashed forwards, and were found dead at the very edges of the trench. The few survivors of companies A, B, and C of the Black Watch appear to have never actually retired, but to have clung on to the immediate front of the Boer trenches, while the remains of the other five companies tried to turn the Boer flank. Of the former body only six got away unhurt in the evening after lying all day within two hundred yards of the enemy. The rest of the brigade broke and, disentangling themselves with difficulty from the dead and the dying, fled back out of that accursed place. Some, the most unfortunate of all, became caught in the darkness in the wire defences, and were found in the morning hung up 'like crows,' as one spectator describes it, and riddled with bullets.

It doesn’t matter what triggered it, whether it was a Boer scout flashing a lantern, a soldier tripping over a wire, or a gun firing in the ranks. It could have been any of these things, or none at all. In fact, a Boer who was there said it was the sound of the tins attached to the alarm wires that alerted them. Regardless of the cause, suddenly a deafening roar of gunfire erupted from the darkness, with the night illuminated by the flashing flames of the rifles. Just before this explosion, it seems their leaders may have had a moment of uncertainty about their position. The order to extend had just been given, but the soldiers hadn’t had time to respond. A storm of bullets hit the head and right flank of the column, which fell apart under the deadly assault. Wauchope was shot, managed to rise, and then fell again for good. Rumors suggest he spoke words of reproach as he died, but his gentle and soldierly nature makes that unlikely. A fellow Highlander recalls him simply saying, “What a pity!” Men were falling in waves, and a howl of rage and pain rose from the frantic, struggling crowd, echoing across the veld. Hundreds dropped—some dead, some wounded, and others knocked down by the chaos of the broken ranks. It was a terrible scene. At such close range and in that formation, a single Mauser bullet could easily hit multiple men. A few rushed forward and were found dead right at the edge of the trench. The few survivors from companies A, B, and C of the Black Watch seemed not to have actually retreated, instead holding their positions right in front of the Boer trenches, while the remains of the other five companies tried to flank the Boers. Of those survivors, only six managed to escape unharmed by evening after lying exposed within two hundred yards of the enemy all day. The rest of the brigade fell apart, struggling to detach themselves from the dead and dying, and fled from that cursed place. Some of the most unfortunate got caught in the wire defenses in the darkness and were found in the morning hanging “like crows,” as one observer described it, riddled with bullets.

Who shall blame the Highlanders for retiring when they did? Viewed, not by desperate and surprised men, but in all calmness and sanity, it may well seem to have been the very best thing which they could do. Dashed into chaos, separated from their officers, with no one who knew what was to be done, the first necessity was to gain shelter from this deadly fire, which had already stretched six hundred of their number upon the ground. The danger was that men so shaken would be stricken with panic, scatter in the darkness over the face of the country, and cease to exist as a military unit. But the Highlanders were true to their character and their traditions. There was shouting in the darkness, hoarse voices calling for the Seaforths, for the Argylls, for Company C, for Company H, and everywhere in the gloom there came the answer of the clansmen. Within half an hour with the break of day the Highland regiments had re-formed, and, shattered and weakened, but undaunted, prepared to renew the contest. Some attempt at an advance was made upon the right, ebbing and flowing, one little band even reaching the trenches and coming back with prisoners and reddened bayonets. For the most part the men lay upon their faces, and fired when they could at the enemy; but the cover which the latter kept was so excellent that an officer who expended 120 rounds has left it upon record that he never once had seen anything positive at which to aim. Lieutenant Lindsay brought the Seaforths' Maxim into the firing-line, and, though all her crew except two were hit, it continued to do good service during the day. The Lancers' Maxim was equally staunch, though it also was left finally with only the lieutenant in charge and one trooper to work it.

Who can blame the Highlanders for retreating when they did? Seen not by desperate and surprised soldiers, but with calmness and sanity, it might actually seem like the best thing they could have done. Thrown into chaos, separated from their officers, and with no one knowing what to do, their first priority was to find cover from the deadly fire that had already taken six hundred of their men. The danger was that men so shaken might panic, scatter in the dark across the land, and cease to function as a military unit. But the Highlanders stayed true to their character and traditions. There were shouts in the dark, hoarse voices calling for the Seaforths, the Argylls, Company C, and Company H, and everywhere in the gloom came the responses of the clansmen. Within half an hour of dawn, the Highland regiments had re-formed, battered and weakened but undaunted, ready to resume the fight. Some attempts were made to advance on the right, ebbing and flowing, with one small group even reaching the trenches and returning with prisoners and bloodied bayonets. For the most part, the men lay on their faces, firing when they could at the enemy; however, the enemy’s cover was so good that an officer, who fired 120 rounds, noted that he never once saw anything specific to aim at. Lieutenant Lindsay brought the Seaforths' Maxim into the firing line, and although all but two of her crew were hit, it continued to be effective throughout the day. The Lancers' Maxim was just as sturdy, although it was eventually left with only the lieutenant in charge and one trooper to operate it.

Fortunately the guns were at hand, and, as usual, they were quick to come to the aid of the distressed. The sun was hardly up before the howitzers were throwing lyddite at 4000 yards, the three field batteries (18th, 62nd, 75th) were working with shrapnel at a mile, and the troop of Horse Artillery was up at the right front trying to enfilade the trenches. The guns kept down the rifle-fire, and gave the wearied Highlanders some respite from their troubles. The whole situation had resolved itself now into another Battle of Modder River. The infantry, under a fire at from six hundred to eight hundred paces, could not advance and would not retire. The artillery only kept the battle going, and the huge naval gun from behind was joining with its deep bark in the deafening uproar. But the Boers had already learned—and it is one of their most valuable military qualities that they assimilate their experience so quickly—that shell fire is less dangerous in a trench than among rocks. These trenches, very elaborate in character, had been dug some hundreds of yards from the foot of the hills, so that there was hardly any guide to our artillery fire. Yet it is to the artillery fire that all the losses of the Boers that day were due. The cleverness of Cronje's disposition of his trenches some hundred yards ahead of the kopjes is accentuated by the fascination which any rising object has for a gunner. Prince Kraft tells the story of how at Sadowa he unlimbered his guns two hundred yards in front of the church of Chlum, and how the Austrian reply fire almost invariably pitched upon the steeple. So our own gunners, even at a two thousand-yard mark, found it difficult to avoid overshooting the invisible line, and hitting the obvious mark behind.

Fortunately, the guns were ready, and, as usual, they quickly came to the rescue of those in distress. The sun was barely up before the howitzers were firing lyddite at 4,000 yards, the three field batteries (18th, 62nd, 75th) were engaging with shrapnel at a mile, and the troop of Horse Artillery was positioned at the right front trying to hit the trenches from the side. The artillery kept the rifle fire down and gave the exhausted Highlanders some relief from their troubles. The whole situation had turned into another Battle of Modder River. The infantry, facing fire from six hundred to eight hundred yards, couldn’t advance and wouldn’t retreat. The artillery just maintained the battle, and the huge naval gun from behind joined in with its deep roar amid the deafening noise. But the Boers had already figured out—and this is one of their most valuable military traits, their ability to learn quickly—that shell fire is less dangerous in a trench than in rocky terrain. These trenches, quite elaborate in design, had been dug several hundred yards from the base of the hills, making it hard for our artillery to target their fire accurately. However, it was the artillery fire that caused all the Boer losses that day. Cronje's smart layout of his trenches just a hundred yards ahead of the hills highlights how any rising object fascinates a gunner. Prince Kraft recounts how at Sadowa he set up his guns two hundred yards in front of the church of Chlum, and how the Austrian return fire almost always hit the steeple. So, our own gunners, even at a two thousand-yard range, found it tough to avoid overshooting the invisible line and hitting the obvious target behind.

As the day wore on reinforcements of infantry came up from the force which had been left to guard the camp. The Gordons arrived with the first and second battalions of the Coldstream Guards, and all the artillery was moved nearer to the enemy's position. At the same time, as there were some indications of an attack upon our right flank, the Grenadier Guards with five companies of the Yorkshire Light Infantry were moved up in that direction, while the three remaining companies of Barter's Yorkshiremen secured a drift over which the enemy might cross the Modder. This threatening movement upon our right flank, which would have put the Highlanders into an impossible position had it succeeded, was most gallantly held back all morning, before the arrival of the Guards and the Yorkshires, by the mounted infantry and the 12th Lancers, skirmishing on foot. It was in this long and successful struggle to cover the flank of the 3rd Brigade that Major Milton, Major Ray, and many another brave man met his end. The Coldstreams and Grenadiers relieved the pressure upon this side, and the Lancers retired to their horses, having shown, not for the first time, that the cavalryman with a modern carbine can at a pinch very quickly turn himself into a useful infantry soldier. Lord Airlie deserves all praise for his unconventional use of his men, and for the gallantry with which he threw both himself and them into the most critical corner of the fight.

As the day went on, more infantry reinforcements arrived from the group left to guard the camp. The Gordons showed up with the first and second battalions of the Coldstream Guards, and all the artillery was moved closer to the enemy’s position. At the same time, since there were signs of an attack on our right flank, the Grenadier Guards and five companies of the Yorkshire Light Infantry were sent in that direction, while the three remaining companies of Barter's Yorkshiremen secured a crossing point over which the enemy could cross the Modder. This threatening movement on our right flank, which would have put the Highlanders in a terrible position if it had succeeded, was bravely held back all morning, before the arrival of the Guards and the Yorkshires, by the mounted infantry and the 12th Lancers, who fought on foot. It was during this long and successful effort to cover the flank of the 3rd Brigade that Major Milton, Major Ray, and many other brave men lost their lives. The Coldstreams and Grenadiers relieved the pressure on this side, and the Lancers returned to their horses, having shown, once again, that a cavalryman with a modern carbine can quickly adapt to being a useful infantry soldier when necessary. Lord Airlie deserves all the praise for his unconventional use of his men and for the courage with which he threw both himself and them into the most critical part of the fight.

While the Coldstreams, the Grenadiers, and the Yorkshire Light Infantry were holding back the Boer attack upon our right flank the indomitable Gordons, the men of Dargai, furious with the desire to avenge their comrades of the Highland Brigade, had advanced straight against the trenches and succeeded without any very great loss in getting within four hundred yards of them. But a single regiment could not carry the position, and anything like a general advance upon it was out of the question in broad daylight after the punishment which we had received. Any plans of the sort which may have passed through Lord Methuen's mind were driven away for ever by the sudden unordered retreat of the stricken brigade. They had been very roughly handled in this, which was to most of them their baptism of fire, and they had been without food and water under a burning sun all day. They fell back rapidly for a mile, and the guns were for a time left partially exposed. Fortunately the lack of initiative on the part of the Boers which has stood our friend so often came in to save us from disaster and humiliation. It is due to the brave unshaken face which the Guards presented to the enemy that our repulse did not deepen into something still more serious.

While the Coldstreams, the Grenadiers, and the Yorkshire Light Infantry were holding back the Boer attack on our right flank, the unbeatable Gordons, the men of Dargai, driven by the desire to avenge their comrades from the Highland Brigade, advanced directly against the trenches and managed, with minimal losses, to get within four hundred yards of them. However, a single regiment couldn’t take the position, and any kind of general advance in broad daylight was impossible after the punishment we had endured. Any plans Lord Methuen might have had were wiped away by the sudden, unorganized retreat of the battered brigade. They had been badly treated during what was for most of them their first battle and had gone without food and water under a scorching sun all day. They fell back quickly for a mile, and for a time, the guns were left somewhat exposed. Luckily, the Boers’ lack of initiative, which has saved us many times before, came to our rescue and prevented disaster and humiliation. It was because of the brave, unwavering stance the Guards showed to the enemy that our retreat didn’t turn into something even more serious.

The Gordons and the Scots Guards were still in attendance upon the guns, but they had been advanced very close to the enemy's trenches, and there were no other troops in support. Under these circumstances it was imperative that the Highlanders should rally, and Major Ewart with other surviving officers rushed among the scattered ranks and strove hard to gather and to stiffen them. The men were dazed by what they had undergone, and Nature shrank back from that deadly zone where the bullets fell so thickly. But the pipes blew, and the bugles sang, and the poor tired fellows, the backs of their legs so flayed and blistered by lying in the sun that they could hardly bend them, hobbled back to their duty. They worked up to the guns once more, and the moment of danger passed.

The Gordons and the Scots Guards were still by the guns, but they had moved very close to the enemy's trenches, and there were no other troops backing them up. Given the situation, it was crucial for the Highlanders to regroup, and Major Ewart, along with other remaining officers, rushed among the scattered men, trying hard to gather and encourage them. The soldiers were disoriented from what they had gone through, and instinct made them hesitate in that deadly area where bullets fell so heavily. But the pipes played, and the bugles sounded, and the exhausted soldiers, their legs sore and blistered from lying in the sun to the point where they could barely bend them, limped back to their posts. They made their way back to the guns, and the moment of danger passed.

But as the evening wore on it became evident that no attack could succeed, and that therefore there was no use in holding the men in front of the enemy's position. The dark Cronje, lurking among his ditches and his barbed wire, was not to be approached, far less defeated. There are some who think that, had we held on there as we did at the Modder River, the enemy would again have been accommodating enough to make way for us during the night, and the morning would have found the road clear to Kimberley. I know no grounds for such an opinion—but several against it. At Modder Cronje abandoned his lines, knowing that he had other and stronger ones behind him. At Magersfontein a level plain lay behind the Boer position, and to abandon it was to give up the game altogether. Besides, why should he abandon it? He knew that he had hit us hard. We had made absolutely no impression upon his defences. Is it likely that he would have tamely given up all his advantages and surrendered the fruits of his victory without a struggle? It is enough to mourn a defeat without the additional agony of thinking that a little more perseverance might have turned it into a victory. The Boer position could only be taken by outflanking it, and we were not numerous enough nor mobile enough to outflank it. There lay the whole secret of our troubles, and no conjectures as to what might under other circumstances have happened can alter it.

But as the evening went on, it became clear that no attack could succeed, and so there was no point in keeping the men in front of the enemy's position. The dark Cronje, hidden among his ditches and barbed wire, was not to be approached, let alone defeated. Some people believe that if we had held our ground like we did at the Modder River, the enemy would have been kind enough to let us pass during the night, and by morning the road to Kimberley would have been clear. I have no reason to support that belief—quite a few against it, actually. At Modder, Cronje left his lines, knowing he had other stronger ones behind him. At Magersfontein, a flat plain lay behind the Boer position, and abandoning it would mean giving up the whole game. Besides, why would he abandon it? He knew he had dealt us a heavy blow. We hadn't made any impact on his defenses. Is it likely that he would have simply given up all his advantages and surrendered the benefits of his victory without a fight? It's hard enough to mourn a defeat without the extra pain of wondering if a little more determination could have turned it into a victory. The Boer position could only be taken by outflanking it, and we weren't numerous or mobile enough to do that. That was the entire secret of our troubles, and no speculation about what might have happened under different circumstances can change that.

About half-past five the Boer guns, which had for some unexplained reason been silent all day, opened upon the cavalry. Their appearance was a signal for the general falling back of the centre, and the last attempt to retrieve the day was abandoned. The Highlanders were dead-beat; the Coldstreams had had enough; the mounted infantry was badly mauled. There remained the Grenadiers, the Scots Guards, and two or three line regiments who were available for a new attack. There are occasions, such as Sadowa, where a General must play his last card. There are others where with reinforcements in his rear, he can do better by saving his force and trying once again. General Grant had an axiom that the best time for an advance was when you were utterly exhausted, for that was the moment when your enemy was probably utterly exhausted too, and of two such forces the attacker has the moral advantage. Lord Methuen determined—and no doubt wisely—that it was no occasion for counsels of desperation. His men were withdrawn—in some cases withdrew themselves—outside the range of the Boer guns, and next morning saw the whole force with bitter and humiliated hearts on their way back to their camp at Modder River.

About 5:30, the Boer guns, which had inexplicably been quiet all day, opened fire on the cavalry. This was the signal for the center to start falling back, and the last attempt to turn the tide of the battle was called off. The Highlanders were exhausted; the Coldstreams had reached their limit; the mounted infantry had taken heavy losses. The only troops left for a new attack were the Grenadiers, the Scots Guards, and a couple of line regiments. There are times, like at Sadowa, when a General has to take a final risk. There are other times, though, when, with reinforcements nearby, it's smarter to conserve your forces and regroup for another try. General Grant believed that the best time to advance was when you were completely worn out, because that was likely when your enemy was equally spent, giving the attacker the moral advantage. Lord Methuen decided—and probably rightly so—that this was not the time for desperate measures. His troops were pulled back—some withdrew on their own—out of the Boer guns' range, and the next morning saw the entire force heading back to their camp at Modder River with bitter and humiliated hearts.

The repulse of Magersfontein cost the British nearly a thousand men, killed, wounded, and missing, of which over seven hundred belonged to the Highlanders. Fifty-seven officers had fallen in that brigade alone, including their Brigadier and Colonel Downman of the Gordons. Colonel Codrington of the Coldstreams was wounded early, fought through the action, and came back in the evening on a Maxim gun. Lord Winchester of the same battalion was killed, after injudiciously but heroically exposing himself all day. The Black Watch alone had lost nineteen officers and over three hundred men killed and wounded, a catastrophe which can only be matched in all the bloody and glorious annals of that splendid regiment by their slaughter at Ticonderoga in 1757, when no fewer than five hundred fell before Montcalm's muskets. Never has Scotland had a more grievous day than this of Magersfontein. She has always given her best blood with lavish generosity for the Empire, but it may be doubted if any single battle has ever put so many families of high and low into mourning from the Tweed to the Caithness shore. There is a legend that when sorrow comes upon Scotland the old Edinburgh Castle is lit by ghostly lights and gleams white at every window in the mirk of midnight. If ever the watcher could have seen so sinister a sight, it should have been on this, the fatal night of December 11, 1899. As to the Boer loss it is impossible to determine it. Their official returns stated it to be seventy killed and two hundred and fifty wounded, but the reports of prisoners and deserters placed it at a very much higher figure. One unit, the Scandinavian corps, was placed in an advanced position at Spytfontein, and was overwhelmed by the Seaforths, who killed, wounded, or took the eighty men of whom it was composed. The stories of prisoners and of deserters all speak of losses very much higher than those which have been officially acknowledged.

The defeat at Magersfontein cost the British nearly a thousand men, including those killed, wounded, and missing, with over seven hundred from the Highlanders. Fifty-seven officers fell in that brigade alone, including their Brigadier and Colonel Downman of the Gordons. Colonel Codrington of the Coldstreams was wounded early, fought throughout the battle, and returned in the evening on a Maxim gun. Lord Winchester of the same battalion was killed after recklessly but heroically exposing himself all day. The Black Watch alone lost nineteen officers and over three hundred men killed and wounded, a disaster that can only be compared to their heavy losses at Ticonderoga in 1757, when five hundred fell to Montcalm's muskets. Scotland has never faced a more tragic day than Magersfontein. She has consistently offered her best blood generously for the Empire, but it may be questioned whether any single battle has caused so many families, both rich and poor, to mourn from the Tweed to the Caithness coast. There's a legend that when sorrow visits Scotland, the old Edinburgh Castle is lit by ghostly lights and glows white at every window in the darkness of midnight. If ever the watcher could have witnessed such a haunting sight, it would have been on this fateful night of December 11, 1899. As for the Boer losses, it's hard to determine. Their official reports claimed seventy killed and two hundred and fifty wounded, but accounts from prisoners and deserters suggested a much higher number. One unit, the Scandinavian corps, was stationed in a forward position at Spytfontein and was overwhelmed by the Seaforths, who either killed, wounded, or captured all eighty members of the unit. The accounts of prisoners and deserters consistently report much higher losses than those officially acknowledged.

In his comments upon the battle next day Lord Methuen was said to have given offence to the Highland Brigade, and the report was allowed to go uncontradicted until it became generally accepted. It arose, however, from a complete misunderstanding of the purport of Lord Methuen's remarks, in which he praised them, as he well might, for their bravery, and condoled with them over the wreck of their splendid regiments. The way in which officers and men hung on under conditions to which no troops have ever been exposed was worthy of the highest traditions of the British army. From the death of Wauchope in the early morning, until the assumption of the command of the brigade by Hughes-Hallett in the late afternoon, no one seems to have taken the direction. 'My lieutenant was wounded and my captain was killed,' says a private. 'The General was dead, but we stayed where we were, for there was no order to retire.' That was the story of the whole brigade, until the flanking movement of the Boers compelled them to fall back.

In his comments about the battle the next day, Lord Methuen was reported to have offended the Highland Brigade, and this claim went unchallenged until it became widely believed. However, it stemmed from a complete misunderstanding of what Lord Methuen actually said, in which he praised them, as he rightly should, for their bravery and expressed his condolences over the loss of their remarkable regiments. The way the officers and men held their ground under conditions no other troops have faced was worthy of the highest traditions of the British army. From the death of Wauchope in the early morning until Hughes-Hallett took command of the brigade in the late afternoon, no one seems to have provided direction. "My lieutenant was wounded and my captain was killed," said a private. "The General was dead, but we stayed where we were, because there was no order to retreat." That was the story of the entire brigade until the Boer flanking movement forced them to fall back.

The most striking lesson of the engagement is the extreme bloodiness of modern warfare under some conditions, and its bloodlessness under others. Here, out of a total of something under a thousand casualties seven hundred were incurred in about five minutes, and the whole day of shell, machine-gun, and rifle fire only furnished the odd three hundred. So also at Ladysmith the British forces (White's column) were under heavy fire from 5.30 to 11.30, and the loss again was something under three hundred. With conservative generalship the losses of the battles of the future will be much less than those of the past, and as a consequence the battles themselves will last much longer, and it will be the most enduring rather than the most fiery which will win. The supply of food and water to the combatants will become of extreme importance to keep them up during the prolonged trials of endurance, which will last for weeks rather than days. On the other hand, when a General's force is badly compromised, it will be so punished that a quick surrender will be the only alternative to annihilation.

The most striking lesson from the engagement is the extreme shift in casualties during modern warfare—sometimes there’s a lot of bloodshed and at other times not much at all. For example, out of under a thousand total casualties, seven hundred occurred in just about five minutes, while the entire day of shelling, machine-gun, and rifle fire only accounted for three hundred more. Similarly, during the siege at Ladysmith, White's column faced heavy fire from 5:30 to 11:30, resulting in fewer than three hundred losses. With careful leadership, the losses in future battles will likely be much lower than in the past, which means the battles will last longer. Victory will go to those who can endure rather than to those who are the fiercest. The supply of food and water for the combatants will be crucial to help them survive these longer periods of endurance, which will extend for weeks instead of days. Conversely, if a General's forces find themselves in a bad position, they can expect severe losses, leaving quick surrender as the only option to avoid total destruction.

On the subject of the quarter-column formation which proved so fatal to us, it must be remembered that any other form of advance is hardly possible during a night attack, though at Tel-el-Kebir the exceptional circumstance of the march being over an open desert allowed the troops to move for the last mile or two in a more extended formation. A line of battalion double-company columns is most difficult to preserve in the darkness, and any confusion may lead to disaster. The whole mistake lay in a miscalculation of a few hundred yards in the position of the trenches. Had the regiments deployed five minutes earlier it is probable (though by no means certain) that the position would have been carried.

Regarding the quarter-column formation that was so disastrous for us, it’s important to remember that any other type of advance is nearly impossible during a night attack. However, at Tel-el-Kebir, the unique situation of marching across an open desert allowed the troops to spread out over the last mile or two. Maintaining a line of battalion double-company columns in the dark is extremely challenging, and any mix-up can result in catastrophe. The main error was a miscalculation of just a few hundred yards regarding the trenches' location. If the regiments had deployed five minutes earlier, it’s likely (though not guaranteed) that the position would have been taken.

The action was not without those examples of military virtue which soften a disaster, and hold out a brighter promise for the future. The Guards withdrew from the field as if on parade, with the Boer shells bursting over their ranks. Fine, too, was the restraint of G Battery of Horse Artillery on the morning after the battle. An armistice was understood to exist, but the naval gun, in ignorance of it, opened on our extreme left. The Boers at once opened fire upon the Horse Artillery, who, recognising the mistake, remained motionless and unlimbered in a line, with every horse, and gunner and driver in his place, without taking any notice of the fire, which presently slackened and stopped as the enemy came to understand the situation. It is worthy of remark that in this battle the three field batteries engaged, as well as G Battery, R.H.A., each fired over 1000 rounds and remained for 30 consecutive hours within 1500 yards of the Boer position.

The action included some examples of military bravery that eased the blow of the disaster and offered hope for the future. The Guards left the battlefield as if they were on parade, with Boer shells exploding over them. Also impressive was the restraint of G Battery of Horse Artillery the morning after the battle. An armistice was believed to be in place, but the naval gun, unaware of this, fired on our far left. The Boers immediately returned fire on the Horse Artillery, who, recognizing the confusion, stayed completely still and unlimbered in a line, with every horse, gunner, and driver in position, ignoring the gunfire, which eventually lessened and stopped as the enemy grasped the situation. It's noteworthy that during this battle, the three field batteries engaged, along with G Battery, R.H.A., each fired over 1000 rounds and stayed within 1500 yards of the Boer position for 30 consecutive hours.

But of all the corps who deserve praise, there was none more gallant than the brave surgeons and ambulance bearers, who encounter all the dangers and enjoy none of the thrills of warfare. All day under fire these men worked and toiled among the wounded. Beevor, Ensor, Douglas, Probyn—all were equally devoted. It is almost incredible, and yet it is true, that by ten o'clock on the morning after the battle, before the troops had returned to camp, no fewer than five hundred wounded were in the train and on their way to Cape Town.

But of all the groups that deserve recognition, none were braver than the courageous surgeons and ambulance bearers, who faced all the dangers without experiencing any of the excitement of battle. All day long, these men worked tirelessly among the wounded, exposed to gunfire. Beevor, Ensor, Douglas, Probyn—all were equally committed. It’s almost unbelievable, but it’s true: by ten o'clock the morning after the battle, before the troops had returned to camp, no fewer than five hundred wounded were in the train and on their way to Cape Town.





CHAPTER 10. THE BATTLE OF STORMBERG.

Some attempt has now been made to sketch the succession of events which had ended in the investment of Ladysmith in northern Natal, and also to show the fortunes of the force which on the western side of the seat of war attempted to advance to the relief of Kimberley. The distance between these forces may be expressed in terms familiar to the European reader by saying that it was that which separates Paris from Frankfort, or to the American by suggesting that Ladysmith was at Boston and that Methuen was trying to relieve Philadelphia. Waterless deserts and rugged mountain ranges divided the two scenes of action. In the case of the British there could be no connection between the two movements, but the Boers by a land journey of something over a hundred miles had a double choice of a route by which Cronje and Joubert might join hands, either by the Bloemfontein-Johannesburg-Laing's Nek Railway, or by the direct line from Harrismith to Ladysmith. The possession of these internal lines should have been of enormous benefit to the Boers, enabling them to throw the weight of their forces unexpectedly from the one flank to the other.

Some effort has now been made to outline the series of events that led to the siege of Ladysmith in northern Natal, as well as to describe the situation of the force that tried to advance from the western side of the battlefield to relieve Kimberley. The distance between these forces can be explained in terms that European readers would understand by comparing it to the distance between Paris and Frankfurt, or for American readers, by saying that Ladysmith was like Boston and that Methuen was trying to relieve Philadelphia. Waterless deserts and rugged mountain ranges separated the two areas of action. For the British, there could be no connection between the two movements, but the Boers, through a land journey of just over a hundred miles, had two possible routes for Cronje and Joubert

In a future chapter it will be recorded how the Army Corps arriving from England was largely diverted into Natal in order in the first instance to prevent the colony from being overrun, and in the second to rescue the beleaguered garrison. In the meantime it is necessary to deal with the military operations in the broad space between the eastern and western armies.

In a future chapter, it will be noted how the Army Corps coming from England was mainly redirected to Natal to first keep the colony from being overrun and second to save the trapped garrison. In the meantime, it's important to address the military operations in the wide area between the eastern and western armies.

After the declaration of war there was a period of some weeks during which the position of the British over the whole of the northern part of Cape Colony was full of danger. Immense supplies had been gathered at De Aar which were at the mercy of a Free State raid, and the burghers, had they possessed a cavalry leader with the dash of a Stuart or a Sheridan, might have dealt a blow which would have cost us a million pounds' worth of stores and dislocated the whole plan of campaign. However, the chance was allowed to pass, and when, on November 1st, the burghers at last in a leisurely fashion sauntered over the frontier, arrangements had been made by reinforcement and by concentration to guard the vital points. The objects of the British leaders, until the time for a general advance should come, were to hold the Orange River Bridge (which opened the way to Kimberley), to cover De Aar Junction, where the stores were, to protect at all costs the line of railway which led from Cape Town to Kimberley, and to hold on to as much as possible of those other two lines of railway which led, the one through Colesberg and the other through Stormberg, into the Free State. The two bodies of invaders who entered the colony moved along the line of these two railways, the one crossing the Orange River at Norval's Pont and the other at Bethulie. They enlisted many recruits among the Cape Colony Dutch as they advanced, and the scanty British forces fell back in front of them, abandoning Colesberg on the one line and Stormberg on the other. We have, then, to deal with the movements of two British detachments. The one which operated on the Colesberg line—which was the more vital of the two, as a rapid advance of the Boers upon that line would have threatened the precious Cape Town to Kimberley connection—consisted almost entirely of mounted troops, and was under the command of the same General French who had won the battle of Elandslaagte. By an act of foresight which was only too rare upon the British side in the earlier stages of this war, French, who had in the recent large manoeuvres on Salisbury Plain shown great ability as a cavalry leader, was sent out of Ladysmith in the very last train which made its way through. His operations, with his instructive use of cavalry and horse artillery, may be treated separately.

After the war was declared, there was a few weeks when the British position in the northern part of Cape Colony was very risky. A huge amount of supplies had been gathered at De Aar, which were vulnerable to a raid from the Free State, and if the burghers had had a cavalry leader as bold as Stuart or Sheridan, they could have struck a blow that might have cost us a million pounds worth of supplies and disrupted the whole campaign plan. However, they missed that chance, and when the burghers finally crossed the border on November 1st at a relaxed pace, arrangements had already been made for reinforcements and concentration to protect the key points. The British leaders' objectives, until it was time for a general offensive, were to hold the Orange River Bridge (which led to Kimberley), cover De Aar Junction where the supplies were stored, protect at all costs the railway line from Cape Town to Kimberley, and maintain as much control as possible over the other two railway lines going through Colesberg and Stormberg into the Free State. The two groups of invaders who entered the colony moved along these two railway lines, one crossing the Orange River at Norval's Pont and the other at Bethulie. They recruited many locals among the Cape Colony Dutch as they advanced, and the limited British forces withdrew in front of them, abandoning Colesberg on one line and Stormberg on the other. We then need to address the movements of two British detachments. The one on the Colesberg line—which was the more critical of the two, as a fast advance by the Boers on that line would have threatened the crucial connection from Cape Town to Kimberley—was almost entirely made up of mounted troops and was commanded by General French, who had previously won the battle of Elandslaagte. In a rare moment of foresight on the British side during the early stages of this war, French, who had shown great skill as a cavalry leader during recent large maneuvers on Salisbury Plain, was sent out of Ladysmith on the last train that got through. His operations, including his instructive use of cavalry and horse artillery, can be examined separately.

The other British force which faced the Boers who were advancing through Stormberg was commanded by General Gatacre, a man who bore a high reputation for fearlessness and tireless energy, though he had been criticised, notably during the Soudan campaign, for having called upon his men for undue and unnecessary exertion. 'General Back-acher' they called him, with rough soldierly chaff. A glance at his long thin figure, his gaunt Don Quixote face, and his aggressive jaw would show his personal energy, but might not satisfy the observer that he possessed those intellectual gifts which qualify for high command. At the action of the Atbara he, the brigadier in command, was the first to reach and to tear down with his own hands the zareeba of the enemy—a gallant exploit of the soldier, but a questionable position for the General. The man's strength and his weakness lay in the incident.

The other British force facing the Boers advancing through Stormberg was led by General Gatacre, a man known for his fearlessness and relentless energy. However, he had faced criticism, especially during the Soudan campaign, for demanding too much from his men. They called him 'General Back-acher' in a playful, soldierly manner. A quick look at his tall, thin figure, his gaunt face resembling Don Quixote, and his strong jaw would show his personal energy, but it might not convince someone that he had the intellectual skills needed for high command. During the battle of the Atbara, he, the brigadier in charge, was the first to reach and pull down the enemy’s zareeba with his own hands—a brave act for a soldier, but a questionable move for a General. The incident highlighted both his strength and weakness.

General Gatacre was nominally in command of a division, but so cruelly had his men been diverted from him, some to Buller in Natal and some to Methuen, that he could not assemble more than a brigade. Falling back before the Boer advance, he found himself early in December at Sterkstroom, while the Boers occupied the very strong position of Stormberg, some thirty miles to the north of him. With the enemy so near him it was Gatacre's nature to attack, and the moment that he thought himself strong enough he did so. No doubt he had private information as to the dangerous hold which the Boers were getting upon the colonial Dutch, and it is possible that while Buller and Methuen were attacking east and west they urged Gatacre to do something to hold the enemy in the centre. On the night of December 9th he advanced.

General Gatacre was technically in charge of a division, but so severely had his troops been taken from him—some to Buller in Natal and others to Methuen—that he could only gather a brigade. Retreating in the face of the Boer advance, he found himself at Sterkstroom early in December, while the Boers held a very strong position at Stormberg, about thirty miles to the north of him. With the enemy so close, Gatacre was inclined to attack, and as soon as he felt he was strong enough, he did. It's likely that he had insider information about the Boers' increasing influence over the colonial Dutch, and it’s possible that while Buller and Methuen were engaging in battles to the east and west, they encouraged Gatacre to take action to prevent the enemy from advancing in the center. On the night of December 9th, he moved forward.

The fact that he was about to do so, and even the hour of the start, appear to have been the common property of the camp some days before the actual move. The 'Times' correspondent under the date December 7th details all that it is intended to do. It is to the credit of our Generals as men, but to their detriment as soldiers, that they seem throughout the campaign to have shown extraordinarily little power of dissimulation. They did the obvious, and usually allowed it to be obvious what they were about to do. One thinks of Napoleon striking at Egypt; how he gave it abroad that the real object of the expedition was Ireland, but breathed into the ears of one or two intimates that in very truth it was bound for Genoa. The leading official at Toulon had no more idea where the fleet and army of France had gone than the humblest caulker in the yard. However, it is not fair to expect the subtlety of the Corsican from the downright Saxon, but it remains strange and deplorable that in a country filled with spies any one should have known in advance that a so-called 'surprise' was about to be attempted.

The fact that he was about to do so, and even the exact time of the start, seem to have been common knowledge in the camp days before the actual move. The 'Times' reporter on December 7th outlines everything that was planned. It's commendable for our Generals as individuals, but a disadvantage as military leaders that they appeared to show remarkably little ability to hide their intentions throughout the campaign. They did the obvious thing and usually made it clear what they were planning to do. One thinks of Napoleon attacking Egypt; he publicized that the real aim of the expedition was Ireland, but confided in a few close associates that it was actually headed for Genoa. The top official at Toulon had no more idea where the French fleet and army had gone than the lowest worker in the yard. However, it’s unfair to expect the subtlety of the Corsican from the straightforward Saxon, yet it remains odd and unfortunate that in a country filled with spies, anyone would have known in advance that a so-called 'surprise' was about to be attempted.

The force with which General Gatacre advanced consisted of the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers, 960 strong, with one Maxim; the 2nd Irish Rifles, 840 strong, with one Maxim, and 250 Mounted Infantry. There were two batteries of Field Artillery, the 74th and 77th. The total force was well under 3000 men. About three in the afternoon the men were entrained in open trucks under a burning sun, and for some reason, at which the impetuous spirit of the General must have chafed, were kept waiting for three hours. At eight o'clock they detrained at Molteno, and thence after a short rest and a meal they started upon the night march which was intended to end at the break of day at the Boer trenches. One feels as if one were describing the operations of Magersfontein once again and the parallel continues to be painfully exact.

The force that General Gatacre led included the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers, 960 strong, with one Maxim gun; the 2nd Irish Rifles, 840 strong, with one Maxim gun; and 250 Mounted Infantry. There were also two batteries of Field Artillery, the 74th and 77th. The total force was just under 3,000 men. Around three in the afternoon, the troops were loaded onto open trucks under a scorching sun, and for some reason that must have frustrated the eager General, they were kept waiting for three hours. At eight o'clock, they unloaded at Molteno, and after a short rest and a meal, they set off on a night march that was meant to reach the Boer trenches at dawn. It feels like we're describing the events of Magersfontein once again, and the similarities are strikingly clear.

It was nine o'clock and pitch dark when the column moved out of Molteno and struck across the black gloom of the veld, the wheels of the guns being wrapped in hide to deaden the rattle. It was known that the distance was not more than ten miles, and so when hour followed hour and the guides were still unable to say that they had reached their point it must have become perfectly evident that they had missed their way. The men were dog-tired, a long day's work had been followed by a long night's march, and they plodded along drowsily through the darkness. The ground was broken and irregular. The weary soldiers stumbled as they marched. Daylight came and revealed the column still looking for its objective, the fiery General walking in front and leading his horse behind him. It was evident that his plans had miscarried, but his energetic and hardy temperament would not permit him to turn back without a blow being struck. However one may commend his energy, one cannot but stand aghast at his dispositions. The country was wild and rocky, the very places for those tactics of the surprise and the ambuscade in which the Boers excelled. And yet the column still plodded aimlessly on in its dense formation, and if there were any attempt at scouting ahead and on the flanks the result showed how ineffectively it was carried out. It was at a quarter past four in the clear light of a South African morning that a shot, and then another, and then a rolling crash of musketry, told that we were to have one more rough lesson of the result of neglecting the usual precautions of warfare. High up on the face of a steep line of hill the Boer riflemen lay hid, and from a short range their fire scourged our exposed flank. The men appear to have been chiefly colonial rebels, and not Boers of the backveld, and to that happy chance it may be that the comparative harmlessness of their fire was due. Even now, in spite of the surprise, the situation might have been saved had the bewildered troops and their harried officers known exactly what to do. It is easy to be wise after the event, but it appears now that the only course that could commend itself would be to extricate the troops from their position, and then, if thought feasible, to plan an attack. Instead of this a rush was made at the hillside, and the infantry made their way some distance up it only to find that there were positive ledges in front of them which could not be climbed. The advance was at a dead stop, and the men lay down under the boulders for cover from the hot fire which came from inaccessible marksmen above them. Meanwhile the artillery had opened behind them, and their fire (not for the first time in this campaign) was more deadly to their friends than to their foes. At least one prominent officer fell among his men, torn by British shrapnel bullets. Talana Hill and Modder River have shown also, though perhaps in a less tragic degree, that what with the long range of modern artillery fire, and what with the difficulty of locating infantry who are using smokeless powder, it is necessary that officers commanding batteries should be provided with the coolest heads and the most powerful glasses of any men in the service, for a responsibility which will become more and more terrific rests upon their judgment.

It was nine o'clock and completely dark when the column left Molteno and moved across the pitch-black veld, the wheels of the guns wrapped in hide to muffle the noise. They knew they were only about ten miles away, so as hours passed and the guides were still unable to confirm they had arrived, it became obvious they had lost their way. The men were exhausted, a long day’s work followed by a long night march, trudging drowsily through the darkness. The uneven ground caused the weary soldiers to stumble. Daylight broke, revealing the column still searching for its target, with the fiery General walking in front and leading his horse behind him. It was clear that his plans had failed, but his energetic and tough nature wouldn’t let him turn back without making an effort. While his determination is commendable, one can’t help but be shocked by his decisions. The area was rugged and wild, ideal for the surprise tactics and ambushes that the Boers excelled in. Yet the column continued to march aimlessly in a tight formation, and any scouting attempts ahead and on the flanks showed how poorly it was executed. At a quarter past four in the clear light of a South African morning, a shot, followed by another, and then a loud volley of gunfire, warned us that we were about to learn another harsh lesson from neglecting standard warfare precautions. High up on a steep hill, Boer riflemen were concealed, and their fire hit our exposed side from a short distance. The men seemed to be mostly colonial rebels rather than backveld Boers, and it was likely due to this fortunate circumstance that their fire wasn't as deadly. Even now, despite the surprise, the situation could have been salvaged if the confused troops and their stressed officers had known what to do. It's easy to reflect wisely after the fact, but it seems the only sensible course would have been to withdraw the troops from their position and then, if deemed possible, plan an attack. Instead, they charged at the hillside; the infantry climbed a bit only to discover there were cliffs in front of them that they couldn't scale. The advance came to a halt, and the men took cover under boulders from the intense fire coming from the unreachable marksmen above. Meanwhile, the artillery fired from behind them, and their shots (not for the first time in this campaign) were more harmful to their own side than to the enemy. At least one high-ranking officer fell among his men, hit by British shrapnel bullets. Talana Hill and Modder River have also shown, though perhaps in a less tragic way, that given the long range of modern artillery and the challenge of locating infantry using smokeless powder, officers commanding artillery batteries must be the most level-headed and equipped with the best optics, as a growing responsibility rests on their judgment.

The question now, since the assault had failed, was how to extricate the men from their position. Many withdrew down the hill, running the gauntlet of the enemy's fire as they emerged from the boulders on to the open ground, while others clung to their positions, some from a soldierly hope that victory might finally incline to them, others because it was clearly safer to lie among the rocks than to cross the bullet-swept spaces beyond. Those portions of the force who extricated themselves do not appear to have realised how many of their comrades had remained behind, and so as the gap gradually increased between the men who were stationary and the men who fell back all hope of the two bodies reuniting became impossible. All the infantry who remained upon the hillside were captured. The rest rallied at a point fifteen hundred yards from the scene of the surprise, and began an orderly retreat to Molteno.

The question now, since the attack had failed, was how to get the men out of their position. Many retreated down the hill, taking risks as they moved from behind the boulders onto the open ground, while others stayed put, some out of a soldier's hope that victory might finally be theirs, and others because it was obviously safer to lie among the rocks than to cross the bullet-ridden open spaces ahead. Those parts of the force that managed to escape didn't seem to realize how many of their comrades were still behind, so as the gap slowly widened between the men who stayed put and those who fell back, any hope of the two groups regrouping became impossible. All the infantry who stayed on the hillside were captured. The rest gathered at a point fifteen hundred yards from the site of the ambush and began a structured retreat to Molteno.

In the meanwhile three powerful Boer guns upon the ridge had opened fire with great accuracy, but fortunately with defective shells. Had the enemy's contractors been as trustworthy as their gunners in this campaign, our losses would have been very much heavier, and it is possible that here we catch a glimpse of some consequences of that corruption which was one of the curses of the country. The guns were moved with great smartness along the ridge, and opened fire again and again, but never with great result. Our own batteries, the 74th and 77th, with our handful of mounted men, worked hard in covering the retreat and holding back the enemy's pursuit.

In the meantime, three powerful Boer guns on the ridge started firing with impressive accuracy, but luckily their shells were faulty. If the enemy's contractors had been as reliable as their gunners during this campaign, our losses would have been much heavier, and it seems we can see some consequences of the corruption that plagued the country. The guns were moved quickly along the ridge and fired repeatedly, but never with significant impact. Our own batteries, the 74th and 77th, along with our small group of mounted men, worked hard to cover the retreat and slow down the enemy's pursuit.

It is a sad subject to discuss, but it is the one instance in a campaign containing many reverses which amounts to demoralisation among the troops engaged. The Guards marching with the steadiness of Hyde Park off the field of Magersfontein, or the men of Nicholson's Nek chafing because they were not led in a last hopeless charge, are, even in defeat, object lessons of military virtue. But here fatigue and sleeplessness had taken all fire and spirit out of the men. They dropped asleep by the roadside and had to be prodded up by their exhausted officers. Many were taken prisoners in their slumber by the enemy who gleaned behind them. Units broke into small straggling bodies, and it was a sorry and bedraggled force which about ten o'clock came wandering into Molteno. The place of honour in the rear was kept throughout by the Irish Rifles, who preserved some military formation to the end. Our losses in killed and wounded were not severe—military honour would have been less sore had they been more so. Twenty-six killed, sixty-eight wounded—that is all. But between the men on the hillside and the somnambulists of the column, six hundred, about equally divided between the Irish Rifles and the Northumberland Fusiliers, had been left as prisoners. Two guns, too, had been lost in the hurried retreat.

It's a sad topic to talk about, but it's one situation in a campaign filled with setbacks that led to demoralization among the troops involved. The Guards marched with the same steadiness as they would in Hyde Park as they left the battlefield at Magersfontein, and the soldiers at Nicholson's Nek were frustrated because they weren't led in a last, desperate charge. Even in defeat, they represented military virtue. But here, fatigue and lack of sleep had drained all energy and spirit from the men. They fell asleep by the roadside and had to be nudged awake by their exhausted officers. Many were captured in their sleep by the enemy who trailed behind them. Units broke into small, disorganized groups, and it was a tired and ragged force that wandered into Molteno around ten o'clock. The Irish Rifles maintained a place of honor at the rear, holding some military formation until the end. Our losses in killed and wounded weren't severe—military pride would have hurt less if they had been greater. Twenty-six killed, sixty-eight wounded—that's all. But between the men on the hillside and the sleepwalkers of the column, six hundred, about evenly split between the Irish Rifles and the Northumberland Fusiliers, had been left as prisoners. Two guns were also lost in the rushed retreat.

It is not for the historian—especially for a civilian historian—to say a word unnecessarily to aggravate the pain of that brave man who, having done all that personal courage could do, was seen afterwards sobbing on the table of the waiting-room at Molteno, and bewailing his 'poor men.' He had a disaster, but Nelson had one at Teneriffe and Napoleon at Acre, and built their great reputations in spite of it. But the one good thing of a disaster is that by examining it we may learn to do better in the future, and so it would indeed be a perilous thing if we agreed that our reverses were not a fit subject for open and frank discussion.

It’s not up to the historian—especially a civilian historian—to say anything that would unnecessarily increase the pain of that brave man who, after doing everything he could with personal bravery, was later seen crying on the table in the waiting room at Molteno, mourning for his ‘poor men.’ He experienced a setback, but so did Nelson at Teneriffe and Napoleon at Acre, yet both built their great reputations despite those failures. However, the silver lining of a disaster is that by examining it, we can learn to improve for the future, so it would indeed be dangerous if we agreed that our setbacks weren't worthy of open and honest discussion.

It is not to the detriment of an enterprise that it should be daring and call for considerable physical effort on the part of those who are engaged in it. On the contrary, the conception of such plans is one of the signs of a great military mind. But in the arranging of the details the same military mind should assiduously occupy itself in foreseeing and preventing every unnecessary thing which may make the execution of such a plan more difficult. The idea of a swift sudden attack upon Stormberg was excellent—the details of the operation are continually open to criticism.

It’s not a bad thing for a business to be bold and require significant physical effort from those involved. In fact, coming up with such plans is a hallmark of a great military strategist. However, when planning the details, that same military strategist should focus on anticipating and avoiding any unnecessary issues that could complicate the execution of the plan. The idea of a quick, surprise attack on Stormberg was brilliant—the specifics of the operation are always subject to critique.

How far the Boers suffered at Stormberg is unknown to us, but there seems in this instance no reason to doubt their own statement that their losses were very slight. At no time was any body of them exposed to our fire, while we, as usual, fought in the open. Their numbers were probably less than ours, and the quality of their shooting and want of energy in pursuit make the defeat the more galling. On the other hand, their guns were served with skill and audacity. They consisted of commandos from Bethulie, Rouxville, and Smithfield, under the orders of Olivier, with those colonials whom they had seduced from their allegiance.

How much the Boers suffered at Stormberg is unclear to us, but there seems to be no reason to doubt their claim that their losses were minimal. At no point were any of them exposed to our fire, while we, as usual, fought in the open. Their numbers were probably smaller than ours, and the poor quality of their shooting and lack of energy in pursuit make the defeat even more frustrating. On the other hand, their artillery was operated with skill and boldness. They included commandos from Bethulie, Rouxville, and Smithfield, under the command of Olivier, along with those colonials they had lured away from their loyalty.

This defeat of General Gatacre's, occurring, as it did, in a disaffected district and one of great strategic importance, might have produced the worst consequences.

This defeat of General Gatacre's, happening as it did in a troubled area of significant strategic importance, could have led to disastrous outcomes.

Fortunately no very evil result followed. No doubt the recruiting of rebels was helped, but there was no forward movement and Molteno remained in our hands. In the meanwhile Gatacre's force was reinforced by a fresh battery, the 79th, and by a strong regiment, the Derbyshires, so that with the 1st Royal Scots and the wing of the Berkshires he was strong enough to hold his own until the time for a general advance should come. So in the Stormberg district, as at the Modder River, the same humiliating and absurd position of stalemate was established.

Fortunately, nothing too terrible happened. Recruiting rebels was probably made easier, but there was no progress, and Molteno stayed under our control. Meanwhile, Gatacre's force got a boost with a new battery, the 79th, and a strong regiment, the Derbyshires, so with the 1st Royal Scots and part of the Berkshires, he was strong enough to hold his ground until it was time for a general advance. So, in the Stormberg district, just like at the Modder River, the same embarrassing and ridiculous stalemate situation was created.





CHAPTER 11. BATTLE OF COLENSO.

Two serious defeats had within the week been inflicted upon the British forces in South Africa. Cronje, lurking behind his trenches and his barbed wire entanglements barred Methuen's road to Kimberley, while in the northern part of Cape Colony Gatacre's wearied troops had been defeated and driven by a force which consisted largely of British subjects. But the public at home steeled their hearts and fixed their eyes steadily upon Natal. There was their senior General and there the main body of their troops. As brigade after brigade and battery after battery touched at Cape Town, and were sent on instantly to Durban, it was evident that it was in this quarter that the supreme effort was to be made, and that there the light might at last break. In club, and dining room, and railway car—wherever men met and talked—the same words might be heard: 'Wait until Buller moves.' The hopes of a great empire lay in the phrase.

Two significant defeats had been dealt to the British forces in South Africa within the week. Cronje, hiding behind his trenches and barbed wire, blocked Methuen's path to Kimberley, while in the northern part of Cape Colony, Gatacre's exhausted troops had been beaten and pushed back by a force mainly made up of British subjects. But the people back home steeled themselves and focused their attention on Natal. That was where their senior General was and the main body of their troops. As brigade after brigade and battery after battery arrived in Cape Town and were quickly sent on to Durban, it became clear that this was where the major effort would take place and that here, the light might finally emerge. In clubs, dining rooms, and train cars—anywhere men gathered and talked—the same phrase could be heard: 'Wait until Buller moves.' The hopes of a great empire rested on those words.

It was upon October 30th that Sir George White had been thrust back into Ladysmith. On November 2nd telegraphic communication with the town was interrupted. On November 3rd the railway line was cut. On November 10th the Boers held Colenso and the line of the Tugela. On the 14th was the affair of the armoured train. On the 18th the enemy were near Estcourt. On the 21st they had reached the Mooi River. On the 23rd Hildyard attacked them at Willow Grange. All these actions will be treated elsewhere. This last one marks the turn of the tide. From then onwards Sir Redvers Buller was massing his troops at Chieveley in preparation for a great effort to cross the river and to relieve Ladysmith, the guns of which, calling from behind the line of northern hills, told their constant tale of restless attack and stubborn defence.

It was on October 30th that Sir George White was pushed back into Ladysmith. On November 2nd, communication with the town was cut off. On November 3rd, the railway line was severed. On November 10th, the Boers occupied Colenso and the Tugela line. On the 14th, there was the incident with the armored train. On the 18th, the enemy was near Estcourt. By the 21st, they had reached the Mooi River. On the 23rd, Hildyard attacked them at Willow Grange. All these events will be discussed elsewhere. This last event marks a turning point. From then on, Sir Redvers Buller was gathering his troops at Chieveley in preparation for a major effort to cross the river and relieve Ladysmith, the guns of which, echoing from behind the northern hills, told their ongoing story of restless attack and determined defense.

But the task was as severe a one as the most fighting General could ask for. On the southern side the banks formed a long slope which could be shaved as with a razor by the rifle fire of the enemy. How to advance across that broad open zone was indeed a problem. It was one of many occasions in this war in which one wondered why, if a bullet-proof shield capable of sheltering a lying man could be constructed, a trial should not be given to it. Alternate rushes of companies with a safe rest after each rush would save the troops from the continued tension of that deadly never ending fire. However, it is idle to discuss what might have been done to mitigate their trials. The open ground had to be passed, and then they came to—not the enemy, but a broad and deep river, with a single bridge, probably undermined, and a single ford, which was found not to exist in practice. Beyond the river was tier after tier of hills, crowned with stone walls and seamed with trenches, defended by thousands of the best marksmen in the world, supported by an admirable artillery. If, in spite of the advance over the open and in spite of the passage of the river, a ridge could still be carried, it was only to be commanded by the next; and so, one behind the other, like the billows of the ocean, a series of hills and hollows rolled northwards to Ladysmith. All attacks must be in the open. All defence was from under cover. Add to this, that the young and energetic Louis Botha was in command of the Boers. It was a desperate task, and yet honour forbade that the garrison should be left to its fate. The venture must be made.

But the task was as tough as any fighting General could ask for. On the southern side, the banks formed a long slope that could be cut down like grass by the enemy's rifle fire. Figuring out how to cross that wide open space was truly a challenge. It was one of many moments in this war when you had to wonder why, if a bulletproof shield capable of protecting a lying person could be made, it wasn't given a try. Alternating rushes of troops with a safe moment to rest after each rush would save the soldiers from the constant pressure of that deadly fire. However, it’s pointless to talk about what could have been done to ease their struggles. They had to cross the open ground and then reached—not the enemy, but a wide and deep river, with only one bridge, probably damaged, and a single crossing point that turned out not to exist in reality. Beyond the river lay layer upon layer of hills, topped with stone walls and marked with trenches, defended by thousands of the best sharpshooters in the world, backed by excellent artillery. If, despite crossing the open ground and the river, they could take a ridge, it would only lead to another one beyond it; thus, a series of hills and valleys rolled northwards to Ladysmith, one after the other like the waves of the ocean. All attacks had to happen in the open. All defense was from cover. To make things worse, the young and energetic Louis Botha was leading the Boers. It was a daunting task, but honor demanded that the garrison shouldn't be left to its fate. The attempt had to be made.

The most obvious criticism upon the operation is that if the attack must be made it should not be made under the enemy's conditions. We seem almost to have gone out of our way to make every obstacle—the glacislike approach, the river, the trenches—as difficult as possible. Future operations were to prove that it was not so difficult to deceive Boer vigilance and by rapid movements to cross the Tugela. A military authority has stated, I know not with what truth, that there is no instance in history of a determined army being stopped by the line of a river, and from Wellington at the Douro to the Russians on the Danube many examples of the ease with which they may be passed will occur to the reader. But Buller had some exceptional difficulties with which to contend. He was weak in mounted troops, and was opposed to an enemy of exceptional mobility who might attack his flank and rear if he exposed them. He had not that great preponderance of numbers which came to him later, and which enabled him to attempt a wide turning movement. One advantage he had, the possession of a more powerful artillery, but his heaviest guns were naturally his least mobile, and the more direct his advance the more effective would his guns be. For these or other reasons he determined upon a frontal attack on the formidable Boer position, and he moved out of Chieveley Camp for that purpose at daybreak on Friday, December 15th.

The most obvious criticism of the operation is that if an attack has to happen, it shouldn’t be done under the enemy's conditions. It seems like we went out of our way to make every obstacle—the steep approach, the river, the trenches—as tough as possible. Future operations would show that it wasn’t that hard to outsmart Boer vigilance and swiftly cross the Tugela. A military expert has claimed, though I can't verify its accuracy, that there’s no historical instance of a determined army being stopped by a river, and examples of how easily rivers can be crossed, from Wellington at the Douro to the Russians on the Danube, will come to mind. However, Buller faced some unique challenges. He was lacking in mounted troops and was up against a very mobile enemy that could attack his flanks and rear if he exposed them. He didn’t have the overwhelming numbers that would come later, which allowed him to try a wide flanking maneuver. One advantage he did have was a stronger artillery, but his heaviest guns were naturally the least mobile, and the more direct his advance, the more effective his guns would be. For these or other reasons, he decided to conduct a frontal attack on the strong Boer position, and he set out from Chieveley Camp for that purpose at dawn on Friday, December 15th.

The force which General Buller led into action was the finest which any British general had handled since the battle of the Alma. Of infantry he had four strong brigades: the 2nd (Hildyard's) consisting of the 2nd Devons, the 2nd Queen's or West Surrey, the 2nd West Yorkshire, and the 2nd East Surrey; the 4th Brigade (Lyttelton's) comprising the 2nd Cameronians, the 3rd Rifles, the 1st Durhams, and the 1st Rifle Brigade; the 5th Brigade (Hart's) with the 1st Inniskilling Fusiliers, the 1st Connaught Rangers, 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, and the Border Regiment, this last taking the place of the 2nd Irish Rifles, who were with Gatacre. There remained the 6th Brigade (Barton's), which included the 2nd Royal Fusiliers, the 2nd Scots Fusiliers, the 1st Welsh Fusiliers, and the 2nd Irish Fusiliers—in all about 16,000 infantry. The mounted men, who were commanded by Lord Dundonald, included the 13th Hussars, the 1st Royals, Bethune's Mounted Infantry, Thorneycroft's Mounted Infantry, three squadrons of South African Horse, with a composite regiment formed from the mounted infantry of the Rifles and of the Dublin Fusiliers with squadrons of the Natal Carabineers and the Imperial Light Horse. These irregular troops of horse might be criticised by martinets and pedants, but they contained some of the finest fighting material in the army, some urged on by personal hatred of the Boers and some by mere lust of adventure. As an example of the latter one squadron of the South African Horse was composed almost entirely of Texan muleteers, who, having come over with their animals, had been drawn by their own gallant spirit into the fighting line of their kinsmen.

The force that General Buller led into action was the best any British general had commanded since the battle of the Alma. He had four strong brigades of infantry: the 2nd Brigade (Hildyard's) included the 2nd Devons, the 2nd Queen's or West Surrey, the 2nd West Yorkshire, and the 2nd East Surrey; the 4th Brigade (Lyttelton's) comprised the 2nd Cameronians, the 3rd Rifles, the 1st Durhams, and the 1st Rifle Brigade; the 5th Brigade (Hart's) consisted of the 1st Inniskilling Fusiliers, the 1st Connaught Rangers, the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, and the Border Regiment, the last replacing the 2nd Irish Rifles, who were with Gatacre. The 6th Brigade (Barton's) included the 2nd Royal Fusiliers, the 2nd Scots Fusiliers, the 1st Welsh Fusiliers, and the 2nd Irish Fusiliers—totaling about 16,000 infantry. The mounted troops, commanded by Lord Dundonald, included the 13th Hussars, the 1st Royals, Bethune's Mounted Infantry, Thorneycroft's Mounted Infantry, three squadrons of South African Horse, and a composite regiment formed from the mounted infantry of the Rifles and the Dublin Fusiliers, along with squadrons of the Natal Carabineers and the Imperial Light Horse. While these irregular mounted troops might be criticized by strict military types, they held some of the best fighters in the army, some driven by personal animosity towards the Boers and others simply looking for adventure. For instance, one squadron of the South African Horse was made up almost entirely of Texan muleteers who, having come over with their animals, were inspired by their own courageous spirit to join the combat alongside their fellow countrymen.

Cavalry was General Buller's weakest arm, but his artillery was strong both in its quality and its number of guns. There were five batteries (30 guns) of the Field Artillery, the 7th, 14th, 63rd, 64th, and 66th. Besides these there were no fewer than sixteen naval guns from H.M.S. 'Terrible'—fourteen of which were 12-pounders, and the other two of the 4.7 type which had done such good service both at Ladysmith and with Methuen. The whole force which moved out from Chieveley Camp numbered about 21,000 men.

Cavalry was General Buller's weakest branch, but his artillery was strong in both quality and quantity. There were five batteries (30 guns) of Field Artillery: the 7th, 14th, 63rd, 64th, and 66th. In addition to these, there were at least sixteen naval guns from H.M.S. 'Terrible'—fourteen of which were 12-pounders, and the other two were 4.7 types that had performed well at Ladysmith and with Methuen. The total force that moved out from Chieveley Camp was about 21,000 men.

The work which was allotted to the army was simple in conception, however terrible it might prove in execution. There were two points at which the river might be crossed, one three miles off on the left, named Bridle Drift, the other straight ahead at the Bridge of Colenso. The 5th or Irish Brigade was to endeavour to cross at Bridle Drift, and then to work down the river bank on the far side so as to support the 2nd or English Brigade,—which was to cross at Colenso. The 4th Brigade was to advance between these, so as to help either which should be in difficulties. Meanwhile on the extreme right the mounted troops under Dundonald were to cover the flank and to attack Hlangwane Hill, a formidable position held strongly by the enemy upon the south bank of the Tugela. The remaining Fusilier brigade of infantry was to support this movement on the right. The guns were to cover the various attacks, and if possible gain a position from which the trenches might be enfiladed. This, simply stated, was the work which lay before the British army. In the bright clear morning sunshine, under a cloudless blue sky, they advanced with high hopes to the assault. Before them lay the long level plain, then the curve of the river, and beyond, silent and serene, like some peaceful dream landscape, stretched the lines and lines of gently curving hills. It was just five o'clock in the morning when the naval guns began to bay, and huge red dustclouds from the distant foothills showed where the lyddite was bursting. No answer came back, nor was there any movement upon the sunlit hills. It was almost brutal, this furious violence to so gentle and unresponsive a countryside. In no place could the keenest eye detect a sign of guns or men, and yet death lurked in every hollow and crouched by every rock.

The task assigned to the army was straightforward in concept, no matter how awful it might turn out in practice. There were two places to cross the river: one three miles to the left, called Bridle Drift, and the other directly ahead at the Bridge of Colenso. The 5th or Irish Brigade was to attempt to cross at Bridle Drift and then move down the riverbank on the other side to support the 2nd or English Brigade, which would cross at Colenso. The 4th Brigade was to advance between them to help either one if they ran into trouble. Meanwhile, on the far right, the mounted troops under Dundonald were tasked with covering the flank and attacking Hlangwane Hill, a strong position held firmly by the enemy on the south bank of the Tugela. The remaining infantry brigade of Fusiliers was to support this movement on the right. The artillery was meant to cover the various assaults and, if possible, move into a position to hit the trenches from the side. This was the straightforward mission that lay ahead for the British army. In the bright morning sunshine, under a clear blue sky, they moved forward with high hopes to attack. Before them stretched the long, flat plain, then the curve of the river, and beyond that, silent and serene, like some peaceful dream landscape, lay the lines of gently sloping hills. It was exactly five o'clock in the morning when the naval guns started firing, and large clouds of red dust rose from the distant foothills, marking where the lyddite was exploding. No response came, nor was there any movement on the sunlit hills. It felt almost brutal, this intense violence against such a gentle and unresponsive countryside. Not even the sharpest eye could spot any signs of guns or troops, yet death was hidden in every hollow and lurking by every rock.

It is so difficult to make a modern battle intelligible when fought, as this was, over a front of seven or eight miles, that it is best perhaps to take the doings of each column in turn, beginning with the left flank, where Hart's Irish Brigade had advanced to the assault of Bridle Drift.

It’s really challenging to make sense of a modern battle when it’s fought over a stretch of seven or eight miles, so it might be better to go through the actions of each column one by one, starting with the left side, where Hart's Irish Brigade had moved in to attack Bridle Drift.

Under an unanswered and therefore an unaimed fire from the heavy guns the Irish infantry moved forward upon the points which they had been ordered to attack. The Dublins led, then the Connaughts, the Inniskillings, and the Borderers. Incredible as it may appear after the recent experiences of Magersfontein and of Stormberg, the men in the two rear regiments appear to have been advanced in quarter column, and not to have deployed until after the enemy's fire had opened. Had shrapnel struck this close formation, as it was within an ace of doing, the loss of life must have been as severe as it was unnecessary.

Under fire from the heavy guns that was unanswered and therefore unfocused, the Irish infantry advanced toward the targets they had been ordered to attack. The Dublins led the way, followed by the Connaughts, the Inniskillings, and the Borderers. As unbelievable as it may seem after the recent events at Magersfontein and Stormberg, the men in the two rear regiments appear to have moved up in quarter column and didn’t deploy until after the enemy's fire had started. If shrapnel had hit this tight formation, which it nearly did, the casualties would have been as tragic as they were unnecessary.

On approaching the Drift—the position or even the existence of which does not seem to have been very clearly defined—it was found that the troops had to advance into a loop formed by the river, so that they were exposed to a very heavy cross-fire upon their right flank, while they were rained on by shrapnel from in front. No sign of the enemy could be seen, though the men were dropping fast. It is a weird and soul-shaking experience to advance over a sunlit and apparently a lonely countryside, with no slightest movement upon its broad face, while the path which you take is marked behind you by sobbing, gasping, writhing men, who can only guess by the position of their wounds whence the shots came which struck them down. All round, like the hissing of fat in the pan, is the monotonous crackle and rattle of the Mausers; but the air is full of it, and no one can define exactly whence it comes. Far away on some hill upon the skyline there hangs the least gauzy veil of thin smoke to indicate whence the six men who have just all fallen together, as if it were some grim drill, met their death. Into such a hell-storm as this it was that the soldiers have again and again advanced in the course of this war, but it may be questioned whether they will not prove to be among the last of mortals to be asked to endure such an ordeal. Other methods of attack must be found or attacks must be abandoned, for smokeless powder, quick-firing guns, and modern rifles make it all odds on the defence!

On approaching the Drift—whose location and even existence don't seem to have been clearly defined—it was discovered that the troops had to move into a loop created by the river, putting them in a tight spot with heavy cross-fire on their right flank while shrapnel rained down from the front. There was no sight of the enemy, even though men were falling fast. It's a bizarre and soul-shaking experience to move across a sunlit and seemingly deserted countryside, with no signs of life on its vast surface, while the path you take is marked behind you by sobbing, gasping, writhing men, who can only guess from their wounds where the shots that took them down came from. All around, like fat hissing in a pan, is the constant crackle and rattle of Mauser rifles; the sound is everywhere, but no one can pinpoint exactly where it's coming from. Far off on a hill on the skyline, there’s the faintest hint of smoke to show where the six men who just fell together—almost as if it were some grim drill—met their end. Into this hell-storm, soldiers have advanced time and again during this war, but it might be questioned whether they will be among the last to endure such a trial. Other methods of attack must be developed, or assaults must be abandoned, because smokeless powder, quick-firing guns, and modern rifles heavily favor the defense!

The gallant Irishmen pushed on, flushed with battle and careless for their losses, the four regiments clubbed into one, with all military organisation rapidly disappearing, and nothing left but their gallant spirit and their furious desire to come to hand-grips with the enemy. Rolling on in a broad wave of shouting angry men, they never winced from the fire until they had swept up to the bank of the river. Northern Inniskilling and Southern man of Connaught, orange and green, Protestant and Catholic, Celt and Saxon, their only rivalry now was who could shed his blood most freely for the common cause. How hateful seem those provincial politics and narrow sectarian creeds which can hold such men apart!

The brave Irishmen pressed on, energized by battle and indifferent to their losses. The four regiments merged into one, with all military structure quickly fading away, leaving only their courageous spirit and their intense urge to confront the enemy. Charging forward in a unified wave of shouting, angry men, they didn't flinch from the gunfire until they reached the riverbank. Northern Inniskilling and Southern Connaught men, orange and green, Protestant and Catholic, Celt and Saxon, their only competition now was who could give their blood most freely for the shared cause. How despicable those local politics and narrow sectarian beliefs must seem that can keep such men apart!

The bank of the river had been gained, but where was the ford? The water swept broad and unruffled in front of them, with no indication of shallows. A few dashing fellows sprang in, but their cartridges and rifles dragged them to the bottom. One or two may even have struggled through to the further side, but on this there is a conflict of evidence. It may be, though it seems incredible, that the river had been partly dammed to deepen the Drift, or, as is more probable, that in the rapid advance and attack the position of the Drift was lost. However this may be, the troops could find no ford, and they lay down, as had been done in so many previous actions, unwilling to retreat and unable to advance, with the same merciless pelting from front and flank. In every fold and behind every anthill the Irishmen lay thick and waited for better times. There are many instances of their cheery and uncomplaining humour. Colonel Brooke, of the Connaughts, fell at the head of his men. Private Livingstone helped to carry him into safety, and then, his task done, he confessed to having 'a bit of a rap meself,' and sank fainting with a bullet through his throat. Another sat with a bullet through both legs. 'Bring me a tin whistle and I'll blow ye any tune ye like,' he cried, mindful of the Dargai piper. Another with his arm hanging by a tendon puffed morosely at his short black pipe. Every now and then, in face of the impossible, the fiery Celtic valour flamed furiously upwards. 'Fix bayonets, men, and let us make a name for ourselves,' cried a colour sergeant, and he never spoke again. For five hours, under the tropical sun, the grimy parched men held on to the ground they had occupied. British shells pitched short and fell among them. A regiment in support fired at them, not knowing that any of the line were so far advanced. Shot at from the front, the flank, and the rear, the 5th Brigade held grimly on.

The riverbank had been reached, but where was the shallow crossing? The water flowed wide and calm in front of them, with no signs of shallows. A few brave individuals jumped in, but their gear pulled them down. Some may have even made it to the other side, but there's conflicting evidence on that. It might be, though it seems hard to believe, that the river had been partially dammed to make the crossing deeper, or more likely, that in the rapid advance and assault, the location of the crossing was lost. Either way, the troops couldn't find any shallow point, and they lay down, as had happened in so many previous battles, unwilling to retreat and unable to move forward, constantly bombarded from the front and sides. In every nook and behind every anthill, the Irish soldiers lay thick, waiting for better moments. There are many examples of their cheerful and uncomplaining spirit. Colonel Brooke, of the Connaughts, fell while leading his men. Private Livingstone helped carry him to safety, and then, once his duty was done, he admitted he had “a bit of a hit myself,” before collapsing from a bullet through his throat. Another soldier sat with a bullet in both legs. “Bring me a tin whistle and I’ll play you any tune you like,” he shouted, recalling the Dargai piper. Another, with his arm hanging by a tendon, glumly puffed on his short black pipe. Every now and then, in the face of the impossible, the fiery Celtic courage ignited fiercely. “Fix bayonets, men, and let’s make a name for ourselves,” cried a color sergeant, and then he fell silent forever. For five hours, under the scorching sun, the grimy, parched men held on to the ground they had taken. British shells landed short, bursting among them. A supporting regiment fired at them, unaware that any of the line were so far forward. Shot at from the front, the sides, and the back, the 5th Brigade held on stubbornly.

But fortunately their orders to retire were at hand, and it is certain that had they not reached them the regiments would have been uselessly destroyed where they lay. It seems to have been Buller himself, who showed extraordinary and ubiquitous personal energy during the day, that ordered them to fall back. As they retreated there was an entire absence of haste and panic, but officers and men were hopelessly jumbled up, and General Hart—whose judgment may occasionally be questioned, but whose cool courage was beyond praise—had hard work to reform the splendid brigade which six hours before had tramped out of Chieveley Camp. Between five and six hundred of them had fallen—a loss which approximates to that of the Highland Brigade at Magersfontein. The Dublins and the Connaughts were the heaviest sufferers.

But fortunately, their orders to retreat were on the way, and it’s clear that if they hadn’t received them, the regiments would have been uselessly destroyed where they were. It seems that it was Buller himself, who showed extraordinary and relentless energy throughout the day, that ordered them to fall back. As they withdrew, there was no sense of hurry or panic, but officers and men were hopelessly mixed up, and General Hart—whose judgment might sometimes be questioned, but whose calm bravery was commendable—had a tough time reorganizing the impressive brigade that had marched out of Chieveley Camp six hours earlier. Between five and six hundred of them had fallen—a loss similar to that of the Highland Brigade at Magersfontein. The Dublins and the Connaughts suffered the most.

So much for the mishap of the 5th Brigade. It is superfluous to point out that the same old omissions were responsible for the same old results. Why were the men in quarter column when advancing against an unseen foe? Why had no scouts gone forward to be certain of the position of the ford? Where were the clouds of skirmishers which should precede such an advance? The recent examples in the field and the teachings of the text-books were equally set at naught, as they had been, and were to be, so often in this campaign. There may be a science of war in the lecture-rooms at Camberley, but very little of it found its way to the veld. The slogging valour of the private, the careless dash of the regimental officer—these were our military assets—but seldom the care and foresight of our commanders. It is a thankless task to make such comments, but the one great lesson of the war has been that the army is too vital a thing to fall into the hands of a caste, and that it is a national duty for every man to speak fearlessly and freely what he believes to be the truth.

So much for the problems of the 5th Brigade. It's pointless to point out that the same old mistakes led to the same old outcomes. Why were the men in a quarter column while approaching an unseen enemy? Why didn't any scouts go ahead to confirm the location of the ford? Where were the groups of skirmishers that should have led such an advance? The recent lessons on the field and the teachings from the textbooks were just as ignored as they had been, and would continue to be, throughout this campaign. There might be a science of war in the classrooms at Camberley, but very little of it actually made it to the battlefield. The courageous efforts of the soldiers and the reckless bravery of the regimental officer—these were our military strengths—but rarely the careful planning and foresight of our leaders. It's a thankless job to make these observations, but the main takeaway from the war has been that the army is too important to be controlled by a select few, and it’s every man’s responsibility to speak honestly and openly about what he believes to be the truth.

Passing from the misadventure of the 5th Brigade we come as we move from left to right upon the 4th, or Lyttelton's Brigade, which was instructed not to attack itself but to support the attack on either side of it. With the help of the naval guns it did what it could to extricate and cover the retreat of the Irishmen, but it could play no very important part in the action, and its losses were insignificant. On its right in turn Hildyard's English Brigade had developed its attack upon Colenso and the bridge. The regiments under Hildyard's lead were the 2nd West Surrey, the 2nd Devons (whose first battalion was doing so well with the Ladysmith force), the East Surreys, and the West Yorkshires. The enemy had evidently anticipated the main attack on this position, and not only were the trenches upon the other side exceptionally strong, but their artillery converged upon the bridge, at least a dozen heavy pieces, besides a number of quick-firers, bearing upon it. The Devons and the Queens, in open order (an extended line of khaki dots, blending so admirably with the plain that they were hardly visible when they halted), led the attack, being supported by the East Surrey and the West Yorkshires. Advancing under a very heavy fire the brigade experienced much the same ordeal as their comrades of Hart's brigade, which was mitigated by the fact that from the first they preserved their open order in columns of half-companies extended to six paces, and that the river in front of them did not permit that right flank fire which was so fatal to the Irishmen. With a loss of some two hundred men the leading regiments succeeded in reaching Colenso, and the West Surrey, advancing by rushes of fifty yards at a time, had established itself in the station, but a catastrophe had occurred at an earlier hour to the artillery which was supporting it which rendered all further advance impossible. For the reason of this we must follow the fortunes of the next unit upon their right.

Moving on from the troubles of the 5th Brigade, we shift from left to right to the 4th Brigade, or Lyttelton's Brigade, which was ordered not to attack but to support the assaults on either side of it. With help from the naval guns, they did what they could to assist and protect the retreat of the Irishmen, but they couldn't play a significant role in the battle, and their losses were minor. To their right, Hildyard's English Brigade had launched its attack on Colenso and the bridge. The regiments under Hildyard's command were the 2nd West Surrey, the 2nd Devons (whose first battalion was performing well with the Ladysmith force), the East Surreys, and the West Yorkshires. The enemy had clearly expected the main attack on this position; not only were the trenches on the other side exceptionally strong, but their artillery was focused on the bridge, with at least a dozen heavy guns and several quick-firing pieces targeting it. The Devons and the Queens, in an extended line (a series of khaki dots blending so well with the plain that they were hardly visible when they paused), led the attack, backed by the East Surreys and the West Yorkshires. Advancing under very heavy fire, the brigade faced a similar struggle as Hart's brigade, though they managed to maintain their open order in columns of half-companies spaced six paces apart, and the river in front of them prevented the right flank fire that had been so devastating to the Irishmen. Despite losing about two hundred men, the leading regiments reached Colenso, and the West Surrey, moving in increments of fifty yards at a time, had made it into the station, but a disaster had struck earlier for the artillery supporting them, making any further advance impossible. As a result, we need to follow the situation of the next unit to their right.

This consisted of the important body of artillery who had been told off to support the main attack. It comprised two field batteries, the 14th and the 66th, under the command of Colonel Long, and six naval guns (two of 4.7, and four 12-pounders) under Lieutenant Ogilvy of the 'Terrible.' Long has the record of being a most zealous and dashing officer, whose handling of the Egyptian artillery at the battle of the Atbara had much to do with the success of the action. Unfortunately, these barbarian campaigns, in which liberties may be taken with impunity, leave an evil tradition, as the French have found with their Algerians. Our own close formations, our adherence to volley firing, and in this instance the use of our artillery all seem to be legacies of our savage wars. Be the cause what it may, at an early stage of the action Long's guns whirled forwards, outstripped the infantry brigades upon their flanks, left the slow-moving naval guns with their ox-teams behind them, and unlimbered within a thousand yards of the enemy's trenches. From this position he opened fire upon Fort Wylie, which was the centre of that portion of the Boer position which faced him.

This was the key artillery unit assigned to support the main attack. It included two field batteries, the 14th and the 66th, led by Colonel Long, along with six naval guns (two 4.7-inch and four 12-pounders) under Lieutenant Ogilvy of the 'Terrible.' Long is known for being an enthusiastic and daring officer, and his management of the Egyptian artillery during the battle of the Atbara significantly contributed to the success of that battle. Unfortunately, these brutal campaigns, where liberties can often be taken without consequence, foster a harmful tradition, as the French discovered with their Algerian campaigns. Our own tight formations, reliance on volley firing, and in this case, the use of our artillery, all seem to be remnants of our savage wars. Whatever the reason, early in the action, Long's guns raced forward, outpacing the infantry brigades on their sides, leaving the slower naval guns with their ox-teams behind, and positioned themselves within a thousand yards of the enemy's trenches. From this spot, he began firing at Fort Wylie, which was the focal point of the Boer position facing him.

But his two unhappy batteries were destined not to turn the tide of battle, as he had hoped, but rather to furnish the classic example of the helplessness of artillery against modern rifle fire. Not even Mercer's famous description of the effect of a flank fire upon his troop of horse artillery at Waterloo could do justice to the blizzard of lead which broke over the two doomed batteries. The teams fell in heaps, some dead, some mutilated, and mutilating others in their frantic struggles. One driver, crazed with horror, sprang on a leader, cut the traces and tore madly off the field. But a perfect discipline reigned among the vast majority of the gunners, and the words of command and the laying and working of the guns were all as methodical as at Okehampton. Not only was there a most deadly rifle fire, partly from the lines in front and partly from the village of Colenso upon their left flank, but the Boer automatic quick-firers found the range to a nicety, and the little shells were crackling and banging continually over the batteries. Already every gun had its litter of dead around it, but each was still fringed by its own group of furious officers and sweating desperate gunners. Poor Long was down, with a bullet through his arm and another through his liver. 'Abandon be damned! We don't abandon guns!' was his last cry as they dragged him into the shelter of a little donga hard by. Captain Goldie dropped dead. So did Lieutenant Schreiber. Colonel Hunt fell, shot in two places. Officers and men were falling fast. The guns could not be worked, and yet they could not be removed, for every effort to bring up teams from the shelter where the limbers lay ended in the death of the horses. The survivors took refuge from the murderous fire in that small hollow to which Long had been carried, a hundred yards or so from the line of bullet-splashed cannon. One gun on the right was still served by four men who refused to leave it. They seemed to bear charmed lives, these four, as they strained and wrestled with their beloved 15-pounder, amid the spurting sand and the blue wreaths of the bursting shells. Then one gasped and fell against the trail, and his comrade sank beside the wheel with his chin upon his breast. The third threw up his hands and pitched forward upon his face; while the survivor, a grim powder-stained figure, stood at attention looking death in the eyes until he too was struck down. A useless sacrifice, you may say; but while the men who saw them die can tell such a story round the camp fire the example of such deaths as these does more than clang of bugle or roll of drum to stir the warrior spirit of our race.

But his two unfortunate batteries were not meant to change the outcome of the battle, as he had hoped, but instead became a classic example of how powerless artillery was against modern rifle fire. Not even Mercer's famous description of the impact of a flank fire on his horse artillery at Waterloo could capture the storm of bullets that rained down on the two doomed batteries. The teams fell in piles, some dead, some injured, and injuring others in their frantic struggles. One driver, driven mad by fear, jumped onto a lead horse, cut the traces, and raced away from the field. But most of the gunners maintained perfect discipline, and the commands and the operation of the guns were as organized as they had been at Okehampton. There was intense rifle fire, partly from the lines in front and partly from the village of Colenso on their left flank, while the Boer automatic quick-firers had the range down perfectly, and small shells were constantly crackling and exploding over the batteries. Already, each gun had a pile of dead around it, but each was still surrounded by a group of furious officers and sweat-drenched, desperate gunners. Poor Long was down, with a bullet through his arm and another through his liver. "Abandon be damned! We don't abandon guns!" was his last shout as they dragged him into the shelter of a small donga nearby. Captain Goldie fell dead. So did Lieutenant Schreiber. Colonel Hunt was shot in two places. Officers and men were falling quickly. The guns could not be operated, and yet they could not be moved, as every attempt to bring up teams from the shelter where the limbers lay ended in the death of the horses. The survivors took cover from the deadly fire in that small hollow where Long had been taken, about a hundred yards from the bullet-splashed cannons. One gun on the right was still being manned by four men who refused to leave it. They seemed to have charmed lives as they strained and fought with their beloved 15-pounder, surrounded by spurting sand and the blue plumes of bursting shells. Then one gasped and collapsed against the trail, and his comrade sank beside the wheel with his chin on his chest. The third raised his hands and fell forward on his face, while the last, a grim, powder-stained figure, stood at attention, staring down death until he too was struck down. A pointless sacrifice, you might say; but while those who witnessed their deaths can share this story around the campfire, the example of such deaths does more to inspire the warrior spirit of our race than the clang of a bugle or the roll of a drum.

For two hours the little knot of heart-sick humiliated officers and men lay in the precarious shelter of the donga and looked out at the bullet-swept plain and the line of silent guns. Many of them were wounded. Their chief lay among them, still calling out in his delirium for his guns. They had been joined by the gallant Baptie, a brave surgeon, who rode across to the donga amid a murderous fire, and did what he could for the injured men. Now and then a rush was made into the open, sometimes in the hope of firing another round, sometimes to bring a wounded comrade in from the pitiless pelt of the bullets. How fearful was that lead-storm may be gathered from the fact that one gunner was found with sixty-four wounds in his body. Several men dropped in these sorties, and the disheartened survivors settled down once more in the donga.

For two hours, the small group of heartbroken and embarrassed officers and soldiers stayed in the shaky shelter of the donga, staring out at the bullet-riddled plain and the line of silent cannons. Many of them were injured. Their leader lay among them, still calling out in his delirium for his guns. They were joined by the courageous Baptie, a brave surgeon, who rode across to the donga amid heavy gunfire and did what he could for the wounded. Occasionally, they would rush into the open, sometimes hoping to fire another shot, other times to bring in an injured comrade from the relentless hail of bullets. The severity of the gunfire was evident in the fact that one gunner was found with sixty-four wounds on his body. Several men fell during these attempts, and the discouraged survivors settled back down in the donga.

The hope to which they clung was that their guns were not really lost, but that the arrival of infantry would enable them to work them once more. Infantry did at last arrive, but in such small numbers that it made the situation more difficult instead of easing it. Colonel Bullock had brought up two companies of the Devons to join the two companies (A and B) of Scots Fusiliers who had been the original escort of the guns, but such a handful could not turn the tide. They also took refuge in the donga, and waited for better times.

The hope they held onto was that their guns weren’t truly lost, but that the arrival of infantry would allow them to use them again. Infantry eventually arrived, but in such small numbers that it only complicated the situation further. Colonel Bullock had brought up two companies of the Devons to join the two companies (A and B) of Scots Fusiliers who had originally escorted the guns, but such a small group couldn’t change the outcome. They also took shelter in the donga and waited for better days.

In the meanwhile the attention of Generals Buller and Clery had been called to the desperate position of the guns, and they had made their way to that further nullah in the rear where the remaining limber horses and drivers were. This was some distance behind that other donga in which Long, Bullock, and their Devons and gunners were crouching. 'Will any of you volunteer to save the guns?' cried Buller. Corporal Nurse, Gunner Young, and a few others responded. The desperate venture was led by three aides-de-camp of the Generals, Congreve, Schofield, and Roberts, the only son of the famous soldier. Two gun teams were taken down; the horses galloping frantically through an infernal fire, and each team succeeded in getting back with a gun. But the loss was fearful. Roberts was mortally wounded. Congreve has left an account which shows what a modern rifle fire at a thousand yards is like. 'My first bullet went through my left sleeve and made the joint of my elbow bleed, next a clod of earth caught me smack on the right arm, then my horse got one, then my right leg one, then my horse another, and that settled us.' The gallant fellow managed to crawl to the group of castaways in the donga. Roberts insisted on being left where he fell, for fear he should hamper the others.

In the meantime, Generals Buller and Clery were alerted to the dire situation of the guns, and they made their way to the further ravine in the back where the remaining limber horses and drivers were. This was quite a distance behind the other gully where Long, Bullock, and their Devons and gunners were huddled. "Will any of you volunteer to save the guns?" shouted Buller. Corporal Nurse, Gunner Young, and a few others stepped up. The risky mission was led by three aides-de-camp of the Generals: Congreve, Schofield, and Roberts, the only son of the famous soldier. Two gun teams were sent down; the horses dashed through intense gunfire, and each team managed to return with a gun. But the casualties were immense. Roberts was fatally wounded. Congreve wrote an account that shows what modern rifle fire at a thousand yards feels like. "My first bullet went through my left sleeve and made my elbow bleed, then a chunk of earth hit me right on the arm, then my horse got hit, then my right leg, then my horse again, and that was it for us." The brave man was able to crawl to the group of survivors in the gully. Roberts insisted on being left where he fell, fearing he might hinder the others.

In the meanwhile Captain Reed, of the 7th Battery, had arrived with two spare teams of horses, and another determined effort was made under his leadership to save some of the guns. But the fire was too murderous. Two-thirds of his horses and half his men, including himself, were struck down, and General Buller commanded that all further attempts to reach the abandoned batteries should be given up. Both he and General Clery had been slightly wounded, and there were many operations over the whole field of action to engage their attention. But making every allowance for the pressure of many duties and for the confusion and turmoil of a great action, it does seem one of the most inexplicable incidents in British military history that the guns should ever have been permitted to fall into the hands of the enemy. It is evident that if our gunners could not live under the fire of the enemy it would be equally impossible for the enemy to remove the guns under a fire from a couple of battalions of our infantry. There were many regiments which had hardly been engaged, and which could have been advanced for such a purpose. The men of the Mounted Infantry actually volunteered for this work, and none could have been more capable of carrying it out. There was plenty of time also, for the guns were abandoned about eleven and the Boers did not venture to seize them until four. Not only could the guns have been saved, but they might, one would think, have been transformed into an excellent bait for a trap to tempt the Boers out of their trenches. It must have been with fear and trembling that Cherry Emmett and his men first approached them, for how could they believe that such incredible good fortune had come to them? However, the fact, humiliating and inexplicable, is that the guns were so left, that the whole force was withdrawn, and that not only the ten cannon, but also the handful of Devons, with their Colonel, and the Fusiliers were taken prisoners in the donga which had sheltered them all day.

In the meantime, Captain Reed from the 7th Battery arrived with two extra teams of horses, and another serious effort was made under his leadership to save some of the guns. But the fire was too intense. Two-thirds of his horses and half of his men, including himself, were taken down, and General Buller ordered that all further attempts to reach the abandoned batteries be abandoned. Both he and General Clery had been slightly wounded, and there were many operations across the entire battlefield that demanded their attention. However, despite the numerous responsibilities and the chaos of a major battle, it remains one of the most baffling incidents in British military history that the guns were allowed to fall into enemy hands. It's clear that if our gunners couldn't survive under the enemy's fire, it would have equally been impossible for the enemy to move the guns while facing fire from a couple of our infantry battalions. There were many regiments that had barely engaged in the battle, which could have been deployed for such a task. The Mounted Infantry actually volunteered for this job, and they were definitely capable of handling it. There was also plenty of time, as the guns were abandoned around eleven, and the Boers didn't try to take them until four. Not only could the guns have been saved, but one would think they could have been used as bait to lure the Boers out of their trenches. Cherry Emmett and his men must have approached them with a mix of fear and disbelief, wondering how they could possibly have encountered such incredible luck. However, the painful and inexplicable reality is that the guns were left behind, the entire force was withdrawn, and not only the ten cannons were captured, but also the small group of Devons with their Colonel and the Fusiliers were taken prisoner in the donga that had sheltered them all day.

We have now, working from left to right, considered the operations of Hart's Brigade at Bridle Drift, of Lyttelton's Brigade in support, of Hildyard's which attacked Colenso, and of the luckless batteries which were to have helped him. There remain two bodies of troops upon the right, the further consisting of Dundonald's mounted men who were to attack Hlangwane Hill, a fortified Boer position upon the south of the river, while Barton's Brigade was to support it and to connect this attack with the central operations.

We have now, moving from left to right, looked at the actions of Hart's Brigade at Bridle Drift, Lyttelton's Brigade providing support, Hildyard's Brigade which attacked Colenso, and the unfortunate artillery units that were supposed to assist him. Two units of troops remain on the right: one is Dundonald's mounted troops who were set to attack Hlangwane Hill, a fortified Boer position to the south of the river, while Barton's Brigade was there to support them and link this attack to the central operations.

Dundonald's force was entirely too weak for such an operation as the capture of the formidable entrenched hill, and it is probable that the movement was meant rather as a reconnaissance than as an assault. He had not more than a thousand men in all, mostly irregulars, and the position which faced him was precipitous and entrenched, with barbed-wire entanglements and automatic guns. But the gallant colonials were out on their first action, and their fiery courage pushed the attack home. Leaving their horses, they advanced a mile and a half on foot before they came within easy range of the hidden riflemen, and learned the lesson which had been taught to their comrades all along the line, that given approximately equal numbers the attack in the open has no possible chance against the concealed defence, and that the more bravely it is pushed the more heavy is the repulse. The irregulars carried themselves like old soldiers, they did all that mortal man could do, and they retired coolly and slowly with the loss of 130 of the brave troopers. The 7th Field Battery did all that was possible to support the advance and cover the retirement. In no single place, on this day of disaster, did one least gleam of success come to warm the hearts and reward the exertions of our much-enduring men.

Dundonald's force was definitely too weak for an operation like capturing the heavily defended hill, and it's likely that the movement was intended more as a reconnaissance mission than an assault. He had no more than a thousand men in total, mostly irregulars, and the position facing him was steep and fortified, with barbed wire and machine guns. But the brave colonials were out for their first action, and their fiery courage pushed the attack forward. Leaving their horses behind, they advanced a mile and a half on foot before coming within easy range of the hidden riflemen, learning the lesson that had been taught to their comrades all along the line: when the numbers are roughly equal, an attack in the open has no chance against concealed defenses, and the more fiercely it is pushed, the heavier the repulse will be. The irregulars behaved like seasoned soldiers; they did everything they could, and they retreated calmly and slowly, suffering the loss of 130 brave troopers. The 7th Field Battery did everything possible to support the advance and cover the retreat. On that day of disaster, not a single glimmer of success came to lift the spirits or reward the efforts of our long-suffering men.

Of Barton's Brigade there is nothing to be recorded, for they appear neither to have supported the attack upon Hlangwane Hill on the one side nor to have helped to cover the ill-fated guns on the other. Barton was applied to for help by Dundonald, but refused to detach any of his troops. If General Buller's real idea was a reconnaissance in force in order to determine the position and strength of the Boer lines, then of course his brigadiers must have felt a reluctance to entangle their brigades in a battle which was really the result of a misunderstanding. On the other hand, if, as the orders of the day seem to show, a serious engagement was always intended, it is strange that two brigades out of four should have played so insignificant a part. To Barton's Brigade was given the responsibility of seeing that no right flank attack was carried out by the Boers, and this held it back until it was clear that no such attack was contemplated. After that one would have thought that, had the situation been appreciated, at least two battalions might have been spared to cover the abandoned guns with their rifle fire. Two companies of the Scots Fusiliers did share the fortunes of the guns. Two others, and one of the Irish Fusiliers, acted in support, but the brigade as a whole, together with the 1st Royals and the 13th Hussars, might as well have been at Aldershot for any bearing which their work had upon the fortunes of the day.

Of Barton's Brigade, there's nothing significant to report, as they seem to have neither supported the attack on Hlangwane Hill nor helped cover the ill-fated guns. Dundonald asked Barton for assistance, but he declined to send any of his troops. If General Buller's real intention was to gather intelligence to assess the position and strength of the Boer lines, it makes sense that his brigadiers hesitated to get their units involved in a battle that was, in fact, a misunderstanding. However, if, as the orders of the day suggest, a serious engagement was always the plan, it’s odd that two out of four brigades played such a minor role. Barton's Brigade was tasked with ensuring that there was no right flank attack from the Boers, which delayed them until it was clear there was no such threat. After that, one would think that if the situation had been understood, at least two battalions could have been used to cover the abandoned guns with rifle fire. Two companies of the Scots Fusiliers were involved with the guns, while two others and one of the Irish Fusiliers provided support. However, the brigade as a whole, along with the 1st Royals and the 13th Hussars, might as well have been in Aldershot for all the impact their efforts had on the outcome of the day.

And so the first attempt at the relief of Ladysmith came to an end. At twelve o'clock all the troops upon the ground were retreating for the camp. There was nothing in the shape of rout or panic, and the withdrawal was as orderly as the advance; but the fact remained that we had just 1200 men in killed, wounded, and missing, and had gained absolutely nothing. We had not even the satisfaction of knowing that we had inflicted as well as endured punishment, for the enemy remained throughout the day so cleverly concealed that it is doubtful whether more than a hundred casualties occurred in their ranks. Once more it was shown how weak an arm is artillery against an enemy who lies in shelter.

And so the first attempt to relieve Ladysmith came to an end. At noon, all the troops on the ground were retreating to the camp. There was no sign of chaos or panic, and the withdrawal was as organized as the advance; however, the reality was that we had just 1,200 men dead, wounded, or missing, and gained absolutely nothing. We didn’t even have the satisfaction of knowing that we had dealt as much damage as we took, as the enemy remained cleverly hidden throughout the day, making it doubtful that more than a hundred casualties occurred in their ranks. Once again, it was shown how ineffective artillery is against an enemy that is sheltered.

Our wounded fortunately bore a high proportion to our killed, as they always will do when it is rifle fire rather than shell fire which is effective. Roughly we had 150 killed and about 720 wounded. A more humiliating item is the 250 or so who were missing. These men were the gunners, the Devons, and the Scots Fusiliers, who were taken in the donga together with small bodies from the Connaughts, the Dublins, and other regiments who, having found some shelter, were unable to leave it, and clung on until the retirement of their regiments left them in a hopeless position. Some of these small knots of men were allowed to retire in the evening by the Boers, who seemed by no means anxious to increase the number of their prisoners. Colonel Thackeray, of the Inniskilling Fusiliers, found himself with a handful of his men surrounded by the enemy, but owing to their good humour and his own tact he succeeded in withdrawing them in safety. The losses fell chiefly on Hart's Brigade, Hildyard's Brigade, and the colonial irregulars, who bore off the honours of the fight.

Our wounded fortunately outnumbered our deaths, which usually happens when rifle fire is more effective than shell fire. In total, we had about 150 killed and around 720 wounded. A more embarrassing detail is the roughly 250 men who went missing. These were the gunners, the Devons, and the Scots Fusiliers, who were captured in the donga along with small groups from the Connaughts, the Dublins, and other regiments that found some cover but couldn't leave and waited until their units' retreat put them in a hopeless situation. Some of these small groups were allowed to retreat in the evening by the Boers, who didn't seem too keen on increasing their number of prisoners. Colonel Thackeray of the Inniskilling Fusiliers had just a few of his men surrounded by the enemy, but thanks to their good spirits and his own skill, he managed to get them out safely. The losses were mainly felt by Hart's Brigade, Hildyard's Brigade, and the colonial irregulars, who earned the accolades of the battle.

In his official report General Buller states that were it not for the action of Colonel Long and the subsequent disaster to the artillery he thought that the battle might have been a successful one. This is a hard saying, and throws perhaps too much responsibility upon the gallant but unfortunate gunner. There have been occasions in the war when greater dash upon the part of our artillery might have changed the fate of the day, and it is bad policy to be too severe upon the man who has taken a risk and failed. The whole operation, with its advance over the open against a concealed enemy with a river in his front, was so absolutely desperate that Long may have seen that only desperate measures could save the situation. To bring guns into action in front of the infantry without having clearly defined the position of the opposing infantry must always remain one of the most hazardous ventures of war. 'It would certainly be mere folly,' says Prince Kraft, 'to advance artillery to within 600 or 800 yards of a position held by infantry unless the latter were under the fire of infantry from an even shorter range.' This 'mere folly' is exactly what Colonel Long did, but it must be remembered in extenuation that he shared with others the idea that the Boers were up on the hills, and had no inkling that their front trenches were down at the river. With the imperfect means at his disposal he did such scouting as he could, and if his fiery and impetuous spirit led him into a position which cost him so dearly it is certainly more easy for the critic to extenuate his fault than that subsequent one which allowed the abandoned guns to fall into the hands of the enemy. Nor is there any evidence that the loss of these guns did seriously affect the fate of the action, for at those other parts of the field where the infantry had the full and unceasing support of the artillery the result was not more favourable than at the centre.

In his official report, General Buller states that if it weren't for Colonel Long's actions and the later disaster to the artillery, he believed the battle could have been successful. This is a tough statement and perhaps places too much blame on the brave but unfortunate gunner. There have been times during the war when a bolder move by our artillery might have changed the outcome of the day, and it's unwise to be too harsh on someone who took a risk and failed. The entire operation, charging across open ground against a hidden enemy with a river in front, was incredibly reckless, and Long may have realized that only bold actions could turn the situation around. Deploying guns in front of infantry without clearly identifying the position of the opposing forces is always one of the most dangerous moves in warfare. "It would certainly be pure folly," says Prince Kraft, "to advance artillery to within 600 or 800 yards of a position held by infantry unless the latter were under fire from infantry at an even closer range." This "pure folly" is exactly what Colonel Long did, but it's important to remember that he, like others, thought the Boers were on the hills and had no idea their front trenches were by the river. With the limited resources he had, he conducted whatever scouting he could, and while his passionate and impulsive nature may have led him into a position that cost him dearly, it's certainly easier for critics to excuse his mistake than the later one that allowed the abandoned guns to be captured by the enemy. There is also no evidence that losing these guns significantly impacted the battle's outcome, as at other parts of the field where infantry received consistent support from artillery, the results were no better than at the center.

So much for Colenso. A more unsatisfactory and in some ways inexplicable action is not to be found in the range of British military history. And the fuller the light which has been poured upon it, the more extraordinary does the battle appear. There are a preface and a sequel to the action which have put a severe strain upon the charity which the British public has always shown that it is prepared to extend to a defeated General. The preface is that General Buller sent word to General White that he proposed to attack upon the 17th, while the actual attack was delivered upon the 15th, so that the garrison was not prepared to make that demonstration which might have prevented the besiegers from sending important reinforcements to Botha, had he needed them. The sequel is more serious. Losing all heart at his defeat, General Buller, although he had been officially informed that White had provisions for seventy days, sent a heliogram advising the surrender of the garrison. White's first reply, which deserves to live with the anecdote of Nelson's telescope at his blind eye, was to the effect that he believed the enemy had been tampering with Buller's messages. To this Buller despatched an amended message, which with Sir George White's reply, is here appended:

So much for Colenso. You won't find a more frustrating and, in some ways, baffling action in British military history. The more we shine a light on it, the more bizarre the battle seems. There's a backstory and an aftermath to this event that have really tested the patience the British public has always shown to a defeated General. The backstory is that General Buller informed General White he intended to attack on the 17th, yet the actual attack happened on the 15th, leaving the garrison unprepared to put up a show that could have stopped the besiegers from sending crucial reinforcements to Botha, if he had needed them. The aftermath is even more serious. After losing confidence due to his defeat, General Buller, despite being officially told that White had provisions for seventy days, sent a message suggesting the garrison should surrender. White's first response, which deserves to be remembered alongside the story of Nelson's telescope at his blind eye, was that he suspected the enemy had been interfering with Buller's messages. In response, Buller sent a corrected message, which along with Sir George White's reply, is included here:

Message of December 16th, as altered by that of December 17th, 1899.

Message of December 16th, as changed by that of December 17th, 1899.

'I tried Colenso yesterday, but failed; the enemy is too strong for my force except with siege operations, and these will take one full month to prepare. Can you last so long?

'I tried Colenso yesterday, but I couldn't do it; the enemy is too strong for my troops unless we go with a siege, and that will take a full month to get ready. Can you hold out that long?'

'How many days can you hold out? I suggest you firing away as much ammunition as you can, and making best terms you can. I can remain here if you have alternative suggestion, but unaided I cannot break in. I find my infantry cannot fight more than ten miles from camp, and then only if water can be got, and it is scarce here. Whatever happens, recollect to burn your cipher, decipher, and code books, and all deciphered messages.'

'How many days can you last? I suggest you fire as much ammunition as you can and negotiate the best terms possible. I can stay here if you have another suggestion, but I can't break in alone. I find my infantry can only fight within ten miles of camp, and only if there’s access to water, which is hard to come by here. Whatever happens, remember to burn your cipher, decipher and code books, and all deciphered messages.'

From Sir G. White to Sir R. Buller. December 16th, 1899.

From Sir G. White to Sir R. Buller. December 16, 1899.

'Yours of today received and understood. My suggestion is that you take up strongest available position that will enable you to keep touch of the enemy and harass him constantly with artillery fire, and in other ways as much as possible. I can make food last for much longer than a month, and will not think of making terms till I am forced to. You may have hit enemy harder than you think. All our native spies report that your artillery fire made considerable impression on enemy. Have your losses been very heavy? If you lose touch of enemy, it will immensely increase his opportunities of crushing me, and have worst effect elsewhere. While you are in touch with him and in communication with me, he has both of our forces to reckon with. Make every effort to get reinforcements as early as possible, including India, and enlist every man in both colonies who will serve and can ride. Things may look brighter. The loss of 12,000 men here would be a heavy blow to England. We must not yet think of it. I fear I could not cut my way to you. Enteric fever is increasing alarmingly here. There are now 180 cases, all within last month. Answer fully. I am keeping everything secret for the present till I know your plans.'

Your message today has been received and understood. I suggest you take the strongest position available that will allow you to keep an eye on the enemy and harass them constantly with artillery fire, as well as in other ways as much as you can. I can make our supplies last much longer than a month, and I won’t consider making any terms until I have no other choice. You may have hit the enemy harder than you realize. All our local spies report that your artillery fire has made a significant impact on the enemy. Have your losses been very heavy? If you lose track of the enemy, it will greatly increase their chances of defeating me, which would have a terrible effect elsewhere. As long as you stay in contact with them and are communicating with me, they have to deal with both of our forces. Make every effort to get reinforcements as soon as possible, including from India, and enlist every man in both colonies who is willing to serve and can ride. Things might look a bit brighter. Losing 12,000 men here would be a serious blow to England. We mustn’t start thinking about that yet. I’m afraid I wouldn’t be able to cut my way to you. Enteric fever is rising alarmingly here. There are now 180 cases, all reported in the last month. Please respond in detail. I’m keeping everything confidential for now until I know your plans.

Much allowance is to be made for a man who is staggering under the mental shock of defeat and the physical exertions which Buller had endured. That the Government made such allowance is clear from the fact that he was not instantly recalled. And yet the cold facts are that we have a British General, at the head of 25,000 men, recommending another General, at the head of 12,000 men only twelve miles off, to lay down his arms to an army which was certainly very inferior in numbers to the total British force; and this because he had once been defeated, although he knew that there was still time for the whole resources of the Empire to be poured into Natal in order to prevent so shocking a disaster. Such is a plain statement of the advice which Buller gave and which White rejected. For the instant the fate not only of South Africa but even, as I believe, of the Empire hung upon the decision of the old soldier in Ladysmith, who had to resist the proposals of his own General as sternly as the attacks of the enemy. He who sorely needed help and encouragement became, as his message shows, the helper and the encourager. It was a tremendous test, and Sir George White came through it with a staunchness and a loyalty which saved us not only from overwhelming present disaster, but from a hideous memory which must have haunted British military annals for centuries to come.

A lot of understanding needs to be given to a man dealing with the mental shock of defeat and the physical challenges that Buller faced. It's clear that the Government recognized this by not recalling him right away. However, the stark reality is that we have a British General leading 25,000 troops, recommending that another General, with only 12,000 soldiers just twelve miles away, surrender to an army that was definitely smaller than the total British force. This recommendation came because of a previous defeat, even though he knew there was still time for the full resources of the Empire to be sent to Natal to avert such a shocking disaster. This is a straightforward account of the advice Buller gave and which White turned down. At that moment, the fate not just of South Africa, but possibly of the Empire itself, rested on the decision of the old soldier in Ladysmith, who had to resist the suggestions of his own General just as firmly as he did the enemy's attacks. He, who desperately needed support and motivation, became, as his message indicates, the one providing support and encouragement. It was an incredible challenge, and Sir George White emerged from it with a steadfastness and loyalty that spared us not only from immediate disaster but from a terrible memory that could have haunted British military history for centuries.





CHAPTER 12. THE DARK HOUR.

The week which extended from December 10th to December 17th, 1899, was the blackest one known during our generation, and the most disastrous for British arms during the century. We had in the short space of seven days lost, beyond all extenuation or excuse, three separate actions. No single defeat was of vital importance in itself, but the cumulative effect, occurring as they did to each of the main British forces in South Africa, was very great. The total loss amounted to about three thousand men and twelve guns, while the indirect effects in the way of loss of prestige to ourselves and increased confidence and more numerous recruits to our enemy were incalculable.

The week from December 10th to December 17th, 1899, was the darkest one we’ve experienced in our lifetime, and the most disastrous for British forces in the century. In just seven days, we lost three separate battles, and there were no excuses or justifications for these losses. Each defeat wasn’t critical on its own, but the overall impact was significant, especially since they happened to each of the main British forces in South Africa. The total losses were around three thousand men and twelve guns, and the indirect consequences, such as the damage to our prestige and the boost in confidence and recruitment for our enemies, were immeasurable.

It is singular to glance at the extracts from the European press at that time and to observe the delight and foolish exultation with which our reverses were received. That this should occur in the French journals is not unnatural, since our history has been largely a contest with that Power, and we can regard with complacency an enmity which is the tribute to our success. Russia, too, as the least progressive of European States, has a natural antagonism of thought, if not of interests, to the Power which stands most prominently for individual freedom and liberal institutions. The same poor excuse may be made for the organs of the Vatican. But what are we to say of the insensate railing of Germany, a country whose ally we have been for centuries? In the days of Marlborough, in the darkest hours of Frederick the Great, in the great world struggle of Napoleon, we have been the brothers-in-arms of these people. So with the Austrians also. If both these countries were not finally swept from the map by Napoleon, it is largely to British subsidies and British tenacity that they owe it. And yet these are the folk who turned most bitterly against us at the only time in modern history when we had a chance of distinguishing our friends from our foes. Never again, I trust, on any pretext will a British guinea be spent or a British soldier or sailor shed his blood for such allies. The political lesson of this writer has been that we should make ourselves strong within the empire, and let all outside it, save only our kinsmen of America, go their own way and meet their own fate without let or hindrance from us. It is amazing to find that even the Americans could understand the stock from which they are themselves sprung so little that such papers as the 'New York Herald' should imagine that our defeat at Colenso was a good opportunity for us to terminate the war. The other leading American journals, however, took a more sane view of the situation, and realised that ten years of such defeats would not find the end either of our resolution or of our resources.

It’s striking to look at the articles from the European press during that time and see the joy and foolish celebration with which our setbacks were received. It's not surprising that the French newspapers reacted this way, as our history has been mostly a struggle against that nation, and we can accept an animosity that is a sign of our success. Russia, being the least progressive of European countries, naturally opposes the Power that represents individual freedom and liberal institutions, even if it's not directly in their interests. The same weak justification can be made for the Vatican's publications. But what can we say about the irrational criticism from Germany, a country we have been allies with for centuries? During Marlborough's time, in the darkest days of Frederick the Great, and in the major conflict against Napoleon, we have been comrades with these people. The same goes for the Austrians. If both these nations were not completely wiped off the map by Napoleon, they owe it largely to British financial support and our determination. And yet, these are the very people who turned most fiercely against us at the one moment in modern history when we could distinguish our friends from our enemies. I hope that never again, for any reason, will a British guinea be spent or a British soldier or sailor spill their blood for such allies. The lesson from this writer is that we should strengthen ourselves within the empire and let everyone outside it, except for our American kin, go their own way and face their own fates without interference from us. It’s astonishing that even Americans understand so little about their own heritage that newspapers like the 'New York Herald' thought our defeat at Colenso was a good chance for us to end the war. However, other leading American publications had a more reasonable perspective on the situation and recognized that ten years of such defeats wouldn’t bring an end to either our determination or our resources.

In the British Islands and in the empire at large our misfortunes were met by a sombre but unalterable determination to carry the war to a successful conclusion and to spare no sacrifices which could lead to that end. Amid the humiliation of our reverses there was a certain undercurrent of satisfaction that the deeds of our foemen should at least have made the contention that the strong was wantonly attacking the weak an absurd one. Under the stimulus of defeat the opposition to the war sensibly decreased. It had become too absurd even for the most unreasonable platform orator to contend that a struggle had been forced upon the Boers when every fresh detail showed how thoroughly they had prepared for such a contingency and how much we had to make up. Many who had opposed the war simply on that sporting instinct which backs the smaller against the larger began to realise that what with the geographical position of these people, what with the nature of their country, and what with the mobility, number, and hardihood of their forces, we had undertaken a task which would necessitate such a military effort as we had never before been called upon to make. When Kipling at the dawn of the war had sung of 'fifty thousand horse and foot going to Table Bay,' the statement had seemed extreme. Now it was growing upon the public mind that four times this number would not be an excessive estimate. But the nation rose grandly to the effort. Their only fear, often and loudly expressed, was that Parliament would deal too tamely with the situation and fail to demand sufficient sacrifices. Such was the wave of feeling over the country that it was impossible to hold a peace meeting anywhere without a certainty of riot. The only London daily which had opposed the war, though very ably edited, was overborne by the general sentiment and compelled to change its line. In the provinces also opposition was almost silent, and the great colonies were even more unanimous than the mother country. Misfortune had solidified us where success might have caused a sentimental opposition.

In the British Isles and throughout the empire, our setbacks were met with a serious yet unwavering determination to see the war through to a successful end, sparing no sacrifices to achieve that goal. Despite the embarrassment of our defeats, there was a certain satisfaction that our enemies' actions made the argument of the strong attacking the weak completely ridiculous. After experiencing defeat, opposition to the war noticeably decreased. It had become too silly, even for the most unreasonable speakers, to claim that the Boers had been forced into a conflict when every new detail showed how well they had prepared for this very situation and how much we had to catch up on. Many who had opposed the war purely out of habit, siding with the underdog, began to realize that given the geographical position of the Boers, the nature of their land, and the mobility, strength, and toughness of their forces, we had taken on a challenge that would require a military effort like none we had faced before. When Kipling at the start of the war sang about 'fifty thousand horse and foot heading to Table Bay,' it had seemed like an exaggeration. Now, people were starting to believe that four times that number wouldn't be an overestimate. Nonetheless, the nation rose magnificently to the challenge. Their main concern, frequently voiced, was that Parliament might respond too leniently to the situation and fail to demand enough sacrifices. The mood across the country was such that it was impossible to hold a peace meeting anywhere without the risk of riots. The only daily newspaper in London that had opposed the war, despite being well-edited, was overwhelmed by prevailing sentiment and forced to change its position. In the provinces, opposition was nearly silent, and the great colonies were even more united than the mother country. Misfortune had unified us where success might have led to sentimental opposition.

On the whole, the energetic mood of the nation was reflected by the decided measures of the Government. Before the deep-sea cables had told us the lists of our dead, steps had been taken to prove to the world how great were our latent resources and how determined our spirit. On December 18th, two days after Colenso, the following provisions were made for carrying on the campaign.

On the whole, the energetic mood of the country was shown by the strong actions of the Government. Before the deep-sea cables informed us of our casualties, measures had been implemented to demonstrate our vast resources and resilient spirit. On December 18th, two days after Colenso, the following plans were established to continue the campaign.

1. That as General Buller's hands were full in Natal the supervision and direction of the whole campaign should be placed in the hands of Lord Roberts, with Lord Kitchener as his chief of staff. Thus the famous old soldier and the famous young one were called together to the assistance of the country.

1. Since General Buller was busy in Natal, the overall supervision and direction of the entire campaign should be entrusted to Lord Roberts, with Lord Kitchener as his chief of staff. This way, the renowned old soldier and the celebrated young one came together to support the country.

2. That all the remaining army reserves should be called out.

2. That all the remaining army reserves should be activated.

3. That the 7th Division (10,000 men) should be despatched to Africa, and that an 8th Division should be formed ready for service.

3. That the 7th Division (10,000 soldiers) should be sent to Africa, and that an 8th Division should be created, ready for duty.

4. That considerable artillery reinforcements, including a howitzer brigade, should go out.

4. That significant artillery reinforcements, including a howitzer brigade, should be sent out.

5. That eleven Militia battalions be sent abroad.

5. That eleven militia battalions be deployed overseas.

6. That a strong contingent of Volunteers be sent out.

6. That a solid group of Volunteers be sent out.

7. That a Yeomanry mounted force be despatched.

7. That a mounted militia force be sent out.

8. That mounted corps be raised at the discretion of the Commander-in-Chief in South Africa.

8. That cavalry units be created at the discretion of the Commander-in-Chief in South Africa.

9. That the patriotic offers of further contingents from the colonies be gratefully accepted.

9. That we gratefully accept the patriotic offers of additional troops from the colonies.

By these measures it was calculated that from seventy to a hundred thousand men would be added to our South African armies, the numbers of which were already not short of a hundred thousand.

By these measures, it was estimated that an additional seventy to a hundred thousand men would join our South African armies, which already numbered over a hundred thousand.

It is one thing, however, to draw up paper reinforcements, and it is another, in a free country where no compulsion would be tolerated, to turn these plans into actual regiments and squadrons. But if there were any who doubted that this ancient nation still glowed with the spirit of its youth his fears must soon have passed away. For this far-distant war, a war of the unseen foe and of the murderous ambuscade, there were so many volunteers that the authorities were embarrassed by their numbers and their pertinacity. It was a stimulating sight to see those long queues of top-hatted, frock-coated young men who waited their turn for the orderly room with as much desperate anxiety as if hard fare, a veld bed, and Boer bullets were all that life had that was worth the holding. Especially the Imperial Yeomanry, a corps of riders and shots, appealed to the sporting instincts of our race. Many could ride and not shoot, many could shoot and not ride, more candidates were rejected than were accepted, and yet in a very short time eight thousand men from every class were wearing the grey coats and bandoliers. This singular and formidable force was drawn from every part of England and Scotland, with a contingent of hard-riding Irish fox-hunters. Noblemen and grooms rode knee to knee in the ranks, and the officers included many well-known country gentlemen and masters of hounds. Well horsed and well armed, a better force for the work in hand could not be imagined. So high did the patriotism run that corps were formed in which the men not only found their own equipment but contributed their pay to the war fund. Many young men about town justified their existence for the first time. In a single club, which is peculiarly consecrated to the jeunesse doree, three hundred members rode to the wars.

It’s one thing to create plans on paper, but it’s another to turn those plans into actual regiments and squadrons in a free country where no one would tolerate force. However, anyone who doubted that this ancient nation was still filled with youthful spirit must have quickly changed their mind. For this distant war, a battle against an unseen enemy and brutal ambushes, there were so many volunteers that the authorities were overwhelmed by their numbers and determination. It was an inspiring sight to see those long lines of young men in top hats and frock coats waiting to enter the recruitment office with as much anxiety as if they were facing tough conditions, makeshift beds, and enemy fire. The Imperial Yeomanry, a group of horse riders and marksmen, particularly appealed to our competitive nature. Many could ride but not shoot, while others could shoot but not ride; more candidates were turned away than accepted, yet in no time, eight thousand men from all walks of life donned the grey coats and bandoliers. This unique and impressive force came from all over England and Scotland, along with a group of hard-riding Irish fox hunters. Nobles and grooms stood side by side in the ranks, and the officers included many well-known country gentlemen and masters of hounds. Well-equipped and well-armed, you couldn't imagine a better force for the task at hand. Patriotism was so strong that units were formed where members not only provided their own gear but also donated their pay to the war fund. Many young men in the city found purpose for the first time. In one exclusive club, which is particularly favored by the wealthy youth, three hundred members went off to war.

Without waiting for these distant but necessary reinforcements, the Generals in Africa had two divisions to look to, one of which was actually arriving while the other was on the sea. These formed the 5th Division under Sir Charles Warren, and the 6th Division under General Kelly-Kenny. Until these forces should arrive it was obviously best that the three armies should wait, for, unless there should be pressing need of help on the part of the besieged garrisons or imminent prospects of European complications, every week which passed was in our favour. There was therefore a long lull in the war, during which Methuen strengthened his position at Modder River, Gatacre held his own at Sterkstroom, and Buller built up his strength for another attempt at the relief of Ladysmith. The only connected series of operations during that time were those of General French in the neighbourhood of Colesberg, an account of which will be found in their entirety elsewhere. A short narrative may be given here of the doings of each of these forces until the period of inaction came to an end.

Without waiting for these distant but necessary reinforcements, the Generals in Africa had two divisions to rely on, one of which was actually arriving while the other was at sea. These made up the 5th Division under Sir Charles Warren and the 6th Division under General Kelly-Kenny. Until these forces arrived, it was clearly best for the three armies to wait, because unless there was an urgent need for help from the besieged garrisons or a real risk of European complications, every week that passed worked in our favor. Thus, there was a long lull in the war, during which Methuen strengthened his position at Modder River, Gatacre managed to hold his ground at Sterkstroom, and Buller built up his strength for another attempt to relieve Ladysmith. The only coordinated operations during this time were those of General French in the area around Colesberg, and a complete account of that will be found elsewhere. A brief narrative of the activities of each of these forces can be provided here until the period of inaction ended.

Methuen after the repulse at Magersfontein had fallen back upon the lines of Modder River, and had fortified them in such a way that he felt himself secure against assault. Cronje, on the other hand, had extended his position both to the right and to the left, and had strengthened the works which we had already found so formidable. In this way a condition of inaction was established which was really very much to our advantage, since Methuen retained his communications by rail, while all supplies to Cronje had to come a hundred miles by road. The British troops, and especially the Highland Brigade, were badly in need of a rest after the very severe ordeal which they had undergone. General Hector Macdonald, whose military record had earned the soldierly name of 'Fighting Mac,' was sent for from India to take the place of the ill-fated Wauchope. Pending his arrival and that of reinforcements, Methuen remained quiet, and the Boers fortunately followed his example. From over the northern horizon those silver flashes of light told that Kimberley was dauntless in the present and hopeful of the future. On January 1st the British post of Kuruman fell, by which twelve officers and 120 police were captured. The town was isolated, and its capture could have no effect upon the general operations, but it is remarkable as the only capture of a fortified post up to this point made by the Boers.

Methuen, after being pushed back at Magersfontein, had retreated to the Modder River lines and fortified them in a way that made him feel secure from attack. On the other hand, Cronje had expanded his position both to the right and left, strengthening the defenses that we had already found quite challenging. This created a situation of inaction that really worked to our advantage, since Methuen kept his rail communications while all of Cronje's supplies had to arrive by road over a hundred miles. The British troops, especially the Highland Brigade, desperately needed rest after the intense ordeal they had faced. General Hector Macdonald, known as 'Fighting Mac' for his military achievements, was called from India to replace the unfortunate Wauchope. While waiting for his arrival and the reinforcements, Methuen stayed put, and luckily, the Boers did the same. From over the northern horizon, those silver flashes of light showed that Kimberley remained fearless in the present and hopeful about the future. On January 1st, the British post of Kuruman fell, resulting in the capture of twelve officers and 120 police. The town became isolated, and its capture didn't affect the overall operations, but it stands out as the only fortified post captured by the Boers up to that point.

The monotony of the long wait was broken by one dashing raid carried out by a detachment from Methuen's line of communications. This force consisted of 200 Queenslanders, 100 Canadians (Toronto Company), 40 mounted Munster Fusiliers, a New South Wales Ambulance, and 200 of the Duke of Cornwall's Light Infantry with one horse battery. This singular force, so small in numbers and yet raked from the ends of the earth, was under the command of Colonel Pilcher. Moving out suddenly and rapidly from Belmont, it struck at the extreme right of the Boer line, which consisted of a laager occupied by the colonial rebels of that part of the country. Nothing could exceed the enthusiasm of the colonists at the prospect of action. 'At last!' was the cry which went up from the Canadians when they were ordered to advance. The result was an absolute success. The rebels broke and fled, their camp was taken, and forty of them fell into our hands. Our own loss was slight, three killed and a few wounded. The flying column occupied the town of Douglas and hoisted the British flag there; but it was decided that the time had not yet come when it could be held, and the force fell back upon Belmont. The rebel prisoners were sent down to Cape Town for trial. The movement was covered by the advance of a force under Babington from Methuen's force. This detachment, consisting of the 9th and 12th Lancers, with some mounted infantry and G troop of Horse Artillery, prevented any interference with Pilcher's force from the north. It is worthy of record that though the two bodies of troops were operating at a distance of thirty miles, they succeeded in preserving a telephonic connection, seventeen minutes being the average time taken over question and reply.

The monotony of the long wait was shattered by a daring raid carried out by a unit from Methuen's line of communications. This group included 200 Queenslanders, 100 Canadians (Toronto Company), 40 mounted Munster Fusiliers, a New South Wales Ambulance, and 200 soldiers from the Duke of Cornwall's Light Infantry with one horse battery. This unique force, though small in numbers and gathered from all corners, was led by Colonel Pilcher. They moved out quickly and unexpectedly from Belmont, targeting the far right of the Boer line, which consisted of a laager occupied by local rebels. The enthusiasm of the colonists at the chance for action was overwhelming. "Finally!" was the shout that erupted from the Canadians when they received the order to advance. The result was a complete success. The rebels broke and ran, their camp was captured, and forty of them were taken prisoner. Our own losses were minimal, with three killed and a few wounded. The mobile unit took control of the town of Douglas and raised the British flag there, but it was decided that they weren’t able to hold it just yet, so the force retreated to Belmont. The captured rebels were sent to Cape Town for trial. The movement was supported by another group under Babington from Methuen's force. This unit, made up of the 9th and 12th Lancers, some mounted infantry, and G troop of Horse Artillery, ensured that Pilcher's force was not disturbed from the north. It's worth noting that even though the two units were operating thirty miles apart, they managed to maintain a phone connection, with an average response time of seventeen minutes for questions and replies.

Encouraged by this small success, Methuen's cavalry on January 9th made another raid over the Free State border, which is remarkable for the fact that, save in the case of Colonel Plumer's Rhodesian Force, it was the first time that the enemy's frontier had been violated. The expedition under Babington consisted of the same regiments and the same battery which had covered Pilcher's advance. The line taken was a south-easterly one, so as to get far round the left flank of the Boer position. With the aid of a party of the Victorian Mounted Rifles a considerable tract of country was overrun, and some farmhouses destroyed. The latter extreme measure may have been taken as a warning to the Boers that such depredations as they had carried out in parts of Natal could not pass with impunity, but both the policy and the humanity of such a course appear to be open to question, and there was some cause for the remonstrance which President Kruger shortly after addressed to us upon the subject. The expedition returned to Modder Camp at the end of two days without having seen the enemy. Save for one or two similar cavalry reconnaissances, an occasional interchange of long-range shells, a little sniping, and one or two false alarms at night, which broke the whole front of Magersfontein into yellow lines of angry light, nothing happened to Methuen's force which is worthy of record up to the time of that movement of General Hector Macdonald to Koodoosberg which may be considered in connection with Lord Roberts's decisive operations, of which it was really a part.

Encouraged by this small success, Methuen's cavalry made another raid over the Free State border on January 9th. This was notable because, except for Colonel Plumer's Rhodesian Force, it was the first time the enemy's frontier had been crossed. The expedition led by Babington consisted of the same regiments and battery that had supported Pilcher's advance. They took a southeast route to get around the left flank of the Boer position. With help from a group of the Victorian Mounted Rifles, a significant area was overrun, and some farmhouses were destroyed. This extreme action might have been intended as a warning to the Boers that their raids in parts of Natal would not go unpunished, but both the rationale and humanity of this approach are questionable, and President Krur's subsequent protest on the matter had some merit. The expedition returned to Modder Camp after two days without encountering the enemy. Aside from a few similar cavalry recon missions, occasional long-range shell exchanges, some sniping, and a couple of false alarms at night that lit up the entire front of Magersfontein, nothing significant happened to Methuen's force until General Hector Macdonald moved to Koodoosberg, which is related to Lord Roberts's decisive operations, of which this was really a part.

The doings of General Gatacre's force during the long interval which passed between his disaster at Stormberg and the final general advance may be rapidly chronicled. Although nominally in command of a division, Gatacre's troops were continually drafted off to east and to west, so that it was seldom that he had more than a brigade under his orders. During the weeks of waiting, his force consisted of three field batteries, the 74th, 77th, and 79th, some mounted police and irregular horse, the remains of the Royal Irish Rifles and the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers, the 1st Royal Scots, the Derbyshire regiment, and the Berkshires, the whole amounting to about 5500 men, who had to hold the whole district from Sterkstroom to East London on the coast, with a victorious enemy in front and a disaffected population around. Under these circumstances he could not attempt to do more than to hold his ground at Sterkstroom, and this he did unflinchingly until the line of the Boer defence broke down. Scouting and raiding expeditions, chiefly organised by Captain De Montmorency—whose early death cut short the career of one who possessed every quality of a partisan leader—broke the monotony of inaction. During the week which ended the year a succession of small skirmishes, of which the town of Dordrecht was the centre, exercised the troops in irregular warfare.

The activities of General Gatacre's force during the long period between his defeat at Stormberg and the final overall advance can be quickly summarized. Although he was officially in charge of a division, Gatacre's troops were frequently reassigned to the east and west, so he rarely had more than a brigade under his command. During the weeks of waiting, his force included three field batteries, the 74th, 77th, and 79th, some mounted police and irregular cavalry, what was left of the Royal Irish Rifles, the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers, the 1st Royal Scots, the Derbyshire Regiment, and the Berkshires, totaling about 5,500 men who had to secure the entire area from Sterkstroom to East London on the coast, facing a victorious enemy in front and a discontented population surrounding them. Given these circumstances, he could only focus on holding his position at Sterkstroom, which he did steadfastly until the Boer defense line collapsed. Scouting and raiding missions, mainly organized by Captain De Montmorency—whose early death prematurely ended the career of a man with all the qualities of a great partisan leader—helped break the monotony of inaction. During the final week of the year, a series of small skirmishes centered around the town of Dordrecht provided the troops with experience in irregular warfare.

On January 3rd the Boer forces advanced and attacked the camp of the Cape Mounted Police, which was some eight miles in advance of Gatacre's main position. The movement, however, was a half-hearted one, and was beaten off with small loss upon their part and less upon ours. From then onwards no movement of importance took place in Gatacre's column until the general advance along the whole line had cleared his difficulties from in front of him.

On January 3rd, the Boer forces moved forward and attacked the camp of the Cape Mounted Police, which was about eight miles ahead of Gatacre's main position. However, the attack was somewhat half-hearted, and they were driven back with minimal losses on their side and even fewer on ours. After that, there were no significant movements in Gatacre's column until the overall advance along the entire line resolved his challenges ahead.

In the meantime General Buller had also been playing a waiting game, and, secure in the knowledge that Ladysmith could still hold out, he had been building up his strength for a second attempt to relieve the hard-pressed and much-enduring garrison. After the repulse at Colenso, Hildyard's and Barton's brigades had remained at Chieveley with the mounted infantry, the naval guns, and two field batteries. The rest of the force retired to Frere, some miles in the rear. Emboldened by their success, the Boers sent raiding parties over the Tugela on either flank, which were only checked by our patrols being extended from Springfield on the west to Weenen on the east. A few plundered farmhouses and a small list of killed and wounded horsemen on either side were the sole result of these spasmodic and half-hearted operations.

In the meantime, General Buller had also been playing a waiting game, and, confident that Ladysmith could still hold out, he had been building up his strength for a second attempt to relieve the beleaguered and long-suffering garrison. After the setback at Colenso, Hildyard's and Barton's brigades stayed at Chieveley along with the mounted infantry, the naval guns, and two field batteries. The rest of the force fell back to Frere, several miles behind. Encouraged by their success, the Boers sent out raiding parties across the Tugela on both sides, which were only stopped by our patrols being extended from Springfield in the west to Weenen in the east. A few looted farmhouses and a small number of killed and wounded horsemen on both sides were the only results of these sporadic and halfhearted operations.

Time here as elsewhere was working for the British, for reinforcements were steadily coming to Buller's army. By the new year Sir Charles Warren's division (the 5th) was nearly complete at Estcourt, whence it could reach the front at any moment. This division included the 10th brigade, consisting of the Imperial Light Infantry, 2nd Somersets, the 2nd Dorsets, and the 2nd Middlesex; also the 11th, called the Lancashire Brigade, formed by the 2nd Royal Lancaster, the 2nd Lancashire Fusiliers, the 1st South Lancashire, and the York and Lancaster. The division also included the 14th Hussars and the 19th, 20th, and 28th batteries of Field Artillery. Other batteries of artillery, including one howitzer battery, came to strengthen Buller's force, which amounted now to more than 30,000 men. Immense transport preparations had to be made, however, before the force could have the mobility necessary for a flank march, and it was not until January 11th that General Buller's new plans for advance could be set into action. Before describing what these plans were and the disappointing fate which awaited them, we will return to the story of the siege of Ladysmith, and show how narrowly the relieving force escaped the humiliation—some would say the disgrace—of seeing the town which looked to them for help fall beneath their very eyes. That this did not occur is entirely due to the fierce tenacity and savage endurance of the disease-ridden and half-starved men who held on to the frail lines which covered it.

Time, just like everywhere else, was working in favor of the British, as reinforcements were consistently arriving for Buller's army. By the new year, Sir Charles Warren's division (the 5th) was almost complete at Estcourt, from where it could reach the front lines at any moment. This division included the 10th brigade, made up of the Imperial Light Infantry, 2nd Somersets, the 2nd Dorsets, and the 2nd Middlesex; as well as the 11th, known as the Lancashire Brigade, formed by the 2nd Royal Lancaster, the 2nd Lancashire Fusiliers, the 1st South Lancashire, and the York and Lancaster. The division also had the 14th Hussars and the 19th, 20th, and 28th batteries of Field Artillery. Additional artillery batteries, including a howitzer battery, were brought in to strengthen Buller's force, which now numbered over 30,000 men. However, significant logistical preparations had to be made before the troops could achieve the mobility required for a flank march, and it wasn’t until January 11th that General Buller's new advance plans could be set in motion. Before detailing what these plans were and the disappointing outcome that awaited them, let’s return to the story of the siege of Ladysmith and illustrate how narrowly the relieving force avoided the humiliation—some might say disgrace—of witnessing the town they were meant to help fall right before their eyes. The fact that this did not happen is entirely thanks to the fierce determination and brutal endurance of the disease-ridden and half-starved troops who clung to the fragile lines defending it.





CHAPTER 13. THE SIEGE OF LADYSMITH.

Monday, October 30th, 1899, is not a date which can be looked back to with satisfaction by any Briton. In a scrambling and ill-managed action we had lost our detached left wing almost to a man, while our right had been hustled with no great loss but with some ignominy into Ladysmith. Our guns had been outshot, our infantry checked, and our cavalry paralysed. Eight hundred prisoners may seem no great loss when compared with a Sedan, or even with an Ulm; but such matters are comparative, and the force which laid down its arms at Nicholson's Nek is the largest British force which has surrendered since the days of our great grandfathers, when the egregious Duke of York commanded in Flanders.

Monday, October 30th, 1899, is not a date any Briton can look back on with satisfaction. In a chaotic and poorly managed battle, we lost nearly our entire detached left wing, while our right was pushed back into Ladysmith with little loss but a lot of shame. Our guns were outmatched, our infantry halted, and our cavalry rendered ineffective. Eight hundred prisoners might not seem like a big loss compared to Sedan or even Ulm; however, such comparisons matter, and the force that surrendered at Nicholson's Nek is the largest British force to lay down its arms since our great-grandfathers’ time when the infamous Duke of York was in command in Flanders.

Sir George White was now confronted with the certainty of an investment, an event for which apparently no preparation had been made, since with an open railway behind him so many useless mouths had been permitted to remain in the town. Ladysmith lies in a hollow and is dominated by a ring of hills, some near and some distant. The near ones were in our hands, but no attempt had been made in the early days of the war to fortify and hold Bulwana, Lombard's Kop, and the other positions from which the town might be shelled. Whether these might or might not have been successfully held has been much disputed by military men, the balance of opinion being that Bulwana, at least, which has a water-supply of its own, might have been retained. This question, however, was already academic, as the outer hills were in the hands of the enemy. As it was, the inner line—Caesar's Camp, Wagon Hill, Rifleman's Post, and round to Helpmakaar Hill—made a perimeter of fourteen miles, and the difficulty of retaining so extensive a line goes far to exonerate General White, not only for abandoning the outer hills, but also for retaining his cavalry in the town.

Sir George White was now faced with the reality of an investment, an event for which apparently no preparation had been made, since so many unnecessary people had been allowed to stay in the town with an open railway behind him. Ladysmith is situated in a hollow and is surrounded by a ring of hills, some nearby and some farther away. The nearby ones were under our control, but no effort had been made in the early days of the war to fortify and defend Bulwana, Lombard's Kop, and the other positions that could shell the town. Whether these positions could have been successfully held has been debated by military experts, with most agreeing that Bulwana, at least, which has its own water supply, might have been maintained. However, this issue was already theoretical, as the outer hills were in enemy hands. As it stood, the inner line—Caesar's Camp, Wagon Hill, Rifleman's Post, and extending to Helpmakaar Hill—formed a perimeter of fourteen miles, and the challenge of holding such a long line largely justifies General White, not only for abandoning the outer hills but also for keeping his cavalry in the town.

After the battle of Ladysmith and the retreat of the British, the Boers in their deliberate but effective fashion set about the investment of the town, while the British commander accepted the same as inevitable, content if he could stem and hold back from the colony the threatened flood of invasion. On Tuesday, Wednesday, Thursday, and Friday the commandoes gradually closed in upon the south and east, harassed by some cavalry operations and reconnaissances upon our part, the effect of which was much exaggerated by the press. On Thursday, November 2nd, the last train escaped under a brisk fire, the passengers upon the wrong side of the seats. At 2 P.M. on the same day the telegraph line was cut, and the lonely town settled herself somberly down to the task of holding off the exultant Boers until the day—supposed to be imminent—when the relieving army should appear from among the labyrinth of mountains which lay to the south of them. Some there were who, knowing both the enemy and the mountains, felt a cold chill within their hearts as they asked themselves how an army was to come through, but the greater number, from General to private, trusted implicitly in the valour of their comrades and in the luck of the British Army.

After the battle of Ladysmith and the British retreat, the Boers went about surrounding the town in their careful yet effective way, while the British commander accepted this as unavoidable, hoping only to prevent the looming invasion from reaching the colony. From Tuesday to Friday, the commandos gradually closed in from the south and east, faced with some cavalry operations and reconnaissance on our part, which the press exaggerated significantly. On Thursday, November 2nd, the last train escaped under heavy gunfire, leaving passengers on the wrong side of the seats. At 2 P.M. that day, the telegraph line was cut, and the isolated town resigned itself to the grim task of fending off the triumphant Boers until the day—expected to come soon—when the relief army would emerge from the maze of mountains to the south. Some, aware of both the enemy and the rugged terrain, felt a chill of doubt in their hearts as they wondered how any army could make it through, but the majority, from General to private, placed their trust wholeheartedly in the bravery of their fellow soldiers and in the fortunes of the British Army.

One example of that historical luck was ever before their eyes in the shape of those invaluable naval guns which had arrived so dramatically at the very crisis of the fight, in time to check the monster on Pepworth Hill and to cover the retreat of the army. But for them the besieged must have lain impotent under the muzzles of the huge Creusots. But in spite of the naive claims put forward by the Boers to some special Providence—a process which a friendly German critic described as 'commandeering the Almighty'—it is certain that in a very peculiar degree, in the early months of this war there came again and again a happy chance, or a merciful interposition, which saved the British from disaster. Now in this first week of November, when every hill, north and south and east and west, flashed and smoked, and the great 96-pound shells groaned and screamed over the town, it was to the long thin 4.7's and to the hearty bearded men who worked them, that soldiers and townsfolk looked for help. These guns of Lambton's, supplemented by two old-fashioned 6.3 howitzers manned by survivors from No. 10 Mountain Battery, did all that was possible to keep down the fire of the heavy Boer guns. If they could not save, they could at least hit back, and punishment is not so bad to bear when one is giving as well as receiving.

One example of that historical luck was always right in front of them in the form of those priceless naval guns that had arrived so dramatically at the critical moment of the battle, just in time to stop the beast on Pepworth Hill and to cover the army's retreat. Without them, the besieged would have been helpless under the powerful Creusots. But despite the naive claims made by the Boers about some special divine intervention—a notion that a friendly German critic described as 'commandeering the Almighty'—it's clear that, especially during the early months of this war, there were repeatedly moments of good fortune or merciful intervention that saved the British from disaster. Now, in this first week of November, when every hill, north, south, east, and west, was flashing and smoking, and the huge 96-pound shells were groaning and screaming over the town, it was to the long, thin 4.7's and the sturdy bearded men who operated them that soldiers and townspeople turned for help. These guns from Lambton, along with two old-fashioned 6.3 howitzers manned by survivors from No. 10 Mountain Battery, did everything possible to suppress the fire from the heavy Boer artillery. While they might not have been able to save everyone, they could at least fight back, and receiving punishment isn’t so hard to handle when you’re dishing it out too.

By the end of the first week of November the Boers had established their circle of fire. On the east of the town, broken by the loops of the Klip River, is a broad green plain, some miles in extent, which furnished grazing ground for the horses and cattle of the besieged. Beyond it rises into a long flat-topped hill the famous Bulwana, upon which lay one great Creusot and several smaller guns. To the north, on Pepworth Hill, was another Creusot, and between the two were the Boer batteries upon Lombard's Kop. The British naval guns were placed upon this side, for, as the open loop formed by the river lies at this end, it is the part of the defences which is most liable to assault. From thence all round the west down to Besters in the south was a continuous series of hills, each crowned with Boer guns, which, if they could not harm the distant town, were at least effective in holding the garrison to its lines. So formidable were these positions that, amid much outspoken criticism, it has never been suggested that White would have been justified with a limited garrison in incurring the heavy loss of life which must have followed an attempt to force them.

By the end of the first week of November, the Boers had formed their defensive perimeter. To the east of the town, interrupted by the twists of the Klip River, is a wide green plain that stretches for miles, providing grazing land for the besieged's horses and cattle. Beyond that rises the famous Bulwana, a long flat-topped hill that held a large Creusot and several smaller cannons. To the north, on Pepworth Hill, was another Creusot, with Boer batteries positioned on Lombard's Kop between the two. The British naval guns were located on this side because the open loop made by the river lies here, the most vulnerable part of the defenses. From there, all the way around the west down to Besters in the south, there was a continuous line of hills, each topped with Boer artillery, which, while unable to directly threaten the distant town, effectively kept the garrison confined to their positions. These strongholds were so impressive that, despite much vocal criticism, no one has ever claimed that White would have been justified in attempting to breach them with a limited garrison, knowing the heavy loss of life that would likely result.

The first few days of the siege were clouded by the death of Lieutenant Egerton of the 'Powerful,' one of the most promising officers in the Navy. One leg and the other foot were carried off, as he lay upon the sandbag parapet watching the effect of our fire. 'There's an end of my cricket,' said the gallant sportsman, and he was carried to the rear with a cigar between his clenched teeth.

The first few days of the siege were overshadowed by the death of Lieutenant Egerton of the 'Powerful,' one of the Navy's most promising officers. One leg and part of his foot were amputated while he lay on the sandbag parapet, observing the impact of our fire. "That's the end of my cricket," said the brave sportsman, and he was taken to the back with a cigar clenched between his teeth.

On November 3rd a strong cavalry reconnaissance was pushed down the Colenso road to ascertain the force which the enemy had in that direction. Colonel Brocklehurst took with him the 18th and 19th Hussars, the 5th Lancers and the 5th Dragoon Guards, with the Light Horse and the Natal Volunteers. Some desultory fighting ensued which achieved no end, and was chiefly remarkable for the excellent behaviour of the Colonials, who showed that they were the equals of the Regulars in gallantry and their superiors in the tactics which such a country requires. The death of Major Taunton, Captain Knapp, and young Brabant, the son of the General who did such good service at a later stage of the war, was a heavy price to pay for the knowledge that the Boers were in considerable strength to the south.

On November 3rd, a strong cavalry reconnaissance was sent down the Colenso road to find out how many enemy troops were in that direction. Colonel Brocklehurst took the 18th and 19th Hussars, the 5th Lancers, the 5th Dragoon Guards, along with the Light Horse and the Natal Volunteers. Some scattered fighting occurred that didn’t lead to any results and was mainly notable for the outstanding behavior of the Colonials, who proved they were equal to the Regulars in bravery and better in the tactics needed for such terrain. The deaths of Major Taunton, Captain Knapp, and young Brabant, the son of the General who later performed admirably in the war, were a heavy toll to pay for the information that the Boers had significant strength to the south.

By the end of this week the town had already settled down to the routine of the siege. General Joubert, with the chivalry which had always distinguished him, had permitted the garrison to send out the non-combatants to a place called Intombi Camp (promptly named Funkersdorp by the facetious) where they were safe from the shells, though the burden of their support still fell of course upon the much-tried commissariat. The hale and male of the townsfolk refused for the most part to avoid the common danger, and clung tenaciously to their shot-torn village. Fortunately the river has worn down its banks until it runs through a deep channel, in the sides of which it was found to be possible to hollow out caves which were practically bomb-proof. Here for some months the townsfolk led a troglodytic existence, returning to their homes upon that much appreciated seventh day of rest which was granted to them by their Sabbatarian besiegers.

By the end of the week, the town had already settled into the routine of the siege. General Joubert, known for his chivalry, allowed the garrison to send the non-combatants to a place called Intombi Camp (playfully nicknamed Funkersdorp by some) where they were safe from the shells, although the responsibility for their support still fell on the overburdened supply team. Most of the able-bodied townsfolk refused to leave and clung to their shot-riddled village. Fortunately, the river had carved out its banks, creating a deep channel where caves could be dug out that were practically bomb-proof. For several months, the townspeople lived a cave-dwelling lifestyle, returning to their homes on the much-appreciated seventh day of rest granted to them by their Sabbath-observing besiegers.

The perimeter of the defence had been divided off so that each corps might be responsible for its own section. To the south was the Manchester Regiment upon the hill called Caesar's Camp. Between Lombard's Kop and the town, on the north-east, were the Devons. To the north, at what seemed the vulnerable point, were the Rifle Brigade, the Rifles, and the remains of the 18th Hussars. To the west were the 5th Lancers, 19th Hussars, and 5th Dragoon Guards. The rest of the force was encamped round the outskirts of the town.

The perimeter of the defense had been divided so that each corps would be responsible for its section. To the south was the Manchester Regiment on the hill known as Caesar's Camp. Between Lombard's Kop and the town in the northeast were the Devons. To the north, at what appeared to be the weak point, were the Rifle Brigade, the Rifles, and what was left of the 18th Hussars. To the west were the 5th Lancers, 19th Hussars, and 5th Dragoon Guards. The rest of the force was camped around the outskirts of the town.

There appears to have been some idea in the Boer mind that the mere fact that they held a dominant position over the town would soon necessitate the surrender of the army. At the end of a week they had realised, however, just as the British had, that a siege lay before both. Their fire upon the town was heavy but not deadly, though it became more effective as the weeks went on. Their practice at a range of five miles was exceedingly accurate. At the same time their riflemen became more venturesome, and on Tuesday, November 7th, they made a half-hearted attack upon the Manchesters' position on the south, which was driven back without difficulty. On the 9th, however, their attempt was of a more serious and sustained character. It began with a heavy shell-fire and with a demonstration of rifle-fire from every side, which had for its object the prevention of reinforcements for the true point of danger, which again was Caesar's Camp at the south. It is evident that the Boers had from the beginning made up their minds that here lay the key of the position, as the two serious attacks—that of November 9th and that of January 6th—were directed upon this point.

There seems to have been some belief among the Boers that just holding a strong position over the town would force the army to surrender quickly. However, by the end of the week, they realized, just like the British, that both sides were facing a long siege. Their fire on the town was heavy but not lethal, although it became more effective as the weeks passed. Their aim at a distance of five miles was extremely precise. At the same time, their riflemen grew bolder, and on Tuesday, November 7th, they launched a lackluster attack on the Manchesters' position in the south, which was easily repelled. On the 9th, though, their effort was more serious and sustained. It started with heavy shellfire and rifle fire from all sides, aimed at preventing reinforcements from reaching the actual point of threat, which was again Caesar's Camp in the south. It's clear that from the start, the Boers believed this location was the key to their strategy, as both significant attacks—on November 9th and January 6th—were aimed at this point.

The Manchesters at Caesar's Camp had been reinforced by the 1st battalion 60th Rifles, who held the prolongation of the same ridge, which is called Waggon Hill. With the dawn it was found that the Boer riflemen were within eight hundred yards, and from then till evening a constant fire was maintained upon the hill. The Boer, however, save when the odds are all in his favour, is not, in spite of his considerable personal bravery, at his best in attack. His racial traditions, depending upon the necessity for economy of human life, are all opposed to it. As a consequence two regiments well posted were able to hold them off all day with a loss which did not exceed thirty killed and wounded, while the enemy, exposed to the shrapnel of the 42nd battery, as well as the rifle-fire of the infantry, must have suffered very much more severely. The result of the action was a well-grounded belief that in daylight there was very little chance of the Boers being able to carry the lines. As the date was that of the Prince of Wales's birthday, a salute of twenty-one shotted naval guns wound up a successful day.

The Manchesters at Caesar's Camp had been reinforced by the 1st battalion 60th Rifles, who held onto the extension of the same ridge, known as Waggon Hill. With dawn came the realization that the Boer riflemen were only eight hundred yards away, and from then until evening, there was a constant exchange of fire on the hill. However, the Boer, despite his notable personal bravery, is not at his best in an attack unless the odds are heavily in his favor. His cultural background, which values the conservation of human life, goes against aggressive tactics. As a result, two well-positioned regiments managed to fend them off all day with fewer than thirty killed and wounded, while the enemy, exposed to the shrapnel from the 42nd battery and the rifle fire from the infantry, must have suffered far worse. The outcome of the engagement led to a strong belief that during daylight, the Boers had very little chance of breaching the lines. Since it was the Prince of Wales's birthday, a twenty-one-gun salute from naval artillery celebrated a successful day.

The failure of the attempt upon Ladysmith seems to have convinced the enemy that a waiting game, in which hunger, shell-fire, and disease were their allies, would be surer and less expensive than an open assault. From their distant hilltops they continued to plague the town, while garrison and citizens sat grimly patient, and learned to endure if not to enjoy the crash of the 96-pound shells, and the patter of shrapnel upon their corrugated-iron roofs. The supplies were adequate, and the besieged were fortunate in the presence of a first-class organiser, Colonel Ward of Islington fame, who with the assistance of Colonel Stoneman systematised the collection and issue of all the food, civil and military, so as to stretch it to its utmost. With rain overhead and mud underfoot, chafing at their own idleness and humiliated by their own position, the soldiers waited through the weary weeks for the relief which never came. On some days there was more shell-fire, on some less; on some there was sniping, on some none; on some they sent a little feeler of cavalry and guns out of the town, on most they lay still—such were the ups and downs of life in Ladysmith. The inevitable siege paper, 'The Ladysmith Lyre,' appeared, and did something to relieve the monotony by the exasperation of its jokes. Night, morning, and noon the shells rained upon the town until the most timid learned fatalism if not bravery. The crash of the percussion, and the strange musical tang of the shrapnel sounded ever in their ears. With their glasses the garrison could see the gay frocks and parasols of the Boer ladies who had come down by train to see the torture of the doomed town.

The failure to capture Ladysmith seems to have convinced the enemy that a strategy of waiting, relying on hunger, shelling, and disease, would be more effective and cost-efficient than launching a direct attack. From their remote hilltops, they continued to torment the town, while the garrison and citizens remained grimly patient, learning to endure, if not enjoy, the crash of the 96-pound shells and the sound of shrapnel hitting their corrugated iron roofs. Supplies were sufficient, and the besieged were lucky to have a skilled organizer, Colonel Ward of Islington fame, who, with Colonel Stoneman's help, streamlined the collection and distribution of food for both civilians and military personnel to make it last as long as possible. With rain falling and mud underfoot, the soldiers, frustrated by their own inactivity and embarrassed by their situation, waited through the long weeks for a relief that never arrived. Some days brought more shelling, while others had less; some days included sniping, while others did not; occasionally, they would send out a small cavalry and artillery probe from the town, but most days they remained still—this was the rollercoaster of life in Ladysmith. The inevitable siege newspaper, 'The Ladysmith Lyre,' was published, providing some relief from the monotony with its irritating jokes. Day and night, shells fell on the town until even the most timid learned to accept their fate if not to be brave. The deafening sound of the explosions and the peculiar musical notes of the shrapnel echoed constantly in their ears. With their binoculars, the garrison could spot the colorful dresses and parasols of the Boer women who had taken the train down to witness the suffering of the besieged town.

The Boers were sufficiently numerous, aided by their strong positions and excellent artillery, to mask the Ladysmith force and to sweep on at once to the conquest of Natal. Had they done so it is hard to see what could have prevented them from riding their horses down to salt water. A few odds and ends, half battalions and local volunteers, stood between them and Durban. But here, as on the Orange River, a singular paralysis seems to have struck them. When the road lay clear before them the first transports of the army corps were hardly past St. Vincent, but before they had made up their mind to take that road the harbour of Durban was packed with our shipping and ten thousand men had thrown themselves across their path.

The Boers were numerous enough, backed by their strong positions and excellent artillery, to neutralize the Ladysmith force and quickly push toward conquering Natal. If they had done that, it's hard to imagine what could have stopped them from riding their horses down to the coast. A few leftover troops, half battalions, and local volunteers were all that stood between them and Durban. But, like on the Orange River, they seemed to be struck by a strange paralysis. Even though the road was clear, the first transports of the army corps had barely made it past St. Vincent, and by the time they decided to take that route, the harbor of Durban was filled with our ships and ten thousand men had positioned themselves in their way.

For a moment we may leave the fortunes of Ladysmith to follow this southerly movement of the Boers. Within two days of the investment of the town they had swung round their left flank and attacked Colenso, twelve miles south, shelling the Durban Light Infantry out of their post with a long-range fire. The British fell back twenty-seven miles and concentrated at Estcourt, leaving the all-important Colenso railway-bridge in the hands of the enemy. From this onwards they held the north of the Tugela, and many a widow wore crepe before we got our grip upon it once more. Never was there a more critical week in the war, but having got Colenso the Boers did little more. They formally annexed the whole of Northern Natal to the Orange Free State—a dangerous precedent when the tables should be turned. With amazing assurance the burghers pegged out farms for themselves and sent for their people to occupy these newly won estates.

For a moment, let's set aside the situation in Ladysmith to follow the movements of the Boers to the south. Within two days of surrounding the town, they had moved around their left flank and attacked Colenso, twelve miles south, forcing the Durban Light Infantry out of their position with long-range fire. The British fell back twenty-seven miles and regrouped at Estcourt, leaving the crucial Colenso railway bridge in enemy hands. From then on, they held the northern side of the Tugela, and many widows mourned before we regained control. It was the most critical week of the war, but after taking Colenso, the Boers didn’t do much else. They officially annexed all of Northern Natal to the Orange Free State—a risky move for when the tables turned. With incredible confidence, the burghers laid out farms for themselves and called for their families to move into these newly acquired lands.

On November 5th the Boers had remained so inert that the British returned in small force to Colenso and removed some stores—which seems to suggest that the original retirement was premature. Four days passed in inactivity—four precious days for us—and on the evening of the fourth, November 9th, the watchers on the signal station at Table Mountain saw the smoke of a great steamer coming past Robben Island. It was the 'Roslin Castle' with the first of the reinforcements. Within the week the 'Moor,' 'Yorkshire,' 'Aurania,' 'Hawarden Castle,' 'Gascon,' 'Armenian,' 'Oriental,' and a fleet of others had passed for Durban with 15,000 men. Once again the command of the sea had saved the Empire.

On November 5th, the Boers were so inactive that the British returned with a small force to Colenso and took some supplies, which suggests that their initial withdrawal was hasty. Four days went by without action—four valuable days for us—and on the evening of the fourth, November 9th, the observers at the signal station on Table Mountain spotted the smoke of a large steamer approaching past Robben Island. It was the 'Roslin Castle' bringing the first wave of reinforcements. Within a week, the 'Moor,' 'Yorkshire,' 'Aurania,' 'Hawarden Castle,' 'Gascon,' 'Armenian,' 'Oriental,' and a whole fleet of others had arrived in Durban with 15,000 troops. Once again, control of the sea had saved the Empire.

But, now that it was too late, the Boers suddenly took the initiative, and in dramatic fashion. North of Estcourt, where General Hildyard was being daily reinforced from the sea, there are two small townlets, or at least geographical (and railway) points. Frere is about ten miles north of Estcourt, and Chieveley is five miles north of that and about as far to the south of Colenso. On November 15th an armoured train was despatched from Estcourt to see what was going on up the line. Already one disaster had befallen us in this campaign on account of these clumsy contrivances, and a heavier one was now to confirm the opinion that, acting alone, they are totally inadmissible. As a means of carrying artillery for a force operating upon either flank of them, with an assured retreat behind, there may be a place for them in modern war, but as a method of scouting they appear to be the most inefficient and also the most expensive that has ever been invented. An intelligent horseman would gather more information, be less visible, and retain some freedom as to route. After our experience the armoured train may steam out of military history.

But now that it was too late, the Boers suddenly took charge in a dramatic way. North of Estcourt, where General Hildyard was getting daily reinforcements from the sea, there are two small towns, or at least geographical (and railway) points. Frere is about ten miles north of Estcourt, and Chieveley is five miles north of that and about the same distance south of Colenso. On November 15th, an armored train was sent from Estcourt to check on what was happening up the line. Already, we had faced one disaster in this campaign due to these clumsy machines, and a worse one was about to prove that they are completely inadequate when acting alone. While there might be a role for them in modern warfare as a means of transporting artillery for a force operating on either flank, with a secure retreat behind, they seem to be the most ineffective and also the most costly scouting method ever created. An experienced horseman could gather more information, be less visible, and maintain more freedom of movement. After our experience, the armored train might just fade out of military history.

The train contained ninety Dublin Fusiliers, eighty Durban Volunteers, and ten sailors, with a naval 7-pounder gun. Captain Haldane of the Gordons, Lieutenant Frankland (Dublin Fusiliers), and Winston Churchill, the well-known correspondent, accompanied the expedition. What might have been foreseen occurred. The train steamed into the advancing Boer army, was fired upon, tried to escape, found the rails blocked behind it, and upset. Dublins and Durbans were shot helplessly out of their trucks, under a heavy fire. A railway accident is a nervous thing, and so is an ambuscade, but the combination of the two must be appalling. Yet there were brave hearts which rose to the occasion. Haldane and Frankland rallied the troops, and Churchill the engine-driver. The engine was disentangled and sent on with its cab full of wounded. Churchill, who had escaped upon it, came gallantly back to share the fate of his comrades. The dazed shaken soldiers continued a futile resistance for some time, but there was neither help nor escape and nothing for them but surrender. The most Spartan military critic cannot blame them. A few slipped away besides those who escaped upon the engine. Our losses were two killed, twenty wounded, and about eighty taken. It is remarkable that of the three leaders both Haldane and Churchill succeeded in escaping from Pretoria.

The train had ninety Dublin Fusiliers, eighty Durban Volunteers, and ten sailors, along with a naval 7-pounder gun. Captain Haldane of the Gordons, Lieutenant Frankland (Dublin Fusiliers), and Winston Churchill, the famous correspondent, were part of the expedition. What was predictable happened. The train rolled into the advancing Boer army, came under fire, attempted to flee, found the tracks blocked behind it, and derailed. The Dublins and Durbans were shot helplessly from their cars under heavy fire. A railway accident is nerve-wracking, and so is an ambush, but facing both at once must be terrifying. Still, there were brave souls who rose to the challenge. Haldane and Frankland rallied the troops, while Churchill encouraged the engine driver. They managed to free the engine and sent it off with a cab full of wounded. Churchill, having escaped on it, bravely returned to share the fate of his comrades. The dazed and shaken soldiers put up a futile resistance for a while, but there was no help or escape available, leaving them with nothing but surrender. Not even the most critical military analyst can blame them. A few managed to slip away in addition to those who escaped on the engine. Our casualties were two killed, twenty wounded, and about eighty taken prisoner. It’s noteworthy that out of the three leaders, both Haldane and Churchill managed to escape from Pretoria.

A double tide of armed men was now pouring into Southern Natal. From below, trainload after trainload of British regulars were coming up to the danger point, feted and cheered at every station. Lonely farmhouses near the line hung out their Union Jacks, and the folk on the stoep heard the roar of the choruses as the great trains swung upon their way. From above the Boers were flooding down, as Churchill saw them, dour, resolute, riding silently through the rain, or chanting hymns round their camp fires—brave honest farmers, but standing unconsciously for mediaevalism and corruption, even as our rough-tongued Tommies stood for civilisation, progress, and equal rights for all men.

A huge wave of armed men was now pouring into Southern Natal. Trainload after trainload of British soldiers were arriving at the danger zone, celebrated and cheered at every station. Lonely farmhouses along the railway displayed their Union Jacks, and the people on the porches heard the loud singing as the great trains rolled by. Meanwhile, the Boers were coming down from above, as Churchill observed them—serious and determined, riding silently through the rain or singing hymns around their campfires—brave, honest farmers, but unknowingly representing medieval values and corruption, just as our rough-tongued soldiers stood for civilization, progress, and equal rights for everyone.

The invading force, the numbers of which could not have exceeded some few thousands, formidable only for their mobility, lapped round the more powerful but less active force at Estcourt, and struck behind it at its communications. There was for a day or two some discussion as to a further retreat, but Hildyard, strengthened by the advice and presence of Colonel Long, determined to hold his ground. On November 21st the raiding Boers were as far south as Nottingham Road, a point thirty miles south of Estcourt and only forty miles north of the considerable city of Pietermaritzburg. The situation was serious. Either the invaders must be stopped, or the second largest town in the colony would be in their hands. From all sides came tales of plundered farms and broken households. Some at least of the raiders behaved with wanton brutality. Smashed pianos, shattered pictures, slaughtered stock, and vile inscriptions, all exhibit a predatory and violent side to the paradoxical Boer character. [Footnote: More than once I have heard the farmers in the Free State acknowledge that the ruin which had come upon them was a just retribution for the excesses of Natal.]

The invading force, which probably numbered just a few thousand, was only formidable because of their mobility. They circled around the larger but less active force at Estcourt and attacked their communication lines from behind. For a day or two, there was some talk about retreating further, but Hildyard, backed by Colonel Long's advice and presence, decided to hold his ground. On November 21st, the raiding Boers pushed as far south as Nottingham Road, which is thirty miles south of Estcourt and only forty miles north of the major city of Pietermaritzburg. The situation was serious. Either the invaders needed to be stopped, or the second largest town in the colony would fall into their hands. Stories of looted farms and shattered homes came from everywhere. Some of the raiders acted with brutal disregard. Destroyed pianos, broken paintings, slaughtered livestock, and crude graffiti all showcased a predatory and violent side of the complex Boer character. [Footnote: More than once I have heard the farmers in the Free State acknowledge that the ruin which had come upon them was a just retribution for the excesses of Natal.]

The next British post behind Hildyard's at Estcourt was Barton's upon the Mooi River, thirty miles to the south. Upon this the Boers made a half-hearted attempt, but Joubert had begun to realise the strength of the British reinforcements and the impossibility with the numbers at his disposal of investing a succession of British posts. He ordered Botha to withdraw from Mooi River and begin his northerly trek.

The next British post after Hildyard's at Estcourt was Barton's on the Mooi River, thirty miles south. The Boers made a half-hearted attempt to take it, but Joubert started to understand the strength of the British reinforcements and that it was impossible for him, with his limited numbers, to besiege multiple British posts. He instructed Botha to pull back from Mooi River and start heading north.

The turning-point of the Boer invasion of Natal was marked, though we cannot claim that it was caused, by the action of Willow Grange. This was fought by Hildyard and Walter Kitchener in command of the Estcourt garrison, against about 2000 of the invaders under Louis Botha. The troops engaged were the East and West Surreys (four companies of the latter), the West Yorkshires, the Durban Light Infantry, No. 7 battery R.F.A., two naval guns, and some hundreds of Colonial Horse.

The turning point of the Boer invasion of Natal was highlighted, though we can’t say it was the cause, by the Battle of Willow Grange. This battle was fought by Hildyard and Walter Kitchener, who were in charge of the Estcourt garrison, against around 2000 invaders led by Louis Botha. The troops involved included the East and West Surreys (four companies of the latter), the West Yorkshires, the Durban Light Infantry, No. 7 battery R.F.A., two naval guns, and several hundred Colonial Horse.

The enemy being observed to have a gun upon a hill within striking distance of Estcourt, this force set out on November 22nd to make a night attack and to endeavour to capture it. The hill was taken without difficulty, but it was found that the gun had been removed. A severe counter-attack was made at daylight by the Boers, and the troops were compelled with no great loss and less glory to return to the town. The Surreys and the Yorkshires behaved very well, but were placed in a difficult position and were badly supported by the artillery. Martyn's Mounted Infantry covered the retirement with great gallantry, but the skirmish ended in a British loss of fourteen killed and fifty wounded or missing, which was certainly more than that of the Boers. From this indecisive action of Willow Grange the Boer invasion receded until General Buller, coming to the front on November 27th, found that the enemy was once more occupying the line of the Tugela. He himself moved up to Frere, where he devoted his time and energies to the collection of that force with which he was destined, after three failures, to make his way into Ladysmith.

The enemy was spotted with a gun on a hill within range of Estcourt, so this force set out on November 22nd to launch a night attack and try to capture it. They took the hill easily, but discovered that the gun had been moved. At dawn, the Boers launched a strong counter-attack, forcing the troops to retreat to town with minimal losses and even less glory. The Surreys and the Yorkshires performed admirably but found themselves in a tough spot and received poor support from the artillery. Martyn's Mounted Infantry bravely covered the withdrawal, but the skirmish ended with the British suffering fourteen killed and fifty wounded or missing, which was definitely more than the Boer losses. Following this inconclusive action at Willow Grange, the Boer invasion pulled back until General Buller arrived on November 27th and found the enemy once again occupying the Tugela line. He moved up to Frere, where he focused his efforts on gathering the force he would eventually lead into Ladysmith after three unsuccessful attempts.

One unexpected and little known result of the Boer expedition into Southern Natal was that their leader, the chivalrous Joubert, injured himself through his horse stumbling, and was physically incapacitated for the remainder of the campaign. He returned almost immediately to Pretoria, leaving the command of the Tugela in the hands of Louis Botha.

One unexpected and little-known outcome of the Boer expedition into Southern Natal was that their leader, the valiant Joubert, hurt himself when his horse stumbled and was physically unable to continue for the rest of the campaign. He went back to Pretoria almost immediately, leaving the command of the Tugela with Louis Botha.

Leaving Buller to organise his army at Frere, and the Boer commanders to draw their screen of formidable defences along the Tugela, we will return once more to the fortunes of the unhappy town round which the interest of the world, and possibly the destiny of the Empire, were centering. It is very certain that had Ladysmith fallen, and twelve thousand British soldiers with a million pounds' worth of stores fallen into the hands of the invaders, we should have been faced with the alternative of abandoning the struggle, or of reconquering South Africa from Cape Town northwards. South Africa is the keystone of the Empire, and for the instant Ladysmith was the keystone of South Africa. But the courage of the troops who held the shell-torn townlet, and the confidence of the public who watched them, never faltered for an instant.

Leaving Buller to organize his army at Frere, and the Boer commanders to set up their strong defenses along the Tugela, we will look again at the fate of the unfortunate town that was attracting global attention and possibly determining the future of the Empire. It is quite clear that if Ladysmith had fallen, and twelve thousand British soldiers along with a million pounds' worth of supplies had been captured by the invaders, we would have faced the choice of giving up the fight or retaking South Africa from Cape Town to the north. South Africa is the cornerstone of the Empire, and at that moment, Ladysmith was the cornerstone of South Africa. However, the bravery of the troops defending the bombarded town and the trust of the public observing them never wavered for a second.

December 8th was marked by a gallant exploit on the part of the beleaguered garrison. Not a whisper had transpired of the coming sortie, and a quarter of an hour before the start officers engaged had no idea of it. O si sic omnia! At ten o'clock a band of men slipped out of the town. There were six hundred of them, all irregulars, drawn from the Imperial Light Horse, the Natal Carabineers, and the Border Mounted Rifles, under the command of Hunter, youngest and most dashing of British Generals. Edwardes and Boyston were the subcommanders. The men had no knowledge of where they were going or what they had to do, but they crept silently along under a drifting sky, with peeps of a quarter moon, over a mimosa-shadowed plain. At last in front of them there loomed a dark mass—it was Gun Hill, from which one of the great Creusots had plagued them. A strong support (four hundred men) was left at the base of the hill, and the others, one hundred Imperials, one hundred Borders and Carabineers, ten Sappers, crept upwards with Major Henderson as guide. A Dutch outpost challenged, but was satisfied by a Dutch-speaking Carabineer. Higher and higher the men crept, the silence broken only by the occasional slip of a stone or the rustle of their own breathing. Most of them had left their boots below. Even in the darkness they kept some formation, and the right wing curved forward to outflank the defence. Suddenly a Mauser crack and a spurt of flame—then another and another! 'Come on, boys! Fix bayonets!' yelled Karri Davies. There were no bayonets, but that was a detail. At the word the gunners were off, and there in the darkness in front of the storming party loomed the enormous gun, gigantic in that uncertain light. Out with the huge breech-block! Wrap the long lean muzzle round with a collar of gun-cotton! Keep the guard upon the run until the work is done! Hunter stood by with a night light in his hand until the charge was in position, and then, with a crash which brought both armies from their tents, the huge tube reared up on its mountings and toppled backwards into the pit. A howitzer lurked beside it, and this also was blown into ruin. The attendant Maxim was dragged back by the exultant captors, who reached the town amid shoutings and laughter with the first break of day. One man wounded, the gallant Henderson, is the cheap price for the best-planned and most dashing exploit of the war. Secrecy in conception, vigour in execution—they are the root ideas of the soldier's craft. So easily was the enterprise carried out, and so defective the Boer watch, that it is probable that if all the guns had been simultaneously attacked the Boers might have found themselves without a single piece of ordnance in the morning. [Footnote: The destruction of the Creusot was not as complete as was hoped. It was taken back to Pretoria, three feet were sawn off the muzzle, and a new breech-block provided. The gun was then sent to Kimberley, and it was the heavy cannon which arrived late in the history of that siege and caused considerable consternation among the inhabitants.]

December 8th was notable for a bold action by the besieged garrison. No word had leaked about the planned sortie, and just fifteen minutes before it began, the officers involved had no idea it was happening. O si sic omnia! At ten o'clock, a group of men quietly left the town. There were six hundred of them, all irregulars from the Imperial Light Horse, the Natal Carabineers, and the Border Mounted Rifles, led by Hunter, the youngest and most daring of British Generals. Edwardes and Boyston were the subordinate commanders. The men had no clue where they were headed or what they were supposed to do, but they moved silently beneath a drifting sky, with glimpses of a quarter moon, across a mimosa-dotted plain. Eventually, they spotted a dark shape ahead—it was Gun Hill, the site of one of the troublesome Creusots that had been bothering them. A strong backup force of four hundred men was left at the hill's base, while the remaining one hundred Imperials, one hundred Border men and Carabineers, and ten Sappers crept upward with Major Henderson leading. A Dutch outpost raised an alarm but was reassured by a Carabineer who spoke Dutch. Higher and higher they climbed, the silence only disturbed by the occasional slip of a stone or the sound of their own breathing. Most had left their boots behind. Even in the dark, they maintained some formation, with the right wing aimed to outflank the defense. Suddenly, a Mauser shot rang out, followed by more! 'Come on, boys! Fix bayonets!' yelled Karri Davies. There were no bayonets, but that was a minor detail. At the command, the gunners took off, and there in the darkness before the attacking party loomed the massive gun, colossal in the dim light. Remove the huge breech-block! Wrap the long, thin muzzle with a collar of gun-cotton! Keep the guards moving until the task is complete! Hunter stood by with a night light in hand until the charge was set, and then, with a crash that startled both armies from their tents, the enormous tube lifted up on its mount and toppled backward into the pit. A howitzer hidden nearby was also destroyed. The victorious captors dragged the accompanying Maxim back with them, entering the town amid cheers and laughter just as dawn broke. Only one man was wounded, the brave Henderson, which was a small price for the best-planned and most daring operation of the war. Secrecy in planning and energy in execution—they are the core principles of a soldier's trade. The mission was executed so smoothly, and the Boer watch was so faulty, that if all the guns had been attacked at once, the Boers might have woken up to find themselves without any artillery that morning. [Footnote: The destruction of the Creusot was not as complete as hoped. It was taken back to Pretoria, three feet were cut off the muzzle, and a new breech-block was installed. The gun was then sent to Kimberley, and it was the heavy cannon that arrived late in the siege and caused significant alarm among the locals.]

On the same morning (December 9th) a cavalry reconnaissance was pushed in the direction of Pepworth Hill. The object no doubt was to ascertain whether the enemy were still present in force, and the terrific roll of the Mausers answered it in the affirmative. Two killed and twenty wounded was the price which we paid for the information. There had been three such reconnaissances in the five weeks of the siege, and it is difficult to see what advantage they gave or how they are to be justified. Far be it for the civilian to dogmatise upon such matters, but one can repeat, and to the best of one's judgment endorse, the opinion of the vast majority of officers.

On the same morning (December 9th), a cavalry reconnaissance was sent toward Pepworth Hill. The goal was clearly to find out if the enemy was still present in significant numbers, and the deafening sound of the Mausers confirmed that they were. We paid a heavy price for this information: two killed and twenty wounded. There had been three similar reconnaissances in the five weeks of the siege, and it’s hard to see what benefits they provided or how they can be justified. It’s not for a civilian to assert certainty on such matters, but one can echo, and to the best of one's judgment support, the views of the overwhelming majority of officers.

There were heart burnings among the Regulars that the colonial troops should have gone in front of them, so their martial jealousy was allayed three nights later by the same task being given to them. Four companies of the 2nd Rifle Brigade were the troops chosen, with a few sappers and gunners, the whole under the command of Colonel Metcalfe of the same battalion. A single gun, the 4.7 howitzer upon Surprise Hill, was the objective. Again there was the stealthy advance through the darkness, again the support was left at the bottom of the hill, again the two companies carefully ascended, again there was the challenge, the rush, the flight, and the gun was in the hands of the stormers.

There was a lot of resentment among the Regulars that the colonial troops had gone ahead of them, so their competitive spirit was calmed three nights later when the same task was assigned to them. Four companies from the 2nd Rifle Brigade were selected, along with a few engineers and artillerymen, all under the command of Colonel Metcalfe from the same battalion. The goal was to capture a single gun, the 4.7 howitzer on Surprise Hill. Once again, there was a stealthy approach through the darkness, the support was left at the base of the hill, the two companies carefully climbed up, and once again, there was the challenge, the rush, the retreat, and the gun was taken by the attackers.

Here and only here the story varies. For some reason the fuse used for the guncotton was defective, and half an hour elapsed before the explosion destroyed the howitzer. When it came it came very thoroughly, but it was a weary time in coming. Then our men descended the hill, but the Boers were already crowding in upon them from either side. The English cries of the soldiers were answered in English by the Boers, and slouch hat or helmet dimly seen in the mirk was the only badge of friend or foe. A singular letter is extant from young Reitz (the son of the Transvaal secretary), who was present. According to his account there were but eight Boers present, but assertion or contradiction equally valueless in the darkness of such a night, and there are some obvious discrepancies in his statement. 'We fired among them,' says Reitz. 'They stopped and all cried out “Rifle Brigade.” Then one of them said “Charge!” One officer, Captain Paley, advanced, though he had two bullet wounds already. Joubert gave him another shot and he fell on the top of us. Four Englishmen got hold of Jan Luttig and struck him on the head with their rifles and stabbed him in the stomach with a bayonet. He seized two of them by the throat and shouted “Help, boys!” His two nearest comrades shot two of them, and the other two bolted. Then the English came up in numbers, about eight hundred, along the footpath' (there were two hundred on the hill, but the exaggeration is pardonable in the darkness), 'and we lay as quiet as mice along the bank. Farther on the English killed three of our men with bayonets and wounded two. In the morning we found Captain Paley and twenty-two of them killed and wounded.' It seems evident that Reitz means that his own little party were eight men, and not that that represented the force which intercepted the retiring riflemen. Within his own knowledge five of his countrymen were killed in the scuffle, so the total loss was probably considerable. Our own casualties were eleven dead, forty-three wounded, and six prisoners, but the price was not excessive for the howitzer and for the morale which arises from such exploits. Had it not been for that unfortunate fuse, the second success might have been as bloodless as the first. 'I am sorry,' said a sympathetic correspondent to the stricken Paley. 'But we got the gun,' Paley whispered, and he spoke for the Brigade.

Here and only here the story changes. For some reason, the fuse used for the guncotton was faulty, and half an hour passed before the explosion destroyed the howitzer. When it did explode, it was complete, but the wait was exhausting. Then our men descended the hill, but the Boers were already closing in on them from both sides. The soldiers' English cries were met with English responses from the Boers, and a slouch hat or helmet barely visible in the dim light was the only way to tell friend from foe. A notable letter exists from young Reitz (the son of the Transvaal secretary), who was present. According to his account, there were only eight Boers present, but any claim or denial is equally questionable in the darkness of such a night, and there are some obvious inconsistencies in his statement. 'We fired among them,' says Reitz. 'They stopped and all shouted “Rifle Brigade.” Then one of them yelled “Charge!” One officer, Captain Paley, moved forward, even though he had already been hit by two bullets. Joubert shot him again, and he collapsed on top of us. Four Englishmen grabbed Jan Luttig, hit him on the head with their rifles, and stabbed him in the stomach with a bayonet. He caught two of them by the throat and yelled “Help, boys!” His two closest comrades shot two of them, and the other two ran away. Then the English came in large numbers, about eight hundred, along the footpath' (there were two hundred on the hill, but the exaggeration is understandable in the darkness), 'and we lay as still as mice along the bank. Later, the English killed three of our men with bayonets and wounded two. In the morning, we found Captain Paley and twenty-two of them dead or wounded.' It seems clear that Reitz means his own small group consisted of eight men, not that it represented the force that intercepted the retreating riflemen. From what he knew, five of his countrymen were killed in the struggle, so the overall losses were likely significant. Our own casualties were eleven dead, forty-three wounded, and six prisoners, but the cost wasn’t too high for the howitzer and for the boost in morale that comes from such actions. Had it not been for that unfortunate fuse, the second success could have been as bloodless as the first. 'I’m sorry,' said a sympathetic correspondent to the injured Paley. 'But we got the gun,' Paley whispered, and he spoke for the Brigade.

Amid the shell-fire, the scanty rations, the enteric and the dysentery, one ray of comfort had always brightened the garrison. Buller was only twelve miles away—they could hear his guns—and when his advance came in earnest their sufferings would be at an end. But now in an instant this single light was shut off and the true nature of their situation was revealed to them. Buller had indeed moved...but backwards. He had been defeated at Colenso, and the siege was not ending but beginning. With heavier hearts but undiminished resolution the army and the townsfolk settled down to the long, dour struggle. The exultant enemy replaced their shattered guns and drew their lines closer still round the stricken town.

Amid the shelling, the meager supplies, the sickness, and the dysentery, one ray of comfort had always brightened the garrison. Buller was only twelve miles away—they could hear his guns—and when his advance came in full force, their suffering would be over. But now, in an instant, that single light was extinguished and the true nature of their situation was revealed. Buller had indeed moved...but backward. He had been defeated at Colenso, and the siege was not ending but beginning. With heavier hearts but unwavering determination, the army and the townspeople prepared for the long, grim struggle. The triumphant enemy replaced their destroyed guns and tightened their grip around the beleaguered town.

A record of the siege onwards until the break of the New Year centres upon the sordid details of the sick returns and of the price of food. Fifty on one day, seventy on the next, passed under the hands of the overworked and devoted doctors. Fifteen hundred, and later two thousand, of the garrison were down. The air was poisoned by foul sewage and dark with obscene flies. They speckled the scanty food. Eggs were already a shilling each, cigarettes sixpence, whisky five pounds a bottle: a city more free from gluttony and drunkenness has never been seen.

A record of the siege from that point until the New Year focuses on the grim details of the sick numbers and the rising food prices. Fifty on one day, seventy the next, passed through the hands of the overworked and dedicated doctors. Fifteen hundred, and later two thousand, of the garrison were ill. The air was tainted by filthy sewage and crowded with disgusting flies. They contaminated the little food available. Eggs were already a pound each, cigarettes thirty pence, whisky five hundred dollars a bottle: a city has never seen a time more free from greed and drunkenness.

Shell-fire has shown itself in this war to be an excellent ordeal for those who desire martial excitement with a minimum of danger. But now and again some black chance guides a bomb—one in five thousand perhaps—to a most tragic issue. Such a deadly missile falling among Boers near Kimberley is said to have slain nine and wounded seventeen. In Ladysmith too there are days to be marked in red when the gunner shot better than he knew. One shell on December 17th killed six men (Natal Carabineers), wounded three, and destroyed fourteen horses. The grisly fact has been recorded that five separate human legs lay upon the ground. On December 22nd another tragic shot killed five and wounded twelve of the Devons. On the same day four officers of the 5th Lancers (including the Colonel) and one sergeant were wounded—a most disastrous day. A little later it was again the turn of the Devons, who lost one officer killed and ten wounded. Christmas set in amid misery, hunger, and disease, the more piteous for the grim attempts to amuse the children and live up to the joyous season, when the present of Santa Claus was too often a 96-pound shell. On the top of all other troubles it was now known that the heavy ammunition was running short and must be husbanded for emergencies. There was no surcease, however, in the constant hail which fell upon the town. Two or three hundred shells were a not unusual daily allowance. The monotonous bombardment with which the New Year had commenced was soon to be varied by a most gallant and spirit-stirring clash of arms. On January 6th the Boers delivered their great assault upon Ladysmith—an onfall so gallantly made and gallantly met that it deserves to rank among the classic fights of British military history. It is a tale which neither side need be ashamed to tell. Honour to the sturdy infantry who held their grip so long, and honour also to the rough men of the veld, who, led by untrained civilians, stretched us to the utmost capacity of our endurance.

Shell fire has proven to be an excellent test for those seeking combat excitement with minimal risk during this war. However, now and then, a stray bomb—maybe one out of five thousand—leads to a tragic outcome. One deadly missile that dropped among the Boers near Kimberley reportedly killed nine and injured seventeen. In Ladysmith, there are certain days that are marked in red when the gunner hit better than intended. One shell on December 17th killed six men (Natal Carabineers), injured three, and took down fourteen horses. It's been grimly noted that five separate human legs lay on the ground. On December 22nd, another tragic shot killed five and injured twelve of the Devons. That same day, four officers of the 5th Lancers (including the Colonel) and one sergeant were wounded—a particularly disastrous day. Shortly after that, it was again the Devons' turn, who lost one officer killed and ten wounded. Christmas arrived amidst misery, hunger, and disease, made even more heartbreaking by the desperate attempts to entertain the children and celebrate the festive season, where the gift from Santa Claus was too often a 96-pound shell. To top off all the troubles, it was now known that heavy ammunition was running low and needed to be conserved for emergencies. Still, there was no break from the constant barrage that fell on the town. Two or three hundred shells a day was not an unusual occurrence. The monotonous bombardment that started the New Year was soon to be interrupted by a brave and inspiring clash of arms. On January 6th, the Boers launched their major assault on Ladysmith—an attack that was so courageously made and defended that it deserves a place among the classic battles of British military history. It's a story both sides can be proud to tell. Respect to the brave infantry who held their ground for so long, and respect also to the tough men of the veld, who, led by untrained civilians, pushed us to our limits.

It may be that the Boers wished once for all to have done at all costs with the constant menace to their rear, or it may be that the deliberate preparations of Buller for his second advance had alarmed them, and that they realised that they must act quickly if they were to act at all. At any rate, early in the New Year a most determined attack was decided upon. The storming party consisted of some hundreds of picked volunteers from the Heidelberg (Transvaal) and Harrismith (Free State) contingents, led by de Villiers. They were supported by several thousand riflemen, who might secure their success or cover their retreat. Eighteen heavy guns had been trained upon the long ridge, one end of which has been called Caesar's Camp and the other Waggon Hill. This hill, three miles long, lay to the south of the town, and the Boers had early recognised it as being the most vulnerable point, for it was against it that their attack of November 9th had been directed. Now, after two months, they were about to renew the attempt with greater resolution against less robust opponents. At twelve o'clock our scouts heard the sounds of the chanting of hymns in the Boer camps. At two in the morning crowds of barefooted men were clustering round the base of the ridge, and threading their way, rifle in hand, among the mimosa-bushes and scattered boulders which cover the slope of the hill. Some working parties were moving guns into position, and the noise of their labour helped to drown the sound of the Boer advance. Both at Caesar's Camp, the east end of the ridge, and at Waggon Hill, the west end (the points being, I repeat, three miles apart), the attack came as a complete surprise. The outposts were shot or driven in, and the stormers were on the ridge almost as soon as their presence was detected. The line of rocks blazed with the flash of their guns.

It seems the Boers wanted to finally eliminate the constant threat behind them, or maybe the careful plans Buller had for his second attack worried them, making them realize they had to move fast if they were going to act at all. Regardless, early in the new year, they decided to launch a determined attack. The assault team was made up of several hundred selected volunteers from the Heidelberg (Transvaal) and Harrismith (Free State) groups, led by de Villiers. They had the support of a few thousand riflemen who could either help ensure their victory or cover their retreat. Eighteen heavy guns were aimed at the long ridge, one end known as Caesar's Camp and the other as Waggon Hill. This three-mile long hill, located south of the town, had been recognized early on by the Boers as their weakest point, since their attack on November 9th had focused on it. Now, two months later, they were set to try again with renewed determination against less formidable opponents. At noon, our scouts heard hymns being sung in the Boer camps. By two in the morning, groups of barefoot men were gathering around the base of the ridge, carefully wading through the mimosa bushes and scattered stones covering the hill's slope with their rifles in hand. Some teams were moving guns into place, and the noise of their work helped cover the sound of the Boer advance. Both at Caesar's Camp, the eastern end of the ridge, and at Waggon Hill, the western end (which are three miles apart), the attack took everyone by surprise. The outposts were shot or forced back, and the attackers were almost on the ridge as soon as they were noticed. The line of rocks lit up with the flashes from their guns.

Caesar's Camp was garrisoned by one sturdy regiment, the Manchesters, aided by a Colt automatic gun. The defence had been arranged in the form of small sangars, each held by from ten to twenty men. Some few of these were rushed in the darkness, but the Lancashire men pulled themselves together and held on strenuously to those which remained. The crash of musketry woke the sleeping town, and the streets resounded with the shouting of the officers and the rattling of arms as the men mustered in the darkness and hurried to the points of danger.

Caesar's Camp was defended by a strong regiment, the Manchesters, with support from a Colt automatic gun. The defense was set up in small sangars, each manned by ten to twenty soldiers. A few of these were overrun in the darkness, but the Lancashire men gathered themselves and fought hard to hold on to those that remained. The sound of gunfire woke the sleeping town, and the streets echoed with the shouts of officers and the clatter of weapons as the men assembled in the dark and rushed to the areas of danger.

Three companies of the Gordons had been left near Caesar's Camp, and these, under Captain Carnegie, threw themselves into the struggle. Four other companies of Gordons came up in support from the town, losing upon the way their splendid colonel, Dick-Cunyngham, who was killed by a chance shot at three thousand yards, on this his first appearance since he had recovered from his wounds at Elandslaagte. Later four companies of the Rifle Brigade were thrown into the firing line, and a total of two and a half infantry battalions held that end of the position. It was not a man too much. With the dawn of day it could be seen that the Boers held the southern and we the northern slopes, while the narrow plateau between formed a bloody debatable ground. Along a front of a quarter of a mile fierce eyes glared and rifle barrels flashed from behind every rock, and the long fight swayed a little back or a little forward with each upward heave of the stormers or rally of the soldiers. For hours the combatants were so near that a stone or a taunt could be thrown from one to the other. Some scattered sangars still held their own, though the Boers had passed them. One such, manned by fourteen privates of the Manchester Regiment, remained untaken, but had only two defenders left at the end of the bloody day.

Three companies of the Gordons were stationed near Caesar's Camp, and under Captain Carnegie, they joined the fight. Four other companies of the Gordons arrived from the town to support them, but they lost their outstanding colonel, Dick-Cunyngham, who was killed by a stray bullet from three thousand yards away—this was his first battle since recovering from his injuries at Elandslaagte. Later, four companies of the Rifle Brigade were added to the firing line, bringing the total to two and a half infantry battalions holding that section of the front. It was barely enough. As dawn broke, it became clear that the Boers held the southern slopes while we controlled the northern ones, with the narrow plateau in between serving as a bloody contested area. For a quarter of a mile, fierce eyes stared and rifle barrels glinted from behind every rock, with the prolonged battle swinging slightly back and forth with each push from the attackers or regrouping of our soldiers. For hours, the fighting sides were so close that one could throw a stone or hurl an insult across the divide. Some scattered positions still stood their ground, even though the Boers had advanced. One of them, manned by fourteen privates from the Manchester Regiment, remained untaken but was down to just two defenders by the end of the bloody day.

With the coming of the light the 53rd Field Battery, the one which had already done so admirably at Lombard's Kop, again deserved well of its country. It was impossible to get behind the Boers and fire straight at their position, so every shell fired had to skim over the heads of our own men upon the ridge and so pitch upon the reverse slope. Yet so accurate was the fire, carried on under an incessant rain of shells from the big Dutch gun on Bulwana, that not one shot miscarried and that Major Abdy and his men succeeded in sweeping the further slope without loss to our own fighting line. Exactly the same feat was equally well performed at the other end of the position by Major Blewitt's 21st Battery, which was exposed to an even more searching fire than the 53rd. Any one who has seen the iron endurance of British gunners and marvelled at the answering shot which flashes out through the very dust of the enemy's exploding shell, will understand how fine must have been the spectacle of these two batteries working in the open, with the ground round them sharded with splinters. Eye-witnesses have left it upon record that the sight of Major Blewitt strolling up and down among his guns, and turning over with his toe the last fallen section of iron, was one of the most vivid and stirring impressions which they carried from the fight. Here also it was that the gallant Sergeant Bosley, his arm and his leg stricken off by a Boer shell, cried to his comrades to roll his body off the trail and go on working the gun.

With the arrival of daylight, the 53rd Field Battery, which had already performed exceptionally well at Lombard's Kop, once again proved invaluable to its country. It was impossible to get behind the Boers and fire directly at their position, so every shell had to skim over the heads of our own men on the ridge and land on the reverse slope. However, the accuracy of the fire was so remarkable, even with constant shelling from the large Dutch gun on Bulwana, that not one shot missed its target, and Major Abdy and his men managed to clear the further slope without causing any casualties in our own fighting line. The same impressive feat was achieved by Major Blewitt's 21st Battery at the other end of the position, which faced an even more intense barrage than the 53rd. Anyone who has witnessed the incredible resilience of British gunners and admired the prompt return fire that breaks through the dust of exploding enemy shells can appreciate how magnificent it must have been to see these two batteries operating in the open, surrounded by debris. Eyewitnesses have recorded that the sight of Major Blewitt walking among his guns and nudging aside the last fallen piece of shrapnel with his foot left one of the most powerful and moving impressions from the battle. It was also here that the brave Sergeant Bosley, with his arm and leg blown off by a Boer shell, urged his comrades to roll his body off the trail and continue working the gun.

At the same time as—or rather earlier than—the onslaught upon Caesar's Camp a similar attack had been made with secrecy and determination upon the western end of the position called Waggon Hill. The barefooted Boers burst suddenly with a roll of rifle-fire into the little garrison of Imperial Light Horse and Sappers who held the position. Mathias of the former, Digby-Jones and Dennis of the latter, showed that 'two in the morning' courage which Napoleon rated as the highest of military virtues. They and their men were surprised but not disconcerted, and stood desperately to a slogging match at the closest quarters. Seventeen Sappers were down out of thirty, and more than half the little body of irregulars. This end of the position was feebly fortified, and it is surprising that so experienced and sound a soldier as Ian Hamilton should have left it so. The defence had no marked advantage as compared with the attack, neither trench, sangar, nor wire entanglement, and in numbers they were immensely inferior. Two companies of the 60th Rifles and a small body of the ubiquitous Gordons happened to be upon the hill and threw themselves into the fray, but they were unable to turn the tide. Of thirty-three Gordons under Lieutenant MacNaughten thirty were wounded. [Footnote: The Gordons and the Sappers were there that morning to re-escort one of Lambton's 4.7 guns, which was to be mounted there. Ten seamen were with the gun, and lost three of their number in the defence.] As our men retired under the shelter of the northern slope they were reinforced by another hundred and fifty Gordons under the stalwart Miller-Wallnutt, a man cast in the mould of a Berserk Viking. To their aid also came two hundred of the Imperial Light Horse, burning to assist their comrades. Another half-battalion of Rifles came with them. At each end of the long ridge the situation at the dawn of day was almost identical. In each the stormers had seized one side, but were brought to a stand by the defenders upon the other, while the British guns fired over the heads of their own infantry to rake the further slope.

At the same time as—or rather earlier than—the attack on Caesar's Camp, a similar assault was made with stealth and determination on the western end of a position called Waggon Hill. The barefooted Boers suddenly burst onto the small garrison of Imperial Light Horse and Sappers holding the position, firing their rifles. Mathias of the former, along with Digby-Jones and Dennis of the latter, displayed the kind of bravery that Napoleon regarded as the highest military virtue. They and their men were caught off guard but not shaken, and they stood firm for a close-range fight. Seventeen Sappers were down out of thirty, and more than half of the small group of irregulars were also hit. This part of the position was poorly fortified, and it's surprising that such an experienced soldier as Ian Hamilton would have left it that way. The defense had no real advantages compared to the attack—no trench, sangar, or wire entanglements—and they were vastly outnumbered. Two companies of the 60th Rifles and a small party of the ever-present Gordons happened to be on the hill and jumped into the battle, but they couldn’t change the outcome. Of thirty-three Gordons under Lieutenant MacNaughten, thirty were injured. [Footnote: The Gordons and the Sappers were there that morning to escort one of Lambton's 4.7 guns, which was set to be mounted there. Ten sailors were with the gun, and three lost their lives during the defense.] As our men fell back to the shelter of the northern slope, they were joined by another hundred and fifty Gordons led by the strong Miller-Wallnutt, a man reminiscent of a Berserk Viking. Two hundred of the Imperial Light Horse also rushed to help their comrades, along with another half-battalion of Rifles. At both ends of the long ridge, the situation at dawn was nearly the same. In each case, the attackers had taken one side but were stalled by the defenders on the other side, while the British guns fired over their own infantry to hit the farther slope.

It was on the Waggon Hill side, however, that the Boer exertions were most continuous and strenuous and our own resistance most desperate. There fought the gallant de Villiers, while Ian Hamilton rallied the defenders and led them in repeated rushes against the enemy's line. Continually reinforced from below, the Boers fought with extraordinary resolution. Never will any one who witnessed that Homeric contest question the valour of our foes. It was a murderous business on both sides. Edwardes of the Light Horse was struck down. In a gun-emplacement a strange encounter took place at point-blank range between a group of Boers and of Britons. De Villiers of the Free State shot Miller-Wallnut dead, Ian Hamilton fired at de Villiers with his revolver and missed him. Young Albrecht of the Light Horse shot de Villiers. A Boer named de Jaeger shot Albrecht. Digby-Jones of the Sappers shot de Jaeger. Only a few minutes later the gallant lad, who had already won fame enough for a veteran, was himself mortally wounded, and Dennis, his comrade in arms and in glory, fell by his side.

It was on the Waggon Hill side that the Boers fought the hardest, and our resistance was the most intense. The brave de Villiers was there, while Ian Hamilton organized the defenders and led them in repeated attacks against the enemy's line. The Boers, constantly reinforced from below, fought with incredible determination. Anyone who witnessed that epic clash would never doubt the courage of our opponents. It was brutal for both sides. Edwardes of the Light Horse was shot down. In a gun position, a strange close-range encounter occurred between a group of Boers and Britons. De Villiers of the Free State shot Miller-Wallnut dead, Ian Hamilton fired at de Villiers with his revolver and missed. Young Albrecht of the Light Horse shot de Villiers. A Boer named de Jaeger shot Albrecht. Digby-Jones of the Sappers shot de Jaeger. Just a few minutes later, the brave young man, who had already achieved enough fame for a veteran, was mortally wounded himself, and Dennis, his comrade in arms and glory, fell beside him.

There has been no better fighting in our time than that upon Waggon Hill on that January morning, and no better fighters than the Imperial Light Horsemen who formed the centre of the defence. Here, as at Elandslaagte, they proved themselves worthy to stand in line with the crack regiments of the British army.

There has been no better fighting in our time than what happened on Waggon Hill that January morning, and no better fighters than the Imperial Light Horsemen who were at the center of the defense. Here, just like at Elandslaagte, they showed that they were worthy to stand alongside the top regiments of the British army.

Through the long day the fight maintained its equilibrium along the summit of the ridge, swaying a little that way or this, but never amounting to a repulse of the stormers or to a rout of the defenders. So intermixed were the combatants that a wounded man more than once found himself a rest for the rifles of his enemies. One unfortunate soldier in this position received six more bullets from his own comrades in their efforts to reach the deadly rifleman behind him. At four o'clock a huge bank of clouds which had towered upwards unheeded by the struggling men burst suddenly into a terrific thunderstorm with vivid lightnings and lashing rain. It is curious that the British victory at Elandslaagte was heralded by just such another storm. Up on the bullet-swept hill the long fringes of fighting men took no more heed of the elements than would two bulldogs who have each other by the throat. Up the greasy hillside, foul with mud and with blood, came the Boer reserves, and up the northern slope came our own reserve, the Devon Regiment, fit representatives of that virile county. Admirably led by Park, their gallant Colonel, the Devons swept the Boers before them, and the Rifles, Gordons, and Light Horse joined in the wild charge which finally cleared the ridge.

Throughout the long day, the battle stayed balanced along the top of the ridge, shifting slightly in one direction or the other, but never leading to a defeat for the attackers or a rout for the defenders. The fighters were so mixed together that a wounded man more than once found himself propping up the rifles of his enemies. One unfortunate soldier in this predicament took six more bullets from his own comrades as they tried to reach the deadly rifleman behind him. At four o'clock, a massive bank of clouds that had risen above the struggling men suddenly erupted into a fierce thunderstorm with bright lightning and heavy rain. It's interesting that the British victory at Elandslaagte was announced by just such a storm. Up on the bullet-riddled hill, the long lines of fighting men paid no more attention to the weather than two bulldogs fighting each other. Up the slippery, muddy hillside, stained with blood, came the Boer reserves, while our own reserve, the Devon Regiment, advanced up the northern slope, strong representatives of that tough county. Led admirably by their brave Colonel Park, the Devons pushed the Boers back, and the Rifles, Gordons, and Light Horse joined in the wild charge that ultimately cleared the ridge.

But the end was not yet. The Boer had taken a risk over this venture, and now he had to pay the stakes. Down the hill he passed, crouching, darting, but the spruits behind him were turned into swirling streams, and as he hesitated for an instant upon the brink the relentless sleet of bullets came from behind. Many were swept away down the gorges and into the Klip River, never again to be accounted for in the lists of their field-cornet. The majority splashed through, found their horses in their shelter, and galloped off across the great Bulwana Plain, as fairly beaten in as fair a fight as ever brave men were yet.

But the end wasn’t here yet. The Boer had taken a risk with this venture, and now he had to face the consequences. He moved down the hill, crouching and darting, but the streams behind him were turning into wild torrents, and as he hesitated for a moment at the edge, the relentless hail of bullets came from behind. Many were swept away into the gorges and into the Klip River, never to be counted again in the records of their field-cornet. Most of them splashed through, found their horses in their hiding spots, and galloped off across the vast Bulwana Plain, defeated in as fair a fight as any brave men ever faced.

The cheers of victory as the Devons swept the ridge had heartened the weary men upon Caesar's Camp to a similar effort. Manchesters, Gordons, and Rifles, aided by the fire of two batteries, cleared the long-debated position. Wet, cold, weary, and without food for twenty-six hours, the bedraggled Tommies stood yelling and waving, amid the litter of dead and of dying.

The cheers of victory as the Devons reached the ridge motivated the exhausted men at Caesar's Camp to make a similar push. The Manchesters, Gordons, and Rifles, supported by the fire from two batteries, took the long-disputed position. Drenched, cold, tired, and without food for twenty-six hours, the worn-out soldiers stood shouting and waving amidst the debris of the dead and dying.

It was a near thing. Had the ridge fallen the town must have followed, and history perhaps have been changed. In the old stiff-rank Majuba days we should have been swept in an hour from the position. But the wily man behind the rock was now to find an equally wily man in front of him. The soldier had at last learned something of the craft of the hunter. He clung to his shelter, he dwelled on his aim, he ignored his dressings, he laid aside the eighteenth-century traditions of his pigtailed ancestor, and he hit the Boers harder than they had been hit yet. No return may ever come to us of their losses on that occasion; 80 dead bodies were returned to them from the ridge alone, while the slopes, the dongas, and the river each had its own separate tale. No possible estimate can make it less than three hundred killed and wounded, while many place it at a much higher figure. Our own casualties were very serious and the proportion of dead to wounded unusually high, owing to the fact that the greater part of the wounds were necessarily of the head. In killed we lost 13 officers, 135 men. In wounded 28 officers, 244 men—a total of 420, Lord Ava, the honoured Son of an honoured father, the fiery Dick-Cunyngham, stalwart Miller-Wallnutt, the brave boy sappers Digby-Jones and Dennis, Adams and Packman of the Light Horse, the chivalrous Lafone—we had to mourn quality as well as numbers. The grim test of the casualty returns shows that it was to the Imperial Light Horse (ten officers down, and the regiment commanded by a junior captain), the Manchesters, the Gordons, the Devons, and the 2nd Rifle Brigade that the honours of the day are due.

It was a close call. If the ridge had collapsed, the town would have followed, and history might have changed. In the old rigid Majuba days, we would have been swept from our position within an hour. But the clever man behind the rock was now up against an equally clever man in front of him. The soldier had finally learned some skills from the hunter. He held onto his cover, focused on his target, ignored his injuries, set aside the outdated customs of his pigtailed ancestor, and hit the Boers harder than ever. We may never know the full extent of their losses that day; 80 dead were returned to them from the ridge alone, while the slopes, dongas, and river each had its own separate story. No estimate can make it less than three hundred killed and wounded, with many suggesting a much higher number. Our own losses were significant, with an unusually high ratio of dead to wounded, largely because most of the injuries were to the head. We lost 13 officers and 135 men killed. In wounded, there were 28 officers and 244 men—a total of 420, including Lord Ava, the esteemed son of an esteemed father, the passionate Dick-Cunyngham, stalwart Miller-Wallnutt, brave boy sappers Digby-Jones and Dennis, Adams and Packman of the Light Horse, and the chivalrous Lafone. We had to mourn both the quality and the numbers. The harsh reality of the casualty returns indicates that the honors of the day go to the Imperial Light Horse (with ten officers down, and the regiment led by a junior captain), the Manchesters, the Gordons, the Devons, and the 2nd Rifle Brigade.

In the course of the day two attacks had been made upon other points of the British position, the one on Observation Hill on the north, the other on the Helpmakaar position on the east. Of these the latter was never pushed home and was an obvious feint, but in the case of the other it was not until Schutte, their commander, and forty or fifty men had been killed and wounded, that the stormers abandoned their attempt. At every point the assailants found the same scattered but impenetrable fringe of riflemen, and the same energetic batteries waiting for them.

During the day, there were two attacks on different areas of the British position: one on Observation Hill to the north and the other on the Helpmakaar position to the east. The latter was clearly just a distraction and was never fully committed, but with the former, it wasn't until Schutte, their commander, along with forty or fifty men, had been killed or injured that the attackers gave up their effort. At every location, the attackers encountered the same scattered but unbreakable line of riflemen and the same fierce artillery ready to meet them.

Throughout the Empire the course of this great struggle was watched with the keenest solicitude and with all that painful emotion which springs from impotent sympathy. By heliogram to Buller, and so to the farthest ends of that great body whose nerves are the telegraphic wires, there came the announcement of the attack. Then after an interval of hours came 'everywhere repulsed, but fighting continues.' Then, 'Attack continues. Enemy reinforced from the south.' Then 'Attack renewed. Very hard pressed.' There the messages ended for the day, leaving the Empire black with apprehension. The darkest forecasts and most dreary anticipations were indulged by the most temperate and best-informed London papers. For the first time the very suggestion that the campaign might be above our strength was made to the public. And then at last there came the official news of the repulse of the assault. Far away at Ladysmith, the weary men and their sorely tried officers gathered to return thanks to God for His manifold mercies, but in London also hearts were stricken solemn by the greatness of the crisis, and lips long unused to prayer joined in the devotions of the absent warriors.

Throughout the Empire, everyone watched this intense struggle with great concern and a painful sense of helplessness. By heliogram to Buller, and then to the farthest reaches of that vast network connected by telegraphic wires, the news of the attack was sent out. After a few hours, the message came: 'everywhere repulsed, but fighting continues.' Then it updated to 'Attack continues. Enemy reinforced from the south.' Next, it read 'Attack renewed. Very hard pressed.' That was where the messages stopped for the day, leaving the Empire filled with anxiety. The most cautious and well-informed London newspapers indulged in the darkest predictions and bleakest concerns. For the first time, the idea that the campaign might be beyond our capabilities was publicly suggested. Finally, official news came about the unsuccessful assault. Far away in Ladysmith, the exhausted men and their incredibly tested officers gathered to thank God for His many blessings, but in London, hearts were solemnly weighed down by the seriousness of the crisis, and lips that had long been silent in prayer joined the devotions of the distant warriors.





CHAPTER 14. THE COLESBERG OPERATIONS.

Of the four British armies in the field I have attempted to tell the story of the western one which advanced to help Kimberley, of the eastern one which was repulsed at Colenso, and of the central one which was checked at Stormberg. There remains one other central one, some account of which must now be given.

Of the four British armies in the field, I've tried to share the story of the western one that moved forward to assist Kimberley, the eastern one that was pushed back at Colenso, and the central one that was stopped at Stormberg. There’s one more central army that I need to talk about now.

It was, as has already been pointed out, a long three weeks after the declaration of war before the forces of the Orange Free State began to invade Cape Colony. But for this most providential delay it is probable that the ultimate fighting would have been, not among the mountains and kopjes of Stormberg and Colesberg, but amid those formidable passes which lie in the Hex Valley, immediately to the north of Cape Town, and that the armies of the invader would have been doubled by their kinsmen of the Colony. The ultimate result of the war must have been the same, but the sight of all South Africa in flames might have brought about those Continental complications which have always been so grave a menace.

It was, as already noted, a long three weeks after the declaration of war before the forces of the Orange Free State started invading Cape Colony. If it weren't for this fortunate delay, the main fighting would likely have taken place not in the mountains and hills of Stormberg and Colesberg, but in the challenging passes of the Hex Valley, just north of Cape Town, and the invading armies would have had support from their relatives in the Colony. The final outcome of the war would have been the same, but seeing all of South Africa in flames might have led to those serious Continental issues that have always posed a significant threat.

The invasion of the Colony was at two points along the line of the two railways which connect the countries, the one passing over the Orange River at Norval's Pont and the other at Bethulie, about forty miles to the eastward. There were no British troops available (a fact to be considered by those, if any remain, who imagine that the British entertained any design against the Republics), and the Boers jogged slowly southward amid a Dutch population who hesitated between their unity of race and speech and their knowledge of just and generous treatment by the Empire. A large number were won over by the invaders, and, like all apostates, distinguished themselves by their virulence and harshness towards their loyal neighbours. Here and there in towns which were off the railway line, in Barkly East or Ladygrey, the farmers met together with rifle and bandolier, tied orange puggarees round their hats, and rode off to join the enemy. Possibly these ignorant and isolated men hardly recognised what it was that they were doing. They have found out since. In some of the border districts the rebels numbered ninety per cent of the Dutch population.

The invasion of the Colony happened at two points along the routes of the two railways that connect the countries: one crossing the Orange River at Norval's Pont and the other at Bethulie, about forty miles to the east. There were no British troops available (something to think about for those who might still believe that the British had any plans against the Republics), and the Boers moved slowly southward among a Dutch population that was torn between their shared race and language and their experiences of fair and generous treatment by the Empire. A significant number were swayed by the invaders, and, like all turncoats, they stood out for their bitterness and severity toward their loyal neighbors. In some towns off the railway line, like Barkly East or Lady Grey, farmers gathered with rifles and bandoliers, tied orange puggarees around their hats, and rode off to join the enemy. It's possible these ignorant and isolated men barely understood what they were doing. They've realized it since. In some border areas, the rebels made up ninety percent of the Dutch population.

In the meanwhile, the British leaders had been strenuously endeavouring to scrape together a few troops with which to make some stand against the enemy. For this purpose two small forces were necessary—the one to oppose the advance through Bethulie and Stormberg, the other to meet the invaders, who, having passed the river at Norval's Pont, had now occupied Colesberg. The former task was, as already shown, committed to General Gatacre. The latter was allotted to General French, the victor of Elandslaagte, who had escaped in the very last train from Ladysmith, and had taken over this new and important duty. French's force assembled at Arundel and Gatacre's at Sterkstroom. It is with the operations of the former that we have now to deal.

In the meantime, the British leaders were working hard to gather some troops to stand against the enemy. For this, two small forces were needed—one to stop the advance through Bethulie and Stormberg, and the other to confront the invaders who had crossed the river at Norval's Pont and occupied Colesberg. The first task was assigned to General Gatacre, as previously mentioned. The second was given to General French, the victor of Elandslaagte, who had just escaped on the last train from Ladysmith and taken on this new and important role. French's force gathered at Arundel, while Gatacre's assembled at Sterkstroom. Now, we will focus on the operations of the former.

General French, for whom South Africa has for once proved not the grave but the cradle of a reputation, had before the war gained some name as a smart and energetic cavalry officer. There were some who, watching his handling of a considerable body of horse at the great Salisbury manoeuvres in 1898, conceived the highest opinion of his capacity, and it was due to the strong support of General Buller, who had commanded in these peaceful operations, that French received his appointment for South Africa. In person he is short and thick, with a pugnacious jaw. In character he is a man of cold persistence and of fiery energy, cautious and yet audacious, weighing his actions well, but carrying them out with the dash which befits a mounted leader. He is remarkable for the quickness of his decision—'can think at a gallop,' as an admirer expressed it. Such was the man, alert, resourceful, and determined, to whom was entrusted the holding back of the Colesberg Boers.

General French, who has surprisingly found South Africa to be a place for building his reputation, had already made a name for himself as a sharp and dynamic cavalry officer before the war. Some observers, watching how he managed a large cavalry force during the major Salisbury maneuvers in 1898, developed a high regard for his abilities. It was largely thanks to the strong backing of General Buller, who oversaw these peaceful operations, that French was appointed for the South Africa mission. He is short and stocky, with a strong jaw. In terms of character, he is a person of cold determination and intense energy—cautious but also bold—carefully considering his actions while executing them with the flair expected of a mounted leader. He is known for making quick decisions—'can think at a gallop,' as one admirer put it. Such was the man, alert, resourceful, and resolute, who was tasked with holding back the Boer forces at Colesberg.

Although the main advance of the invaders was along the lines of the two railways, they ventured, as they realised how weak the forces were which opposed them, to break off both to the east and west, occupying Dordrecht on one side and Steynsberg on the other. Nothing of importance accrued from the possession of these points, and our attention may be concentrated upon the main line of action.

Although the main push of the invaders was along the two railways, they decided to move both east and west when they saw how weak the opposing forces were, occupying Dordrecht on one side and Steynsberg on the other. There wasn't anything significant gained from holding these points, so we can focus on the main line of action.

French's original force was a mere handful of men, scraped together from anywhere. Naauwpoort was his base, and thence he made a reconnaissance by rail on November 23rd towards Arundel, the next hamlet along the line, taking with him a company of the Black Watch, forty mounted infantry, and a troop of the New South Wales Lancers. Nothing resulted from the expedition save that the two forces came into touch with each other, a touch which was sustained for months under many vicissitudes, until the invaders were driven back once more over Norval's Pont. Finding that Arundel was weakly held, French advanced up to it, and established his camp there towards the end of December, within six miles of the Boer lines at Rensburg, to the south of Colesberg. His mission—with his present forces—was to prevent the further advance of the enemy into the Colony, but he was not strong enough yet to make a serious attempt to drive them out.

French's original force was just a small group of men gathered from different places. Naauwpoort was his base, and from there he took a train reconnaissance on November 23rd towards Arundel, the next village along the line, bringing along a company of the Black Watch, forty mounted infantry, and a troop of the New South Wales Lancers. The expedition didn't yield much aside from the two forces making contact with each other, a connection that lasted for months through many ups and downs, until the invaders were pushed back again over Norval's Pont. Realizing that Arundel was lightly defended, French moved in and set up camp there towards the end of December, just six miles from the Boer lines at Rensburg, south of Colesberg. His mission with his current forces was to stop the enemy from advancing further into the Colony, but he still didn't have enough strength to make a serious effort to drive them out.

Before the move to Arundel on December 13th his detachment had increased in size, and consisted largely of mounted men, so that it attained a mobility very unusual for a British force. On December 13th there was an attempt upon the part of the Boers to advance south, which was easily held by the British Cavalry and Horse Artillery. The country over which French was operating is dotted with those singular kopjes which the Boer loves—kopjes which are often so grotesque in shape that one feels as if they must be due to some error of refraction when one looks at them. But, on the other hand, between these hills there lie wide stretches of the green or russet savanna, the noblest field that a horseman or a horse gunner could wish. The riflemen clung to the hills, French's troopers circled warily upon the plain, gradually contracting the Boer position by threatening to cut off this or that outlying kopje, and so the enemy was slowly herded into Colesberg. The small but mobile British force covered a very large area, and hardly a day passed that one or other part of it did not come in contact with the enemy. With one regiment of infantry (the Berkshires) to hold the centre, his hard-riding Tasmanians, New Zealanders, and Australians, with the Scots Greys, the Inniskillings, and the Carabineers, formed an elastic but impenetrable screen to cover the Colony. They were aided by two batteries, O and R, of Horse Artillery. Every day General French rode out and made a close personal examination of the enemy's position, while his scouts and outposts were instructed to maintain the closest possible touch.

Before moving to Arundel on December 13th, his team had grown in size and consisted mainly of mounted troops, giving it a level of mobility that's quite unusual for a British force. On December 13th, the Boers tried to advance south, but the British Cavalry and Horse Artillery easily held them back. The area where French was operating is filled with those unique kopjes that the Boer loves—kopjes that are often so oddly shaped that it feels like they must be a result of some kind of optical illusion when you look at them. On the other hand, between these hills are wide stretches of lush or brown savanna, the best terrain a horseman or horse gunner could hope for. The riflemen stayed on the hills, while French's troops moved cautiously across the plain, slowly tightening the Boer position by threatening to cut off this or that remote kopje, eventually herding the enemy into Colesberg. The small but agile British force covered a large area, and hardly a day went by without some part of it engaging the enemy. With one infantry regiment (the Berkshires) holding the center, his hard-riding Tasmanians, New Zealanders, and Australians, along with the Scots Greys, the Inniskillings, and the Carabineers, formed a flexible yet impenetrable barrier to protect the Colony. They were supported by two batteries, O and R, of Horse Artillery. Every day General French rode out to closely examine the enemy's position, while his scouts and outposts were instructed to stay in close contact.

On December 30th the enemy abandoned Rensburg, which had been their advanced post, and concentrated at Colesberg, upon which French moved his force up and seized Rensburg. The very next day, December 31st, he began a vigorous and long-continued series of operations. At five o'clock on Sunday evening he moved out of Rensburg camp, with R and half of O batteries R.H.A., the 10th Hussars, the Inniskillings, and the Berkshires, to take up a position on the west of Colesberg. At the same time Colonel Porter, with the half-battery of O, his own regiment (the Carabineers), and the New Zealand Mounted Rifles, left camp at two on the Monday morning and took a position on the enemy's left flank. The Berkshires under Major McCracken seized the hill, driving a Boer picket off it, and the Horse enfiladed the enemy's right flank, and after a risky artillery duel succeeded in silencing his guns. Next morning, however (January 2nd, 1900), it was found that the Boers, strongly reinforced, were back near their old positions, and French had to be content to hold them and to wait for more troops.

On December 30th, the enemy left Rensburg, which had been their forward position, and regrouped at Colesberg. French then moved his forces in and took Rensburg. The very next day, December 31st, he launched a series of intense operations. At five o'clock on Sunday evening, he left the camp at Rensburg with R and half of O batteries R.H.A., the 10th Hussars, the Inniskillings, and the Berkshires to position himself to the west of Colesberg. At the same time, Colonel Porter, with half of O battery, his own regiment (the Carabineers), and the New Zealand Mounted Rifles, set out from camp at two on Monday morning and took a position on the enemy's left flank. The Berkshires, led by Major McCracken, captured the hill, driving a Boer picket off it, while the Horse targeted the enemy's right flank. After a risky artillery exchange, they managed to silence the Boer guns. However, the next morning (January 2nd, 1900), it was found that the Boers, now strongly reinforced, had returned to their previous positions, and French had to settle for holding them while waiting for more troops.

These were not long in coming, for the Suffolk Regiment had arrived, followed by the Composite Regiment (chosen from the Household Cavalry) and the 4th Battery R.F.A. The Boers, however, had also been reinforced, and showed great energy in their effort to break the cordon which was being drawn round them. Upon the 4th a determined effort was made by about a thousand of them under General Schoeman to turn the left flank of the British, and at dawn it was actually found that they had eluded the vigilance of the outposts and had established themselves upon a hill to the rear of the position. They were shelled off of it, however, by the guns of O Battery, and in their retreat across the plain they were pursued by the 10th Hussars and by one squadron of the Inniskillings, who cut off some of the fugitives. At the same time, De Lisle with his mounted infantry carried the position which they had originally held. In this successful and well-managed action the Boer loss was ninety, and we took in addition twenty-one prisoners. Our own casualties amounted only to six killed, including Major Harvey of the 10th, and to fifteen wounded.

These didn't take long to arrive, as the Suffolk Regiment had come in, followed by the Composite Regiment (made up of troops from the Household Cavalry) and the 4th Battery R.F.A. The Boers, however, had also received reinforcements and were making strong efforts to break the cordon surrounding them. A determined attack was launched against the 4th by about a thousand of them under General Schoeman, aiming to flank the British on the left. At dawn, it was discovered that they had managed to avoid the outposts' watchfulness and had taken a position on a hill behind the British lines. They were eventually shelled off the hill by O Battery's guns, and during their retreat across the plain, they were chased by the 10th Hussars and one squadron of the Inniskillings, who managed to capture some of the fleeing troops. Meanwhile, De Lisle and his mounted infantry recaptured the position they had initially held. In this well-executed action, the Boers lost ninety men, and we also took twenty-one prisoners. Our own losses were only six killed, including Major Harvey of the 10th, and fifteen wounded.

Encouraged by this success an attempt was made by the Suffolk Regiment to carry a hill which formed the key of the enemy's position. The town of Colesberg lies in a basin surrounded by a ring of kopjes, and the possession by us of any one of them would have made the place untenable. The plan has been ascribed to Colonel Watson of the Suffolks, but it is time that some protest should be raised against this devolution of responsibility upon subordinates in the event of failure. When success has crowned our arms we have been delighted to honour our general; but when our efforts end in failure our attention is called to Colonel Watson, Colonel Long, or Colonel Thorneycroft. It is fairer to state that in this instance General French ordered Colonel Watson to make a night attack upon the hill.

Encouraged by this success, the Suffolk Regiment made an attempt to take a hill that was crucial to the enemy's position. The town of Colesberg is situated in a basin surrounded by a circle of hills, and if we had taken control of any one of them, it would have made the town impossible for the enemy to hold. This plan has been credited to Colonel Watson of the Suffolks, but it's time to raise a concern about shifting responsibility onto subordinates when things go wrong. When we achieve victory, we happily celebrate our general, but when we fail, the focus turns to Colonel Watson, Colonel Long, or Colonel Thorneycroft. It's more accurate to say that in this case, General French instructed Colonel Watson to launch a nighttime attack on the hill.

The result was disastrous. At midnight four companies in canvas shoes or in their stocking feet set forth upon their venture, and just before dawn they found themselves upon the slope of the hill. They were in a formation of quarter column with files extended to two paces; H Company was leading. When half-way up a warm fire was opened upon them in the darkness. Colonel Watson gave the order to retire, intending, as it is believed, that the men should get under the shelter of the dead ground which they had just quitted, but his death immediately afterwards left matters in a confused condition. The night was black, the ground broken, a hail of bullets whizzing through the ranks. Companies got mixed in the darkness and contradictory orders were issued. The leading company held its ground, though each of the officers, Brett, Carey, and Butler, was struck down. The other companies had retired, however, and the dawn found this fringe of men, most of them wounded, lying under the very rifles of the Boers. Even then they held out for some time, but they could neither advance, retire, or stay where they were without losing lives to no purpose, so the survivors were compelled to surrender. There is better evidence here than at Magersfontein that the enemy were warned and ready. Every one of the officers engaged, from the Colonel to the boy subaltern, was killed, wounded, or taken. Eleven officers and one hundred and fifty men were our losses in this unfortunate but not discreditable affair, which proves once more how much accuracy and how much secrecy is necessary for a successful night attack. Four companies of the regiment were sent down to Port Elizabeth to re-officer, but the arrival of the 1st Essex enabled French to fill the gap which had been made in his force.

The outcome was disastrous. At midnight, four companies in canvas shoes or their socks set out on their mission, and just before dawn, they found themselves on the hill. They formed a quarter column with files two paces apart; H Company was in the lead. Halfway up, a heavy fire was opened on them in the darkness. Colonel Watson ordered a retreat, intending, as believed, for the men to take cover behind the dead ground they had just left, but his death soon after created chaos. The night was pitch black, the terrain was rough, and bullets were flying through the ranks. Companies got mixed up in the dark, and conflicting orders were given. The leading company held its position, even though each of the officers, Brett, Carey, and Butler, was hit. However, the other companies had fallen back, and as dawn broke, this small group of men, most of them wounded, lay under the very rifles of the Boers. Even then, they held out for a while, but they could neither move forward, retreat, nor stay put without losing lives unnecessarily, so the surviving soldiers were forced to surrender. There’s better evidence here than at Magersfontein that the enemy was warned and prepared. Every one of the officers involved, from the Colonel to the junior officer, was killed, wounded, or captured. Our losses in this unfortunate but not disgraceful incident totaled eleven officers and one hundred and fifty men, demonstrating once again how much accuracy and secrecy are needed for a successful night attack. Four companies of the regiment were sent to Port Elizabeth to be re-staffed, but the arrival of the 1st Essex allowed French to fill the gap in his forces.

In spite of this annoying check, French continued to pursue his original design of holding the enemy in front and working round him on the east. On January 9th, Porter, of the Carabineers, with his own regiment, two squadrons of Household Cavalry, the New Zealanders, the New South Wales Lancers, and four guns, took another step forward and, after a skirmish, occupied a position called Slingersfontein, still further to the north and east, so as to menace the main road of retreat to Norval's Pont. Some skirmishing followed, but the position was maintained. On the 15th the Boers, thinking that this long extension must have weakened us, made a spirited attack upon a position held by New Zealanders and a company of the 1st Yorkshires, this regiment having been sent up to reinforce French. The attempt was met by a volley and a bayonet charge. Captain Orr, of the Yorkshires, was struck down; but Captain Madocks, of the New Zealanders, who behaved with conspicuous gallantry at a critical instant, took command, and the enemy was heavily repulsed. Madocks engaged in a point-blank rifle duel with the frock-coated top-hatted Boer leader, and had the good fortune to kill his formidable opponent. Twenty-one Boer dead and many wounded left upon the field made a small set-off to the disaster of the Suffolks.

In spite of this irritating setback, French continued to pursue his original plan of keeping the enemy in front and maneuvering around them to the east. On January 9th, Porter of the Carabineers, along with his regiment, two squadrons of Household Cavalry, the New Zealanders, the New South Wales Lancers, and four guns, advanced again and, after a skirmish, took control of a position called Slingersfontein, further north and east, aiming to threaten the main road of retreat to Norval's Pont. Some skirmishing followed, but they held their position. On the 15th, the Boers, thinking that this long stretch must have weakened us, launched a bold attack on a position held by New Zealanders and a company of the 1st Yorkshires, which had been sent up to reinforce French. Their attempt was met with gunfire and a bayonet charge. Captain Orr of the Yorkshires was struck down; however, Captain Madocks of the New Zealanders, who showed remarkable bravery at a critical moment, took command, and the enemy was forced back decisively. Madocks engaged in a close-range rifle duel with the top-hatted Boer leader and was fortunate enough to kill his formidable opponent. Twenty-one dead Boers and many wounded left on the field were a small compensation for the losses suffered by the Suffolks.

The next day, however (January 16th), the scales of fortune, which swung alternately one way and the other, were again tipped against us. It is difficult to give an intelligible account of the details of these operations, because they were carried out by thin fringes of men covering on both sides a very large area, each kopje occupied as a fort, and the intervening plains patrolled by cavalry.

The next day, however (January 16th), the scales of fortune, which swung back and forth, tipped against us again. It’s hard to provide a clear account of the details of these operations because they were carried out by small groups of men spread over a very large area, with each hill used as a fort, and the open fields patrolled by cavalry.

As French extended to the east and north the Boers extended also to prevent him from outflanking them, and so the little armies stretched and stretched until they were two long mobile skirmishing lines. The actions therefore resolve themselves into the encounters of small bodies and the snapping up of exposed patrols—a game in which the Boer aptitude for guerrilla tactics gave them some advantage, though our own cavalry quickly adapted themselves to the new conditions. On this occasion a patrol of sixteen men from the South Australian Horse and New South Wales Lancers fell into an ambush, and eleven were captured. Of the remainder, three made their way back to camp, while one was killed and one was wounded.

As the French moved east and north, the Boers also advanced to prevent them from outflanking their position, causing the small armies to stretch into two long, mobile skirmishing lines. The confrontations, therefore, turned into encounters between small groups and the capturing of exposed patrols—a scenario where the Boers' skills in guerrilla tactics gave them an advantage, although our cavalry quickly adjusted to the new situation. On this occasion, a patrol of sixteen men from the South Australian Horse and New South Wales Lancers ended up in an ambush, resulting in the capture of eleven. Of the remaining men, three made it back to camp, while one was killed and one was wounded.

The duel between French on the one side and Schoeman and Lambert on the other was from this onwards one of maneuvering rather than of fighting. The dangerously extended line of the British at this period, over thirty miles long, was reinforced, as has been mentioned, by the 1st Yorkshire and later by the 2nd Wiltshire and a section of the 37th Howitzer Battery. There was probably no very great difference in numbers between the two little armies, but the Boers now, as always, were working upon internal lines. The monotony of the operations was broken by the remarkable feat of the Essex Regiment, which succeeded by hawsers and good-will in getting two 15-pounder guns of the 4th Field Battery on to the top of Coleskop, a hill which rises several hundred feet from the plain and is so precipitous that it is no small task for an unhampered man to climb it. From the summit a fire, which for some days could not be localised by the Boers, was opened upon their laagers, which had to be shifted in consequence. This energetic action upon the part of our gunners may be set off against those other examples where commanders of batteries have shown that they had not yet appreciated what strong tackle and stout arms can accomplish. The guns upon Coleskop not only dominated all the smaller kopjes for a range of 9000 yards, but completely commanded the town of Colesberg, which could not however, for humanitarian and political reasons, be shelled.

The duel between the French on one side and Schoeman and Lambert on the other turned into a battle of maneuvers rather than actual fighting from this point forward. The dangerously stretched line of the British at this time, which was over thirty miles long, was reinforced, as mentioned, by the 1st Yorkshire, and later by the 2nd Wiltshire and a section of the 37th Howitzer Battery. There likely wasn’t much difference in numbers between the two small armies, but the Boers, as always, were operating on shorter internal lines. The monotony of the operations was interrupted by the impressive accomplishment of the Essex Regiment, which, through ropes and teamwork, managed to get two 15-pounder guns from the 4th Field Battery to the top of Coleskop, a hill that rises several hundred feet from the plain and is so steep that it’s quite a challenge for an unhindered person to climb. From the summit, they opened fire, which the Boers couldn’t locate for several days, forcing them to move their laagers. This vigorous action by our gunners contrasts with instances where battery commanders have shown they hadn’t yet realized what tough equipment and strong manpower can achieve. The guns on Coleskop not only overlooked all the smaller kopjes for a range of 9000 yards but also had complete control over the town of Colesberg, which, however, could not be shelled for humanitarian and political reasons.

By gradual reinforcements the force under French had by the end of January attained the respectable figure of ten thousand men, strung over a large extent of country. His infantry consisted of the 2nd Berkshires, 1st Royal Irish, 2nd Wiltshires, 2nd Worcesters, 1st Essex, and 1st Yorkshires; his cavalry, of the 10th Hussars, the 6th Dragoon Guards, the Inniskillings, the New Zealanders, the N.S. W. Lancers, some Rimington Guides, and the composite Household Regiment; his artillery, the R and O batteries of R.H.A., the 4th R.F.A., and a section of the 37th Howitzer Battery. At the risk of tedium I have repeated the units of this force, because there are no operations during the war, with the exception perhaps of those of the Rhodesian Column, concerning which it is so difficult to get a clear impression. The fluctuating forces, the vast range of country covered, and the petty farms which give their names to positions, all tend to make the issue vague and the narrative obscure. The British still lay in a semicircle extending from Slingersfontein upon the right to Kloof Camp upon the left, and the general scheme of operations continued to be an enveloping movement upon the right. General Clements commanded this section of the forces, while the energetic Porter carried out the successive advances. The lines had gradually stretched until they were nearly fifty miles in length, and something of the obscurity in which the operations have been left is due to the impossibility of any single correspondent having a clear idea of what was occurring over so extended a front.

By the end of January, the force under French had gradually grown to a respectable total of ten thousand men spread over a large area. His infantry included the 2nd Berkshires, 1st Royal Irish, 2nd Wiltshires, 2nd Worcesters, 1st Essex, and 1st Yorkshires. The cavalry consisted of the 10th Hussars, the 6th Dragoon Guards, the Inniskillings, the New Zealanders, the N.S.W. Lancers, some Rimington Guides, and the composite Household Regiment. His artillery was made up of the R and O batteries of R.H.A., the 4th R.F.A., and a section of the 37th Howitzer Battery. I mention these units at the risk of being tedious because there are no other operations during the war, except perhaps those of the Rhodesian Column, that are so hard to clearly grasp. The varying forces, the vast territory involved, and the small farms that give names to positions all contribute to making the situation unclear and the narrative confusing. The British were positioned in a semicircle stretching from Slingersfontein on the right to Kloof Camp on the left, and the overall plan of action continued to be an enveloping maneuver on the right. General Clements was in charge of this section of the forces, while the energetic Porter led the ongoing advances. The lines had gradually stretched to nearly fifty miles in length, and part of the confusion surrounding these operations is due to the challenge any single correspondent faced in understanding what was happening across such a wide front.

On January 25th French sent Stephenson and Brabazon to push a reconnaissance to the north of Colesberg, and found that the Boers were making a fresh position at Rietfontein, nine miles nearer their own border. A small action ensued, in which we lost ten or twelve of the Wiltshire Regiment, and gained some knowledge of the enemy's dispositions. For the remainder of the month the two forces remained in a state of equilibrium, each keenly on its guard, and neither strong enough to penetrate the lines of the other. General French descended to Cape Town to aid General Roberts in the elaboration of that plan which was soon to change the whole military situation in South Africa.

On January 25th, French sent Stephenson and Brabazon to scout north of Colesberg and discovered that the Boers were establishing a new position at Rietfontein, only nine miles closer to their border. A minor skirmish followed, during which we lost about ten or twelve men from the Wiltshire Regiment, but we gained some insight into the enemy's setup. For the rest of the month, the two forces remained at a stalemate, each on high alert and neither strong enough to break through the other's lines. General French went down to Cape Town to assist General Roberts in developing a plan that would soon change the entire military landscape in South Africa.

Reinforcements were still dribbling into the British force, Hoad's Australian Regiment, which had been changed from infantry to cavalry, and J battery R.H.A. from India, being the last arrivals. But very much stronger reinforcements had arrived for the Boers—so strong that they were able to take the offensive. De la Rey had left the Modder with three thousand men, and their presence infused new life into the defenders of Colesberg. At the moment, too, that the Modder Boers were coming to Colesberg, the British had begun to send cavalry reinforcements to the Modder in preparation for the march to Kimberley, so that Clements's Force (as it had now become) was depleted at the very instant when that of the enemy was largely increased. The result was that it was all they could do not merely to hold their own, but to avoid a very serious disaster.

Reinforcements were still trickling into the British force, with Hoad's Australian Regiment, which had been switched from infantry to cavalry, and J Battery R.H.A. from India being the last to arrive. However, much stronger reinforcements had come in for the Boers—so strong that they could take the offensive. De la Rey had left the Modder with three thousand men, and their presence energized the defenders of Colesberg. At the same moment that the Modder Boers were heading to Colesberg, the British had started to send cavalry reinforcements to the Modder in preparation for the march to Kimberley, so Clements's Force (as it was now called) was weakened at the exact moment when the enemy was significantly bolstered. The result was that it was all they could do not just to hold their ground, but to avoid a very serious disaster.

The movements of De la Rey were directed towards turning the right of the position. On February 9th and 10th the mounted patrols, principally the Tasmanians, the Australians, and the Inniskillings, came in contact with the Boers, and some skirmishing ensued, with no heavy loss upon either side. A British patrol was surrounded and lost eleven prisoners, Tasmanians and Guides. On the 12th the Boer turning movement developed itself, and our position on the right at Slingersfontein was strongly attacked.

The movements of De la Rey aimed to shift to the right of the position. On February 9th and 10th, the mounted patrols, mainly the Tasmanians, Australians, and Inniskillings, came into contact with the Boers, leading to some skirmishes but without significant losses on either side. A British patrol got surrounded and lost eleven members, including Tasmanians and Guides. On the 12th, the Boer maneuver to encircle us unfolded, and our right position at Slingersfontein faced a strong attack.

The key of the British position at this point was a kopje held by three companies of the 2nd Worcester Regiment. Upon this the Boers made a fierce onslaught, but were as fiercely repelled. They came up in the dark between the set of moon and rise of sun, as they had done at the great assault of Ladysmith, and the first dim light saw them in the advanced sangars. The Boer generals do not favour night attacks, but they are exceedingly fond of using darkness for taking up a good position and pushing onwards as soon as it is possible to see. This is what they did upon this occasion, and the first intimation which the outposts had of their presence was the rush of feet and loom of figures in the cold misty light of dawn. The occupants of the sangars were killed to a man, and the assailants rushed onwards. As the sun topped the line of the veld half the kopje was in their possession. Shouting and firing, they pressed onwards.

The key to the British position at this time was a hill held by three companies of the 2nd Worcester Regiment. The Boers launched a fierce attack, but were fiercely fought off. They approached in the dark, between the setting moon and rising sun, just as they had during the major assault on Ladysmith. The first faint light revealed them in the forward trenches. Boer generals don't usually prefer night attacks, but they really like using the cover of darkness to establish a good position and advance as soon as it's light enough to see. That's exactly what they did this time, and the first warning the outposts had of their presence was the sound of rushing feet and the silhouettes of figures in the chilly, misty dawn. The defenders in the trenches were all killed, and the attackers surged forward. By the time the sun rose above the horizon, they had taken half of the hill. Shouting and firing, they continued to push ahead.

But the Worcester men were steady old soldiers, and the battalion contained no less than four hundred and fifty marksmen in its ranks. Of these the companies upon the hill had their due proportion, and their fire was so accurate that the Boers found themselves unable to advance any further. Through the long day a desperate duel was maintained between the two lines of riflemen. Colonel Cuningham and Major Stubbs were killed while endeavouring to recover the ground which had been lost. Hovel and Bartholomew continued to encourage their men, and the British fire became so deadly that that of the Boers was dominated. Under the direction of Hacket Pain, who commanded the nearest post, guns of J battery were brought out into the open and shelled the portion of the kopje which was held by the Boers. The latter were reinforced, but could make no advance against the accurate rifle fire with which they were met. The Bisley champion of the battalion, with a bullet through his thigh, expended a hundred rounds before sinking from loss of blood. It was an excellent defence, and a pleasing exception to those too frequent cases where an isolated force has lost heart in face of a numerous and persistent foe. With the coming of darkness the Boers withdrew with a loss of over two hundred killed and wounded. Orders had come from Clements that the whole right wing should be drawn in, and in obedience to them the remains of the victorious companies were called in by Hacket Pain, who moved his force by night in the direction of Rensburg. The British loss in the action was twenty-eight killed and nearly a hundred wounded or missing, most of which was incurred when the sangars were rushed in the early morning.

But the Worcester men were experienced soldiers, with the battalion having at least four hundred and fifty sharpshooters. The companies on the hill had their fair share of this strength, and their aim was so precise that the Boers couldn't push forward any further. All day long, a fierce exchange of gunfire continued between the two sides. Colonel Cuningham and Major Stubbs were killed while trying to reclaim lost ground. Hovel and Bartholomew kept motivating their troops, and the British fire became so lethal that it overpowered the Boers. Under Hacket Pain's command, who led the closest post, J battery's guns were brought into the open and bombarded the part of the kopje held by the Boers. The Boers received reinforcements but couldn't advance against the accurate rifle fire they faced. The battalion's Bisley champion, despite suffering a bullet wound in his thigh, fired a hundred rounds before collapsing from blood loss. It was a remarkable defense, a refreshing change from the many instances where a lone force loses morale in front of a large, determined enemy. When darkness fell, the Boers retreated, having suffered over two hundred killed and wounded. Orders arrived from Clements for the entire right wing to withdraw, and Hacket Pain complied, moving his remaining troops by night towards Rensburg. The British losses in the fight were twenty-eight killed and nearly a hundred wounded or missing, most of which occurred when the sangars were attacked in the early morning.

While this action was fought upon the extreme right of the British position another as severe had occurred with much the same result upon the extreme left, where the 2nd Wiltshire Regiment was stationed. Some companies of this regiment were isolated upon a kopje and surrounded by the Boer riflemen when the pressure upon them was relieved by a desperate attack by about a hundred of the Victorian Rifles. The gallant Australians lost Major Eddy and six officers out of seven, with a large proportion of their men, but they proved once for all that amid all the scattered nations who came from the same home there is not one with a more fiery courage and a higher sense of martial duty than the men from the great island continent. It is the misfortune of the historian when dealing with these contingents that, as a rule, by their very nature they were employed in detached parties in fulfilling the duties which fall to the lot of scouts and light cavalry—duties which fill the casualty lists but not the pages of the chronicler. Be it said, however, once for all that throughout the whole African army there was nothing but the utmost admiration for the dash and spirit of the hard-riding, straight-shooting sons of Australia and New Zealand. In a host which held many brave men there were none braver than they.

While this battle was taking place on the far right of the British position, another fierce engagement occurred on the far left, where the 2nd Wiltshire Regiment was stationed. Some companies from this regiment found themselves isolated on a hilltop, surrounded by Boer riflemen, when relief came from a bold attack by about a hundred members of the Victorian Rifles. The brave Australians lost Major Eddy and six out of seven officers, along with a large number of their men, but they demonstrated once and for all that among all the diverse nations originating from the same homeland, none exhibit a more intense courage or a stronger sense of military duty than the men from the vast island continent. It's unfortunate for historians when chronicling these units, as they were often deployed in separate groups, performing the roles typically expected of scouts and light cavalry—responsibilities that contribute to the casualty lists but rarely appear in historical accounts. Nevertheless, it must be stated that throughout the entire African army, there was nothing but deep admiration for the daring and spirit of the hard-riding, sharp-shooting sons of Australia and New Zealand. Among many brave soldiers, none were braver than they.

It was evident from this time onwards that the turning movement had failed, and that the enemy had developed such strength that we were ourselves in imminent danger of being turned. The situation was a most serious one: for if Clements's force could be brushed aside there would be nothing to keep the enemy from cutting the communications of the army which Roberts had assembled for his march into the Free State. Clements drew in his wings hurriedly and concentrated his whole force at Rensburg. It was a difficult operation in the face of an aggressive enemy, but the movements were well timed and admirably carried out. There is always the possibility of a retreat degenerating into a panic, and a panic at that moment would have been a most serious matter. One misfortune occurred, through which two companies of the Wiltshire regiment were left without definite orders, and were cut off and captured after a resistance in which a third of their number was killed and wounded. No man in that trying time worked harder than Colonel Carter of the Wiltshires (the night of the retreat was the sixth which he had spent without sleep), and the loss of the two companies is to be set down to one of those accidents which may always occur in warfare. Some of the Inniskilling Dragoons and Victorian Mounted Rifles were also cut off in the retreat, but on the whole Clements was very fortunate in being able to concentrate his scattered army with so few mishaps. The withdrawal was heartbreaking to the soldiers who had worked so hard and so long in extending the lines, but it might be regarded with equanimity by the Generals, who understood that the greater strength the enemy developed at Colesberg the less they would have to oppose the critical movements which were about to be carried out in the west. Meanwhile Coleskop had also been abandoned, the guns removed, and the whole force on February 14th passed through Rensburg and fell back upon Arundel, the spot from which six weeks earlier French had started upon this stirring series of operations. It would not be fair, however, to suppose that they had failed because they ended where they began. Their primary object had been to prevent the further advance of the Freestaters into the colony, and, during the most critical period of the war, this had been accomplished with much success and little loss. At last the pressure had become so severe that the enemy had to weaken the most essential part of their general position in order to relieve it. The object of the operations had really been attained when Clements found himself back at Arundel once more. French, the stormy petrel of the war, had flitted on from Cape Town to Modder River, where a larger prize than Colesberg awaited him. Clements continued to cover Naauwport, the important railway junction, until the advance of Roberts's army caused a complete reversal of the whole military situation.

It became clear from that point on that the turning movement had failed, and the enemy had gained enough strength that we were now at risk of being outflanked. The situation was very serious: if Clements's force could be easily dispatched, there would be nothing to stop the enemy from cutting off the army Roberts had gathered for his march into the Free State. Clements quickly retracted his flanks and concentrated his entire force at Rensburg. It was a tough operation against an aggressive enemy, but the maneuvers were well-timed and executed flawlessly. There's always a chance that a retreat can turn into a panicked flight, and at that moment, panic would have been disastrous. Unfortunately, two companies of the Wiltshire regiment were left without clear orders and were cut off and captured after a fight that resulted in a third of their men being killed or wounded. No one worked harder during that challenging time than Colonel Carter of the Wiltshires (the night of the retreat was the sixth night he had gone without sleep), and the loss of those two companies should be attributed to one of those unfortunate accidents that can always happen in war. Some of the Inniskilling Dragoons and Victorian Mounted Rifles were also cut off during the retreat, but overall, Clements was quite fortunate to be able to regroup his scattered army with so few problems. The withdrawal was heartbreaking for the soldiers who had worked so hard and for so long to extend the lines, but it could be viewed calmly by the Generals, who recognized that the stronger the enemy had become at Colesberg, the less they would have to counter the crucial movements that were about to take place in the west. Meanwhile, Coleskop had also been abandoned, the guns were removed, and on February 14th, the entire force passed through Rensburg and fell back to Arundel, the same place from which French had begun this intense series of operations six weeks earlier. However, it wouldn’t be fair to think they failed just because they ended up where they started. Their main objective had been to prevent the further advance of the Freestaters into the colony, and during the war’s most critical period, they had succeeded in doing so with minimal losses. Finally, the pressure became so intense that the enemy had to weaken the most crucial part of their overall position to relieve it. The goals of the operations had essentially been met when Clements found himself back at Arundel once again. French, often the harbinger of change in the war, had moved from Cape Town to Modder River, where a bigger opportunity than Colesberg awaited him. Clements continued to protect Naauwport, the key railway junction, until the advance of Roberts's army caused a complete turnaround in the entire military situation.





CHAPTER 15. SPION KOP.

Whilst Methuen and Gatacre were content to hold their own at the Modder and at Sterkstroom, and whilst the mobile and energetic French was herding the Boers into Colesberg, Sir Redvers Buller, the heavy, obdurate, inexplicable man, was gathering and organising his forces for another advance upon Ladysmith. Nearly a month had elapsed since the evil day when his infantry had retired, and his ten guns had not, from the frontal attack upon Colenso. Since then Sir Charles Warren's division of infantry and a considerable reinforcement of artillery had come to him. And yet in view of the terrible nature of the ground in front of him, of the fighting power of the Boers, and of the fact that they were always acting upon internal lines, his force even now was, in the opinion of competent judges, too weak for the matter in hand.

While Methuen and Gatacre were satisfied to maintain their positions at Modder and Sterkstroom, and while the mobile and energetic French were driving the Boers into Colesberg, Sir Redvers Buller, the stubborn and perplexing man, was gathering and organizing his forces for another push toward Ladysmith. Almost a month had passed since the disastrous day when his infantry retreated, and his ten guns did not support them in the frontal attack on Colenso. Since then, Sir Charles Warren's infantry division and a significant reinforcement of artillery had joined him. Yet, considering the challenging terrain ahead, the fighting strength of the Boers, and the fact that they were always operating on internal lines, his force was still, in the view of knowledgeable observers, too weak for the task at hand.

There remained, however, several points in his favour. His excellent infantry were full of zeal and of confidence in their chief. It cannot be denied, however much we may criticise some incidents in his campaign, that he possessed the gift of impressing and encouraging his followers, and, in spite of Colenso, the sight of his square figure and heavy impassive face conveyed an assurance of ultimate victory to those around him. In artillery he was very much stronger than before, especially in weight of metal. His cavalry was still weak in proportion to his other arms. When at last he moved out on January 10th to attempt to outflank the Boers, he took with him nineteen thousand infantry, three thousand cavalry, and sixty guns, which included six howitzers capable of throwing a 50-pound lyddite shell, and ten long-range naval pieces. Barton's Brigade and other troops were left behind to hold the base and line of communications.

There were still several advantages on his side. His excellent infantry was full of enthusiasm and confidence in their leader. It cannot be denied, no matter how much we may criticize certain events in his campaign, that he had the ability to inspire and uplift his followers, and despite Colenso, the sight of his sturdy figure and expressionless face gave those around him a sense of guaranteed success. He was much stronger in artillery than before, particularly in terms of firepower. However, his cavalry still lagged behind in comparison to his other forces. When he finally moved on January 10th to try to outflank the Boers, he brought along nineteen thousand infantry, three thousand cavalry, and sixty guns, which included six howitzers capable of firing a 50-pound lyddite shell and ten long-range naval guns. Barton’s Brigade and other troops stayed behind to secure the base and maintain the line of communications.

An analysis of Buller's force shows that its details were as follows:—

An analysis of Buller's force shows that its details were as follows:—

   Clery's Division.
      Hildyard's Brigade.
      2nd West Surrey.
      2nd Devonshire.
      2nd West Yorkshire.
      2nd East Surrey.
   Hart's Brigade.
      1st Inniskilling Fusiliers.
      1st Border Regiment.
      1st Connaught Rangers.
      2nd Dublin Fusiliers.
   Field Artillery, three batteries, 19th, 28th, 63rd; one squadron
      13th Hussars; Royal Engineers.

   Warren's Division.
      Lyttelton's Brigade.
      2nd Cameronians.
      3rd King's Royal Rifles.
      1st Durham Light Infantry.
      1st Rifle Brigade.
      Woodgate's Brigade.
      2nd Royal Lancaster.
      2nd Lancashire Fusiliers.
      1st South Lancashire.
      York and Lancasters.
   Field Artillery, three batteries, 7th, 78th, 73rd; one squadron
      13th Hussars.

   Corps Troops.
      Coke's Brigade.
      Imperial Light Infantry.
      2nd Somersets.
      2nd Dorsets.
      2nd Middlesex.
   61st Howitzer Battery; two 4.7 naval guns; eight naval 12-pounder guns;
      one squadron 13th Hussars; Royal Engineers.

   Cavalry.
      1st Royal Dragoons.
      14th Hussars.
      Four squadrons South African Horse.
      One squadron Imperial Light Horse.
      Bethune's Mounted Infantry.
      Thorneycroft's Mounted Infantry.
      One squadron Natal Carabineers.
      One squadron Natal Police.
      One company King's Royal Rifles Mounted Infantry.
      Six machine guns.
   Clery's Division.
      Hildyard's Brigade.
      2nd West Surrey.
      2nd Devonshire.
      2nd West Yorkshire.
      2nd East Surrey.
   Hart's Brigade.
      1st Inniskilling Fusiliers.
      1st Border Regiment.
      1st Connaught Rangers.
      2nd Dublin Fusiliers.
   Field Artillery, three batteries, 19th, 28th, 63rd; one squadron
      13th Hussars; Royal Engineers.

   Warren's Division.
      Lyttelton's Brigade.
      2nd Cameronians.
      3rd King's Royal Rifles.
      1st Durham Light Infantry.
      1st Rifle Brigade.
      Woodgate's Brigade.
      2nd Royal Lancaster.
      2nd Lancashire Fusiliers.
      1st South Lancashire.
      York and Lancasters.
   Field Artillery, three batteries, 7th, 78th, 73rd; one squadron
      13th Hussars.

   Corps Troops.
      Coke's Brigade.
      Imperial Light Infantry.
      2nd Somersets.
      2nd Dorsets.
      2nd Middlesex.
   61st Howitzer Battery; two 4.7 naval guns; eight naval 12-pounder guns;
      one squadron 13th Hussars; Royal Engineers.

   Cavalry.
      1st Royal Dragoons.
      14th Hussars.
      Four squadrons South African Horse.
      One squadron Imperial Light Horse.
      Bethune's Mounted Infantry.
      Thorneycroft's Mounted Infantry.
      One squadron Natal Carabineers.
      One squadron Natal Police.
      One company King's Royal Rifles Mounted Infantry.
      Six machine guns.

This is the force whose operations I shall attempt to describe.

This is the force I will try to describe.

About sixteen miles to the westward of Colenso there is a ford over the Tugela River which is called Potgieter's Drift. General Buller's apparent plan was to seize this, together with the ferry which runs at this point, and so to throw himself upon the right flank of the Colenso Boers. Once over the river there is one formidable line of hills to cross, but if this were passed there would be comparatively easy ground until the Ladysmith hills were reached. With high hopes Buller and his men sallied out upon their adventure.

About sixteen miles west of Colenso, there's a crossing over the Tugela River known as Potgieter's Drift. General Buller's apparent strategy was to take control of this crossing along with the ferry at this site, allowing him to move onto the right flank of the Colenso Boers. Once across the river, there is one challenging line of hills to navigate, but if they could get past that, the ground would be relatively easy until they reached the Ladysmith hills. With high hopes, Buller and his men set out on their mission.

Dundonald's cavalry force pushed rapidly forwards, crossed the Little Tugela, a tributary of the main river, at Springfield, and established themselves upon the hills which command the drift. Dundonald largely exceeded his instructions in going so far, and while we applaud his courage and judgment in doing so, we must remember and be charitable to those less fortunate officers whose private enterprise has ended in disaster and reproof. There can be no doubt that the enemy intended to hold all this tract, and that it was only the quickness of our initial movements which forestalled them. Early in the morning a small party of the South African Horse, under Lieutenant Carlisle, swam the broad river under fire and brought back the ferry boat, an enterprise which was fortunately bloodless, but which was most coolly planned and gallantly carried out. The way was now open to our advance, and could it have been carried out as rapidly as it had begun the Boers might conceivably have been scattered before they could concentrate. It was not the fault of the infantry that it was not so. They were trudging, mud-spattered and jovial, at the very heels of the horses, after a forced march which was one of the most trying of the whole campaign. But an army of 20,000 men cannot be conveyed over a river twenty miles from any base without elaborate preparations being made to feed them. The roads were in such a state that the wagons could hardly move, heavy rain had just fallen, and every stream was swollen into a river; bullocks might strain, and traction engines pant, and horses die, but by no human means could the stores be kept up if the advance guard were allowed to go at their own pace. And so, having ensured an ultimate crossing of the river by the seizure of Mount Alice, the high hill which commands the drift, the forces waited day after day, watching in the distance the swarms of strenuous dark figures who dug and hauled and worked upon the hillsides opposite, barring the road which they would have to take. Far away on the horizon a little shining point twinkled amid the purple haze, coming and going from morning to night. It was the heliograph of Ladysmith, explaining her troubles and calling for help, and from the heights of Mount Alice an answering star of hope glimmered and shone, soothing, encouraging, explaining, while the stern men of the veld dug furiously at their trenches in between. 'We are coming! We are coming!' cried Mount Alice. 'Over our bodies,' said the men with the spades and mattocks.

Dundonald's cavalry quickly moved ahead, crossed the Little Tugela, a tributary of the main river, at Springfield, and set themselves up on the hills that overlook the crossing. Dundonald went beyond his orders in reaching this point, and while we commend his bravery and judgment, we should also be understanding of those other officers whose attempts ended in failure and criticism. There's no doubt that the enemy aimed to control this area, and it was only our swift initial actions that thwarted them. Early in the morning, a small group from the South African Horse, led by Lieutenant Carlisle, swam across the wide river under fire and brought back the ferry boat—a daring task that fortunately didn’t involve any bloodshed and was planned and executed with great coolness. The path was now clear for our advance, and had it continued as quickly as it started, the Boers might have been scattered before they could regroup. It wasn't the infantry's fault that this didn't happen. They were slogging along, mud-covered and cheerful, right behind the horses after a forced march that was one of the toughest of the entire campaign. But moving an army of 20,000 men across a river twenty miles from a base requires careful planning to feed them. The roads were in such poor condition that the wagons could barely move; heavy rain had just fallen, and every stream had swelled into a river. Bullocks could struggle, traction engines could strain, and horses could tire, but no human effort could keep the supplies flowing if the advance guard moved at their own pace. So, after ensuring a final crossing of the river by taking Mount Alice, the high hill overseeing the crossing, the forces waited day after day, watching from a distance the groups of determined figures digging and hauling on the opposite hillside, blocking the path they would need to take. Far on the horizon, a small shining point flickered amid the purple haze, appearing and disappearing from morning to night. It was the heliograph from Ladysmith, depicting her difficulties and calling for help, and from the heights of Mount Alice, a responding light of hope glimmered and shone, reassuring, encouraging, explaining, while the tough men of the veld were digging furiously in their trenches in between. 'We are coming! We are coming!' called out Mount Alice. 'Over our bodies,' replied the men with the shovels and picks.

On Thursday, January 12th, Dundonald seized the heights, on the 13th the ferry was taken and Lyttelton's Brigade came up to secure that which the cavalry had gained. On the 14th the heavy naval guns were brought up to cover the crossing. On the 15th Coke's Brigade and other infantry concentrated at the drift. On the 16th the four regiments of Lyttelton's Brigade went across, and then, and only then, it began to be apparent that Buller's plan was a more deeply laid one than had been thought, and that all this business of Potgieter's Drift was really a demonstration in order to cover the actual crossing which was to be effected at a ford named Trichard's Drift, five miles to the westward. Thus, while Lyttelton's and Coke's Brigades were ostentatiously attacking Potgieter's from in front, three other brigades (Hart's, Woodgate's, and Hildyard's) were marched rapidly on the night of the 16th to the real place of crossing, to which Dundonald's cavalry had already ridden. There, on the 17th, a pontoon bridge had been erected, and a strong force was thrown over in such a way as to turn the right of the trenches in front of Potgieter's. It was admirably planned and excellently carried out, certainly the most strategic movement, if there could be said to have been any strategic movement upon the British side, in the campaign up to that date. On the 18th the infantry, the cavalry, and most of the guns were safely across without loss of life. The Boers, however, still retained their formidable internal lines, and the only result of a change of position seemed to be to put them to the trouble of building a new series of those terrible entrenchments at which they had become such experts. After all the combinations the British were, it is true, upon the right side of the river, but they were considerably further from Ladysmith than when they started. There are times, however, when twenty miles are less than fourteen, and it was hoped that this might prove to be among them. But the first step was the most serious one, for right across their front lay the Boer position upon the edge of a lofty plateau, with the high peak of Spion Kop forming the left corner of it. If once that main ridge could be captured or commanded, it would carry them halfway to the goal. It was for that essential line of hills that two of the most dogged races upon earth were about to contend. An immediate advance might have secured the position at once, but, for some reason which is inexplicable, an aimless march to the left was followed by a retirement to the original position of Warren's division, and so two invaluable days were wasted. We have the positive assurance of Commandant Edwards, who was Chief of Staff to General Botha, that a vigorous turning movement upon the left would at this time have completely outflanked the Boer position and opened a way to Ladysmith.

On Thursday, January 12th, Dundonald took the high ground, on the 13th the ferry was secured, and Lyttelton's Brigade arrived to consolidate the gains made by the cavalry. On the 14th, heavy naval guns were brought in to support the crossing. On the 15th, Coke's Brigade and other infantry gathered at the crossing point. On the 16th, all four regiments of Lyttelton's Brigade crossed over, and it became clear that Buller's plan was more elaborate than previously thought, with the whole situation at Potgieter's Drift serving as a distraction to facilitate the actual crossing at Trichard's Drift, five miles to the west. While Lyttelton's and Coke's Brigades were visibly attacking Potgieter's from the front, three other brigades (Hart's, Woodgate's, and Hildyard's) moved rapidly on the night of the 16th to the real crossing point, which Dundonald's cavalry had already reached. There, on the 17th, a pontoon bridge was set up, and a strong force was sent across to flank the trenches in front of Potgieter's. This was brilliantly planned and executed, certainly the most strategic move, if any strategic move could be attributed to the British, in the campaign up to that point. On the 18th, the infantry, cavalry, and most of the artillery crossed safely with no casualties. However, the Boers still held their formidable internal lines, and the only outcome of the repositioning seemed to be that they had to create a new set of those terrible trenches they had mastered. After all the maneuvers, the British were indeed on the correct side of the river, but they were significantly farther from Ladysmith than when they began. There are times, though, when twenty miles feel shorter than fourteen, and it was hoped that this might be one of those instances. The first step was the most critical since the Boer position lay directly across their front on the edge of a high plateau, with the tall peak of Spion Kop marking its left corner. If they could capture or gain control of that main ridge, it would bring them halfway to their objective. Two of the most determined races on earth were about to clash over that vital line of hills. An immediate advance could have secured the position right away, but for some inexplicable reason, there was a pointless march to the left, followed by a retreat back to Warren's division's original position, wasting two precious days. Commandant Edwards, Chief of Staff to General Botha, confirmed that a strong flanking movement to the left at this time would have completely outmaneuvered the Boer position and opened a route to Ladysmith.

A small success, the more welcome for its rarity, came to the British arms on this first day. Dundonald's men had been thrown out to cover the left of the infantry advance and to feel for the right of the Boer position. A strong Boer patrol, caught napping for once, rode into an ambuscade of the irregulars. Some escaped, some held out most gallantly in a kopje, but the final result was a surrender of twenty-four unwounded prisoners, and the finding of thirteen killed and wounded, including de Mentz, the field-cornet of Heilbron. Two killed and two wounded were the British losses in this well-managed affair. Dundonald's force then took its position upon the extreme left of Warren's advance.

A small success, which was especially appreciated because it was so rare, came to the British on this first day. Dundonald's men were sent out to cover the left side of the infantry advance and to test the right flank of the Boer position. A strong Boer patrol, caught off guard for once, rode into an ambush set by the irregulars. Some managed to escape, while others fought bravely in a hill, but in the end, twenty-four uninjured prisoners surrendered, and thirteen were found killed or injured, including de Mentz, the field-cornet of Heilbron. The British losses in this well-conducted operation were two killed and two wounded. Dundonald's force then moved to the far left of Warren's advance.

The British were now moving upon the Boers in two separate bodies, the one which included Lyttelton's and Coke's Brigades from Potgieter's Drift, making what was really a frontal attack, while the main body under Warren, who had crossed at Trichard's Drift, was swinging round upon the Boer right. Midway between the two movements the formidable bastion of Spion Kop stood clearly outlined against the blue Natal sky. The heavy naval guns on Mount Alice (two 4.7's and eight twelve-pounders) were so placed as to support either advance, and the howitzer battery was given to Lyttelton to help the frontal attack. For two days the British pressed slowly but steadily on to the Boers under the cover of an incessant rain of shells. Dour and long-suffering the Boers made no reply, save with sporadic rifle-fire, and refused until the crisis should come to expose their great guns to the chance of injury.

The British were now advancing on the Boers in two separate groups: one that included Lyttelton's and Coke's Brigades from Potgieter's Drift, making what was essentially a frontal attack, while the main force under Warren, who had crossed at Trichard's Drift, was moving around the Boer right flank. Halfway between the two movements, the impressive stronghold of Spion Kop was clearly visible against the blue Natal sky. The heavy naval guns on Mount Alice (two 4.7-inch and eight twelve-pounders) were set up to support either advance, and Lyttelton was given the howitzer battery to assist with the frontal attack. For two days, the British pushed slowly but steadily towards the Boers under a constant barrage of shells. Stoic and enduring, the Boers offered little response, aside from occasional rifle shots, and until the moment of crisis, they refused to risk their big guns being damaged by exposure.

On January 19th Warren's turning movement began to bring him into closer touch with the enemy, his thirty-six field guns and the six howitzers which had returned to him crushing down the opposition which faced him. The ground in front of him was pleated into long folds, and his advance meant the carrying of ridge after ridge. In the earlier stages of the war this would have entailed a murderous loss; but we had learned our lesson, and the infantry now, with intervals of ten paces, and every man choosing his own cover, went up in proper Boer form, carrying position after position, the enemy always retiring with dignity and decorum. There was no victory on one side or rout on the other—only a steady advance and an orderly retirement. That night the infantry slept in their fighting line, going on again at three in the morning, and light broke to find not only rifles, but the long-silent Boer guns all blazing at the British advance. Again, as at Colenso, the brunt of the fighting fell upon Hart's Irish Brigade, who upheld that immemorial tradition of valour with which that name, either in or out of the British service, has invariably been associated. Upon the Lancashire Fusiliers and the York and Lancasters came also a large share of the losses and the glory. Slowly but surely the inexorable line of the British lapped over the ground which the enemy had held. A gallant colonial, Tobin of the South African Horse, rode up one hill and signaled with his hat that it was clear. His comrades followed closely at his heels, and occupied the position with the loss of Childe, their Major. During this action Lyttelton had held the Boers in their trenches opposite to him by advancing to within 1500 yards of them, but the attack was not pushed further. On the evening of this day, January 20th, the British had gained some miles of ground, and the total losses had been about three hundred killed and wounded. The troops were in good heart, and all promised well for the future. Again the men lay where they had fought, and again the dawn heard the crash of the great guns and the rattle of the musketry.

On January 19th, Warren's movement started to bring him closer to the enemy, with his thirty-six field guns and six howitzers overpowering the opposition he faced. The ground in front of him undulated in long folds, and advancing meant conquering ridge after ridge. In the early stages of the war, this would have resulted in devastating losses; but we had learned our lessons. The infantry, now maintaining ten-paces intervals and each choosing their own cover, advanced in proper Boer style, taking position after position while the enemy retired with dignity. There was no clear victory for one side or defeat for the other—just a steady advance and an orderly withdrawal. That night, the infantry slept in their fighting line, resuming at three in the morning, and dawn broke to reveal not only rifles but also the previously silent Boer guns firing at the British advance. Once again, as at Colenso, the heaviest fighting fell on Hart's Irish Brigade, who upheld the enduring tradition of courage associated with that name, whether in or out of the British service. The Lancashire Fusiliers and the York and Lancasters also bore a large share of the losses and the glory. Slowly but surely, the relentless British line overtook the ground previously held by the enemy. A brave colonial, Tobin of the South African Horse, rode up one hill and signaled with his hat that it was clear. His comrades quickly followed and took the position, albeit with the loss of their Major, Childe. During this action, Lyttelton kept the Boers in their trenches opposite him by advancing to within 1500 yards, but the attack wasn't pushed further. By the evening of January 20th, the British had gained several miles of ground, with total losses at around three hundred killed and wounded. The troops were in good spirits, and everything looked promising for the future. Once again, the men rested where they had fought, and as dawn approached, the sound of the big guns and the rattle of musketry resumed.

The operations of this day began with a sustained cannonade from the field batteries and 61st Howitzer Battery, which was as fiercely answered by the enemy. About eleven the infantry began to go forward with an advance which would have astonished the martinets of Aldershot, an irregular fringe of crawlers, wrigglers, writhers, crouchers, all cool and deliberate, giving away no points in this grim game of death. Where now were the officers with their distinctive dresses and flashing swords, where the valiant rushes over the open, where the men who were too proud to lie down?—the tactics of three months ago seemed as obsolete as those of the Middle Ages. All day the line undulated forward, and by evening yet another strip of rock-strewn ground had been gained, and yet another train of ambulances was bearing a hundred of our wounded back to the base hospitals at Frere. It was on Hildyard's Brigade on the left that the fighting and the losses of this day principally fell. By the morning of January 22nd the regiments were clustering thickly all round the edges of the Boer main position, and the day was spent in resting the weary men, and in determining at what point the final assault should be delivered. On the right front, commanding the Boer lines on either side, towered the stark eminence of Spion Kop, so called because from its summit the Boer voortrekkers had first in 1835 gazed down upon the promised land of Natal. If that could only be seized and held! Buller and Warren swept its bald summit with their field-glasses. It was a venture. But all war is a venture; and the brave man is he who ventures most. One fiery rush and the master-key of all these locked doors might be in our keeping. That evening there came a telegram to London which left the whole Empire in a hush of anticipation. Spion Kop was to be attacked that night.

The day's operations kicked off with a heavy barrage from the field batteries and the 61st Howitzer Battery, which was met with fierce resistance from the enemy. Around eleven, the infantry moved forward in a way that would have shocked the strict military trainers at Aldershot. They advanced as a ragged line of crawlers, wrigglers, and crouchers, all calm and focused, revealing no weaknesses in this deadly game. Where were the officers in their distinctive uniforms and shining swords? Where were the brave charges across open ground? Where were the soldiers who wouldn’t lie down?—the strategies from three months ago seemed just as outdated as those from the Middle Ages. Throughout the day, the line shifted forward, and by evening, yet another stretch of rocky terrain had been taken, with another convoy of ambulances carrying a hundred of our injured back to the base hospitals at Frere. Hildyard's Brigade on the left bore the brunt of the fighting and losses that day. By the morning of January 22nd, the regiments were thickly gathered around the edges of the Boer main position, spending the day resting the exhausted men and deciding where to launch the final assault. On the right, dominating the Boer lines, loomed the stark silhouette of Spion Kop, named because it was from there that the Boer voortrekkers first looked down on the promised land of Natal in 1835. If that could be captured and held! Buller and Warren scanned its bare peak with their binoculars. It was a gamble. But all war is a gamble, and the courageous are those who take the biggest risks. One bold charge could unlock all these sealed doors. That evening, a telegram arrived in London that sent a wave of anticipation across the whole Empire. Spion Kop was set to be attacked that night.

The troops which were selected for the task were eight companies of the 2nd Lancashire Fusiliers, six of the 2nd Royal Lancasters, two of the 1st South Lancashires, 180 of Thorneycroft's, and half a company of Sappers. It was to be a North of England job.

The troops chosen for the mission consisted of eight companies of the 2nd Lancashire Fusiliers, six from the 2nd Royal Lancasters, two from the 1st South Lancashires, 180 from Thorneycroft's, and half a company of Sappers. This was meant to be a job for the North of England.

Under the friendly cover of a starless night the men, in Indian file, like a party of Iroquois braves upon the war trail, stole up the winding and ill-defined path which led to the summit. Woodgate, the Lancashire Brigadier, and Blomfield of the Fusiliers led the way. It was a severe climb of 2000 feet, coming after arduous work over broken ground, but the affair was well-timed, and it was at that blackest hour which precedes the dawn that the last steep ascent was reached. The Fusiliers crouched down among the rocks to recover their breath, and saw far down in the plain beneath them the placid lights which showed where their comrades were resting. A fine rain was falling, and rolling clouds hung low over their heads. The men with unloaded rifles and fixed bayonets stole on once more, their bodies bent, their eyes peering through the mirk for the first sign of the enemy—that enemy whose first sign has usually been a shattering volley. Thorneycroft's men with their gallant leader had threaded their way up into the advance. Then the leading files found that they were walking on the level. The crest had been gained.

Under the friendly cover of a starless night, the men moved in single file, like a group of Iroquois warriors on a warpath, making their way up the winding and unclear trail that led to the summit. Woodgate, the Brigadier from Lancashire, and Blomfield from the Fusiliers were at the front. It was a tough climb of 2000 feet after exhausting work over rough terrain, but it was well-timed, reaching the steep final stretch at that darkest moment before dawn. The Fusiliers crouched down among the rocks to catch their breath and saw the calm lights far down in the plains, showing where their comrades were resting. A light rain was falling, and low-hanging clouds surrounded them. The men, with unloaded rifles and fixed bayonets, moved forward again, their bodies bent and eyes peering through the darkness for the first sign of the enemy—an enemy whose first sign has often been a sudden, devastating gunfire. Thorneycroft's men, led by their brave leader, had navigated their way into the advance. Then the leading group realized they were walking on level ground. They had reached the crest.

With slow steps and bated breath, the open line of skirmishers stole across it. Was it possible that it had been entirely abandoned? Suddenly a raucous shout of 'Wie da?' came out of the darkness, then a shot, then a splutter of musketry and a yell, as the Fusiliers sprang onwards with their bayonets. The Boer post of Vryheid burghers clattered and scrambled away into the darkness, and a cheer that roused both the sleeping armies told that the surprise had been complete and the position won.

With slow steps and held breath, the line of skirmishers quietly moved across. Could it be that it had been completely abandoned? Suddenly, a loud shout of 'Wie da?' erupted from the darkness, followed by a shot, a burst of gunfire, and a yell, as the Fusiliers charged forward with their bayonets. The Boer post of Vryheid burghers hurriedly retreated into the darkness, and a cheer that awakened both sleeping armies signaled that the surprise had been total and the position secured.

In the grey light of the breaking day the men advanced along the narrow undulating ridge, the prominent end of which they had captured. Another trench faced them, but it was weakly held and abandoned. Then the men, uncertain what remained beyond, halted and waited for full light to see where they were, and what the work was which lay before them—a fatal halt, as the result proved, and yet one so natural that it is hard to blame the officer who ordered it. Indeed, he might have seemed more culpable had he pushed blindly on, and so lost the advantage which had been already gained.

In the dim light of dawn, the men moved forward along the narrow, rolling ridge that they had taken control of. Another trench was in front of them, but it was only weakly defended and abandoned. The men, unsure of what lay ahead, paused and waited for full daylight to understand their position and the tasks that lay ahead of them—an unfortunate pause, as it later turned out, but one that felt completely reasonable, making it hard to criticize the officer who made the call. In fact, he might have been seen as more at fault if he had pressed on recklessly and squandered the advantage they had already secured.

About eight o'clock, with the clearing of the mist, General Woodgate saw how matters stood. The ridge, one end of which he held, extended away, rising and falling for some miles. Had he the whole of the end plateau, and had he guns, he might hope to command the rest of the position. But he held only half the plateau, and at the further end of it the Boers were strongly entrenched. The Spion Kop mountain was really the salient or sharp angle of the Boer position, so that the British were exposed to a cross fire both from the left and right. Beyond were other eminences which sheltered strings of riflemen and several guns. The plateau which the British held was very much narrower than was usually represented in the press. In many places the possible front was not much more than a hundred yards wide, and the troops were compelled to bunch together, as there was not room for a single company to take an extended formation. The cover upon this plateau was scanty, far too scanty for the force upon it, and the shell fire—especially the fire of the pom-poms—soon became very murderous. To mass the troops under the cover of the edge of the plateau might naturally suggest itself, but with great tactical skill the Boer advanced line from Commandant Prinsloo's Heidelberg and Carolina commandos kept so aggressive an attitude that the British could not weaken the lines opposed to them. Their skirmishers were creeping round too in such a way that the fire was really coming from three separate points, left, centre, and right, and every corner of the position was searched by their bullets. Early in the action the gallant Woodgate and many of his Lancashire men were shot down. The others spread out and held on, firing occasionally at the whisk of a rifle-barrel or the glimpse of a broad-brimmed hat.

About eight o'clock, as the mist cleared, General Woodgate understood the situation. The ridge, one end of which he held, stretched on, rising and falling for several miles. If he had the entire plateau and some artillery, he might have been able to control the rest of the area. But he only had half of the plateau, and at the far end, the Boers were strongly entrenched. The Spion Kop mountain was essentially the key position of the Boer defenses, meaning the British were exposed to crossfire from both the left and right. Beyond that, there were other hills that concealed groups of riflemen and several cannons. The plateau the British controlled was much narrower than was often portrayed in the press. In many areas, the front line was barely more than a hundred yards wide, forcing the troops to cluster together since there wasn’t enough room for a single company to spread out. The cover on this plateau was very limited, far too limited for the size of the force stationed there, and the shelling—especially from the pom-poms—quickly became deadly. It might have seemed logical to gather the troops under the cover of the plateau's edge, but with impressive tactical skill, the Boer advance line from Commandant Prinsloo's Heidelberg and Carolina commandos maintained such an aggressive stance that the British couldn't spare forces from their lines. Their skirmishers were moving around in a way that made the fire come from three separate directions: left, center, and right, and every part of the position was targeted by their bullets. Early in the battle, the brave Woodgate and many of his Lancashire men were shot down. The others spread out and held their ground, firing back whenever they spotted a rifle barrel or a flash of a broad-brimmed hat.

From morning to midday, the shell, Maxim, and rifle fire swept across the kop in a continual driving shower. The British guns in the plain below failed to localise the position of the enemy's, and they were able to vent their concentrated spite upon the exposed infantry. No blame attaches to the gunners for this, as a hill intervened to screen the Boer artillery, which consisted of five big guns and two pom-poms.

From morning until noon, artillery shells, Maxim machine gun fire, and rifle shots rained down on the ridge in a constant barrage. The British guns in the plain below couldn't pinpoint the enemy's location, allowing the Boer forces to unleash their concentrated fire on the vulnerable infantry. The gunners aren’t at fault for this, as a hill blocked their view of the Boer artillery, which included five large guns and two pom-poms.

Upon the fall of Woodgate, Thorneycroft, who bore the reputation of a determined fighter, was placed at the suggestion of Buller in charge of the defence of the hill, and he was reinforced after noon by Coke's brigade, the Middlesex, the Dorsets, and the Somersets, together with the Imperial Light Infantry. The addition of this force to the defenders of the plateau tended to increase the casualty returns rather than the strength of the defence. Three thousand more rifles could do nothing to check the fire of the invisible cannon, and it was this which was the main source of the losses, while on the other hand the plateau had become so cumbered with troops that a shell could hardly fail to do damage. There was no cover to shelter them and no room for them to extend. The pressure was most severe upon the shallow trenches in the front, which had been abandoned by the Boers and were held by the Lancashire Fusiliers. They were enfiladed by rifle and cannon, and the dead and wounded outnumbered the hale. So close were the skirmishers that on at least one occasion Boer and Briton found themselves on each side of the same rock. Once a handful of men, tormented beyond endurance, sprang up as a sign that they had had enough, but Thorneycroft, a man of huge physique, rushed forward to the advancing Boers. 'You may go to hell!' he yelled. 'I command here, and allow no surrender. Go on with your firing.' Nothing could exceed the gallantry of Louis Botha's men in pushing the attack. Again and again they made their way up to the British firing line, exposing themselves with a recklessness which, with the exception of the grand attack upon Ladysmith, was unique in our experience of them. About two o'clock they rushed one trench occupied by the Fusiliers and secured the survivors of two companies as prisoners, but were subsequently driven out again. A detached group of the South Lancashires was summoned to surrender. 'When I surrender,' cried Colour-Sergeant Nolan, 'it will be my dead body!' Hour after hour of the unintermitting crash of the shells among the rocks and of the groans and screams of men torn and burst by the most horrible of all wounds had shaken the troops badly. Spectators from below who saw the shells pitching at the rate of seven a minute on to the crowded plateau marvelled at the endurance which held the devoted men to their post. Men were wounded and wounded and wounded yet again, and still went on fighting. Never since Inkerman had we had so grim a soldier's battle. The company officers were superb. Captain Muriel of the Middlesex was shot through the check while giving a cigarette to a wounded man, continued to lead his company, and was shot again through the brain. Scott Moncrieff of the same regiment was only disabled by the fourth bullet which hit him. Grenfell of Thorneycroft's was shot, and exclaimed, 'That's all right. It's not much.' A second wound made him remark, 'I can get on all right.' The third killed him. Ross of the Lancasters, who had crawled from a sickbed, was found dead upon the furthest crest. Young Murray of the Scottish Rifles, dripping from five wounds, still staggered about among his men. And the men were worthy of such officers. 'No retreat! No retreat!' they yelled when some of the front line were driven in. In all regiments there are weaklings and hang-backs, and many a man was wandering down the reverse slopes when he should have been facing death upon the top, but as a body British troops have never stood firm through a more fiery ordeal than on that fatal hill...

Upon the fall of Woodgate, Thorneycroft, known for being a determined fighter, was put in charge of defending the hill at Buller's suggestion. After noon, he got reinforcements from Coke's brigade, along with the Middlesex, Dorsets, and Somersets, and the Imperial Light Infantry. Adding this force to the defenders of the plateau only increased the casualty numbers instead of strengthening the defense. Three thousand more rifles couldn’t stop the fire from the hidden artillery, which was the primary cause of the losses, while the plateau was so overcrowded with troops that a shell was bound to inflict harm. There was no cover for them, nor space for them to spread out. The pressure was heaviest on the shallow trenches at the front, which had been abandoned by the Boers but were held by the Lancashire Fusiliers. They were exposed to rifle and cannon fire, with the dead and wounded outnumbering the unhurt. The skirmishers were so close that on at least one occasion Boer and British soldiers found themselves on either side of the same rock. Once, a handful of men, pushed beyond their limits, stood up to show they had enough, but Thorneycroft, a large man, charged toward the advancing Boers. "You may go to hell!" he shouted. "I’m in charge here, and I allow no surrender. Keep firing!" The bravery of Louis Botha's men in launching their attacks was extraordinary. Time and again, they advanced on the British firing line, exposing themselves with a recklessness that, apart from the grand attack on Ladysmith, was unlike anything we had seen from them before. Around two o’clock, they stormed a trench manned by the Fusiliers, capturing survivors from two companies, but they were driven out again. A detached group from the South Lancashires was called to surrender. "When I surrender," shouted Colour-Sergeant Nolan, "it’ll be my dead body!" Hours passed under the continuous roar of the shells among the rocks and the groans and screams of men torn apart by the most horrific wounds, shaking the troops severely. Onlookers below, witnessing shells landing at a rate of seven a minute on the packed plateau, were amazed at the endurance that kept those dedicated soldiers at their posts. Men were wounded again and again, and still fought on. Since Inkerman, we hadn’t faced such a grim battle. The company officers were outstanding. Captain Muriel of the Middlesex was shot in the cheek while handing a cigarette to a wounded man, yet he continued to lead his company and was shot again in the brain. Scott Moncrieff of the same regiment was only put out of action by the fourth bullet that hit him. Grenfell from Thorneycroft’s unit was shot and remarked, "That’s all right. It’s not much." A second wound led him to say, "I can manage." The third one killed him. Ross from the Lancasters, who had crawled out of bed due to illness, was found dead on the far crest. Young Murray from the Scottish Rifles, bleeding from five wounds, still staggered among his men. And the men were deserving of such officers. "No retreat! No retreat!" they yelled when some of the front line fell back. In every regiment, there are weaklings and those who hesitate, and many men strayed down the reverse slopes when they should have faced death at the top, but overall, British troops had never held firm through a more intense ordeal than on that disastrous hill...

The position was so bad that no efforts of officers or men could do anything to mend it. They were in a murderous dilemma. If they fell back for cover the Boer riflemen would rush the position. If they held their ground this horrible shell fire must continue, which they had no means of answering. Down at Gun Hill in front of the Boer position we had no fewer than five batteries, the 78th, 7th, 73rd, 63rd, and 61st howitzer, but a ridge intervened between them and the Boer guns which were shelling Spion Kop, and this ridge was strongly entrenched. The naval guns from distant Mount Alice did what they could, but the range was very long, and the position of the Boer guns uncertain. The artillery, situated as it was, could not save the infantry from the horrible scourging which they were enduring.

The situation was so dire that no amount of effort from the officers or soldiers could improve it. They were stuck in a deadly dilemma. If they retreated for cover, the Boer riflemen would charge their position. If they held their ground, they would have to endure relentless shelling that they couldn’t return fire against. Down at Gun Hill in front of the Boer position, we had no fewer than five batteries—the 78th, 7th, 73rd, 63rd, and 61st howitzer—but a ridge blocked them from the Boer guns that were bombarding Spion Kop, and this ridge was heavily fortified. The naval guns from far-off Mount Alice did what they could, but the distance was great, and the positions of the Boer guns were uncertain. The artillery, situated as it was, couldn’t protect the infantry from the brutal onslaught they were facing.

There remains the debated question whether the British guns could have been taken to the top. Mr. Winston Churchill, the soundness of whose judgment has been frequently demonstrated during the war, asserts that it might have been done. Without venturing to contradict one who was personally present, I venture to think that there is strong evidence to show that it could not have been done without blasting and other measures, for which there was no possible time. Captain Hanwell of the 78th R.F.A., upon the day of the battle had the very utmost difficulty with the help of four horses in getting a light Maxim on to the top, and his opinion, with that of other artillery officers, is that the feat was an impossible one until the path had been prepared. When night fell Colonel Sim was despatched with a party of Sappers to clear the track and to prepare two emplacements upon the top, but in his advance he met the retiring infantry.

There’s still a debated question about whether the British guns could have been brought to the top. Mr. Winston Churchill, whose judgment has often been proven reliable during the war, claims it might have been possible. Without trying to contradict someone who was actually there, I believe there’s strong evidence that it couldn’t have been done without blasting and other methods, for which there simply wasn't enough time. Captain Hanwell of the 78th R.F.A. had a really hard time getting a light Maxim to the top, even with the help of four horses on the day of the battle. His opinion, along with that of other artillery officers, is that it was impossible until the path was prepared. When night came, Colonel Sim was sent with a team of Sappers to clear the track and set up two emplacements at the top, but on his way, he ran into the retiring infantry.

Throughout the day reinforcements had pushed up the hill, until two full brigades had been drawn into the fight. From the other side of the ridge Lyttelton sent up the Scottish Rifles, who reached the summit, and added their share to the shambles upon the top. As the shades of night closed in, and the glare of the bursting shells became more lurid, the men lay extended upon the rocky ground, parched and exhausted. They were hopelessly jumbled together, with the exception of the Dorsets, whose cohesion may have been due to superior discipline, less exposure, or to the fact that their khaki differed somewhat in colour from that of the others. Twelve hours of so terrible an experience had had a strange effect upon many of the men. Some were dazed and battle-struck, incapable of clear understanding. Some were as incoherent as drunkards. Some lay in an overpowering drowsiness. The most were doggedly patient and long-suffering, with a mighty longing for water obliterating every other emotion.

Throughout the day, reinforcements pushed up the hill until two full brigades were involved in the fight. From the other side of the ridge, Lyttelton sent up the Scottish Rifles, who reached the summit and added to the chaos at the top. As night fell and the bright flashes of exploding shells became more intense, the men lay stretched out on the rocky ground, parched and exhausted. They were hopelessly mixed together, except for the Dorsets, whose unity may have been due to better discipline, less exposure, or the fact that their khaki was a slightly different color from the others. Twelve hours of such a horrific experience had a strange effect on many of the men. Some were dazed and battle-weary, unable to think clearly. Some were as incoherent as drunk people. Some lay in a heavy drowsiness. Most were stubbornly patient and enduring, with an overwhelming craving for water overshadowing every other feeling.

Before evening fell a most gallant and successful attempt had been made by the third battalion of the King's Royal Rifles from Lyttelton's Brigade to relieve the pressure upon their comrades on Spion Kop. In order to draw part of the Boer fire away they ascended from the northern side and carried the hills which formed a continuation of the same ridge. The movement was meant to be no more than a strong demonstration, but the riflemen pushed it until, breathless but victorious, they stood upon the very crest of the position, leaving nearly a hundred dead or dying to show the path which they had taken. Their advance being much further than was desired, they were recalled, and it was at the moment that Buchanan Riddell, their brave Colonel, stood up to read Lyttelton's note that he fell with a Boer bullet through his brain, making one more of those gallant leaders who died as they had lived, at the head of their regiments. Chisholm, Dick-Cunyngham, Downman, Wilford, Gunning, Sherston, Thackeray, Sitwell, MacCarthy O'Leary, Airlie—they have led their men up to and through the gates of death. It was a fine exploit of the 3rd Rifles. 'A finer bit of skirmishing, a finer bit of climbing, and a finer bit of fighting, I have never seen,' said their Brigadier. It is certain that if Lyttelton had not thrown his two regiments into the fight the pressure upon the hill-top might have become unendurable; and it seems also certain that if he had only held on to the position which the Rifles had gained, the Boers would never have reoccupied Spion Kop.

Before evening set in, the third battalion of the King's Royal Rifles from Lyttelton's Brigade made a brave and successful attempt to relieve the pressure on their comrades at Spion Kop. To draw some of the Boer fire away, they moved up from the northern side and took the hills that were part of the same ridge. The operation was intended to be just a strong show of force, but the riflemen pressed on until, out of breath but victorious, they stood at the very top of the position, leaving nearly a hundred dead or dying behind them as testament to the path they had taken. Their advance went much further than planned, so they were called back, and at the moment Colonel Buchanan Riddell, their courageous leader, stood up to read Lyttelton's note, he was shot in the head by a Boer bullet, joining the ranks of those brave leaders who died as they lived, leading their troops. Chisholm, Dick-Cunyngham, Downman, Wilford, Gunning, Sherston, Thackeray, Sitwell, MacCarthy O'Leary, Airlie—they have all led their men up to and through the gates of death. It was an impressive maneuver by the 3rd Rifles. "I've never seen a finer bit of skirmishing, climbing, and fighting," said their Brigadier. It’s clear that if Lyttelton hadn’t sent his two regiments into the battle, the pressure on the hilltop could have become unbearable, and it also seems likely that if he had just held onto the position gained by the Rifles, the Boers would never have taken back Spion Kop.

And now, under the shadow of night, but with the shells bursting thickly over the plateau, the much-tried Thorneycroft had to make up his mind whether he should hold on for another such day as he had endured, or whether now, in the friendly darkness, he should remove his shattered force. Could he have seen the discouragement of the Boers and the preparations which they had made for retirement, he would have held his ground. But this was hidden from him, while the horror of his own losses was but too apparent. Forty per cent of his men were down. Thirteen hundred dead and dying are a grim sight upon a wide-spread battle-field, but when this number is heaped upon a confined space, where from a single high rock the whole litter of broken and shattered bodies can be seen, and the groans of the stricken rise in one long droning chorus to the ear, then it is an iron mind indeed which can resist such evidence of disaster. In a harder age Wellington was able to survey four thousand bodies piled in the narrow compass of the breach of Badajos, but his resolution was sustained by the knowledge that the military end for which they fell had been accomplished. Had his task been unfinished it is doubtful whether even his steadfast soul would not have flinched from its completion. Thorneycroft saw the frightful havoc of one day, and he shrank from the thought of such another. 'Better six battalions safely down the hill than a mop up in the morning,' said he, and he gave the word to retire. One who had met the troops as they staggered down has told me how far they were from being routed. In mixed array, but steadily and in order, the long thin line trudged through the darkness. Their parched lips would not articulate, but they whispered 'Water! Where is water?' as they toiled upon their way. At the bottom of the hill they formed into regiments once more, and marched back to the camp. In the morning the blood-spattered hill-top, with its piles of dead and of wounded, were in the hands of Botha and his men, whose valour and perseverance deserved the victory which they had won. There is no doubt now that at 3 A.M. of that morning Botha, knowing that the Rifles had carried Burger's position, regarded the affair as hopeless, and that no one was more astonished than he when he found, on the report of two scouts, that it was a victory and not a defeat which had come to him.

And now, under the cover of night, with shells exploding all around the plateau, the exhausted Thorneycroft had to decide whether to stick it out for another tough day or to retreat under the friendly darkness with his battered troops. If he had been able to see the Boers' discouragement and their plans to retreat, he would have held his position. But that was hidden from him, while the weight of his own losses was painfully clear. Forty percent of his men were down. Thirteen hundred dead and wounded is a grim sight on a wide battlefield, but when that number is concentrated in a small area, visible from a single high rock, with the groans of the injured rising in a long, haunting chorus, it takes an iron will to ignore such evidence of disaster. In a tougher time, Wellington could oversee four thousand bodies piled in the narrow breach of Badajos, but his resolve was supported by the knowledge that the military goal for which they fell had been achieved. If the task had been unfinished, it’s questionable whether even his steadfast spirit would have avoided wavering. Thorneycroft witnessed the terrible destruction of one day and recoiled at the thought of experiencing it again. "Better to have six battalions safely down the hill than to deal with a cleanup in the morning," he said, and he ordered a retreat. Someone who met the troops as they staggered down said they were far from being routed. In disarray but steadily and in formation, the long, thin line trudged through the darkness. Their parched lips couldn't speak, but they whispered, "Water! Where is water?" as they made their way. At the bottom of the hill, they reformed into regiments and marched back to camp. In the morning, the blood-soaked hilltop, with its piles of dead and wounded, was in the hands of Botha and his men, whose bravery and determination deserved the victory they had achieved. There’s no doubt that at 3 A.M. that morning, Botha, aware that the Rifles had taken Burger's position, considered the situation hopeless, and he was just as surprised as anyone when, based on reports from two scouts, he discovered that it was a victory, not a defeat, that had come to him.

How shall we sum up such an action save that it was a gallant attempt, gallantly carried out, and as gallantly met? On both sides the results of artillery fire during the war have been disappointing, but at Spion Kop beyond all question it was the Boer guns which won the action for them. So keen was the disappointment at home that there was a tendency to criticise the battle with some harshness, but it is difficult now, with the evidence at our command, to say what was left undone which could have altered the result. Had Thorneycroft known all that we know, he would have kept his grip upon the hill. On the face of it one finds it difficult to understand why so momentous a decision, upon which the whole operations depended, should have been left entirely to the judgment of one who in the morning had been a simple Lieutenant-Colonel. 'Where are the bosses?' cried a Fusilier, and the historian can only repeat the question. General Warren was at the bottom of the hill. Had he ascended and determined that the place should still be held, he might have sent down the wearied troops, brought up smaller numbers of fresh ones, ordered the Sappers to deepen the trenches, and tried to bring up water and guns. It was for the divisional commander to lay his hand upon the reins at so critical an instant, to relieve the weary man who had struggled so hard all day.

How can we sum up such an action except to say it was a brave attempt, carried out bravely, and met with equal bravery? The results of artillery fire during the war have been disappointing on both sides, but at Spion Kop, it was definitely the Boer guns that won the battle for them. The disappointment at home was so intense that there was a tendency to criticize the battle harshly, but with the evidence we have now, it's hard to pinpoint what could have been done differently to change the outcome. If Thorneycroft had known everything we know now, he would have maintained control of the hill. It's tough to understand why such a critical decision, one that the entire operation depended on, was left entirely to someone who, in the morning, was just a Lieutenant-Colonel. "Where are the leaders?" exclaimed a Fusilier, and the historian can only echo that question. General Warren was at the bottom of the hill. If he had gone up and decided that the position should still be held, he could have sent down the exhausted troops, brought up smaller numbers of fresh ones, ordered the Sappers to deepen the trenches, and worked on getting water and guns up. It was up to the divisional commander to take control at such a crucial moment and relieve the tired man who had fought so hard all day.

The subsequent publication of the official despatches has served little purpose, save to show that there was a want of harmony between Buller and Warren, and that the former lost all confidence in his subordinate during the course of the operations. In these papers General Buller expresses the opinion that had Warren's operations been more dashing, he would have found his turning movement upon the left a comparatively easy matter. In this judgment he would probably have the concurrence of most military critics. He adds, however, 'On the 19th, I ought to have assumed command myself. I saw that things were not going well—indeed, everyone saw that. I blame myself now for not having done so. I did not, because, if I did, I should discredit General Warren in the estimation of the troops, and, if I were shot, and he had to withdraw across the Tugela, and they had lost confidence in him, the consequences might be very serious. I must leave it to higher authority whether this argument was a sound one.' It needs no higher authority than common-sense to say that the argument is an absolutely unsound one. No consequences could be more serious than that the operations should miscarry and Ladysmith remain unrelieved, and such want of success must in any case discredit Warren in the eyes of his troops. Besides, a subordinate is not discredited because his chief steps in to conduct a critical operation. However, these personal controversies may be suffered to remain in that pigeon-hole from which they should never have been drawn.

The later release of the official reports has done little more than highlight the lack of coordination between Buller and Warren, as well as Buller's growing distrust in his subordinate throughout the operations. In these documents, General Buller shares his view that if Warren's maneuvers had been bolder, his flanking movement on the left would have been relatively simple. Most military analysts would likely agree with him on this point. He continues, "On the 19th, I should have taken command myself. I could see that things weren’t going well—everyone could see that. I now regret not doing so. I hesitated because I thought that if I did, it would undermine General Warren’s standing with the troops. If I got shot and he had to pull back across the Tugela with the troops losing faith in him, the results could be dire. I have to leave it to higher authority to decide if this reasoning was valid." It doesn't take a higher authority, just common sense, to recognize that this reasoning is fundamentally flawed. There could be no more serious outcome than failing in the operations and leaving Ladysmith unrelieved, and such failure would inevitably damage Warren’s reputation with his troops. Furthermore, a subordinate isn’t discredited simply because their superior steps in to manage a critical operation. Nonetheless, these personal disputes should be left in the drawer from which they should never have been removed.

On account of the crowding of four thousand troops into a space which might have afforded tolerable cover for five hundred the losses in the action were very heavy, not fewer than fifteen hundred being killed, wounded, or missing, the proportion of killed being, on account of the shell fire, abnormally high. The Lancashire Fusiliers were the heaviest sufferers, and their Colonel Blomfield was wounded and fell into the hands of the enemy. The Royal Lancasters also lost heavily. Thorneycroft's had 80 men hit out of 180 engaged. The Imperial Light Infantry, a raw corps of Rand refugees who were enduring their baptism of fire, lost 130 men. In officers the losses were particularly heavy, 60 being killed or wounded. The Boer returns show some 50 killed and 150 wounded, which may not be far from the truth. Without the shell fire the British losses might not have been much more.

Due to the overcrowding of four thousand troops in an area that could’ve comfortably sheltered five hundred, the casualties in the battle were extremely high, with at least fifteen hundred men killed, wounded, or missing. The ratio of deaths was unusually high because of the shell fire. The Lancashire Fusiliers suffered the most, with their Colonel Blomfield being wounded and captured by the enemy. The Royal Lancasters also faced significant losses. Thorneycroft's unit had 80 men hit out of 180 engaged. The Imperial Light Infantry, a new group of Rand refugees experiencing their first battle, lost 130 men. The losses among officers were especially severe, with 60 killed or wounded. The Boer reports indicate about 50 killed and 150 wounded, which is likely accurate. Without the shell fire, the British casualties might not have been much higher.

General Buller had lost nearly two thousand men since he had crossed the Tugela, and his purpose was still unfulfilled. Should he risk the loss of a large part of his force in storming the ridges in front of him, or should he recross the river and try for an easier route elsewhere? To the surprise and disappointment both of the public and of the army, he chose the latter course, and by January 27th he had fallen back, unmolested by the Boers, to the other side of the Tugela. It must be confessed that his retreat was admirably conducted, and that it was a military feat to bring his men, his guns, and his stores in safety over a broad river in the face of a victorious enemy. Stolid and unmoved, his impenetrable demeanour restored serenity and confidence to the angry and disappointed troops. There might well be heavy hearts among both them and the public. After a fortnight's campaign, and the endurance of great losses and hardships, both Ladysmith and her relievers found themselves no better off than when they started. Buller still held the commanding position of Mount Alice, and this was all that he had to show for such sacrifices and such exertions. Once more there came a weary pause while Ladysmith, sick with hope deferred, waited gloomily upon half-rations of horse-flesh for the next movement from the South.

General Buller had lost nearly two thousand men since crossing the Tugela, and his goal was still unmet. Should he risk losing a large part of his force by attacking the ridges in front of him, or should he recross the river and seek an easier route elsewhere? To the surprise and disappointment of both the public and the army, he chose the latter option, and by January 27th he had pulled back, unharmed by the Boers, to the other side of the Tugela. It must be admitted that his retreat was skillfully executed, and it was a significant military accomplishment to bring his men, guns, and supplies safely across a wide river in front of a victorious enemy. Unfazed and composed, his impenetrable demeanor restored calm and confidence to the frustrated and disappointed troops. There were likely heavy hearts among both the soldiers and the public. After a fortnight of campaigning and enduring significant losses and hardships, both Ladysmith and its rescuers were no better off than when they started. Buller still held the strategic position of Mount Alice, and this was all he had to show for such sacrifices and hard work. Once again, there was a weary pause while Ladysmith, exhausted by delayed hopes, waited bleakly on half-rations of horsemeat for the next move from the South.





CHAPTER 16. VAALKRANZ.

Neither General Buller nor his troops appeared to be dismayed by the failure of their plans, or by the heavy losses which were entailed by the movement which culminated at Spion Kop. The soldiers grumbled, it is true, at not being let go, and swore that even if it cost them two-thirds of their number they could and would make their way through this labyrinth of hills with its fringe of death. So doubtless they might. But from first to last their General had shown a great—some said an exaggerated—respect for human life, and he had no intention of winning a path by mere slogging, if there were a chance of finding one by less bloody means. On the morrow of his return he astonished both his army and the Empire by announcing that he had found the key to the position and that he hoped to be in Ladysmith in a week. Some rejoiced in the assurance. Some shrugged their shoulders. Careless of friends or foes, the stolid Buller proceeded to work out his new combination.

Neither General Buller nor his troops seemed bothered by the failure of their plans or the heavy losses that resulted from the movement that ended at Spion Kop. It’s true that the soldiers complained about not being allowed to go, claiming that even if it cost them two-thirds of their men, they could and would find their way through the treacherous hills with its deadly margins. And they probably could. But from start to finish, their General had shown a strong—some said excessive—respect for human life, and he had no intention of forcing a path through sheer brute force if there was a chance to find a less bloody way. The day after his return, he surprised both his army and the Empire by announcing that he had found the key to the position and hoped to be in Ladysmith within a week. Some celebrated the news. Others shrugged it off. Unmoved by friends or enemies, the determined Buller got to work on his new strategy.

In the next few days reinforcements trickled in which more than made up for the losses of the preceding week. A battery of horse artillery, two heavy guns, two squadrons of the 14th Hussars, and infantry drafts to the number of twelve or fourteen hundred men came to share the impending glory or disaster. On the morning of February 5th the army sallied forth once more to have another try to win a way to Ladysmith. It was known that enteric was rife in the town, that shell and bullet and typhoid germ had struck down a terrible proportion of the garrison, and that the rations of starved horse and commissariat mule were running low. With their comrades—in many cases their linked battalions—in such straits within fifteen miles of them, Buller's soldiers had high motives to brace them for a supreme effort.

In the next few days, reinforcements trickled in that more than compensated for the losses of the previous week. A battery of horse artillery, two heavy guns, two squadrons of the 14th Hussars, and infantry drafts numbering around twelve to fourteen hundred men arrived to share in the upcoming glory or disaster. On the morning of February 5th, the army set out once again to try to break through to Ladysmith. It was known that enteric fever was widespread in the town, that shells, bullets, and typhoid germs had taken a heavy toll on the garrison, and that the rations for starving horses and supply mules were running low. With their comrades—in many cases their linked battalions—struggling just fifteen miles away, Buller's soldiers had strong motivations to prepare for a decisive effort.

The previous attempt had been upon the line immediately to the west of Spion Kop. If, however, one were to follow to the east of Spion Kop, one would come upon a high mountain called Doornkloof. Between these two peaks, there lies a low ridge, called Brakfontein, and a small detached hill named Vaalkranz. Buller's idea was that if he could seize this small Vaalkranz, it would enable him to avoid the high ground altogether and pass his troops through on to the plateau beyond. He still held the Ford at Potgieter's and commanded the country beyond with heavy guns on Mount Alice and at Swartz Kop, so that he could pass troops over at his will. He would make a noisy demonstration against Brakfontein, then suddenly seize Vaalkranz, and so, as he hoped, hold the outer door which opened on to the passage to Ladysmith.

The previous attempt was made on the line just to the west of Spion Kop. However, if you were to head east of Spion Kop, you'd find a tall mountain called Doornkloof. Between these two peaks is a low ridge known as Brakfontein, along with a small detached hill called Vaalkranz. Buller's plan was to take this small Vaalkranz, which would allow him to bypass the high ground entirely and move his troops onto the plateau beyond. He still controlled the Ford at Potgieter's and had heavy artillery on Mount Alice and at Swartz Kop, giving him the ability to move troops as he wished. He intended to create a loud distraction against Brakfontein, then quickly capture Vaalkranz, and thus, as he hoped, secure the outer door leading to the route to Ladysmith.

The getting of the guns up Swartz Kop was a preliminary which was as necessary as it was difficult. A road was cut, sailors, engineers, and gunners worked with a will under the general direction of Majors Findlay and Apsley Smith. A mountain battery, two field guns, and six naval 12-pounders were slung up by steel hawsers, the sailors yeo-hoing on the halliards. The ammunition was taken up by hand. At six o'clock on the morning of the 5th the other guns opened a furious and probably harmless fire upon Brakfontein, Spion Kop, and all the Boer positions opposite to them. Shortly afterwards the feigned attack upon Brakfontein was commenced and was sustained with much fuss and appearance of energy until all was ready for the development of the true one. Wynne's Brigade, which had been Woodgate's, recovered already from its Spion Kop experience, carried out this part of the plan, supported by six batteries of field artillery, one howitzer battery, and two 4.7 naval guns. Three hours later a telegram was on its way to Pretoria to tell how triumphantly the burghers had driven back an attack which was never meant to go forward. The infantry retired first, then the artillery in alternate batteries, preserving a beautiful order and decorum. The last battery, the 78th, remained to receive the concentrated fire of the Boer guns, and was so enveloped in the dust of the exploding shells that spectators could only see a gun here or a limber there. Out of this whirl of death it quietly walked, without a bucket out of its place, the gunners drawing one wagon, the horses of which had perished, and so effected a leisurely and contemptuous withdrawal. The gallantry of the gunners has been one of the most striking features of the war, but it has never been more conspicuous than in this feint at Brakfontein.

The process of getting the guns up Swartz Kop was a task that was as essential as it was challenging. A road was built, and sailors, engineers, and gunners worked hard under the general direction of Majors Findlay and Apsley Smith. A mountain battery, two field guns, and six naval 12-pounders were lifted by steel cables, with the sailors cheering as they hoisted. The ammunition was carried up by hand. At six o'clock on the morning of the 5th, the other guns opened a furious and likely harmless fire on Brakfontein, Spion Kop, and all the Boer positions opposite them. Shortly after, the fake attack on Brakfontein began and continued with a lot of noise and apparent energy until everything was ready for the real attack. Wynne's Brigade, which had been Woodgate's, already recovered from its Spion Kop experience, executed this part of the plan, supported by six batteries of field artillery, one howitzer battery, and two 4.7 naval guns. Three hours later, a telegram was on its way to Pretoria announcing how triumphantly the burghers had driven back an attack that was never meant to advance. The infantry withdrew first, followed by the artillery in alternating batteries, maintaining perfect order and discipline. The last battery, the 78th, stayed to endure the concentrated fire of the Boer guns and was so engulfed in the dust of the exploding shells that spectators could only see a gun here and a limber there. Out of this chaos, it walked away calmly, without a single bucket out of place, the gunners pulling one wagon, the horses of which had died, and thus made a slow and disdainful retreat. The bravery of the gunners has been one of the most remarkable aspects of the war, but it has never been more evident than in this deception at Brakfontein.

While the attention of the Boers was being concentrated upon the Lancashire men, a pontoon bridge was suddenly thrown across the river at a place called Munger's Drift, some miles to the eastward. Three infantry brigades, those of Hart, Lyttelton, and Hildyard, had been massed all ready to be let slip when the false attack was sufficiently absorbing. The artillery fire (the Swartz Kop guns, and also the batteries which had been withdrawn from the Brakfontein demonstration) was then turned suddenly, with the crashing effect of seventy pieces, upon the real object of attack, the isolated Vaalkranz. It is doubtful whether any position has ever been subjected to so terrific a bombardment, for the weight of metal thrown by single guns was greater than that of a whole German battery in the days of their last great war. The 4-pounders and 6-pounders of which Prince Kraft discourses would have seemed toys beside these mighty howitzers and 4.7's. Yet though the hillside was sharded off in great flakes, it is doubtful if this terrific fire inflicted much injury upon the cunning and invisible riflemen with whom we had to contend.

While the Boers were focused on the Lancashire men, a pontoon bridge was quickly set up across the river at a spot called Munger's Drift, several miles to the east. Three infantry brigades—Hart's, Lyttelton's, and Hildyard's—were prepped and ready to move when the fake attack became distracting enough. The artillery fire (from the Swartz Kop guns, as well as the batteries pulled from the Brakfontein demonstration) was then suddenly directed, with the impact of seventy pieces, toward the true target of the attack, the isolated Vaalkranz. It's uncertain if any position has ever experienced such an intense bombardment, as the amount of firepower from individual guns was more than that of an entire German battery during their last major war. The 4-pounders and 6-pounders that Prince Kraft talks about would have seemed like toys compared to these powerful howitzers and 4.7's. Yet, even though the hillside was blasted away in large chunks, it’s questionable whether this overwhelming fire caused much damage to the clever and hidden riflemen we faced.

About midday the infantry began to stream across the bridge, which had been most gallantly and efficiently constructed under a warm fire, by a party of sappers, under the command of Major Irvine. The attack was led by the Durham Light Infantry of Lyttelton's Brigade, followed by the 1st Rifle Brigade, with the Scottish and 3rd Rifles in support. Never did the old Light Division of Peninsular fame go up a Spanish hillside with greater spirit and dash than these, their descendants, facing the slope of Vaalkranz. In open order they moved across the plain, with a superb disregard of the crash and patter of the shrapnel, and then up they went, the flitting figures, springing from cover to cover, stooping, darting, crouching, running, until with their glasses the spectators on Swartz Kop could see the gleam of the bayonets and the strain of furious rushing men upon the summit, as the last Boers were driven from their trenches. The position was gained, but little else. Seven officers and seventy men were lying killed and wounded among the boulders. A few stricken Boers, five unwounded prisoners, and a string of Basuto ponies were the poor fruits of victory—those and the arid hill from which so much had been hoped, and so little was to be gained.

About midday, the infantry started to cross the bridge, which had been built bravely and efficiently under heavy fire by a group of sappers led by Major Irvine. The assault was led by the Durham Light Infantry from Lyttelton's Brigade, followed by the 1st Rifle Brigade, with the Scottish and 3rd Rifles providing support. Never before had the old Light Division, famous from the Peninsular War, charged up a Spanish hillside with more spirit and determination than these, their descendants, facing the slope of Vaalkranz. They moved across the plain in open formation, showing impressive disregard for the sound of shrapnel exploding all around them, and then they surged forward, agile figures darting from cover to cover, crouching, running, until observers on Swartz Kop could see the glint of bayonets and the frantic rush of men on the summit as the last Boers were pushed from their trenches. The position was secured, but the cost was high. Seven officers and seventy men were either killed or wounded among the boulders. The meager spoils of victory included a few wounded Boers, five unwounded prisoners, and a line of Basuto ponies—those, and the barren hill from which so much had been anticipated, but so little was achieved.

It was during this advance that an incident occurred of a more picturesque character than is usual in modern warfare. The invisibility of combatants and guns, and the absorption of the individual in the mass, have robbed the battle-field of those episodes which adorned, if they did not justify it. On this occasion, a Boer gun, cut off by the British advance, flew out suddenly from behind its cover, like a hare from its tussock, and raced for safety across the plain. Here and there it wound, the horses stretched to their utmost, the drivers stooping and lashing, the little gun bounding behind. To right to left, behind and before, the British shells burst, lyddite and shrapnel, crashing and riving. Over the lip of a hollow, the gallant gun vanished, and within a few minutes was banging away once more at the British advance. With cheers and shouts and laughter, the British infantrymen watched the race for shelter, their sporting spirit rising high above all racial hatred, and hailing with a 'gone to ground' whoop the final disappearance of the gun.

It was during this advance that a more colorful incident happened than what’s typical in modern warfare. The lack of visibility for combatants and artillery, along with individuals getting lost in the crowd, has taken away the battlefield moments that once added flair, even if they didn't justify the conflict. In this instance, a Boer gun, cut off by the British advance, suddenly raced out from behind its cover, like a hare darting from its hiding spot, and sprinted for safety across the plain. It twisted and turned, the horses pushing themselves to the limit, the drivers bending low and whipping the reins, the little gun bouncing behind them. All around, British shells were exploding—lyddite and shrapnel—crashing down and tearing things apart. Over the edge of a dip, the brave gun disappeared, and within a few minutes, it was firing away again at the British advance. With cheers, shouts, and laughter, the British infantrymen watched the frantic escape for cover, their competitive spirit rising well above any racial hatred, and they celebrated with a triumphant 'gone to ground' cheer as the gun finally vanished.

The Durhams had cleared the path, but the other regiments of Lyttelton's Brigade followed hard at their heels, and before night they had firmly established themselves upon the hill. But the fatal slowness which had marred General Buller's previous operations again prevented him from completing his success. Twice at least in the course of these operations there is evidence of sudden impulse to drop his tools in the midst of his task and to do no more for the day. So it was at Colenso, where an order was given at an early hour for the whole force to retire, and the guns which might have been covered by infantry fire and withdrawn after nightfall were abandoned. So it was also at a critical moment at this action at Vaalkranz. In the original scheme of operations it had been planned that an adjoining hill, called the Green Hill, which partly commanded Vaalkranz, should be carried also. The two together made a complete position, while singly each was a very bad neighbour to the other. On the aide-de-camp riding up, however, to inquire from General Buller whether the time had come for this advance, he replied, 'We have done enough for the day,' and left out this essential portion of his original scheme, with the result that all miscarried.

The Durhams had cleared the path, but the other regiments of Lyttelton's Brigade quickly followed behind them, and by nightfall, they had firmly established themselves on the hill. However, the frustrating slowness that had hindered General Buller's previous operations once again stopped him from completing his success. At least twice during these operations, there was a clear moment where he seemed to suddenly decide to stop working and call it a day. This happened at Colenso, where an order was given early for the entire force to pull back, and the guns that could have been covered by infantry fire and withdrawn after dark were left behind. It also occurred at a crucial moment during the action at Vaalkranz. In the original plan, it was intended that another hill, called the Green Hill, which partially overlooked Vaalkranz, should also be taken. Together, the two hills formed a complete position, but alone, each was a poor neighbor to the other. When the aide-de-camp rode up to ask General Buller if it was time to advance, he replied, "We have done enough for the day," and skipped this critical part of his original plan, leading to the failure of the operation.

Speed was the most essential quality for carrying out his plan successfully. So it must always be with the attack. The defence does not know where the blow is coming, and has to distribute men and guns to cover miles of ground. The attacker knows where he will hit, and behind a screen of outposts he can mass his force and throw his whole strength against a mere fraction of that of his enemy. But in order to do so he must be quick. One tiger spring must tear the centre out of the line before the flanks can come to its assistance. If time is given, if the long line can concentrate, if the scattered guns can mass, if lines of defence can be reduplicated behind, then the one great advantage which the attack possesses is thrown away. Both at the second and at the third attempts of Buller the British movements were so slow that had the enemy been the slowest instead of the most mobile of armies, they could still always have made any dispositions which they chose. Warren's dawdling in the first days of the movement which ended at Spion Kop might with an effort be condoned on account of possible difficulties of supply, but it would strain the ingenuity of the most charitable critic to find a sufficient reason for the lethargy of Vaalkranz. Though daylight comes a little after four, the operations were not commenced before seven. Lyttelton's Brigade had stormed the hill at two, and nothing more was done during the long evening, while officers chafed and soldiers swore, and the busy Boers worked furiously to bring up their guns and to bar the path which we must take. General Buller remarked a day or two later that the way was not quite so easy as it had been. One might have deduced the fact without the aid of a balloon.

Speed was the most crucial factor for successfully executing his plan. It’s always the same with an attack. The defense doesn’t know where the blow will land and has to spread out personnel and weapons to cover vast areas. The attacker knows exactly where to strike and, behind a line of outposts, can concentrate his forces and unleash all his strength against just a small part of the enemy’s. But to achieve this, he must act quickly. A single powerful move needs to break through the center of the line before reinforcements can arrive from the sides. If given enough time, if the long line can regroup, if the scattered guns can come together, if defense lines can be reinforced from the back, then the one big advantage that comes with attacking is lost. In both the second and third attempts by Buller, the British movements were so slow that, had they been up against the slowest army instead of one of the most mobile, the enemy could still have organized themselves however they wanted. Warren’s sluggishness in the early days of the movement that ended at Spion Kop might be excused due to possible supply issues, but it would be a stretch for even the kindest critic to find a good reason for the inactivity at Vaalkranz. Even though daylight arrives a little after four, operations didn’t begin until seven. Lyttelton’s Brigade had charged the hill at two, but nothing else happened during the long evening while officers fumed and soldiers cursed, and the busy Boers worked hard to bring up their guns and block our path. General Buller noted a day or two later that the route wasn’t nearly as straightforward as it had been. One could have figured that out without needing a balloon.

The brigade then occupied Vaalkranz and erected sangars and dug trenches. On the morning of the 6th, the position of the British force was not dissimilar to that of Spion Kop. Again they had some thousands of men upon a hill-top, exposed to shell fire from several directions and without any guns upon the hill to support them. In one or two points the situation was modified in their favour, and hence their escape from loss and disaster. A more extended position enabled the infantry to avoid bunching, but in other respects the situation was parallel to that in which they had found themselves a fortnight before.

The brigade then took control of Vaalkranz, setting up makeshift shelters and digging trenches. On the morning of the 6th, the British forces' position was similar to that of Spion Kop. Once again, they found themselves with thousands of men on a hilltop, exposed to shelling from multiple directions and without any artillery support on the hill. In a couple of areas, the situation slightly favored them, which helped them avoid significant losses or disaster. A wider position allowed the infantry to spread out instead of clustering together, but in other ways, the circumstances were just like those they had faced two weeks earlier.

The original plan was that the taking of Vaalkranz should be the first step towards the outflanking of Brakfontein and the rolling up of the whole Boer position. But after the first move the British attitude became one of defence rather than of attack. Whatever the general and ultimate effect of these operations may have been, it is beyond question that their contemplation was annoying and bewildering in the extreme to those who were present. The position on February 6th was this. Over the river upon the hill was a single British brigade, exposed to the fire of one enormous gun—a 96-pound Creusot, the longest of all Long Toms—which was stationed upon Doornkloof, and of several smaller guns and pom-poms which spat at them from nooks and crevices of the hills. On our side were seventy-two guns, large and small, all very noisy and impotent. It is not too much to say, as it appears to me, that the Boers have in some ways revolutionised our ideas in regard to the use of artillery, by bringing a fresh and healthy common-sense to bear upon a subject which had been unduly fettered by pedantic rules. The Boer system is the single stealthy gun crouching where none can see it. The British system is the six brave guns coming into action in line of full interval, and spreading out into accurate dressing visible to all men. 'Always remember,' says one of our artillery maxims, 'that one gun is no gun.' Which is prettier on a field-day, is obvious, but which is business—let the many duels between six Boer guns and sixty British declare. With black powder it was useless to hide the gun, as its smoke must betray it. With smokeless powder the guns are so invisible that it was only by the detection with powerful glasses of the dust from the trail on the recoil that the officers were ever able to localise the guns against which they were fighting. But if the Boers had had six guns in line, instead of one behind that kopje, and another between those distant rocks, it would not have been so difficult to say where they were. Again, British traditions are all in favour of planting guns close together. At this very action of Vaalkranz the two largest guns were so placed that a single shell bursting between them would have disabled them both. The officer who placed them there, and so disregarded in a vital matter the most obvious dictates of common-sense, would probably have been shocked by any want of technical smartness, or irregularity in the routine drill. An over-elaboration of trifles, and a want of grip of common-sense, and of adaptation to new ideas, is the most serious and damaging criticism which can be levelled against our army. That the function of infantry is to shoot, and not to act like spearmen in the Middle Ages; that the first duty of artillery is so far as is possible to be invisible—these are two of the lessons which have been driven home so often during the war, that even our hidebound conservatism can hardly resist them.

The original plan was for the capture of Vaalkranz to be the first step in outflanking Brakfontein and taking down the entire Boer position. However, after the initial move, the British shifted to a defensive strategy instead of attacking. Regardless of the overall impact of these operations, it's clear that they were frustrating and confusing to those involved. On February 6th, the situation was as follows: a single British brigade was stationed on a hill across the river, exposed to fire from a massive gun—a 96-pound Creusot, which was the longest of all Long Toms—set up on Doornkloof, as well as several smaller guns and pom-poms firing from hidden spots on the hills. On our side, we had seventy-two guns, large and small, all very loud but ineffective. It's not overstate to say that the Boers have somewhat transformed our views on artillery use by applying fresh and practical common sense to a subject that had been overly restricted by rigid rules. The Boer approach involves a single stealthy gun hiding where no one can see it. The British method features six brave guns coming into action in a line, displaying their arrangement openly. "Always remember," one of our artillery maxims states, "that one gun is no gun." While the former looks more impressive on the parade ground, the reality of combat—let the numerous face-offs between six Boer guns and sixty British show—proves otherwise. With black powder, it was pointless to hide a gun, as its smoke would give it away. With smokeless powder, guns can be so concealed that officers could only locate them by spotting the dust raised by their recoil through powerful binoculars. However, if the Boers had lined up six guns instead of positioning one behind a ridge and another between distant rocks, it wouldn't have been so hard to determine their locations. Moreover, British tradition favors clustering guns together. In the Vaalkranz action, the two largest guns were placed so close that a single shell exploding between them could take out both. The officer who positioned them this way, disregarding such obvious common sense in a critical situation, would likely have been appalled by any lack of technical precision or deviation from standard procedures. An unnecessary focus on minor details, coupled with a failure to embrace common sense and adapt to new concepts, is the most significant and damaging criticism that can be aimed at our army. The role of infantry is to shoot, not to behave like spearmen from the Middle Ages; and the primary duty of artillery is, as much as possible, to remain unseen—these are two lessons reinforced so frequently during the war that even our deeply entrenched conservatism can hardly ignore them.

Lyttelton's Brigade, then, held Vaalkranz; and from three parts of the compass there came big shells and little shells, with a constant shower of long-range rifle bullets. Behind them, and as useful as if it had been on Woolwich Common, there was drawn up an imposing mass of men, two infantry divisions, and two brigades of cavalry, all straining at the leash, prepared to shed their blood until the spruits ran red with it, if only they could win their way to where their half-starved comrades waited for them. But nothing happened. Hours passed and nothing happened. An occasional shell from the big gun plumped among them. One, through some freak of gunnery, lobbed slowly through a division, and the men whooped and threw their caps at it as it passed. The guns on Swartz Kop, at a range of nearly five miles, tossed shells at the monster on Doornkloof, and finally blew up his powder magazine amid the applause of the infantry. For the army it was a picnic and a spectacle.

Lyttelton's Brigade was holding Vaalkranz, and from three directions, there were large and small shells falling, along with a steady rain of long-range rifle bullets. Behind them, positioned as effectively as if they were on Woolwich Common, was a massive group of soldiers: two infantry divisions and two cavalry brigades, all eager to go, ready to spill their blood until the streams ran red, if only they could reach their starving comrades waiting for them. But nothing happened. Hours went by, and still nothing happened. Occasionally, a shell from a big gun landed among them. One shell, due to some oddity in the aiming, floated slowly through a division, and the soldiers cheered and tossed their caps at it as it went by. The guns on Swartz Kop, nearly five miles away, fired shells at the enemy on Doornkloof, eventually blowing up his powder magazine to the cheers of the infantry. For the army, it was like a picnic and a spectacle.

But it was otherwise with the men up on Vaalkranz. In spite of sangar and trench, that cross fire was finding them out; and no feint or demonstration on either side came to draw the concentrated fire from their position. Once there was a sudden alarm at the western end of the hill, and stooping bearded figures with slouch hats and bandoliers were right up on the ridge before they could be stopped, so cleverly had their advance been conducted. But a fiery rush of Durhams and Rifles cleared the crest again, and it was proved once more how much stronger is the defence than the attack. Nightfall found the position unchanged, save that another pontoon bridge had been constructed during the day. Over this Hildyard's Brigade marched to relieve Lyttelton's, who came back for a rest under the cover of the Swartz Kop guns. Their losses in the two days had been under two hundred and fifty, a trifle if any aim were to be gained, but excessive for a mere demonstration.

But the situation was different for the men at Vaalkranz. Despite the sandbags and trenches, that crossfire was taking its toll; no distraction or show of force from either side was able to draw the focused fire away from their position. At one point, there was a sudden alarm at the western end of the hill, and crouching figures with beards, slouch hats, and bandoliers managed to get right up on the ridge before anyone could stop them, thanks to their smart tactics. But a fierce charge from the Durhams and Rifles pushed them back off the crest again, proving yet again that defense is significantly stronger than attack. By nightfall, the situation hadn't changed much, except that another pontoon bridge had been built during the day. Hildyard's Brigade crossed over it to take over from Lyttelton's, who returned for a break under the cover of the Swartz Kop guns. Their losses over the two days were under two hundred and fifty—small considering any strategic gain, but excessive for just a show of force.

That night Hildyard's men supplemented the defences made by Lyttelton, and tightened their hold upon the hill. One futile night attack caused them for an instant to change the spade for the rifle. When in the morning it was found that the Boers had, as they naturally would, brought up their outlying guns, the tired soldiers did not regret their labours of the night. It was again demonstrated how innocuous a thing is a severe shell fire, if the position be an extended one with chances of cover. A total of forty killed and wounded out of a strong brigade was the result of a long day under an incessant cannonade. And then at nightfall came the conclusion that the guns were too many, that the way was too hard, and down came all their high hopes with the order to withdraw once more across that accursed river. Vaalkranz was abandoned, and Hildyard's Brigade, seething with indignation, was ordered back once more to its camp.

That night, Hildyard's troops bolstered the defenses built by Lyttelton and tightened their grip on the hill. One unsuccessful night attack made them temporarily switch from shovels to rifles. When morning came and it was clear that the Boers had, as expected, brought in their outer guns, the exhausted soldiers didn’t regret their work from the night before. It was once again shown how harmless intense shelling can be if the position is spread out with opportunities for cover. A total of forty soldiers were killed or wounded out of a strong brigade after a long day under constant cannon fire. Then, as night fell, it became clear that there were too many guns and the terrain was too tough, leading to the collapse of all their high hopes with the order to retreat once more across that cursed river. Vaalkranz was left behind, and Hildyard's Brigade, boiling with anger, was ordered back to their camp again.





CHAPTER 17. BULLER'S FINAL ADVANCE.

The heroic moment of the siege of Ladysmith was that which witnessed the repulse of the great attack. The epic should have ended at that dramatic instant. But instead of doing so the story falls back to an anticlimax of crowded hospitals, slaughtered horses, and sporadic shell fire. For another six weeks of inactivity the brave garrison endured all the sordid evils which had steadily grown from inconvenience to misfortune and from misfortune to misery. Away in the south they heard the thunder of Buller's guns, and from the hills round the town they watched with pale faces and bated breath the tragedy of Spion Kop, preserving a firm conviction that a very little more would have transformed it into their salvation. Their hearts sank with the sinking of the cannonade, and rose again with the roar of Vaalkranz. But Vaalkranz also failed them, and they waited on in the majesty of their hunger and their weakness for the help which was to come.

The heroic moment of the siege of Ladysmith was when the great attack was successfully fought off. The story should have ended there, at that dramatic point. But instead, it drags on with the grim reality of overcrowded hospitals, dead horses, and sporadic shelling. For another six weeks of inactivity, the brave garrison endured all the grim hardships that had escalated from inconvenience to misfortune and from misfortune to misery. Far to the south, they could hear the thunder of Buller's guns, and from the hills surrounding the town, they watched with pale faces and held breaths the tragedy of Spion Kop, convinced that just a little more could have turned it into their rescue. Their hearts fell with the fading cannon fire and lifted again with the roar of Vaalkranz. But Vaalkranz also let them down, and they continued to wait, enduring their hunger and weakness for the help that was to come.

It has been already narrated how General Buller had made his three attempts for the relief of the city. The General who was inclined to despair was now stimulated by despatches from Lord Roberts, while his army, who were by no means inclined to despair, were immensely cheered by the good news from the Kimberley side. Both General and army prepared for a last supreme effort. This time, at least, the soldiers hoped that they would be permitted to burst their way to the help of their starving comrades or leave their bones among the hills which had faced them so long. All they asked was a fight to a finish, and now they were about to have one. General Buller had tried the Boers' centre, he had tried their extreme right, and now he was about to try their extreme left. There were some obvious advantages on this side which make it surprising that it was not the first to be attempted. In the first place, the enemy's main position upon that flank was at Hlangwane mountain, which is to the south of the Tugela, so that in case of defeat the river ran behind them. In the second, Hlangwane mountain was the one point from which the Boer position at Colenso could be certainly enfiladed, and therefore the fruits of victory would be greater on that flank than on the other. Finally, the operations could be conducted at no great distance from the railhead, and the force would be exposed to little danger of having its flank attacked or its communications cut, as was the case in the Spion Kop advance. Against these potent considerations there is only to be put the single fact that the turning of the Boer right would threaten the Freestaters' line of retreat. On the whole, the balance of advantage lay entirely with the new attempt, and the whole army advanced to it with a premonition of success. Of all the examples which the war has given of the enduring qualities of the British troops there is none more striking than the absolute confidence and whole hearted delight with which, after three bloody repulses, they set forth upon another venture.

It has already been described how General Buller made his three attempts to relieve the city. The General, who was feeling hopeless, was motivated by messages from Lord Roberts, while his army, who were definitely not feeling hopeless, were greatly encouraged by the good news from the Kimberley side. Both the General and the army prepared for one last effort. This time, at least, the soldiers hoped they would be allowed to break through and help their starving comrades, or they would accept their fate among the hills that had challenged them for so long. All they wanted was a fight to the finish, and now they were about to get one. General Buller had tried the Boers' center, he had tried their far right, and now he was going to attempt their far left. There were some clear advantages on this side that made it surprising it wasn’t the first choice. First, the enemy's main position on that flank was at Hlangwane mountain, south of the Tugela, so if they were defeated, the river was behind them. Second, Hlangwane mountain was the only point from which the Boer position at Colenso could definitely be enfiladed, meaning that a victory here would be more impactful than on the other flanks. Finally, the operations could be carried out close to the railhead, and the force would face little risk of flank attacks or cut-off communications, unlike in the Spion Kop advance. The only disadvantage was that attacking the Boer right would put pressure on the Freestaters' escape route. Overall, the advantages clearly favored this new attempt, and the entire army moved forward with a sense of impending success. Among all the examples the war has shown of the resilience of British troops, none is more notable than the absolute confidence and enthusiasm with which, after three fierce defeats, they set out on another attempt.

On February 9th the movements were started which transferred the greater part of the force from the extreme left to the centre and right. By the 11th Lyttelton's (formerly Clery's) second division and Warren's fifth division had come eastward, leaving Burn Murdoch's cavalry brigade to guard the Western side. On the 12th Lord Dundonald, with all the colonial cavalry, two battalions of infantry, and a battery, made a strong reconnaissance towards Hussar Hill, which is the nearest of the several hills which would have to be occupied in order to turn the position. The hill was taken, but was abandoned again by General Buller after he had used it for some hours as an observatory. A long-range action between the retiring cavalry and the Boers ended in a few losses upon each side.

On February 9th, the movements began that shifted most of the forces from the extreme left to the center and right. By the 11th, Lyttelton's (previously Clery's) second division and Warren's fifth division had moved eastward, leaving Burn Murdoch's cavalry brigade to secure the western side. On the 12th, Lord Dundonald, along with all the colonial cavalry, two infantry battalions, and a battery, conducted a strong reconnaissance towards Hussar Hill, which is the closest of several hills that needed to be occupied to flank the position. The hill was captured but was later abandoned by General Buller after he used it for several hours as a lookout point. A long-range engagement between the retreating cavalry and the Boers resulted in a few casualties on both sides.

What Buller had seen during the hour or two which he had spent with his telescope upon Hussar Hill had evidently confirmed him in his views, for two days later (February 14th) the whole army set forth for this point. By the morning of the 15th twenty thousand men were concentrated upon the sides and spurs of this eminence. On the 16th the heavy guns were in position, and all was ready for the advance.

What Buller had observed during the hour or two he spent with his telescope on Hussar Hill clearly reinforced his beliefs, because two days later (February 14th) the entire army set out for this location. By the morning of the 15th, twenty thousand men were gathered on the slopes and outcrops of this hill. On the 16th, the heavy artillery was in place, and everything was set for the advance.

Facing them now were the formidable Boer lines of Hlangwane Hill and Green Hill, which would certainly cost several thousands of men if they were to take them by direct storm. Beyond them, upon the Boer flank, were the hills of Monte Christo and Cingolo, which appeared to be the extreme outside of the Boer position. The plan was to engage the attention of the trenches in front by a terrific artillery fire and the threat of an assault, while at the same time sending the true flank attack far round to carry the Cingolo ridge, which must be taken before any other hill could be approached.

Facing them now were the strong Boer lines of Hlangwane Hill and Green Hill, which would definitely cost several thousand men if they tried to take them directly by storm. Beyond those hills, on the Boer flank, were the hills of Monte Christo and Cingolo, which seemed to be the farthest point of the Boer position. The plan was to distract the trenches in front with a heavy artillery barrage and the threat of an attack, while simultaneously sending a real flank attack around to capture the Cingolo ridge, which needed to be secured before approaching any other hill.

On the 17th, in the early morning, with the first tinge of violet in the east, the irregular cavalry and the second division (Lyttelton's) with Wynne's Brigade started upon their widely curving flanking march. The country through which they passed was so broken that the troopers led their horses in single file, and would have found themselves helpless in face of any resistance. Fortunately, Cingolo Hill was very weakly held, and by evening both our horsemen and our infantry had a firm grip upon it, thus turning the extreme left flank of the Boer position. For once their mountainous fortresses were against them, for a mounted Boer force is so mobile that in an open position, such as faced Methuen, it is very hard and requires great celerity of movement ever to find a flank at all. On a succession of hills, however, it was evident that some one hill must mark the extreme end of their line, and Buller had found it at Cingolo. Their answer to this movement was to throw their flank back so as to face the new position.

On the 17th, early in the morning, with the first hint of violet in the east, the irregular cavalry and the second division (Lyttelton's) along with Wynne's Brigade began their wide, curving flanking march. The terrain they crossed was so rough that the soldiers led their horses in single file, making them vulnerable to any resistance. Luckily, Cingolo Hill was only weakly defended, and by the evening both our cavalry and infantry had a strong hold on it, effectively turning the far left flank of the Boer position. For the first time, their mountainous strongholds worked against them, as a mounted Boer force is so agile that in an open area, like the one Methuen faced, it’s really tough and requires quick movement to ever catch a flank. However, on a series of hills, it was clear that one specific hill must mark the far end of their line, and Buller had located it at Cingolo. In response to this maneuver, they adjusted their flank to face the new position.

Even now, however, the Boer leaders had apparently not realised that this was the main attack, or it is possible that the intervention of the river made it difficult for them to send reinforcements. However that may be, it is certain that the task which the British found awaiting them on the 18th proved to be far easier than they had dared to hope. The honours of the day rested with Hildyard's English Brigade (East Surrey, West Surrey, West Yorkshires, and 2nd Devons). In open order and with a rapid advance, taking every advantage of the cover—which was better than is usual in South African warfare—they gained the edge of the Monte Christo ridge, and then swiftly cleared the crest. One at least of the regiments engaged, the Devons, was nerved by the thought that their own first battalion was waiting for them at Ladysmith. The capture of the hill made the line of trenches which faced Buller untenable, and he was at once able to advance with Barton's Fusilier Brigade and to take possession of the whole Boer position of Hlangwane and Green Hill. It was not a great tactical victory, for they had no trophies to show save the worthless debris of the Boer camps. But it was a very great strategical victory, for it not only gave them the whole south side of the Tugela, but also the means of commanding with their guns a great deal of the north side, including those Colenso trenches which had blocked the way so long. A hundred and seventy killed and wounded (of whom only fourteen were killed) was a trivial price for such a result. At last from the captured ridges the exultant troops could see far away the haze which lay over the roofs of Ladysmith, and the besieged, with hearts beating high with hope, turned their glasses upon the distant mottled patches which told them that their comrades were approaching.

Even now, the Boer leaders didn’t seem to realize that this was the main attack, or maybe the river made it hard for them to send reinforcements. Regardless, it’s clear that the task the British faced on the 18th turned out to be much easier than they had hoped. The credit for the day went to Hildyard's English Brigade (East Surrey, West Surrey, West Yorkshires, and 2nd Devons). Moving in open formation and advancing quickly, taking advantage of better cover than usual in South African warfare, they reached the edge of the Monte Christo ridge and quickly cleared the crest. One of the regiments involved, the Devons, was motivated by the thought that their first battalion was waiting for them in Ladysmith. Capturing the hill made the trench line facing Buller untenable, allowing him to advance with Barton's Fusilier Brigade and seize the entire Boer positions at Hlangwane and Green Hill. It wasn't a significant tactical victory since they had no trophies to show aside from the useless debris of the Boer camps. However, it was a major strategic victory because it not only gave them control of the entire south side of the Tugela but also enabled their artillery to command much of the north side, including the Colenso trenches that had blocked their way for so long. With a hundred and seventy casualties (only fourteen of whom were killed), the price for such a gain was minimal. Finally, from the captured ridges, the jubilant troops could see the distant haze over the rooftops of Ladysmith, and the besieged, filled with hope, turned their binoculars toward the mottled patches that signaled their comrades were drawing near.

By February 20th the British had firmly established themselves along the whole south bank of the river, Hart's brigade had occupied Colenso, and the heavy guns had been pushed up to more advanced positions. The crossing of the river was the next operation, and the question arose where it should be crossed. The wisdom which comes with experience shows us now that it would have been infinitely better to have crossed on their extreme left flank, as by an advance upon this line we should have turned their strong Pieters position just as we had already turned their Colenso one. With an absolutely master card in our hand we refused to play it, and won the game by a more tedious and perilous process. The assumption seems to have been made (on no other hypothesis can one understand the facts) that the enemy were demoralised and that the positions would not be strongly held. Our flanking advantage was abandoned and a direct advance was ordered from Colenso, involving a frontal attack upon the Pieters position.

By February 20th, the British had firmly established themselves along the entire south bank of the river. Hart's brigade had taken over Colenso, and the heavy artillery had been moved to more advanced positions. The next operation was crossing the river, and the question arose about where to do it. Experience teaches us now that it would have been much better to cross on their extreme left flank, as advancing on that line would have allowed us to outflank their strong position at Pieters just as we had already done at Colenso. With an unbeatable strategy at our disposal, we chose not to use it, winning the battle through a much longer and riskier approach. It seems there was an assumption (which is the only way to make sense of the facts) that the enemy were demoralized and that the positions wouldn’t be strongly defended. Our flanking advantage was disregarded, and a direct advance was ordered from Colenso, requiring a frontal attack on the Pieters position.

On February 21st Buller threw his pontoon bridge over the river near Colenso, and the same evening his army began to cross. It was at once evident that the Boer resistance had by no means collapsed. Wynne's Lancashire Brigade were the first across, and found themselves hotly engaged before nightfall. The low kopjes in front of them were blazing with musketry fire. The brigade held its own, but lost the Brigadier (the second in a month) and 150 rank and file. Next morning the main body of the infantry was passed across, and the army was absolutely committed to the formidable and unnecessary enterprise of fighting its way straight to Ladysmith.

On February 21st, Buller set up his pontoon bridge over the river near Colenso, and later that evening, his army started to cross. It quickly became clear that the Boer resistance was far from defeated. Wynne's Lancashire Brigade was the first to cross and found themselves heavily engaged before nightfall. The low hills in front of them were ablaze with gunfire. The brigade held its ground but lost the Brigadier (the second one in a month) and 150 soldiers. The next morning, the main body of infantry crossed over, and the army was fully committed to the challenging and unnecessary task of fighting its way directly to Ladysmith.

The force in front had weakened, however, both in numbers and in morale. Some thousands of the Freestaters had left in order to defend their own country from the advance of Roberts, while the rest were depressed by as much of the news as was allowed by their leaders to reach them. But the Boer is a tenacious fighter, and many a brave man was still to fall before Buller and White should shake hands in the High Street of Ladysmith.

The force in front had weakened, both in numbers and morale. Some thousands of the Freestaters had left to protect their own country from Roberts' advance, while the rest were feeling down because of the news that their leaders allowed to reach them. But the Boer is a persistent fighter, and many brave men would still fall before Buller and White could shake hands in the High Street of Ladysmith.

The first obstacle which faced the army, after crossing the river, was a belt of low rolling ground, which was gradually cleared by the advance of our infantry. As night closed in the advance lines of Boers and British were so close to each other that incessant rifle fire was maintained until morning, and at more than one point small bodies of desperate riflemen charged right up to the bayonets of our infantry. The morning found us still holding our positions all along the line, and as more and more of our infantry came up and gun after gun roared into action we began to push our stubborn enemy northwards. On the 21st the Dorsets, Middlesex, and Somersets had borne the heat of the day. On the 22nd it was the Royal Lancasters, followed by the South Lancashires, who took up the running. It would take the patience and also the space of a Kinglake in this scrambling broken fight to trace the doings of those groups of men who strove and struggled through the rifle fire. All day a steady advance was maintained over the low kopjes, until by evening we were faced by the more serious line of the Pieter's Hills. The operations had been carried out with a monotony of gallantry. Always the same extended advance, always the same rattle of Mausers and clatter of pom-poms from a ridge, always the same victorious soldiers on the barren crest, with a few crippled Boers before them and many crippled comrades behind. They were expensive triumphs, and yet every one brought them nearer to their goal. And now, like an advancing tide, they lapped along the base of Pieter's Hill. Could they gather volume enough to carry themselves over? The issue of the long-drawn battle and the fate of Ladysmith hung upon the question.

The first obstacle the army faced after crossing the river was a stretch of low rolling ground, which was gradually cleared by the advance of our infantry. As night fell, the lines of Boers and British were so close to each other that constant rifle fire continued until morning. At several points, small groups of determined riflemen charged right up to the bayonets of our infantry. By morning, we were still holding our positions along the entire line, and as more of our infantry arrived and gun after gun fired into action, we began to push our stubborn enemy northwards. On the 21st, the Dorsets, Middlesex, and Somersets had borne the heat of the day. On the 22nd, it was the Royal Lancasters, followed by the South Lancashires, who took up the advance. It would take the patience and detail of a Kinglake in this chaotic fight to detail the actions of those groups of men who persevered through the rifle fire. All day, a steady advance was maintained over the low hills until by evening we faced the more serious line of the Pieter's Hills. The operations had been carried out with a persistent gallantry. Always the same extended advance, always the same sound of Mausers and the clatter of pom-poms from a ridge, always the same victorious soldiers on the barren crest, with a few wounded Boers before them and many wounded comrades behind. They were costly victories, yet each one brought them closer to their goal. And now, like an advancing tide, they lapped at the base of Pieter's Hill. Could they gather enough strength to carry themselves over? The outcome of the prolonged battle and the fate of Ladysmith depended on this question.

Brigadier Fitzroy Hart, to whom the assault was entrusted, is in some ways as singular and picturesque a type as has been evolved in the war. A dandy soldier, always the picture of neatness from the top of his helmet to the heels of his well-polished brown boots, he brings to military matters the same precision which he affects in dress. Pedantic in his accuracy, he actually at the battle of Colenso drilled the Irish Brigade for half an hour before leading them into action, and threw out markers under a deadly fire in order that his change from close to extended formation might be academically correct. The heavy loss of the Brigade at this action was to some extent ascribed to him and affected his popularity; but as his men came to know him better, his romantic bravery, his whimsical soldierly humour, their dislike changed into admiration. His personal disregard for danger was notorious and reprehensible. 'Where is General Hart?' asked some one in action. 'I have not seen him, but I know where you will find him. Go ahead of the skirmish line and you will see him standing on a rock,' was the answer. He bore a charmed life. It was a danger to be near him. 'Whom are you going to?' 'General Hart,' said the aide-de-camp. 'Then good-bye!' cried his fellows. A grim humour ran through his nature. It is gravely recorded and widely believed that he lined up a regiment on a hill-top in order to teach them not to shrink from fire. Amid the laughter of his Irishmen, he walked through the open files of his firing line holding a laggard by the ear. This was the man who had put such a spirit into the Irish Brigade that amid that army of valiant men there were none who held such a record. 'Their rushes were the quickest, their rushes were the longest, and they stayed the shortest time under cover,' said a shrewd military observer. To Hart and his brigade was given the task of clearing the way to Ladysmith.

Brigadier Fitzroy Hart, in charge of the assault, is a unique and striking figure in the war. A dandy soldier, he always looks immaculate, from the top of his helmet to the well-polished brown boots on his feet. He brings the same attention to detail in military matters that he does to his appearance. At the battle of Colenso, he actually drilled the Irish Brigade for half an hour before leading them into action and set out markers under intense fire just to ensure that his transition from close to extended formation was technically correct. The Brigade's heavy losses during this battle were partly blamed on him, which affected his popularity, but as his men got to know him better, their initial dislike transformed into admiration because of his romantic bravery and quirky sense of humor. His complete indifference to danger was well-known and a bit reckless. "Where is General Hart?" someone asked during a fight. "I haven't seen him, but I know where to find him. Go ahead of the skirmish line, and you'll see him standing on a rock," came the reply. He seemed to have a charmed life, making it risky to be around him. "Who are you going to see?" "General Hart," said the aide-de-camp. "Then good-bye!" his comrades shouted. His nature was steeped in grim humor. It's seriously noted and widely believed that he had a regiment line up on a hilltop to teach them not to flinch from fire. Amidst the laughter of his Irishmen, he walked through the open lines of his firing squad, holding a straggler by the ear. This was the man who inspired such spirit in the Irish Brigade that, among that army of brave men, none had a better record. "Their charges were the fastest, their advances the farthest, and they spent the least time under cover," noted a keen military observer. Hart and his brigade were tasked with clearing the way to Ladysmith.

The regiments which he took with him on his perilous enterprise were the 1st Inniskilling Fusiliers, the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, the 1st Connaught Rangers, and the Imperial Light Infantry, the whole forming the famous 5th Brigade. They were already in the extreme British advance, and now, as they moved forwards, the Durham Light Infantry and the 1st Rifle Brigade from Lyttelton's Brigade came up to take their place. The hill to be taken lay on the right, and the soldiers were compelled to pass in single file under a heavy fire for more than a mile until they reached the spot which seemed best for their enterprise. There, short already of sixty of their comrades, they assembled and began a cautious advance upon the lines of trenches and sangars which seamed the brown slope above them.

The regiments he took with him on his dangerous mission were the 1st Inniskilling Fusiliers, the 2nd Dublin Fusiliers, the 1st Connaught Rangers, and the Imperial Light Infantry, which together formed the famous 5th Brigade. They were already at the farthest point of the British advance, and as they pushed forward, the Durham Light Infantry and the 1st Rifle Brigade from Lyttelton's Brigade arrived to take their place. The hill to be captured was to the right, and the soldiers had to move in single file under heavy fire for more than a mile until they reached the spot that seemed best for their mission. There, already missing sixty of their comrades, they gathered and began a careful advance toward the lines of trenches and sangars that dotted the brown slope above them.

For a time they were able to keep some cover, and the casualties were comparatively few. But now at last, as the evening sun threw a long shadow from the hills, the leading regiment, the Inniskillings, found themselves at the utmost fringe of boulders with a clear slope between them and the main trench of the enemy. Up there where the shrapnel was spurting and the great lyddite shells crashing they could dimly see a line of bearded faces and the black dots of the slouch hats. With a yell the Inniskillings sprang out, carried with a rush the first trench, and charged desperately onwards for the second one. It was a supremely dashing attack against a supremely steady resistance, for among all their gallant deeds the Boers have never fought better than on that February evening. Amid such a smashing shell fire as living mortals have never yet endured they stood doggedly, these hardy men of the veld, and fired fast and true into the fiery ranks of the Irishmen. The yell of the stormers was answered by the remorseless roar of the Mausers and the deep-chested shouts of the farmers. Up and up surged the infantry, falling, rising, dashing bull-headed at the crackling line of the trench. But still the bearded faces glared at them over the edge, and still the sheet of lead pelted through their ranks. The regiment staggered, came on, staggered again, was overtaken by supporting companies of the Dublins and the Connaughts, came on, staggered once more, and finally dissolved into shreds, who ran swiftly back for cover, threading their way among their stricken comrades. Never on this earth was there a retreat of which the survivors had less reason to be ashamed. They had held on to the utmost capacity of human endurance. Their Colonel, ten officers, and more than half the regiment were lying on the fatal hill. Honour to them, and honour also to the gallant Dutchmen who, rooted in the trenches, had faced the rush and fury of such an onslaught! Today to them, tomorrow to us—but it is for a soldier to thank the God of battles for worthy foes.

For a while, they managed to stay hidden, and the losses were relatively few. But now, as the evening sun cast a long shadow from the hills, the leading regiment, the Inniskillings, found themselves at the edge of some boulders, with an open slope between them and the enemy's main trench. Up there, where the shrapnel was flying and the massive lyddite shells were exploding, they could vaguely see a line of bearded faces and the dark silhouettes of slouch hats. With a shout, the Inniskillings jumped out, quickly took the first trench, and charged desperately towards the second one. It was an incredibly bold attack against a remarkably steady defense, as the Boers had never fought better than they did that February evening. Amid a relentless shelling that no one had ever endured, these tough men of the veld held their ground and fired quickly and accurately into the ranks of the Irishmen. The shout from the attackers was met with the merciless roar of the Mausers and the deep shouts of the farmers. The infantry surged forward, falling, rising, and charging stubbornly at the crackling line of the trench. But still, the bearded faces glared at them from above, and the hail of bullets continued to rain down. The regiment staggered, advanced, staggered again, was reinforced by supporting companies from the Dublins and the Connaughts, moved forward, staggered once more, and ultimately broke apart, scattering back for cover and weaving around their fallen comrades. Never in history was there a retreat where the survivors had less reason to feel ashamed. They had pushed themselves to the absolute limits of human endurance. Their Colonel, ten officers, and more than half the regiment lay on that fateful hill. Honor to them, and honor also to the brave Dutchmen who, entrenched, faced the onslaught with such determination! Today for them, tomorrow for us—but it's a soldier’s duty to thank the God of battles for worthy opponents.

It is one thing, however, to repulse the British soldier and it is another to rout him. Within a few hundred yards of their horrible ordeal at Magersfontein the Highlanders reformed into a military body. So now the Irishmen fell back no further than the nearest cover, and there held grimly on to the ground which they had won. If you would know the advantage which the defence has over the attack, then do you come and assault this line of tenacious men, now in your hour of victory and exultation, friend Boer! Friend Boer did attempt it, and skilfully too, moving a flanking party to sweep the position with their fire. But the brigade, though sorely hurt, held them off without difficulty, and was found on the morning of the 24th to be still lying upon the ground which they had won.

It’s one thing to push back the British soldier, but it’s another to completely defeat him. Just a few hundred yards away from their harrowing experience at Magersfontein, the Highlanders regrouped into a military unit. The Irish troops now fell back only as far as the nearest cover, determined to hold onto the ground they had taken. If you want to understand the advantage that defense has over attack, come and try to take on this line of stubborn men, now celebrating your moment of victory, friend Boer! The friend Boer did try, and quite skillfully too, sending a flanking party to bombard their position. But the brigade, though seriously weakened, managed to fend them off easily, and by the morning of the 24th, they were still holding the ground they had captured.

Our losses had been very heavy, Colonel Thackeray of the Inniskillings, Colonel Sitwell of the Dublins, three majors, twenty officers, and a total of about six hundred out of 1200 actually engaged. To take such punishment and to remain undemoralised is the supreme test to which troops can be put. Could the loss have been avoided? By following the original line of advance from Monte Christo, perhaps, when we should have turned the enemy's left. But otherwise no. The hill was in the way and had to be taken. In the war game you cannot play without a stake. You lose and you pay forfeit, and where the game is fair the best player is he who pays with the best grace. The attack was well prepared, well delivered, and only miscarried on account of the excellence of the defence. We proved once more what we had proved so often before, that all valour and all discipline will not avail in a frontal attack against brave coolheaded men armed with quick-firing rifles.

Our losses were very heavy: Colonel Thackeray of the Inniskillings, Colonel Sitwell of the Dublins, three majors, twenty officers, and a total of about six hundred out of 1200 actually engaged. Enduring such punishment and staying undemoralized is the ultimate test for troops. Could we have avoided the loss? By following the original route of advance from Monte Christo, perhaps, when we should have turned the enemy's left. But otherwise, no. The hill was in the way and had to be taken. In the war game, you can't play without a stake. You lose and you take the hit, and when the game is fair, the best player is the one who takes it with the best grace. The attack was well prepared, well executed, and only failed due to the strength of the defense. We demonstrated once again what we had shown so many times before: that all courage and discipline won't help in a frontal assault against brave, level-headed men armed with quick-firing rifles.

While the Irish Brigade assaulted Railway Hill an attack had been made upon the left, which was probably meant as a demonstration to keep the Boers from reinforcing their comrades rather than as an actual attempt upon their lines. Such as it was, however, it cost the life of at least one brave soldier, for Colonel Thorold, of the Welsh Fusiliers, was among the fallen. Thorold, Thackeray, and Sitwell in one evening. Who can say that British colonels have not given their men a lead?

While the Irish Brigade attacked Railway Hill, another assault was launched on the left, likely intended as a distraction to prevent the Boers from reinforcing their colleagues rather than a serious attempt on their lines. Nevertheless, it cost the life of at least one courageous soldier, as Colonel Thorold of the Welsh Fusiliers was among the fallen. Thorold, Thackeray, and Sitwell in one evening. Who can say that British colonels haven’t inspired their troops?

The army was now at a deadlock. Railway Hill barred the way, and if Hart's men could not carry it by assault it was hard to say who could. The 24th found the two armies facing each other at this critical point, the Irishmen still clinging to the slopes of the hill and the Boers lining the top. Fierce rifle firing broke out between them during the day, but each side was well covered and lay low. The troops in support suffered somewhat, however, from a random shell fire. Mr. Winston Churchill has left it upon record that within his own observation three of their shrapnel shells fired at a venture on to the reverse slope of a hill accounted for nineteen men and four horses. The enemy can never have known how hard those three shells had hit us, and so we may also believe that our artillery fire has often been less futile than it appeared.

The army was at a standstill. Railway Hill was in the way, and if Hart's men couldn't take it by assault, it was hard to say who could. By the 24th, the two armies were facing each other at this crucial point, with the Irishmen still holding onto the slopes of the hill and the Boers positioned at the top. Intense gunfire erupted between them throughout the day, but both sides were well protected and stayed low. The supporting troops, however, suffered a bit from random shell fire. Mr. Winston Churchill noted that from his own observation, three of their shrapnel shells, fired randomly onto the reverse slope of a hill, caused the loss of nineteen men and four horses. The enemy could never have known how hard those three shells had hit us, and so we might also believe that our artillery fire has often been less useless than it seemed.

General Buller had now realised that it was no mere rearguard action which the Boers were fighting, but that their army was standing doggedly at bay; so he reverted to that flanking movement which, as events showed, should never have been abandoned. Hart's Irish Brigade was at present almost the right of the army. His new plan—a masterly one—was to keep Hart pinning the Boers at that point, and to move his centre and left across the river, and then back to envelope the left wing of the enemy. By this manoeuvre Hart became the extreme left instead of the extreme right, and the Irish Brigade would be the hinge upon which the whole army should turn. It was a large conception, finely carried out. The 24th was a day of futile shell fire—and of plans for the future. The heavy guns were got across once more to the Monte Christo ridge and to Hlangwane, and preparations made to throw the army from the west to the east. The enemy still snarled and occasionally snapped in front of Hart's men, but with four companies of the 2nd Rifle Brigade to protect their flanks their position remained secure.

General Buller had now realized that the Boers were not just putting up a rear guard action, but that their army was firmly holding its ground; so he returned to the flanking movement that, as events showed, should never have been abandoned. Hart's Irish Brigade was currently positioned almost on the right of the army. His new plan—an excellent one—was to keep Hart engaged with the Boers at that point while moving his center and left across the river, and then back to surround the enemy's left wing. With this maneuver, Hart shifted from being the extreme right to the extreme left, making the Irish Brigade the pivot around which the whole army would turn. It was a grand strategy, executed beautifully. The 24th was marked by ineffective shell fire and plans for the future. The heavy guns were once again transported to the Monte Christo ridge and to Hlangwane, with preparations made to shift the army from west to east. The enemy still snarled and occasionally attacked in front of Hart's men, but with four companies of the 2nd Rifle Brigade protecting their flanks, their position remained secure.

In the meantime, through a contretemps between our outposts and the Boers, no leave had been given to us to withdraw our wounded, and the unfortunate fellows, some hundreds of them, had lain between the lines in agonies of thirst for thirty-six hours—one of the most painful incidents of the campaign. Now, upon the 25th, an armistice was proclaimed, and the crying needs of the survivors were attended to. On the same day the hearts of our soldiers sank within them as they saw the stream of our wagons and guns crossing the river once more. What, were they foiled again? Was the blood of these brave men to be shed in vain? They ground their teeth at the thought. The higher strategy was not for them, but back was back and forward was forward, and they knew which way their proud hearts wished to go.

In the meantime, due to a misunderstanding between our outposts and the Boers, we weren't allowed to pull back our wounded, and the unfortunate guys, numbering in the hundreds, had been stuck between the lines in agony from thirst for thirty-six hours—one of the most painful events of the campaign. Then, on the 25th, an armistice was announced, and the urgent needs of the survivors were addressed. On the same day, our soldiers felt a heavy sinking in their hearts as they watched our wagons and guns crossing the river again. What, were they defeated once more? Was the blood of these brave men going to be shed in vain? They ground their teeth at the thought. The larger strategy wasn’t for them, but going back was going back and going forward was going forward, and they knew exactly which direction their proud hearts wanted to take.

The 26th was occupied by the large movements of troops which so complete a reversal of tactics necessitated. Under the screen of a heavy artillery fire, the British right became the left and the left the right. A second pontoon bridge was thrown across near the old Boer bridge at Hlangwane, and over it was passed a large force of infantry, Barton's Fusilier Brigade, Kitchener's (vice Wynne's, vice Woodgate's) Lancashire Brigade, and two battalions of Norcott's (formerly Lyttelton's) Brigade. Coke's Brigade was left at Colenso to prevent a counter attack upon our left flank and communications. In this way, while Hart with the Durhams and the 1st Rifle Brigade held the Boers in front, the main body of the army was rapidly swung round on to their left flank. By the morning of the 27th all were in place for the new attack.

The 26th was occupied by the large troop movements that a complete change in tactics required. Under the cover of heavy artillery fire, the British right became the left and the left became the right. A second pontoon bridge was built near the old Boer bridge at Hlangwane, and a large infantry force crossed it, including Barton's Fusilier Brigade, Kitchener's Lancashire Brigade (formerly Wynne's, formerly Woodgate's), and two battalions of Norcott's Brigade (previously Lyttelton's). Coke's Brigade was left at Colenso to prevent a counterattack on our left flank and communications. This way, while Hart with the Durhams and the 1st Rifle Brigade held the Boers in front, the main body of the army quickly maneuvered to their left flank. By the morning of the 27th, everyone was in place for the new attack.

Opposite the point where the troops had been massed were three Boer hills; one, the nearest, may for convenience sake be called Barton's Hill. As the army had formerly been situated the assault upon this hill would have been a matter of extreme difficulty; but now, with the heavy guns restored to their commanding position, from which they could sweep its sides and summits, it had recovered its initial advantage. In the morning sunlight Barton's Fusiliers crossed the river, and advanced to the attack under a screaming canopy of shells. Up they went and up, darting and crouching, until their gleaming bayonets sparkled upon the summit. The masterful artillery had done its work, and the first long step taken in this last stage of the relief of Ladysmith. The loss had been slight and the advantage enormous. After they had gained the summit the Fusiliers were stung and stung again by clouds of skirmishers who clung to the flanks of the hill, but their grip was firm and grew firmer with every hour.

Opposite where the troops had gathered were three Boer hills; the nearest one can be conveniently called Barton's Hill. With the army previously positioned, attacking this hill would have been incredibly challenging; but now, with the heavy guns back in their commanding spot, capable of targeting its sides and peaks, they had regained their initial advantage. In the morning light, Barton's Fusiliers crossed the river and moved in for the attack under a barrage of shells. They advanced, ducking and darting, until their shining bayonets glinted on the summit. The powerful artillery had done its job, marking the first major step in the final phase of the relief of Ladysmith. The losses were minimal, while the gains were substantial. Once they reached the top, the Fusiliers were repeatedly fired upon by groups of skirmishers that clung to the hill's flanks, but their hold was strong and grew stronger with each passing hour.

Of the three Boer hills which had to be taken the nearest (or eastern one) was now in the hands of the British. The furthest (or western one) was that on which the Irish Brigade was still crouching, ready at any moment for a final spring which would take them over the few hundred yards which separated them from the trenches. Between the two intervened a central hill, as yet untouched. Could we carry this the whole position would be ours. Now for the final effort! Turn every gun upon it, the guns of Monte Christo, the guns of Hlangwane! Turn every rifle upon it—the rifles of Barton's men, the rifles of Hart's men, the carbines of the distant cavalry! Scalp its crown with the machine-gun fire! And now up with you, Lancashire men, Norcott's men! The summit or a glorious death, for beyond that hill your suffering comrades are awaiting you! Put every bullet and every man and all of fire and spirit that you are worth into this last hour; for if you fail now you have failed for ever, and if you win, then when your hairs are white your blood will still run warm when you think of that morning's work. The long drama had drawn to an end, and one short day's work is to show what that end was to be.

Of the three Boer hills we needed to capture, the closest one (the eastern hill) was now held by the British. The farthest one (the western hill) was where the Irish Brigade was still waiting, ready at any moment for a final push to cover the few hundred yards that separated them from the trenches. In between was a central hill that hadn’t been touched yet. If we could take that, the whole position would be ours. Now for the final push! Aim every gun at it, the guns of Monte Christo, the guns of Hlangwane! Aim every rifle at it—the rifles of Barton's men, the rifles of Hart's men, the carbines of the distant cavalry! Scalp its pinnacle with machine-gun fire! And now, come on, Lancashire men, Norcott's men! It's the summit or a glorious death, because beyond that hill your suffering comrades are waiting for you! Put every bullet, every person, and all the fire and spirit you have into this last hour; if you fail now, you will have failed forever, but if you win, then when your hair turns white, your blood will still run warm when you think of what you accomplished that morning. The long drama has come to an end, and we have one short day’s work to reveal what that end will be.

But there was never a doubt of it. Hardly for one instant did the advance waver at any point of its extended line. It was the supreme instant of the Natal campaign, as, wave after wave, the long lines of infantry went shimmering up the hill. On the left the Lancasters, the Lancashire Fusiliers, the South Lancashires, the York and Lancasters, with a burr of north country oaths, went racing for the summit. Spion Kop and a thousand comrades were calling for vengeance. 'Remember, men, the eyes of Lancashire are watching you,' cried the gallant MacCarthy O'Leary. The old 40th swept on, but his dead body marked the way which they had taken. On the right the East Surrey, the Cameronians, the 3rd Rifles, the 1st Rifle Brigade, the Durhams, and the gallant Irishmen, so sorely stricken and yet so eager, were all pressing upwards and onwards. The Boer fire lulls, it ceases—they are running! Wild hat-waving men upon the Hlangwane uplands see the silhouette of the active figures of the stormers along the sky-line and know that the position is theirs. Exultant soldiers dance and cheer upon the ridge. The sun is setting in glory over the great Drakensberg mountains, and so also that night set for ever the hopes of the Boer invaders of Natal. Out of doubt and chaos, blood and labour, had come at last the judgment that the lower should not swallow the higher, that the world is for the man of the twentieth and not of the seventeenth century. After a fortnight of fighting the weary troops threw themselves down that night with the assurance that at last the door was ajar and the light breaking through. One more effort and it would be open before them.

But there was never any doubt about it. Not for a moment did the advance falter at any point along its extended line. It was the critical moment of the Natal campaign, as wave after wave, the long lines of infantry shimmered up the hill. On the left, the Lancasters, the Lancashire Fusiliers, the South Lancashires, and the York and Lancasters, with a mix of northern oaths, raced toward the summit. Spion Kop and a thousand comrades were calling for revenge. "Remember, men, the eyes of Lancashire are watching you," shouted the brave MacCarthy O'Leary. The old 40th pressed on, but his lifeless body marked the path they had taken. On the right, the East Surrey, the Cameronians, the 3rd Rifles, the 1st Rifle Brigade, the Durhams, and the valiant Irishmen, battered but eager, all pushed upwards and onwards. The Boer fire quiets, it stops—they are retreating! Excited men waving their hats on the Hlangwane uplands see the silhouettes of the advancing stormers against the skyline and know the position is theirs. Jubilant soldiers dance and cheer on the ridge. The sun is setting gloriously over the great Drakensberg mountains, and that night also marked the end of the hopes of the Boer invaders of Natal. Out of confusion and chaos, blood and struggle, had finally emerged the realization that the lower should not overpower the higher, that the world belongs to the man of the twentieth century, not the seventeenth. After two weeks of fighting, the exhausted troops collapsed that night with the certainty that at last the door was ajar and light was breaking through. One more effort and it would be wide open before them.

Behind the line of hills which had been taken there extended a great plain as far as Bulwana—that evil neighbour who had wrought such harm upon Ladysmith. More than half of the Pieters position had fallen into Buller's hands on the 27th, and the remainder had become untenable. The Boers had lost some five hundred in killed, wounded, and prisoners. [Footnote: Accurate figures will probably never be obtained, but a well-known Boer in Pretoria informed me that Pieters was the most expensive fight to them of the whole war. ] It seemed to the British General and his men that one more action would bring them safely into Ladysmith.

Behind the line of hills that had been captured, a vast plain stretched all the way to Bulwana—an evil neighbor that had caused so much trouble for Ladysmith. Over half of the Pieters position had fallen into Buller's control on the 27th, and the rest had become impossible to hold. The Boers had lost about five hundred in total—dead, wounded, and captured. [Footnote: Accurate numbers will likely never be available, but a well-known Boer in Pretoria told me that Pieters was their costliest battle of the entire war.] The British General and his troops felt that one more battle would safely lead them into Ladysmith.

But here they miscalculated, and so often have we miscalculated on the optimistic side in this campaign that it is pleasing to find for once that our hopes were less than the reality. The Boers had been beaten—fairly beaten and disheartened. It will always be a subject for conjecture whether they were so entirely on the strength of the Natal campaign, or whether the news of the Cronje disaster from the western side had warned them that they must draw in upon the east. For my own part I believe that the honour lies with the gallant men of Natal, and that, moving on these lines, they would, Cronje or no Cronje, have forced their way in triumph to Ladysmith.

But here they miscalculated, and we have often miscalculated on the optimistic side in this campaign, so it’s nice to see that for once our hopes were actually less than the reality. The Boers had been defeated—defeated and demoralized. It will always be a topic for debate whether they were completely beaten based on the Natal campaign, or if the news of the Cronje disaster from the west made them realize they had to pull back to the east. Personally, I believe the credit goes to the brave men of Natal, and that if they had kept pushing along those lines, whether or not Cronje was involved, they would have successfully reached Ladysmith.

And now the long-drawn story draws to a swift close. Cautiously feeling their way with a fringe of horse, the British pushed over the great plain, delayed here and there by the crackle of musketry, but finding always that the obstacle gave way and vanished as they approached it. At last it seemed clear to Dundonald that there really was no barrier between his horsemen and the beleaguered city. With a squadron of Imperial Light Horse and a squadron of Natal Carabineers he rode on until, in the gathering twilight, the Ladysmith picket challenged the approaching cavalry, and the gallant town was saved.

And now the long story comes to a quick end. Carefully navigating with a line of horses, the British moved across the vast plain, occasionally slowed by the sound of gunfire, but always finding that the barrier faded away as they got closer. Eventually, it became clear to Dundonald that there was really no obstacle between his cavalry and the surrounded city. With a squadron of Imperial Light Horse and a squadron of Natal Carabineers, he continued on until, in the thickening twilight, the Ladysmith sentry challenged the approaching cavalry, and the brave town was saved.

It is hard to say which had shown the greater endurance, the rescued or their rescuers. The town, indefensible, lurking in a hollow under commanding hills, had held out for 118 days. They had endured two assaults and an incessant bombardment, to which, towards the end, owing to the failure of heavy ammunition, they were unable to make any adequate reply. It was calculated that 16, 000 shells had fallen within the town. In two successful sorties they had destroyed three of the enemy's heavy guns. They had been pressed by hunger, horseflesh was already running short, and they had been decimated by disease. More than 2000 cases of enteric and dysentery had been in hospital at one time, and the total number of admissions had been nearly as great as the total number of the garrison. One-tenth of the men had actually died of wounds or disease. Ragged, bootless, and emaciated, there still lurked in the gaunt soldiers the martial spirit of warriors. On the day after their relief 2000 of them set forth to pursue the Boers. One who helped to lead them has left it on record that the most piteous sight that he has ever seen was these wasted men, stooping under their rifles and gasping with the pressure of their accoutrements, as they staggered after their retreating enemy. A Verestschagen might find a subject these 2000 indomitable men with their emaciated horses pursuing a formidable foe. It is God's mercy they failed to overtake them.

It's hard to determine who showed more endurance, the rescued or their rescuers. The town, undefendable and hiding in a valley beneath commanding hills, held out for 118 days. They faced two attacks and constant bombardment, which, toward the end, due to a lack of heavy ammunition, they couldn't adequately respond to. It’s estimated that 16,000 shells had fallen in the town. In two successful raids, they destroyed three of the enemy's heavy guns. They struggled with hunger, supplies of horse meat were running low, and they were heavily affected by disease. Over 2,000 cases of typhoid and dysentery were in the hospital at one time, with total admissions nearly equal to the garrison’s size. One-tenth of the men had actually died from wounds or illness. Ragged, shoeless, and emaciated, the gaunt soldiers still possessed the warrior spirit. The day after their rescue, 2,000 of them set out to chase the Boers. One of their leaders recorded that the most heartbreaking sight he had ever seen was these exhausted men, hunched under their rifles and gasping under the weight of their gear, as they faltered after their retreating enemy. A Verestschagen could find a subject in these 2,000 indomitable men with their skinny horses pursuing a formidable foe. It was God's mercy that they failed to catch up with them.

If the record of the besieged force was great, that of the relieving army was no less so. Through the blackest depths of despondency and failure they had struggled to absolute success. At Colenso they had lost 1200 men, at Spion Kop 1700, at Vaalkranz 400, and now, in this last long-drawn effort, 1600 more. Their total losses were over 5000 men, more than 20 per cent of the whole army. Some particular regiments had suffered horribly. The Dublin and Inniskilling Fusiliers headed the roll of honour with only five officers and 40 per cent of the men left standing. Next to them the Lancashire Fusiliers and the Royal Lancasters had been the hardest hit. It speaks well for Buller's power of winning and holding the confidence of his men that in the face of repulse after repulse the soldiers still went into battle as steadily as ever under his command.

If the record of the besieged force was impressive, that of the relieving army was equally remarkable. They fought through the darkest times of despair and failure to achieve complete success. At Colenso, they lost 1,200 men; at Spion Kop, 1,700; at Vaalkranz, 400; and now, in this prolonged effort, another 1,600. Their total losses exceeded 5,000 men, which was more than 20 percent of the entire army. Some specific regiments experienced terrible losses. The Dublin and Inniskilling Fusiliers had the highest casualties, with only five officers and 40 percent of the soldiers remaining. Following them, the Lancashire Fusiliers and the Royal Lancasters took significant hits. It reflects well on Buller's ability to earn and maintain his men's confidence that, despite numerous setbacks, the soldiers continued to march into battle just as steadily as ever under his leadership.

On March 3rd Buller's force entered Ladysmith in state between the lines of the defenders. For their heroism the Dublin Fusiliers were put in the van of the procession, and it is told how, as the soldiers who lined the streets saw the five officers and small clump of men, the remains of what had been a strong battalion, realising, for the first time perhaps, what their relief had cost, many sobbed like children. With cheer after cheer the stream of brave men flowed for hours between banks formed by men as brave. But for the purposes of war the garrison was useless. A month of rest and food would be necessary before they could be ready to take the field once more.

On March 3rd, Buller's force entered Ladysmith in the middle of the defenders' lines. The Dublin Fusiliers, recognized for their bravery, were placed at the front of the procession. It’s said that as the soldiers lined the streets and saw the five officers and the small group of men—what was left of a once strong battalion—they began to understand, perhaps for the first time, the true cost of their relief, causing many to sob like children. With cheer after cheer, the stream of brave men passed for hours between lines formed by equally brave soldiers. However, for wartime purposes, the garrison was ineffective. They would need a month of rest and food before they could be ready to return to the field.

So the riddle of the Tugela had at last been solved. Even now, with all the light which has been shed upon the matter, it is hard to apportion praise and blame. To the cheerful optimism of Symons must be laid some of the blame of the original entanglement; but man is mortal, and he laid down his life for his mistake. White, who had been but a week in the country, could not, if he would, alter the main facts of the military situation. He did his best, committed one or two errors, did brilliantly on one or two points, and finally conducted the defence with a tenacity and a gallantry which are above all praise. It did not, fortunately, develop into an absolutely desperate affair, like Massena's defence of Genoa, but a few more weeks would have made it a military tragedy. He was fortunate in the troops whom he commanded—half of them old soldiers from India—[Footnote: An officer in high command in Ladysmith has told me, as an illustration of the nerve and discipline of the troops, that though false alarms in the Boer trenches were matters of continual occurrence from the beginning to the end of the siege, there was not one single occasion when the British outposts made a mistake.]—and exceedingly fortunate in his officers, French (in the operations before the siege), Archibald Hunter, Ian Hamilton, Hedworth Lambton, Dick-Cunyngham, Knox, De Courcy Hamilton, and all the other good men and true who stood (as long as they could stand) by his side. Above all, he was fortunate in his commissariat officers, and it was in the offices of Colonels Ward and Stoneman as much as in the trenches and sangars of Caesar's Camp that the siege was won.

So the mystery of the Tugela was finally figured out. Even now, with all the insights we have, it's tough to assign credit and blame. Some blame for the initial confusion can be attributed to the overly positive outlook of Symons, but he's only human, and he sacrificed his life for his mistake. White, who had only been in the country for a week, couldn't change the main issues of the military situation, even if he tried. He did his best, made one or two mistakes, excelled in a couple of areas, and ultimately led the defense with a determination and bravery that deserve high praise. Thankfully, it didn’t turn into a completely desperate situation like Massena's defense of Genoa, but a few more weeks could have made it a military disaster. He was lucky to have the troops he commanded—half of them were seasoned soldiers from India—[Footnote: An officer in high command in Ladysmith told me that, as an example of the nerve and discipline of the troops, despite constant false alarms in the Boer trenches throughout the siege, there was not a single instance where the British outposts made an error.]—and he was extremely fortunate to have strong officers like French (during the operations before the siege), Archibald Hunter, Ian Hamilton, Hedworth Lambton, Dick-Cunyngham, Knox, De Courcy Hamilton, and all the other dependable men who stood (as long as they could) by his side. Above all, he was lucky to have solid commissariat officers, and it was in the offices of Colonels Ward and Stoneman as much as in the trenches and sangars of Caesar's Camp that the siege was won.

Buller, like White, had to take the situation as he found it. It is well known that his own belief was that the line of the Tugela was the true defence of Natal. When he reached Africa, Ladysmith was already beleaguered, and he, with his troops, had to abandon the scheme of direct invasion and to hurry to extricate White's division. Whether they might not have been more rapidly extricated by keeping to the original plan is a question which will long furnish an excellent subject for military debate. Had Buller in November known that Ladysmith was capable of holding out until March, is it conceivable that he, with his whole army corps and as many more troops as he cared to summon from England, would not have made such an advance in four months through the Free State as would necessitate the abandonment of the sieges both of Kimberley and of Ladysmith? If the Boers persisted in these sieges they could not possibly place more than 20,000 men on the Orange River to face 60, 000 whom Buller could have had there by the first week in December. Methuen's force, French's force, Gatacre's force, and the Natal force, with the exception of garrisons for Pietermaritzburg and Durban, would have assembled, with a reserve of another sixty thousand men in the colony or on the sea ready to fill the gaps in his advance. Moving over a flat country with plenty of flanking room, it is probable that he would have been in Bloemfontein by Christmas and at the Vaal River late in January. What could the Boers do then? They might remain before Ladysmith, and learn that their capital and their gold mines had been taken in their absence. Or they might abandon the siege and trek back to defend their own homes. This, as it appears to a civilian critic, would have been the least expensive means of fighting them; but after all the strain had to come somewhere, and the long struggle of Ladysmith may have meant a more certain and complete collapse in the future. At least, by the plan actually adopted we saved Natal from total devastation, and that must count against a great deal.

Buller, like White, had to deal with the situation as it was. It’s well known that he believed the line of the Tugela was the true defense of Natal. By the time he reached Africa, Ladysmith was already under siege, and he, along with his troops, had to abandon the plan for a direct invasion and rush to rescue White's division. Whether they could have been rescued more quickly by sticking to the original plan is a question that will be debated by military experts for a long time. If Buller had known in November that Ladysmith could hold out until March, is it possible he wouldn’t have advanced with his entire army corps and as many additional troops as he wanted from England, making enough progress in four months through the Free State to force the abandonment of the sieges at Kimberley and Ladysmith? If the Boers continued these sieges, they certainly couldn’t place more than 20,000 men on the Orange River to face 60,000 troops Buller could have had there by the first week in December. Methuen’s force, French’s force, Gatacre’s force, and the Natal force, aside from the garrisons at Pietermaritzburg and Durban, would have come together, along with another sixty thousand men in the colony or at sea ready to support his advance. Moving across flat land with plenty of room to maneuver, it’s likely he would have reached Bloemfontein by Christmas and the Vaal River by late January. What could the Boers do then? They could stay at Ladysmith and find out that their capital and gold mines had been captured while they were away. Or they could abandon the siege and head back to protect their own homes. This, as it seems to a civilian critic, would have been the least costly way to fight them; but in the end, the pressure had to come from somewhere, and the protracted battle at Ladysmith may have led to a more decisive collapse later on. At the very least, by following the plan they did, they saved Natal from total destruction, and that should be taken into consideration.

Having taken his line, Buller set about his task in a slow, deliberate, but pertinacious fashion. It cannot be denied, however, that the pertinacity was largely due to the stiffening counsel of Roberts and the soldierly firmness of White who refused to acquiesce in the suggestion of surrender. Let it be acknowledged that Buller's was the hardest problem of the war, and that he solved it. The mere acknowledgment goes far to soften criticism. But the singular thing is that in his proceedings he showed qualities which had not been generally attributed to him, and was wanting in those very points which the public had imagined to be characteristic of him. He had gone out with the reputation of a downright John Bull fighter, who would take punishment or give it, but slog his way through without wincing. There was no reason for attributing any particular strategical ability to him. But as a matter of fact, setting the Colenso attempt aside, the crossing for the Spion Kop enterprise, the withdrawal of the compromised army, the Vaalkranz crossing with the clever feint upon Brakfontein, the final operations, and especially the complete change of front after the third day of Pieters, were strategical movements largely conceived and admirably carried out. On the other hand, a hesitation in pushing onwards, and a disinclination to take a risk or to endure heavy punishment, even in the case of temporary failure, were consistent characteristics of his generalship. The Vaalkranz operations are particularly difficult to defend from the charge of having been needlessly slow and half-hearted. This 'saturnine fighter,' as he had been called, proved to be exceedingly sensitive about the lives of his men—an admirable quality in itself, but there are occasions when to spare them to-day is to needlessly imperil them tomorrow. The victory was his, and yet in the very moment of it he displayed the qualities which marred him. With two cavalry brigades in hand he did not push the pursuit of the routed Boers with their guns and endless streams of wagons. It is true that he might have lost heavily, but it is true also that a success might have ended the Boer invasion of Natal, and the lives of our troopers would be well spent in such a venture. If cavalry is not to be used in pursuing a retiring enemy encumbered with much baggage, then its day is indeed past.

Having taken his approach, Buller got to work in a slow, careful, but determined way. However, it must be acknowledged that this determination was largely due to the strong advice from Roberts and the steadfastness of White, who refused to agree to the idea of surrender. It's important to recognize that Buller's was the toughest challenge of the war, and he managed to solve it. Just acknowledging this goes a long way in reducing criticism. What’s interesting is that in his actions, he showed qualities that people didn’t typically associate with him, while lacking in aspects that the public thought he embodied. He was known as a straightforward fighter, someone who would take hits or deal them out, stubbornly pushing through without flinching. There wasn’t much reason to think of him as particularly strategic. But aside from the failed attempt at Colenso, the crossing for the Spion Kop mission, the withdrawal of the stranded army, the crossing at Vaalkranz with the clever distraction at Brakfontein, the final operations, and especially the complete change of direction after the third day at Pieters, were strategic maneuvers that were mostly well-conceived and executed. On the flip side, his hesitation to push forward and reluctance to take risks or endure significant losses, even in the face of temporary setbacks, were consistent traits of his leadership. The Vaalkranz operations are particularly hard to defend against accusations of being unnecessarily slow and half-hearted. This ‘serious fighter,’ as he was called, turned out to be very concerned about the lives of his men—an admirable trait, but there are times when protecting them today could put them at even greater risk tomorrow. The victory was his, yet in that very moment, he showed the qualities that held him back. With two cavalry brigades available, he didn’t pursue the fleeing Boers along with their guns and endless supply wagons. It’s true he may have faced heavy losses, but it’s also true that a decisive victory might have ended the Boer invasion of Natal, and the lives of our soldiers would have been well spent in that effort. If cavalry isn’t meant to pursue a retreating enemy burdened with supplies, then its relevance is indeed over.

The relief of Ladysmith stirred the people of the Empire as nothing, save perhaps the subsequent relief of Mafeking, has done during our generation. Even sober unemotional London found its soul for once and fluttered with joy. Men, women, and children, rich and poor, clubman and cabman, joined in the universal delight. The thought of our garrison, of their privations, of our impotence to relieve them, of the impending humiliation to them and to us, had lain dark for many months across our spirits. It had weighed upon us, until the subject, though ever present in our thoughts, was too painful for general talk. And now, in an instant, the shadow was lifted. The outburst of rejoicing was not a triumph over the gallant Boers. But it was our own escape from humiliation, the knowledge that the blood of our sons had not been shed in vain, above all the conviction that the darkest hour had now passed and that the light of peace was dimly breaking far away—that was why London rang with joy bells that March morning, and why those bells echoed back from every town and hamlet, in tropical sun and in Arctic snow, over which the flag of Britain waved.

The relief of Ladysmith excited the people of the Empire like nothing else, except maybe the later relief of Mafeking, during our generation. Even the typically reserved people of London found their spirits lifted for once and celebrated with joy. Men, women, and children, rich and poor, club members and cab drivers, all joined in the shared happiness. The thought of our garrison, their struggles, our inability to help them, and the potential embarrassment for them and for us had cast a dark shadow over our spirits for many months. It had weighed heavily on us, to the point where, while it was always in our minds, the topic was too painful for open discussion. And now, in an instant, that shadow was gone. The celebration wasn't a victory over the brave Boers but rather our own escape from humiliation, the realization that the blood of our sons hadn’t been shed in vain, and above all, the belief that the darkest hour had passed and the light of peace was slowly emerging far away—that's why London was filled with joyful bells that March morning, and why those bells echoed back from every town and village, in the tropical sun and in the Arctic snow, wherever the British flag flew.





CHAPTER 18. THE SIEGE AND RELIEF OF KIMBERLEY.

It has already been narrated how, upon the arrival of the army corps from England, the greater part was drafted to Natal, while some went to the western side, and started under Lord Methuen upon the perilous enterprise of the relief of Kimberley. It has also been shown how, after three expensive victories, Lord Methuen's force met with a paralysing reverse, and was compelled to remain inactive within twenty miles of the town which they had come to succour. Before I describe how that succour did eventually arrive, some attention must be paid to the incidents which had occurred within the city.

It has already been explained how, when the army corps arrived from England, most of them were sent to Natal, while some headed to the west and began, under Lord Methuen, the risky mission to relieve Kimberley. It has also been detailed how, after three costly victories, Lord Methuen's force experienced a devastating setback and had to stay inactive within twenty miles of the town they were there to help. Before I describe how that help eventually came, we need to look at the events that took place inside the city.

'I am directed to assure you that there is no reason for apprehending that Kimberley or any part of the colony either is, or in any contemplated event will be, in danger of attack. Mr. Schreiner is of opinion that your fears are groundless and your anticipations in the matter entirely without foundation.' Such is the official reply to the remonstrance of the inhabitants, when, with the shadow of war dark upon them, they appealed for help. It is fortunate, however, that a progressive British town has usually the capacity for doing things for itself without the intervention of officials. Kimberley was particularly lucky in being the centre of the wealthy and alert De Beers Company, which had laid in sufficient ammunition and supplies to prevent the town from being helpless in the presence of the enemy. But the cannon were popguns, firing a 7-pound shell for a short range, and the garrison contained only seven hundred regulars, while the remainder were mostly untrained miners and artisans. Among them, however, there was a sprinkling of dangerous men from the northern wars, and all were nerved by a knowledge that the ground which they defended was essential to the Empire. Ladysmith was no more than any other strategic position, but Kimberley was unique, the centre of the richest tract of ground for its size in the whole world. Its loss would have been a heavy blow to the British cause, and an enormous encouragement to the Boers.

'I want to reassure you that there is no reason to fear that Kimberley or any part of the colony is, or will be, in danger of attack. Mr. Schreiner believes that your concerns are unfounded and your expectations in this matter are completely baseless.' This was the official response to the residents' protests when they appealed for help amid the looming threat of war. Thankfully, a progressive British town typically has the ability to take care of itself without waiting for officials to intervene. Kimberley was particularly fortunate to be home to the wealthy and proactive De Beers Company, which had stockpiled enough ammunition and supplies to keep the town from being defenseless against the enemy. However, the cannons were like popguns, able to fire a 7-pound shell only for a short distance, and the garrison consisted of only seven hundred regular soldiers, with the rest mostly being untrained miners and tradespeople. Among them, though, were a few battle-hardened men from the northern wars, and they were motivated by the understanding that the land they were defending was crucial to the Empire. Ladysmith was no more significant than any other strategic location, but Kimberley was exceptional, being at the center of the richest area of land for its size in the entire world. Losing it would have been a significant setback for the British cause and a huge boost for the Boers.

On October 12th, several hours after the expiration of Kruger's ultimatum, Cecil Rhodes threw himself into Kimberley. This remarkable man, who stood for the future of South Africa as clearly as the Dopper Boer stood for its past, had, both in features and in character, some traits which may, without extravagance, be called Napoleonic. The restless energy, the fertility of resource, the attention to detail, the wide sweep of mind, the power of terse comment—all these recall the great emperor. So did the simplicity of private life in the midst of excessive wealth. And so finally did a want of scruple where an ambition was to be furthered, shown, for example, in that enormous donation to the Irish party by which he made a bid for their parliamentary support, and in the story of the Jameson raid. A certain cynicism of mind and a grim humour complete the parallel. But Rhodes was a Napoleon of peace. The consolidation of South Africa under the freest and most progressive form of government was the large object on which he had expended his energies and his fortune but the development of the country in every conceivable respect, from the building of a railway to the importation of a pedigree bull, engaged his unremitting attention.

On October 12th, several hours after Kruger's ultimatum expired, Cecil Rhodes entered Kimberley. This extraordinary man, who represented the future of South Africa just as the Dopper Boer represented its past, had some traits in both appearance and character that could easily be described as Napoleonic. His relentless energy, resourcefulness, attention to detail, broad thinking, and ability to make concise comments all remind one of the great emperor. The simplicity of his private life amidst great wealth was also notable. Furthermore, his willingness to bend ethical standards to advance his ambitions was evident, for instance, in his huge donation to the Irish party to gain their parliamentary support and in the events surrounding the Jameson raid. A certain cynicism and a dark sense of humor complete the comparison. But Rhodes was a Napoleon of peace. His main goal was the unification of South Africa under the most free and progressive government possible, and he dedicated his energy and fortune to this vision. However, the development of the country in every imaginable way, from building railways to importing pedigree bulls, also captured his constant attention.

It was on October 15th that the fifty thousand inhabitants of Kimberley first heard the voice of war. It rose and fell in a succession of horrible screams and groans which travelled far over the veld, and the outlying farmers marvelled at the dreadful clamour from the sirens and the hooters of the great mines. Those who have endured all—the rifle, the cannon, and the hunger—have said that those wild whoops from the sirens were what had tried their nerve the most.

It was on October 15th that the fifty thousand residents of Kimberley first experienced the sound of war. It rose and fell in a series of terrible screams and groans that echoed far across the veld, and the farmers living on the outskirts were astonished by the horrific noise from the sirens and alarms of the massive mines. Those who have faced everything—the gunfire, the cannon, and the hunger—have claimed that those wild screams from the sirens were what challenged their nerves the most.

The Boers in scattered bands of horsemen were thick around the town, and had blocked the railroad. They raided cattle upon the outskirts, but made no attempt to rush the defence. The garrison, who, civilian and military, approached four thousand in number, lay close in rifle pit and redoubt waiting for an attack which never came. The perimeter to be defended was about eight miles, but the heaps of tailings made admirable fortifications, and the town had none of those inconvenient heights around it which had been such bad neighbours to Ladysmith. Picturesque surroundings are not favourable to defence.

The Boers were spread out in groups of horsemen around the town and had blocked the railroad. They were stealing cattle from the outskirts but didn’t try to rush the defenses. The garrison, made up of both civilians and military personnel, numbered close to four thousand and lay in rifle pits and redoubts, waiting for an attack that never happened. The area they needed to defend was about eight miles, but the piles of tailings provided excellent fortifications, and the town had none of those annoying heights nearby that had been such trouble for Ladysmith. Scenic surroundings aren’t great for defense.

On October 24th the garrison, finding that no attack was made, determined upon a reconnaissance. The mounted force, upon which most of the work and of the loss fell, consisted of the Diamond Fields Horse, a small number of Cape Police, a company of Mounted Infantry, and a body called the Kimberley Light Horse. With two hundred and seventy volunteers from this force Major Scott-Turner, a redoubtable fighter, felt his way to the north until he came in touch with the Boers. The latter, who were much superior in numbers, manoeuvred to cut him off, but the arrival of two companies of the North Lancashire Regiment turned the scale in our favour. We lost three killed and twenty-one wounded in the skirmish. The Boer loss is unknown, but their commander Botha was slain.

On October 24th, the garrison, noticing that no attack took place, decided to conduct a reconnaissance. The mounted unit, which bore most of the workload and sustained the majority of the losses, included the Diamond Fields Horse, a few members of the Cape Police, a company of Mounted Infantry, and a group known as the Kimberley Light Horse. With two hundred and seventy volunteers from this unit, Major Scott-Turner, a skilled fighter, advanced north until he encountered the Boers. The Boers, who greatly outnumbered them, tried to encircle him, but the arrival of two companies from the North Lancashire Regiment shifted the advantage back to us. We suffered three deaths and twenty-one injuries in the skirmish. The Boer casualties are unknown, but their leader, Botha, was killed.

On November 4th Commandant Wessels formally summoned the town, and it is asserted that he gave Colonel Kekewich leave to send out the women and children. That officer has been blamed for not taking advantage of the permission—or at the least for not communicating it to the civil authorities. As a matter of fact the charge rests upon a misapprehension. In Wessels' letter a distinction is made between Africander and English women, the former being offered an asylum in his camp. This offer was made known, and half a dozen persons took advantage of it. The suggestion, however, in the case of the English carried with it no promise that they would be conveyed to Orange River, and a compliance with it would have put them as helpless hostages into the hands of the enemy. As to not publishing the message it is not usual to publish such official documents, but the offer was shown to Mr. Rhodes, who concurred in the impossibility of accepting it.

On November 4th, Commandant Wessels officially called the town together, and it’s claimed that he allowed Colonel Kekewich to send out the women and children. That officer has faced criticism for not taking advantage of this permission—or at least for not informing the civil authorities. In reality, the accusation is based on a misunderstanding. Wessels' letter distinguishes between Africander and English women, offering the former asylum in his camp. This offer was communicated, and a few people accepted it. However, the suggestion for the English women came with no guarantee that they would be taken to Orange River, and agreeing to it would have left them entirely vulnerable as hostages to the enemy. Regarding the failure to publish the message, it’s typical not to make such official documents public, but the offer was shown to Mr. Rhodes, who agreed that it was impossible to accept.

It is difficult to allude to this subject without touching upon the painful but notorious fact that there existed during the siege considerable friction between the military authorities and a section of the civilians, of whom Mr. Rhodes was chief. Among other characteristics Rhodes bore any form of restraint very badly, and chafed mightily when unable to do a thing in the exact way which he considered best. He may have been a Napoleon of peace, but his warmest friends could never describe him as a Napoleon of war, for his military forecasts have been erroneous, and the management of the Jameson fiasco certainly inspired no confidence in the judgment of any one concerned. That his intentions were of the best, and that he had the good of the Empire at heart, may be freely granted; but that these motives should lead him to cabal against, and even to threaten, the military governor, or that he should attempt to force Lord Roberts's hand in a military operation, was most deplorable. Every credit may be given to him for all his aid to the military—he gave with a good grace what the garrison would otherwise have had to commandeer—but it is a fact that the town would have been more united, and therefore stronger, without his presence. Colonel Kekewich and his chief staff officer, Major O'Meara, were as much plagued by intrigue within as by the Boers without.

It's tough to talk about this topic without mentioning the painful yet well-known fact that during the siege, there was a lot of tension between the military leaders and a group of civilians, with Mr. Rhodes being the main figure. One key trait of Rhodes was his dislike for any kind of restriction; he became very frustrated when he couldn't do things the way he thought was best. He might have been a peacemaker, but even his closest friends wouldn't call him a wartime leader, as his military predictions were often wrong, and the way he handled the Jameson incident certainly didn't inspire confidence in anyone involved. While it's clear that his intentions were good and that he genuinely cared about the Empire, it was really unfortunate that those motives drove him to plot against and even threaten the military governor or try to pressure Lord Roberts during a military operation. He deserves credit for his support of the military—he graciously provided supplies that the garrison would have had to seize otherwise—but it's true that the town would have been more united and therefore stronger without him. Colonel Kekewich and his main staff officer, Major O'Meara, faced just as much trouble from internal intrigue as they did from the Boers outside.

On November 7th the bombardment of the town commenced from nine 9-pounder guns to which the artillery of the garrison could give no adequate reply. The result, however, of a fortnight's fire, during which seven hundred shells were discharged, was the loss of two non-combatants. The question of food was recognised as being of more importance than the enemy's fire. An early relief appeared probable, however, as the advance of Methuen's force was already known. One pound of bread, two ounces of sugar, and half a pound of meat were allowed per head. It was only on the small children that the scarcity of milk told with tragic effect. At Ladysmith, at Mafeking, and at Kimberley hundreds of these innocents were sacrificed.

On November 7th, the town was bombarded by nine 9-pounder guns, and the garrison's artillery couldn't respond effectively. After two weeks of continuous fire, during which seven hundred shells were fired, only two non-combatants were killed. The issue of food was seen as more critical than the enemy's attacks. However, it seemed likely that relief would come soon, as Methuen's force was already on the move. Each person was given one pound of bread, two ounces of sugar, and half a pound of meat. Unfortunately, the lack of milk had a devastating impact on the small children. In Ladysmith, Mafeking, and Kimberley, many of these innocent lives were lost.

November 25th was a red-letter day with the garrison, who made a sortie under the impression that Methuen was not far off, and that they were assisting his operations. The attack was made upon one of the Boer positions by a force consisting of a detachment of the Light Horse and of the Cape Police, and their work was brilliantly successful. The actual storming of the redoubt was carried out by some forty men, of whom but four were killed. They brought back thirty-three prisoners as a proof of their victory, but the Boer gun, as usual, escaped us. In this brilliant affair Scott-Turner was wounded, which did not prevent him, only three days later, from leading another sortie, which was as disastrous as the first had been successful. Save under very exceptional circumstances it is in modern warfare long odds always upon the defence, and the garrison would probably have been better advised had they refrained from attacking the fortifications of their enemy—a truth which Baden-Powell learned also at Game Tree Hill. As it was, after a temporary success the British were blown back by the fierce Mauser fire, and lost the indomitable Scott-Turner, with twenty-one of his brave companions killed and twenty-eight wounded, all belonging to the colonial corps. The Empire may reflect with pride that the people in whose cause mainly they fought showed themselves by their gallantry and their devotion worthy of any sacrifice which has been made.

November 25th was a significant day for the garrison, who launched an attack believing that Methuen was nearby and that they were helping his efforts. The assault targeted one of the Boer positions by a team that included a unit from the Light Horse and the Cape Police, and they achieved remarkable success. The actual capture of the redoubt involved about forty men, with only four killed. They returned with thirty-three prisoners as proof of their victory, but as usual, the Boer gun managed to escape. In this impressive operation, Scott-Turner was wounded, but just three days later, he led another attack that turned out to be just as disastrous as the first had been successful. In modern warfare, the odds are typically in favor of the defensive side, and the garrison likely would have been better off not attacking their enemy's fortifications—a lesson Baden-Powell also learned at Game Tree Hill. Ultimately, after a brief success, the British were pushed back by intense Mauser fire and lost the resilient Scott-Turner, along with twenty-one of his brave comrades who were killed and twenty-eight others wounded, all from the colonial corps. The Empire can take pride in the fact that the people they fought for demonstrated their valor and dedication, proving worthy of any sacrifice made.

Again the siege settled down to a monotonous record of decreasing rations and of expectation. On December 10 there came a sign of hope from the outside world. Far on the southern horizon a little golden speck shimmered against the blue African sky. It was Methuen's balloon gleaming in the sunshine. Next morning the low grumble of distant cannon was the sweetest of music to the listening citizens. But days passed without further news, and it was not for more than a week that they learned of the bloody repulse of Magersfontein, and that help was once more indefinitely postponed. Heliographic communication had been opened with the relieving army, and it is on record that the first message flashed through from the south was a question about the number of a horse. With inconceivable stupidity this has been cited as an example of military levity and incapacity. Of course the object of the question was a test as to whether they were really in communication with the garrison. It must be confessed that the town seems to have contained some very querulous and unreasonable people.

Once again, the siege settled into a dull routine of dwindling supplies and anticipation. On December 10, hope appeared from the outside world. Far on the southern horizon, a small golden dot sparkled against the blue African sky. It was Methuen's balloon shining in the sunlight. The next morning, the distant rumble of cannon fire was the sweetest music to the ears of the citizens. But days rolled by without further news, and it wasn't until over a week later that they learned about the bloody defeat at Magersfontein, and that help would once again be delayed indefinitely. Heliographic communication had been established with the relieving army, and it is recorded that the first message sent from the south was a question about the number of a horse. Unbelievably, this has been used as an example of military foolishness and incompetence. The purpose of the question was actually a way to confirm that they were genuinely in contact with the garrison. It must be acknowledged that the town appeared to have some very irritable and unreasonable residents.

The New Year found the beleaguered city reduced to a quarter of a pound of meat per head, while the health of the inhabitants began to break down under their confinement. Their interest, however, was keenly aroused by the attempt made in the De Beers workshops to build a gun which might reach their opponents. This remarkable piece of ordnance, constructed by an American named Labram by the help of tools manufactured for the purpose and of books found in the town, took the shape eventually of a 28 lb. rifled gun, which proved to be a most efficient piece of artillery. With grim humour, Mr. Rhodes's compliments had been inscribed upon the shells—a fair retort in view of the openly expressed threat of the enemy that in case of his capture they would carry him in a cage to Pretoria.

The New Year found the struggling city down to just a quarter of a pound of meat per person, while the health of the residents started to deteriorate due to their confinement. Their interest, however, was piqued by the effort being made in the De Beers workshops to build a gun that could hit their opponents. This impressive piece of artillery, made by an American named Labram with the help of specially made tools and books found in the town, eventually took the form of a 28 lb. rifled gun, which turned out to be a highly effective weapon. With dark humor, Mr. Rhodes’s remarks were inscribed on the shells—a fitting reply considering the openly stated threat from the enemy that, if they captured him, they would carry him in a cage to Pretoria.

The Boers, though held off for a time by this unexpected piece of ordnance, prepared a terrible answer to it. On February 7th an enormous gun, throwing a 96 lb. shell, opened from Kamfersdam, which is four miles from the centre of the town. The shells, following the evil precedent of the Germans in 1870, were fired not at the forts, but into the thickly populated city. Day and night these huge missiles exploded, shattering the houses and occasionally killing or maiming the occupants. Some thousands of the women and children were conveyed down the mines, where, in the electric-lighted tunnels, they lay in comfort and safety. One surprising revenge the Boers had, for by an extraordinary chance one of the few men killed by their gun was the ingenious Labram who had constructed the 28-pounder. By an even more singular chance, Leon, who was responsible for bringing the big Boer gun, was struck immediately afterwards by a long-range rifle-shot from the garrison.

The Boers, though initially held back by this unexpected artillery, prepared a fierce response. On February 7th, a massive gun that fired a 96 lb. shell was set up at Kamfersdam, which is four miles from the center of town. Following the troubling example of the Germans in 1870, the shells were targeted not at the forts but at the densely populated city. Day and night, these huge projectiles exploded, destroying buildings and occasionally killing or injuring residents. Several thousand women and children were taken down the mines, where they found comfort and safety in the electric-lit tunnels. One surprising twist of fate for the Boers was that one of the few men killed by their gun was the clever Labram, who had designed the 28-pounder. In an even stranger turn of events, Leon, who was responsible for bringing the large Boer gun, was struck moments later by a long-range rifle shot from the garrison.

The historian must be content to give a tame account of the siege of Kimberley, for the thing itself was tame. Indeed 'siege' is a misnomer, for it was rather an investment or a blockade. Such as it was, however, the inhabitants became very restless under it, and though there were never any prospects of surrender the utmost impatience began to be manifested at the protracted delay on the part of the relief force. It was not till later that it was understood how cunningly Kimberley had been used as a bait to hold the enemy until final preparations had been made for his destruction.

The historian has to settle for a pretty dull account of the siege of Kimberley, because the event itself was pretty dull. In fact, calling it a 'siege' is misleading; it was more like an investment or a blockade. Despite this, the residents became increasingly anxious, and even though there was never any chance of surrender, they became very impatient with the long wait for the relief force. It wasn't until later that it became clear how cleverly Kimberley had been used as bait to keep the enemy occupied until the final plans were in place for their defeat.

And at last the great day came. It is on record how dramatic was the meeting between the mounted outposts of the defenders and the advance guard of the relievers, whose advent seems to have been equally unexpected by friend and foe. A skirmish was in progress on February 15th between a party of the Kimberley Light Horse and of the Boers, when a new body of horsemen, unrecognised by either side, appeared upon the plain and opened fire upon the enemy. One of the strangers rode up to the patrol. 'What the dickens does K.L. H. mean on your shoulder-strap?' he asked. 'It means Kimberley Light Horse. Who are you?' 'I am one of the New Zealanders.' Macaulay in his wildest dream of the future of the much-quoted New Zealander never pictured him as heading a rescue force for the relief of a British town in the heart of Africa.

And finally, the big day arrived. It's recorded how dramatic the meeting was between the mounted scouts of the defenders and the advance guard of the reinforcements, whose arrival seemed to surprise both sides. On February 15th, a skirmish was ongoing between a group from the Kimberley Light Horse and the Boers when a new group of horsemen, unknown to either side, appeared on the plain and opened fire on the enemy. One of the newcomers rode up to the patrol. "What does K.L.H. mean on your shoulder strap?" he asked. "It stands for Kimberley Light Horse. Who are you?" "I'm one of the New Zealanders." Macaulay, in his wildest imagination of the future of the often-quoted New Zealander, never envisioned him leading a rescue team to relieve a British town in the heart of Africa.

The population had assembled to watch the mighty cloud of dust which rolled along the south-eastern horizon. What was it which swept westwards within its reddish heart? Hopeful and yet fearful they saw the huge bank draw nearer and nearer. An assault from the whole of Cronje's army was the thought which passed through many a mind. And then the dust-cloud thinned, a mighty host of horsemen spurred out from it, and in the extended far-flung ranks the glint of spearheads and the gleam of scabbards told of the Hussars and Lancers, while denser banks on either flank marked the position of the whirling guns. Wearied and spent with a hundred miles' ride the dusty riders and the panting, dripping horses took fresh heart as they saw the broad city before them, and swept with martial rattle and jingle towards the cheering crowds. Amid shouts and tears French rode into Kimberley while his troopers encamped outside the town.

The crowd had gathered to watch the huge cloud of dust rolling along the southeastern horizon. What was sweeping westward from its reddish center? Hopeful yet anxious, they saw the massive cloud coming closer and closer. Many minds wondered if it was an assault from Cronje's entire army. Then, the dust cloud began to thin, and a large group of horsemen charged out from it. The shining spearheads and gleaming scabbards in their extended ranks revealed the Hussars and Lancers, while denser clouds on either side indicated the position of the spinning guns. Tired and worn out from riding a hundred miles, the dusty riders and their panting, sweaty horses gained new energy as they spotted the sprawling city ahead and moved forward with the clatter of their gear towards the cheering crowds. Amid shouts and tears, French rode into Kimberley while his troops set up camp outside the town.

To know how this bolt was prepared and how launched, the narrative must go back to the beginning of the month. At that period Methuen and his men were still faced by Cronje and his entrenched forces, who, in spite of occasional bombardments, held their position between Kimberley and the relieving army. French, having handed over the operations at Colesberg to Clements, had gone down to Cape Town to confer with Roberts and Kitchener. Thence they all three made their way to the Modder River, which was evidently about to be the base of a more largely conceived series of operations than any which had yet been undertaken.

To understand how this bolt was made and launched, we need to go back to the start of the month. At that time, Methuen and his troops were still up against Cronje and his fortified forces, who, despite occasional bombings, were holding their ground between Kimberley and the army that was supposed to relieve them. French, after passing control of operations at Colesberg to Clements, had gone to Cape Town to meet with Roberts and Kitchener. From there, the three of them traveled to the Modder River, which was clearly going to serve as the base for a much larger set of operations than anything that had been attempted so far.

In order to draw the Boer attention away from the thunderbolt which was about to fall upon their left flank, a strong demonstration ending in a brisk action was made early in February upon the extreme right of Cronje's position. The force, consisting of the Highland Brigade, two squadrons of the 9th Lancers, No. 7 Co. Royal Engineers, and the 62nd Battery, was under the command of the famous Hector Macdonald. 'Fighting Mac' as he was called by his men, had joined his regiment as a private, and had worked through the grades of corporal, sergeant, captain, major, and colonel, until now, still in the prime of his manhood, he found himself riding at the head of a brigade. A bony, craggy Scotsman, with a square fighting head and a bulldog jaw, he had conquered the exclusiveness and routine of the British service by the same dogged qualities which made him formidable to Dervish and to Boer. With a cool brain, a steady nerve, and a proud heart, he is an ideal leader of infantry, and those who saw him manoeuvre his brigade in the crisis of the battle of Omdurman speak of it as the one great memory which they carried back from the engagement. On the field of battle he turns to the speech of his childhood, the jagged, rasping, homely words which brace the nerves of the northern soldier. This was the man who had come from India to take the place of poor Wauchope, and to put fresh heart into the gallant but sorely stricken brigade.

To divert the Boers' attention away from the impending attack on their left flank, a strong show of force, culminating in a quick battle, was made in early February on the far right of Cronje's position. The unit, made up of the Highland Brigade, two squadrons of the 9th Lancers, No. 7 Company Royal Engineers, and the 62nd Battery, was led by the renowned Hector Macdonald. Known as 'Fighting Mac' by his men, he started his career as a private and climbed the ranks to become a corporal, sergeant, captain, major, and colonel. Now, still in the prime of his life, he found himself at the head of a brigade. A lean, rugged Scotsman with a strong head and a bulldog jaw, he had overcome the exclusivity and monotony of the British army using the same stubborn qualities that made him a force to reckon with against both Dervish and Boer. With a sharp mind, steady nerves, and a proud spirit, he was an ideal leader of infantry, and those who witnessed him maneuver his brigade during the critical moment of the battle of Omdurman remember it as the standout memory from the engagement. On the battlefield, he spoke in the language of his youth, the rough, direct words that bolster the resolve of northern soldiers. This was the man who had come from India to take over from the unfortunate Wauchope and to restore strength to the brave but badly wounded brigade.

The four regiments which composed the infantry of the force—the Black Watch, the Argyll and Sutherlands, the Seaforths, and the Highland Light Infantry—left Lord Methuen's camp on Saturday, February 3rd, and halted at Fraser's Drift, passing on next day to Koodoosberg. The day was very hot, and the going very heavy, and many men fell out, some never to return. The drift (or ford) was found, however, to be undefended, and was seized by Macdonald, who, after pitching camp on the south side of the river, sent out strong parties across the drift to seize and entrench the Koodoosberg and some adjacent kopjes which, lying some three-quarters of a mile to the north-west of the drift formed the key of the position. A few Boer scouts were seen hurrying with the news of his coming to the head laager.

The four regiments that made up the infantry of the force—the Black Watch, the Argyll and Sutherland Highlanders, the Seaforths, and the Highland Light Infantry—left Lord Methuen's camp on Saturday, February 3rd, and stopped at Fraser's Drift, moving on the next day to Koodoosberg. It was a very hot day, and the terrain was tough, causing many men to drop out, some never to return. However, the drift (or ford) was found to be unprotected and was taken by Macdonald, who, after setting up camp on the south side of the river, sent strong teams across the drift to capture and fortify Koodoosberg and some nearby kopjes, which lay about three-quarters of a mile northwest of the drift and were crucial to the position. A few Boer scouts were spotted rushing with the news of his arrival to the main camp.

The effect of these messages was evident by Tuesday (February 6th), when the Boers were seen to be assembling upon the north bank. By next morning they were there in considerable numbers, and began an attack upon a crest held by the Seaforths. Macdonald threw two companies of the Black Watch and two of the Highland Light Infantry into the fight. The Boers made excellent practice with a 7-pounder mountain gun, and their rifle fire, considering the good cover which our men had, was very deadly. Poor Tait, of the Black Watch, good sportsman and gallant soldier, with one wound hardly healed upon his person, was hit again. 'They've got me this time,' were his dying words. Blair, of the Seaforths, had his carotid cut by a shrapnel bullet, and lay for hours while the men of his company took turns to squeeze the artery. But our artillery silenced the Boer gun, and our infantry easily held their riflemen. Babington with the cavalry brigade arrived from the camp about 1.30, moving along the north bank of the river. In spite of the fact that men and horses were weary from a tiring march, it was hoped by Macdonald's force that they would work round the Boers and make an attempt to capture either them or their gun. But the horsemen seem not to have realised the position of the parties, or that possibility of bringing off a considerable coup, so the action came to a tame conclusion, the Boers retiring unpursued from their attack. On Thursday, February 8th, they were found to have withdrawn, and on the same evening our own force was recalled, to the surprise and disappointment of the public at home, who had not realised that in directing their attention to their right flank the column had already produced the effect upon the enemy for which they had been sent. They could not be left there, as they were needed for those great operations which were pending. It was on the 9th that the brigade returned; on the 10th they were congratulated by Lord Roberts in person; and on the 11th those new dispositions were made which were destined not only to relieve Kimberley, but to inflict a blow upon the Boer cause from which it was never able to recover.

The impact of these messages became clear by Tuesday (February 6th), when the Boers were seen gathering on the north bank. By the next morning, they had assembled in significant numbers and started an attack on a ridge held by the Seaforths. Macdonald deployed two companies of the Black Watch and two of the Highland Light Infantry into the fight. The Boers did a great job with a 7-pounder mountain gun, and their rifle fire, despite our men having good cover, was very effective. Poor Tait of the Black Watch, a good sportsman and brave soldier, was shot again with one wound barely healed. "They've got me this time," were his last words. Blair from the Seaforths had his carotid artery severed by a shrapnel bullet and lay there for hours while his fellow soldiers took turns applying pressure to the wound. However, our artillery silenced the Boer gun, and our infantry easily held back their riflemen. Babington with the cavalry brigade arrived from camp around 1:30, moving along the north bank of the river. Although the men and horses were exhausted from a long march, Macdonald’s force hoped they could circle around the Boers and try to capture either them or their gun. Unfortunately, the horsemen didn’t seem to understand the situation well enough to seize a significant opportunity, so the encounter ended without further action, with the Boers retreating unpursued. On Thursday, February 8th, they were found to have withdrawn, and that evening our own forces were called back, surprising and disappointing the public at home, who hadn’t realized that focusing on their right flank had already affected the enemy as intended. They could not remain there, as they were needed for the major operations on the horizon. The brigade returned on the 9th, received congratulations from Lord Roberts in person on the 10th, and by the 11th, new arrangements were made that would not only relieve Kimberley but also strike a blow to the Boer cause from which it would never recover.

Small, brown, and wrinkled, with puckered eyes and alert manner, Lord Roberts in spite of his sixty-seven years preserves the figure and energy of youth. The active open-air life of India keeps men fit for the saddle when in England they would only sit their club armchairs, and it is hard for any one who sees the wiry figure and brisk step of Lord Roberts to realise that he has spent forty-one years of soldiering in what used to be regarded as an unhealthy climate. He had carried into late life the habit of martial exercise, and a Russian traveller has left it on record that the sight which surprised him most in India was to see the veteran commander of the army ride forth with his spear and carry off the peg with the skill of a practised trooper. In his early youth he had shown in the Mutiny that he possessed the fighting energy of the soldier to a remarkable degree, but it was only in the Afghan War of 1880 that he had an opportunity of proving that he had rarer and more valuable gifts, the power of swift resolution and determined execution. At the crisis of the war he and his army disappeared entirely from the public ken only to emerge dramatically as victors at a point three hundred miles distant from where they had vanished.

Small, brown, and wrinkled, with puckered eyes and an attentive demeanor, Lord Roberts, despite being sixty-seven years old, still has the build and energy of youth. The active outdoor lifestyle in India keeps men fit for riding, while back in England they would just be sitting in their club armchairs. It's hard for anyone who sees Lord Roberts’ wiry frame and brisk stride to believe he has spent forty-one years as a soldier in what was once viewed as an unhealthy climate. He has maintained the habit of physical exercise well into later life, and a Russian traveler noted that the most surprising sight for him in India was watching the veteran army commander ride out with his spear, skillfully picking up the peg like a seasoned rider. In his early years during the Mutiny, he demonstrated an impressive fighting spirit, but it was during the Afghan War of 1880 that he really showed he had even rarer and more valuable qualities: the ability to make quick decisions and execute them with determination. At a critical moment in the war, he and his army completely disappeared from public view, only to reappear dramatically as victors three hundred miles from where they had vanished.

It is not only as a soldier, but as a man, that Lord Roberts possesses some remarkable characteristics. He has in a supreme degree that magnetic quality which draws not merely the respect but the love of those who know him. In Chaucer's phrase, he is a very perfect gentle knight. Soldiers and regimental officers have for him a feeling of personal affection such as the unemotional British Army has never had for any leader in the course of our history. His chivalrous courtesy, his unerring tact, his kindly nature, his unselfish and untiring devotion to their interests have all endeared him to those rough loyal natures, who would follow him with as much confidence and devotion as the grognards of the Guard had in the case of the Great Emperor. There were some who feared that in Roberts's case, as in so many more, the donga and kopje of South Africa might form the grave and headstone of a military reputation, but far from this being so he consistently showed a wide sweep of strategy and a power of conceiving the effect of scattered movements over a great extent of country which have surprised his warmest admirers. In the second week of February his dispositions were ready, and there followed the swift series of blows which brought the Boers upon their knees. Of these we shall only describe here the exploits of the fine force of cavalry which, after a ride of a hundred miles, broke out of the heart of that reddish dustcloud and swept the Boer besiegers away from hard-pressed Kimberley.

It’s not just as a soldier, but as a person, that Lord Roberts has some remarkable traits. He has an incredible ability to attract not only the respect but also the love of those who know him. In Chaucer's words, he is a truly perfect gentle knight. Soldiers and regimental officers feel a personal affection for him that the typically stoic British Army has never had for any leader in our history. His chivalrous courtesy, keen tact, kind nature, and selfless dedication to their interests have all endeared him to those tough loyal characters, who would follow him with as much confidence and loyalty as the troopers of the Guard had for the Great Emperor. Some feared that, like many others, the donga and kopje of South Africa might be the end of Roberts's military reputation, but instead, he consistently demonstrated a broad strategic vision and an ability to understand the impact of coordinated movements over a large area, which surprised even his most ardent supporters. In the second week of February, his plans were in place, leading to a rapid succession of strikes that brought the Boers to their knees. Here, we will only mention the achievements of the strong cavalry force that, after a hundred-mile ride, broke out from the center of that reddish dust cloud and drove the Boer besiegers away from the hard-pressed Kimberley.

In order to strike unexpectedly, Lord Roberts had not only made a strong demonstration at Koodoosdrift, at the other end of the Boer line, but he had withdrawn his main force some forty miles south, taking them down by rail to Belmont and Enslin with such secrecy that even commanding officers had no idea whither the troops were going. The cavalry which had come from French's command at Colesberg had already reached the rendezvous, travelling by road to Naauwpoort, and thence by train. This force consisted of the Carabineers, New South Wales Lancers, Inniskillings, composite regiment of Household Cavalry, 10th Hussars, with some mounted infantry and two batteries of Horse Artillery, making a force of nearly three thousand sabres. To this were added the 9th and 12th Lancers from Modder River, the 16th Lancers from India, the Scots Greys, which had been patrolling Orange River from the beginning of the war, Rimington's Scouts, and two brigades of mounted infantry under Colonels Ridley and Hannay. The force under this latter officer had a severe skirmish on its way to the rendezvous and lost fifty or sixty in killed, wounded, and missing. Five other batteries of Horse Artillery were added to the force, making seven in all, with a pontoon section of Royal Engineers. The total number of men was about five thousand. By the night of Sunday, February 11th, this formidable force had concentrated at Ramdam, twenty miles north-east of Belmont, and was ready to advance. At two in the morning of Monday, February 12th, the start was made, and the long sinuous line of night-riders moved off over the shadowy veld, the beat of twenty thousand hoofs, the clank of steel, and the rumble of gunwheels and tumbrils swelling into a deep low roar like the surge upon the shingle.

To launch a surprise attack, Lord Roberts not only staged a strong show at Koodoosdrift, located at the far end of the Boer line, but he also pulled his main force back about forty miles south, transporting them by rail to Belmont and Enslin with such secrecy that even the commanding officers had no clue where the troops were headed. The cavalry that had come from French's command at Colesberg had already reached the meeting point, traveling by road to Naauwpoort and then by train. This force included the Carabineers, New South Wales Lancers, Inniskillings, a composite regiment of Household Cavalry, 10th Hussars, along with some mounted infantry and two batteries of Horse Artillery, totaling nearly three thousand sabers. Added to this were the 9th and 12th Lancers from Modder River, the 16th Lancers from India, the Scots Greys, who had been patrolling the Orange River since the start of the war, Rimington's Scouts, and two brigades of mounted infantry led by Colonels Ridley and Hannay. The force under the latter officer had a tough skirmish on the way to the meeting point, suffering fifty or sixty casualties in killed, wounded, and missing. Five other batteries of Horse Artillery were added to the mix, bringing the total to seven, along with a pontoon section of Royal Engineers. The total number of soldiers was around five thousand. By the night of Sunday, February 11th, this powerful force had gathered at Ramdam, twenty miles northeast of Belmont, and was set to advance. At two in the morning on Monday, February 12th, they began their journey, and the long, winding line of night riders moved out across the shadowy veld, the sound of twenty thousand hooves, the clanking of steel, and the rumble of gun wheels and carts merging into a deep, low roar like the waves crashing on the shore.

Two rivers, the Riet and the Modder, intervened between French and Kimberley. By daylight on the 12th the head of his force had reached Waterval Drift, which was found to be defended by a body of Boers with a gun. Leaving a small detachment to hold them, French passed his men over Dekiel's Drift, higher up the stream, and swept the enemy out of his position. This considerable force of Boers had come from Jacobsdal, and were just too late to get into position to resist the crossing. Had we been ten minutes later, the matter would have been much more serious. At the cost of a very small loss he held both sides of the ford, but it was not until midnight that the whole long column was brought across, and bivouacked upon the northern bank. In the morning the strength of the force was enormously increased by the arrival of one more horseman. It was Roberts himself, who had ridden over to give the men a send-off, and the sight of his wiry erect figure and mahogany face sent them full of fire and confidence upon their way.

Two rivers, the Riet and the Modder, separated French from Kimberley. By daylight on the 12th, the front of his force had reached Waterval Drift, which was being defended by a group of Boers with a gun. Leaving a small team to hold them off, French moved his men across Dekiel's Drift, further up the stream, and pushed the enemy out of their position. This large group of Boers had come from Jacobsdal and had just arrived too late to defend the crossing. If we had been ten minutes later, things would have been much more serious. With very few losses, he secured both sides of the ford, but it wasn’t until midnight that the entire long column was brought across and set up camp on the northern bank. In the morning, the force was significantly strengthened by the arrival of one more horseman. It was Roberts himself, who had ridden over to send the men off, and the sight of his lean, upright figure and dark, sun-kissed face filled them with energy and confidence as they set out.

But the march of this second day (February 13th) was a military operation of some difficulty. Thirty long waterless miles had to be done before they could reach the Modder, and it was possible that even then they might have to fight an action before winning the drift. The weather was very hot, and through the long day the sun beat down from an unclouded sky, while the soldiers were only shaded by the dust-bank in which they rode. A broad arid plain, swelling into stony hills, surrounded them on every side. Here and there in the extreme distance, mounted figures moved over the vast expanse—Boer scouts who marked in amazement the advance of this great array. Once or twice these men gathered together, and a sputter of rifle fire broke out upon our left flank, but the great tide swept on and carried them with it. Often in this desolate land the herds of mottled springbok and of grey rekbok could be seen sweeping over the plain, or stopping with that curiosity upon which the hunter trades, to stare at the unwonted spectacle.

But the march on the second day (February 13th) was a challenging military operation. They had to cover thirty long miles without water before they could reach the Modder, and it was possible that even then they might need to fight before they could cross the river. The weather was very hot, and throughout the long day, the sun beat down from a clear sky while the soldiers were only sheltered by the dust cloud they rode through. They were surrounded on all sides by a wide, dry plain that rose into rocky hills. Here and there in the distance, they could see mounted figures moving across the vast expanse—Boer scouts who watched in amazement as this large force advanced. Occasionally, these men grouped together, and a few shots rang out on our left flank, but the main body continued to move forward, carrying them along. Often in this barren land, herds of spotted springbok and grey rekbok could be seen racing across the plain or stopping out of curiosity to check out this unusual sight.

So all day they rode, hussars, dragoons, and lancers, over the withered veld, until men and horses drooped with the heat and the exertion. A front of nearly two miles was kept, the regiments moving two abreast in open order; and the sight of this magnificent cloud of horsemen sweeping over the great barren plain was a glorious one. The veld had caught fire upon the right, and a black cloud of smoke with a lurid heart to it covered the flank. The beat of the sun from above and the swelter of dust from below were overpowering. Gun horses fell in the traces and died of pure exhaustion. The men, parched and silent, but cheerful, strained their eyes to pierce the continual mirage which played over the horizon, and to catch the first glimpse of the Modder. At last, as the sun began to slope down to the west, a thin line of green was discerned, the bushes which skirt the banks of that ill-favoured stream. With renewed heart the cavalry pushed on and made for the drift, while Major Rimington, to whom the onerous duty of guiding the force had been entrusted, gave a sigh of relief as he saw that he had indeed struck the very point at which he had aimed.

So all day they rode, hussars, dragoons, and lancers, over the dry veld, until both men and horses were worn out from the heat and effort. They maintained a front of nearly two miles, with the regiments moving two by two in open formation; the sight of this impressive group of horsemen moving across the vast barren plain was magnificent. The veld had caught fire on the right, and a thick cloud of smoke with a bright center covered the flank. The blazing sun overhead and the thick dust below were overwhelming. Gun horses collapsed in their harnesses and died from sheer exhaustion. The men, thirsty and quiet, yet in good spirits, strained their eyes to see through the constant mirage shimmering on the horizon, hoping to catch the first sight of the Modder. Finally, as the sun began to set in the west, a thin line of green appeared, the bushes lining the banks of that unpleasant stream. With renewed determination, the cavalry pushed on toward the crossing, while Major Rimington, who had been tasked with guiding the force, breathed a sigh of relief as he realized he had indeed hit the exact point he was aiming for.

The essential thing in the movements had been speed—to reach each point before the enemy could concentrate to oppose them. Upon this it depended whether they would find five hundred or five thousand waiting on the further bank. It must have been with anxious eyes that French watched his first regiment ride down to Klip Drift. If the Boers should have had notice of his coming and have transferred some of their 40-pounders, he might lose heavily before he forced the stream. But this time, at last, he had completely outmanoeuvred them. He came with the news of his coming, and Broadwood with the 12th Lancers rushed the drift. The small Boer force saved itself by flight, and the camp, the wagons, and the supplies remained with the victors. On the night of the 13th he had secured the passage of the Modder, and up to the early morning the horses and the guns were splashing through its coffee-coloured waters.

The key aspect of the movements had been speed—to reach each point before the enemy could gather to oppose them. It determined whether they would encounter five hundred or five thousand waiting on the other side. French must have watched his first regiment ride down to Klip Drift with anxious anticipation. If the Boers had been warned of his approach and moved some of their 40-pounders, he could have faced heavy losses before crossing the stream. But this time, he had completely outmaneuvered them. He arrived with news of his approach, and Broadwood with the 12th Lancers charged across the ford. The small Boer force escaped by fleeing, and the camp, the wagons, and the supplies ended up in the hands of the victors. By the night of the 13th, he had secured the passage of the Modder, and until early morning, the horses and cannons were splashing through its coffee-colored waters.

French's force had now come level to the main position of the Boers, but had struck it upon the extreme left wing. The extreme right wing, thanks to the Koodoosdrift demonstration, was fifty miles off, and this line was naturally very thinly held, save only at the central position of Magersfontein. Cronje could not denude this central position, for he saw Methuen still waiting in front of him, and in any case Klip Drift is twenty-five miles from Magersfontein. But the Boer left wing, though scattered, gathered into some sort of cohesion on Wednesday (February 14th), and made an effort to check the victorious progress of the cavalry. It was necessary on this day to rest at Klip Drift, until Kelly-Kenny should come up with the infantry to hold what had been gained. All day the small bodies of Boers came riding in and taking up positions between the column and its objective.

French's forces had now aligned with the main position of the Boers but had hit it on the far left wing. The far right wing, due to the Koodoosdrift demonstration, was fifty miles away, and this line was naturally very weakly defended, except at the central position of Magersfontein. Cronje couldn’t pull back from this central position because he saw Methuen still waiting in front of him, and anyway, Klip Drift is twenty-five miles from Magersfontein. However, the Boer left wing, although scattered, started to come together on Wednesday (February 14th) and made an effort to slow the cavalry's victorious advance. It was necessary to rest at Klip Drift that day until Kelly-Kenny arrived with the infantry to secure what had been gained. All day, small groups of Boers rode in and took positions between the column and its target.

Next morning the advance was resumed, the column being still forty miles from Kimberley with the enemy in unknown force between. Some four miles out French came upon their position, two hills with a long low nek between, from which came a brisk rifle fire supported by artillery. But French was not only not to be stopped, but could not even be retarded. Disregarding the Boer fire completely the cavalry swept in wave after wave over the low nek, and so round the base of the hills. The Boer riflemen upon the kopjes must have seen a magnificent military spectacle as regiment after regiment, the 9th Lancers leading, all in very open order, swept across the plain at a gallop, and so passed over the nek. A few score horses and half as many men were left behind them, but forty or fifty Boers were cut down in the pursuit. It appears to have been one of the very few occasions during the campaign when that obsolete and absurd weapon the sword was anything but a dead weight to its bearer.

The next morning, the advance continued, with the column still forty miles from Kimberley and the enemy in an unknown force in between. About four miles out, French discovered their position, which consisted of two hills with a long low ridge in between, from which a steady rifle fire and artillery support were coming. But French was not only unstoppable; he couldn't even be slowed down. Ignoring the Boer fire completely, the cavalry charged in wave after wave over the low ridge and around the base of the hills. The Boer riflemen on the hills must have witnessed a stunning military scene as regiment after regiment, led by the 9th Lancers, all moving in wide formation, galloped across the plain and over the ridge. A few dozen horses and half as many men were left behind, but forty or fifty Boers were taken down in the pursuit. This seems to have been one of the very few times during the campaign when the old-fashioned and ridiculous sword was anything but a burden to its wielder.

And now the force had a straight run in before it, for it had outpaced any further force of Boers which may have been advancing from the direction of Magersfontein. The horses, which had come a hundred miles in four days with insufficient food and water, were so done that it was no uncommon sight to see the trooper not only walking to ease his horse, but carrying part of his monstrous weight of saddle gear. But in spite of fatigue the force pressed on until in the afternoon a distant view was seen, across the reddish plain, of the brick houses and corrugated roofs of Kimberley. The Boer besiegers cleared off in front of it, and that night (February 15th) the relieving column camped on the plain two miles away, while French and his staff rode in to the rescued city.

And now the force had a clear path ahead of it, as it had outpaced any additional Boer forces that might have been coming from the direction of Magersfontein. The horses, which had traveled a hundred miles in four days with barely enough food and water, were so exhausted that it wasn't uncommon to see the trooper not only walking to lighten his horse's load but also carrying some of the heavy saddle gear. Despite their fatigue, the force continued moving until in the afternoon they caught sight of the brick houses and corrugated roofs of Kimberley across the reddish plain. The Boer besiegers withdrew in front of it, and that night (February 15th) the relieving column set up camp on the plain two miles away, while French and his staff rode into the liberated city.

The war was a cruel one for the cavalry, who were handicapped throughout by the nature of the country and by the tactics of the enemy. They are certainly the branch of the service which had least opportunity for distinction. The work of scouting and patrolling is the most dangerous which a soldier can undertake, and yet from its very nature it can find no chronicler. The war correspondent, like Providence, is always with the big battalions, and there never was a campaign in which there was more unrecorded heroism, the heroism of the picket and of the vedette which finds its way into no newspaper paragraph. But in the larger operations of the war it is difficult to say that cavalry, as cavalry, have justified their existence. In the opinion of many the tendency of the future will be to convert the whole force into mounted infantry. How little is required to turn our troopers into excellent foot soldiers was shown at Magersfontein, where the 12th Lancers, dismounted by the command of their colonel, Lord Airlie, held back the threatened flank attack all the morning. A little training in taking cover, leggings instead of boots, and a rifle instead of a carbine would give us a formidable force of twenty thousand men who could do all that our cavalry does, and a great deal more besides. It is undoubtedly possible on many occasions in this war, at Colesberg, at Diamond Hill, to say 'Here our cavalry did well.' They are brave men on good horses, and they may be expected to do well. But the champion of the cavalry cause must point out the occasions where the cavalry did something which could not have been done by the same number of equally brave and equally well-mounted infantry. Only then will the existence of the cavalry be justified. The lesson both of the South African and of the American civil war is that the light horseman who is trained to fight on foot is the type of the future.

The war was harsh for the cavalry, who struggled due to the landscape and the enemy's tactics. They definitely had the least chance to stand out among the military branches. Scouting and patrolling are the most dangerous tasks a soldier can take on, yet they don’t get the recognition they deserve. War correspondents, like fate, always focus on the larger units, and there has never been a campaign with so much unrecognized bravery—the bravery of the pickets and vedettes that doesn’t make it into any newspaper. However, when it comes to the bigger operations during the war, it’s hard to say that cavalry have truly proven their worth. Many believe that the future will lean towards turning the entire force into mounted infantry. It was shown at Magersfontein how little is needed to turn our cavalry into excellent foot soldiers. The 12th Lancers, dismounted by their colonel, Lord Airlie, successfully held back a potentially dangerous flank attack all morning. With just a bit of training on taking cover, using leggings instead of boots, and carrying rifles instead of carbines, we could have a strong force of twenty thousand men who could do everything our cavalry does and much more. It’s certainly possible to point out moments in this war, like at Colesberg and Diamond Hill, where our cavalry performed well. They are brave individuals on reliable horses, and we can expect good performance from them. But supporters of cavalry must highlight instances where cavalry achieved something that wouldn’t have been possible with the same number of equally brave and well-mounted infantry. Only then will the justification for cavalry’s existence be clear. The lessons learned from both the South African and American Civil Wars suggest that the light horseman trained to fight on foot is the model of the future.

A few more words as a sequel to this short sketch of the siege and relief of Kimberley. Considerable surprise has been expressed that the great gun at Kamfersdam, a piece which must have weighed many tons and could not have been moved by bullock teams at a rate of more than two or three miles an hour, should have eluded our cavalry. It is indeed a surprising circumstance, and yet it was due to no inertia on the part of our leaders, but rather to one of the finest examples of Boer tenacity in the whole course of the war. The instant that Kekewich was sure of relief he mustered every available man and sent him out to endeavour to get the gun. It had already been removed, and its retreat was covered by the strong position of Dronfield, which was held both by riflemen and by light artillery. Finding himself unable to force it, Murray, the commander of the detachment, remained in front of it. Next morning (Friday) at three o'clock the weary men and horses of two of French's brigades were afoot with the same object. But still the Boers were obstinately holding on to Dronfield, and still their position was too strong to force, and too extended to get round with exhausted horses. It was not until the night after that the Boers abandoned their excellent rearguard action, leaving one light gun in the hands of the Cape Police, but having gained such a start for their heavy one that French, who had other and more important objects in view, could not attempt to follow it.

A few more words to wrap up this brief account of the siege and relief of Kimberley. Many have expressed surprise that the huge gun at Kamfersdam, which must have weighed several tons and couldn’t have been moved by ox teams faster than two or three miles an hour, managed to escape our cavalry. It is indeed surprising, yet it wasn't because of any inaction on our leaders' part, but rather due to one of the best displays of Boer determination throughout the war. The moment Kekewich was confident of relief, he gathered every available man and sent them out to try to capture the gun. It had already been moved, with its retreat protected by the strong position at Dronfield, held by both riflemen and light artillery. Unable to overpower it, Murray, the commander of the detachment, stayed put in front of it. The next morning (Friday) at three o'clock, the exhausted men and horses from two of French's brigades were on their feet again with the same goal. However, the Boers stubbornly held on to Dronfield, their position too strong to break and too vast to maneuver around with tired horses. It wasn't until the night after that the Boers let go of their excellent rearguard action, leaving one light gun behind with the Cape Police, but they had gained such a lead with their heavy gun that French, who had other more urgent objectives, couldn’t pursue it.





CHAPTER 19. PAARDEBERG.

Lord Roberts's operations, prepared with admirable secrecy and carried out with extreme energy, aimed at two different results, each of which he was fortunate enough to attain. The first was that an overpowering force of cavalry should ride round the Boer position and raise the siege of Kimberley: the fate of this expedition has already been described. The second was that the infantry, following hard on the heels of the cavalry, and holding all that they had gained, should establish itself upon Cronje's left flank and cut his connection with Bloemfontein. It is this portion of the operations which has now to be described.

Lord Roberts's operations, planned with impressive secrecy and executed with great energy, aimed at two different goals, both of which he successfully achieved. The first was to send a strong cavalry force to circle around the Boer position and lift the siege of Kimberley: the outcome of this mission has already been covered. The second was for the infantry to closely follow the cavalry, secure all that they had gained, and position themselves on Cronje's left flank to sever his link with Bloemfontein. This part of the operations is what will be discussed now.

The infantry force which General Roberts had assembled was a very formidable one. The Guards he had left under Methuen in front of the lines of Magersfontein to contain the Boer force. With them he had also left those regiments which had fought in the 9th Brigade in all Methuen's actions. These, as will be remembered, were the 1st Northumberland Fusiliers, the 2nd Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Northamptons, and one wing of the Loyal North Lancashire Regiment. These stayed to hold Cronje in his position.

The infantry force General Roberts had gathered was quite impressive. He left the Guards under Methuen in front of the lines at Magersfontein to keep the Boer forces in check. He also left behind the regiments that had fought in the 9th Brigade during all of Methuen's battles. As you may recall, these were the 1st Northumberland Fusiliers, the 2nd Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Northamptons, and one wing of the Loyal North Lancashire Regiment. They remained to keep Cronje in his position.

There remained three divisions of infantry, one of which, the ninth, was made up on the spot. These were constituted in this way:

There were three infantry divisions left, one of which, the ninth, was created on the spot. They were organized like this:

   Sixth Division (Kelly-Kenny).
      12th Brigade (Knox).
      Oxford Light Infantry.
      Gloucesters (2nd).
         West Riding.
      Buffs.
         18th Brigade (Stephenson).
      Essex.
         Welsh.
   Warwicks.
      Yorks Seventh Division (Tucker).
      14th Brigade (Chermside).
      Scots Borderers.
   Lincolns.
      Hampshires.
   Norfolks.
      15th Brigade (Wavell).
   North Staffords.
      Cheshires.
   S. Wales Borderers.
   East Lancashires Ninth Division (Colvile).
      Highland Brigade (Macdonald).
      Black Watch.
      Argyll and Sutherlands.
   Seaforths.
      Highland Light Infantry.
   19th Brigade (Smith-Dorrien).
      Gordons.
      Canadians.
      Shropshire Light Infantry.
      Cornwall Light Infantry.
   Sixth Division (Kelly-Kenny).  
      12th Brigade (Knox).  
      Oxford Light Infantry.  
      Gloucesters (2nd).  
         West Riding.  
      Buffs.  
         18th Brigade (Stephenson).  
      Essex.  
         Welsh.  
   Warwicks.  
      Yorks Seventh Division (Tucker).  
      14th Brigade (Chermside).  
      Scots Borderers.  
   Lincolns.  
      Hampshires.  
   Norfolks.  
      15th Brigade (Wavell).  
   North Staffords.  
      Cheshires.  
   S. Wales Borderers.  
   East Lancashires Ninth Division (Colvile).  
      Highland Brigade (Macdonald).  
      Black Watch.  
      Argyll and Sutherlands.  
   Seaforths.  
      Highland Light Infantry.  
   19th Brigade (Smith-Dorrien).  
      Gordons.  
      Canadians.  
      Shropshire Light Infantry.  
      Cornwall Light Infantry.  

With these were two brigade divisions of artillery under General Marshall, the first containing the 18th, 62nd, and 75th batteries (Colonel Hall), the other the 76th, 81st, and 82nd (Colonel McDonnell). Besides these there were a howitzer battery, a naval contingent of four 4.7 guns and four 12-pounders under Captain Bearcroft of the 'Philomel.' The force was soon increased by the transfer of the Guards and the arrival of more artillery; but the numbers which started on Monday, February 12th, amounted roughly to twenty-five thousand foot and eight thousand horse with 98 guns—a considerable army to handle in a foodless and almost waterless country. Seven hundred wagons drawn by eleven thousand mules and oxen, all collected by the genius for preparation and organisation which characterises Lord Kitchener, groaned and creaked behind the columns.

With this, there were two brigade divisions of artillery under General Marshall, the first including the 18th, 62nd, and 75th batteries (Colonel Hall), and the second the 76th, 81st, and 82nd (Colonel McDonnell). In addition, there was a howitzer battery and a naval unit with four 4.7-inch guns and four 12-pounders led by Captain Bearcroft of the 'Philomel.' The force quickly grew with the addition of the Guards and more artillery, but the numbers that set out on Monday, February 12th, totaled about twenty-five thousand infantry and eight thousand cavalry with 98 guns—a significant army to manage in a nearly foodless and waterless landscape. Seven hundred wagons pulled by eleven thousand mules and oxen, all organized by the exceptional planning skills of Lord Kitchener, groaned and creaked behind the columns.

Both arms had concentrated at Ramdam, the cavalry going down by road, and the infantry by rail as far as Belmont or Enslin. On Monday, February 12th, the cavalry had started, and on Tuesday the infantry were pressing hard after them. The first thing was to secure a position upon Cronje's flank, and for that purpose the 6th Division and the 9th (Kelly-Kenny's and Colvile's) pushed swiftly on and arrived on Thursday, February 15th, at Klip Drift on the Modder, which had only been left by the cavalry that same morning. It was obviously impossible to leave Jacobsdal in the hands of the enemy on our left flank, so the 7th Division (Tucker's) turned aside to attack the town. Wavell's brigade carried the place after a sharp skirmish, chiefly remarkable for the fact that the City Imperial Volunteers found themselves under fire for the first time and bore themselves with the gallantry of the old train-bands whose descendants they are. Our loss was two killed and twenty wounded, and we found ourselves for the first time firmly established in one of the enemy's towns. In the excellent German hospital were thirty or forty of our wounded.

Both forces gathered at Ramdam, with the cavalry traveling by road and the infantry taking the train as far as Belmont or Enslin. On Monday, February 12th, the cavalry set off, and on Tuesday, the infantry followed closely behind. The first priority was to secure a position on Cronje's flank, so the 6th Division and the 9th Division (Kelly-Kenny's and Colvile's) quickly moved forward and reached Klip Drift on the Modder by Thursday, February 15th, just hours after the cavalry had left. It was clearly unacceptable to allow Jacobsdal to remain in enemy hands on our left flank, so the 7th Division (Tucker's) diverted to attack the town. Wavell's brigade captured the area after a brief fight, notable primarily because the City Imperial Volunteers faced gunfire for the first time and displayed the same bravery as the old train-bands from which they are descended. Our casualties were two killed and twenty wounded, and for the first time, we established ourselves firmly in one of the enemy's towns. In the well-equipped German hospital, there were thirty to forty of our wounded.

On the afternoon of Thursday, February 15th, our cavalry, having left Klip Drift in the morning, were pushing hard for Kimberley. At Klip Drift was Kelly-Kenny's 6th Division. South of Klip Drift at Wegdraai was Colvile's 9th Division, while the 7th Division was approaching Jacobsdal. Altogether the British forces were extended over a line of forty miles. The same evening saw the relief of Kimberley and the taking of Jacobsdal, but it also saw the capture of one of our convoys by the Boers, a dashing exploit which struck us upon what was undoubtedly our vulnerable point.

On the afternoon of Thursday, February 15th, our cavalry, having left Klip Drift in the morning, were pushing hard for Kimberley. At Klip Drift was Kelly-Kenny's 6th Division. South of Klip Drift at Wegdraai was Colvile's 9th Division, while the 7th Division was approaching Jacobsdal. Overall, the British forces were spread out over a line of forty miles. That same evening, Kimberley was relieved, and Jacobsdal was taken, but it also saw one of our convoys captured by the Boers, a bold move that hit us at what was clearly our weak point.

It has never been cleared up whence the force of Boers came which appeared upon our rear on that occasion. It seems to have been the same body which had already had a skirmish with Hannay's Mounted Infantry as they went up from Orange River to join the rendezvous at Ramdam. The balance of evidence is that they had not come from Colesberg or any distant point, but that they were a force under the command of Piet De Wet, the younger of two famous brothers. Descending to Waterval Drift, the ford over the Riet, they occupied a line of kopjes, which ought, one would have imagined, to have been carefully guarded by us, and opened a brisk fire from rifles and guns upon the convoy as it ascended the northern bank of the river. Numbers of bullocks were soon shot down, and the removal of the hundred and eighty wagons made impossible. The convoy, which contained forage and provisions, had no guard of its own, but the drift was held by Colonel Ridley with one company of Gordons and one hundred and fifty mounted infantry without artillery, which certainly seems an inadequate force to secure the most vital and vulnerable spot in the line of communications of an army of forty thousand men. The Boers numbered at the first some five or six hundred men, but their position was such that they could not be attacked. On the other hand they were not strong enough to leave their shelter in order to drive in the British guard, who, lying in extended order between the wagons and the assailants, were keeping up a steady and effective fire. Captain Head, of the East Lancashire Regiment, a fine natural soldier, commanded the British firing line, and neither he nor any of his men doubted that they could hold off the enemy for an indefinite time. In the course of the afternoon reinforcements arrived for the Boers, but Kitchener's Horse and a field battery came back and restored the balance of power. In the evening the latter swayed altogether in favour of the British, as Tucker appeared upon the scene with the whole of the 14th Brigade; but as the question of an assault was being debated a positive order arrived from Lord Roberts that the convoy should be abandoned and the force return.

It has never been clear where the Boer force that appeared behind us that day came from. It seems to have been the same group that had already clashed with Hannay's Mounted Infantry as they traveled from Orange River to meet up at Ramdam. The evidence suggests they didn’t come from Colesberg or any far-off place, but were under the command of Piet De Wet, the younger of two famous brothers. Descending to Waterval Drift, the crossing over the Riet, they took position on a line of hills that one would have thought we would have guarded closely, and opened a heavy fire from rifles and guns on the convoy as it moved up the northern bank of the river. Many oxen were soon shot down, making it impossible to move the one hundred eighty wagons. The convoy, carrying forage and supplies, had no protection of its own. Colonel Ridley was holding the drift with one company of Gordons and one hundred fifty mounted infantry, without artillery, which certainly seems like an inadequate force to secure the most crucial and vulnerable point in the communication line of an army of forty thousand men. At first, the Boers numbered around five or six hundred men, but their position made it impossible for them to be attacked. However, they were not strong enough to leave their cover to push back the British guard, who were lying in an extended line between the wagons and the attackers, maintaining a steady and effective fire. Captain Head, from the East Lancashire Regiment, a naturally skilled soldier, was in command of the British firing line, and neither he nor his men doubted that they could hold off the enemy for as long as needed. In the afternoon, reinforcements arrived for the Boers, but Kitchener's Horse and a field battery returned and tipped the balance of power. By evening, the situation completely shifted in favor of the British when Tucker showed up with the entire 14th Brigade; however, just as the possibility of an assault was being discussed, a direct order arrived from Lord Roberts to abandon the convoy and return the force.

If Lord Roberts needed justification for this decision, the future course of events will furnish it. One of Napoleon's maxims in war was to concentrate all one's energies upon one thing at one time. Roberts's aim was to outflank and possibly to capture Cronje's army. If he allowed a brigade to be involved in a rearguard action, his whole swift-moving plan of campaign might be dislocated. It was very annoying to lose a hundred and eighty wagons, but it only meant a temporary inconvenience. The plan of campaign was the essential thing. Therefore he sacrificed his convoy and hurried his troops upon their original mission. It was with heavy hearts and bitter words that those who had fought so long abandoned their charge, but now at least there are probably few of them who do not agree in the wisdom of the sacrifice. Our loss in this affair was between fifty and sixty killed and wounded. The Boers were unable to get rid of the stores, and they were eventually distributed among the local farmers and recovered again as the British forces flowed over the country. Another small disaster occurred to us on the preceding day in the loss of fifty men of E company of Kitchener's Horse, which had been left as a guard to a well in the desert.

If Lord Roberts needed a reason for this decision, future events will provide it. One of Napoleon's principles in war was to focus all one's efforts on one thing at a time. Roberts's goal was to outflank and possibly capture Cronje's army. Allowing a brigade to engage in a rearguard action could disrupt his entire fast-moving campaign plan. Losing a hundred and eighty wagons was frustrating, but it only caused a temporary setback. The campaign plan was what really mattered. So, he sacrificed his convoy and rushed his troops back to their original mission. It was with heavy hearts and harsh words that those who had fought so long let go of their responsibility, but now, at least, few of them probably disagree with the wisdom of that sacrifice. Our losses in this situation were between fifty and sixty killed and wounded. The Boers couldn't dispose of the supplies, and they were eventually distributed among local farmers and recovered as British forces advanced through the area. Another small disaster happened the day before when we lost fifty men from E company of Kitchener's Horse, who had been left to guard a well in the desert.

But great events were coming to obscure those small checks which are incidental to a war carried out over immense distances against a mobile and enterprising enemy. Cronje had suddenly become aware of the net which was closing round him. To the dark fierce man who had striven so hard to make his line of kopjes impregnable it must have been a bitter thing to abandon his trenches and his rifle pits. But he was crafty as well as tenacious, and he had the Boer horror of being cut off—an hereditary instinct from fathers who had fought on horseback against enemies on foot. If at any time during the last ten weeks Methuen had contained him in front with a thin line of riflemen with machine guns, and had thrown the rest of his force on Jacobsdal and the east, he would probably have attained the same result. Now at the rumour of English upon his flank Cronje instantly abandoned his position and his plans, in order to restore those communications with Bloemfontein upon which he depended for his supplies. With furious speed he drew in his right wing, and then, one huge mass of horsemen, guns, and wagons, he swept through the gap between the rear of the British cavalry bound for Kimberley and the head of the British infantry at Klip Drift. There was just room to pass, and at it he dashed with the furious energy of a wild beast rushing from a trap. A portion of his force with his heavy guns had gone north round Kimberley to Warrenton; many of the Freestaters also had slipped away and returned to their farms. The remainder, numbering about six thousand men, the majority of whom were Transvaalers, swept through between the British forces.

But big events were about to overshadow those small setbacks that come with a war fought over vast distances against a quick and resourceful enemy. Cronje had suddenly realized that the noose was tightening around him. For the dark, fierce man who had worked so hard to make his line of hills unassailable, abandoning his trenches and rifle pits must have been a bitter pill to swallow. However, he was both shrewd and determined, and he had the Boer dread of being surrounded—an instinct passed down from fathers who had fought on horseback against foot soldiers. If, at any point during the last ten weeks, Methuen had contained him in front with a thin line of riflemen wielding machine guns, and had sent the rest of his force toward Jacobsdal and the east, he would likely have achieved the same outcome. Now, with the rumor of the English on his flank, Cronje quickly deserted his position and plans, aiming to reestablish the communication with Bloemfontein that he relied on for supplies. With furious speed, he pulled back his right wing, and then, like a massive wave of cavalry, artillery, and wagons, he surged through the gap between the rear of the British cavalry heading for Kimberley and the front of the British infantry at Klip Drift. There was just enough room to squeeze through, and he charged with the frantic energy of a wild animal escaping a trap. Part of his force, including his heavy artillery, had already moved north around Kimberley to Warrenton; many of the Freestaters had also slipped away to return to their farms. The rest, numbering around six thousand men, most of whom were Transvaalers, flowed through the space between the British forces.

This movement was carried out on the night of February 15th, and had it been a little quicker it might have been concluded before we were aware of it. But the lumbering wagons impeded it, and on the Friday morning, February 16th, a huge rolling cloud of dust on the northern veld, moving from west to east, told our outposts at Klip Drift that Cronje's army had almost slipped through our fingers. Lord Kitchener, who was in command at Klip Drift at the moment, instantly unleashed his mounted infantry in direct pursuit, while Knox's brigade sped along the northern bank of the river to cling on to the right haunch of the retreating column. Cronje's men had made a night march of thirty miles from Magersfontein, and the wagon bullocks were exhausted. It was impossible, without an absolute abandonment of his guns and stores, for him to get away from his pursuers.

This movement happened on the night of February 15th, and if it had been a bit quicker, it might have been finished before we noticed it. But the slow-moving wagons held it up, and on the Friday morning, February 16th, a massive cloud of dust on the northern veld, moving from west to east, alerted our outposts at Klip Drift that Cronje's army had almost slipped through our grasp. Lord Kitchener, who was in charge at Klip Drift at that time, quickly sent his mounted infantry in hot pursuit, while Knox's brigade rushed along the northern bank of the river to stay close to the right flank of the retreating column. Cronje's troops had completed a night march of thirty miles from Magersfontein, and the wagon oxen were worn out. It was impossible for him to escape his pursuers without completely abandoning his guns and supplies.

This was no deer which they were chasing, however, but rather a grim old Transvaal wolf, with his teeth flashing ever over his shoulder. The sight of those distant white-tilted wagons fired the blood of every mounted infantryman, and sent the Oxfords, the Buffs, the West Ridings, and the Gloucesters racing along the river bank in the glorious virile air of an African morning. But there were kopjes ahead, sown with fierce Dopper Boers, and those tempting wagons were only to be reached over their bodies. The broad plain across which the English were hurrying was suddenly swept with a storm of bullets. The long infantry line extended yet further and lapped round the flank of the Boer position, and once more the terrible duet of the Mauser and the Lee-Metford was sung while the 81st field battery hurried up in time to add its deep roar to their higher chorus. With fine judgment Cronje held on to the last moment of safety, and then with a swift movement to the rear seized a further line two miles off, and again snapped back at his eager pursuers. All day the grim and weary rearguard stalled off the fiery advance of the infantry, and at nightfall the wagons were still untaken. The pursuing force to the north of the river was, it must be remembered, numerically inferior to the pursued, so that in simply retarding the advance of the enemy and in giving other British troops time to come up, Knox's brigade was doing splendid work. Had Cronje been well advised or well informed, he would have left his guns and wagons in the hope that by a swift dash over the Modder he might still bring his army away in safety. He seems to have underrated both the British numbers and the British activity.

This wasn't a deer they were chasing, but a tough old Transvaal wolf, with its teeth flashing over its shoulder. The sight of those distant white-tilted wagons ignited the passion of every mounted infantryman, sending the Oxfords, the Buffs, the West Ridings, and the Gloucesters racing along the riverbank in the vibrant air of an African morning. But ahead were hills filled with fierce Dopper Boers, and those tempting wagons could only be reached over their bodies. The wide plain that the English were rushing across was suddenly hit by a storm of bullets. The long infantry line extended even further and wrapped around the side of the Boer position, and once again, the terrifying duet of the Mauser and the Lee-Metford played while the 81st field battery came up in time to add its deep roar to their higher chorus. With excellent judgment, Cronje held on until the last moment of safety, then quickly moved to the rear and seized another position two miles away, snapping back at his eager pursuers. All day, the grim and exhausted rearguard held off the intense advance of the infantry, and at nightfall, the wagons were still uncaptured. It's important to remember that the pursuing force north of the river was outnumbered by the ones they were chasing, so by merely slowing down the enemy's advance and buying time for other British troops to arrive, Knox's brigade was doing a fantastic job. If Cronje had been better advised or informed, he would have abandoned his guns and wagons, hoping that a quick dash over the Modder would allow his army to escape safely. He seems to have underestimated both the British numbers and their activity.

On the night then of Friday, February 16th, Cronje lay upon the northern bank of the Modder, with his stores and guns still intact, and no enemy in front of him, though Knox's brigade and Hannay's Mounted Infantry were behind. It was necessary for Cronje to cross the river in order to be on the line for Bloemfontein. As the river tended to the north the sooner he could cross the better. On the south side of the river, however, were considerable British forces, and the obvious strategy was to hurry them forward and to block every drift at which he could get over. The river runs between very deep banks, so steep that one might almost describe them as small cliffs, and there was no chance of a horseman, far less a wagon, crossing at any point save those where the convenience of traffic and the use of years had worn sloping paths down to the shallows. The British knew exactly therefore what the places were which had to be blocked. On the use made of the next few hours the success or failure of the whole operation must depend.

On the night of Friday, February 16th, Cronje lay on the northern bank of the Modder River, with his supplies and weapons still intact, and no enemy in front of him, although Knox's brigade and Hannay's Mounted Infantry were behind. Cronje needed to cross the river to stay on the path to Bloemfontein. Since the river curved to the north, the sooner he could cross it, the better. However, there were significant British forces on the south side of the river, and the clear strategy was to move them forward quickly and block every crossing point. The river runs between very deep banks, steep enough to almost be called small cliffs, making it impossible for a horseman, let alone a wagon, to cross except at spots where traffic and years of use have created sloping paths to the shallows. The British knew exactly where these crossing points were that needed to be blocked. The outcome of the whole operation depended on how the next few hours were managed.

The nearest drift to Cronje was only a mile or two distant, Klipkraal the name; next to that the Paardeberg Drift; next to that the Wolveskraal Drift, each about seven miles from the other. Had Cronje pushed on instantly after the action, he might have got across at Klipkraal. But men, horses, and bullocks were equally exhausted after a long twenty-four hours' marching and fighting. He gave his weary soldiers some hours' rest, and then, abandoning seventy-eight of his wagons, he pushed on before daylight for the farthest off of the three fords (Wolveskraal Drift). Could he reach and cross it before his enemies, he was safe. The Klipkraal Drift had in the meanwhile been secured by the Buffs, the West Ridings, and the Oxfordshire Light Infantry after a spirited little action which, in the rapid rush of events, attracted less attention than it deserved. The brunt of the fighting fell upon the Oxfords, who lost ten killed and thirty-nine wounded. It was not a waste of life, however, for the action, though small and hardly recorded, was really a very essential one in the campaign.

The closest crossing to Cronje was just a mile or two away, called Klipkraal; after that was the Paardeberg Drift, and then the Wolveskraal Drift, each about seven miles apart. If Cronje had immediately pressed on after the battle, he might have crossed at Klipkraal. But the men, horses, and oxen were all exhausted after a long twenty-four hours of marching and fighting. He let his tired soldiers rest for a few hours, and then, leaving behind seventy-eight of his wagons, he moved out before dawn toward the farthest of the three fords (Wolveskraal Drift). If he could reach and cross it before his enemies, he would be safe. Meanwhile, the Buffs, West Ridings, and Oxfordshire Light Infantry had secured the Klipkraal Drift after a spirited little skirmish that, amid the rapid flow of events, didn’t get the attention it deserved. The bulk of the fighting was borne by the Oxfords, who lost ten killed and thirty-nine wounded. It wasn’t a pointless loss of life, however, as this small but significant action played a crucial role in the campaign.

But Lord Roberts's energy had infused itself into his divisional commanders, his brigadiers, his colonels, and so down to the humblest Tommy who tramped and stumbled through the darkness with a devout faith that 'Bobs' was going to catch 'old Cronje' this time. The mounted infantry had galloped round from the north to the south of the river, crossing at Klip Drift and securing the southern end of Klipkraal. Thither also came Stephenson's brigade from Kelly-Kenny's Division, while Knox, finding in the morning that Cronje was gone, marched along the northern bank to the same spot. As Klipkraal was safe, the mounted infantry pushed on at once and secured the southern end of the Paardeberg Drift, whither they were followed the same evening by Stephenson and Knox. There remained only the Wolveskraal Drift to block, and this had already been done by as smart a piece of work as any in the war. Wherever French has gone he has done well, but his crowning glory was the movement from Kimberley to head off Cronje's retreat.

But Lord Roberts's energy inspired his divisional commanders, brigadiers, colonels, and even the lowest-ranking soldiers who trudged through the darkness with a strong belief that 'Bobs' was finally going to catch 'old Cronje' this time. The mounted infantry had galloped from the north to the south of the river, crossing at Klip Drift and securing the southern end of Klipkraal. Stephenson's brigade from Kelly-Kenny's Division also arrived there, while Knox, discovering in the morning that Cronje was gone, marched along the northern bank to the same location. Since Klipkraal was secured, the mounted infantry quickly moved on and took control of the southern end of the Paardeberg Drift, where they were joined that same evening by Stephenson and Knox. The only crossing left to block was the Wolveskraal Drift, which had already been successfully secured in a remarkable operation. Wherever French went, he performed well, but his crowning achievement was the maneuver from Kimberley to cut off Cronje's retreat.

The exertions which the mounted men had made in the relief of Kimberley have been already recorded. They arrived there on Thursday with their horses dead beat. They were afoot at three o'clock on Friday morning, and two brigades out of three were hard at work all day in an endeavour to capture the Dronfield position. Yet when on the same evening an order came that French should start again instantly from Kimberley and endeavour to head Cronje's army off, he did not plead inability, as many a commander might, but taking every man whose horse was still fit to carry him (something under two thousand out of a column which had been at least five thousand strong), he started within a few hours and pushed on through the whole night. Horses died under their riders, but still the column marched over the shadowy veld under the brilliant stars. By happy chance or splendid calculation they were heading straight for the one drift which was still open to Cronje. It was a close thing. At midday on Saturday the Boer advance guard was already near to the kopjes which command it. But French's men, still full of fight after their march of thirty miles, threw themselves in front and seized the position before their very eyes. The last of the drifts was closed. If Cronje was to get across now, he must crawl out of his trench and fight under Roberts's conditions, or he might remain under his own conditions until Roberts's forces closed round him. With him lay the alternative. In the meantime, still ignorant of the forces about him, but finding himself headed off by French, he made his way down to the river and occupied a long stretch of it between Paardeberg Drift and Wolveskraal Drift, hoping to force his way across. This was the situation on the night of Saturday, February 17th.

The efforts the mounted troops made to relieve Kimberley have already been noted. They arrived on Thursday completely exhausted. They were on foot by three o'clock on Friday morning, and two out of three brigades were hard at work all day trying to capture the Dronfield position. Yet, when an order came that French should leave immediately from Kimberley to try to intercept Cronje's army, he didn't make excuses like many commanders might. Instead, he took every man whose horse was still able to carry him (just under two thousand out of a original five thousand) and set off within hours, pushing on through the night. Horses died under their riders, but the column continued marching across the dark veld under the bright stars. By a fortunate coincidence or brilliant planning, they were going straight for the only crossing still available to Cronje. It was a close call. By midday on Saturday, the Boer advance guard was already close to the hills that overlook the crossing. But French's men, still eager to fight after their thirty-mile march, jumped in front and seized the position right before their eyes. The last of the crossings was now blocked. If Cronje wanted to get across, he had to come out of his trench and fight under Roberts's terms, or he could stay under his own terms until Roberts's forces surrounded him. The choice was his. Meanwhile, still unaware of the forces around him but finding himself blocked by French, he made his way down to the river and occupied a long stretch of it between Paardeberg Drift and Wolveskraal Drift, hoping to force a crossing. This was the situation on the night of Saturday, February 17th.

In the course of that night the British brigades, staggering with fatigue but indomitably resolute to crush their evasive enemy, were converging upon Paardeberg. The Highland Brigade, exhausted by a heavy march over soft sand from Jacobsdal to Klip Drift, were nerved to fresh exertions by the word 'Magersfontein,' which flew from lip to lip along the ranks, and pushed on for another twelve miles to Paardeberg. Close at their heels came Smith-Dorrien's 19th Brigade, comprising the Shropshires, the Cornwalls, the Gordons, and the Canadians, probably the very finest brigade in the whole army. They pushed across the river and took up their position upon the north bank. The old wolf was now fairly surrounded. On the west the Highlanders were south of the river, and Smith-Dorrien on the north. On the east Kelly-Kenny's Division was to the south of the river, and French with his cavalry and mounted infantry were to the north of it. Never was a general in a more hopeless plight. Do what he would, there was no possible loophole for escape.

That night, the British brigades, worn out but determined to defeat their elusive enemy, were heading toward Paardeberg. The Highland Brigade, tired from a tough march over soft sand from Jacobsdal to Klip Drift, rallied for more effort at the mention of 'Magersfontein,' which spread through the ranks, and continued on for another twelve miles to Paardeberg. Right behind them was Smith-Dorrien's 19th Brigade, made up of the Shropshires, the Cornwalls, the Gordons, and the Canadians, likely the best brigade in the entire army. They crossed the river and took their position on the north bank. The old wolf was now completely surrounded. To the west, the Highlanders were south of the river, and Smith-Dorrien to the north. On the east, Kelly-Kenny's Division was south of the river, while French with his cavalry and mounted infantry was to the north. No general had ever been in a more desperate situation. No matter what he did, there was no way out.

There was only one thing which apparently should not have been done, and that was to attack him. His position was a formidable one. Not only were the banks of the river fringed with his riflemen under excellent cover, but from these banks there extended on each side a number of dongas, which made admirable natural trenches. The only possible attack from either side must be across a level plain at least a thousand or fifteen hundred yards in width, where our numbers would only swell our losses. It must be a bold soldier and a far bolder civilian, who would venture to question an operation carried out under the immediate personal direction of Lord Kitchener; but the general consensus of opinion among critics may justify that which might be temerity in the individual. Had Cronje not been tightly surrounded, the action with its heavy losses might have been justified as an attempt to hold him until his investment should be complete. There seems, however, to be no doubt that he was already entirely surrounded, and that, as experience proved, we had only to sit round him to insure his surrender. It is not given to the greatest man to have every soldierly gift equally developed, and it may be said without offence that Lord Kitchener's cool judgment upon the actual field of battle has not yet been proved as conclusively as his longheaded power of organisation and his iron determination.

There was only one thing that clearly shouldn't have been done, and that was to attack him. His position was an impressive one. Not only were the riverbanks lined with his riflemen under great cover, but there were also several natural trenches on either side in the form of dongas. Any attack from either side would have to cross a flat plain at least a thousand or fifteen hundred yards wide, where our numbers would only lead to more losses. It would take a daring soldier and an even bolder civilian to question an operation carried out under the direct supervision of Lord Kitchener; however, the general consensus among critics might justify what could be seen as reckless by an individual. Had Cronje not been completely surrounded, this action with its heavy losses could have been seen as an effort to hold him until the siege was complete. However, there seems to be no doubt that he was already entirely encircled, and as experience showed, we only needed to sit around him to ensure his surrender. It's not common for even the greatest leaders to have every military skill perfectly developed, and it can be said without offense that Lord Kitchener's calm judgment on the battlefield hasn’t been proven as strongly as his strategic thinking and iron will.

Putting aside the question of responsibility, what happened on the morning of Sunday, February 18th, was that from every quarter an assault was urged across the level plains, to the north and to the south, upon the lines of desperate and invisible men who lay in the dongas and behind the banks of the river. Everywhere there was a terrible monotony about the experiences of the various regiments which learned once again the grim lessons of Colenso and Modder River. We surely did not need to prove once more what had already been so amply proved, that bravery can be of no avail against concealed riflemen well entrenched, and that the more hardy is the attack the heavier must be the repulse. Over the long circle of our attack Knox's brigade, Stephenson's brigade, the Highland brigade, Smith-Dorrien's brigade all fared alike. In each case there was the advance until they were within the thousand-yard fire zone, then the resistless sleet of bullets which compelled them to get down and to keep down. Had they even then recognised that they were attempting the impossible, no great harm might have been done, but with generous emulation the men of the various regiments made little rushes, company by company, towards the river bed, and found themselves ever exposed to a more withering fire. On the northern bank Smith-Dorrien's brigade, and especially the Canadian regiment, distinguished themselves by the magnificent tenacity with which they persevered in their attack. The Cornwalls of the same brigade swept up almost to the river bank in a charge which was the admiration of all who saw it. If the miners of Johannesburg had given the impression that the Cornishman is not a fighter, the record of the county regiment in the war has for ever exploded the calumny. Men who were not fighters could have found no place in Smith-Dorrien's brigade or in the charge of Paardeberg.

Putting aside the question of responsibility, what happened on the morning of Sunday, February 18th, was that from all directions, an assault was urged across the flat plains, to the north and south, against the lines of desperate and unseen men who were hiding in the ditches and behind the riverbanks. There was a terrible monotony in the experiences of the different regiments, which once again learned the harsh lessons of Colenso and Modder River. We certainly did not need to prove again what had already been so clearly demonstrated: that bravery is useless against hidden riflemen who are well entrenched, and that the harder the attack, the heavier the defeat must be. Across the wide span of our assault, Knox's brigade, Stephenson's brigade, the Highland brigade, and Smith-Dorrien's brigade all faced the same fate. In each case, there was an advance until they were within the thousand-yard fire zone, followed by an overwhelming hail of bullets that forced them to take cover and stay low. If they had recognized at that point that they were attempting the impossible, no great harm might have been done. But with eager determination, the men of the various regiments made little rushes, company by company, toward the riverbed, only to find themselves increasingly exposed to a devastating fire. On the northern bank, Smith-Dorrien's brigade, especially the Canadian regiment, distinguished themselves by their remarkable persistence in their attack. The Cornwalls of the same brigade charged almost to the riverbank in an advance that earned admiration from all who witnessed it. If the miners of Johannesburg had given the impression that the Cornishmen aren't fighters, the record of the county regiment in the war has forever dispelled that myth. Men who weren't fighters would have found no place in Smith-Dorrien's brigade or in the charge at Paardeberg.

While the infantry had been severely handled by the Boer riflemen, our guns, the 76th, 81st, and 82nd field batteries, with the 65th howitzer battery, had been shelling the river bed, though our artillery fire proved as usual to have little effect against scattered and hidden riflemen. At least, however, it distracted their attention, and made their fire upon the exposed infantry in front of them less deadly. Now, as in Napoleon's time, the effect of the guns is moral rather than material. About midday French's horse-artillery guns came into action from the north. Smoke and flames from the dongas told that some of our shells had fallen among the wagons and their combustible stores.

While the infantry had been heavily hit by the Boer riflemen, our artillery, including the 76th, 81st, and 82nd field batteries, along with the 65th howitzer battery, had been shelling the riverbed. However, as usual, our artillery fire had little impact against the scattered and concealed riflemen. At least it distracted them and made their shots at the exposed infantry in front of them less lethal. Just like in Napoleon's time, the impact of the guns was more psychological than physical. Around midday, French's horse artillery opened fire from the north. Smoke and flames rising from the dongas indicated that some of our shells had landed among the wagons and their flammable supplies.

The Boer line had proved itself to be unshakable on each face, but at its ends the result of the action was to push them up, and to shorten the stretch of the river which was held by them. On the north bank Smith-Dorrien's brigade gained a considerable amount of ground. At the other end of the position the Welsh, Yorkshire, and Essex regiments of Stephenson's brigade did some splendid work, and pushed the Boers for some distance down the river bank. A most gallant but impossible charge was made by Colonel Hannay and a number of mounted infantry against the northern bank. He was shot with the majority of his followers. General Knox of the 12th Brigade and General Macdonald of the Highlanders were among the wounded. Colonel Aldworth of the Cornwalls died at the head of his men. A bullet struck him dead as he whooped his West Countrymen on to the charge. Eleven hundred killed and wounded testified to the fire of our attack and the grimness of the Boer resistance. The distribution of the losses among the various battalions—eighty among the Canadians, ninety in the West Riding Regiment, one hundred and twenty in the Seaforths, ninety in the Yorkshires, seventy-six in the Argyll and Sutherlands, ninety-six in the Black Watch, thirty-one in the Oxfordshires, fifty-six in the Cornwalls, forty-six in the Shropshires—shows how universal was the gallantry, and especially how well the Highland Brigade carried itself. It is to be feared that they had to face, not only the fire of the enemy, but also that of their own comrades on the further side of the river. A great military authority has stated that it takes many years for a regiment to recover its spirit and steadiness if it has been heavily punished, and yet within two months of Magersfontein we find the indomitable Highlanders taking without flinching the very bloodiest share of this bloody day—and this after a march of thirty miles with no pause before going into action. A repulse it may have been, but they hear no name of which they may be more proud upon the victory scroll of their colours.

The Boer line had proven to be solid on every front, but at its ends, the action pushed them back and reduced the stretch of river they controlled. On the north bank, Smith-Dorrien's brigade gained significant ground. At the opposite end of the position, the Welsh, Yorkshire, and Essex regiments of Stephenson's brigade performed remarkably and pushed the Boers down the riverbank. A brave but doomed charge was led by Colonel Hannay and a group of mounted infantry against the northern bank. He was shot, along with most of his men. General Knox of the 12th Brigade and General Macdonald of the Highlanders were among the injured. Colonel Aldworth of the Cornwalls was killed while encouraging his West Countrymen to charge. A total of eleven hundred killed and wounded showed the intensity of our attack and the determination of the Boer resistance. The distribution of losses among the various battalions—eighty among the Canadians, ninety in the West Riding Regiment, one hundred and twenty in the Seaforths, ninety in the Yorkshires, seventy-six in the Argyll and Sutherlands, ninety-six in the Black Watch, thirty-one in the Oxfordshires, fifty-six in the Cornwalls, forty-six in the Shropshires—demonstrates the widespread bravery, particularly how well the Highland Brigade performed. Sadly, they likely faced not only enemy fire but also that of their own comrades on the opposite side of the river. A well-respected military authority has said it can take many years for a regiment to regain its spirit and steadiness if it has been heavily punished, yet within two months of Magersfontein, we see the relentless Highlanders bravely taking on one of the bloodiest parts of this bloody day—after a thirty-mile march without a break before entering the fray. It may have been a setback, but they have no name prouder to see on the victory scroll of their colors.

What had we got in return for our eleven hundred casualties? We had contracted the Boer position from about three miles to less than two. So much was to the good, as the closer they lay the more effective our artillery fire might be expected to be. But it is probable that our shrapnel alone, without any loss of life, might have effected the same thing. It is easy to be wise after the event, but it does certainly appear that with our present knowledge the action at Paardeberg was as unnecessary as it was expensive. The sun descended on Sunday, February 18th, upon a bloody field and crowded field hospitals, but also upon an unbroken circle of British troops still hemming in the desperate men who lurked among the willows and mimosas which drape the brown steep banks of the Modder.

What did we get in return for our eleven hundred casualties? We reduced the Boer position from about three miles to less than two. That’s a positive outcome, as the closer they are, the more effective our artillery fire could be. However, it’s likely that our shrapnel alone, without any loss of life, could have achieved the same result. It’s easy to judge after the fact, but it really does seem that with what we know now, the action at Paardeberg was just as unnecessary as it was costly. The sun set on Sunday, February 18th, over a bloody battlefield and crowded field hospitals, but also over an unbroken circle of British troops still surrounding the desperate men hiding among the willows and mimosas that cover the steep brown banks of the Modder.

There was evidence during the action of the presence of an active Boer force to the south of us, probably the same well-handled and enterprising body which had captured our convoy at Waterval. A small party of Kitchener's Horse was surprised by this body, and thirty men with four officers were taken prisoners. Much has been said of the superiority of South African scouting to that of the British regulars, but it must be confessed that a good many instances might be quoted in which the colonials, though second to none in gallantry, have been defective in that very quality in which they were expected to excel.

There was evidence during the action of an active Boer force to the south of us, likely the same well-organized and enterprising group that had captured our convoy at Waterval. A small team from Kitchener's Horse was caught off guard by this group, resulting in thirty men and four officers being taken prisoner. A lot has been said about the superiority of South African scouting compared to that of the British regulars, but it's worth acknowledging that there are numerous instances where the colonials, although unmatched in bravery, have fallen short in the very area they were expected to excel.

This surprise of our cavalry post had more serious consequences than can be measured by the loss of men, for by it the Boers obtained possession of a strong kopje called Kitchener's Hill, lying about two miles distant on the south-east of our position. The movement was an admirable one strategically upon their part, for it gave their beleaguered comrades a first station on the line of their retreat. Could they only win their way to that kopje, a rearguard action might be fought from there which would cover the escape of at least a portion of the force. De Wet, if he was indeed responsible for the manoeuvres of these Southern Boers, certainly handled his small force with a discreet audacity which marks him as the born leader which he afterwards proved himself to be.

This unexpected attack on our cavalry post had more serious consequences than just the loss of men. The Boers took control of a strong hill called Kitchener's Hill, which is about two miles southeast of our position. Their maneuver was strategically brilliant because it provided their surrounded comrades a critical point for their retreat. If they could reach that hill, they could fight a rearguard action from there to help at least some of their forces escape. De Wet, if he was indeed leading these Southern Boers, certainly managed his small group with a boldness that showed he was a natural leader, as he later proved to be.

If the position of the Boers was desperate on Sunday, it was hopeless on Monday, for in the course of the morning Lord Roberts came up, closely followed by the whole of Tucker's Division (7th) from Jacobsdal. Our artillery also was strongly reinforced. The 18th, 62nd, and 75th field batteries came up with three naval 4.7 guns and two naval 12-pounders. Thirty-five thousand men with sixty guns were gathered round the little Boer army. It is a poor spirit which will not applaud the supreme resolution with which the gallant farmers held out, and award to Cronje the title of one of the most grimly resolute leaders of whom we have any record in modern history.

If the Boers were in a tough spot on Sunday, it was hopeless by Monday. In the morning, Lord Roberts arrived, closely followed by all of Tucker's Division (7th) from Jacobsdal. Our artillery was also heavily reinforced. The 18th, 62nd, and 75th field batteries joined up with three naval 4.7 guns and two naval 12-pounders. Thirty-five thousand troops with sixty guns surrounded the small Boer army. It's a weak mindset that wouldn't admire the determination with which the brave farmers held their ground, and we should recognize Cronje as one of the most resolute leaders recorded in modern history.

For a moment it seemed as if his courage was giving way. On Monday morning a message was transmitted by him to Lord Kitchener asking for a twenty-four hours' armistice. The answer was of course a curt refusal. To this he replied that if we were so inhuman as to prevent him from burying his dead there was nothing for him save surrender. An answer was given that a messenger with power to treat should be sent out, but in the interval Cronje had changed his mind, and disappeared with a snarl of contempt into his burrows. It had become known that women and children were in the laager, and a message was sent offering them a place of safety, but even to this a refusal was given. The reasons for this last decision are inconceivable.

For a moment, it looked like he was losing his courage. On Monday morning, he sent a message to Lord Kitchener asking for a twenty-four-hour ceasefire. The response was, of course, a short refusal. He replied that if we were so inhumane as to stop him from burying his dead, he had no choice but to surrender. They said a messenger with the authority to negotiate would be sent out, but in the meantime, Cronje had changed his mind and vanished with a sneer into his hideout. It became known that there were women and children in the camp, and a message was sent offering them a safe place, but even that was refused. The reasons behind this last decision are unimaginable.

Lord Roberts's dispositions were simple, efficacious, and above all bloodless. Smith-Dorrien's brigade, who were winning in the Western army something of the reputation which Hart's Irishmen had won in Natal, were placed astride of the river to the west, with orders to push gradually up, as occasion served, using trenches for their approach. Chermside's brigade occupied the same position on the east. Two other divisions and the cavalry stood round, alert and eager, like terriers round a rat-hole, while all day the pitiless guns crashed their common shell, their shrapnel, and their lyddite into the river-bed. Already down there, amid slaughtered oxen and dead horses under a burning sun, a horrible pest-hole had been formed which sent its mephitic vapours over the countryside. Occasionally the sentries down the river saw amid the brown eddies of the rushing water the floating body of a Boer which had been washed away from the Golgotha above. Dark Cronje, betrayer of Potchefstroom, iron-handed ruler of natives, reviler of the British, stern victor of Magersfontein, at last there has come a day of reckoning for you!

Lord Roberts's plans were straightforward, effective, and above all, bloodless. Smith-Dorrien's brigade, who were building a reputation in the Western army similar to that of Hart's Irishmen in Natal, were positioned across the river to the west, with orders to advance gradually as the situation allowed, using trenches for cover. Chermside's brigade held the same position on the east. Two other divisions and the cavalry stood by, alert and eager, like terriers around a rat hole, while all day the relentless guns fired their shells, shrapnel, and lyddite into the riverbed. Already down there, among slaughtered oxen and dead horses under a blazing sun, a terrible cesspool had formed that sent foul vapors wafting across the countryside. Occasionally, the sentries along the river spotted the floating body of a Boer caught in the brown eddies of the rushing water, washed away from the Golgotha above. Dark Cronje, betrayer of Potchefstroom, iron-fisted ruler of the natives, critic of the British, and stern victor of Magersfontein, at last, your day of reckoning has come!

On Wednesday, the 21st, the British, being now sure of their grip of Cronje, turned upon the Boer force which had occupied the hill to the south-east of the drift. It was clear that this force, unless driven away, would be the vanguard of the relieving army which might be expected to assemble from Ladysmith, Bloemfontein, Colesberg, or wherever else the Boers could detach men. Already it was known that reinforcements who had left Natal whenever they heard that the Free State was invaded were drawing near. It was necessary to crush the force upon the hill before it became too powerful. For this purpose the cavalry set forth, Broadwood with the 10th Hussars, 12th Lancers, and two batteries going round on one side, while French with the 9th and 16th Lancers, the Household Cavalry, and two other batteries skirted the other. A force of Boers was met and defeated, while the defenders of the hill were driven off with considerable loss. In this well-managed affair the enemy lost at least a hundred, of whom fifty were prisoners. On Friday, February 23rd, another attempt at rescue was made from the south, but again it ended disastrously for the Boers. A party attacked a kopje held by the Yorkshire regiment and were blown back by a volley, upon which they made for a second kopje, where the Buffs gave them an even rougher reception. Eighty prisoners were marched in. Meantime hardly a night passed that some of the Boers did not escape from their laager and give themselves up to our pickets. At the end of the week we had taken six hundred in all.

On Wednesday, the 21st, the British, now confident in their control of Cronje, turned their attention to the Boer force that had occupied the hill southeast of the drift. It was clear that this force, unless driven away, would be the lead group of the relief army expected to gather from Ladysmith, Bloemfontein, Colesberg, or anywhere else the Boers could send troops. It was already known that reinforcements who had left Natal as soon as they heard the Free State was invaded were getting closer. It was essential to take out the force on the hill before it grew too strong. To achieve this, the cavalry advanced, with Broadwood leading the 10th Hussars, 12th Lancers, and two batteries approaching from one side, while French led the 9th and 16th Lancers, the Household Cavalry, and two other batteries coming from the other side. A group of Boers was encountered and defeated, while the defenders on the hill were driven off with significant losses. In this well-executed operation, the enemy lost at least a hundred, fifty of whom were captured. On Friday, February 23rd, there was another attempt to rescue from the south, but it ended in disaster for the Boers once again. A group attacked a kopje held by the Yorkshire regiment and were forced back by a gunfire volley, after which they retreated to a second kopje, where the Buffs met them with an even harsher reception. Eighty prisoners were taken. Meanwhile, hardly a night went by without some Boers escaping from their camp and surrendering to our pickets. By the end of the week, we had captured a total of six hundred.

In the meantime the cordon was being drawn ever tighter, and the fire became heavier and more deadly, while the conditions of life in that fearful place were such that the stench alone might have compelled surrender. Amid the crash of tropical thunderstorms, the glare of lightning, and the furious thrashing of rain there was no relaxation of British vigilance. A balloon floating overhead directed the fire, which from day to day became more furious, culminating on the 26th with the arrival of four 5-inch howitzers. But still there came no sign from the fierce Boer and his gallant followers. Buried deep within burrows in the river bank the greater part of them lay safe from the shells, but the rattle of their musketry when the outposts moved showed that the trenches were as alert as ever. The thing could only have one end, however, and Lord Roberts, with admirable judgment and patience, refused to hurry it at the expense of the lives of his soldiers.

In the meantime, the cordon was getting tighter, and the fire became more intense and dangerous. The living conditions in that dreadful place were such that the stench alone could have forced a surrender. Amid the crashes of tropical thunderstorms, the flashes of lightning, and the heavy downpour, British vigilance never wavered. A balloon floating overhead coordinated the fire, which grew more furious each day, culminating on the 26th with the arrival of four 5-inch howitzers. But still, there was no sign from the fierce Boer and his brave followers. Most of them were buried deep in burrows along the riverbank, safe from the shells, but the sound of their gunfire when the outposts moved showed that the trenches were just as alert as ever. However, it could only end one way, and Lord Roberts, with impressive judgment and patience, refused to rush the outcome at the expense of his soldiers' lives.

The two brigades at either end of the Boer lines had lost no chance of pushing in, and now they had come within striking distance. On the night of February 26th it was determined that Smith-Dorrien's men should try their luck. The front trenches of the British were at that time seven hundred yards from the Boer lines. They were held by the Gordons and by the Canadians, the latter being the nearer to the river. It is worth while entering into details as to the arrangement of the attack, as the success of the campaign was at least accelerated by it. The orders were that the Canadians were to advance, the Gordons to support, and the Shropshires to take such a position on the left as would outflank any counter attack upon the part of the Boers. The Canadians advanced in the darkness of the early morning before the rise of the moon. The front rank held their rifles in the left hand and each extended right hand grasped the sleeve of the man next it. The rear rank had their rifles slung and carried spades. Nearest the river bank were two companies (G and H.) who were followed by the 7th company of Royal Engineers carrying picks and empty sand bags. The long line stole through a pitchy darkness, knowing that at any instant a blaze of fire such as flamed before the Highlanders at Magersfontein might crash out in front of them. A hundred, two, three, four, five hundred paces were taken. They knew that they must be close upon the trenches. If they could only creep silently enough, they might spring upon the defenders unannounced. On and on they stole, step by step, praying for silence. Would the gentle shuffle of feet be heard by the men who lay within stone-throw of them? Their hopes had begun to rise when there broke upon the silence of the night a resonant metallic rattle, the thud of a falling man, an empty clatter! They had walked into a line of meat-cans slung upon a wire. By measurement it was only ninety yards from the trench. At that instant a single rifle sounded, and the Canadians hurled themselves down upon the ground. Their bodies had hardly touched it when from a line six hundred yards long there came one furious glare of rifle fire, with a hiss like water on a red-hot plate, of speeding bullets. In that terrible red light the men as they lay and scraped desperately for cover could see the heads of the Boers pop up and down, and the fringe of rifle barrels quiver and gleam. How the regiment, lying helpless under this fire, escaped destruction is extraordinary. To rush the trench in the face of such a continuous blast of lead seemed impossible, and it was equally impossible to remain where they were. In a short time the moon would be up, and they would be picked off to a man. The outer companies upon the plain were ordered to retire. Breaking up into loose order, they made their way back with surprisingly little loss; but a strange contretemps occurred, for, leaping suddenly into a trench held by the Gordons, they transfixed themselves upon the bayonets of the men. A subaltern and twelve men received bayonet thrusts—none of them fortunately of a very serious nature.

The two brigades at each end of the Boer lines had seized every opportunity to push in, and now they were within striking distance. On the night of February 26th, it was decided that Smith-Dorrien's troops would give it a shot. At that time, the British front trenches were seven hundred yards from the Boer lines. They were held by the Gordons and the Canadians, with the Canadians being closer to the river. It's important to detail the attack's arrangement, as it at least helped speed up the campaign’s success. The orders were for the Canadians to advance, the Gordons to support them, and the Shropshires to position themselves on the left to outflank any counterattack from the Boers. The Canadians advanced in the darkness of the early morning before the moon rose. The front row held their rifles in their left hands, and each extended their right hands to grasp the sleeve of the person next to them. The rear row had their rifles slung and carried shovels. Closest to the riverbank were two companies (G and H.), followed by the 7th company of Royal Engineers carrying picks and empty sandbags. The long line moved through intense darkness, aware that at any moment a fiery blast similar to what the Highlanders faced at Magersfontein could erupt in front of them. They took one hundred, two hundred, three hundred, four hundred, five hundred paces. They knew they had to be nearing the trenches. If they could just move silently enough, they might surprise the defenders. They crept on, step by step, hoping for silence. Would the slight shuffle of their feet be heard by the men just a stone's throw away? Their hopes began to rise when, suddenly, a loud metallic rattle broke the night’s silence, followed by the thud of a falling man and an empty clang! They had walked into a line of meat-cans hanging on wire. By distance, it was only ninety yards from the trench. In that moment, a single rifle shot rang out, and the Canadians dropped to the ground. Their bodies barely touched the ground before a furious barrage of rifle fire erupted from a line six hundred yards long, accompanied by a hissing sound like water on a hot plate as bullets sped by. In that terrible red light, as they lay and desperately scraped for cover, the men could see the heads of the Boers bobbing up and down, along with the glimmer of rifle barrels. It’s remarkable how the regiment, lying defenseless under this fire, avoided destruction. Charging the trench in the face of such a relentless hail of bullets seemed impossible, and staying put was equally unfeasible. Soon the moon would rise, making them easy targets. The outer companies on the plain were ordered to fall back. Breaking into loose formation, they retraced their steps with surprisingly few casualties; however, an unusual incident occurred when they suddenly jumped into a trench held by the Gordons, impaling themselves on the bayonets of the men. A subaltern and twelve men were injured by bayonet thrusts—luckily none were very serious.

While these events had been taking place upon the left of the line, the right was hardly in better plight. All firing had ceased for the moment—the Boers being evidently under the impression that the whole attack had recoiled. Uncertain whether the front of the small party on the right of the second line (now consisting of some sixty-five Sappers and Canadians lying in one mingled line) was clear for firing should the Boers leave their trenches, Captain Boileau, of the Sappers, crawled forward along the bank of the river, and discovered Captain Stairs and ten men of the Canadians, the survivors of the firing line, firmly ensconced in a crevice of the river bank overlooking the laager, quite happy on being reassured as to the proximity of support. This brought the total number of the daring band up to seventy-five rifles. Meanwhile, the Gordons, somewhat perplexed by the flying phantoms who had been flitting into and over their trenches for the past few minutes, sent a messenger along the river bank to ascertain, in their turn, if their own front was clear to fire, and if not, what state the survivors were in. To this message Colonel Kincaid, R.E., now in command of the remains of the assaulting party, replied that his men would be well entrenched by daylight. The little party had been distributed for digging as well as the darkness and their ignorance of their exact position to the Boers would permit. Twice the sound of the picks brought angry volleys from the darkness, but the work was never stopped, and in the early dawn the workers found not only that they were secure themselves, but that they were in a position to enfilade over half a mile of Boer trenches. Before daybreak the British crouched low in their shelter, so that with the morning light the Boers did not realise the change which the night had wrought. It was only when a burgher was shot as he filled his pannikin at the river that they understood how their position was overlooked. For half an hour a brisk fire was maintained, at the end of which time a white flag went up from the trench. Kincaid stood up on his parapet, and a single haggard figure emerged from the Boer warren. 'The burghers have had enough; what are they to do?' said he. As he spoke his comrades scrambled out behind him and came walking and running over to the British lines. It was not a moment likely to be forgotten by the parched and grimy warriors who stood up and cheered until the cry came crashing back to them again from the distant British camps. No doubt Cronje had already realised that the extreme limit of his resistance was come, but it was to that handful of Sappers and Canadians that the credit is immediately due for that white flag which fluttered on the morning of Majuba Day over the lines of Paardeberg.

While these events were happening on the left side, the right wasn’t in much better shape. All firing had stopped for the moment—the Boers seemed to think that the whole attack had turned back. Not sure if the front of the small party on the right of the second line (now made up of about sixty-five Sappers and Canadians lying in a mixed line) was clear for firing if the Boers left their trenches, Captain Boileau of the Sappers crawled forward along the riverbank. He found Captain Stairs and ten men from the Canadians, the survivors of the firing line, securely tucked into a crevice of the riverbank overlooking the camp, quite relieved to be reassured about the availability of support. This brought the total number of the brave group to seventy-five rifles. Meanwhile, the Gordons, somewhat confused by the fleeting shadows that had been moving into and over their trenches for the past few minutes, sent a messenger along the riverbank to find out if their front was clear to fire and, if not, the condition of the survivors. In response to this message, Colonel Kincaid, R.E., now in charge of the remaining assault party, replied that his men would be well entrenched by daylight. The small group had been divided for digging as much as the darkness and their lack of knowledge about their exact position relative to the Boers would allow. Twice the sound of picks drew angry gunfire from the darkness, but the work never stopped, and by early dawn, the workers found that they were not only secure but also in a position to enfilade over half a mile of Boer trenches. Before daybreak, the British crouched low in their shelter so that when morning light came, the Boers didn’t realize the change that had taken place overnight. It was only when a burgher was shot while filling his cup at the river that they understood their position was now overlooked. For half an hour, a fierce fire was maintained, and at the end of that time, a white flag went up from the trench. Kincaid stood up on his parapet, and a single haggard figure emerged from the Boer camp. 'The burghers have had enough; what should they do?' he said. As he spoke, his comrades scrambled out behind him and came walking and running over to the British lines. It was a moment that the weary and grimy warriors who stood up and cheered would never forget, until the shout echoed back to them from the distant British camps. No doubt Cronje had already realized that he had reached the limit of his resistance, but it was to that small group of Sappers and Canadians that the credit is immediately due for that white flag which fluttered on the morning of Majuba Day over the Paardeberg lines.

It was six o'clock in the morning when General Pretyman rode up to Lord Roberts's headquarters. Behind him upon a white horse was a dark-bearded man, with the quick, restless eyes of a hunter, middle-sized, thickly built, with grizzled hair flowing from under a tall brown felt hat. He wore the black broadcloth of the burgher with a green summer overcoat, and carried a small whip in his hands. His appearance was that of a respectable London vestryman rather than of a most redoubtable soldier with a particularly sinister career behind him.

It was six in the morning when General Pretyman arrived at Lord Roberts’s headquarters. Behind him, on a white horse, was a dark-bearded man with quick, restless eyes like a hunter. He was of average height, stocky, with grizzled hair that flowed from under a tall brown felt hat. He wore black broadcloth typical of a burgher, along with a green summer overcoat, and held a small whip in his hands. He looked more like a respectable London vestryman than a formidable soldier with a notably sinister past.

The Generals shook hands, and it was briefly intimated to Cronje that his surrender must be unconditional, to which, after a short silence, he agreed. His only stipulations were personal, that his wife, his grandson, his secretary, his adjutant, and his servant might accompany him. The same evening he was despatched to Cape Town, receiving those honourable attentions which were due to his valour rather than to his character. His men, a pallid ragged crew, emerged from their holes and burrows, and delivered up their rifles. It is pleasant to add that, with much in their memories to exasperate them, the British privates treated their enemies with as large-hearted a courtesy as Lord Roberts had shown to their leader. Our total capture numbered some three thousand of the Transvaal and eleven hundred of the Free State. That the latter were not far more numerous was due to the fact that many had already shredded off to their farms. Besides Cronje, Wolverans of the Transvaal, and the German artillerist Albrecht, with forty-four other field-cornets and commandants, fell into our hands. Six small guns were also secured. The same afternoon saw the long column of the prisoners on its way to Modder River, there to be entrained for Cape Town, the most singular lot of people to be seen at that moment upon earth—ragged, patched, grotesque, some with goloshes, some with umbrellas, coffee-pots, and Bibles, their favourite baggage. So they passed out of their ten days of glorious history.

The Generals shook hands, and it was briefly indicated to Cronje that his surrender had to be unconditional, to which he agreed after a short silence. His only requests were personal: that his wife, grandson, secretary, adjutant, and servant could accompany him. That same evening, he was sent to Cape Town, receiving the respectful treatment that was due to his bravery rather than his character. His men, a pale and ragged group, crawled out from their hiding spots and handed over their rifles. It’s good to note that, despite their own frustrations, the British soldiers treated their captured enemies with the same generous courtesy that Lord Roberts had shown to their leader. In total, we captured about three thousand from the Transvaal and eleven hundred from the Free State. The latter group wasn’t even larger because many had already slipped away to their farms. Besides Cronje, we also captured Wolverans from the Transvaal, the German artilleryman Albrecht, along with forty-four other field-cornets and commanders. We also secured six small guns. That afternoon, the long line of prisoners began its journey to Modder River, where they would be loaded onto trains for Cape Town, making for the most unusual collection of people on earth at that moment—ragged, patched-up, and comical, some wearing goloshes, others carrying umbrellas, coffee pots, and Bibles, their favorite belongings. Thus, they exited their ten days of remarkable history.

A visit to the laager showed that the horrible smells which had been carried across to the British lines, and the swollen carcasses which had swirled down the muddy river were true portents of its condition. Strong-nerved men came back white and sick from a contemplation of the place in which women and children had for ten days been living. From end to end it was a festering mass of corruption, overshadowed by incredible swarms of flies. Yet the engineer who could face evil sights and nauseous smells was repaid by an inspection of the deep narrow trenches in which a rifleman could crouch with the minimum danger from shells, and the caves in which the non-combatants remained in absolute safety. Of their dead we have no accurate knowledge, but two hundred wounded in a donga represented their losses, not only during a bombardment of ten days, but also in that Paardeberg engagement which had cost us eleven hundred casualties. No more convincing example could be adduced both of the advantage of the defence over the attack, and of the harmlessness of the fiercest shell fire if those who are exposed to it have space and time to make preparations.

A visit to the camp showed that the awful smells that had reached the British lines and the bloated bodies that had floated down the muddy river were real signs of its condition. Tough men returned pale and sick after seeing the place where women and children had been living for ten days. It was a stinking mess of decay, swarming with unbelievable numbers of flies. Still, the engineer who could withstand the terrible sights and disgusting smells was rewarded by inspecting the deep, narrow trenches where a soldier could take cover with minimal risk from shells, and the shelters where non-combatants stayed completely safe. We don’t have precise figures on their dead, but two hundred wounded in a ravine indicated their losses, not only during ten days of bombardment but also in that Paardeberg battle which had cost us eleven hundred casualties. There couldn't be a more convincing example of the advantage of defense over offense, and of how even the fiercest shelling can be harmless if those targeted have the space and time to prepare.

A fortnight had elapsed since Lord Roberts had launched his forces from Ramdam, and that fortnight had wrought a complete revolution in the campaign. It is hard to recall any instance in the history of war where a single movement has created such a change over so many different operations. On February 14th Kimberley was in danger of capture, a victorious Boer army was facing Methuen, the lines of Magersfontein appeared impregnable, Clements was being pressed at Colesberg, Gatacre was stopped at Stormberg, Buller could not pass the Tugela, and Ladysmith was in a perilous condition. On the 28th Kimberley had been relieved, the Boer army was scattered or taken, the lines of Magersfontein were in our possession, Clements found his assailants retiring before him, Gatacre was able to advance at Stormberg, Buller had a weakening army in front of him, and Ladysmith was on the eve of relief. And all this had been done at the cost of a very moderate loss of life, for most of which Lord Roberts was in no sense answerable. Here at last was a reputation so well founded that even South African warfare could only confirm and increase it. A single master hand had in an instant turned England's night to day, and had brought us out of that nightmare of miscalculation and disaster which had weighed so long upon our spirits. His was the master hand, but there were others at his side without whom that hand might have been paralysed: Kitchener the organiser, French the cavalry leader—to these two men, second only to their chief, are the results of the operations due. Henderson, the most capable head of Intelligence, and Richardson, who under all difficulties fed the army, may each claim his share in the success.

Two weeks had passed since Lord Roberts had sent his forces from Ramdam, and that time had completely changed the course of the campaign. It's hard to think of any moment in military history where a single action altered so many different operations. On February 14th, Kimberley was on the verge of being captured, a victorious Boer army was facing Methuen, the positions at Magersfontein seemed unbeatable, Clements was under pressure at Colesberg, Gatacre was stalled at Stormberg, Buller couldn't cross the Tugela, and Ladysmith was in a serious predicament. By the 28th, Kimberley had been rescued, the Boer army was either scattered or captured, we had taken control of Magersfontein, Clements found his attackers retreating, Gatacre was able to move forward at Stormberg, Buller faced a weakening enemy, and Ladysmith was about to be relieved. All of this was accomplished with a surprisingly low loss of life, most of which Lord Roberts was not accountable for. Here was a reputation so well established that even the conflict in South Africa could only strengthen it. A single masterful commander had, in an instant, transformed England's darkness into light and pulled us out of the nightmare of mistakes and failures that had burdened us for so long. His was the masterful hand, but there were others beside him without whom he might have been ineffective: Kitchener the organizer, French the cavalry leader—these two men, second only to their chief, contributed significantly to the success of the operations. Henderson, the most capable head of Intelligence, and Richardson, who managed to supply the army under challenging conditions, each deserve recognition for their roles in this achievement.





CHAPTER 20. ROBERTS'S ADVANCE ON BLOEMFONTEIN.

The surrender of Cronje had taken place on February 27th, obliterating for ever the triumphant memories which the Boers had for twenty years associated with that date. A halt was necessary to provide food for the hungry troops, and above all to enable the cavalry horses to pick up. The supply of forage had been most inadequate, and the beasts had not yet learned to find a living from the dry withered herbage of the veld. [Footnote: A battery which turned out its horses to graze found that the puzzled creatures simply galloped about the plain, and could only be reassembled by blowing the call which they associated with feeding, when they rushed back and waited in lines for their nosebags to be put on.] In addition to this, they had been worked most desperately during the fortnight which had elapsed. Lord Roberts waited therefore at Osfontein, which is a farmhouse close to Paardeberg, until his cavalry were fit for an advance. On March 6th he began his march for Bloemfontein.

The surrender of Cronje happened on February 27th, wiping out the victorious memories the Boers had associated with that date for twenty years. A pause was necessary to provide food for the starving troops and, most importantly, to allow the cavalry horses to recover. The supply of forage had been very limited, and the animals hadn't yet figured out how to survive on the dry, shriveled grass of the veld. [Footnote: A battery that let its horses graze found that the confused animals just galloped around the plain, and could only be gathered back by blowing the call they recognized from feeding time, when they rushed back and lined up for their nosebags to be put on.] On top of this, they had been worked extremely hard during the two weeks that had passed. Lord Roberts therefore waited at Osfontein, a farmhouse near Paardeberg, until his cavalry were ready to move forward. On March 6th, he started his march toward Bloemfontein.

The force which had been hovering to the south and east of him during the Paardeberg operations had meanwhile been reinforced from Colesberg and from Ladysmith until it had attained considerable proportions. This army, under the leadership of De Wet, had taken up a strong position a few miles to the east, covering a considerable range of kopjes. On March 3rd a reconnaissance was made of it, in which some of our guns were engaged; but it was not until three days later that the army advanced with the intention of turning or forcing it. In the meantime reinforcements had been arriving in the British camp, derived partly from the regiments which had been employed at other points during these operations, and partly from newcomers from the outer Empire. The Guards came up from Klip Drift, the City Imperial Volunteers, the Australian Mounted Infantry, the Burmese Mounted Infantry and a detachment of light horse from Ceylon helped to form this strange invading army which was drawn from five continents and yet had no alien in its ranks.

The force that had been positioned to the south and east of him during the Paardeberg operations had meanwhile been bolstered by reinforcements from Colesberg and Ladysmith until it had grown to significant numbers. This army, led by De Wet, had taken a strong position a few miles to the east, covering a large area of hills. On March 3rd, a reconnaissance mission was conducted, during which some of our guns were involved; however, it wasn't until three days later that the army advanced with plans to outflank or break through it. In the meantime, reinforcements had been arriving in the British camp, coming partly from regiments engaged in other areas during these operations and partly from new troops from across the Empire. The Guards arrived from Klip Drift, the City Imperial Volunteers, the Australian Mounted Infantry, the Burmese Mounted Infantry, and a detachment of light cavalry from Ceylon contributed to this unusual invading army, which was drawn from five continents yet had no foreign members among its ranks.

The position which the enemy had taken up at Poplars Grove (so called from a group of poplars round a farmhouse in the centre of their position) extended across the Modder River and was buttressed on either side by well-marked hills, with intermittent kopjes between. With guns, trenches, rifle pits, and barbed wire a bull-headed general might have found it another Magersfontein. But it is only just to Lord Roberts's predecessors in command to say that it is easy to do things with three cavalry brigades which it is difficult to do with two regiments. The ultimate blame does not rest with the man who failed with the two regiments, but with those who gave him inadequate means for the work which he had to do. And in this estimate of means our military authorities, our politicians, and our public were all in the first instance equally mistaken.

The position the enemy took at Poplars Grove (named after a cluster of poplars around a farmhouse in the middle of their area) stretched across the Modder River and was flanked on both sides by distinct hills, with scattered kopjes in between. With artillery, trenches, rifle pits, and barbed wire, a stubborn general might have seen it as another Magersfontein. However, it's only fair to recognize that Lord Roberts's predecessors in command had an easier time with three cavalry brigades compared to the challenges of commanding just two regiments. The ultimate responsibility doesn't lie with the person who struggled with the two regiments, but rather with those who provided insufficient resources for the task at hand. In assessing these resources, our military leaders, politicians, and the public were all, at first, equally misguided.

Lord Roberts's plan was absolutely simple, and yet, had it been carried out as conceived, absolutely effective. It was not his intention to go near any of that entanglement of ditch and wire which had been so carefully erected for his undoing. The weaker party, if it be wise, atones for its weakness by entrenchments. The stronger party, if it be wise, leaves the entrenchments alone and uses its strength to go round them. Lord Roberts meant to go round. With his immense preponderance of men and guns the capture or dispersal of the enemy's army might be reduced to a certainty. Once surrounded, they must either come out into the open or they must surrender.

Lord Roberts's plan was really straightforward, and if it had been executed as he intended, it would have been completely effective. He didn’t plan to get anywhere near the complicated network of ditches and barbed wire that had been set up to trap him. The weaker side, if smart, compensates for its weakness by building defenses. The stronger side, if smart, avoids the defenses and uses its strength to go around them. Lord Roberts aimed to go around. With his overwhelming number of troops and artillery, capturing or scattering the enemy’s army could be made almost certain. Once surrounded, they would have to either come out into the open or surrender.

On March 6th the cavalry were brought across the river, and in the early morning of March 7th they were sent off in the darkness to sweep round the left wing of the Boers and to establish themselves on the line of their retreat. Kelly-Kenny's Division (6th) had orders to follow and support this movement. Meanwhile Tucker was to push straight along the southern bank of the river, though we may surmise that his instructions were, in case of resistance, not to push his attack home. Colvile's 9th Division, with part of the naval brigade, were north of the river, the latter to shell the drifts in case the Boers tried to cross, and the infantry to execute a turning movement which would correspond with that of the cavalry on the other flank.

On March 6th, the cavalry crossed the river, and early on March 7th, they were sent out in the dark to maneuver around the left side of the Boers and position themselves on their retreat path. Kelly-Kenny's 6th Division was ordered to follow and support this movement. Meanwhile, Tucker was directed to advance straight along the southern bank of the river, although it's likely his orders were to hold back his attack if there was resistance. Colvile's 9th Division, along with part of the naval brigade, was positioned north of the river; the naval brigade was there to shell the crossing points in case the Boers attempted to cross, while the infantry was to carry out a flanking maneuver to coordinate with the cavalry's movement on the opposite side.

The plan of action was based, however, upon one supposition which proved to be fallacious. It was that after having prepared so elaborate a position the enemy would stop at least a little time to defend it. Nothing of the sort occurred, however, and on the instant that they realised that the cavalry was on their flank they made off. The infantry did not fire a shot.

The plan was built on one assumption that turned out to be wrong. It was that after setting up such a strong position, the enemy would at least take some time to defend it. However, that didn't happen, and as soon as they realized the cavalry was on their flank, they fled. The infantry didn't fire a single shot.

The result of this very decisive flight was to derange all calculations entirely. The cavalry was not yet in its place when the Boer army streamed off between the kopjes. One would have thought, however, that they would have had a dash for the wagons and the guns, even if they were past them. It is unfair to criticise a movement until one is certain as to the positive orders which the leader may have received; but on the face of it it is clear that the sweep of our cavalry was not wide enough, and that they erred by edging to the left instead of to the right, so leaving the flying enemies always to the outside of them.

The outcome of this critical flight completely messed up all calculations. The cavalry wasn’t in position yet when the Boer army surged between the hills. One might think they would have gone for the wagons and the guns, even if they were beyond them. It's unfair to judge a movement until you know the exact orders the leader received; however, it’s obvious that our cavalry didn’t cover enough ground and made a mistake by moving to the left instead of right, allowing the fleeing enemies to remain outside of them.

As it was, however, there seemed every possibility of their getting the guns, but De Wet very cleverly covered them by his skirmishers. Taking possession of a farmhouse on the right flank they kept up a spirited fire upon the 16th Lancers and upon P battery R.H.A. When at last the latter drove them out of their shelter, they again formed upon a low kopje and poured so galling a fire upon the right wing that the whole movement was interrupted until we had driven this little body of fifty men from their position. When, after a delay of an hour, the cavalry at last succeeded in dislodging them—or possibly it may be fairer to say when, having accomplished their purpose, they retired—the guns and wagons were out of reach, and, what is more important, the two Presidents, both Steyn and Kruger, who had come to stiffen the resistance of the burghers, had escaped.

As it turned out, there was every chance they could get the guns, but De Wet skillfully covered them with his skirmishers. They took over a farmhouse on the right flank and kept up a fierce fire on the 16th Lancers and P Battery R.H.A. When the latter finally drove them out of their cover, they regrouped on a low hill and unleashed such a punishing fire on the right wing that the whole operation was stalled until we could push this small group of fifty men out of their position. After an hour's delay, when the cavalry finally managed to dislodge them—or perhaps it's more accurate to say that they withdrew after achieving their goal—the guns and wagons were out of reach. More importantly, the two Presidents, Steyn and Kruger, who had come to bolster the burghers' resistance, had managed to escape.

Making every allowance for the weary state of the horses, it is impossible to say that our cavalry were handled with energy or judgment on this occasion. That such a force of men and guns should be held off from an object of such importance by so small a resistance reflects no credit upon us. It would have been better to repeat the Kimberley tactics and to sweep the regiments in extended order past the obstacle if we could not pass over it. At the other side of that little ill-defended kopje lay a possible termination of the war, and our crack cavalry regiments manoeuvred for hours and let it pass out of their reach. However, as Lord Roberts good-humouredly remarked at the end of the action, 'In war you can't expect everything to come out right.' General French can afford to shed one leaf from his laurel wreath. On the other hand, no words can be too high for the gallant little band of Boers who had the courage to face that overwhelming mass of horsemen, and to bluff them into regarding this handful as a force fighting a serious rearguard action. When the stories of the war are told round the fires in the lonely veld farmhouses, as they will be for a century to come, this one deserves an honoured place.

Considering the tired state of the horses, it’s hard to say that our cavalry was managed with energy or skill this time. The fact that a large force of men and guns could be held back from such an important goal by such minimal resistance doesn’t reflect well on us. It might have been better to use the Kimberley tactics and move the regiments in an extended line around the obstacle if crossing it was not possible. On the other side of that poorly defended hill was a potential end to the war, and our top cavalry units maneuvered for hours, allowing it to slip away. However, as Lord Roberts jokingly noted at the end of the action, 'In war, you can’t expect everything to go perfectly.' General French can afford to give up a bit of his glory. On the other hand, nothing but high praise can be given to the brave little group of Boers who had the guts to stand up to that overwhelming mass of horsemen, making them believe that this small number was a serious fighting force. When the stories of the war are shared around the fires in the lonely veldt farmhouses, as they will be for the next century, this one deserves a special mention.

The victory, if such a word can apply to such an action, had cost some fifty or sixty of the cavalry killed and wounded, while it is doubtful if the Boers lost as many. The finest military display on the British side had been the magnificent marching of Kelly-Kenny's 6th Division, who had gone for ten hours with hardly a halt. One 9-pound Krupp gun was the only trophy. On the other hand, Roberts had turned them out of their strong position, had gained twelve or fifteen miles on the road to Bloemfontein, and for the first time shown how helpless a Boer army was in country which gave our numbers a chance. From now onwards it was only in surprise and ambuscade that they could hope for a success. We had learned and they had learned that they could not stand in the open field.

The victory, if that's even the right word for such an event, cost about fifty or sixty cavalry soldiers either killed or injured, while it's uncertain if the Boers suffered as many losses. The most impressive military display on the British side was the amazing march of Kelly-Kenny's 6th Division, who moved for ten hours with hardly any breaks. One 9-pound Krupp gun was the only trophy. On the flip side, Roberts had driven them out of their strong position, covered twelve or fifteen miles toward Bloemfontein, and for the first time demonstrated how vulnerable a Boer army was in terrain that favored our numbers. From this point on, their chances for success relied only on surprise attacks and ambushes. We had learned, and they had learned, that they couldn't hold their ground in open combat.

The action of Poplars Grove was fought on March 7th. On the 9th the army was again on its way, and on the 10th it attacked the new position which the Boers had occupied at a place called Driefontein, or Abram's Kraal. They covered a front of some seven miles in such a formation that their wings were protected, the northern by the river and the southern by flanking bastions of hill extending for some distance to the rear. If the position had been defended as well as it had been chosen, the task would have been a severe one.

The battle of Poplars Grove took place on March 7th. By the 9th, the army was on the move again, and on the 10th, it attacked the new position the Boers had taken up at a location called Driefontein, or Abram's Kraal. They covered a stretch of about seven miles in a formation that shielded their flanks, with the northern side protected by the river and the southern side secured by hill formations extending back for some distance. If the position had been defended as well as it was selected, the challenge would have been quite difficult.

Since the Modder covered the enemy's right the turning movement could only be developed on their left, and Tucker's Division was thrown out very wide on that side for the purpose. But in the meanwhile a contretemps had occurred which threw out and seriously hampered the whole British line of battle. General French was in command of the left wing, which included Kelly-Kenny's Division, the first cavalry brigade, and Alderson's Mounted Infantry. His orders had been to keep in touch with the centre, and to avoid pushing his attack home. In endeavouring to carry out these instructions French moved his men more and more to the right, until he had really squeezed in between the Boers and Lord Roberts's central column, and so masked the latter. The essence of the whole operation was that the frontal attack should not be delivered until Tucker had worked round to the rear of the position. It is for military critics to decide whether it was that the flankers were too slow or the frontal assailants were too fast, but it is certain that Kelly-Kenny's Division attacked before the cavalry and the 7th Division were in their place. Kelly-Kenny was informed that the position in front of him had been abandoned, and four regiments, the Buffs, the Essex, the Welsh, and the Yorkshires, were advanced against it. They were passing over the open when the crash of the Mauser fire burst out in front of them, and the bullets hissed and thudded among the ranks. The ordeal was a very severe one. The Yorkshires were swung round wide upon the right, but the rest of the brigade, the Welsh Regiment leading, made a frontal attack upon the ridge. It was done coolly and deliberately, the men taking advantage of every possible cover. Boers could be seen leaving their position in small bodies as the crackling, swaying line of the British surged ever higher upon the hillside. At last, with a cheer, the Welshmen with their Kent and Essex comrades swept over the crest into the ranks of that cosmopolitan crew of sturdy adventurers who are known as the Johannesburg Police. For once the loss of the defence was greater than that of the attack. These mercenaries had not the instinct which teaches the Boer the right instant for flight, and they held their position too long to get away. The British had left four hundred men on the track of that gallant advance, but the vast majority of them were wounded—too often by those explosive or expansive missiles which make war more hideous. Of the Boers we actually buried over a hundred on the ridge, and their total casualties must have been considerably in excess of ours.

Since the Modder covered the enemy's right, the turning movement could only be developed on their left, and Tucker's Division was pushed out much wider on that side for this purpose. But in the meantime, an incident occurred that disrupted and seriously hindered the entire British line of battle. General French was in charge of the left wing, which included Kelly-Kenny's Division, the first cavalry brigade, and Alderson's Mounted Infantry. His orders were to stay in touch with the center and to avoid aggressively pursuing the attack. In trying to follow these instructions, French shifted his troops further to the right until he really squeezed between the Boers and Lord Roberts's central column, thereby masking the latter. The key to the whole operation was that the frontal attack should not happen until Tucker had moved around to the rear of the position. It's up to military critics to determine whether the flankers were too slow or the frontal attackers were too fast, but it's clear that Kelly-Kenny's Division attacked before the cavalry and the 7th Division had taken their positions. Kelly-Kenny was told that the position in front of him had been abandoned, and four regiments, the Buffs, the Essex, the Welsh, and the Yorkshires, were advanced against it. They were crossing the open ground when the sound of Mauser fire erupted in front of them, and bullets whizzed and thudded among the ranks. The ordeal was incredibly tough. The Yorkshires were swung wide to the right, but the rest of the brigade, with the Welsh Regiment leading, launched a frontal attack on the ridge. It was done calmly and deliberately, with the soldiers using every piece of cover available. Boers could be seen leaving their position in small groups as the crackling, swaying line of the British pushed higher up the hillside. Finally, with a cheer, the Welshmen, along with their Kent and Essex comrades, surged over the crest into the ranks of the diverse group of tough adventurers known as the Johannesburg Police. For once, the defenders suffered more losses than the attackers. These mercenaries lacked the instinct that tells the Boer the right moment to retreat, and they held their position too long to escape. The British had left four hundred men on the path of that gallant advance, but the vast majority were wounded—often by those explosive or expanding projectiles that make warfare even more horrific. Of the Boers, we actually buried over a hundred on the ridge, and their total casualties must have been significantly higher than ours.

The action was strategically well conceived; all that Lord Roberts could do for complete success had been done; but tactically it was a poor affair, considering his enormous preponderance in men and guns. There was no glory in it, save for the four regiments who set their faces against that sleet of lead. The artillery did not do well, and were browbeaten by guns which they should have smothered under their fire. The cavalry cannot be said to have done well either. And yet, when all is said, the action is an important one, for the enemy were badly shaken by the result. The Johannesburg Police, who had been among their corps d'elite, had been badly mauled, and the burghers were impressed by one more example of the impossibility of standing in anything approaching to open country against disciplined troops, Roberts had not captured the guns, but the road had been cleared for him to Bloemfontein and, what is more singular, to Pretoria; for though hundreds of miles intervene between the field of Driefontein and the Transvaal capital, he never again met a force which was willing to look his infantry in the eyes in a pitched battle. Surprises and skirmishes were many, but it was the last time, save only at Doornkop, that a chosen position was ever held for an effective rifle fire—to say nothing of the push of bayonet.

The action was strategically well planned; Lord Roberts did everything possible for complete success, but tactically it was a poor performance, given his overwhelming advantage in men and guns. There was no glory in it except for the four regiments that faced that barrage of bullets. The artillery underperformed and were intimidated by enemy fire that they should have overpowered. The cavalry didn’t exactly shine either. Still, despite everything, the action was significant because the enemy was seriously shaken by the outcome. The Johannesburg Police, part of their elite forces, suffered heavy losses, and the burghers were left with yet another demonstration of the futility of standing in open country against disciplined troops. Although Roberts did not capture the enemy's guns, the path to Bloemfontein was cleared for him, and, more remarkably, to Pretoria; for despite the hundreds of miles between Driefontein and the Transvaal capital, he never faced a force willing to confront his infantry in a direct battle again. There were many surprises and skirmishes, but this was the last time—except at Doornkop—that a chosen position was effectively held for rifle fire, not to mention close-quarters combat with bayonets.

And now the army flowed swiftly onwards to the capital. The indefatigable 6th Division, which had done march after march, one more brilliant than another, since they had crossed the Riet River, reached Asvogel Kop on the evening of Sunday, March 11th, the day after the battle. On Monday the army was still pressing onwards, disregarding all else and striking straight for the heart as Blucher struck at Paris in 1814. At midday they halted at the farm of Gregorowski, he who had tried the Reform prisoners after the Raid. The cavalry pushed on down Kaal Spruit, and in the evening crossed the Southern railway line which connects Bloemfontein with the colony, cutting it at a point some five miles from the town. In spite of some not very strenuous opposition from a Boer force a hill was seized by a squadron of Greys with some mounted infantry and Rimington's Guides, aided by U battery R.H.A., and was held by them all that night.

And now the army moved quickly toward the capital. The tireless 6th Division, which had marched continuously, each march more impressive than the last, since crossing the Riet River, arrived at Asvogel Kop on the evening of Sunday, March 11th, the day after the battle. On Monday, the army continued to push forward, ignoring everything else and heading straight for the center, just like Blucher did in Paris in 1814. At midday, they stopped at the farm of Gregorowski, who had tried the Reform prisoners after the Raid. The cavalry advanced down Kaal Spruit, and in the evening crossed the Southern railway line that connects Bloemfontein with the colony, cutting it about five miles from the town. Despite some not very intense resistance from a Boer force, a squadron of Greys, along with some mounted infantry and Rimington's Guides, supported by U battery R.H.A., seized a hill and held it throughout the night.

On the same evening Major Hunter-Weston, an officer who had already performed at least one brilliant feat in the war, was sent with Lieutenant Charles and a handful of Mounted Sappers and Hussars to cut the line to the north. After a difficult journey on a very dark night he reached his object and succeeded in finding and blowing up a culvert. There is a Victoria Cross gallantry which leads to nothing save personal decoration, and there is another and far higher gallantry of calculation, which springs from a cool brain as well as a hot heart, and it is from the men who possess this rare quality that great warriors arise. Such feats as the cutting of this railway or the subsequent saving of the Bethulie Bridge by Grant and Popham are of more service to the country than any degree of mere valour untempered by judgment. Among other results the cutting of the line secured for us twenty-eight locomotives, two hundred and fifty trucks, and one thousand tons of coal, all of which were standing ready to leave Bloemfontein station. The gallant little band were nearly cut off on their return, but fought their way through with the loss of two horses, and so got back in triumph.

On the same evening, Major Hunter-Weston, an officer who had already accomplished at least one remarkable feat in the war, was sent with Lieutenant Charles and a small group of Mounted Sappers and Hussars to cut the line to the north. After a tough journey on a very dark night, he reached his target and successfully found and blew up a culvert. There is a kind of bravery that leads to nothing but personal recognition, and then there is a much higher bravery based on strategy, coming from both a calm mind and a passionate heart. It is from men who possess this rare quality that great warriors emerge. Actions like cutting this railway or the later saving of the Bethulie Bridge by Grant and Popham are much more beneficial to the country than any amount of sheer bravery without wisdom. Among other outcomes, cutting the line secured for us twenty-eight locomotives, two hundred and fifty trucks, and one thousand tons of coal, all of which were ready to depart from Bloemfontein station. The brave little group nearly got trapped on their way back but fought their way through, losing two horses in the process, and returned triumphantly.

The action of Driefontein was fought on the 10th. The advance began on the morning of the 11th. On the morning of the 13th the British were practically masters of Bloemfontein. The distance is forty miles. No one can say that Lord Roberts cannot follow a victory up as well as win it.

The battle of Driefontein took place on the 10th. The advance started on the morning of the 11th. By the morning of the 13th, the British had nearly taken control of Bloemfontein. The distance is forty miles. No one can doubt that Lord Roberts knows how to capitalize on a victory just as well as he knows how to win one.

Some trenches had been dug and sangars erected to the north-west of the town; but Lord Roberts, with his usual perverseness, took the wrong turning and appeared upon the broad open plain to the south, where resistance would have been absurd. Already Steyn and the irreconcilables had fled from the town, and the General was met by a deputation of the Mayor, the Landdrost, and Mr. Fraser to tender the submission of the capital. Fraser, a sturdy clear-headed Highlander, had been the one politician in the Free State who combined a perfect loyalty to his adopted country with a just appreciation of what a quarrel A l'outrance with the British Empire would mean. Had Fraser's views prevailed, the Orange Free State would still exist as a happy and independent State. As it is, he may help her to happiness and prosperity as the prime minister of the Orange River Colony.

Some trenches had been dug and makeshift shelters built to the northwest of the town; but Lord Roberts, with his usual stubbornness, took the wrong route and ended up on the wide open plain to the south, where resistance would have been pointless. Already, Steyn and the hardliners had fled the town, and the General was met by a delegation of the Mayor, the Landdrost, and Mr. Fraser to offer the city's surrender. Fraser, a strong and clear-minded Highlander, was the only politician in the Free State who balanced a deep loyalty to his adopted country with a realistic understanding of what a fierce conflict with the British Empire would entail. If Fraser's ideas had been followed, the Orange Free State might still exist as a happy and independent country. As it stands, he may still contribute to its happiness and prosperity as the prime minister of the Orange River Colony.

It was at half-past one on Tuesday, March 13th, that General Roberts and his troops entered Bloemfontein, amid the acclamations of many of the inhabitants, who, either to propitiate the victor, or as a sign of their real sympathies, had hoisted union jacks upon their houses. Spectators have left it upon record how from all that interminable column of yellow-clad weary men, worn with half rations and whole-day marches, there came never one jeer, never one taunting or exultant word, as they tramped into the capital of their enemies. The bearing of the troops was chivalrous in its gentleness, and not the least astonishing sight to the inhabitants was the passing of the Guards, the dandy troops of England, the body-servants of the great Queen. Black with sun and dust, staggering after a march of thirty-eight miles, gaunt and haggard, with their clothes in such a state that decency demanded that some of the men should be discreetly packed away in the heart of the dense column, they still swung into the town with the aspect of Kentish hop-pickers and the bearing of heroes. She, the venerable mother, could remember the bearded ranks who marched past her when they came with sadly thinned files back from the Crimean winter; even those gallant men could not have endured more sturdily, nor have served her more loyally, than these their worthy descendants.

It was at 1:30 PM on Tuesday, March 13th, that General Roberts and his troops marched into Bloemfontein, greeted by cheers from many locals who, whether to win favor with the victor or to express their true feelings, had raised union jacks on their homes. Witnesses noted that from the long line of exhausted soldiers in their yellow uniforms, worn down by meager rations and long marches, there was not a single jeer, nor a mocking or triumphant word, as they walked into the capital of their enemies. The troops carried themselves with a noble gentleness, and one of the most striking sights for the locals was the passage of the Guards, the elite forces of England, the personal attendants of the great Queen. Covered in dirt and sweat, staggering after a 38-mile march, looking gaunt and haggard, and their clothes so disheveled that some of the men needed to be discreetly hidden in the dense column, they still entered the town with the spirit of Kentish hop-pickers and the demeanor of heroes. She, the venerable mother, could remember the bearded ranks that marched past her when they returned with diminished numbers from the Crimean winter; even those brave men couldn't have endured more stoically or served her more faithfully than these admirable descendants.

It was just a month after the start from Ramdam that Lord Roberts and his army rode into the enemy's capital. Up to that period we had in Africa Generals who were hampered for want of troops, and troops who were hampered for want of Generals. Only when the Commander-in-Chief took over the main army had we soldiers enough, and a man who knew how to handle them. The result was one which has not only solved the question of the future of South Africa, but has given an illustration of strategy which will become classical to the military student. How brisk was the course of events, how incessant the marching and fighting, may be shown by a brief recapitulation. On February 13th cavalry and infantry were marching to the utmost capacity of men and horses. On the 14th the cavalry were halted, but the infantry were marching hard. On the 15th the cavalry covered forty miles, fought an action, and relieved Kimberley. On the 16th the cavalry were in pursuit of the Boer guns all day, and were off on a thirty-mile march to the Modder at night, while the infantry were fighting Cronje's rearguard action, and closing up all day. On the 17th the infantry were marching hard. On the 18th was the battle of Paardeberg. From the 19th to the 27th was incessant fighting with Cronje inside the laager and with De Wet outside. From the 28th to March 6th was rest. On March 7th was the action of Poplars Grove with heavy marching; on March 10th the battle of Driefontein. On the 11th and 12th the infantry covered forty miles, and on the 13th were in Bloemfontein. All this was accomplished by men on half-rations, with horses which could hardly be urged beyond a walk, in a land where water is scarce and the sun semi-tropical, each infantryman carrying a weight of nearly forty pounds. There are few more brilliant achievements in the history of British arms. The tactics were occasionally faulty, and the battle of Paardeberg was a blot upon the operations; but the strategy of the General and the spirit of the soldier were alike admirable.

It was just a month after the campaign began at Ramdam that Lord Roberts and his army rode into the enemy's capital. Until then, we had generals in Africa who were limited by a lack of troops, and troops who were limited by a lack of generals. It was only when the Commander-in-Chief took charge of the main army that we had enough soldiers and a leader who knew how to manage them. The outcome not only addressed the future of South Africa but also provided a classic example of strategy for military students. The speed of events and the constant marching and fighting can be summarized briefly. On February 13th, cavalry and infantry were moving at full capacity. On the 14th, the cavalry had to stop, but the infantry kept marching hard. On the 15th, the cavalry covered forty miles, engaged in battle, and relieved Kimberley. On the 16th, they pursued the Boer artillery all day and set off on a thirty-mile march to the Modder at night, while the infantry were engaged in a rearguard action against Cronje, closing in all day. On the 17th, the infantry were marching hard. On the 18th, the battle of Paardeberg took place. From the 19th to the 27th, there was continuous fighting with Cronje inside the laager and De Wet outside. From the 28th to March 6th, they took a break. On March 7th, there was the action at Poplars Grove with heavy marching; on March 10th, the battle of Driefontein occurred. Over the 11th and 12th, the infantry covered forty miles, and on the 13th, they arrived in Bloemfontein. All this was achieved by men on half-rations, with horses that could barely go faster than a walk, in a land where water is scarce and the sun is nearly tropical, each infantryman carrying nearly forty pounds. There are few more impressive accomplishments in the history of British military efforts. While there were occasional tactical errors, particularly the battle of Paardeberg, the General's strategy and the soldiers' spirit were both commendable.





CHAPTER 21. STRATEGIC EFFECTS OF LORD ROBERTS'S MARCH.

From the moment that Lord Roberts with his army advanced from Ramdam all the other British forces in South Africa, the Colesberg force, the Stormberg force, Brabant's force, and the Natal force, had the pressure relieved in front of them, a tendency which increased with every fresh success of the main body. A short chapter must be devoted to following rapidly the fortunes of these various armies, and tracing the effect of Lord Roberts's strategy upon their movements. They may be taken in turn from west to east.

From the moment Lord Roberts and his army moved out from Ramdam, all the other British forces in South Africa—the Colesberg force, the Stormberg force, Brabant's force, and the Natal force—felt a sense of relief in their front lines, a feeling that grew with each new success of the main body. A brief chapter should be dedicated to quickly following the fates of these different armies and examining how Lord Roberts's strategy influenced their actions. They can be considered in order from west to east.

The force under General Clements (formerly French's) had, as has already been told, been denuded of nearly all its cavalry and horse artillery, and so left in the presence of a very superior body of the enemy. Under these circumstances Clements had to withdraw his immensely extended line, and to concentrate at Arundel, closely followed by the elated enemy. The situation was a more critical one than has been appreciated by the public, for if the force had been defeated the Boers would have been in a position to cut Lord Roberts's line of communications, and the main army would have been in the air. Much credit is due, not only to General Clements, but to Carter of the Wiltshires, Hacket Pain of the Worcesters, Butcher of the 4th R.F.A., the admirable Australians, and all the other good men and true who did their best to hold the gap for the Empire.

The force under General Clements (formerly French's) had, as already mentioned, lost almost all of its cavalry and horse artillery, leaving it facing a much larger enemy force. Given these circumstances, Clements had to pull back his very extended line and concentrate at Arundel, closely pursued by the overconfident enemy. The situation was more serious than most people realized, because if the force had been defeated, the Boers would have been able to cut Lord Roberts's line of communications, putting the main army in jeopardy. Much credit is due, not just to General Clements, but also to Carter of the Wiltshires, Hacket Pain of the Worcesters, Butcher of the 4th R.F.A., the excellent Australians, and all the other dedicated men who did their best to hold the gap for the Empire.

The Boer idea of a strong attack upon this point was strategically admirable, but tactically there was not sufficient energy in pushing home the advance. The British wings succeeded in withdrawing, and the concentrated force at Arundel was too strong for attack. Yet there was a time of suspense, a time when every man had become of such importance that even fifty Indian syces were for the first and last time in the war, to their own supreme gratification, permitted for twenty-four hours to play their natural part as soldiers. [Footnote: There was something piteous in the chagrin of these fine Sikhs at being held back from their natural work as soldiers. A deputation of them waited upon Lord Roberts at Bloemfontein to ask, with many salaams, whether 'his children were not to see one little fight before they returned.'] But then with the rapid strokes in front the hour of danger passed, and the Boer advance became first a halt and then a retreat.

The Boer plan for a strong attack on this point was strategically impressive, but in terms of tactics, there wasn't enough push in the advance. The British flanks managed to fall back, and the concentrated force at Arundel was too strong to attack. However, there was a moment of uncertainty when every soldier felt crucial, and even fifty Indian syces were, for the only time in the war, allowed to enjoy their role as soldiers for twenty-four hours. [Footnote: It was somewhat pitiful to see the disappointment of these brave Sikhs at being kept from their natural duty as soldiers. A group of them approached Lord Roberts in Bloemfontein to ask, with many respectful gestures, whether 'his children could see one little fight before they went back.'] But with the swift moves in front, the moment of danger passed, and the Boer advance turned into a halt and then a retreat.

On February 27th, Major Butcher, supported by the Inniskillings and Australians, attacked Rensburg and shelled the enemy out of it. Next morning Clements's whole force had advanced from Arundel and took up its old position. The same afternoon it was clear that the Boers were retiring, and the British, following them up, marched into Colesberg, around which they had manoeuvred so long. A telegram from Steyn to De Wet found in the town told the whole story of the retirement: 'As long as you are able to hold the positions you are in with the men you have, do so. If not, come here as quickly as circumstances will allow, as matters here are taking a serious turn.' The whole force passed over the Orange River unimpeded, and blew up the Norval's Pont railway bridge behind it. Clements's brigade followed on March 4th, and succeeded in the course of a week in throwing a pontoon bridge over the river and crossing into the Orange Free State. Roberts having in the meanwhile seized Bloemfontein, communication was restored by railway between the forces, and Clements was despatched to Phillipolis, Fauresmith, and the other towns in the south-west to receive the submission of the inhabitants and to enforce their disarmament. In the meantime the Engineers worked furiously at the restoration of the railway bridge over the Orange River, which was not, however, accomplished until some weeks later.

On February 27th, Major Butcher, supported by the Inniskillings and Australians, attacked Rensburg and forced the enemy out. The next morning, Clements's entire force advanced from Arundel and reclaimed its old position. That same afternoon, it was evident that the Boers were retreating, and the British, pursuing them, marched into Colesberg, where they had maneuvered for so long. A telegram from Steyn to De Wet, found in the town, revealed the full story of the retreat: 'As long as you can hold the positions with the men you have, do so. If not, come here as quickly as you can, as things are getting serious.' The entire force crossed the Orange River without any trouble and blew up the Norval's Pont railway bridge behind them. Clements's brigade followed on March 4th and, within a week, managed to build a pontoon bridge over the river and cross into the Orange Free State. Meanwhile, Roberts had captured Bloemfontein, restoring communication via railway between the forces, and Clements was sent to Phillipolis, Fauresmith, and other towns in the southwest to accept the submission of the locals and enforce their disarmament. In the meantime, the Engineers worked tirelessly to restore the railway bridge over the Orange River, which, however, wasn’t completed until several weeks later.

During the long period which had elapsed since the repulse at Stormberg, General Gatacre had held his own at Sterkstroom, under orders not to attack the enemy, repulsing them easily upon the only occasion when they ventured to attack him. Now it was his turn also to profit by the success which Lord Roberts had won. On February 23rd he re-occupied Molteno, and on the same day sent out a force to reconnoitre the enemy's position at Stormberg. The incident is memorable as having been the cause of the death of Captain de Montmorency [Footnote: De Montmorency had established a remarkable influence over his rough followers. To the end of the war they could not speak of him without tears in their eyes. When I asked Sergeant Howe why his captain went almost alone up the hill, his answer was, 'Because the captain knew no fear.' Byrne, his soldier servant (an Omdurman V.C. like his master), galloped madly off next morning with a saddled horse to bring back his captain alive or dead, and had to be forcibly seized and restrained by our cavalry. ], one of the most promising of the younger officers of the British army. He had formed a corps of scouts, consisting originally of four men, but soon expanding to seventy or eighty. At the head of these men he confirmed the reputation for desperate valour which he had won in the Soudan, and added to it proofs of the enterprise and judgment which go to make a leader of light cavalry. In the course of the reconnaissance he ascended a small kopje accompanied by three companions, Colonel Hoskier, a London Volunteer soldier, Vice, a civilian, and Sergeant Howe. 'They are right on the top of us,' he cried to his comrades, as he reached the summit, and dropped next instant with a bullet through his heart. Hoskier was shot in five places, and Vice was mortally wounded, only Howe escaping. The rest of the scouts, being farther back, were able to get cover and to keep up a fight until they were extricated by the remainder of the force. Altogether our loss was formidable rather in quality than in quantity, for not more than a dozen were hit, while the Boers suffered considerably from the fire of our guns.

During the long time that had passed since the setback at Stormberg, General Gatacre managed to maintain his position at Sterkstroom, under orders not to engage the enemy, easily repelling them the only time they attempted to attack him. Now it was his chance to benefit from the success that Lord Roberts had achieved. On February 23rd, he re-occupied Molteno, and on the same day sent out a force to scout the enemy's position at Stormberg. This incident is notable because it led to the death of Captain de Montmorency [Footnote: De Montmorency had established a remarkable influence over his rough followers. Until the end of the war, they could not speak of him without tears in their eyes. When I asked Sergeant Howe why his captain went almost alone up the hill, his answer was, 'Because the captain knew no fear.' Byrne, his soldier servant (an Omdurman V.C. like his master), galloped off the next morning with a saddled horse to bring back his captain alive or dead, but was forcibly stopped and restrained by our cavalry.], one of the most promising young officers in the British army. He had formed a group of scouts, starting with four men, but soon growing to seventy or eighty. Leading these men, he reaffirmed his reputation for incredible bravery from the Soudan and also demonstrated the skill and judgment needed to be a light cavalry leader. During the reconnaissance, he climbed a small hill with three companions: Colonel Hoskier, a London Volunteer soldier, Vice, a civilian, and Sergeant Howe. "They are right on top of us," he shouted to his friends as he reached the summit, only to be struck down instantly by a bullet to the heart. Hoskier was shot five times, and Vice was mortally wounded, with only Howe escaping. The rest of the scouts, being further back, managed to take cover and continue fighting until they were rescued by the rest of the force. Overall, our loss was significant more in quality than in quantity, with only about a dozen injured, while the Boers suffered considerable casualties from our gunfire.

On March 5th General Gatacre found that the Boers were retreating in front of him—in response, no doubt, to messages similar to those which had already been received at Colesberg. Moving forward he occupied the position which had confronted him so long. Thence, having spent some days in drawing in his scattered detachments and in mending the railway, he pushed forward on March 12th to Burghersdorp, and thence on the 13th to Olive Siding, to the south of the Bethulie Bridge.

On March 5th, General Gatacre discovered that the Boers were retreating in front of him—likely in response to messages similar to those already received at Colesberg. Moving forward, he took over the position that had been facing him for so long. After spending a few days gathering his scattered units and repairing the railway, he advanced on March 12th to Burghersdorp, and then on the 13th to Olive Siding, south of the Bethulie Bridge.

There are two bridges which span the broad muddy Orange River, thick with the washings of the Basutoland mountains. One of these is the magnificent high railway bridge, already blown to ruins by the retreating Boers. Dead men or shattered horses do not give a more vivid impression of the unrelenting brutality of war than the sight of a structure, so graceful and so essential, blown into a huge heap of twisted girders and broken piers. Half a mile to the west is the road bridge, broad and old-fashioned. The only hope of preserving some mode of crossing the difficult river lay in the chance that the troops might anticipate the Boers who were about to destroy this bridge.

There are two bridges that cross the wide, muddy Orange River, thick with the runoff from the Basutoland mountains. One of them is the impressive high railway bridge, already reduced to rubble by the retreating Boers. The sight of a beautiful and vital structure blown apart into a massive pile of twisted metal and broken supports conveys the brutal reality of war more vividly than dead men or injured horses. Half a mile to the west is the road bridge, wide and old-fashioned. The only hope of maintaining some way to cross the challenging river depended on whether the troops could get ahead of the Boers who were about to destroy this bridge.

In this they were singularly favoured by fortune. On the arrival of a small party of scouts and of the Cape Police under Major Nolan-Neylan at the end of the bridge it was found that all was ready to blow it up, the mine sunk, the detonator fixed, and the wire laid. Only the connection between the wire and the charge had not been made. To make sure, the Boers had also laid several boxes of dynamite under the last span, in case the mine should fail in its effect. The advance guard of the Police, only six in number, with Nolan-Neylan at their head, threw themselves into a building which commanded the approaches of the bridge, and this handful of men opened so spirited and well-aimed a fire that the Boers were unable to approach it. As fresh scouts and policemen came up they were thrown into the firing line, and for a whole long day they kept the destroyers from the bridge. Had the enemy known how weak they were and how far from supports, they could have easily destroyed them, but the game of bluff was admirably played, and a fire kept up which held the enemy to their rifle pits.

In this situation, they were particularly lucky. When a small group of scouts and the Cape Police, led by Major Nolan-Neylan, arrived at the end of the bridge, they found everything set to blow it up—the mine was prepared, the detonator was in place, and the wire was laid. The only thing missing was the connection between the wire and the charge. To be cautious, the Boers had also placed several boxes of dynamite under the last span, just in case the mine didn’t work as intended. The advance guard of the Police, numbering only six, with Nolan-Neylan at the front, took shelter in a building that overlooked the approaches to the bridge. This small group unleashed such spirited and well-aimed gunfire that the Boers couldn’t get close. As more scouts and policemen arrived, they joined the firing line, and for an entire day, they prevented the attackers from reaching the bridge. If the enemy had known how outnumbered they were and how far they were from reinforcements, they could have easily wiped them out, but the bluff was played perfectly, and they maintained fire that kept the enemy confined to their rifle pits.

The Boers were in a trench commanding the bridge, and their brisk fire made it impossible to cross. On the other hand, our rifle fire commanded the mine and prevented any one from exploding it. But at the approach of darkness it was certain that this would be done. The situation was saved by the gallantry of young Popham of the Derbyshires, who crept across with two men and removed the detonators. There still remained the dynamite under the further span, and this also they removed, carrying it off across the bridge under a heavy fire. The work was made absolutely complete a little later by the exploit of Captain Grant of the Sappers, who drew the charges from the holes in which they had been sunk, and dropped them into the river, thus avoiding the chance that they might be exploded next morning by shell fire. The feat of Popham and of Grant was not only most gallant but of extraordinary service to the country; but the highest credit belongs to Nolan-Neylan, of the Police, for the great promptitude and galantry of his attack, and to McNeill for his support. On that road bridge and on the pontoon bridge at Norval's Pont Lord Roberts's army was for a whole month dependent for their supplies.

The Boers were in a trench controlling the bridge, and their rapid gunfire made it impossible to cross. On the flip side, our rifle fire covered the mine and stopped anyone from detonating it. However, with darkness approaching, it was likely that it would be triggered. The situation was saved by the bravery of young Popham from the Derbyshires, who crawled across with two men and removed the detonators. There was still dynamite under the far span, and they managed to take that as well, carrying it across the bridge under heavy fire. The task was fully completed a bit later by Captain Grant of the Sappers, who pulled the charges from the holes they were buried in and dropped them into the river, thus preventing the possibility of them being detonated by shell fire the next morning. The actions of Popham and Grant were not only incredibly brave but also served the country extraordinarily well; however, the highest credit goes to Nolan-Neylan from the Police for his quick and bold attack, and to McNeill for his support. For an entire month, Lord Roberts's army relied on that road bridge and the pontoon bridge at Norval's Pont for their supplies.

On March 15th Gatacre's force passed over into the Orange Free State, took possession of Bethulie, and sent on the cavalry to Springfontein, which is the junction where the railways from Cape Town and from East London meet. Here they came in contact with two battalions of Guards under Pole-Carew, who had been sent down by train from Lord Roberts's force in the north. With Roberts at Bloemfontein, Gatacre at Springfontein, Clements in the south-west, and Brabant at Aliwal, the pacification of the southern portion of the Free State appeared to be complete. Warlike operations seemed for the moment to be at an end, and scattered parties traversed the country, 'bill-sticking,' as the troops called it—that is, carrying Lord Roberts's proclamation to the lonely farmhouses and outlying villages.

On March 15th, Gatacre's force moved into the Orange Free State, took control of Bethulie, and sent the cavalry to Springfontein, which is where the railways from Cape Town and East London connect. There, they encountered two battalions of Guards under Pole-Carew, who had been transported by train from Lord Roberts's force to the north. With Roberts in Bloemfontein, Gatacre in Springfontein, Clements in the southwest, and Brabant at Aliwal, the stabilization of the southern part of the Free State seemed to be complete. Military operations appeared to have paused for the moment, and scattered groups traveled through the region, "bill-sticking," as the troops called it—delivering Lord Roberts's proclamation to the isolated farmhouses and remote villages.

In the meantime the colonial division of that fine old African fighter, General Brabant, had begun to play its part in the campaign. Among the many judicious arrangements which Lord Roberts made immediately after his arrival at the Cape was the assembling of the greater part of the scattered colonial bands into one division, and placing over it a General of their own, a man who had defended the cause of the Empire both in the legislative assembly and the field. To this force was entrusted the defence of the country lying to the east of Gatacre's position, and on February 15th they advanced from Penhoek upon Dordrecht. Their Imperial troops consisted of the Royal Scots and a section of the 79th R.F.A., the Colonial of Brabant's Horse, the Kaffrarian Mounted Rifles, the Cape Mounted Rifles and Cape Police, with Queenstown and East London Volunteers. The force moved upon Dordrecht, and on February 18th occupied the town after a spirited action, in which Brabant's Horse played a distinguished part. On March 4th the division advanced once more with the object of attacking the Boer position at Labuschagne's Nek, some miles to the north.

In the meantime, the colonial division led by the skilled African fighter, General Brabant, started to take action in the campaign. Among the various strategic moves Lord Roberts made right after he arrived at the Cape was gathering most of the scattered colonial groups into one division and assigning a General from their ranks, a man who had defended the Empire's interests both in the legislature and on the battlefield. This force was tasked with defending the area to the east of Gatacre's position, and on February 15th, they moved from Penhoek towards Dordrecht. Their Imperial troops included the Royal Scots, a section of the 79th R.F.A., Brabant's Horse, the Kaffrarian Mounted Rifles, the Cape Mounted Rifles, the Cape Police, along with volunteers from Queenstown and East London. The force advanced on Dordrecht and on February 18th occupied the town after a spirited battle, in which Brabant's Horse notably distinguished itself. On March 4th, the division moved forward again with the aim of attacking the Boer position at Labuschagne's Nek, several miles to the north.

Aided by the accurate fire of the 79th R.F.A., the colonials succeeded, after a long day of desultory fighting, in driving the enemy from his position. Leaving a garrison in Dordrecht Brabant followed up his victory and pushed forward with two thousand men and eight guns (six of them light 7-pounders) to occupy Jamestown, which was done without resistance. On March 10th the colonial force approached Aliwal, the frontier town, and so rapid was the advance of Major Henderson with Brabant's Horse that the bridge at Aliwal was seized before the enemy could blow it up. At the other side of the bridge there was a strong stand made by the enemy, who had several Krupp guns in position; but the light horse, in spite of a loss of some twenty-five men killed and wounded, held on to the heights which command the river. A week or ten days were spent in pacifying the large north-eastern portion of Cape Colony, to which Aliwal acts as a centre. Barkly East, Herschel, Lady Grey, and other villages were visited by small detachments of the colonial horsemen, who pushed forward also into the south-eastern portion of the Free State, passing through Rouxville, and so along the Basutoland border as far as Wepener. The rebellion in the Colony was now absolutely dead in the north-east, while in the north-west in the Prieska and Carnarvon districts it was only kept alive by the fact that the distances were so great and the rebel forces so scattered that it was very difficult for our flying columns to reach them. Lord Kitchener had returned from Paardeberg to attend to this danger upon our line of communications, and by his exertions all chance of its becoming serious soon passed. With a considerable force of Yeomanry and Cavalry he passed swiftly over the country, stamping out the smouldering embers.

With the precise artillery support from the 79th R.F.A., the colonial troops managed, after a long day of inconsistent fighting, to push the enemy out of their position. Leaving a garrison behind in Dordrecht, Brabant advanced on his victory and moved forward with two thousand men and eight guns (six of which were light 7-pounders) to take Jamestown, achieving this without any resistance. On March 10th, the colonial force approached Aliwal, the border town, and Major Henderson’s rapid advance with Brabant's Horse led to them securing the bridge at Aliwal before the enemy had a chance to blow it up. On the other side of the bridge, the enemy made a strong stand, equipped with several Krupp guns, but the light cavalry, despite losing around twenty-five men killed and wounded, held the heights that overlooked the river. A week to ten days were spent stabilizing the large north-eastern part of Cape Colony, with Aliwal serving as a central point. Small detachments of colonial horsemen visited Barkly East, Herschel, Lady Grey, and other villages, also pushing into the south-eastern area of the Free State, traveling through Rouxville and along the Basutoland border up to Wepener. The rebellion in the Colony was now completely extinguished in the north-east, while in the north-west, in the Prieska and Carnarvon districts, it persisted only because the distances were vast and rebel forces scattered, making it difficult for our mobile units to reach them. Lord Kitchener had returned from Paardeberg to address this threat to our supply lines, and through his efforts, the possibility of it becoming a serious issue quickly diminished. With a significant force of Yeomanry and Cavalry, he rapidly traversed the area, extinguishing the lingering threats.

So much for the movements into the Free State of Clements, of Gatacre, and of Brabant. It only remains to trace the not very eventful history of the Natal campaign after the relief of Ladysmith.

So much for the movements into the Free State of Clements, of Gatacre, and of Brabant. It only remains to go over the not very exciting history of the Natal campaign after the relief of Ladysmith.

General Buller made no attempt to harass the retreat of the Boers, although in two days no fewer than two thousand wagons were counted upon the roads to Newcastle and Dundee. The guns had been removed by train, the railway being afterwards destroyed. Across the north of Natal lies the chain of the Biggarsberg mountains, and to this the Transvaal Boers had retired, while the Freestaters had hurried through the passes of the Drakensberg in time to make the fruitless opposition to Roberts's march upon their capital. No accurate information had come in as to the strength of the Transvaalers, the estimates ranging from five to ten thousand, but it was known that their position was formidable and their guns mounted in such a way as to command the Dundee and Newcastle roads.

General Buller didn’t try to disrupt the Boer retreat, even though in two days, there were at least two thousand wagons counted on the roads to Newcastle and Dundee. The guns had been transported by train, and afterwards, the railway was destroyed. To the north of Natal lies the Biggarsberg mountain range, where the Transvaal Boers had withdrawn, while the Freestaters hurried through the Drakensberg passes just in time to make a futile effort against Roberts's advance toward their capital. No accurate information had been received about the strength of the Transvaalers, with estimates ranging from five to ten thousand, but it was recognized that their position was strong and their artillery was positioned to effectively cover the Dundee and Newcastle roads.

General Lyttelton's Division had camped as far out as Elandslaagte with Burn Murdoch's cavalry, while Dundonald's brigade covered the space between Burn Murdoch's western outposts and the Drakensberg passes. Few Boers were seen, but it was known that the passes were held in some strength. Meanwhile the line was being restored in the rear, and on March 9th the gallant White was enabled to take train for Durban, though it was not until ten days later that the Colenso bridge was restored. The Ladysmith garrison had been sent down to Colenso to recruit their health. There they were formed into a new division, the 4th, the brigades being given to Howard and Knox, and the command to Lyttelton, who had returned his former division, the second, to Clery. The 5th and 6th brigades were also formed into one division, the 10th, which was placed under the capable command of Hunter, who had confirmed in the south the reputation which he had won in the north of Africa. In the first week of April Hunter's Division was sent down to Durban and transferred to the western side, where they were moved up to Kimberley, whence they advanced northwards. The man on the horse has had in this war an immense advantage over the man on foot, but there have been times when the man on the ship has restored the balance. Captain Mahan might find some fresh texts in the transference of Hunter's Division, or in the subsequent expedition to Beira.

General Lyttelton's Division camped as far out as Elandslaagte with Burn Murdoch's cavalry, while Dundonald's brigade filled the gap between Burn Murdoch's western outposts and the Drakensberg passes. Few Boers were spotted, but it was known that the passes were held in significant numbers. Meanwhile, efforts were underway to restore the line in the rear, and on March 9th, the brave White was able to take a train to Durban, although it wasn't until ten days later that the Colenso bridge was fixed. The Ladysmith garrison had been sent to Colenso to get back in shape. There, they were organized into a new division, the 4th, with the brigades assigned to Howard and Knox, and Lyttelton in command, who had returned his former second division to Clery. The 5th and 6th brigades were also combined into one division, the 10th, which was placed under the capable leadership of Hunter, who had solidified his reputation in the south after making a name for himself in northern Africa. In the first week of April, Hunter's Division was sent to Durban and transferred to the western side, where they moved up to Kimberley and then advanced northward. The man on horseback has had a huge advantage in this war over the man on foot, but there have been moments when the man on a ship has leveled the playing field. Captain Mahan might discover some new insights in the movement of Hunter's Division or in the later expedition to Beira.

On April 10th the Boers descended from their mountains and woke up our sleepy army corps by a brisk artillery fire. Our own guns silenced it, and the troops instantly relapsed into their slumber. There was no movement for a fortnight afterwards upon either side, save that of Sir Charles Warren, who left the army in order to take up the governorship of British Bechuanaland, a district which was still in a disturbed state, and in which his presence had a peculiar significance, since he had rescued portions of it from Boer domination in the early days of the Transvaal Republic. Hildyard took over the command of the 5th Division. In this state of inertia the Natal force remained until Lord Roberts, after a six weeks' halt in Bloemfontein, necessitated by the insecurity of his railway communication and his want of every sort of military supply, more especially horses for his cavalry and boots for his infantry, was at last able on May 2nd to start upon his famous march to Pretoria. Before accompanying him, however, upon this victorious progress, it is necessary to devote a chapter to the series of incidents and operations which had taken place to the east and south-east of Bloemfontein during this period of compulsory inactivity.

On April 10th, the Boers came down from their mountains and roused our drowsy army corps with a quick artillery barrage. Our own guns quickly silenced them, and the troops promptly returned to sleep. There was no action for the next two weeks on either side, except for Sir Charles Warren, who left the army to become the governor of British Bechuanaland, a region still in turmoil, and where his presence held special importance since he had liberated parts of it from Boer control in the early days of the Transvaal Republic. Hildyard took command of the 5th Division. In this state of inactivity, the Natal force remained until Lord Roberts, after a six-week pause in Bloemfontein due to the instability of his railway line and the lack of various military supplies, particularly horses for his cavalry and boots for his infantry, was finally able to begin his famous march to Pretoria on May 2nd. Before joining him on this victorious journey, though, it’s important to dedicate a chapter to the series of incidents and operations that took place to the east and southeast of Bloemfontein during this time of forced inactivity.

One incident must be recorded in this place, though it was political rather than military. This was the interchange of notes concerning peace between Paul Kruger and Lord Salisbury. There is an old English jingle about 'the fault of the Dutch, giving too little and asking too much,' but surely there was never a more singular example of it than this. The united Presidents prepare for war for years, spring an insulting ultimatum upon us, invade our unfortunate Colonies, solemnly annex all the portions invaded, and then, when at last driven back, propose a peace which shall secure for them the whole point originally at issue. It is difficult to believe that the proposals could have been seriously meant, but more probable that the plan may have been to strengthen the hands of the Peace deputation who were being sent to endeavour to secure European intervention. Could they point to a proposal from the Transvaal and a refusal from England, it might, if not too curiously examined, excite the sympathy of those who follow emotions rather than facts.

One incident needs to be noted here, even though it was more political than military. This was the exchange of messages about peace between Paul Kruger and Lord Salisbury. There's an old English saying about 'the fault of the Dutch, giving too little and asking too much,' but surely there was never a more striking example of this than what happened here. The combined Presidents prepared for war for years, threw an insulting ultimatum at us, invaded our unfortunate colonies, solemnly annexed all the areas they invaded, and then, when finally pushed back, proposed a peace that would give them everything they originally contested. It's hard to believe that the proposals were meant to be taken seriously; it's more likely that the intention was to empower the Peace delegation being sent to try to secure European intervention. If they could point to a proposal from the Transvaal and a refusal from England, it might, if not scrutinized too closely, stir the sympathy of those who prioritize emotions over facts.

The documents were as follow:—

The documents were as follows:—

'The Presidents of the Orange Free State and of the South African Republic to the Marquess of Salisbury. Bloemfontein March 5th, 1900.

'The Presidents of the Orange Free State and of the South African Republic to the Marquess of Salisbury. Bloemfontein March 5th, 1900.'

'The blood and the tears of the thousands who have suffered by this war, and the prospect of all the moral and economic ruin with which South Africa is now threatened, make it necessary for both belligerents to ask themselves dispassionately and as in the sight of the Triune God for what they are fighting and whether the aim of each justifies all this appalling misery and devastation.

'The blood and tears of the thousands who have suffered in this war, along with the looming moral and economic devastation that South Africa now faces, compel both sides to thoughtfully consider, as if in the presence of God, what they are fighting for and whether their goals justify all this horrific suffering and destruction.'

'With this object, and in view of the assertions of various British statesmen to the effect that this war was begun and is carried on with the set purpose of undermining Her Majesty's authority in South Africa, and of setting up an administration over all South Africa independent of Her Majesty's Government, we consider it our duty to solemnly declare that this war was undertaken solely as a defensive measure to safeguard the threatened independence of the South African Republic, and is only continued in order to secure and safeguard the incontestable independence of both Republics as sovereign international States, and to obtain the assurance that those of Her Majesty's subjects who have taken part with us in this war shall suffer no harm whatsoever in person or property.

'With this goal in mind, and considering the claims of various British politicians that this war was started and is being continued with the intention of undermining Her Majesty's authority in South Africa and creating an administration over all of South Africa that operates independently of Her Majesty's Government, we feel it is our responsibility to formally state that this war was initiated purely as a defensive action to protect the threatened independence of the South African Republic. It continues solely to secure and protect the undeniable independence of both Republics as sovereign international States, and to ensure that those of Her Majesty's subjects who have joined us in this war will face no harm to themselves or their property.'

'On these conditions, but on these conditions alone, are we now as in the past desirous of seeing peace re-established in South Africa, and of putting an end to the evils now reigning over South Africa; while, if Her Majesty's Government is determined to destroy the independence of the Republics, there is nothing left to us and to our people but to persevere to the end in the course already begun, in spite of the overwhelming pre-eminence of the British Empire, conscious that that God who lighted the inextinguishable fire of the love of freedom in our hearts and those of our fathers will not forsake us, but will accomplish His work in us and in our descendants.

On these conditions, and only on these conditions, we, like in the past, want to see peace restored in South Africa and to end the problems currently affecting it. However, if Her Majesty's Government is set on destroying the independence of the Republics, then all we have left is to continue fighting until the end with the path we've chosen, despite the overwhelming dominance of the British Empire. We believe that God, who ignited the unquenchable fire of freedom in our hearts and those of our ancestors, will not abandon us, but will fulfill His purpose in us and in our descendants.

'We hesitated to make this declaration earlier to your Excellency as we feared that, as long as the advantage was always on our side, and as long as our forces held defensive positions far in Her Majesty's Colonies, such a declaration might hurt the feelings of honour of the British people. But now that the prestige of the British Empire may be considered to be assured by the capture of one of our forces, and that we are thereby forced to evacuate other positions which we had occupied, that difficulty is over and we can no longer hesitate to inform your Government and people in the sight of the whole civilised world why we are fighting and on what conditions we are ready to restore peace.'

'We held off on making this statement to you earlier because we were concerned that, as long as we had the upper hand and our troops were secure in Her Majesty's Colonies, such a statement might offend the pride of the British people. However, now that the reputation of the British Empire has been established with the capture of one of our forces, and we are compelled to withdraw from other positions we had occupied, that issue is resolved. We can no longer hold back in informing your Government and people, in front of the entire civilized world, about the reasons we are fighting and the conditions under which we are willing to restore peace.'

Such was the message, deep in its simplicity and cunning in its candour, which was sent by the old President, for it is Kruger's style which we read in every line of it. One has to get back to facts after reading it, to the enormous war preparations of the Republics, to the unprepared state of the British Colonies, to the ultimatum, to the annexations, to the stirring up of rebellion, to the silence about peace in the days of success, to the fact that by 'inextinguishable love of freedom' is meant inextinguishable determination to hold other white men as helots—only then can we form a just opinion of the worth of his message. One must remember also, behind the homely and pious phraseology, that one is dealing with a man who has been too cunning for us again and again—a man who is as wily as the savages with whom he has treated and fought. This Paul Kruger with the simple words of peace is the same Paul Kruger who with gentle sayings insured the disarmament of Johannesburg, and then instantly arrested his enemies—the man whose name was a by-word for 'slimness' [craftiness] throughout South Africa. With such a man the best weapon is absolute naked truth with which Lord Salisbury confronted him in his reply:—

Such was the message, straightforward in its simplicity and clever in its honesty, sent by the old President, for we can see Kruger's style in every line. After reading it, one must return to the facts—the massive war preparations of the Republics, the unprepared state of the British Colonies, the ultimatum, the annexations, the inciting of rebellion, the silence about peace during times of success, and the understanding that 'inextinguishable love of freedom' actually means an unyielding determination to keep other white men as subservient—only then can we form a fair opinion of the value of his message. We must also remember that behind the simple and earnest language lies a man who has repeatedly outsmarted us—a man as shrewd as the savages he has dealt with and fought against. This Paul Kruger, with his uncomplicated words of peace, is the same Paul Kruger who used gentle phrases to disarm Johannesburg and then quickly arrested his enemies—the man whose name became synonymous with 'slyness' [craftiness] throughout South Africa. When dealing with such a man, the most effective weapon is absolute, straightforward truth, which Lord Salisbury wielded in his reply:—

Foreign Office: March 11th.

Foreign Office: March 11.

'I have the honour to acknowledge your Honours' telegram dated March 5th from Bloemfontein, of which the purport was principally to demand that Her Majesty's Government shall recognise the “incontestable independence” of the South African Republic and Orange Free State as “sovereign international States,” and to offer on those terms to bring the war to a conclusion.

'I am honored to acknowledge your Honours' telegram dated March 5th from Bloemfontein, which mainly requested that Her Majesty's Government recognize the “incontestable independence” of the South African Republic and Orange Free State as “sovereign international States,” and to propose to end the war on those terms.'

'In the beginning of October last peace existed between Her Majesty and the two Republics under the conventions which then were in existence. A discussion had been proceeding for some months between Her Majesty's Government and the South African Republic, of which the object was to obtain redress for certain very serious grievances under which British residents in the Republic were suffering. In the course of those negotiations the Republic had, to the knowledge of Her Majesty's Government, made considerable armaments, and the latter had consequently taken steps to provide corresponding reinforcements to the British garrisons of Cape Town and Natal. No infringement of the rights guaranteed by the conventions had up to that time taken place on the British side. Suddenly, at two days' notice, the South African Republic, after issuing an insulting ultimatum, declared war, and the Orange Free State with whom there had not even been any discussion, took a similar step. Her Majesty's dominions were immediately invaded by the two Republics, siege was laid to three towns within the British frontier, a large portion of the two Colonies was overrun with great destruction to property and life, and the Republics claimed to treat the inhabitants as if those dominions had been annexed to one or other of them. In anticipation of these operations the South African Republic had been accumulating for many years past military stores upon an enormous scale, which by their character could only have been intended for use against Great Britain.

In early October, there was peace between Her Majesty and the two Republics under the existing agreements. For several months, discussions had been ongoing between Her Majesty's Government and the South African Republic aimed at addressing serious grievances that British residents in the Republic were facing. During these negotiations, the Republic was building up significant military arms, which Her Majesty's Government was aware of. As a result, they took measures to send additional reinforcements to the British garrisons in Cape Town and Natal. Up until that point, there had been no violations of the rights guaranteed by the agreements from the British side. Suddenly, with only two days’ notice, the South African Republic declared war after issuing an insulting ultimatum, and the Orange Free State, with whom there had been no prior discussions, followed suit. Her Majesty’s dominions were quickly invaded by both Republics, three towns within the British borders were besieged, and a large part of the two Colonies was devastated, causing significant destruction to property and lives. The Republics treated the inhabitants as if those territories had been annexed by either of them. Anticipating these actions, the South African Republic had been stockpiling military supplies on a massive scale for many years, which could only have been intended for use against Great Britain.

'Your Honours make some observations of a negative character upon the object with which these preparations were made. I do not think it necessary to discuss the questions which you have raised. But the result of these preparations, carried on with great secrecy, has been that the British Empire has been compelled to confront an invasion which has entailed a costly war and the loss of thousands of precious lives. This great calamity has been the penalty which Great Britain has suffered for having in recent years acquiesced in the existence of the two Republics.

'Your Honors have made some negative observations about the purpose behind these preparations. I don't think it's necessary to discuss the issues you've raised. However, the outcome of these preparations, conducted with a lot of secrecy, has been that the British Empire has been forced to deal with an invasion that has led to an expensive war and the loss of thousands of valuable lives. This significant disaster has been the price that Great Britain has paid for recently accepting the existence of the two Republics.'

'In view of the use to which the two Republics have put the position which was given to them, and the calamities which their unprovoked attack has inflicted upon Her Majesty's dominions, Her Majesty's Government can only answer your Honours' telegram by saying that they are not prepared to assent to the independence either of the South African Republic or of the Orange Free State.'

'Considering the way both Republics have used the position they were given and the suffering their unprovoked attack has caused to Her Majesty's territories, Her Majesty's Government can only respond to your Honours' telegram by stating that they are not ready to agree to the independence of either the South African Republic or the Orange Free State.'

With this frank and uncompromising reply the Empire, with the exception of a small party of dupes and doctrinaires, heartily agreed. The pens were dropped, and the Mauser and the Lee-Metford once more took up the debate.

With this honest and straightforward response, the Empire, except for a small group of fools and idealists, completely agreed. The pens were set aside, and the Mauser and the Lee-Metford once again took over the discussion.





3_orange_river_colony_north (128K)

CHAPTER 22. THE HALT AT BLOEMFONTEIN.

On March 13th Lord Roberts occupied the capital of the Orange Free State. On May 1st, more than six weeks later, the advance was resumed. This long delay was absolutely necessary in order to supply the place of the ten thousand horses and mules which are said to have been used up in the severe work of the preceding month. It was not merely that a large number of the cavalry chargers had died or been abandoned, but it was that of those which remained the majority were in a state which made them useless for immediate service. How far this might have been avoided is open to question, for it is notorious that General French's reputation as a horsemaster does not stand so high as his fame as a cavalry leader. But besides the horses there was urgent need of every sort of supply, from boots to hospitals, and the only way by which they could come was by two single-line railways which unite into one single-line railway, with the alternative of passing over a precarious pontoon bridge at Norval's Pont, or truck by truck over the road bridge at Bethulie. To support an army of fifty thousand men under these circumstances, eight hundred miles from a base, is no light matter, and a premature advance which could not be thrust home would be the greatest of misfortunes. The public at home and the army in Africa became restless under the inaction, but it was one more example of the absolute soundness of Lord Roberts's judgment and the quiet resolution with which he adheres to it. He issued a proclamation to the inhabitants of the Free State promising protection to all who should bring in their arms and settle down upon their farms. The most stringent orders were issued against looting or personal violence, but nothing could exceed the gentleness and good humour of the troops. Indeed there seemed more need for an order which should protect them against the extortion of their conquered enemies. It is strange to think that we are separated by only ninety years from the savage soldiery of Badajoz and San Sebastian.

On March 13th, Lord Roberts took control of the capital of the Orange Free State. On May 1st, more than six weeks later, the advance resumed. This long delay was absolutely necessary to replace the ten thousand horses and mules that are said to have been exhausted by the intense efforts of the previous month. It wasn't just that a large number of the cavalry horses had died or been left behind; many of the remaining ones were in such poor condition that they couldn't be used immediately. How much of this could have been avoided is debatable, as it is well-known that General French's reputation as a horseman is not as strong as his fame as a cavalry leader. Besides the horses, there was an urgent need for all kinds of supplies, from boots to hospitals, and the only way for these to arrive was through two single-track railways that merged into one, or by a risky pontoon bridge at Norval's Pont, or truck by truck over the road bridge at Bethulie. Supporting an army of fifty thousand men under these conditions, eight hundred miles from a base, is no small feat, and a premature advance that couldn’t be sustained would be a major disaster. The public back home and the army in Africa grew restless due to the inactivity, but it was yet another example of Lord Roberts's sound judgment and the quiet determination with which he stuck to it. He issued a proclamation to the inhabitants of the Free State, promising protection to anyone who surrendered their arms and returned to their farms. The strictest orders were given against looting or violence, but nothing could match the kindness and good humor of the troops. In fact, there seemed to be a greater need for an order to protect them from being exploited by their conquered enemies. It's strange to think that we are only ninety years away from the brutal soldiers of Badajoz and San Sebastian.

The streets of the little Dutch town formed during this interval a curious object-lesson in the resources of the Empire. All the scattered Anglo-Celtic races had sent their best blood to fight for the common cause. Peace is the great solvent, as war is the powerful unifier. For the British as for the German Empire much virtue had come from the stress and strain of battle. To stand in the market square of Bloemfontein and to see the warrior types around you was to be assured of the future of the race. The middle-sized, square-set, weather-tanned, straw-bearded British regulars crowded the footpaths. There also one might see the hard-faced Canadians, the loose-limbed dashing Australians, fireblooded and keen, the dark New Zealanders, with a Maori touch here and there in their features, the gallant men of Tasmania, the gentlemen troopers of India and Ceylon, and everywhere the wild South African irregulars with their bandoliers and unkempt wiry horses, Rimington's men with the racoon bands, Roberts's Horse with the black plumes, some with pink puggarees, some with birdseye, but all of the same type, hard, rugged, and alert. The man who could look at these splendid soldiers, and, remembering the sacrifices of time, money, and comfort which most of them had made before they found themselves fighting in the heart of Africa, doubt that the spirit of the race burned now as brightly as ever, must be devoid of judgment and sympathy. The real glories of the British race lie in the future, not in the past. The Empire walks, and may still walk, with an uncertain step, but with every year its tread will be firmer, for its weakness is that of waxing youth and not of waning age.

The streets of the small Dutch town during this time provided an interesting example of the Empire's strength. All the various Anglo-Celtic groups had sent their finest to fight for a common cause. Peace is a great unifier, just as war is a powerful force. For both the British and the German Empire, much good has come from the challenges and pressures of battle. Standing in the market square of Bloemfontein and seeing the warrior types around you reassured you about the future of the race. The medium-sized, sturdy, sun-weathered, straw-bearded British regulars filled the sidewalks. There, you could also see the tough-faced Canadians, the lanky and energetic Australians, passionate and eager, the dark-skinned New Zealanders with a hint of Maori features, the brave men from Tasmania, the distinguished soldiers from India and Ceylon, and everywhere, the wild South African irregulars with their bandoliers and scruffy, nimble horses, Rimington's men with their raccoon bands, Roberts's Horse with black plumes, some wearing pink puggarees, some with birdseye, but all of the same resilient, rugged, and alert type. Anyone who could look at these remarkable soldiers and, recalling the sacrifices of time, money, and comfort most of them made before they found themselves fighting in the heart of Africa, doubt that the spirit of the race burned as brightly as ever must lack judgment and compassion. The true glories of the British race are in the future, not the past. The Empire may walk with uncertain steps, but with each passing year, it will strengthen its footing since its weakness is that of youthful growth rather than fading age.

The greatest misfortune of the campaign, one which it was obviously impolitic to insist upon at the time, began with the occupation of Bloemfontein. This was the great outbreak of enteric among the troops. For more than two months the hospitals were choked with sick. One general hospital with five hundred beds held seventeen hundred sick, nearly all enterics. A half field hospital with fifty beds held three hundred and seventy cases. The total number of cases could not have been less than six or seven thousand—and this not of an evanescent and easily treated complaint, but of the most persistent and debilitating of continued fevers, the one too which requires the most assiduous attention and careful nursing. How great was the strain only those who had to meet it can tell. The exertions of the military hospitals and of those others which were fitted out by private benevolence sufficed, after a long struggle, to meet the crisis. At Bloemfontein alone, as many as fifty men died in one day, and more than 1000 new graves in the cemetery testify to the severity of the epidemic. No men in the campaign served their country more truly than the officers and men of the medical service, nor can any one who went through the epidemic forget the bravery and unselfishness of those admirable nursing sisters who set the men around them a higher standard of devotion to duty.

The biggest disaster of the campaign, which it was clearly unwise to emphasize at the time, started with the takeover of Bloemfontein. This was when a major outbreak of enteric fever hit the troops. For over two months, hospitals were overwhelmed with sick soldiers. One general hospital with five hundred beds held seventeen hundred patients, almost all suffering from enteric fever. A smaller field hospital with fifty beds accommodated three hundred seventy cases. The total number of cases was likely six or seven thousand—and this was not a fleeting or easily treatable issue, but one of the most persistent and debilitating fevers that requires constant attention and careful nursing. Only those who faced it can truly know how great the strain was. The efforts of the military hospitals, along with those set up by private donations, were enough, after a long struggle, to handle the crisis. In Bloemfontein alone, as many as fifty men died in a single day, and more than 1,000 new graves in the cemetery show just how severe the epidemic was. No one in the campaign served their country more faithfully than the officers and men of the medical service, and no one who experienced the epidemic can forget the courage and selflessness of the remarkable nursing sisters who inspired those around them to a higher standard of dedication to duty.

Enteric fever is always endemic in the country, and especially at Bloemfontein, but there can be no doubt that this severe outbreak had its origin in the Paardeberg water. All through the campaign, while the machinery for curing disease was excellent, that for preventing it was elementary or absent. If bad water can cost us more than all the bullets of the enemy, then surely it is worth our while to make the drinking of unboiled water a stringent military offence, and to attach to every company and squadron the most rapid and efficient means for boiling it—for filtering alone is useless. An incessant trouble it would be, but it would have saved a division for the army. It is heartrending for the medical man who has emerged from a hospital full of water-born pestilence to see a regimental watercart being filled, without protest, at some polluted wayside pool. With precautions and with inoculation all those lives might have been saved. The fever died down with the advance of the troops and the coming of the colder weather.

Enteric fever is always present in the country, especially in Bloemfontein, but there’s no doubt that this severe outbreak started from the Paardeberg water. Throughout the campaign, while the treatment for disease was excellent, the prevention measures were basic or nonexistent. If contaminated water can cost us more than all the enemy's bullets, then it’s definitely worth making the consumption of unboiled water a strict military offense and providing every company and squadron with the fastest and most effective ways to boil it—filtering alone doesn’t cut it. It would be a constant hassle, but it could have saved a division for the army. It’s heartbreaking for a doctor who has just come from a hospital filled with waterborne diseases to see a regimental water cart being filled, without any objection, at some polluted roadside pool. With proper precautions and vaccinations, all those lives could have been saved. The fever subsided as the troops advanced and the colder weather arrived.

To return to the military operations: these, although they were stagnant so far as the main army was concerned, were exceedingly and inconveniently active in other quarters. Three small actions, two of which were disastrous to our arms, and one successful defence marked the period of the pause at Bloemfontein.

To get back to the military operations: even though the main army was at a standstill, there was a lot of activity in other areas. Three minor confrontations occurred—two of which ended badly for us, and one was a successful defense—that defined the period of inactivity at Bloemfontein.

To the north of the town, some twelve miles distant lies the ubiquitous Modder River, which is crossed by a railway bridge at a place named Glen. The saving of the bridge was of considerable importance, and might by the universal testimony of the farmers of that district have been effected any time within the first few days of our occupation. We appear, however, to have imperfectly appreciated how great was the demoralisation of the Boers. In a week or so they took heart, returned, and blew up the bridge. Roving parties of the enemy, composed mainly of the redoubtable Johannesburg police, reappeared even to the south of the river. Young Lygon was killed, and Colonels Crabbe and Codrington with Captain Trotter, all of the Guards, were severely wounded by such a body, whom they gallantly but injudiciously attempted to arrest when armed only with revolvers.

To the north of the town, about twelve miles away, lies the ever-present Modder River, which is crossed by a railway bridge at a spot called Glen. Saving the bridge was very important, and according to the farmers in that area, it could have been done within the first few days of our presence. However, we didn’t fully understand how demoralized the Boers really were. Within a week or so, they regained their courage, came back, and blew up the bridge. Groups of the enemy, mainly made up of the formidable Johannesburg police, returned even to the south of the river. Young Lygon was killed, and Colonels Crabbe and Codrington, along with Captain Trotter, all from the Guards, were seriously wounded by this group, which they bravely but foolishly tried to apprehend while only armed with revolvers.

These wandering patrols who kept the country unsettled, and harassed the farmers who had taken advantage of Lord Roberts's proclamation, were found to have their centre at a point some six miles to the north of Glen, named Karee. At Karee a formidable line of hills cut the British advance, and these had been occupied by a strong body of the enemy with guns. Lord Roberts determined to drive them off, and on March 28th Tucker's 7th Division, consisting of Chermside's brigade (Lincolns, Norfolks, Hampshires, and Scottish Borderers), and Wavell's brigade (Cheshires, East Lancashires, North Staffords, and South Wales Borderers), were assembled at Glen. The artillery consisted of the veteran 18th, 62nd, and 75th R.F.A. Three attenuated cavalry brigades with some mounted infantry completed the force.

These wandering patrols, who kept the country in turmoil and troubled the farmers who had taken advantage of Lord Roberts's proclamation, were discovered to have their base about six miles north of Glen, in a place called Karee. At Karee, a strong line of hills obstructed the British advance, and these had been held by a large group of the enemy with artillery. Lord Roberts decided to push them out, and on March 28th, Tucker's 7th Division, which included Chermside's brigade (Lincolns, Norfolks, Hampshires, and Scottish Borderers) and Wavell's brigade (Cheshires, East Lancashires, North Staffords, and South Wales Borderers), gathered at Glen. The artillery included the experienced 18th, 62nd, and 75th R.F.A. Three thin cavalry brigades with some mounted infantry rounded out the force.

The movement was to be upon the old model, and in result it proved to be only too truly so. French's cavalry were to get round one flank, Le Gallais's mounted infantry round the other, and Tucker's Division to attack in front. Nothing could be more perfect in theory and nothing apparently more defective in practice. Since on this as on other occasions the mere fact that the cavalry were demonstrating in the rear caused the complete abandonment of the position, it is difficult to see what the object of the infantry attack could be. The ground was irregular and unexplored, and it was late before the horsemen on their weary steeds found themselves behind the flank of the enemy. Some of them, Le Gallais's mounted infantry and Davidson's guns, had come from Bloemfontein during the night, and the horses were exhausted by the long march, and by the absurd weight which the British troop-horse is asked to carry. Tucker advanced his infantry exactly as Kelly-Kenny had done at Driefontein, and with a precisely similar result. The eight regiments going forward in echelon of battalions imagined from the silence of the enemy that the position had been abandoned. They were undeceived by a cruel fire which beat upon two companies of the Scottish Borderers from a range of two hundred yards. They were driven back, but reformed in a donga. About half-past two a Boer gun burst shrapnel over the Lincolnshires and Scottish Borderers with some effect, for a single shell killed five of the latter regiment. Chermside's brigade was now all involved in the fight, and Wavell's came up in support, but the ground was too open and the position too strong to push the attack home. Fortunately, about four o'clock, the horse batteries with French began to make their presence felt from behind, and the Boers instantly quitted their position and made off through the broad gap which still remained between French and Le Gallais. The Brandfort plain appears to be ideal ground for cavalry, but in spite of that the enemy with his guns got safely away. The loss of the infantry amounted to one hundred and sixty killed and wounded, the larger share of the casualties and of the honour falling to the Scottish Borderers and the East Lancashires. The infantry was not well handled, the cavalry was slow, and the guns were inefficient—altogether an inglorious day. Yet strategically it was of importance, for the ridge captured was the last before one came to the great plain which stretched, with a few intermissions, to the north. From March 29th until May 2nd Karee remained the advanced post.

The movement was supposed to follow the old plan, and it turned out to be exactly that. French's cavalry was to circle one side, Le Gallais's mounted infantry the other, and Tucker's Division was to attack from the front. In theory, it couldn't have been more perfect, but in practice, it was clearly flawed. Just like on previous occasions, the fact that the cavalry was showing up in the back led to the entire position being abandoned, making it hard to understand the purpose of the infantry attack. The terrain was uneven and unfamiliar, and it took a while for the tired horsemen to reach the enemy's flank. Some of them, including Le Gallais's mounted infantry and Davidson's guns, had traveled from Bloemfontein overnight, and the horses were worn out from the long journey and the excessive weight they were burdened with. Tucker advanced his infantry exactly like Kelly-Kenny had at Driefontein, and with a similar outcome. The eight regiments moving forward in a staggered formation thought the enemy had deserted the position because it was so quiet. They were quickly disabused of that notion when they faced a fierce gunfire directed at two companies of the Scottish Borderers from just two hundred yards away. They were pushed back but regrouped in a small ravine. Around half-past two, a Boer artillery shell exploded shrapnel over the Lincolnshires and Scottish Borderers, resulting in casualties, including one shell that killed five men from the latter regiment. Chermside's brigade was now fully engaged in the battle, and Wavell's brigade moved in for support, but the terrain was too open and the enemy's position too fortified to succeed in the attack. Thankfully, around four o'clock, the horse artillery with French began to make a difference from behind, causing the Boers to abandon their position and retreat through the wide gap that still existed between French and Le Gallais. The Brandfort plain seemed perfect for cavalry operations, but despite that, the enemy managed to escape with their guns. The infantry suffered a total of one hundred sixty casualties, with most of the losses and the recognition going to the Scottish Borderers and the East Lancashires. The infantry was poorly managed, the cavalry was slow, and the artillery was ineffective—overall, a disappointing day. However, it had strategic significance because the ridge captured was the last one before reaching the vast plain that extended northwards with few interruptions. From March 29th until May 2nd, Karee remained the forward position.

In the meanwhile there had been a series of operations in the east which had ended in a serious disaster. Immediately after the occupation of Bloemfontein (on March 18th) Lord Roberts despatched to the east a small column consisting of the 10th Hussars, the composite regiment, two batteries (Q and U) of the Horse Artillery, some mounted infantry, Roberts's Horse, and Rimington's Guides. On the eastern horizon forty miles from the capital, but in that clear atmosphere looking only half the distance, there stands the impressive mountain named Thabanchu (the black mountain). To all Boers it is an historical spot, for it was at its base that the wagons of the Voortrekkers, coming by devious ways from various parts, assembled. On the further side of Thabanchu, to the north and east of it, lies the richest grain-growing portion of the Free State, the centre of which is Ladybrand. The forty miles which intervene between Bloemfontein and Thabanchu are intersected midway by the Modder River. At this point are the waterworks, erected recently with modern machinery, to take the place of the insanitary wells on which the town had been dependent. The force met with no resistance, and the small town of Thabanchu was occupied.

In the meantime, there had been a series of operations in the east that ended in a serious disaster. Immediately after taking over Bloemfontein (on March 18th), Lord Roberts sent a small group to the east made up of the 10th Hussars, the composite regiment, two batteries (Q and U) of the Horse Artillery, some mounted infantry, Roberts's Horse, and Rimington's Guides. In the distance, about forty miles from the capital, stands the striking mountain called Thabanchu (the black mountain). For all Boers, it is a historical place, as it was at its base that the wagons of the Voortrekkers, traveling from various routes, gathered. On the other side of Thabanchu, to the north and east, lies the most fertile grain-growing area of the Free State, with Ladybrand at its center. The forty miles between Bloemfontein and Thabanchu are crossed midway by the Modder River. At this point are the waterworks, recently built with modern equipment, to replace the unsanitary wells the town had relied on. The force encountered no resistance, and the small town of Thabanchu was taken over.

Colonel Pilcher, the leader of the Douglas raid, was inclined to explore a little further, and with three squadrons of mounted men he rode on to the eastward. Two commandos, supposed to be Grobler's and Olivier's, were seen by them, moving on a line which suggested that they were going to join Steyn, who was known to be rallying his forces at Kroonstad, his new seat of government in the north of the Free State. Pilcher, with great daring, pushed onwards until with his little band on their tired horses he found himself in Ladybrand, thirty miles from his nearest supports. Entering the town he seized the landdrost and the field-cornet, but found that strong bodies of the enemy were moving upon him and that it was impossible for him to hold the place. He retired, therefore, holding grimly on to his prisoners, and got back with small loss to the place from which he started. It was a dashing piece of bluff, and, when taken with the Douglas exploit, leads one to hope that Pilcher may have a chance of showing what he can do with larger means at his disposal. Finding that the enemy was following him in force, he pushed on the same night for Thabanchu. His horsemen must have covered between fifty and sixty miles in the twenty-four hours.

Colonel Pilcher, the leader of the Douglas raid, wanted to explore a bit more, so he rode east with three squadrons of mounted men. They spotted two commandos, believed to be Grobler's and Olivier's, moving in a way that suggested they were heading to join Steyn, who was gathering his forces at Kroonstad, his new government base in the northern Free State. Pilcher boldly pressed on until he found himself in Ladybrand with his small group on their tired horses, thirty miles from his nearest support. Upon entering the town, he captured the landdrost and the field-cornet, but soon realized that large groups of the enemy were approaching, making it impossible to hold the location. Therefore, he retreated, grimly keeping his prisoners, and returned with minimal loss to his starting point. It was a bold move, and, combined with the Douglas exploit, it raises hopes that Pilcher might have a chance to show what he can do with more resources at his disposal. Noticing the enemy was pursuing him in force, he continued on that same night towards Thabanchu. His horsemen must have traveled between fifty and sixty miles in twenty-four hours.

Apparently the effect of Pilcher's exploit was to halt the march of those commandos which had been seen trekking to the north-west, and to cause them to swing round upon Thabanchu. Broadwood, a young cavalry commander who had won a name in Egypt, considered that his position was unnecessarily exposed and fell back upon Bloemfontein. He halted on the first night near the waterworks, halfway upon his journey.

Apparently, Pilcher's actions stopped the commandos that had been seen heading northwest and made them turn towards Thabanchu. Broadwood, a young cavalry commander known for his achievements in Egypt, felt that his position was too vulnerable and retreated to Bloemfontein. He stopped on the first night near the waterworks, halfway through his journey.

The Boers are great masters in the ambuscade. Never has any race shown such aptitude for this form of warfare—a legacy from a long succession of contests with cunning savages. But never also have they done anything so clever and so audacious as De Wet's dispositions in this action. One cannot go over the ground without being amazed at the ingenuity of their attack, and also at the luck which favoured them, for the trap which they had laid for others might easily have proved an absolutely fatal one for themselves.

The Boers are experts in ambush tactics. No other group has displayed such skill in this type of warfare—a skill they've developed over time from a long history of battles with clever adversaries. Yet, they've never pulled off something as smart and daring as De Wet's strategies in this situation. You can't walk the area without being impressed by the creativity of their assault, as well as the fortune that was on their side, because the trap they set for others could have easily turned into a deadly one for them.

The position beside the Modder at which the British camped had numerous broken hills to the north and east of it. A force of Boers, supposed to number about two thousand men, came down in the night, bringing with them several heavy guns, and with the early morning opened a brisk fire upon the camp. The surprise was complete. But the refinement of the Boer tactics lay in the fact that they had a surprise within a surprise—and it was the second which was the more deadly.

The spot next to the Modder where the British set up camp had lots of broken hills to the north and east. During the night, a group of Boers, estimated to be around two thousand strong, came down, bringing several heavy guns with them, and by early morning, they started firing rapidly at the camp. The surprise was total. However, the cleverness of the Boer tactics was that they had a surprise within a surprise—and it was the second one that was more dangerous.

The force which Broadwood had with him consisted of the 10th Hussars and the composite regiment, Rimington's Scouts, Roberts's Horse, the New Zealand and Burmah Mounted Infantry, with Q and U batteries of Horse Artillery. With such a force, consisting entirely of mounted men, he could not storm the hills upon which the Boer guns were placed, and his twelve-pounders were unable to reach the heavier cannon of the enemy. His best game was obviously to continue his march to Bloemfontein. He sent on the considerable convoy of wagons and the guns, while he with the cavalry covered the rear, upon which the long-range pieces of the enemy kept up the usual well-directed but harmless fire.

The force that Broadwood had with him included the 10th Hussars and the composite regiment, Rimington's Scouts, Roberts's Horse, the New Zealand and Burma Mounted Infantry, along with Q and U batteries of Horse Artillery. With a team made up entirely of mounted troops, he couldn't attack the hills where the Boer guns were positioned, and his twelve-pounders couldn't reach the enemy's heavier artillery. His best option was clearly to keep moving toward Bloemfontein. He sent ahead the large convoy of wagons and the artillery, while he and the cavalry provided cover for the rear, where the enemy's long-range guns maintained their usual precise but ineffective fire.

Broadwood's retreating column now found itself on a huge plain which stretches all the way to Bloemfontein, broken only by two hills, both of which were known to be in our possession. The plain was one which was continually traversed from end to end by our troops and convoys, so that once out upon its surface all danger seemed at an end. Broadwood had additional reasons for feeling secure, for he knew that, in answer to his own wise request, Colvile's Division had been sent out before daybreak that morning from Bloemfontein to meet him. In a very few miles their vanguard and his must come together. There were obviously no Boers upon the plain, but if there were they would find themselves between two fires. He gave no thought to his front therefore, but rode behind, where the Boer guns were roaring, and whence the Boer riflemen might ride.

Broadwood's retreating column now found itself on a vast plain that stretched all the way to Bloemfontein, interrupted only by two hills, both of which we already controlled. The plain was regularly crossed from one end to the other by our troops and convoys, so once they were out on its surface, all danger seemed to disappear. Broadwood had even more reason to feel secure because he knew that, in response to his smart request, Colvile's Division had been sent out before dawn that morning from Bloemfontein to meet him. In just a few miles, their vanguard would meet his. Clearly, there were no Boers on the plain, but if there were, they would find themselves caught between two fires. Therefore, he didn't worry about what was in front of him and instead rode to the back, where the Boer guns were booming, and from where the Boer riflemen might strike.

But in spite of the obvious there WERE Boers upon the plain, so placed that they must either bring off a remarkable surprise or be themselves cut off to a man. Across the veld, some miles from the waterworks, there runs a deep donga or watercourse—one of many, but the largest. It cuts the rough road at right angles. Its depth and breadth are such that a wagon would dip down the incline, and disappear for about two minutes before it would become visible again at the crown of the other side. In appearance it was a huge curving ditch with a stagnant stream at the bottom. The sloping sides of the ditch were fringed with Boers, who had ridden thither before dawn and were now waiting for the unsuspecting column. There were not more than three hundred of them, and four times their number were approaching; but no odds can represent the difference between the concealed man with the magazine rifle and the man upon the plain.

But despite the obvious, there WERE Boers on the plain, positioned in such a way that they had to either pull off an incredible surprise or be completely cut off. Across the veld, a few miles from the waterworks, there’s a deep donga or watercourse—one of many, but the biggest. It intersects the rough road at a right angle. Its depth and width are such that a wagon would roll down the slope and disappear for about two minutes before showing up again at the top of the other side. Visually, it looked like a large, curving ditch with a stagnant stream at the bottom. The sloping sides of the ditch were lined with Boers, who had ridden there before dawn and were now waiting for the unsuspecting column. There were no more than three hundred of them, while four times their number were approaching; but no odds could represent the difference between a concealed man with a magazine rifle and a man out in the open.

There were two dangers, however, which the Boers ran, and, skilful as their dispositions were, their luck was equally great, for the risks were enormous. One was that a force coming the other way (Colvile's was only a few miles off) would arrive, and that they would be ground between the upper and the lower millstone. The other was that for once the British scouts might give the alarm and that Broadwood's mounted men would wheel swiftly to right and left and secure the ends of the long donga. Should that happen, not a man of them could possibly escape. But they took their chances like brave men, and fortune was their friend. The wagons came on without any scouts. Behind them was U battery, then Q, with Roberts's Horse abreast of them and the rest of the cavalry behind.

There were two dangers the Boers faced, and while their plans were clever, their luck was also considerable because the risks were high. One danger was that a force coming from the opposite direction (Colvile's was just a few miles away) could arrive, trapping them between two threats. The other possibility was that, for once, the British scouts might raise the alarm, allowing Broadwood's mounted troops to quickly spread out and secure the ends of the long donga. If that happened, not a single one of them could escape. But they took their chances like brave individuals, and fortune smiled upon them. The wagons moved forward without any scouts. U battery followed behind, then Q, with Roberts's Horse alongside them and the rest of the cavalry trailing behind.

As the wagons, occupied for the most part only by unarmed sick soldiers and black transport drivers, came down into the drift, the Boers quickly but quietly took possession of them, and drove them on up the further slope. Thus the troops behind saw their wagons dip down, reappear, and continue on their course. The idea of an ambush could not suggest itself. Only one thing could avert an absolute catastrophe, and that was the appearance of a hero who would accept certain death in order to warn his comrades. Such a man rode by the wagons—though, unhappily, in the stress and rush of the moment there is no certainty as to his name or rank. We only know that one was found brave enough to fire his revolver in the face of certain death. The outburst of firing which answered his shot was the sequel which saved the column. Not often is it given to a man to die so choice a death as that of this nameless soldier.

As the wagons, mostly carrying unarmed sick soldiers and black transport drivers, went down into the dip, the Boers swiftly but quietly took control of them and drove them up the other slope. The troops behind watched their wagons dip down, come back up, and keep moving. The thought of an ambush didn’t cross their minds. The only thing that could prevent a total disaster was the arrival of a hero willing to accept certain death to warn his comrades. A man did ride by the wagons—though, unfortunately, in the chaos and speed of the moment, we can’t be sure of his name or rank. We only know that one brave soul fired his revolver in the face of inevitable death. The gunfire that responded to his shot was what ultimately saved the column. It’s not often a person gets to die such a noble death as this nameless soldier.

But the detachment was already so placed that nothing could save it from heavy loss. The wagons had all passed but nine, and the leading battery of artillery was at the very edge of the donga. Nothing is so helpless as a limbered-up battery. In an instant the teams were shot down and the gunners were made prisoners. A terrific fire burst at the same instant upon Roberts's Horse, who were abreast of the guns. 'Files a bout! gallop!' yelled Colonel Dawson, and by his exertions and those of Major Pack-Beresford the corps was extricated and reformed some hundreds of yards further off. But the loss of horses and men was heavy. Major Pack-Beresford and other officers were shot down, and every unhorsed man remained necessarily as a prisoner under the very muzzles of the riflemen in the donga.

But the detachment was already positioned in a way that nothing could save it from severe losses. All the wagons had left except for nine, and the leading artillery unit was right at the edge of the ravine. A limbered-up battery is one of the most vulnerable things. In an instant, the teams were shot down, and the gunners were taken prisoner. A massive barrage hit Roberts's Horse, who were aligned with the guns. "Files about! Gallop!" shouted Colonel Dawson, and thanks to his efforts and those of Major Pack-Beresford, the unit was able to regroup and move hundreds of yards away. But the loss of horses and men was significant. Major Pack-Beresford and other officers were shot down, and every dismounted soldier was left as a prisoner right under the rifles of the fighters in the ravine.

As Roberts's Horse turned and galloped for dear life across the flat, four out of the six guns [Footnote: Of the other two one overturned and could not be righted, the other had the wheelers shot and could not be extricated from the tumult. It was officially stated that the guns of Q battery were halted a thousand yards off the donga, but my impression was, from examining the ground, that it was not more than six hundred.] of Q battery and one gun (the rearmost) of U battery swung round and dashed frantically for a place of safety. At the same instant every Boer along the line of the donga sprang up and emptied his magazine into the mass of rushing, shouting soldiers, plunging horses, and screaming Kaffirs. It was for a few moments a sauve-qui-peut. Serjeant-Major Martin of U, with a single driver on a wheeler, got away the last gun of his battery. The four guns which were extricated of Q, under Major Phipps-Hornby, whirled across the plain, pulled up, unlimbered, and opened a brisk fire of shrapnel from about a thousand yards upon the donga. Had the battery gone on for double the distance, its action would have been more effective, for it would have been under a less deadly rifle fire, but in any case its sudden change from flight to discipline and order steadied the whole force. Roberts's men sprang from their horses, and with the Burmese and New Zealanders flung themselves down in a skirmish line. The cavalry moved to the left to find some drift by which the donga could be passed, and out of chaos there came in a few minutes calm and a settled purpose.

As Roberts's Horse turned and raced for their lives across the flat land, four out of the six guns [Footnote: Of the other two, one overturned and couldn’t be righted, and the other had its drivers shot and couldn’t be pulled from the chaos. It was officially stated that the guns of Q battery were stopped a thousand yards from the donga, but I felt, after looking at the ground, that it was no more than six hundred.] from Q battery and one gun (the last one) from U battery swung around and dashed desperately for safety. At the same time, every Boer along the donga jumped up and fired their magazines into the group of rushing, shouting soldiers, panicking horses, and screaming Kaffirs. For a few moments, it was every man for himself. Serjeant-Major Martin of U, with just one driver on a wheeler, managed to take away the last gun of his battery. The four guns from Q, under Major Phipps-Hornby, raced across the plain, stopped, unlimbered, and started firing shrapnel briskly from about a thousand yards at the donga. If the battery had gone twice that distance, its action would have been more effective, as it would have been under less intense rifle fire, but in any case, its quick switch from fleeing to organized defense steadied the entire force. Roberts's men jumped off their horses, and along with the Burmese and New Zealanders, formed a skirmish line. The cavalry moved left to find a way to cross the donga, and amidst the chaos, calm and a clear purpose emerged within minutes.

It was for Q battery to cover the retreat of the force, and most nobly it did it. A fortnight later a pile of horses, visible many hundreds of yards off across the plain, showed where the guns had stood. It was the Colenso of the horse gunners. In a devilish sleet of lead they stood to their work, loading and firing while a man was left. Some of the guns were left with two men to work them, one was loaded and fired by a single officer. When at last the order for retirement came, only ten men, several of them wounded, were left upon their feet. With scratch teams from the limbers, driven by single gunners, the twelve-pounders staggered out of action, and the skirmish line of mounted infantry sprang to their feet amid the hail of bullets to cheer them as they passed.

It was up to Q battery to cover the retreat of the unit, and they did so with incredible bravery. Two weeks later, a pile of horses, visible from hundreds of yards away across the plain, showed where the guns had been. It was the Colenso of the horse gunners. In a relentless storm of gunfire, they stayed at their posts, loading and firing while there was still a person left. Some of the guns were manned by just two gunners, and one was loaded and fired by a single officer. When the order to retreat finally came, only ten men, several of them injured, were still standing. Using makeshift teams from the limbers, driven by individual gunners, the twelve-pounders struggled to move out of action, and the line of mounted infantry sprang to their feet amidst the hail of bullets to cheer them on as they passed.

It was no slight task to extricate that sorely stricken force from the close contact of an exultant enemy, and to lead it across that terrible donga. Yet, thanks to the coolness of Broadwood and the steadiness of his rearguard, the thing was done. A practicable passage had been found two miles to the south by Captain Chester-Master of Rimington's. This corps, with Roberts's, the New Zealanders, and the 3rd Mounted Infantry, covered the withdrawal in turn. It was one of those actions in which the horseman who is trained to fight upon foot did very much better than the regular cavalry. In two hours' time the drift had been passed and the survivors of the force found themselves in safety.

It was no easy task to get that badly hit group away from the close proximity of a triumphant enemy and to lead it across that dangerous donga. However, thanks to Broadwood's composure and his rearguard's reliability, it was accomplished. A safe crossing was discovered two miles to the south by Captain Chester-Master of Rimington's. This unit, along with Roberts's, the New Zealanders, and the 3rd Mounted Infantry, took turns covering the retreat. It was one of those situations where the horsemen who were trained to fight on foot performed much better than the regular cavalry. Within two hours, the crossing was completed, and the remaining members of the group found themselves safe.

The losses in this disastrous but not dishonourable engagement were severe. About thirty officers and five hundred men were killed, wounded, or missing. The prisoners came to more than three hundred. They lost a hundred wagons, a considerable quantity of stores, and seven twelve-pounder guns—five from U battery and two from Q. Of U battery only Major Taylor and Sergeant-Major Martin seem to have escaped, the rest being captured en bloc. Of Q battery nearly every man was killed or wounded. Roberts's Horse, the New Zealanders, and the mounted infantry were the other corps which suffered most heavily. Among many brave men who died, none was a greater loss to the service than Major Booth of the Northumberland Fusiliers, serving in the mounted infantry. With four comrades he held a position to cover the retreat, and refused to leave it. Such men are inspired by the traditions of the past, and pass on the story of their own deaths to inspire fresh heroes in the future.

The losses in this disastrous but honorable battle were severe. About thirty officers and five hundred soldiers were killed, injured, or missing. More than three hundred were taken prisoner. They lost a hundred wagons, a significant amount of supplies, and seven twelve-pounder guns—five from U battery and two from Q. From U battery, only Major Taylor and Sergeant-Major Martin seem to have escaped, while the rest were captured as a group. Nearly every member of Q battery was killed or injured. Roberts's Horse, the New Zealanders, and the mounted infantry were the other units that suffered the most. Among many brave individuals who died, none was a greater loss to the service than Major Booth of the Northumberland Fusiliers, who was serving in the mounted infantry. With four comrades, he held a position to cover the retreat and refused to abandon it. Such men are inspired by the legacies of the past and pass on the story of their own sacrifices to inspire new heroes in the future.

Broadwood, the instant that he had disentangled himself, faced about, and brought his guns into action. He was not strong enough, however, nor were his men in a condition, to seriously attack the enemy. Martyr's mounted infantry had come up, led by the Queenslanders, and at the cost of some loss to themselves helped to extricate the disordered force. Colvile's Division was behind Bushman's Kop, only a few miles off, and there were hopes that it might push on and prevent the guns and wagons from being removed. Colvile did make an advance, but slowly and in a flanking direction instead of dashing swiftly forward to retrieve the situation. It must be acknowledged, however, that the problem which faced this General was one of great difficulty. It was almost certain that before he could throw his men into the action the captured guns would be beyond his reach, and it was possible that he might swell the disaster. With all charity, however, one cannot but feel that his return next morning, after a reinforcement during the night, without any attempt to force the Boer position, was lacking in enterprise. [Footnote: It may be urged in General Colvile's defence that his division had already done a long march from Bloemfontein. A division, however, which contains two such brigades as Macdonald's and Smith-Dorrien's may safely be called upon for any exertions. The gunner officers in Colvile's division heard their comrades' guns in 'section—fire' and knew it to be the sign of a desperate situation.] The victory left the Boers in possession of the waterworks, and Bloemfontein had to fall back upon her wells—a change which reacted most disastrously upon the enteric which was already decimating the troops.

Broadwood, as soon as he had freed himself, turned around and brought his guns into play. However, he and his men weren't strong enough to effectively attack the enemy. Martyr's mounted infantry arrived, led by the Queenslanders, and at some cost to themselves, helped to rescue the disorganized force. Colvile's Division was just behind Bushman's Kop, only a few miles away, and there was hope that they might advance and stop the guns and wagons from being moved. Colvile did make a move, but it was slow and flanking instead of making a quick dash to turn the situation around. It must be recognized, however, that the challenge facing this General was quite difficult. It was almost certain that by the time he could throw his men into action, the captured guns would be out of reach, and it was possible that he might worsen the disaster. Nonetheless, one can’t help but feel that his return the next morning, after getting reinforcements overnight, without attempting to challenge the Boer position, showed a lack of initiative. [Footnote: It may be argued in General Colvile's defense that his division had already marched a long distance from Bloemfontein. However, a division that includes two such brigades as Macdonald's and Smith-Dorrien's can certainly be expected to make any effort necessary. The gunner officers in Colvile's division heard their comrades' guns in 'section—fire' and recognized it as a sign of a desperate situation.] The victory left the Boers in control of the waterworks, causing Bloemfontein to rely on its wells—a shift that had a disastrous impact on the enteric fever already affecting the troops.

The effect of the Sanna's Post defeat was increased by the fact that only four days later (on April 4th) a second even more deplorable disaster befell our troops. This was the surrender of five companies of infantry, two of them mounted, at Reddersberg. So many surrenders of small bodies of troops had occurred during the course of the war that the public, remembering how seldom the word 'surrender' had ever been heard in our endless succession of European wars, had become very restive upon the subject, and were sometimes inclined to question whether this new and humiliating fact did not imply some deterioration of our spirit. The fear was natural, and yet nothing could be more unjust to this the most splendid army which has ever marched under the red-crossed flag. The fact was new because the conditions were new, and it was inherent in those conditions. In that country of huge distances small bodies must be detached, for the amount of space covered by the large bodies was not sufficient for all military purposes. In reconnoitring, in distributing proclamations, in collecting arms, in overawing outlying districts, weak columns must be used. Very often these columns must contain infantry soldiers, as the demands upon the cavalry were excessive. Such bodies, moving through a hilly country with which they were unfamiliar, were always liable to be surrounded by a mobile enemy. Once surrounded the length of their resistance was limited by three things: their cartridges, their water, and their food. When they had all three, as at Wepener or Mafeking, they could hold out indefinitely. When one or other was wanting, as at Reddersberg or Nicholson's Nek, their position was impossible. They could not break away, for how can men on foot break away from horsemen? Hence those repeated humiliations, which did little or nothing to impede the course of the war, and which were really to be accepted as one of the inevitable prices which we had to pay for the conditions under which the war was fought. Numbers, discipline, and resources were with us. Mobility, distances, nature of the country, insecurity of supplies, were with them. We need not take it to heart therefore if it happened, with all these forces acting against them, that our soldiers found themselves sometimes in a position whence neither wisdom nor valour could rescue them. To travel through that country, fashioned above all others for defensive warfare, with trench and fort of superhuman size and strength, barring every path, one marvels how it was that such incidents were not more frequent and more serious. It is deplorable that the white flag should ever have waved over a company of British troops, but the man who is censorious upon the subject has never travelled in South Africa.

The impact of the defeat at Sanna's Post was amplified by the fact that just four days later (on April 4th), an even worse disaster hit our troops. This was the surrender of five infantry companies, two of which were mounted, at Reddersberg. There had been so many surrenders of small groups during the war that the public, remembering how rare the term 'surrender' had been in our long history of European wars, became restless about it and sometimes questioned whether this new and humiliating reality indicated some decline in our resolve. Such fears were natural, yet nothing could be more unfair to the most magnificent army that has ever marched under the red-crossed flag. The situation was new because the conditions were different, and it was a result of those conditions. In a country of vast distances, small units had to be detached, as the extent covered by larger formations was not suitable for all military needs. For intelligence missions, distributing proclamations, collecting weapons, and intimidating distant areas, weaker units were necessary. Often, these units had to include infantry soldiers because the demands on the cavalry were excessive. These forces, moving through unfamiliar hilly terrain, were always at risk of being surrounded by a flexible enemy. Once encircled, their ability to resist was limited by three factors: ammunition, water, and food. When they had all three, as at Wepener or Mafeking, they could hold out indefinitely. When they lacked one or more, as at Reddersberg or Nicholson's Nek, their position became untenable. They couldn't escape, because how can foot soldiers evade mounted troops? This led to those repeated humiliations, which did little to hinder the war's progression and could really be seen as one of the unavoidable costs of fighting under those conditions. We had the numbers, discipline, and resources on our side. They had mobility, vast distances, the nature of the landscape, and supply insecurity. Therefore, we shouldn't take it too hard when our soldiers sometimes found themselves in situations that neither cleverness nor bravery could save them from. To navigate through that region, especially designed for defensive warfare, with trenches and forts of enormous size and strength blocking every route, one wonders how such incidents weren't more common and severe. It is unfortunate that a white flag ever flew over a company of British troops, but anyone critical of this has likely never traveled in South Africa.

In the disaster at Reddersberg three of the companies were of the Irish Rifles, and two of the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers—the same unfortunate regiments which had already been cut up at Stormberg. They had been detached from Gatacre's 3rd Division, the headquarters of which was at Springfontein. On the abandonment of Thabanchu and the disaster of Sanna's Post, it was obvious that we should draw in our detached parties to the east; so the five companies were ordered to leave Dewetsdorp, which they were garrisoning, and to get back to the railway line. Either the order was issued too late, or they were too slow in obeying it, for they were only halfway upon their journey, near the town of Reddersberg, when the enemy came down upon them with five guns. Without artillery they were powerless, but, having seized a kopje, they took such shelter as they could find, and waited in the hope of succour. Their assailants seem to have been detached from De Wet's force in the north, and contained among them many of the victors of Sanna's Post. The attack began at 11 A.M. of April 3rd, and all day the men lay among the stones, subjected to the pelt of shell and bullet. The cover was good, however, and the casualties were not heavy. The total losses were under fifty killed and wounded. More serious than the enemy's fire was the absence of water, save a very limited supply in a cart. A message was passed through of the dire straits in which they found themselves, and by the late afternoon the news had reached headquarters. Lord Roberts instantly despatched the Camerons, just arrived from Egypt, to Bethany, which is the nearest point upon the line, and telegraphed to Gatacre at Springfontein to take measures to save his compromised detachment. The telegram should have reached Gatacre early on the evening of the 3rd, and he had collected a force of fifteen hundred men, entrained it, journeyed forty miles up the line, detrained it, and reached Reddersberg, which is ten or twelve miles from the line, by 10.30 next morning. Already, however, it was too late, and the besieged force, unable to face a second day without water under that burning sun, had laid down their arms. No doubt the stress of thirst was dreadful, and yet one cannot say that the defence rose to the highest point of resolution. Knowing that help could not be far off, the garrison should have held on while they could lift a rifle. If the ammunition was running low, it was bad management which caused it to be shot away too fast. Captain McWhinnie, who was in command, behaved with the utmost personal gallantry. Not only the troops but General Gatacre also was involved in the disaster. Blame may have attached to him for leaving a detachment at Dewetsdorp, and not having a supporting body at Reddersberg upon which it might fall back; but it must be remembered that his total force was small and that he had to cover a long stretch of the lines of communication. As to General Gatacre's energy and gallantry it is a by-word in the army; but coming after the Stormberg disaster this fresh mishap to his force made the continuance of his command impossible. Much sympathy was felt with him in the army, where he was universally liked and respected by officers and men. He returned to England, and his division was taken over by General Chermside.

In the disaster at Reddersberg, three of the companies were from the Irish Rifles, and two were from the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers—the same unfortunate regiments that had already suffered heavy losses at Stormberg. They had been detached from Gatacre's 3rd Division, which was headquartered at Springfontein. After the abandonment of Thabanchu and the disaster at Sanna's Post, it was clear that we needed to pull in our detached units to the east; so the five companies were ordered to leave Dewetsdorp, where they were stationed, and head back to the railway line. Either the order was issued too late, or they were too slow to follow it, because they were only halfway through their journey, near Reddersberg, when the enemy attacked them with five guns. Without artillery, they were powerless, but after seizing a kopje, they took whatever shelter they could find and waited in hope of rescue. The attackers appeared to have been separated from De Wet's force in the north and included many of the victor troops from Sanna's Post. The attack began at 11 A.M. on April 3rd, and all day the men lay among the rocks, exposed to shells and bullets. Fortunately, the cover was decent, and the casualties were not heavy, totaling under fifty killed and wounded. More concerning than the enemy's fire was the lack of water, with only a very limited supply in a cart. A message about their dire situation was relayed, and by late afternoon, the news reached headquarters. Lord Roberts promptly sent the Camerons, who had just arrived from Egypt, to Bethany, the nearest point on the line, and telegraphed Gatacre at Springfontein to take steps to save his compromised detachment. The telegram should have reached Gatacre early in the evening of the 3rd, and he managed to assemble a force of fifteen hundred men, put them on a train, traveled forty miles up the line, unloaded them, and reached Reddersberg, which is ten or twelve miles from the line, by 10:30 the next morning. However, it was already too late; the besieged force, unable to endure a second day without water under the scorching sun, laid down their arms. The agony of thirst was undoubtedly terrible, but it's hard to say that the defense showed the highest level of determination. Knowing that help couldn’t be far away, the garrison should have held out as long as they could still fire a rifle. If the ammunition was running low, it reflects poor management that it was used up too quickly. Captain McWhinnie, who was in command, displayed the utmost personal bravery. The disaster also impacted not just the troops but General Gatacre as well. He may have been criticized for leaving a detachment at Dewetsdorp and not having a backup force at Reddersberg to fall back on; but it’s important to remember that his total force was small and spread out over a long stretch of lines of communication. General Gatacre’s energy and bravery are well known in the army; however, following the Stormberg disaster, this new setback made it impossible for him to remain in command. He was well-liked and respected by both officers and men, drawing significant sympathy in the army. He returned to England, and his division was taken over by General Chermside.

In a single week, at a time when the back of the war had seemed to be broken, we had lost nearly twelve hundred men with seven guns. The men of the Free State—for the fighting was mainly done by commandos from the Ladybrand, Winburg, Bethlehem, and Harrismith districts—deserve great credit for this fine effort, and their leader De Wet confirmed the reputation which he had already gained as a dashing and indefatigable leader. His force was so weak that when Lord Roberts was able to really direct his own against it, he brushed it away before him; but the manner in which De Wet took advantage of Roberts's enforced immobility, and dared to get behind so mighty an enemy, was a fine exhibition of courage and enterprise. The public at home chafed at this sudden and unexpected turn of affairs; but the General, constant to his own fixed purpose, did not permit his strength to be wasted, and his cavalry to be again disorganised, by flying excursions, but waited grimly until he should be strong enough to strike straight at Pretoria.

In just one week, when it seemed like the war was winding down, we lost nearly twelve hundred men and seven guns. The soldiers from the Free State—mainly commandos from the Ladybrand, Winburg, Bethlehem, and Harrismith areas—deserve a lot of credit for their impressive efforts, and their leader De Wet proved once again that he was a bold and tireless commander. His forces were so weak that when Lord Roberts finally managed to take direct action, he quickly overpowered them; however, the way De Wet capitalized on Roberts's inability to move and bravely maneuvered behind such a powerful opponent was a remarkable display of courage and initiative. People back home were frustrated by this sudden and unexpected turn of events; nonetheless, the General, committed to his goal, didn't waste his strength or allow his cavalry to become disorganized through reckless pursuits. Instead, he waited patiently until he was strong enough to strike directly at Pretoria.

In this short period of depression there came one gleam of light from the west. This was the capture of a commando of sixty Boers, or rather of sixty foreigners fighting for the Boers, and the death of the gallant Frenchman, De Villebois-Mareuil, who appears to have had the ambition of playing Lafayette in South Africa to Kruger's Washington. From the time that Kimberley had been reoccupied the British had been accumulating their force there so as to make a strong movement which should coincide with that of Roberts from Bloemfontein. Hunter's Division from Natal was being moved round to Kimberley, and Methuen already commanded a considerable body of troops, which included a number of the newly arrived Imperial Yeomanry. With these Methuen pacified the surrounding country, and extended his outposts to Barkly West on the one side, to Boshof on the other, and to Warrenton upon the Vaal River in the centre. On April 4th news reached Boshof that a Boer commando had been seen some ten miles to the east of the town, and a force, consisting of Yeomanry, Kimberley Light Horse, and half of Butcher's veteran 4th battery, was sent to attack them. They were found to have taken up their position upon a kopje which, contrary to all Boer custom, had no other kopjes to support it. French generalship was certainly not so astute as Boer cunning. The kopje was instantly surrounded, and the small force upon the summit being without artillery in the face of our guns found itself in exactly the same position which our men had been in twenty-four hours before at Reddersberg. Again was shown the advantage which the mounted rifleman has over the cavalry, for the Yeomanry and Light Horsemen left their horses and ascended the hill with the bayonet. In three hours all was over and the Boers had laid down their arms. Villebois was shot with seven of his companions, and there were nearly sixty prisoners. It speaks well for the skirmishing of the Yeomanry and the way in which they were handled by Lord Chesham that though they worked their way up the hill under fire they only lost four killed and a few wounded. The affair was a small one, but it was complete, and it came at a time when a success was very welcome. One bustling week had seen the expensive victory of Karee, the disasters of Sanna's Post and Reddersberg, and the successful skirmish of Boshof. Another chapter must be devoted to the movement towards the south of the Boer forces and the dispositions which Lord Roberts made to meet it.

In this brief period of depression, there was a glimmer of hope from the west. This was the capture of a commando of sixty Boers, or rather sixty foreigners fighting for the Boers, along with the death of the brave Frenchman, De Villebois-Mareuil, who seemed to have ambitions of being the Lafayette of South Africa to Kruger's Washington. Since Kimberley had been retaken, the British had been building up their forces there to launch a strong movement that would coincide with Roberts's advance from Bloemfontein. Hunter's Division from Natal was being redirected to Kimberley, and Methuen already commanded a significant number of troops, including several newly arrived Imperial Yeomanry. With these forces, Methuen established control over the surrounding area, extending his outposts to Barkly West on one side, Boshof on the other, and Warrenton in the center by the Vaal River. On April 4th, word reached Boshof that a Boer commando had been spotted about ten miles east of the town, and a force made up of Yeomanry, Kimberley Light Horse, and half of Butcher's veteran 4th battery was dispatched to engage them. They discovered that the Boers had taken up a position on a kopje that, contrary to usual Boer practice, had no supporting kopjes nearby. French generalship certainly wasn't as sharp as Boer cunning. The kopje was quickly surrounded, and the small force on the summit, lacking artillery against our guns, found themselves in the same position that our men had faced twenty-four hours earlier at Reddersberg. Once again, the advantage of the mounted rifleman over cavalry was evident, as the Yeomanry and Light Horsemen dismounted and stormed the hill with bayonets. In three hours, it was all over, and the Boers surrendered. Villebois was shot along with seven of his companions, and nearly sixty were taken prisoner. The skirmishing skills of the Yeomanry and their effective management by Lord Chesham were commendable, as they ascended the hill under fire and only lost four killed and a few wounded. While the incident was small, it was decisive and came at a time when a victory was urgently needed. In one hectic week, there had been the costly victory of Karee, the setbacks at Sanna's Post and Reddersberg, and the successful skirmish at Boshof. Another chapter must be dedicated to the movement of Boer forces to the south and the strategies Lord Roberts employed to address it.





CHAPTER 23. THE CLEARING OF THE SOUTH-EAST.

Lord Roberts never showed his self-command and fixed purpose more clearly than during his six weeks' halt at Bloemfontein. De Wet, the most enterprising and aggressive of the Boer commanders, was attacking his eastern posts and menacing his line of communications. A fussy or nervous general would have harassed his men and worn out his horses by endeavouring to pursue a number of will-of-the-wisp commandos. Roberts contented himself by building up his strength at the capital, and by spreading nearly twenty thousand men along his line of rail from Bloemfontein to Bethulie. When the time came he would strike, but until then he rested. His army was not only being rehorsed and reshod, but in some respects was being reorganised. One powerful weapon which was forged during those weeks was the collection of the mounted infantry of the central army into one division, which was placed under the command of Ian Hamilton, with Hutton and Ridley as brigadiers. Hutton's brigade contained the Canadians, New South Wales men, West Australians, Queenslanders, New Zealanders, Victorians, South Australians, and Tasmanians, with four battalions of Imperial Mounted Infantry, and several light batteries. Ridley's brigade contained the South African irregular regiments of cavalry, with some imperial troops. The strength of the whole division came to over ten thousand rifles, and in its ranks there rode the hardiest and best from every corner of the earth over which the old flag is flying.

Lord Roberts demonstrated his self-control and determination more than ever during his six-week stay in Bloemfontein. De Wet, the most daring and aggressive of the Boer commanders, was attacking his eastern posts and threatening his supply lines. A fussy or anxious general might have stressed his soldiers and exhausted his horses trying to chase after elusive commandos. Instead, Roberts focused on building up his strength in the capital and deployed nearly twenty thousand men along the railway from Bloemfontein to Bethulie. When the moment was right, he would strike, but until then, he took a break. His army was not only getting new horses and new shoes but was also undergoing some reorganization. One major development during those weeks was the formation of a mounted infantry division from the central army, led by Ian Hamilton, with Hutton and Ridley as brigade commanders. Hutton's brigade included Canadians, New South Wales soldiers, West Australians, Queenslanders, New Zealanders, Victorians, South Australians, and Tasmanians, along with four battalions of Imperial Mounted Infantry and several light artillery units. Ridley's brigade comprised South African irregular cavalry regiments alongside some imperial troops. The total strength of the division exceeded ten thousand rifles, and it included the toughest and finest soldiers from every part of the world where the old flag flies.

A word as to the general distribution of the troops at this instant while Roberts was gathering himself for his spring. Eleven divisions of infantry were in the field. Of these the 1st (Methuen's) and half the 10th (Hunter's) were at Kimberley, forming really the hundred-mile-distant left wing of Lord Roberts's army. On that side also was a considerable force of Yeomanry, as General Villebois discovered. In the centre with Roberts was the 6th division (Kelly-Kenny's) at Bloemfontein, the 7th (Tucker's) at Karee, twenty miles north, the 9th (Colvile's) and the 11th (Pole-Carew's) near Bloemfontein. French's cavalry division was also in the centre. As one descended the line towards the Cape one came on the 3rd division (Chermside's, late Gatacre's), which had now moved up to Reddersberg, and then, further south, the 8th (Rundle's), near Rouxville. To the south and east was the other half of Hunter's division (Hart's brigade), and Brabant's Colonial division, half of which was shut up in Wepener and the rest at Aliwal. These were the troops operating in the Free State, with the addition of the division of mounted infantry in process of formation.

A quick overview of the troop distribution at this moment while Roberts was getting ready for his advance. There were eleven infantry divisions in the field. The 1st (Methuen's) and half of the 10th (Hunter's) were at Kimberley, making up the left wing of Lord Roberts's army, which was about a hundred miles away. On that side, there was also a significant force of Yeomanry, as General Villebois found out. In the center with Roberts was the 6th division (Kelly-Kenny's) at Bloemfontein, the 7th (Tucker's) at Karee, twenty miles to the north, and the 9th (Colvile's) and 11th (Pole-Carew's) near Bloemfontein. French's cavalry division was also positioned in the center. As you traveled down towards the Cape, you came across the 3rd division (Chermside's, formerly Gatacre's), which had now moved up to Reddersberg, and further south, the 8th (Rundle's) near Rouxville. To the south and east was the other half of Hunter's division (Hart's brigade) and Brabant's Colonial division, half of which was trapped in Wepener and the other half at Aliwal. These were the troops operating in the Free State, along with an additional division of mounted infantry that was being formed.

There remained the three divisions in Natal, the 2nd (Clery's), the 4th (Lyttelton's), and the 5th (Hildyard's, late Warren's), with the cavalry brigades of Burn-Murdoch, Dundonald, and Brocklehurst. These, with numerous militia and unbrigaded regiments along the lines of communication, formed the British army in South Africa. At Mafeking some 900 irregulars stood at bay, with another force about as large under Plumer a little to the north, endeavouring to relieve them. At Beira, a Portuguese port through which we have treaty rights by which we may pass troops, a curious mixed force of Australians, New Zealanders and others was being disembarked and pushed through to Rhodesia, so as to cut off any trek which the Boers might make in that direction. Carrington, a fierce old soldier with a large experience of South African warfare, was in command of this picturesque force, which moved amid tropical forests over crocodile-haunted streams, while their comrades were shivering in the cold southerly winds of a Cape winter. Neither our Government, our people, nor the world understood at the beginning of this campaign how grave was the task which we had undertaken, but, having once realised it, it must be acknowledged that it was carried through in no half-hearted way. So vast was the scene of operations that the Canadian might almost find his native climate at one end of it and the Queenslander at the other.

There were three divisions in Natal: the 2nd (Clery's), the 4th (Lyttelton's), and the 5th (Hildyard's, formerly Warren's), along with the cavalry brigades of Burn-Murdoch, Dundonald, and Brocklehurst. Together with various militia and unbrigaded regiments along the communication routes, these formed the British army in South Africa. At Mafeking, about 900 irregulars were holding their ground, with another similar-sized force under Plumer a little to the north, trying to rescue them. At Beira, a Portuguese port where we have treaty rights to pass troops, a mixed group of Australians, New Zealanders, and others was being disembarked and moved towards Rhodesia to cut off any Boer advance in that direction. Carrington, a tough old soldier with extensive experience in South African battles, commanded this diverse force as they traversed tropical forests and crossed crocodile-infested streams, while their fellow soldiers were braving the cold southern winds of a Cape winter. At the start of this campaign, neither our Government, our people, nor the world grasped the seriousness of the task ahead, but once they understood, it was evident that it was tackled with full commitment. The area of operations was so expansive that a Canadian might find a climate similar to his home at one end and a Queenslander at the other.

To follow in close detail the movements of the Boers and the counter movements of the British in the southeast portion of the Free State during this period would tax the industry of the historian and the patience of the reader. Let it be told with as much general truth and as little geographical detail as possible. The narrative which is interrupted by an eternal reference to the map is a narrative spoiled.

To closely track the movements of the Boers and the counter-movements of the British in the southeastern part of the Free State during this time would challenge the efforts of historians and the patience of readers. Let's present it with as much general truth and as little geographical detail as possible. A story that keeps getting interrupted by constant references to the map is a story that loses its appeal.

The main force of the Freestaters had assembled in the north-eastern corner of their State, and from this they made their sally southwards, attacking or avoiding at their pleasure the eastern line of British outposts. Their first engagement, that of Sanna's Post, was a great and deserved success. Three days later they secured the five companies at Reddersberg. Warned in time, the other small British bodies closed in upon their supports, and the railway line, that nourishing artery which was necessary for the very existence of the army, was held too strongly for attack. The Bethulie Bridge was a particularly important point; but though the Boers approached it, and even went the length of announcing officially that they had destroyed it, it was not actually attacked. At Wepener, however, on the Basutoland border, they found an isolated force, and proceeded at once, according to their custom, to hem it in and to bombard it, until one of their three great allies, want of food, want of water, or want of cartridges, should compel a surrender.

The main force of the Freestaters had gathered in the northeastern corner of their state, and from there, they moved south, choosing to either engage or avoid the eastern line of British outposts as they saw fit. Their first battle, at Sanna's Post, was a significant and well-deserved victory. Three days later, they captured the five companies at Reddersberg. Once alerted, the other small British units rallied towards their allies, and the railway line, a vital lifeline for the army's survival, was too well defended for an attack. The Bethulie Bridge was particularly critical; however, even though the Boers came close and claimed they had destroyed it, it wasn't actually attacked. At Wepener, though, near the Basutoland border, they discovered an isolated force and immediately began their usual tactic of surrounding and bombarding it until one of their three main allies—lack of food, lack of water, or lack of ammunition—forced a surrender.

On this occasion, however, the Boers had undertaken a task which was beyond their strength. The troops at Wepener were one thousand seven hundred in number, and formidable in quality. The place had been occupied by part of Brabant's Colonial division, consisting of hardy irregulars, men of the stuff of the defenders of Mafeking. Such men are too shrewd to be herded into an untenable position and too valiant to surrender a tenable one. The force was commanded by a dashing soldier, Colonel Dalgety, of the Cape Mounted Rifles, as tough a fighter as his famous namesake. There were with him nearly a thousand men of Brabant's Horse, four hundred of the Cape Mounted Rifles, four hundred Kaffrarian Horse, with some scouts, and one hundred regulars, including twenty invaluable Sappers. They were strong in guns—two seven-pounders, two naval twelve-pounders, two fifteen-pounders and several machine guns. The position which they had taken up, Jammersberg, three miles north of Wepener, was a very strong one, and it would have taken a larger force than De Wet had at his disposal to turn them out of it. The defence had been arranged by Major Cedric Maxwell, of the Sappers; and though the huge perimeter, nearly eight miles, made its defence by so small a force a most difficult matter, the result proved how good his dispositions were.

On this occasion, however, the Boers had taken on a task that was beyond their means. The troops at Wepener numbered one thousand seven hundred and were formidable in quality. The area had been occupied by part of Brabant's Colonial division, made up of tough irregulars, men who were the same kind as the defenders of Mafeking. Such men are too smart to be pushed into a position they can't hold and too brave to give up a defensible one. The force was led by an impressive soldier, Colonel Dalgety, of the Cape Mounted Rifles, as tough a fighter as his famous namesake. He had nearly a thousand men from Brabant's Horse, four hundred from the Cape Mounted Rifles, four hundred from the Kaffrarian Horse, along with some scouts, and one hundred regulars, including twenty invaluable Sappers. They were well-equipped with artillery—two seven-pounders, two naval twelve-pounders, two fifteen-pounders, and several machine guns. The position they had taken up, Jammersberg, three miles north of Wepener, was very strong, and it would have taken a larger force than De Wet had at his disposal to dislodge them. The defense was organized by Major Cedric Maxwell of the Sappers; and although the large perimeter, nearly eight miles, made it very difficult for such a small force to defend, the outcome showed how effective his plans were.

At the same time, the Boers came on with every confidence of victory, for they had a superiority in guns and an immense superiority in men. But after a day or two of fierce struggle their attack dwindled down into a mere blockade. On April 9th they attacked furiously, both by day and by night, and on the 10th the pressure was equally severe. In these two days occurred the vast majority of the casualties. But the defenders took cover in a way to which British regulars have not yet attained, and they outshot their opponents both with their rifles and their cannon. Captain Lukin's management of the artillery was particularly skilful. The weather was vile and the hastily dug trenches turned into ditches half full of water, but neither discomfort nor danger shook the courage of the gallant colonials. Assault after assault was repulsed, and the scourging of the cannon was met with stolid endurance. The Boers excelled all their previous feats in the handling of artillery by dragging two guns up to the summit of the lofty Jammersberg, whence they fired down upon the camp. Nearly all the horses were killed and three hundred of the troopers were hit, a number which is double that of the official return, for the simple reason that the spirit of the force was so high that only those who were very severely wounded reported themselves as wounded at all. None but the serious cases ever reached the hands of Dr. Faskally, who did admirable work with very slender resources. How many the enemy lost can never be certainly known, but as they pushed home several attacks it is impossible to imagine that their losses were less than those of the victorious defenders. At the end of seventeen days of mud and blood the brave irregulars saw an empty laager and abandoned trenches. Their own resistance and the advance of Brabant to their rescue had caused a hasty retreat of the enemy. Wepener, Mafeking, Kimberley, the taking of the first guns at Ladysmith, the deeds of the Imperial Light Horse—it cannot be denied that our irregular South African forces have a brilliant record for the war. They are associated with many successes and with few disasters. Their fine record cannot, I think, be fairly ascribed to any greater hardihood which one portion of our race has when compared with another, for a South African must admit that in the best colonial corps at least half the men were Britons of Britain. In the Imperial Light Horse the proportion was very much higher. But what may fairly be argued is that their exploits have proved, what the American war proved long ago, that the German conception of discipline is an obsolete fetish, and that the spirit of free men, whose individualism has been encouraged rather than crushed, is equal to any feat of arms. The clerks and miners and engineers who went up Elandslaagte Hill without bayonets, shoulder to shoulder with the Gordons, and who, according to Sir George White, saved Ladysmith on January 6th, have shown for ever that with men of our race it is the spirit within, and not the drill or the discipline, that makes a formidable soldier. An intelligent appreciation of the fact might in the course of the next few years save us as much money as would go far to pay for the war.

At the same time, the Boers advanced with complete confidence in their victory because they had superior guns and a huge advantage in manpower. However, after a day or two of intense fighting, their attack turned into just a blockade. On April 9th, they launched a furious assault both day and night, and on the 10th, the pressure remained just as intense. The majority of casualties occurred over these two days. Yet, the defenders found cover like British regulars had not yet managed, and they outperformed their opponents in accuracy with both rifles and cannons. Captain Lukin expertly managed the artillery. The weather was terrible, and the hastily dug trenches quickly became waterlogged, but neither discomfort nor danger shook the courage of the brave colonials. Each wave of attacks was pushed back, and they faced the cannon fire with calm determination. The Boers outdid their previous feats of artillery handling by dragging two guns to the top of the high Jammersberg, firing down on the camp from there. Nearly all the horses were killed, and three hundred of the troopers were injured, a number that is double the official count because the morale of the force was so high that only those who were severely wounded reported themselves at all. Only the serious cases made it to Dr. Faskally, who did remarkable work with very limited resources. The enemy's losses can never be known for sure, but since they launched several attacks, it’s hard to believe their casualties were less than those of the victorious defenders. After seventeen days of mud and blood, the brave irregulars found an empty laager and abandoned trenches. Their resistance and the arrival of Brabant for their rescue had forced a hasty retreat of the enemy. Wepener, Mafeking, Kimberley, the capture of the first guns at Ladysmith, the actions of the Imperial Light Horse—it’s undeniable that our irregular South African forces have an impressive record in this war. They are linked to many successes and few failures. This fine record cannot really be credited to any greater toughness of one part of our race compared to another, as a South African must admit that in the best colonial corps at least half the men were Britons from Britain. In the Imperial Light Horse, the proportion was even higher. What can be fairly argued, though, is that their achievements have demonstrated, as the American war did long ago, that the German idea of discipline is an outdated concept, and that the spirit of free men, whose individualism has been nurtured rather than suppressed, is equal to any military challenge. The clerks, miners, and engineers who went up Elandslaagte Hill without bayonets, side by side with the Gordons, and who, according to Sir George White, saved Ladysmith on January 6th, have shown that for men of our race, it’s the spirit within—not the drill or the discipline—that makes a formidable soldier. Understanding this fact could save us a significant amount of money in the coming years, enough to cover a good portion of the war’s costs.

It may well be asked how for so long a period as seventeen days the British could tolerate a force to the rear of them when with their great superiority of numbers they could have readily sent an army to drive it away. The answer must be that Lord Roberts had despatched his trusty lieutenant, Kitchener, to Aliwal, whence he had been in heliographic communication with Wepener, that he was sure that the place could hold out, and that he was using it, as he did Kimberley, to hold the enemy while he was making his plans for their destruction. This was the bait to tempt them to their ruin. Had the trap not been a little slow in closing, the war in the Free State might have ended then and there. From the 9th to the 25th the Boers were held in front of Wepener. Let us trace the movements of the other British detachments during that time.

It might be wondered how the British could allow a force to linger behind them for such a long time as seventeen days when they had such a significant advantage in numbers that they could easily send troops to eliminate it. The answer is that Lord Roberts had sent his loyal lieutenant, Kitchener, to Aliwal, from where he was in heliographic contact with Wepener. He was confident that Wepener could hold out, and he was using it, just like Kimberley, to keep the enemy occupied while he formulated his plans for their defeat. This was the bait that would lead to their downfall. If the trap hadn't been a bit slow to close, the war in the Free State could have ended right then. From the 9th to the 25th, the Boers were held up in front of Wepener. Let's explore the movements of the other British detachments during that time.

Brabant's force, with Hart's brigade, which had been diverted on its way to Kimberley, where it was to form part of Hunter's division, was moving on the south towards Wepener, advancing through Rouxville, but going slowly for fear of scaring the Boers away before they were sufficiently compromised. Chermside's 3rd division approached from the north-west, moving out from the railway at Bethany, and passing through Reddersberg towards Dewetsdorp, from which it would directly threaten the Boer line of retreat. The movement was made with reassuring slowness and gentleness, as when the curved hand approaches the unconscious fly. And then suddenly, on April 21st, Lord Roberts let everything go. Had the action of the agents been as swift and as energetic as the mind of the planner, De Wet could not have escaped us.

Brabant's force, along with Hart's brigade, which had been redirected on its way to Kimberley to join Hunter's division, was heading south towards Wepener, moving through Rouxville but doing so slowly to avoid scaring off the Boers before they were in a vulnerable position. Chermside's 3rd division was coming in from the northwest, moving out from the railway at Bethany and passing through Reddersberg towards Dewetsdorp, from where it would directly threaten the Boer escape route. The movement was carried out with careful slowness and gentleness, like a curved hand approaching an unsuspecting fly. Then suddenly, on April 21st, Lord Roberts unleashed everything. If the actions of the agents had been as quick and energetic as the planner's mind, De Wet would not have been able to escape us.

What held Lord Roberts's hand for some few days after he was ready to strike was the abominable weather. Rain was falling in sheets, and those who know South African roads, South African mud, and South African drifts will understand how impossible swift military movements are under those circumstances. But with the first clearing of the clouds the hills to the south and east of Bloemfontein were dotted with our scouts. Rundle with his 8th division was brought swiftly up from the south, united with Chermside to the east of Reddersberg, and the whole force, numbering 13,000 rifles with thirty guns, advanced upon Dewetsdorp, Rundle, as senior officer, being in command. As they marched the blue hills of Wepener lined the sky some twenty miles to the south, eloquent to every man of the aim and object of their march.

What delayed Lord Roberts for a few days after he was ready to attack was the terrible weather. Rain was pouring down, and anyone familiar with South African roads, mud, and rivers will understand how impossible quick military movements are in such conditions. But with the first break in the clouds, our scouts were spread out over the hills to the south and east of Bloemfontein. Rundle and his 8th division were quickly brought up from the south and joined up with Chermside to the east of Reddersberg. The entire force, consisting of 13,000 soldiers and thirty guns, moved towards Dewetsdorp, with Rundle, as the senior officer, in charge. As they marched, the blue hills of Wepener rose against the sky about twenty miles to the south, reminding everyone of the purpose of their march.

On April 20th, Rundle as he advanced found a force with artillery across his path to Dewetsdorp. It is always difficult to calculate the number of hidden men and lurking guns which go to make up a Boer army, but with some knowledge of their total at Wepener it was certain that the force opposed to him must be very inferior to his own. At Constantia Farm, where he found them in position, it is difficult to imagine that there were more than three thousand men. Their left flank was their weak point, as a movement on that side would cut them off from Wepener and drive them up towards our main force in the north. One would have thought that a containing force of three thousand men, and a flanking movement from eight thousand, would have turned them out, as it has turned them out so often before and since. Yet a long-range action began on Friday, April 20th, and lasted the whole of the 21st, the 22nd, and the 23rd, in which we sustained few losses, but made no impression upon the enemy. Thirty of the 1st Worcesters wandered at night into the wrong line, and were made prisoners, but with this exception the four days of noisy fighting does not appear to have cost either side fifty casualties. It is probable that the deliberation with which the operations were conducted was due to Rundle's instructions to wait until the other forces were in position. His subsequent movements showed that he was not a General who feared to strike.

On April 20th, Rundle found a force with artillery blocking his way to Dewetsdorp. It’s always tough to estimate the number of hidden troops and concealed guns that make up a Boer army, but knowing their total at Wepener made it clear that the force he faced was significantly smaller than his own. At Constantia Farm, where he discovered them in position, it’s hard to believe there were more than three thousand men. Their left flank was their weak point; an attack from that side would cut them off from Wepener and push them toward our main force in the north. One might think that having three thousand men in a containment force and eight thousand for a flanking maneuver would have driven them out, as it had happened many times before and after. Yet, a long-range fight started on Friday, April 20th, and continued through the 21st, 22nd, and 23rd. We suffered few losses but made no impact on the enemy. Thirty soldiers from the 1st Worcesters accidentally wandered into the wrong line and were taken prisoner, but aside from that, the four days of heavy fighting didn’t seem to cost either side more than fifty casualties. It’s likely that the careful way the operations were carried out was because Rundle was instructed to wait until the other forces were in position. His later actions showed that he wasn’t a General who was afraid to strike.

On Sunday night (April 22nd) Pole-Carew sallied out from Bloemfontein on a line which would take him round the right flank of the Boers who were facing Rundle. The Boers had, however, occupied a strong position at Leeuw Kop, which barred his path, so that the Dewetsdorp Boers were covering the Wepener Boers, and being in turn covered by the Boers of Leeuw Kop. Before anything could be done, they must be swept out of the way. Pole-Carew is one of those finds which help to compensate us for the war. Handsome, dashing, debonnaire, he approaches a field of battle as a light-hearted schoolboy approaches a football field. On this occasion he acted with energy and discretion. His cavalry threatened the flanks of the enemy, and Stephenson's brigade carried the position in front at a small cost. On the same evening General French arrived and took over the force, which consisted now of Stephenson's and the Guards brigades (making up the 11th division), with two brigades of cavalry and one corps of mounted infantry. The next day, the 23rd, the advance was resumed, the cavalry bearing the brunt of the fighting. That gallant corps, Roberts's Horse, whose behaviour at Sanna's Post had been admirable, again distinguished itself, losing among others its Colonel, Brazier Creagh. On the 24th again it was to the horsemen that the honour and the casualties fell. The 9th Lancers, the regular cavalry regiment which bears away the honours of the war, lost several men and officers, and the 8th Hussars also suffered, but the Boers were driven from their position, and lost more heavily in this skirmish than in some of the larger battles of the campaign. The 'pom-poms,' which had been supplied to us by the belated energy of the Ordnance Department, were used with some effect in this engagement, and the Boers learned for the first time how unnerving are those noisy but not particularly deadly fireworks which they had so often crackled round the ears of our gunners.

On Sunday night (April 22nd), Pole-Carew set out from Bloemfontein on a route that would take him around the right flank of the Boers who were facing Rundle. However, the Boers had taken a strong position at Leeuw Kop, blocking his path, meaning the Dewetsdorp Boers were covering the Wepener Boers, while being covered in turn by the Boers at Leeuw Kop. Before anything could be done, they needed to be cleared out of the way. Pole-Carew is one of those finds that help make the war feel worthwhile. Handsome, daring, and charming, he approaches a battlefield like a carefree schoolboy approaches a football field. On this occasion, he acted with both energy and caution. His cavalry threatened the enemy's flanks, and Stephenson's brigade took the position in front with minimal losses. That same evening, General French arrived and took command of the force, which now included Stephenson's and the Guards brigades (making up the 11th division), along with two brigades of cavalry and one corps of mounted infantry. The following day, the 23rd, the advance continued, with the cavalry bearing the main fighting. That brave unit, Roberts's Horse, which had performed admirably at Sanna's Post, distinguished itself again, losing, among others, its Colonel, Brazier Creagh. On the 24th, it was once more the horsemen who took the honors and the casualties. The 9th Lancers, the regular cavalry regiment that has earned the recognition of the war, lost several men and officers, and the 8th Hussars also faced losses, but the Boers were pushed from their position and suffered heavier losses in this skirmish than in some of the larger battles of the campaign. The 'pom-poms,' which had been supplied to us due to the delayed efforts of the Ordnance Department, were used effectively in this engagement, and the Boers experienced for the first time how unsettling those noisy but not particularly deadly fireworks could be, which they had so often let crackle around our gunners' ears.

On the Wednesday morning Rundle, with the addition of Pole-Carew's division, was strong enough for any attack, while French was in a position upon the flank. Every requisite for a great victory was there except the presence of an enemy. The Wepener siege had been raised and the force in front of Rundle had disappeared as only Boer armies can disappear. The combined movement was an admirable piece of work on the part of the enemy. Finding no force in front of them, the combined troops of French, Rundle, and Chermside occupied Dewetsdorp, where the latter remained, while the others pushed on to Thabanchu, the storm centre from which all our troubles had begun nearly a month before. All the way they knew that De Wet's retreating army was just in front of them, and they knew also that a force had been sent out from Bloemfontein to Thabanchu to head off the Boers. Lord Roberts might naturally suppose, when he had formed two cordons through which De Wet must pass, that one or other must hold him. But with extraordinary skill and mobility De Wet, aided by the fact that every inhabitant was a member of his intelligence department, slipped through the double net which had been laid for him. The first net was not in its place in time, and the second was too small to hold him.

On Wednesday morning, Rundle, along with Pole-Carew's division, was ready to handle any attack, while French positioned his troops on the flank. Everything needed for a major victory was in place except for the presence of an enemy. The siege of Wepener had ended, and the forces in front of Rundle had vanished as only Boer armies can. The coordinated movement was a remarkable tactic by the enemy. With no opposing force in sight, the combined troops of French, Rundle, and Chermside took over Dewetsdorp, where Chermside stayed while the others continued on to Thabanchu, the focal point from which all our troubles had started nearly a month ago. Along the way, they understood that De Wet's retreating army was just ahead of them, and they were also aware that a force had been dispatched from Bloemfontein to Thabanchu to intercept the Boers. Lord Roberts would reasonably assume that, having set up two lines through which De Wet had to pass, at least one would be able to catch him. However, with remarkable skill and speed, De Wet, aided by the fact that every local resident was effectively part of his intelligence network, managed to evade the two traps set for him. The first trap wasn't in position in time, and the second was too small to contain him.

While Rundle and French had advanced on Dewetsdorp as described, the other force which was intended to head off De Wet had gone direct to Thabanchu. The advance began by a movement of Ian Hamilton on April 22nd with eight hundred mounted infantry upon the waterworks. The enemy, who held the hills beyond, allowed Hamilton's force to come right down to the Modder before they opened fire from three guns. The mounted infantry fell back, and encamped for the night out of range. [Footnote: This was a remarkable exhibition of the harmlessness of shell-fire against troops in open formation. I myself saw at least forty shells, all of which burst, fall among the ranks of the mounted infantry, who retired at a contemptuous walk. There were no casualties.] Before morning they were reinforced by Smith-Dorrien's brigade (Gordons, Canadians, and Shropshires—the Cornwalls had been left behind) and some more mounted Infantry. With daylight a fine advance was begun, the brigade moving up in very extended order and the mounted men turning the right flank of the defence. By evening we had regained the waterworks, a most important point for Bloemfontein, and we held all the line of hills which command it. This strong position would not have been gained so easily if it had not been for Pole-Carew's and French's actions two days before, on their way to join Rundle, which enabled them to turn it from the south.

While Rundle and French had moved toward Dewetsdorp as mentioned, the other force intended to intercept De Wet had gone directly to Thabanchu. The advance started with Ian Hamilton on April 22nd, leading eight hundred mounted infantry toward the waterworks. The enemy, positioned on the hills beyond, let Hamilton's forces approach the Modder before firing from three guns. The mounted infantry fell back and set up camp for the night out of range. [Footnote: This was a remarkable demonstration of how ineffective shell-fire is against troops in an open formation. I personally saw at least forty shells explode among the ranks of the mounted infantry, who withdrew at a leisurely pace. There were no casualties.] By morning, they were reinforced by Smith-Dorrien's brigade (Gordons, Canadians, and Shropshires—the Cornwalls were left behind) and additional mounted infantry. With daylight, an impressive advance commenced, the brigade moving in a very spread-out formation while the mounted men flanked the defenses. By evening, we had recaptured the waterworks, a crucial point for Bloemfontein, and we controlled all the hills that overlook it. This strong position would not have been so easily obtained if it weren't for the actions of Pole-Carew and French two days earlier, while they were en route to join Rundle, allowing them to approach from the south.

Ian Hamilton, who had already done good service in the war, having commanded the infantry at Elandslaagte, and been one of the most prominent leaders in the defence of Ladysmith, takes from this time onwards a more important and a more independent position. A thin, aquiline man, of soft voice and gentle manners, he had already proved more than once during his adventurous career that he not only possessed in a high degree the courage of the soldier, but also the equanimity and decision of the born leader. A languid elegance in his bearing covered a shrewd brain and a soul of fire. A distorted and half-paralysed hand reminded the observer that Hamilton, as a young lieutenant, had known at Majuba what it was to face the Boer rifles. Now, in his forty-seventh year, he had returned, matured and formidable, to reverse the results of that first deplorable campaign. This was the man to whom Lord Roberts had entrusted the command of that powerful flanking column which was eventually to form the right wing of his main advance. Being reinforced upon the morning after the capture of the Waterworks by the Highland Brigade, the Cornwalls, and two heavy naval guns, his whole force amounted to not less than seven thousand men. From these he detached a garrison for the Waterworks, and with the rest he continued his march over the hilly country which lies between them and Thabanchu.

Ian Hamilton, who had already served well in the war by leading the infantry at Elandslaagte and being one of the key figures in the defense of Ladysmith, took on a more significant and independent role from this point onward. A tall, slender man with sharp features, soft-spoken and polite, he had repeatedly demonstrated throughout his adventurous career that he not only had the bravery of a soldier but also the calmness and decisiveness of a natural leader. His relaxed elegance masked a sharp mind and a passionate spirit. A twisted and partially paralyzed hand served as a reminder that Hamilton, as a young lieutenant, had faced Boer rifles at Majuba. Now, at forty-seven, he had returned, seasoned and formidable, to turn around the outcomes of that first disastrous campaign. This was the man whom Lord Roberts had assigned to command the powerful flanking column that would ultimately form the right wing of his main advance. After being reinforced on the morning following the capture of the Waterworks by the Highland Brigade, the Cornwalls, and two heavy naval guns, his total force numbered at least seven thousand men. He detached a garrison for the Waterworks and continued his march through the hilly terrain between them and Thabanchu with the rest.

One position, Israel's Poort, a nek between two hills, was held against them on April 25th, but was gained without much trouble, the Canadians losing one killed and two wounded. Colonel Otter, their gallant leader, was one of the latter, while Marshall's Horse, a colonial corps raised in Grahamstown, had no fewer than seven of their officers and several men killed or wounded. Next morning the town of Thabanchu was seized, and Hamilton found himself upon the direct line of the Boer retreat. He seized the pass which commands the road, and all next day he waited eagerly, and the hearts of his men beat high when at last they saw a long trail of dust winding up to them from the south. At last the wily De Wet had been headed off! Deep and earnest were the curses when out of the dust there emerged a khaki column of horsemen, and it was realised that this was French's pursuing force, closely followed by Rundle's infantry from Dewetsdorp. The Boers had slipped round and were already to the north of us.

One position, Israel's Poort, a gap between two hills, was held against them on April 25th, but it was captured without much trouble, with the Canadians losing one killed and two wounded. Colonel Otter, their brave leader, was one of the wounded, while Marshall's Horse, a colonial corps raised in Grahamstown, had seven of their officers and several men killed or injured. The next morning, the town of Thabanchu was taken, and Hamilton found himself on the direct line of the Boer retreat. He took control of the pass that overlooks the road, and all day he waited eagerly, with his men’s spirits high when they finally saw a long trail of dust coming up from the south. Finally, the crafty De Wet had been cut off! There were deep and heartfelt curses when a khaki column of horsemen emerged from the dust, and it was realized that this was French's pursuing force, closely followed by Rundle's infantry from Dewetsdorp. The Boers had slipped around and were already north of us.

It is impossible to withhold our admiration for the way in which the Boer force was manoeuvred throughout this portion of the campaign. The mixture of circumspection and audacity, the way in which French and Rundle were hindered until the Wepener force had disengaged itself, the manner in which these covering forces were then withdrawn, and finally the clever way in which they all slipped past Hamilton, make a brilliant bit of strategy. Louis Botha, the generalissimo, held all the strings in his hand, and the way in which he pulled them showed that his countrymen had chosen the right man for that high office, and that his was a master spirit even among those fine natural warriors who led the separate commandos.

We can't help but admire how the Boer forces moved throughout this part of the campaign. The combination of caution and boldness, how French and Rundle were delayed until the Wepener forces had pulled back, the way these covering forces were then pulled back, and finally the clever way they all slipped past Hamilton, showcase brilliant strategy. Louis Botha, the overall commander, had everything under control, and his skill in directing operations proved that his countrymen chose the right leader for the job, highlighting his mastery among the impressive warriors who led the various commandos.

Having got to the north of the British forces Botha made no effort to get away, and refused to be hustled by a reconnaissance developing into an attack, which French made upon April 27th. In a skirmish the night before Kitchener's Horse had lost fourteen men, and the action of the 27th cost us about as many casualties. It served to show that the Boer force was a compact body some six or seven thousand strong, which withdrew in a leisurely fashion, and took up a defensive position at Houtnek, some miles further on. French remained at Thabanchu, from which he afterwards joined Lord Roberts' advance, while Hamilton now assumed complete command of the flanking column, with which he proceeded to march north upon Winburg.

After reaching the north of the British forces, Botha made no attempt to escape and refused to be rushed by a reconnaissance that turned into an attack from French on April 27th. In a skirmish the night before, Kitchener's Horse lost fourteen men, and the action on the 27th resulted in about the same number of casualties for us. It showed that the Boer force was a well-organized group of around six or seven thousand strong, which withdrew at a relaxed pace and took up a defensive position at Houtnek, a few miles ahead. French stayed at Thabanchu, from where he later joined Lord Roberts' advance, while Hamilton took full command of the flanking column and marched north towards Winburg.

The Houtnek position is dominated upon the left of the advancing British force by Thoba Mountain, and it was this point which was the centre of Hamilton's attack. It was most gallantly seized by Kitchener's Horse, who were quickly supported by Smith-Dorrien's men. The mountain became the scene of a brisk action, and night fell before the crest was cleared. At dawn upon May 1st the fighting was resumed, and the position was carried by a determined advance of the Shropshires, the Canadians, and the Gordons: the Boers escaping down the reverse slope of the hill came under a heavy fire of our infantry, and fifty of them were wounded or taken. It was in this action, during the fighting on the hill, that Captain Towse, of the Gordons, though shot through the eyes and totally blind, encouraged his men to charge through a group of the enemy who had gathered round them. After this victory Hamilton's men, who had fought for seven days out of ten, halted for a rest at Jacobsrust, where they were joined by Broadwood's cavalry and Bruce Hamilton's infantry brigade. Ian Hamilton's column now contained two infantry brigades (Smith-Dorrien's and Bruce Hamilton's), Ridley's Mounted Infantry, Broadwood's Cavalry Brigade, five batteries of artillery, two heavy guns, altogether 13,000 men. With this force in constant touch with Botha's rearguard, Ian Hamilton pushed on once more on May 4th. On May 5th he fought a brisk cavalry skirmish, in which Kitchener's Horse and the 12th Lancers distinguished themselves, and on the same day he took possession of Winburg, thus covering the right of Lord Roberts's great advance.

The Houtnek position is overshadowed on the left by the advancing British force at Thoba Mountain, which was the focal point of Hamilton's attack. Kitchener's Horse bravely took the mountain, quickly backed up by Smith-Dorrien's men. The mountain became the site of intense fighting, and night fell before they cleared the crest. At dawn on May 1st, the battle resumed, and the position was captured through the determined advance of the Shropshires, the Canadians, and the Gordons. The Boers who fled down the back slope came under heavy fire from our infantry, resulting in fifty being wounded or captured. During this battle on the hill, Captain Towse of the Gordons, despite being shot in the eyes and completely blind, urged his men to charge at a group of enemy soldiers that had gathered around them. After this victory, Hamilton's troops, who had fought seven out of ten days, paused for a rest at Jacobsrust, where Broadwood's cavalry and Bruce Hamilton's infantry brigade joined them. Ian Hamilton's column now included two infantry brigades (Smith-Dorrien's and Bruce Hamilton's), Ridley's Mounted Infantry, Broadwood's Cavalry Brigade, five artillery batteries, two heavy guns, totaling 13,000 men. With this force maintaining constant contact with Botha's rearguard, Ian Hamilton continued his advance on May 4th. On May 5th, he engaged in a lively cavalry skirmish, where Kitchener's Horse and the 12th Lancers performed notably, and on the same day, he captured Winburg, thereby securing the right flank of Lord Roberts's significant advance.

The distribution of the troops on the eastern side of the Free State was, at the time of this the final advance of the main army, as follows—Ian Hamilton with his mounted infantry, Smith-Dorrien's brigade, Macdonald's brigade, Bruce Hamilton's brigade, and Broadwood's cavalry were at Winburg. Rundle was at Thabanchu, and Brabant's colonial division was moving up to the same point. Chermside was at Dewetsdorp, and had detached a force under Lord Castletown to garrison Wepener. Hart occupied Smithfield, whence he and his brigade were shortly to be transferred to the Kimberley force. Altogether there could not have been fewer than thirty thousand men engaged in clearing and holding down this part of the country. French's cavalry and Pole-Carew's division had returned to take part in the central advance.

The distribution of the troops on the eastern side of the Free State was, at the time of the final advance of the main army, as follows—Ian Hamilton with his mounted infantry, Smith-Dorrien's brigade, Macdonald's brigade, Bruce Hamilton's brigade, and Broadwood's cavalry were at Winburg. Rundle was at Thabanchu, and Brabant's colonial division was moving up to the same point. Chermside was at Dewetsdorp and had sent a force under Lord Castletown to garrison Wepener. Hart occupied Smithfield, from where he and his brigade were about to be transferred to the Kimberley force. Overall, there were at least thirty thousand men involved in securing and controlling this area. French's cavalry and Pole-Carew's division had returned to participate in the central advance.

Before entering upon a description of that great and decisive movement, one small action calls for comment. This was the cutting off of twenty men of Lumsden's Horse in a reconnaissance at Karee. The small post under Lieutenant Crane found themselves by some misunderstanding isolated in the midst of the enemy. Refusing to hoist the flag of shame, they fought their way out, losing half their number, while of the other half it is said that there was not one who could not show bullet marks upon his clothes or person. The men of this corps, volunteer Anglo-Indians, had abandoned the ease and even luxury of Eastern life for the hard fare and rough fighting of this most trying campaign. In coming they had set the whole empire an object-lesson in spirit, and now on their first field they set the army an example of military virtue. The proud traditions of Outram's Volunteers have been upheld by the men of Lumsden's Horse. Another minor action which cannot be ignored is the defence of a convoy on April 29th by the Derbyshire Yeomanry (Major Dugdale) and a company of the Scots Guards. The wagons were on their way to Rundle when they were attacked at a point about ten miles west of Thabanchu. The small guard beat off their assailants in the most gallant fashion, and held their own until relieved by Brabazon upon the following morning.

Before diving into a description of that major and pivotal movement, one small incident deserves a mention. This involved the detachment of twenty men from Lumsden's Horse during a reconnaissance mission at Karee. The small post under Lieutenant Crane found themselves, due to some misunderstanding, surrounded by the enemy. Refusing to raise the flag of surrender, they fought their way out, losing half their number, and among the survivors, it’s said that not one could be found without bullet marks on their clothes or body. The members of this corps, volunteer Anglo-Indians, had left the comforts and even luxuries of Eastern life for the tough conditions and challenging combat of this grueling campaign. By joining, they provided the entire empire with a lesson in resilience, and now, in their first engagement, they set an example of military honor for the army. The proud legacy of Outram's Volunteers has been carried on by the men of Lumsden's Horse. Another significant action that shouldn't be overlooked is the defense of a convoy on April 29th by the Derbyshire Yeomanry (Major Dugdale) and a company of the Scots Guards. The wagons were on their way to Rundle when they were attacked about ten miles west of Thabanchu. The small guard bravely repelled their attackers and held their ground until relieved by Brabazon the following morning.

This phase of the war was marked by a certain change in the temper of the British. Nothing could have been milder than the original intentions and proclamations of Lord Roberts, and he was most ably seconded in his attempts at conciliation by General Pretyman, who had been made civil administrator of the State. There was evidence, however, that this kindness had been construed as weakness by some of the burghers, and during the Boer incursion to Wepener many who had surrendered a worthless firearm reappeared with the Mauser which had been concealed in some crafty hiding-place. Troops were fired at from farmhouses which flew the white flag, and the good housewife remained behind to charge the 'rooinek' extortionate prices for milk and fodder while her husband shot at him from the hills. It was felt that the burghers might have peace or might have war, but could not have both simultaneously. Some examples were made therefore of offending farmhouses, and stock was confiscated where there was evidence of double dealing upon the part of the owner. In a country where property is a more serious thing than life, these measures, together with more stringent rules about the possession of horses and arms, did much to stamp out the chances of an insurrection in our rear. The worst sort of peace is an enforced peace, but if that can be established time and justice may do the rest.

This phase of the war saw a noticeable shift in the attitude of the British. Nothing could have been gentler than the initial intentions and statements of Lord Roberts, who was strongly supported in his efforts to promote peace by General Pretyman, the civil administrator of the State. However, it became clear that some of the burghers interpreted this kindness as a sign of weakness, and during the Boer incursion into Wepener, many who had surrendered a worthless firearm returned with the Mauser they had hidden away. Troops were shot at from farmhouses displaying the white flag, while the good housewife stayed behind to charge the 'rooinek' outrageous prices for milk and fodder, as her husband shot at him from the hills. It was understood that the burghers could either have peace or war, but not both at the same time. Consequently, some examples were made of offending farmhouses, and livestock was confiscated where there was evidence of deceit from the owner. In a country where property is valued more than life, these actions, along with stricter regulations on owning horses and weapons, effectively reduced the likelihood of an uprising behind our lines. The worst type of peace is one that is forced, but if it can be established, time and justice may take care of the rest.

The operations which have been here described may be finally summed up in one short paragraph. A Boer army came south of the British line and besieged a British garrison. Three British forces, those of French, Rundle, and Ian Hamilton, were despatched to cut it off. It successfully threaded its way among them and escaped. It was followed to the northward as far as the town of Winburg, which remained in the British possession. Lord Roberts had failed in his plan of cutting off De Wet's army, but, at the expense of many marches and skirmishes, the south-east of the State was cleared of the enemy.

The operations described here can be summed up in one short paragraph. A Boer army moved south of the British line and laid siege to a British garrison. Three British forces, led by French, Rundle, and Ian Hamilton, were sent to cut it off. However, it skillfully navigated between them and escaped. It was pursued northward as far as the town of Winburg, which remained under British control. Lord Roberts was unable to execute his plan to cut off De Wet's army, but after many marches and skirmishes, the southeast of the State was cleared of the enemy.





CHAPTER 24. THE SIEGE OF MAFEKING.

This small place, which sprang in the course of a few weeks from obscurity to fame, is situated upon the long line of railway which connects Kimberley in the south with Rhodesia in the north. In character it resembles one of those western American townlets which possess small present assets but immense aspirations. In its litter of corrugated-iron roofs, and in the church and the racecourse, which are the first-fruits everywhere of Anglo-Celtic civilisation, one sees the seeds of the great city of the future. It is the obvious depot for the western Transvaal upon one side, and the starting-point for all attempts upon the Kalahari Desert upon the other. The Transvaal border runs within a few miles.

This small place, which went from being unknown to famous in just a few weeks, is located along the long railway line that connects Kimberley in the south to Rhodesia in the north. It resembles one of those little western American towns that may have limited resources now but have big dreams. The mix of corrugated-iron roofs, along with the church and the racetrack—typical signs of Anglo-Celtic civilization—show the beginnings of a major city of the future. It serves as the main hub for the western Transvaal on one side and the starting point for all ventures into the Kalahari Desert on the other. The Transvaal border is just a few miles away.

It is not clear why the imperial authorities should desire to hold this place, since it has no natural advantages to help the defence, but lies exposed in a widespread plain. A glance at the map must show that the railway line would surely be cut both to the north and south of the town, and the garrison isolated at a point some two hundred and fifty miles from any reinforcements. Considering that the Boers could throw any strength of men or guns against the place, it seemed certain that if they seriously desired to take possession of it they could do so. Under ordinary circumstances any force shut up there was doomed to capture. But what may have seemed short-sighted policy became the highest wisdom, owing to the extraordinary tenacity and resource of Baden-Powell, the officer in command. Through his exertions the town acted as a bait to the Boers, and occupied a considerable force in a useless siege at a time when their presence at other seats of war might have proved disastrous to the British cause.

It’s unclear why the imperial authorities want to hold this location since it has no natural defenses and is situated in an open plain. A look at the map clearly shows that the railway line would likely be cut off both north and south of the town, leaving the garrison isolated about two hundred and fifty miles from any reinforcements. Given that the Boers could bring any number of troops or artillery against the town, it seemed certain that if they really wanted to take it, they could. Normally, any force trapped there would be doomed to capture. However, what might have seemed like a short-sighted policy turned into a stroke of genius because of the remarkable determination and resourcefulness of Baden-Powell, the officer in charge. Through his efforts, the town became a lure for the Boers and kept a significant number of their forces occupied in a pointless siege when their presence at other battlefronts could have been detrimental to the British cause.

Colonel Baden-Powell is a soldier of a type which is exceedingly popular with the British public. A skilled hunter and an expert at many games, there was always something of the sportsman in his keen appreciation of war. In the Matabele campaign he had out-scouted the savage scouts and found his pleasure in tracking them among their native mountains, often alone and at night, trusting to his skill in springing from rock to rock in his rubber-soled shoes to save him from their pursuit. There was a brain quality in his bravery which is rare among our officers. Full of veld craft and resource, it was as difficult to outwit as it was to outfight him. But there was another curious side to his complex nature. The French have said of one of their heroes, 'Il avait cette graine de folie dans sa bravoure que les Francais aiment,' and the words might have been written of Powell. An impish humour broke out in him, and the mischievous schoolboy alternated with the warrior and the administrator. He met the Boer commandos with chaff and jokes which were as disconcerting as his wire entanglements and his rifle-pits. The amazing variety of his personal accomplishments was one of his most striking characteristics. From drawing caricatures with both hands simultaneously, or skirt dancing to leading a forlorn hope, nothing came amiss to him; and he had that magnetic quality by which the leader imparts something of his virtues to his men. Such was the man who held Mafeking for the Queen.

Colonel Baden-Powell is a soldier who is extremely popular with the British public. A skilled hunter and an expert in various sports, he always had a sense of the athlete in his strong appreciation for warfare. During the Matabele campaign, he out-scouted the native scouts and took pleasure in tracking them through their mountains, often alone and at night, relying on his ability to leap from rock to rock in his rubber-soled shoes to evade capture. His bravery had a thoughtful quality that is rare among our officers. Full of outdoor skills and resourcefulness, it was as hard to outsmart him as it was to outfight him. But there was another interesting side to his complex nature. The French have said of one of their heroes, “He had that touch of madness in his bravery that the French love,” and that could have easily described Powell. He often showed a playful sense of humor, shifting between the mischievous schoolboy, the warrior, and the administrator. He approached the Boer commandos with banter and jokes that were just as disconcerting as his wire entanglements and rifle pits. The incredible range of his personal talents was one of his most remarkable traits. Whether it was drawing caricatures with both hands at the same time, dancing, or leading a desperate charge, nothing was beyond him; he had that magnetic quality that allows a leader to pass on some of his strengths to his men. Such was the man who defended Mafeking for the Queen.

In a very early stage, before the formal declaration of war, the enemy had massed several commandos upon the western border, the men being drawn from Zeerust, Rustenburg, and Lichtenburg. Baden-Powell, with the aid of an excellent group of special officers, who included Colonel Gould Adams, Lord Edward Cecil, the soldier son of England's Premier, and Colonel Hore, had done all that was possible to put the place into a state of defence. In this he had immense assistance from Benjamin Weil, a well known South African contractor, who had shown great energy in provisioning the town. On the other hand, the South African Government displayed the same stupidity or treason which had been exhibited in the case of Kimberley, and had met all demands for guns and reinforcements with foolish doubts as to the need of such precautions. In the endeavour to supply these pressing wants the first small disaster of the campaign was encountered. On October 12th, the day after the declaration of war, an armoured train conveying two 7-pounders for the Mafeking defences was derailed and captured by a Boer raiding party at Kraaipan, a place forty miles south of their destination. The enemy shelled the shattered train until after five hours Captain Nesbitt, who was in command, and his men, some twenty in number, surrendered. It was a small affair, but it derived importance from being the first blood shed and the first tactical success of the war.

In the early days, before war was officially declared, the enemy had gathered several commandos at the western border, with men coming from Zeerust, Rustenburg, and Lichtenburg. Baden-Powell, along with a talented group of special officers including Colonel Gould Adams, Lord Edward Cecil, the soldier son of England's Prime Minister, and Colonel Hore, did everything possible to prepare the area for defense. He received significant help from Benjamin Weil, a well-known South African contractor, who worked hard to supply the town. On the other hand, the South African Government showed the same foolishness or treachery that had been present during the Kimberley situation, responding to requests for guns and reinforcements with silly doubts about the necessity of such measures. In the attempt to address these urgent needs, the first minor disaster of the campaign occurred. On October 12th, the day after war was declared, an armored train carrying two 7-pounders for the Mafeking defenses was derailed and captured by a Boer raiding party at Kraaipan, which is forty miles short of its destination. The enemy shelled the damaged train for five hours until Captain Nesbitt, the commander, and his twenty men surrendered. It was a small incident, but it gained significance as the first bloodshed and the first tactical success of the war.

The garrison of the town, whose fame will certainly live in the history of South Africa, contained no regular soldiers at all with the exception of the small group of excellent officers. They consisted of irregular troops, three hundred and forty of the Protectorate Regiment, one hundred and seventy Police, and two hundred volunteers, made up of that singular mixture of adventurers, younger sons, broken gentlemen, and irresponsible sportsmen who have always been the voortrekkers of the British Empire. These men were of the same stamp as those other admirable bodies of natural fighters who did so well in Rhodesia, in Natal, and in the Cape. With them there was associated in the defence the Town Guard, who included the able-bodied shopkeepers, businessmen, and residents, the whole amounting to about nine hundred men. Their artillery was feeble in the extreme, two 7-pounder toy guns and six machine guns, but the spirit of the men and the resource of their leaders made up for every disadvantage. Colonel Vyvyan and Major Panzera planned the defences, and the little trading town soon began to take on the appearance of a fortress.

The garrison of the town, which will definitely be remembered in the history of South Africa, had no regular soldiers except for a small group of excellent officers. It was made up of irregular troops: three hundred and forty from the Protectorate Regiment, one hundred and seventy from the Police, and two hundred volunteers, who were a unique mix of adventurers, younger sons, fallen gentlemen, and carefree sportsmen—people who have always been the pioneers of the British Empire. These men were similar to those other remarkable natural fighters who performed so well in Rhodesia, Natal, and the Cape. Alongside them in the defense was the Town Guard, which included capable shopkeepers, businesspeople, and residents, totaling around nine hundred men. Their artillery was minimal, with two 7-pounder toy guns and six machine guns, but the determination of the men and the resourcefulness of their leaders compensated for every shortcoming. Colonel Vyvyan and Major Panzera designed the defenses, and soon the small trading town started to look like a fortress.

On October 13th the Boers appeared before Mafeking. On the same day Colonel Baden-Powell sent two truckloads of dynamite out of the place. They were fired into by the invaders, with the result that they exploded. On October 14th the pickets around the town were driven in by the Boers. On this the armoured train and a squadron of the Protectorate Regiment went out to support the pickets and drove the Boers before them. A body of the latter doubled back and interposed between the British and Mafeking, but two fresh troops with a 7-pounder throwing shrapnel drove them off. In this spirited little action the garrison lost two killed and fourteen wounded, but they inflicted considerable damage on the enemy. To Captain Williams, Captain FitzClarence, and Lord Charles Bentinck great credit is due for the way in which they handled their men; but the whole affair was ill advised, for if a disaster had occurred Mafeking must have fallen, being left without a garrison. No possible results which could come from such a sortie could justify the risk which was run.

On October 13th, the Boers showed up in front of Mafeking. On the same day, Colonel Baden-Powell sent two truckloads of dynamite out of the town. The invaders fired at them, causing the dynamite to explode. On October 14th, the Boers drove the pickets around the town back. In response, the armored train and a squadron from the Protectorate Regiment went out to support the pickets and pushed the Boers back. A group of Boers doubled back and positioned themselves between the British and Mafeking, but two fresh troops with a 7-pounder firing shrapnel forced them to retreat. In this spirited little skirmish, the garrison lost two men killed and fourteen wounded, but they inflicted significant damage on the enemy. Captain Williams, Captain FitzClarence, and Lord Charles Bentinck deserve great credit for how they managed their troops; however, the whole operation was poorly advised because if a disaster had happened, Mafeking would have fallen, being left without a garrison. No potential outcomes from such an attack could justify the risk taken.

On October 16th the siege began in earnest. On that date the Boers brought up two 12-pounder guns, and the first of that interminable flight of shells fell into the town. The enemy got possession of the water supply, but the garrison had already dug wells. Before October 20th five thousand Boers, under the formidable Cronje, had gathered round the town. 'Surrender to avoid bloodshed' was his message. 'When is the bloodshed going to begin?' asked Powell. When the Boers had been shelling the town for some weeks the lighthearted Colonel sent out to say that if they went on any longer he should be compelled to regard it as equivalent to a declaration of war. It is to be hoped that Cronje also possessed some sense of humour, or else he must have been as sorely puzzled by his eccentric opponent as the Spanish generals were by the vagaries of Lord Peterborough.

On October 16th, the siege officially started. On that day, the Boers brought in two 12-pounder guns, and the first of a long series of shells landed in the town. The enemy took control of the water supply, but the garrison had already dug wells. By October 20th, five thousand Boers, led by the powerful Cronje, had surrounded the town. His message was, “Surrender to avoid bloodshed.” Powell replied, “When is the bloodshed going to start?” After the Boers had been shelling the town for a few weeks, the cheerful Colonel sent a message saying that if they continued, he would have to consider it a declaration of war. One can only hope that Cronje also had a sense of humor, or he must have been as confused by his unpredictable opponent as the Spanish generals were by Lord Peterborough's odd tactics.

Among the many difficulties which had to be met by the defenders of the town the most serious was the fact that the position had a circumference of five or six miles to be held by about one thousand men against a force who at their own time and their own place could at any moment attempt to gain a footing. An ingenious system of small forts was devised to meet the situation. Each of these held from ten to forty riflemen, and was furnished with bomb-proofs and covered ways. The central bomb-proof was connected by telephone with all the outlying ones, so as to save the use of orderlies. A system of bells was arranged by which each quarter of the town was warned when a shell was coming in time to enable the inhabitants to scuttle off to shelter. Every detail showed the ingenuity of the controlling mind. The armoured train, painted green and tied round with scrub, stood unperceived among the clumps of bushes which surrounded the town.

Among the many challenges faced by the town's defenders, the most serious was the need to cover a perimeter of five or six miles with about a thousand men against a force that could strike at any moment, wherever they chose. An ingenious plan for a network of small forts was created to address this situation. Each fort housed ten to forty riflemen and was equipped with bomb shelters and protected pathways. The main bomb shelter was linked by telephone to all the outer ones, eliminating the need for orderlies. A bell system was set up to alert each section of the town when a shell was incoming, giving residents enough time to take cover. Every detail highlighted the ingenuity of the leadership. The armored train, painted green and camouflaged with brush, blended in unnoticed among the bushes surrounding the town.

On October 24th a savage bombardment commenced, which lasted with intermissions for seven months. The Boers had brought an enormous gun across from Pretoria, throwing a 96-pound shell, and this, with many smaller pieces, played upon the town. The result was as futile as our own artillery fire has so often been when directed against the Boers.

On October 24th, a brutal bombardment started, which continued with breaks for seven months. The Boers had transported a massive gun from Pretoria that fired a 96-pound shell, and this, along with several smaller weapons, targeted the town. The outcome was as pointless as our own artillery fire has frequently been when aimed at the Boers.

As the Mafeking guns were too weak to answer the enemy's fire, the only possible reply lay in a sortie, and upon this Colonel Powell decided. It was carried out with great gallantry on the evening of October 27th, when about a hundred men under Captain FitzClarence moved out against the Boer trenches with instructions to use the bayonet only. The position was carried with a rush, and many of the Boers bayoneted before they could disengage themselves from the tarpaulins which covered them. The trenches behind fired wildly in the darkness, and it is probable that as many of their own men as of ours were hit by their rifle fire. The total loss in this gallant affair was six killed, eleven wounded, and two prisoners. The loss of the enemy, though shrouded as usual in darkness, was certainly very much higher.

As the guns in Mafeking were too weak to respond to the enemy's fire, the only way to reply was to launch a sortie, and Colonel Powell decided to do just that. It was executed with great bravery on the evening of October 27th, when about a hundred men under Captain FitzClarence moved out against the Boer trenches with orders to use only their bayonets. They quickly took the position by surprise, and many of the Boers were bayoneted before they could get free from the tarpaulins that covered them. The trenches behind them fired wildly in the dark, and it's likely that as many of their own troops were hit by friendly fire as ours were. In this brave action, the total losses were six killed, eleven wounded, and two captured. The enemy's losses, though usually hidden in darkness, were certainly much higher.

On October 31st the Boers ventured upon an attack on Cannon Kopje, which is a small fort and eminence to the south of the town. It was defended by Colonel Walford, of the British South African Police, with fifty-seven of his men and three small guns. The attack was repelled with heavy loss to the Boers. The British casualties were six killed and five wounded.

On October 31st, the Boers launched an attack on Cannon Kopje, a small fort located south of the town. Colonel Walford, of the British South African Police, defended it with fifty-seven men and three small guns. The attack was repelled, resulting in heavy losses for the Boers. The British had six killed and five wounded.

Their experience in this attack seems to have determined the Boers to make no further expensive attempts to rush the town, and for some weeks the siege degenerated into a blockade. Cronje had been recalled for more important work, and Commandant Snyman had taken over the uncompleted task. From time to time the great gun tossed its huge shells into the town, but boardwood walls and corrugated-iron roofs minimise the dangers of a bombardment. On November 3rd the garrison rushed the Brickfields, which had been held by the enemy's sharpshooters, and on the 7th another small sally kept the game going. On the 18th Powell sent a message to Snyman that he could not take the town by sitting and looking at it. At the same time he despatched a message to the Boer forces generally, advising them to return to their homes and their families. Some of the commandos had gone south to assist Cronje in his stand against Methuen, and the siege languished more and more, until it was woken up by a desperate sortie on December 26th, which caused the greatest loss which the garrison had sustained. Once more the lesson was to be enforced that with modern weapons and equality of forces it is always long odds on the defence.

Their experience in this attack seems to have convinced the Boers not to attempt any more costly efforts to storm the town, and for several weeks the siege turned into a blockade. Cronje had been called back for more important duties, and Commandant Snyman took over the unfinished task. Occasionally, the big gun hurled its massive shells into the town, but wooden walls and corrugated iron roofs reduced the dangers of bombarding. On November 3rd, the garrison charged the Brickfields, which had been occupied by enemy sharpshooters, and on the 7th, another small attack kept the pressure on. On the 18th, Powell sent a message to Snyman saying he couldn't take the town by just sitting there and staring at it. At the same time, he sent a message to the Boer forces in general, advising them to go back to their homes and families. Some of the commandos had gone south to help Cronje in his fight against Methuen, and the siege dragged on more and more until it was jolted awake by a desperate charge on December 26th, which inflicted the greatest loss the garrison had suffered. Once again, the lesson was reinforced that with modern weapons and equal forces, the defense always has the advantage.

On this date a vigorous attack was made upon one of the Boer forts on the north. There seems to be little doubt that the enemy had some inkling of our intention, as the fort was found to have been so strengthened as to be impregnable without scaling ladders. The attacking force consisted of two squadrons of the Protectorate Regiment and one of the Bechuanaland Rifles, backed up by three guns. So desperate was the onslaught that of the actual attacking party—a forlorn hope, if ever there was one—fifty-three out of eighty were killed and wounded, twenty-five of the former and twenty-eight of the latter. Several of that gallant band of officers who had been the soul of the defence were among the injured. Captain FitzClarence was wounded, Vernon, Sandford, and Paton were killed, all at the very muzzles of the enemy's guns. It must have been one of the bitterest moments of Baden-Powell's life when he shut his field-glass and said, 'Let the ambulance go out!'

On this date, a strong attack was launched on one of the Boer forts to the north. There’s little doubt that the enemy had some awareness of our plans, as the fort was found to be so fortified that it was impossible to take without scaling ladders. The attacking force included two squadrons of the Protectorate Regiment and one squadron of the Bechuanaland Rifles, supported by three artillery guns. The assault was so fierce that out of the actual attackers—a true last stand, if ever there was one—fifty-three of the eighty were killed or wounded, with twenty-five killed and twenty-eight wounded. Several courageous officers, who had been the backbone of the defense, were among the injured. Captain FitzClarence was wounded, while Vernon, Sandford, and Paton were killed, all right in front of the enemy's guns. It must have been one of the most heartbreaking moments of Baden-Powell's life when he closed his field-glass and said, 'Let the ambulance go out!'

Even this heavy blow did not damp the spirits nor diminish the energies of the defence, though it must have warned Baden-Powell that he could not afford to drain his small force by any more expensive attempts at the offensive, and that from then onwards he must content himself by holding grimly on until Plumer from the north or Methuen from the south should at last be able to stretch out to him a helping hand. Vigilant and indomitable, throwing away no possible point in the game which he was playing, the new year found him and his hardy garrison sternly determined to keep the flag flying.

Even this heavy blow didn’t dampen the spirits or reduce the energy of the defense, although it must have warned Baden-Powell that he couldn’t afford to wear down his small force with any more costly attempts at offense. From then on, he had to accept that his best strategy was to hold on firmly until Plumer from the north or Methuen from the south could finally offer him some help. Vigilant and unyielding, leaving no potential opportunity in the game he was playing, the new year found him and his tough garrison resolutely committed to keeping the flag flying.

January and February offer in their records that monotony of excitement which is the fate of every besieged town. On one day the shelling was a little more, on another a little less. Sometimes they escaped scatheless, sometimes the garrison found itself the poorer by the loss of Captain Girdwood or Trooper Webb or some other gallant soldier. Occasionally they had their little triumph when a too curious Dutchman, peering for an instant from his cover to see the effect of his shot, was carried back in the ambulance to the laager. On Sunday a truce was usually observed, and the snipers who had exchanged rifle-shots all the week met occasionally on that day with good-humoured chaff. Snyman, the Boer General, showed none of that chivalry at Mafeking which distinguished the gallant old Joubert at Ladysmith. Not only was there no neutral camp for women or sick, but it is beyond all doubt or question that the Boer guns were deliberately turned upon the women's quarters inside Mafeking in order to bring pressure upon the inhabitants. Many women and children were sacrificed to this brutal policy, which must in fairness be set to the account of the savage leader, and not of the rough but kindly folk with whom we were fighting. In every race there are individual ruffians, and it would be a political mistake to allow our action to be influenced or our feelings permanently embittered by their crimes. It is from the man himself, and not from his country, that an account should be exacted.

January and February show in their records that relentless cycle of tension that every besieged town faces. One day the shelling was a bit heavier, the next a little lighter. Sometimes they came through unscathed, while other times the garrison mourned the loss of Captain Girdwood or Trooper Webb or other brave soldiers. Occasionally, they had their small victories when a overly curious Dutchman, peeking out from his hiding spot to check the impact of his shot, was carried back in an ambulance to the camp. On Sundays, a truce was usually observed, and the snipers who exchanged gunfire all week would occasionally meet that day with light-hearted banter. Snyman, the Boer General, showed none of the chivalry at Mafeking that the brave old Joubert displayed at Ladysmith. Not only was there no neutral camp for women or the sick, but it's beyond question that the Boer guns were intentionally aimed at the women’s quarters inside Mafeking to apply pressure on the residents. Many women and children were victims of this brutal strategy, which should fairly be attributed to the savage leader, and not to the rough but kind people we were fighting against. In every group, there are individual criminals, and it would be a political mistake to let our actions be influenced or our feelings permanently soured by their crimes. Accountability should come from the individual and not from their nation.

The garrison, in the face of increasing losses and decreasing food, lost none of the high spirits which it reflected from its commander. The programme of a single day of jubilee—Heaven only knows what they had to hold jubilee over—shows a cricket match in the morning, sports in the afternoon, a concert in the evening, and a dance, given by the bachelor officers, to wind up. Baden-Powell himself seems to have descended from the eyrie from which, like a captain on the bridge, he rang bells and telephoned orders, to bring the house down with a comic song and a humorous recitation. The ball went admirably, save that there was an interval to repel an attack which disarranged the programme. Sports were zealously cultivated, and the grimy inhabitants of casemates and trenches were pitted against each other at cricket or football. [Footnote: Sunday cricket so shocked Snyman that he threatened to fire upon it if it were continued.] The monotony was broken by the occasional visits of a postman, who appeared or vanished from the vast barren lands to the west of the town, which could not all be guarded by the besiegers. Sometimes a few words from home came to cheer the hearts of the exiles, and could be returned by the same uncertain and expensive means. The documents which found their way up were not always of an essential or even of a welcome character. At least one man received an unpaid bill from an angry tailor.

The garrison, despite facing increasing losses and dwindling food supplies, maintained the high spirits it drew from its commander. The schedule for a single day of celebration—Heaven only knows what they had to celebrate—included a cricket match in the morning, sports in the afternoon, a concert in the evening, and a dance hosted by the bachelor officers to finish off the night. Baden-Powell himself seemed to have come down from his perch, like a captain at the helm, ringing bells and making phone calls, to entertain everyone with a funny song and a humorous reading. The ball went remarkably well, except for a break to fend off an attack that disrupted the plans. Sports were enthusiastically encouraged, and the dirty residents of the bunkers and trenches competed against each other in cricket and football. [Footnote: Sunday cricket so shocked Snyman that he threatened to shoot at it if it continued.] The routine was occasionally broken by the visits of a postman, who would appear or disappear from the vast empty lands to the west of the town, which couldn’t all be watched by the besiegers. Sometimes a few words from home would uplift the spirits of the exiles and could be sent back through the same uncertain and costly methods. The letters that managed to make their way up were not always necessary or even welcome. At least one man received an unpaid bill from an angry tailor.

In one particular Mafeking had, with much smaller resources, rivalled Kimberley. An ordnance factory had been started, formed in the railway workshops, and conducted by Connely and Cloughlan, of the Locomotive Department. Daniels, of the police, supplemented their efforts by making both powder and fuses. The factory turned out shells, and eventually constructed a 5.5-inch smooth-bore gun, which threw a round shell with great accuracy to a considerable range. April found the garrison, in spite of all losses, as efficient and as resolute as it had been in October. So close were the advanced trenches upon either side that both parties had recourse to the old-fashioned hand grenades, thrown by the Boers, and cast on a fishing-line by ingenious Sergeant Page, of the Protectorate Regiment. Sometimes the besiegers and the number of guns diminished, forces being detached to prevent the advance of Plumer's relieving column from the north; but as those who remained held their forts, which it was beyond the power of the British to storm, the garrison was now much the better for the alleviation. Putting Mafeking for Ladysmith and Plumer for Buller, the situation was not unlike that which had existed in Natal.

In Mafeking, with much fewer resources, they managed to compete with Kimberley. An ordnance factory was set up in the railway workshops, run by Connely and Cloughlan from the Locomotive Department. Daniels from the police helped out by making both powder and fuses. The factory produced shells and eventually built a 5.5-inch smooth-bore gun that could accurately launch a round shell over a considerable distance. By April, the garrison, despite all its losses, was just as efficient and determined as it had been in October. The trenches were so close on either side that both sides resorted to using old-fashioned hand grenades, thrown by the Boers and ingeniously cast on a fishing line by Sergeant Page of the Protectorate Regiment. Sometimes the besiegers and their artillery numbers dwindled because troops were sent out to block Plumer's relief column coming from the north; however, those who stayed held their positions, which the British couldn't storm, so the garrison benefitted from this relief. If you replace Mafeking with Ladysmith and Plumer with Buller, the situation was quite similar to what had happened in Natal.

At this point some account might be given of the doings of that northern force whose situation was so remote that even the ubiquitous correspondent hardly appears to have reached it. No doubt the book will eventually make up for the neglect of the journal, but some short facts may be given here of the Rhodesian column. Their action did not affect the course of the war, but they clung like bulldogs to a most difficult task, and eventually, when strengthened by the relieving column, made their way to Mafeking.

At this point, it might be worth mentioning the activities of that northern force, which was so far away that even the all-seeing correspondent barely seems to have gotten there. No doubt the book will eventually cover what the journal missed, but here are a few quick facts about the Rhodesian column. Their efforts didn't change the outcome of the war, but they held on like bulldogs to a really tough challenge and, eventually, when reinforced by the relieving column, managed to reach Mafeking.

The force was originally raised for the purpose of defending Rhodesia, and it consisted of fine material pioneers, farmers, and miners from the great new land which had been added through the energy of Mr. Rhodes to the British Empire. Many of the men were veterans of the native wars, and all were imbued with a hardy and adventurous spirit. On the other hand, the men of the northern and western Transvaal, whom they were called upon to face the burghers of Watersberg and Zoutpansberg, were tough frontiersmen living in a land where a dinner was shot, not bought. Shaggy, hairy, half-savage men, handling a rifle as a mediaeval Englishman handled a bow, and skilled in every wile of veld craft, they were as formidable opponents as the world could show.

The force was initially formed to defend Rhodesia and was made up of skilled pioneers, farmers, and miners from the vast new land that Mr. Rhodes had added to the British Empire. Many of these men were veterans of the native wars, all filled with a resilient and adventurous spirit. On the flipside, the men from the northern and western Transvaal, who were called to confront the burghers of Watersberg and Zoutpansberg, were tough frontiersmen living in a place where dinner was hunted rather than purchased. Rugged, unkempt, and nearly wild, these men wielded rifles like medieval Englishmen wielded bows and were well-versed in the tricks of the veld. They were as formidable opponents as anyone could be.

On the war breaking out the first thought of the leaders in Rhodesia was to save as much of the line which was their connection through Mafeking with the south as was possible. For this purpose an armoured train was despatched only three days after the expiration of the ultimatum to the point four hundred miles south of Bulawayo, where the frontiers of the Transvaal and of Bechuanaland join. Colonel Holdsworth commanded the small British force. The Boers, a thousand or so in number, had descended upon the railway, and an action followed in which the train appears to have had better luck than has usually attended these ill-fated contrivances. The Boer commando was driven back and a number were killed. It was probably news of this affair, and not anything which had occurred at Mafeking, which caused those rumours of gloom at Pretoria very shortly after the outbreak of hostilities. An agency telegraphed that women were weeping in the streets of the Boer capital. We had not then realised how soon and how often we should see the same sight in Pall Mall.

When the war broke out, the first thought of the leaders in Rhodesia was to save as much of the railway line that connected them through Mafeking with the south as possible. For this purpose, an armored train was sent out just three days after the ultimatum expired, heading to a point four hundred miles south of Bulawayo, where the borders of the Transvaal and Bechuanaland meet. Colonel Holdsworth led the small British force. The Boers, around a thousand in number, had moved in on the railway, resulting in a confrontation where the train seemed to have better luck than usually expected for these unfortunate vehicles. The Boer commando was pushed back, and several were killed. It was likely news of this incident, rather than anything that happened at Mafeking, that led to the gloomy rumors in Pretoria soon after hostilities began. A news agency reported that women were crying in the streets of the Boer capital. Little did we know how soon and how often we would witness the same scene in Pall Mall.

The adventurous armoured train pressed on as far as Lobatsi, where it found the bridges destroyed; so it returned to its original position, having another brush with the Boer commandos, and again, in some marvellous way, escaping its obvious fate. From then until the new year the line was kept open by an admirable system of patrolling to within a hundred miles or so of Mafeking. An aggressive spirit and a power of dashing initiative were shown in the British operations at this side of the scene of war such as have too often been absent elsewhere. At Sekwani, on November 24th, a considerable success was gained by a surprise planned and carried out by Colonel Holdsworth. The Boer laager was approached and attacked in the early morning by a force of one hundred and twenty frontiersmen, and so effective was their fire that the Boers estimated their numbers at several thousand. Thirty Boers were killed or wounded, and the rest scattered.

The adventurous armored train continued on to Lobatsi, where it found the bridges destroyed; so it returned to its original position, having another encounter with the Boer commandos, and once again, in some remarkable way, avoided its obvious fate. From then until the new year, the line was kept open by an excellent system of patrolling to about a hundred miles near Mafeking. A bold spirit and a knack for taking initiative were displayed in the British operations on this side of the battlefield, which have often been lacking elsewhere. At Sekwani, on November 24th, a significant success was achieved through a surprise planned and executed by Colonel Holdsworth. A group of one hundred and twenty frontiersmen approached and attacked the Boer camp in the early morning, and their fire was so effective that the Boers estimated their numbers to be in the thousands. Thirty Boers were killed or wounded, and the rest scattered.

While the railway line was held in this way there had been some skirmishing also on the northern frontier of the Transvaal. Shortly after the outbreak of the war the gallant Blackburn, scouting with six comrades in thick bush, found himself in the presence of a considerable commando. The British concealed themselves by the path, but Blackburn's foot was seen by a keen-eyed Kaffir, who pointed it out to his masters. A sudden volley riddled Blackburn with bullets; but his men stayed by him and drove off the enemy. Blackburn dictated an official report of the action, and then died.

While the railway line was secured, there had been some fighting on the northern border of the Transvaal. Shortly after the war began, the brave Blackburn, scouting with six comrades in dense bushes, found himself face-to-face with a significant enemy force. The British hid along the path, but a sharp-eyed local spotted Blackburn's foot and alerted his leaders. A sudden burst of gunfire hit Blackburn with bullets; however, his men stood by him and drove the enemy away. Blackburn dictated an official report about the encounter and then passed away.

In the same region a small force under Captain Hare was cut off by a body of Boers. Of the twenty men most got away, but the chaplain J.W. Leary, Lieutenant Haserick (who behaved with admirable gallantry), and six men were taken. [Footnote: Mr. Leary was wounded in the foot by a shell. The German artillerist entered the hut in which he lay. 'Here's a bit of your work!' said Leary good-humouredly. 'I wish it had been worse,' said the amiable German gunner.] The commando which attacked this party, and on the same day Colonel Spreckley's force, was a powerful one, with several guns. No doubt it was organised because there were fears among the Boers that they would be invaded from the north. When it was understood that the British intended no large aggressive movement in that quarter, these burghers joined other commandos. Sarel Eloff, who was one of the leaders of this northern force, was afterwards taken at Mafeking.

In the same area, a small team led by Captain Hare was surrounded by a group of Boers. Of the twenty men, most managed to escape, but Chaplain J.W. Leary, Lieutenant Haserick (who showed incredible bravery), and six others were captured. [Footnote: Mr. Leary was injured in the foot by shrapnel. The German artilleryman entered the hut where he was resting. 'Here's a bit of your work!' Leary said good-naturedly. 'I wish it had been worse,' replied the friendly German gunner.] The commando that attacked this group, as well as Colonel Spreckley's force the same day, was quite strong, equipped with several cannons. It was likely organized due to concerns among the Boers about a possible invasion from the north. Once it became clear that the British had no plans for a large offensive in that area, these burghers aligned with other commandos. Sarel Eloff, one of the leaders of this northern force, was later captured at Mafeking.

Colonel Plumer had taken command of the small army which was now operating from the north along the railway line with Mafeking for its objective. Plumer is an officer of considerable experience in African warfare, a small, quiet, resolute man, with a knack of gently enforcing discipline upon the very rough material with which he had to deal. With his weak force—which never exceeded a thousand men, and was usually from six to seven hundred—he had to keep the long line behind him open, build up the ruined railway in front of him, and gradually creep onwards in face of a formidable and enterprising enemy. For a long time Gaberones, which is eighty miles north of Mafeking, remained his headquarters, and thence he kept up precarious communications with the besieged garrison. In the middle of March he advanced as far south as Lobatsi, which is less than fifty miles from Mafeking; but the enemy proved to be too strong, and Plumer had to drop back again with some loss to his original position at Gaberones. Sticking doggedly to his task, Plumer again came south, and this time made his way as far as Ramathlabama, within a day's march of Mafeking. He had with him, however, only three hundred and fifty men, and had he pushed through the effect might have been an addition of hungry men to the garrison. The relieving force was fiercely attacked, however, by the Boers and driven back on to their camp with a loss of twelve killed, twenty-six wounded, and fourteen missing. Some of the British were dismounted men, and it says much for Plumer's conduct of the fight that he was able to extricate these safely from the midst of an aggressive mounted enemy. Personally he set an admirable example, sending away his own horse, and walking with his rearmost soldiers. Captain Crewe Robertson and Lieutenant Milligan, the famous Yorkshire cricketer, were killed, and Rolt, Jarvis, Maclaren, and Plumer himself were wounded. The Rhodesian force withdrew again to near Lobatsi, and collected itself for yet another effort.

Colonel Plumer was in charge of the small army now moving south along the railway line, aiming for Mafeking. Plumer was an experienced officer in African warfare—a small, quiet, determined man who had a talent for gently enforcing discipline among the rough troops he commanded. With his limited forces, which never exceeded a thousand men and usually numbered between six and seven hundred, he needed to keep the long supply line open behind him, repair the damaged railway ahead of him, and slowly advance against a strong and resourceful enemy. For a long while, Gaberones, located eighty miles north of Mafeking, served as his headquarters, from where he maintained fragile communication with the besieged garrison. In mid-March, he advanced to Lobatsi, just under fifty miles from Mafeking; however, the enemy was too strong, forcing Plumer to retreat with some losses back to Gaberones. Sticking steadfastly to his mission, Plumer came south again, reaching as far as Ramathlabama, only a day's march from Mafeking. He only had three hundred and fifty men with him, and if he had pushed through, it might have added more hungry soldiers to the garrison. The relieving force faced a fierce attack from the Boers and was pushed back to their camp, suffering twelve killed, twenty-six wounded, and fourteen missing. Some of the British troops were dismounted, and it speaks volumes about Plumer's leadership that he managed to safely extract them from a hostile mounted enemy. He personally set a great example by sending away his own horse and walking alongside his rear soldiers. Captain Crewe Robertson and Lieutenant Milligan, the well-known Yorkshire cricketer, were killed, and Rolt, Jarvis, Maclaren, and Plumer himself sustained injuries. The Rhodesian force withdrew again to near Lobatsi, regrouping for yet another attempt.

In the meantime Mafeking—abandoned, as it seemed, to its fate—was still as formidable as a wounded lion. Far from weakening in its defence it became more aggressive, and so persistent and skilful were its riflemen that the big Boer gun had again and again to be moved further from the town. Six months of trenches and rifle-pits had turned every inhabitant into a veteran. Now and then words of praise and encouragement came to them from without. Once it was a special message from the Queen, once a promise of relief from Lord Roberts. But the rails which led to England were overgrown with grass, and their brave hearts yearned for the sight of their countrymen and for the sound of their voices. 'How long, O Lord, how long?' was the cry which was wrung from them in their solitude. But the flag was still held high.

In the meantime, Mafeking—seemingly abandoned to its fate—was still as formidable as a wounded lion. Rather than weakening in its defense, it became more aggressive, and the skill and persistence of its riflemen forced the big Boer gun to be moved further away from the town time and time again. Six months of trenches and rifle-pits had turned every resident into a veteran. Every now and then, they received words of praise and encouragement from the outside. Once it was a special message from the Queen, and another time a promise of relief from Lord Roberts. But the rails leading to England were overgrown with grass, and their brave hearts longed for the sight of their countrymen and the sound of their voices. "How long, O Lord, how long?" was the cry that escaped them in their solitude. Yet, the flag remained held high.

April was a trying month for the defence. They knew that Methuen, who had advanced as far as Fourteen Streams upon the Vaal River, had retired again upon Kimberley. They knew also that Plumer's force had been weakened by the repulse at Ramathlabama, and that many of his men were down with fever. Six weary months had this village withstood the pitiless pelt of rifle bullet and shell. Help seemed as far away from them as ever. But if troubles may be allayed by sympathy, then theirs should have lain lightly. The attention of the whole empire had centred upon them, and even the advance of Roberts's army became secondary to the fate of this gallant struggling handful of men who had upheld the flag so long. On the Continent also their resistance attracted the utmost interest, and the numerous journals there who find the imaginative writer cheaper than the war correspondent announced their capture periodically as they had once done that of Ladysmith. From a mere tin-roofed village Mafeking had become a prize of victory, a stake which should be the visible sign of the predominating manhood of one or other of the great white races of South Africa. Unconscious of the keenness of the emotions which they had aroused, the garrison manufactured brawn from horsehide, and captured locusts as a relish for their luncheons, while in the shot-torn billiard-room of the club an open tournament was started to fill in their hours off duty. But their vigilance, and that of the hawk-eyed man up in the Conning Tower, never relaxed. The besiegers had increased in number, and their guns were more numerous than before. A less acute man than Baden-Powell might have reasoned that at least one desperate effort would be made by them to carry the town before relief could come.

April was a tough month for the defense. They knew that Methuen, who had pushed as far as Fourteen Streams on the Vaal River, had retreated back to Kimberley. They also knew that Plumer's forces had been weakened by the setback at Ramathlabama, and many of his men were down with fever. This village had endured six long months of relentless rifle fire and shelling. Help seemed as far away as ever. But if troubles could be eased by sympathy, then theirs should have felt light. The entire empire’s attention was on them, and even the advance of Roberts’s army took a backseat to the fate of this brave, struggling group of men who had upheld the flag for so long. Their resistance also attracted considerable interest abroad, with many European journals, which preferred imaginative writers over war correspondents, announcing their capture periodically as they had once done with Ladysmith. From a simple tin-roofed village, Mafeking had become a symbol of victory, a prize representing the superiority of one of the major white races in South Africa. Unaware of the strong emotions they had stirred, the garrison made brawn from horsehide and caught locusts as a snack for their lunches, while in the bullet-riddled billiard room of the club, they started an open tournament to pass the time during their off hours. However, their vigilance, and that of the sharp-eyed man in the Conning Tower, never wavered. The besieging forces had grown in number, and they had more guns than before. A less astute person than Baden-Powell might have concluded that at least one desperate attempt would be made by them to capture the town before help arrived.

On Saturday, May 12th, the attack was made at the favourite hour of the Boer—the first grey of the morning. It was gallantly delivered by about three hundred volunteers under the command of Eloff, who had crept round to the west of the town—the side furthest from the lines of the besiegers. At the first rush they penetrated into the native quarter, which was at once set on fire by them. The first building of any size upon that side is the barracks of the Protectorate Regiment, which was held by Colonel Hore and about twenty of his officers and men. This was carried by the enemy, who sent an exultant message along the telephone to Baden-Powell to tell him that they had got it. Two other positions within the lines, one a stone kraal and the other a hill, were held by the Boers, but their supports were slow in coming on, and the movements of the defenders were so prompt and energetic that all three found themselves isolated and cut off from their own lines. They had penetrated the town, but they were as far as ever from having taken it. All day the British forces drew their cordon closer and closer round the Boer positions, making no attempt to rush them, but ringing them round in such a way that there could be no escape for them. A few burghers slipped away in twos and threes, but the main body found that they had rushed into a prison from which the only egress was swept with rifle fire. At seven o'clock in the evening they recognised that their position was hopeless, and Eloff with 117 men laid down their arms. Their losses had been ten killed and nineteen wounded. For some reason, either of lethargy, cowardice, or treachery, Snyman had not brought up the supports which might conceivably have altered the result. It was a gallant attack gallantly met, and for once the greater wiliness in fight was shown by the British. The end was characteristic. 'Good evening, Commandant,' said Powell to Eloff; 'won't you come in and have some dinner?' The prisoners—burghers, Hollanders, Germans, and Frenchmen—were treated to as good a supper as the destitute larders of the town could furnish.

On Saturday, May 12th, the attack happened at the Boer’s favorite time—the first light of dawn. It was boldly executed by about three hundred volunteers led by Eloff, who had snuck around to the west side of the town—the side farthest from the besiegers' lines. At the initial assault, they broke into the native quarter, which they immediately set on fire. The first significant building on that side was the barracks of the Protectorate Regiment, held by Colonel Hore and about twenty of his officers and men. The enemy took it and sent an excited message via telephone to Baden-Powell, informing him of their success. The Boers also held two other positions within the lines, one being a stone kraal and the other a hill, but their reinforcements were slow to arrive. The defenders acted quickly and energetically, leaving all three positions isolated and cut off from their own lines. They had entered the town, but they were still far from taking control of it. All day, the British forces tightened their grip around the Boer positions, making no effort to rush them but encircling them in such a way that escape was impossible. A few burghers managed to slip away in pairs or small groups, but the main force realized they had rushed into a trap where the only exit was under heavy fire. By seven in the evening, they understood that their situation was hopeless, and Eloff, along with 117 men, surrendered. They suffered ten killed and nineteen wounded. For some unexplained reason—whether it was lethargy, cowardice, or betrayal—Snyman had failed to bring up the reinforcements that could have changed the outcome. It was a brave attack met with bravery in return, and for once, the British displayed greater cunning in battle. The ending was typical. "Good evening, Commandant," Powell said to Eloff; "care to come in for some dinner?" The captured men—burghers, Dutchmen, Germans, and Frenchmen—were given the best supper the town's empty kitchens could provide.

So in a small blaze of glory ended the historic siege of Mafeking, for Eloff's attack was the last, though by no means the worst of the trials which the garrison had to face. Six killed and ten wounded were the British losses in this admirably managed affair. On May 17th, five days after the fight, the relieving force arrived, the besiegers were scattered, and the long-imprisoned garrison were free men once more. Many who had looked at their maps and saw this post isolated in the very heart of Africa had despaired of ever reaching their heroic fellow-countrymen, and now one universal outbreak of joybells and bonfires from Toronto to Melbourne proclaimed that there is no spot so inaccessible that the long arm of the empire cannot reach it when her children are in peril.

So, in a brief moment of celebration, the historic siege of Mafeking came to an end. Eloff's attack was the last, though definitely not the worst challenge the garrison faced. The British suffered six fatalities and ten injuries in this well-executed encounter. On May 17th, five days after the battle, the relief force arrived, the attackers were scattered, and the long-imprisoned garrison members were free once more. Many who had studied their maps saw this outpost isolated in the heart of Africa and had given up hope of ever reaching their brave fellow countrymen. Now, a wave of joy spread from Toronto to Melbourne, with bells ringing and bonfires blazing, announcing that no place is too remote for the empire to reach when its people are in danger.

Colonel Mahon, a young Irish officer who had made his reputation as a cavalry leader in Egypt, had started early in May from Kimberley with a small but mobile force consisting of the Imperial Light Horse (brought round from Natal for the purpose), the Kimberley Mounted Corps, the Diamond Fields Horse, some Imperial Yeomanry, a detachment of the Cape Police, and 100 volunteers from the Fusilier brigade, with M battery R.H.A. and pom-poms, twelve hundred men in all. Whilst Hunter was fighting his action at Rooidam on May 4th, Mahon with his men struck round the western flank of the Boers and moved rapidly to the northwards. On May 11th they had left Vryburg, the halfway house, behind them, having done one hundred and twenty miles in five days. They pushed on, encountering no opposition save that of nature, though they knew that they were being closely watched by the enemy. At Koodoosrand it was found that a Boer force was in position in front, but Mahon avoided them by turning somewhat to the westward. His detour took him, however, into a bushy country, and here the enemy headed him off, opening fire at short range upon the ubiquitous Imperial Light Horse, who led the column. A short engagement ensued, in which the casualties amounted to thirty killed and wounded, but which ended in the defeat and dispersal of the Boers, whose force was certainly very much weaker than the British. On May 15th the relieving column arrived without further opposition at Masibi Stadt, twenty miles to the west of Mafeking.

Colonel Mahon, a young Irish officer who had earned his reputation as a cavalry leader in Egypt, set out in early May from Kimberley with a small but agile force made up of the Imperial Light Horse (brought over from Natal for this purpose), the Kimberley Mounted Corps, the Diamond Fields Horse, some Imperial Yeomanry, a detachment of the Cape Police, and 100 volunteers from the Fusilier brigade, along with M battery R.H.A. and pom-poms, totaling twelve hundred men. While Hunter was engaged in battle at Rooidam on May 4th, Mahon and his men maneuvered around the western flank of the Boers and moved quickly northward. By May 11th, they had passed Vryburg, the halfway point, having traveled one hundred and twenty miles in five days. They continued on, facing no resistance except from the elements, even though they knew the enemy was closely monitoring them. At Koodoosrand, it was discovered that a Boer force was positioned ahead, but Mahon skirted them by turning slightly west. This detour led him into a bushy area, where the enemy cut him off, opening fire at close range on the ever-present Imperial Light Horse that was leading the column. A brief engagement followed, resulting in thirty casualties among the killed and wounded, but it concluded with the defeat and scattering of the Boers, who were certainly much weaker than the British. On May 15th, the relieving column arrived at Masibi Stadt, twenty miles west of Mafeking, without facing any further opposition.

In the meantime Plumer's force upon the north had been strengthened by the addition of C battery of four 12-pounder guns of the Canadian Artillery under Major Eudon and a body of Queenslanders. These forces had been part of the small army which had come with General Carrington through Beira, and after a detour of thousands of miles, through their own wonderful energy they had arrived in time to form portion of the relieving column. Foreign military critics, whose experience of warfare is to move troops across a frontier, should think of what the Empire has to do before her men go into battle. These contingents had been assembled by long railway journeys, conveyed across thousands of miles of ocean to Cape Town, brought round another two thousand or so to Beira, transferred by a narrow-gauge railway to Bamboo Creek, changed to a broader gauge to Marandellas, sent on in coaches for hundreds of miles to Bulawayo, transferred to trains for another four or five hundred miles to Ootsi, and had finally a forced march of a hundred miles, which brought them up a few hours before their presence was urgently needed upon the field. Their advance, which averaged twenty-five miles a day on foot for four consecutive days over deplorable roads, was one of the finest performances of the war. With these high-spirited reinforcements and with his own hardy Rhodesians Plumer pushed on, and the two columns reached the hamlet of Masibi Stadt within an hour of each other. Their united strength was far superior to anything which Snyman's force could place against them.

In the meantime, Plumer's force in the north was boosted by the addition of C Battery, which included four 12-pounder guns from the Canadian Artillery under Major Eudon, along with a group of Queenslanders. These troops had been part of the small army that traveled with General Carrington through Beira, and after a detour of thousands of miles, they managed to arrive just in time to join the relieving column. Foreign military experts, who usually only think about moving troops across borders, should consider what the Empire has to do before sending its men into battle. These units were gathered through long train journeys, shipped across thousands of miles of ocean to Cape Town, transported another couple of thousand miles to Beira, transferred via a narrow-gauge railway to Bamboo Creek, switched to a broader gauge for Marandellas, sent by coaches for hundreds of miles to Bulawayo, put onto trains for another four or five hundred miles to Ootsi, and finally took a forced march of a hundred miles, arriving just hours before their presence was urgently needed on the battlefield. Their advance, which averaged twenty-five miles a day on foot for four straight days over terrible roads, was one of the best achievements of the war. With these spirited reinforcements and his own tough Rhodesians, Plumer pressed on, and both columns reached the hamlet of Masibi Stadt within an hour of each other. Their combined strength was far greater than anything Snyman's force could oppose.

But the gallant and tenacious Boers would not abandon their prey without a last effort. As the little army advanced upon Mafeking they found the enemy waiting in a strong position. For some hours the Boers gallantly held their ground, and their artillery fire was, as usual, most accurate. But our own guns were more numerous and equally well served, and the position was soon made untenable. The Boers retired past Mafeking and took refuge in the trenches upon the eastern side, but Baden-Powell with his war-hardened garrison sallied out, and, supported by the artillery fire of the relieving column, drove them from their shelter. With their usual admirable tactics their larger guns had been removed, but one small cannon was secured as a souvenir by the townsfolk, together with a number of wagons and a considerable quantity of supplies. A long rolling trail of dust upon the eastern horizon told that the famous siege of Mafeking had at last come to an end.

But the brave and determined Boers wouldn’t give up their target without one last push. As the small army moved toward Mafeking, they found the enemy waiting in a strong position. For several hours, the Boers bravely held their ground, and their artillery was, as always, very accurate. However, our own guns were more numerous and just as well managed, making the position unsustainable. The Boers retreated past Mafeking and took cover in the trenches on the eastern side, but Baden-Powell and his battle-hardened troops charged out, and with the support of the artillery fire from the relief column, pushed them from their shelter. True to their remarkable strategy, the larger guns had been moved, but the townspeople secured one small cannon as a souvenir, along with several wagons and a good amount of supplies. A long, rolling cloud of dust on the eastern horizon indicated that the famous siege of Mafeking had finally come to an end.

So ended a singular incident, the defence of an open town which contained no regular soldiers and a most inadequate artillery against a numerous and enterprising enemy with very heavy guns. All honour to the towns folk who bore their trial so long and so bravely—and to the indomitable men who lined the trenches for seven weary months. Their constancy was of enormous value to the empire. In the all-important early month at least four or five thousand Boers were detained by them when their presence elsewhere would have been fatal. During all the rest of the war, two thousand men and eight guns (including one of the four big Creusots) had been held there. It prevented the invasion of Rhodesia, and it gave a rallying-point for loyal whites and natives in the huge stretch of country from Kimberley to Bulawayo. All this had, at a cost of two hundred lives, been done by this one devoted band of men, who killed, wounded, or took no fewer than one thousand of their opponents. Critics may say that the enthusiasm in the empire was excessive, but at least it was expended over worthy men and a fine deed of arms.

So ended a unique event, the defense of an open town that had no regular soldiers and very limited artillery against a large and determined enemy with powerful guns. Much respect to the townspeople who endured their hardship so long and so bravely—and to the tireless men who stood in the trenches for seven grueling months. Their perseverance was incredibly valuable to the empire. During that critical early month, they held back at least four or five thousand Boers when their presence elsewhere could have been disastrous. For the remainder of the war, two thousand men and eight guns (including one of the four large Creusots) were contained there. This thwarted the invasion of Rhodesia and provided a rallying point for loyal whites and natives across the vast area from Kimberley to Bulawayo. All of this was accomplished at the cost of two hundred lives by this dedicated group of men, who either killed, wounded, or captured no fewer than one thousand of their opponents. Critics may argue that the enthusiasm in the empire was excessive, but at least it was directed towards deserving individuals and a remarkable act of valor.





4_southern_transvaal (147K)

CHAPTER 25. THE MARCH ON PRETORIA.

In the early days of May, when the season of the rains was past and the veld was green, Lord Roberts's six weeks of enforced inaction came to an end. He had gathered himself once more for one of those tiger springs which should be as sure and as irresistible as that which had brought him from Belmont to Bloemfontein, or that other in olden days which had carried him from Cabul to Candahar. His army had been decimated by sickness, and eight thousand men had passed into the hospitals; but those who were with the colours were of high heart, longing eagerly for action. Any change which would carry them away from the pest-ridden, evil-smelling capital which had revenged itself so terribly upon the invader must be a change for the better. Therefore it was with glad faces and brisk feet that the centre column left Bloemfontein on May 1st, and streamed, with bands playing, along the northern road.

In early May, after the rainy season had ended and the fields were lush and green, Lord Roberts's six weeks of forced inactivity came to a close. He had readied himself once again for one of those powerful advances that should be as certain and unstoppable as the one that had taken him from Belmont to Bloemfontein, or that earlier one that had moved him from Cabul to Candahar. His army had been weakened by illness, with eight thousand men sent to the hospitals; however, those who remained were spirited and eager for action. Any change that would take them away from the disease-ridden, foul-smelling capital that had exacted such a heavy toll on the invader had to be for the better. So, with happy faces and quick steps, the main column left Bloemfontein on May 1st, heading out along the northern road with bands playing.

On May 3rd the main force was assembled at Karee, twenty miles upon their way. Two hundred and twenty separated them from Pretoria, but in little more than a month from the day of starting, in spite of broken railway, a succession of rivers, and the opposition of the enemy, this army was marching into the main street of the Transvaal capital. Had there been no enemy there at all, it would still have been a fine performance, the more so when one remembers that the army was moving upon a front of twenty miles or more, each part of which had to be co-ordinated to the rest. It is with the story of this great march that the present chapter deals.

On May 3rd, the main force gathered at Karee, twenty miles into their journey. They were two hundred and twenty miles away from Pretoria, but in just over a month from when they started, despite challenges like broken railways, a series of rivers, and enemy resistance, this army was marching into the main street of the Transvaal capital. Even if there had been no enemy present, it would still have been an impressive achievement, especially considering that the army was advancing along a twenty-mile front, with each part needing to work in sync with the others. This chapter focuses on the story of that remarkable march.

Roberts had prepared the way by clearing out the south-eastern corner of the State, and at the moment of his advance his forces covered a semicircular front of about forty miles, the right under Ian Hamilton near Thabanchu, and the left at Karee. This was the broad net which was to be swept from south to north across the Free State, gradually narrowing as it went. The conception was admirable, and appears to have been an adoption of the Boers' own strategy, which had in turn been borrowed from the Zulus. The solid centre could hold any force which faced it, while the mobile flanks, Hutton upon the left and Hamilton upon the right, could lap round and pin it, as Cronje was pinned at Paardeberg. It seems admirably simple when done upon a small scale. But when the scale is one of forty miles, since your front must be broad enough to envelop the front which is opposed to it, and when the scattered wings have to be fed with no railway line to help, it takes such a master of administrative detail as Lord Kitchener to bring the operations to complete success.

Roberts had set the stage by clearing out the southeast corner of the state, and at the time of his advance, his forces formed a semicircular front of about forty miles, with the right side under Ian Hamilton near Thabanchu, and the left at Karee. This was the wide net intended to be swept from south to north across the Free State, gradually narrowing as it progressed. The idea was excellent and seemed to be inspired by the Boers' own strategy, which had originally been taken from the Zulus. The solid center could withstand any force facing it, while the mobile flanks, Hutton on the left and Hamilton on the right, could encircle and trap it, just like Cronje was trapped at Paardeberg. It seems brilliantly simple when executed on a small scale. However, when the scale is forty miles, and your front must be broad enough to encompass the opposing front, while the scattered wings have to be sustained without any railway support, it requires a master of administrative detail like Lord Kitchener to achieve complete success in the operations.

On May 3rd, the day of the advance from our most northern post, Karee, the disposition of Lord Roberts's army was briefly as follows. On his left was Hutton, with his mixed force of mounted infantry drawn from every quarter of the empire. This formidable and mobile body, with some batteries of horse artillery and of pom-poms, kept a line a few miles to the west of the railroad, moving northwards parallel with it. Roberts's main column kept on the railroad, which was mended with extraordinary speed by the Railway Pioneer regiment and the Engineers, under Girouard and the ill-fated Seymour. It was amazing to note the shattered culverts as one passed, and yet to be overtaken by trains within a day. This main column consisted of Pole-Carew's 11th Division, which contained the Guards, and Stephenson's Brigade (Warwicks, Essex, Welsh, and Yorkshires). With them were the 83rd, 84th, and 85th R.F.A., with the heavy guns, and a small force of mounted infantry. Passing along the widespread British line one would then, after an interval of seven or eight miles, come upon Tucker's Division (the 7th), which consisted of Maxwell's Brigade (formerly Chermside's—the Norfolks, Lincolns, Hampshires, and Scottish Borderers) and Wavell's Brigade (North Staffords, Cheshires, East Lancashires, South Wales Borderers). To the right of these was Ridley's mounted infantry. Beyond them, extending over very many miles of country and with considerable spaces between, there came Broadwood's cavalry, Bruce Hamilton's Brigade (Derbyshires, Sussex, Camerons, and C.I.V.), and finally on the extreme right of all Ian Hamilton's force of Highlanders, Canadians, Shropshires, and Cornwalls, with cavalry and mounted infantry, starting forty miles from Lord Roberts, but edging westwards all the way, to merge with the troops next to it, and to occupy Winburg in the way already described. This was the army, between forty and fifty thousand strong, with which Lord Roberts advanced upon the Transvaal.

On May 3rd, the day we advanced from our northern post, Karee, Lord Roberts's army was organized as follows. On the left was Hutton, leading a mixed group of mounted infantry from all over the empire. This powerful and mobile unit, along with some horse artillery and pom-poms, maintained a line a few miles west of the railroad, moving north parallel to it. Roberts's main column stayed on the railroad, which was repaired incredibly quickly by the Railway Pioneer regiment and the Engineers, led by Girouard and the unfortunate Seymour. It was remarkable to see the destroyed culverts as you passed by, yet trains would catch up within a day. The main column included Pole-Carew's 11th Division, which featured the Guards, and Stephenson's Brigade (Warwicks, Essex, Welsh, and Yorkshires). They were accompanied by the 83rd, 84th, and 85th R.F.A. with heavy guns and a small group of mounted infantry. Continuing along the extensive British line, after about seven or eight miles, you'd find Tucker's Division (the 7th), which consisted of Maxwell's Brigade (formerly Chermside's—the Norfolks, Lincolns, Hampshires, and Scottish Borderers) and Wavell's Brigade (North Staffords, Cheshires, East Lancashires, South Wales Borderers). To the right of these was Ridley's mounted infantry. Beyond them, spread over many miles with significant gaps, were Broadwood's cavalry, Bruce Hamilton's Brigade (Derbyshires, Sussex, Camerons, and C.I.V.), and finally, on the far right, Ian Hamilton's force of Highlanders, Canadians, Shropshires, and Cornwalls, with cavalry and mounted infantry, starting forty miles from Lord Roberts but moving westward all the way to join the nearby troops and occupy Winburg as described earlier. This was the army, numbering between forty and fifty thousand, with which Lord Roberts advanced into the Transvaal.

In the meantime he had anticipated that his mobile and enterprising opponents would work round and strike at our rear. Ample means had been provided for dealing with any attempt of the kind. Rundle with the 8th Division and Brabant's Colonial Division remained in rear of the right flank to confront any force which might turn it. At Bloemfontein were Kelly-Kenny's Division (the 6th) and Chermside's (the 3rd), with a force of cavalry and guns. Methuen, working from Kimberley towards Boshof, formed the extreme left wing of the main advance, though distant a hundred miles from it. With excellent judgment Lord Roberts saw that it was on our right flank that danger was to be feared, and here it was that every precaution had been taken to meet it.

In the meantime, he had expected that his mobile and resourceful opponents would maneuver around and attack our rear. There were plenty of resources in place to handle any such attempts. Rundle and the 8th Division, along with Brabant's Colonial Division, stayed behind the right flank to face any forces that might try to flank us. At Bloemfontein, Kelly-Kenny's Division (the 6th) and Chermside's (the 3rd) were stationed, supported by a group of cavalry and artillery. Methuen, advancing from Kimberley towards Boshof, represented the far left wing of the main progress, although he was a hundred miles away from it. With great foresight, Lord Roberts recognized that our right flank posed the most risk, and every measure had been taken to address it.

The objective of the first day's march was the little town of Brandfort, ten miles north of Karee. The head of the main column faced it, while the left arm swept round and drove the Boer force from their position. Tucker's Division upon the right encountered some opposition, but overbore it with artillery. May 4th was a day of rest for the infantry, but on the 5th they advanced, in the same order as before, for twenty miles, and found themselves to the south of the Vet River, where the enemy had prepared for an energetic resistance. A vigorous artillery duel ensued, the British guns in the open as usual against an invisible enemy. After three hours of a very hot fire the mounted infantry got across the river upon the left and turned the Boer flank, on which they hastily withdrew. The first lodgment was effected by two bodies of Canadians and New Zealanders, who were energetically supported by Captain Anley's 3rd Mounted Infantry. The rushing of a kopje by twenty-three West Australians was another gallant incident which marked this engagement, in which our losses were insignificant. A maxim and twenty or thirty prisoners were taken by Hutton's men. The next day (May 6th) the army moved across the difficult drift of the Vet River, and halted that night at Smaldeel, some five miles to the north of it. At the same time Ian Hamilton had been able to advance to Winburg, so that the army had contracted its front by about half, but had preserved its relative positions. Hamilton, after his junction with his reinforcements at Jacobsrust, had under him so powerful a force that he overbore all resistance. His actions between Thabanchu and Winburg had cost the Boers heavy loss, and in one action the German legion had been overthrown. The informal warfare which was made upon us by citizens of many nations without rebuke from their own Governments is a matter of which pride, and possibly policy, have forbidden us to complain, but it will be surprising if it does not prove that their laxity has established a very dangerous precedent, and they will find it difficult to object when, in the next little war in which either France or Germany is engaged, they find a few hundred British adventurers carrying a rifle against them.

The goal of the first day’s march was the small town of Brandfort, ten miles north of Karee. The main column headed toward it while the left flank moved around and pushed the Boer forces from their position. Tucker’s Division on the right faced some resistance but overcame it with artillery. May 4th was a rest day for the infantry, but on the 5th they advanced in the same formation for twenty miles and found themselves south of the Vet River, where the enemy had set up for strong resistance. A fierce artillery battle followed, with British guns firing from the open against an unseen enemy. After three hours of intense fire, the mounted infantry crossed the river on the left and flanked the Boers, who quickly retreated. The first foothold was established by two groups of Canadians and New Zealanders, energetically supported by Captain Anley’s 3rd Mounted Infantry. The charge of a kopje by twenty-three West Australians was another brave moment in this battle, in which our losses were minimal. Hutton's troops captured a maxim gun and twenty or thirty prisoners. The next day (May 6th), the army crossed the challenging drift of the Vet River and camped that night at Smaldeel, about five miles to the north. At the same time, Ian Hamilton advanced to Winburg, allowing the army to tighten its front by about half while maintaining its relative positions. After joining forces with his reinforcements at Jacobsrust, Hamilton commanded a strong enough force to crush all resistance. His actions between Thabanchu and Winburg inflicted heavy losses on the Boers, and in one engagement, the German legion was defeated. The informal warfare waged against us by citizens from many nations, without protest from their own governments, is something we have been too proud, and possibly too strategic, to complain about. However, it will be surprising if this laxity doesn’t create a dangerous precedent, making it hard for them to object when, in the next minor conflict involving France or Germany, they encounter a few hundred British adventurers armed against them.

The record of the army's advance is now rather geographical than military, for it rolled northwards with never a check save that which was caused by the construction of the railway diversions which atoned for the destruction of the larger bridges. The infantry now, as always in the campaign, marched excellently; for though twenty miles in the day may seem a moderate allowance to a healthy man upon an English road, it is a considerable performance under an African sun with a weight of between thirty and forty pounds to be carried. The good humour of the men was admirable, and they eagerly longed to close with the elusive enemy who flitted ever in front of them. Huge clouds of smoke veiled the northern sky, for the Boers had set fire to the dry grass, partly to cover their own retreat, and partly to show up our khaki upon the blackened surface. Far on the flanks the twinkling heliographs revealed the position of the wide-spread wings.

The record of the army's advance is now more about geography than military strategy, as it moved north without any stops except for the railway diversions that were built to replace the larger bridges that were destroyed. The infantry, as always during the campaign, marched impressively; while walking twenty miles in a day might seem reasonable for a healthy person on an English road, it's a significant challenge under the African sun while carrying thirty to forty pounds. The soldiers remained in great spirits and were eager to engage the elusive enemy that kept staying just ahead of them. Massive clouds of smoke covered the northern sky since the Boers had set fire to the dry grass, partly to mask their retreat and partly to reveal our khaki against the blackened ground. In the distance, the flashing heliographs indicated the positions of the widely spread-out troops.

On May 10th Lord Roberts's force, which had halted for three days at Smaldeel, moved onwards to Welgelegen. French's cavalry had come up by road, and quickly strengthened the centre and left wing of the army. On the morning of the 10th the invaders found themselves confronted by a formidable position which the Boers had taken up on the northern bank of the Sand River. Their army extended over twenty miles of country, the two Bothas were in command, and everything pointed to a pitched battle. Had the position been rushed from the front, there was every material for a second Colenso, but the British had learned that it was by brains rather than by blood that such battles may be won. French's cavalry turned the Boers on one side, and Bruce Hamilton's infantry on the other. Theoretically we never passed the Boer flanks, but practically their line was so over-extended that we were able to pierce it at any point. There was never any severe fighting, but rather a steady advance upon the British side and a steady retirement upon that of the Boers. On the left the Sussex regiment distinguished itself by the dash with which it stormed an important kopje. The losses were slight, save among a detached body of cavalry which found itself suddenly cut off by a strong force of the enemy and lost Captain Elworthy killed, and Haig of the Inniskillings, Wilkinson of the Australian Horse, and twenty men prisoners. We also secured forty or fifty prisoners, and the enemy's casualties amounted to about as many more. The whole straggling action fought over a front as broad as from London to Woking cost the British at the most a couple of hundred casualties, and carried their army over the most formidable defensive position which they were to encounter. The war in its later phases certainly has the pleasing characteristic of being the most bloodless, considering the number of men engaged and the amount of powder burned, that has been known in history. It was at the expense of their boots and not of their lives that the infantry won their way.

On May 10th, Lord Roberts's force, which had stopped for three days at Smaldeel, continued on to Welgelegen. French's cavalry had arrived by road and quickly reinforced the center and left wing of the army. On the morning of the 10th, the invaders found themselves facing a strong position that the Boers had taken up on the northern bank of the Sand River. Their army stretched over twenty miles, led by the two Bothas, and everything indicated a potential battle. If the position had been attacked head-on, it could have turned into a repeat of Colenso, but the British had learned that such battles are won more through strategy than sheer force. French's cavalry flanked the Boers on one side, while Bruce Hamilton's infantry flanked them on the other. Theoretically, we never crossed the Boer flanks, but practically, their line was so stretched that we could break through at any point. There wasn’t any intense fighting; instead, there was a steady advance on the British side and a steady retreat on the Boer side. On the left, the Sussex regiment stood out with their bold assault on an important kopje. The losses were minor, except for a detached cavalry unit that was suddenly cut off by a strong enemy force, resulting in the death of Captain Elworthy and the capture of Haig from the Inniskillings, Wilkinson from the Australian Horse, and twenty men. We also captured about forty or fifty prisoners, while the enemy's casualties were roughly equal. The entire scattered action, which covered a distance as wide as from London to Woking, cost the British at most a couple of hundred casualties and moved their army past the most formidable defensive position they would face. The later stages of the war had the encouraging pattern of being relatively bloodless, given the number of troops involved and the amount of ammunition used, making it one of the least deadly in history. The infantry advanced at the expense of their boots, not their lives.

On May 11th Lord Roberts's army advanced twenty miles to Geneva Siding, and every preparation was made for a battle next day, as it was thought certain that the Boers would defend their new capital, Kroonstad. It proved, however, that even here they would not make a stand, and on May 12th, at one o'clock, Lord Roberts rode into the town. Steyn, Botha, and De Wet escaped, and it was announced that the village of Lindley had become the new seat of government. The British had now accomplished half their journey to Pretoria, and it was obvious that on the south side of the Vaal no serious resistance awaited them. Burghers were freely surrendering themselves with their arms, and returning to their farms. In the south-east Rundle and Brabant were slowly advancing, while the Boers who faced them fell back towards Lindley. On the west, Hunter had crossed the Vaal at Windsorton, and Barton's Fusilier Brigade had fought a sharp action at Rooidam, while Mahon's Mafeking relief column had slipped past their flank, escaping the observation of the British public, but certainly not that of the Boers. The casualties in the Rooidam action were nine killed and thirty wounded, but the advance of the Fusiliers was irresistible, and for once the Boer loss, as they were hustled from kopje to kopje, appears to have been greater than that of the British. The Yeomanry had an opportunity of showing once more that there are few more high-mettled troops in South Africa than these good sportsmen of the shires, who only showed a trace of their origin in their irresistible inclination to burst into a 'tally-ho!' when ordered to attack. The Boer forces fell back after the action along the line of the Vaal, making for Christiana and Bloemhof. Hunter entered into the Transvaal in pursuit of them, being the first to cross the border, with the exception of raiding Rhodesians early in the war. Methuen, in the meanwhile, was following a course parallel to Hunter but south of him, Hoopstad being his immediate objective. The little union jacks which were stuck in the war maps in so many British households were now moving swiftly upwards.

On May 11th, Lord Roberts's army moved twenty miles to Geneva Siding, and all preparations were made for a battle the next day, as it was believed the Boers would defend their new capital, Kroonstad. However, it turned out that even here they wouldn't stand their ground, and on May 12th, at one o'clock, Lord Roberts rode into the town. Steyn, Botha, and De Wet escaped, and it was announced that the village of Lindley had become the new seat of government. The British had now completed half their journey to Pretoria, and it was clear that on the south side of the Vaal, there was no serious resistance waiting for them. Burghers were freely surrendering themselves along with their weapons and returning to their farms. In the southeast, Rundle and Brabant were advancing slowly, while the Boers facing them retreated toward Lindley. To the west, Hunter had crossed the Vaal at Windsorton, and Barton's Fusilier Brigade had fought a fierce battle at Rooidam, while Mahon's Mafeking relief column had slipped past their side, unnoticed by the British public but certainly not by the Boers. The casualties in the Rooidam engagement were nine killed and thirty wounded, but the advance of the Fusiliers was unstoppable, and for once the Boer losses, as they were pushed from hill to hill, seemed to be greater than those of the British. The Yeomanry had a chance to once again show that there are few troops in South Africa as spirited as these good sportsmen from the shires, who often could barely contain their excitement, bursting into a 'tally-ho!' when ordered to charge. The Boer forces fell back along the Vaal River, heading towards Christiana and Bloemhof. Hunter entered the Transvaal in pursuit of them, being the first to cross the border, except for raiding Rhodesians early in the war. Meanwhile, Methuen was following a path parallel to Hunter but south of him, with Hoopstad as his immediate target. The little Union Jacks that were marked on war maps in so many British homes were now advancing rapidly.

Buller's force was also sweeping northwards, and the time had come when the Ladysmith garrison, restored at last to health and strength, should have a chance of striking back at those who had tormented them so long. Many of the best troops had been drafted away to other portions of the seat of war. Hart's Brigade and Barton's Fusilier Brigade had gone with Hunter to form the 10th Division upon the Kimberley side, and the Imperial Light Horse had been brought over for the relief of Mafeking. There remained, however, a formidable force, the regiments in which had been strengthened by the addition of drafts and volunteers from home. Not less than twenty thousand sabres and bayonets were ready and eager for the passage of the Biggarsberg mountains.

Buller's force was also moving north, and the time had come for the Ladysmith garrison, finally restored to health and strength, to get a chance to hit back at those who had tormented them for so long. Many of the best troops had been reassigned to other parts of the battlefield. Hart's Brigade and Barton's Fusilier Brigade had gone with Hunter to form the 10th Division on the Kimberley side, and the Imperial Light Horse had been brought over to help relieve Mafeking. However, there was still a strong force remaining, with the regiments bolstered by additional drafts and volunteers from home. No fewer than twenty thousand sabres and bayonets were ready and eager to cross the Biggarsberg mountains.

This line of rugged hills is pierced by only three passes, each of which was held in strength by the enemy. Considerable losses must have ensued from any direct attempt to force them. Buller, however, with excellent judgment, demonstrated in front of them with Hildyard's men, while the rest of the army, marching round, outflanked the line of resistance, and on May 15th pounced upon Dundee. Much had happened since that October day when Penn Symons led his three gallant regiments up Talana Hill, but now at last, after seven weary months, the ground was reoccupied which he had gained. His old soldiers visited his grave, and the national flag was raised over the remains of as gallant a man as ever died for the sake of it.

This line of rugged hills has only three passes, all strongly held by the enemy. Trying to force any of them would have resulted in heavy losses. However, Buller, using great judgment, made a demonstration in front with Hildyard's troops while the rest of the army marched around to outflank the line of resistance, and on May 15th, they suddenly attacked Dundee. A lot had happened since that October day when Penn Symons led his three brave regiments up Talana Hill, but now, finally, after seven long months, the ground he had won was retaken. His old soldiers visited his grave, and the national flag was raised over the remains of a truly gallant man who died for it.

The Boers, whose force did not exceed a few thousands, were now rolled swiftly back through Northern Natal into their own country. The long strain at Ladysmith had told upon them, and the men whom we had to meet were very different from the warriors of Spion Kop and Nicholson's Nek. They had done magnificently, but there is a limit to human endurance, and no longer would these peasants face the bursting lyddite and the bayonets of angry soldiers. There is little enough for us to boast of in this. Some pride might be taken in the campaign when at a disadvantage we were facing superior numbers, but now we could but deplore the situation in which these poor valiant burghers found themselves, the victims of a rotten government and of their own delusions. Hofer's Tyrolese, Charette's Vendeans, or Bruce's Scotchmen never fought a finer fight than these children of the veld, but in each case they combated a real and not an imaginary tyrant. It is heart-sickening to think of the butchery, the misery, the irreparable losses, the blood of men, and the bitter tears of women, all of which might have been spared had one obstinate and ignorant man been persuaded to allow the State which he ruled to conform to the customs of every other civilised State upon the earth.

The Boers, who had a force of only a few thousand, were now quickly pushed back through Northern Natal into their own territory. The long pressure at Ladysmith had taken its toll on them, and the men we faced were very different from the warriors of Spion Kop and Nicholson's Nek. They had fought bravely, but there’s a limit to what anyone can endure, and these farmers could no longer confront the explosions of lyddite and the bayonets of furious soldiers. There’s little for us to be proud of in this. We might have felt some pride in the campaign when we were outnumbered, but now we can only lament the situation these poor brave burghers found themselves in—victims of a corrupt government and their own misconceptions. Hofer's Tyroleans, Charette's Vendeans, or Bruce's Scots never fought a more remarkable fight than these children of the veld, but in each case, they faced a real tyrant, not one of their imaginations. It’s heartbreaking to think of the slaughter, the suffering, the irreparable losses, the blood of men, and the bitter tears of women—all of which could have been avoided if just one stubborn and ignorant man had been convinced to allow the state he ruled to follow the same practices as every other civilized nation on earth.

Buller was now moving with a rapidity and decision which contrast pleasantly with some of his earlier operations. Although Dundee was only occupied on May 15th, on May 18th his vanguard was in Newcastle, fifty miles to the north. In nine days he had covered 138 miles. On the 19th the army lay under the loom of that Majuba which had cast its sinister shadow for so long over South African politics. In front was the historical Laing's Nek, the pass which leads from Natal into the Transvaal, while through it runs the famous railway tunnel. Here the Boers had taken up that position which had proved nineteen years before to be too strong for British troops. The Rooineks had come back after many days to try again. A halt was called, for the ten days' supplies which had been taken with the troops were exhausted, and it was necessary to wait until the railway should be repaired. This gave time for Hildyard's 5th Division and Lyttelton's 4th Division to close up on Clery's 2nd Division, which with Dundonald's cavalry had formed our vanguard throughout. The only losses of any consequence during this fine march fell upon a single squadron of Bethune's mounted infantry, which being thrown out in the direction of Vryheid, in order to make sure that our flank was clear, fell into an ambuscade and was almost annihilated by a close-range fire. Sixty-six casualties, of which nearly half were killed, were the result of this action, which seems to have depended, like most of our reverses, upon defective scouting. Buller, having called up his two remaining divisions and having mended the railway behind him, proceeded now to manoeuvre the Boers out of Laing's Nek exactly as he had manoeuvred them out of the Biggarsberg. At the end of May Hildyard and Lyttelton were despatched in an eastern direction, as if there were an intention of turning the pass from Utrecht.

Buller was now moving quickly and decisively, which was a nice change from some of his earlier actions. Even though Dundee had only taken control on May 15th, by May 18th his vanguard was in Newcastle, fifty miles to the north. In just nine days, he had covered 138 miles. On the 19th, the army was positioned under the shadow of Majuba, which had loomed ominously over South African politics for a long time. In front was Laing's Nek, the historical pass that connects Natal to the Transvaal and is home to the famous railway tunnel. The Boers had taken up a position here that had proven too strong for British troops nineteen years earlier. The Rooineks had returned after many days to try again. A halt was called because the ten days' worth of supplies taken with the troops had run out, and it was necessary to wait for the railway to be repaired. This allowed Hildyard's 5th Division and Lyttelton's 4th Division to catch up with Clery's 2nd Division, which, along with Dundonald's cavalry, had formed our vanguard throughout. The only significant losses during this impressive march occurred to a single squadron of Bethune's mounted infantry, which was sent out toward Vryheid to ensure our flank was clear. They fell into an ambush and were nearly wiped out by close-range fire. Sixty-six casualties, nearly half of whom were killed, resulted from this action, which, like many of our setbacks, seemed to stem from poor scouting. Buller, having brought up his two remaining divisions and repaired the railway behind him, now aimed to maneuver the Boers out of Laing's Nek just as he had done at Biggarsberg. By the end of May, Hildyard and Lyttelton were sent east, as if there was an intention to outflank the pass from Utrecht.

It was on May 12th that Lord Roberts occupied Kroonstad, and he halted there for eight days before he resumed his advance. At the end of that time his railway had been repaired, and enough supplies brought up to enable him to advance again without anxiety. The country through which he passed swarmed with herds and flocks, but, with as scrupulous a regard for the rights of property as Wellington showed in the south of France, no hungry soldier was allowed to take so much as a chicken as he passed. The punishment for looting was prompt and stern. It is true that farms were burned occasionally and the stock confiscated, but this was as a punishment for some particular offence and not part of a system. The limping Tommy looked askance at the fat geese which covered the dam by the roadside, but it was as much as his life was worth to allow his fingers to close round those tempting white necks. On foul water and bully beef he tramped through a land of plenty.

It was on May 12th that Lord Roberts took over Kroonstad, and he stayed there for eight days before continuing his march. By then, his railway had been fixed, and enough supplies were brought in to allow him to move forward without worry. The area he traveled through was filled with herds and flocks, but, just like Wellington in the south of France, no starving soldier was allowed to take even a chicken as he passed. The punishment for stealing was swift and severe. True, some farms were burned and livestock was seized occasionally, but that was for specific offenses and not part of a larger plan. The limping soldier glanced longingly at the fat geese by the roadside, but it would have cost him his life to grab those tempting white necks. On bad water and canned beef, he marched through a land of plenty.

Lord Roberts's eight days' halt was spent in consolidating the general military situation. We have already shown how Buller had crept upwards to the Natal Border. On the west Methuen reached Hoopstad and Hunter Christiana, settling the country and collecting arms as they went. Rundle in the south-east took possession of the rich grain lands, and on May 21st entered Ladybrand. In front of him lay that difficult hilly country about Senekal, Ficksburg, and Bethlehem which was to delay him so long. Ian Hamilton was feeling his way northwards to the right of the railway line, and for the moment cleared the district between Lindley and Heilbron, passing through both towns and causing Steyn to again change his capital, which became Vrede, in the extreme north-east of the State. During these operations Hamilton had the two formidable De Wet brothers in front of him, and suffered nearly a hundred casualties in the continual skirmishing which accompanied his advance. His right flank and rear were continually attacked, and these signs of forces outside our direct line of advance were full of menace for the future.

Lord Roberts's eight-day pause was spent solidifying the overall military situation. We’ve already shown how Buller has moved up to the Natal Border. To the west, Methuen reached Hoopstad, and Hunter moved through Christiana, settling the area and gathering weapons along the way. Rundle in the southeast took control of the valuable grain lands and entered Ladybrand on May 21st. In front of him was a challenging hilly region around Senekal, Ficksburg, and Bethlehem that would hold him up for a long time. Ian Hamilton was advancing northward to the right of the railway line and briefly cleared the area between Lindley and Heilbron, passing through both towns and forcing Steyn to relocate his capital, which became Vrede in the far northeast of the State. During these movements, Hamilton faced the two formidable De Wet brothers, suffering nearly a hundred casualties due to the ongoing skirmishes that accompanied his advance. His right flank and rear were constantly under attack, and these indications of forces outside our direct line of advance posed a serious threat for the future.

On May 22nd the main army resumed its advance, moving forward fifteen miles to Honing's Spruit. On the 23rd another march of twenty miles over a fine rolling prairie brought them to Rhenoster River. The enemy had made some preparations for a stand, but Hamilton was near Heilbron upon their left and French was upon their right flank. The river was crossed without opposition. On the 24th the army was at Vredefort Road, and on the 26th the vanguard crossed the Vaal River at Viljoen's Drift, the whole army following on the 27th. Hamilton's force had been cleverly swung across from the right to the left flank of the British, so that the Boers were massed on the wrong side.

On May 22nd, the main army started moving again, advancing fifteen miles to Honing's Spruit. On the 23rd, they marched another twenty miles across a beautiful, rolling prairie to reach Rhenoster River. The enemy had prepared somewhat to resist, but Hamilton was positioned near Heilbron on their left, and French was on their right flank. They crossed the river without facing any opposition. On the 24th, the army reached Vredefort Road, and on the 26th, the vanguard crossed the Vaal River at Viljoen's Drift, with the rest of the army following on the 27th. Hamilton's force had been cleverly moved from the right to the left flank of the British, meaning the Boers were gathered on the wrong side.

Preparations for resistance had been made on the line of the railway, but the wide turning movements on the flanks by the indefatigable French and Hamilton rendered all opposition of no avail. The British columns flowed over and onwards without a pause, tramping steadily northwards to their destination. The bulk of the Free State forces refused to leave their own country, and moved away to the eastern and northern portion of the State, where the British Generals thought—incorrectly, as the future was to prove—that no further harm would come from them. The State which they were in arms to defend had really ceased to exist, for already it had been publicly proclaimed at Bloemfontein in the Queen's name that the country had been annexed to the Empire, and that its style henceforth was that of 'The Orange River Colony.' Those who think this measure unduly harsh must remember that every mile of land which the Freestaters had conquered in the early part of the war had been solemnly annexed by them. At the same time, those Englishmen who knew the history of this State, which had once been the model of all that a State should be, were saddened by the thought that it should have deliberately committed suicide for the sake of one of the most corrupt governments which have ever been known. Had the Transvaal been governed as the Orange Free State was, such an event as the second Boer war could never have occurred.

Preparations for resistance were set up along the railway, but the wide maneuvers by the relentless French and Hamilton made any opposition ineffective. The British troops moved forward steadily, pushing northward toward their goal. The majority of the Free State forces refused to abandon their homeland and retreated to the eastern and northern parts of the State, where the British Generals mistakenly thought—though history would later prove otherwise—that they would face no further threat. The State they were fighting to defend had essentially ceased to exist, as it had already been publicly declared in Bloemfontein in the Queen's name that the country was annexed to the Empire and would now be known as 'The Orange River Colony.' Those who consider this action excessively harsh should remember that every inch of land the Freestaters conquered early in the war had been officially annexed by them. At the same time, those Englishmen familiar with the history of this State, once seen as a model for governance, felt sadness at its choice to self-destruct for the sake of one of the most corrupt administrations known. If the Transvaal had been governed as the Orange Free State was, the second Boer War would likely never have taken place.

Lord Roberts's tremendous march was now drawing to a close. On May 28th the troops advanced twenty miles, and passed Klip River without fighting. It was observed with surprise that the Transvaalers were very much more careful of their own property than they had been of that of their allies, and that the railway was not damaged at all by the retreating forces. The country had become more populous, and far away upon the low curves of the hills were seen high chimneys and gaunt iron pumps which struck the north of England soldier with a pang of homesickness. This long distant hill was the famous Rand, and under its faded grasses lay such riches as Solomon never took from Ophir. It was the prize of victory; and yet the prize is not to the victor, for the dust-grimed officers and men looked with little personal interest at this treasure-house of the world. Not one penny the richer would they be for the fact that their blood and their energy had brought justice and freedom to the gold fields. They had opened up an industry for the world, men of all nations would be the better for their labours, the miner and the financier or the trader would equally profit by them, but the men in khaki would tramp on, unrewarded and uncomplaining, to India, to China, to any spot where the needs of their worldwide empire called them.

Lord Roberts's incredible march was now coming to an end. On May 28th, the troops moved forward twenty miles and crossed Klip River without any fighting. It was surprising to see that the Transvaalers were much more protective of their own property than they had been of that of their allies, and the railway was completely unaffected by the retreating forces. The area had become more populated, and in the distance, on the low hills, tall chimneys and bare iron pumps could be seen, reminding the northern English soldiers of home. This distant hill was the famous Rand, and beneath its dry grasses lay wealth that Solomon never possessed. It was the prize of victory; yet, the prize didn't belong to the victor, as the dirt-covered officers and men looked at this treasure of the world with little personal interest. They wouldn’t become any richer knowing that their blood and hard work had brought justice and freedom to the gold fields. They had opened up an industry for everyone, and people of all nations would benefit from their efforts; the miner, the financier, and the trader would all reap the rewards, but the men in khaki would continue on their path, unrewarded and uncomplaining, to India, to China, anywhere their vast empire needed them.

The infantry, streaming up from the Vaal River to the famous ridge of gold, had met with no resistance upon the way, but great mist banks of cloud by day and huge twinkling areas of flame by night showed the handiwork of the enemy. Hamilton and French, moving upon the left flank, found Boers thick upon the hills, but cleared them off in a well-managed skirmish which cost us a dozen casualties. On May 29th, pushing swiftly along, French found the enemy posted very strongly with several guns at Doornkop, a point west of Klip River Berg. The cavalry leader had with him at this stage three horse batteries, four pom-poms, and 3000 mounted men. The position being too strong for him to force, Hamilton's infantry (19th and 21st Brigades) were called up, and the Boers were driven out. That splendid corps, the Gordons, lost nearly a hundred men in their advance over the open, and the C.I.V.s on the other flank fought like a regiment of veterans. There had been an inclination to smile at these citizen soldiers when they first came out, but no one smiled now save the General who felt that he had them at his back. Hamilton's attack was assisted by the menace rather than the pressure of French's turning movement on the Boer right, but the actual advance was as purely frontal as any of those which had been carried through at the beginning of the war. The open formation of the troops, the powerful artillery behind them, and perhaps also the lowered morale of the enemy combined to make such a movement less dangerous than of old. In any case it was inevitable, as the state of Hamilton's commisariat rendered it necessary that at all hazards he should force his way through.

The infantry, moving from the Vaal River to the famous ridge of gold, faced no resistance along the way, but thick banks of mist during the day and large areas of shimmering flames at night indicated the enemy's presence. Hamilton and French, operating on the left flank, encountered a strong Boer presence on the hills, but they successfully cleared them out in a well-executed skirmish that resulted in a dozen casualties for us. On May 29th, as they pushed forward quickly, French discovered the enemy heavily fortified with several guns at Doornkop, a location west of Klip River Berg. At this point, the cavalry leader had three horse batteries, four pom-poms, and 3,000 mounted men with him. The position was too strong for him to break through, so Hamilton's infantry (19th and 21st Brigades) were called in, and the Boers were forced back. The brave Gordons suffered nearly a hundred men in their advance across open ground, while the C.I.V.s on the other flank fought like seasoned veterans. Initially, there had been a tendency to view these citizen soldiers with skepticism when they first arrived, but now, the only one smiling was the General, who felt confident with them supporting him. Hamilton's attack was bolstered more by the threat than by the force of French's maneuver on the Boer right, but the actual advance was as direct as any that had occurred at the start of the war. The troops' open formation, the strong artillery backing them, and possibly the enemy's lowered morale all contributed to making this movement less hazardous than before. In any case, it was unavoidable, as the state of Hamilton's supply line made it essential that he break through at all costs.

Whilst this action of Doornkop was fought by the British left flank, Henry's mounted infantry in the centre moved straight upon the important junction of Germiston, which lies amid the huge white heaps of tailings from the mines. At this point, or near it, the lines from Johannesburg and from Natal join the line to Pretoria. Colonel Henry's advance was an extremely daring one, for the infantry were some distance behind; but after an irregular scrambling skirmish, in which the Boer snipers had to be driven off the mine heaps and from among the houses, the 8th mounted infantry got their grip of the railway and held it. The exploit was a very fine one, and stands out the more brilliantly as the conduct of the campaign cannot be said to afford many examples of that well-considered audacity which deliberately runs the risk of the minor loss for the sake of the greater gain. Henry was much assisted by J battery R.H.A., which was handled with energy and judgment.

While the British left flank was engaged in the action at Doornkop, Henry's mounted infantry in the center advanced directly toward the crucial junction of Germiston, located among the large white piles of tailings from the mines. At this point, or close to it, the lines from Johannesburg and Natal converge with the route to Pretoria. Colonel Henry's advance was quite bold, as the infantry were still some distance behind; however, after a chaotic skirmish, during which they had to drive off Boer snipers from the mine heaps and houses, the 8th mounted infantry seized control of the railway and maintained their position. This achievement was impressive and stands out more vividly given that the overall conduct of the campaign doesn't showcase many instances of that well-planned audacity that willingly risks minor losses for greater rewards. Henry received significant support from J Battery R.H.A., which was managed with energy and skill.

French was now on the west of the town, Henry had cut the railway on the east, and Roberts was coming up from the south. His infantry had covered 130 miles in seven days, but the thought that every step brought them nearer to Pretoria was as exhilarating as their fifes and drums. On May 30th the victorious troops camped outside the city while Botha retired with his army, abandoning without a battle the treasure-house of his country. Inside the town were chaos and confusion. The richest mines in the world lay for a day or more at the mercy of a lawless rabble drawn from all nations. The Boer officials were themselves divided in opinion, Krause standing for law and order while Judge Koch advocated violence. A spark would have set the town blazing, and the worst was feared when a crowd of mercenaries assembled in front of the Robinson mine with threats of violence. By the firmness and tact of Mr. Tucker, the manager, and by the strong attitude of Commissioner Krause, the situation was saved and the danger passed. Upon May 31st, without violence to life or destruction to property, that great town which British hands have done so much to build found itself at last under the British flag. May it wave there so long as it covers just laws, honest officials, and clean-handed administrators—so long and no longer!

French was now on the west side of the town, Henry had cut the railway on the east, and Roberts was approaching from the south. His infantry had covered 130 miles in seven days, but the fact that every step brought them closer to Pretoria was as exciting as their fifes and drums. On May 30th, the victorious troops camped outside the city while Botha retreated with his army, abandoning his country's treasure without a fight. Inside the town, there was chaos and confusion. The richest mines in the world were at the mercy of a lawless mob made up of people from all nations for a day or more. The Boer officials were divided in their opinions, with Krause supporting law and order while Judge Koch pushed for violence. A single spark could have set the town ablaze, and the worst was feared when a crowd of mercenaries gathered in front of the Robinson mine, threatening violence. Thanks to the firmness and skill of Mr. Tucker, the manager, and the strong stance of Commissioner Krause, the situation was diffused, and the danger passed. On May 31st, without any loss of life or damage to property, that great town, which British hands have helped to build so much, finally came under the British flag. May it fly there as long as it represents just laws, honest officials, and clean-handed administrators—no longer and no more!

And now the last stage of the great journey had been reached. Two days were spent at Johannesburg while supplies were brought up, and then a move was made upon Pretoria thirty miles to the north. Here was the Boer capital, the seat of government, the home of Kruger, the centre of all that was anti-British, crouching amid its hills, with costly forts guarding every face of it. Surely at last the place had been found where that great battle should be fought which should decide for all time whether it was with the Briton or with the Dutchman that the future of South Africa lay.

And now the final stage of the great journey had been reached. Two days were spent in Johannesburg while supplies were gathered, and then a move was made towards Pretoria, thirty miles to the north. This was the Boer capital, the center of government, the home of Kruger, the hub of all things anti-British, nestled among its hills, with expensive forts protecting every side. Surely, at last, the place had been found where that significant battle would be fought to determine once and for all whether the future of South Africa belonged to the Britons or the Dutch.

On the last day of May two hundred Lancers under the command of Major Hunter Weston, with Charles of the Sappers and Burnham the scout, a man who has played the part of a hero throughout the campaign, struck off from the main army and endeavoured to descend upon the Pretoria to Delagoa railway line with the intention of blowing up a bridge and cutting the Boer line of retreat. It was a most dashing attempt; but the small party had the misfortune to come into contact with a strong Boer commando, who headed them off. After a skirmish they were compelled to make their way back with a loss of five killed and fourteen wounded.

On the last day of May, two hundred Lancers led by Major Hunter Weston, along with Charles from the Sappers and Burnham the scout—a man who has acted like a hero throughout the campaign—set out from the main army and tried to reach the Pretoria to Delagoa railway line to blow up a bridge and cut off the Boer retreat. It was a daring move, but the small group unfortunately ran into a strong Boer commando that blocked their path. After a skirmish, they had to retreat, suffering losses of five killed and fourteen wounded.

The cavalry under French had waited for the issue of this enterprise at a point nine miles north of Johannesburg. On June 2nd it began its advance with orders to make a wide sweep round to the westward, and so skirt the capital, cutting the Pietersburg railway to the north of it. The country in the direct line between Johannesburg and Pretoria consists of a series of rolling downs which are admirably adapted for cavalry work, but the detour which French had to make carried him into the wild and broken district which lies to the north of the Little Crocodile River. Here he was fiercely attacked on ground where his troops could not deploy, but with extreme coolness and judgment beat off the enemy. To cover thirty-two miles in a day and fight a way out of an ambuscade in the evening is an ordeal for any leader and for any troops. Two killed and seven wounded were our trivial losses in a situation which might have been a serious one. The Boers appear to have been the escort of a strong convoy which had passed along the road some miles in front. Next morning both convoy and opposition had disappeared. The cavalry rode on amid a country of orange groves, the troopers standing up in their stirrups to pluck the golden fruit. There was no further fighting, and on June 4th French had established himself upon the north of the town, where he learned that all resistance had ceased.

The cavalry led by French had been waiting to see how this mission would go at a spot nine miles north of Johannesburg. On June 2nd, they started moving forward with orders to make a wide loop to the west, avoiding the capital and cutting the Pietersburg railway to the north. The area directly between Johannesburg and Pretoria is made up of rolling hills, great for cavalry operations, but the detour French had to take led him into the rough and rugged terrain north of the Little Crocodile River. Here, he faced a fierce attack in a location where his troops couldn’t spread out, but he managed to fend off the enemy with remarkable composure and strategy. Covering thirty-two miles in a day and fighting their way out of an ambush in the evening is a tough challenge for any leader and their troops. We sustained minor losses of two killed and seven wounded in a situation that could have been much worse. It seems the Boers were escorting a strong convoy that had passed a few miles ahead. The next morning, both the convoy and the enemy had vanished. The cavalry continued through a region of orange groves, with the soldiers standing up in their stirrups to pick the ripe fruit. There was no further conflict, and by June 4th, French had positioned his forces to the north of the town, where he found out that all resistance had ended.

Whilst the cavalry had performed this enveloping movement the main army had moved swiftly upon its objective, leaving one brigade behind to secure Johannesburg. Ian Hamilton advanced upon the left, while Lord Roberts's column kept the line of the railway, Colonel Henry's mounted infantry scouting in front. As the army topped the low curves of the veld they saw in front of them two well-marked hills, each crowned by a low squat building. They were the famous southern forts of Pretoria. Between the hills was a narrow neck, and beyond the Boer capital.

While the cavalry executed this surrounding maneuver, the main army quickly moved toward its goal, leaving one brigade behind to secure Johannesburg. Ian Hamilton advanced on the left, while Lord Roberts's column followed the railway line, with Colonel Henry's mounted infantry scouting ahead. As the army crested the gentle hills of the veld, they spotted two distinct hills ahead, each topped by a short, squat building. These were the famous southern forts of Pretoria. Between the hills was a narrow passage, and beyond it lay the Boer capital.

For a time it appeared that the entry was to be an absolutely bloodless one, but the booming of cannon and the crash of Mauser fire soon showed that the enemy was in force upon the ridge. Botha had left a strong rearguard to hold off the British while his own stores and valuables were being withdrawn from the town. The silence of the forts showed that the guns had been removed and that no prolonged resistance was intended; but in the meanwhile fringes of determined riflemen, supported by cannon, held the approaches, and must be driven off before an entry could be effected. Each fresh corps as it came up reinforced the firing line. Henry's mounted infantrymen supported by the horse-guns of J battery and the guns of Tucker's division began the action. So hot was the answer, both from cannon and from rifle, that it seemed for a time as if a real battle were at last about to take place. The Guards' Brigade, Stephenson's Brigade, and Maxwell's Brigade streamed up and waited until Hamilton, who was on the enemy's right flank, should be able to make his presence felt. The heavy guns had also arrived, and a huge cloud of debris rising from the Pretorian forts told the accuracy of their fire.

For a while, it seemed like the entry would be completely without bloodshed, but the booming of cannons and the sharp sound of Mauser fire quickly revealed that the enemy was strong on the ridge. Botha had left a solid rear guard to hold back the British while he withdrew his supplies and valuables from the town. The silence from the forts indicated that the guns had been removed and no extended resistance was planned; however, determined riflemen, backed by artillery, were still holding the approaches, and they had to be pushed back before an entry could be made. Each new corps that arrived bolstered the firing line. Henry's mounted infantry, supported by the horse guns of J battery and Tucker's division artillery, began the attack. The response from both cannons and rifles was so intense that it seemed for a moment like a real battle was finally about to unfold. The Guards' Brigade, Stephenson's Brigade, and Maxwell's Brigade rushed up and waited for Hamilton, who was on the enemy's right flank, to make his move. The heavy artillery had also arrived, and a massive cloud of debris rising from the Pretorian forts indicated the accuracy of their fire.

But either the burghers were half-hearted or there was no real intention to make a stand. About half-past two their fire slackened and Pole-Carew was directed to push on. That debonnaire soldier with his two veteran brigades obeyed the order with alacrity, and the infantry swept over the ridge, with some thirty or forty casualties, the majority of which fell to the Warwicks. The position was taken, and Hamilton, who came up late, was only able to send on De Lisle's mounted infantry, chiefly Australians, who ran down one of the Boer maxims in the open. The action had cost us altogether about seventy men. Among the injured was the Duke of Norfolk, who had shown a high sense of civic virtue in laying aside the duties and dignity of a Cabinet Minister in order to serve as a simple captain of volunteers. At the end of this one fight the capital lay at the mercy of Lord Roberts. Consider the fight which they made for their chief city, compare it with that which the British made for the village of Mafeking, and say on which side is that stern spirit of self-sacrifice and resolution which are the signs of the better cause.

But either the townspeople were uncommitted or there was no real plan to defend themselves. Around two-thirty, their firing decreased, and Pole-Carew was ordered to move forward. That charming soldier, along with his two experienced brigades, quickly followed the command, and the infantry surged over the ridge, suffering around thirty or forty casualties, mostly from the Warwicks. The position was secured, and Hamilton, arriving late, could only send De Lisle's mounted infantry, mainly Australians, who managed to take down one of the Boer machine guns in the open. The battle cost us about seventy men in total. Among the wounded was the Duke of Norfolk, who had displayed a strong sense of civic duty by putting aside his responsibilities and status as a Cabinet Minister to serve as a simple captain of volunteers. By the end of this single fight, the capital was at Lord Roberts' mercy. Consider the effort they made for their main city and compare it to what the British did for the village of Mafeking, and reflect on where the true spirit of self-sacrifice and determination—indicators of a just cause—lies.

In the early morning of June 5th, the Coldstream Guards were mounting the hills which commanded the town. Beneath them in the clear African air lay the famous city, embowered in green, the fine central buildings rising grandly out of the wide circle of villas. Through the Nek part of the Guards' Brigade and Maxwell's Brigade had passed, and had taken over the station, from which at least one train laden with horses had steamed that morning. Two others, both ready to start, were only just stopped in time.

In the early morning of June 5th, the Coldstream Guards were climbing the hills overlooking the town. Below them, in the clear African air, lay the famous city, surrounded by greenery, with impressive central buildings standing tall amidst a broad circle of villas. The Nek part of the Guards' Brigade and Maxwell's Brigade had moved through and taken over the station, from which at least one train loaded with horses had left that morning. Two more trains, both ready to depart, were just stopped in time.

The first thought was for the British prisoners, and a small party headed by the Duke of Marlborough rode to their rescue. Let it be said once for all that their treatment by the Boers was excellent and that their appearance would alone have proved it. One hundred and twenty-nine officers and thirty-nine soldiers were found in the Model Schools, which had been converted into a prison. A day later our cavalry arrived at Waterval, which is fourteen miles to the north of Pretoria. Here were confined three thousand soldiers, whose fare had certainly been of the scantiest, though in other respects they appear to have been well treated. [Footnote: Further information unfortunately shows that in the case of the sick and of the Colonial prisoners the treatment was by no means good.] Nine hundred of their comrades had been removed by the Boers, but Porter's cavalry was in time to release the others, under a brisk shell fire from a Boer gun upon the ridge. Many pieces of good luck we had in the campaign, but this recovery of our prisoners, which left the enemy without a dangerous lever for exacting conditions of peace, was the most fortunate of all.

The first concern was for the British prisoners, and a small group led by the Duke of Marlborough set out to rescue them. It should be noted that their treatment by the Boers was excellent, and their appearance alone would have been enough to confirm this. One hundred and twenty-nine officers and thirty-nine soldiers were found in the Model Schools, which had been turned into a prison. A day later, our cavalry arrived at Waterval, which is fourteen miles north of Pretoria. Here, three thousand soldiers were held, and although their rations were certainly meager, they seemed to have been treated well in other aspects. [Footnote: Further information unfortunately shows that in the case of the sick and Colonial prisoners, the treatment was far from good.] Nine hundred of their comrades had been taken away by the Boers, but Porter's cavalry arrived in time to free the others, despite a heavy shelling from a Boer gun on the ridge. We experienced many strokes of good fortune during the campaign, but the rescue of our prisoners, which left the enemy without a powerful means to impose their terms for peace, was the most fortunate outcome of all.

In the centre of the town there is a wide square decorated or disfigured by a bare pedestal upon which a statue of the President was to have been placed. Hard by is the bleak barnlike church in which he preached, and on either side are the Government offices and the Law Courts, buildings which would grace any European capital. Here, at two o'clock on the afternoon of June 5th, Lord Roberts sat his horse and saw pass in front of him the men who had followed him so far and so faithfully—the Guards, the Essex, the Welsh, the Yorks, the Warwicks, the guns, the mounted infantry, the dashing irregulars, the Gordons, the Canadians, the Shropshires, the Cornwalls, the Camerons, the Derbys, the Sussex, and the London Volunteers. For over two hours the khaki waves with their crests of steel went sweeping by. High above their heads from the summit of the Raad-saal the broad Union Jack streamed for the first time. Through months of darkness we had struggled onwards to the light. Now at last the strange drama seemed to be drawing to its close. The God of battles had given the long-withheld verdict. But of all the hearts which throbbed high at that supreme moment there were few who felt one touch of bitterness towards the brave men who had been overborne. They had fought and died for their ideal. We had fought and died for ours. The hope for the future of South Africa is that they or their descendants may learn that that banner which has come to wave above Pretoria means no racial intolerance, no greed for gold, no paltering with injustice or corruption, but that it means one law for all and one freedom for all, as it does in every other continent in the whole broad earth. When that is learned it may happen that even they will come to date a happier life and a wider liberty from that 5th of June which saw the symbol of their nation pass for ever from among the ensigns of the world.

In the center of town, there's a large square marked by a bare pedestal where a statue of the President was supposed to be placed. Nearby stands the stark, barn-like church where he preached, flanked by government offices and law courts—buildings that would enhance any European capital. At two o'clock on the afternoon of June 5th, Lord Roberts sat on his horse and watched as the men who had followed him so faithfully marched by—the Guards, the Essex, the Welsh, the Yorks, the Warwicks, the artillery, the mounted infantry, the bold irregulars, the Gordons, the Canadians, the Shropshires, the Cornwalls, the Camerons, the Derbys, the Sussex, and the London Volunteers. For over two hours, the waves of khaki with their steel crests flowed past. High above them, from the top of the Raad-saal, the broad Union Jack waved for the first time. After months of darkness, we had fought our way to the light. Now, at last, the strange drama seemed to be reaching its conclusion. The God of battles had delivered the long-awaited verdict. Yet, among the many hearts that soared at that pivotal moment, there were few who felt any bitterness towards the brave men who had been overrun. They had fought and died for their ideal. We had fought and died for ours. The hope for the future of South Africa is that they or their descendants may come to understand that the banner now flying over Pretoria stands for no racial intolerance, no greed for gold, and no compromises with injustice or corruption, but rather for one law for all and one freedom for all, just like in every other continent across the globe. When that lesson is learned, it might be that even they will come to mark a happier life and broader liberty from that June 5th, which saw the symbol of their nation disappear from among the flags of the world.





CHAPTER 26. DIAMOND HILL—RUNDLE'S OPERATIONS.

The military situation at the time of the occupation of Pretoria was roughly as follows. Lord Roberts with some thirty thousand men was in possession of the capital, but had left his long line of communications very imperfectly guarded behind him. On the flank of this line of communications, in the eastern and north-eastern corner of the Free State, was an energetic force of unconquered Freestaters who had rallied round President Steyn. They were some eight or ten thousand in number, well horsed, with a fair number of guns, under the able leadership of De Wet, Prinsloo, and Olivier. Above all, they had a splendid position, mountainous and broken, from which, as from a fortress, they could make excursions to the south or west. This army included the commandos of Ficksburg, Senekal, and Harrismith, with all the broken and desperate men from other districts who had left their farms and fled to the mountains. It was held in check as a united force by Rundle's Division and the Colonial Division on the south, while Colvile, and afterwards Methuen, endeavoured to pen them in on the west. The task was a hard one, however, and though Rundle succeeded in holding his line intact, it appeared to be impossible in that wide country to coop up altogether an enemy so mobile. A strange game of hide-and-seek ensued, in which De Wet, who led the Boer raids, was able again and again to strike our line of rails and to get back without serious loss. The story of these instructive and humiliating episodes will be told in their order. The energy and skill of the guerilla chief challenge our admiration, and the score of his successes would be amusing were it not that the points of the game are marked by the lives of British soldiers.

The military situation during the occupation of Pretoria was roughly as follows. Lord Roberts, with around thirty thousand troops, held the capital but had left his extensive line of communication poorly guarded behind him. Alongside this line, in the eastern and northeastern corner of the Free State, there was a dynamic force of unyielding Free State residents who had rallied around President Steyn. They numbered about eight to ten thousand, were well-mounted, and had a decent number of guns, under the skilled leadership of De Wet, Prinsloo, and Olivier. Most importantly, they had a strong position in mountainous and rugged terrain, from which, like a fortress, they could launch excursions to the south or west. This army included the commandos from Ficksburg, Senekal, and Harrismith, along with all the desperate men from other areas who had abandoned their farms and fled to the mountains. They were kept in check as a united force by Rundle's Division and the Colonial Division to the south, while Colvile, and later Methuen, tried to corner them to the west. However, it was a challenging task, and although Rundle managed to maintain his line, it seemed impossible to completely contain such a mobile enemy in that vast landscape. A strange game of hide-and-seek played out, where De Wet, leading the Boer raids, repeatedly managed to strike our railway lines and retreat without significant losses. The account of these significant and humiliating events will be presented in order. The energy and skill of the guerrilla leader command our respect, and the tally of his victories would be entertaining if not for the fact that the stakes of the game are marked by the lives of British soldiers.

General Buller had spent the latter half of May in making his way from Ladysmith to Laing's Nek, and the beginning of June found him with twenty thousand men in front of that difficult position. Some talk of a surrender had arisen, and Christian Botha, who commanded the Boers, succeeded in gaining several days' armistice, which ended in nothing. The Transvaal forces at this point were not more than a few thousand in number, but their position was so formidable that it was a serious task to turn them out. Van Wyk's Hill, however, had been left unguarded, and as its possession would give the British the command of Botha's Pass, its unopposed capture by the South African Light Horse was an event of great importance. With guns upon this eminence the infantry were able, on June 8th, to attack and to carry with little loss the rest of the high ground, and so to get the Pass into their complete possession. Botha fired the grass behind him, and withdrew sullenly to the north. On the 9th and 10th the convoys were passed over the Pass, and on the 11th the main body of the army followed them.

General Buller had spent the second half of May making his way from Ladysmith to Laing's Nek, and by the beginning of June, he had twenty thousand men positioned in front of that challenging location. Rumors of a possible surrender had emerged, and Christian Botha, the Boer commander, managed to secure a few days of truce that ultimately led to nothing. The Transvaal forces at this point numbered only a few thousand, but their position was so strong that ejecting them was a significant challenge. However, Van Wyk's Hill was left unguarded, and taking control of it would give the British command over Botha's Pass, so its unopposed capture by the South African Light Horse was a crucial development. With artillery positioned on this high ground, the infantry was able to attack and successfully seize the rest of the elevated terrain with minimal losses on June 8th, thereby gaining full control of the Pass. Botha burned the grass behind him and retreated sullenly to the north. On the 9th and 10th, the convoys crossed the Pass, and on the 11th, the main body of the army followed.

The operations were now being conducted in that extremely acute angle of Natal which runs up between the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. In crossing Botha's Pass the army had really entered what was now the Orange River Colony. But it was only for a very short time, as the object of the movement was to turn the Laing's Nek position, and then come back into the Transvaal through Alleman's Pass. The gallant South African Light Horse led the way, and fought hard at one point to clear a path for the army, losing six killed and eight wounded in a sharp skirmish. On the morning of the 12th the flanking movement was far advanced, and it only remained for the army to force Alleman's Nek, which would place it to the rear of Laing's Nek, and close to the Transvaal town of Volksrust.

The operations were now taking place in the sharp angle of Natal that sits between the Transvaal and the Orange Free State. By crossing Botha's Pass, the army had technically entered what was then the Orange River Colony. However, this was just for a brief moment, as the goal was to outflank the Laing's Nek position and then return to the Transvaal via Alleman's Pass. The brave South African Light Horse led the charge and fought fiercely at one point to create a path for the army, suffering six killed and eight wounded in a fierce skirmish. On the morning of the 12th, the flanking maneuver was well underway, and all that was left for the army was to push through Alleman's Nek, which would position them behind Laing's Nek and close to the Transvaal town of Volksrust.

Had the Boers been the men of Colenso and of Spion Kop, this storming of Alleman's Nek would have been a bloody business. The position was strong, the cover was slight, and there was no way round. But the infantry came on with the old dash without the old stubborn resolution being opposed to them. The guns prepared the way, and then the Dorsets, the Dublins, the Middlesex, the Queen's, and the East Surrey did the rest. The door was open and the Transvaal lay before us. The next day Volksrust was in our hands.

Had the Boers been the fighters of Colenso and Spion Kop, the assault on Alleman's Nek would have been a bloody affair. The position was strong, the cover was minimal, and there was no way around it. But the infantry advanced with the same enthusiasm, without the usual stubborn resistance against them. The artillery cleared the path, and then the Dorsets, the Dublins, the Middlesex, the Queen's, and the East Surrey took care of the rest. The door was open, and the Transvaal was laid out before us. The next day, Volksrust was in our control.

The whole series of operations were excellently conceived and carried out. Putting Colenso on one side, it cannot be denied that General Buller showed considerable power of manoeuvring large bodies of troops. The withdrawal of the compromised army after Spion Kop, the change of the line of attack at Pieter's Hill, and the flanking marches in this campaign of Northern Natal, were all very workmanlike achievements. In this case a position which the Boers had been preparing for months, scored with trenches and topped by heavy artillery, had been rendered untenable by a clever flank movement, the total casualties in the whole affair being less than two hundred killed and wounded. Natal was cleared of the invader, Buller's foot was on the high plateau of the Transvaal, and Roberts could count on twenty thousand good men coming up to him from the south-east. More important than all, the Natal railway was being brought up, and soon the central British Army would depend upon Durban instead of Cape Town for its supplies—a saving of nearly two-thirds of the distance. The fugitive Boers made northwards in the Middelburg direction, while Buller advanced to Standerton, which town he continued to occupy until Lord Roberts could send a force down through Heidelberg to join hands with him. Such was the position of the Natal Field Force at the end of June. From the west and the south-west British forces were also converging upon the capital. The indomitable Baden-Powell sought for rest and change of scene after his prolonged trial by harrying the Boers out of Zeerust and Rustenburg. The forces of Hunter and of Mahon converged upon Potchefstroom, from which, after settling that district, they could be conveyed by rail to Krugersdorp and Johannesburg.

The entire series of operations was exceptionally planned and executed. Leaving Colenso aside, it's clear that General Buller demonstrated significant skill in maneuvering large groups of troops. The withdrawal of the compromised army after Spion Kop, the change in the attack strategy at Pieter's Hill, and the flanking movements during this campaign in Northern Natal were all impressive accomplishments. In this situation, a position that the Boers had been fortifying for months, complete with trenches and heavy artillery, became untenable due to a smart flank maneuver, resulting in fewer than two hundred casualties in total. Natal was cleared of the invaders, Buller had taken the high plateau of the Transvaal, and Roberts could rely on twenty thousand capable men coming to support him from the south-east. More importantly, the Natal railway was being extended, soon allowing the central British Army to rely on Durban for supplies instead of Cape Town—cutting the distance by nearly two-thirds. The fleeing Boers headed north towards Middelburg, while Buller moved forward to Standerton, which he held until Lord Roberts could send a force through Heidelberg to join him. This was the status of the Natal Field Force at the end of June. British forces were also coming together from the west and south-west towards the capital. The relentless Baden-Powell sought rest and a change of scenery after his extended ordeal driving the Boers out of Zeerust and Rustenburg. The forces under Hunter and Mahon were heading towards Potchefstroom, from where, after securing that area, they could be transported by rail to Krugersdorp and Johannesburg.

Before briefly recounting the series of events which took place upon the line of communications, the narrative must return to Lord Roberts at Pretoria, and describe the operations which followed his occupation of that city. In leaving the undefeated forces of the Free State behind him, the British General had unquestionably run a grave risk, and was well aware that his railway communication was in danger of being cut. By the rapidity of his movements he succeeded in gaining the enemy's capital before that which he had foreseen came to pass; but if Botha had held him at Pretoria while De Wet struck at him behind, the situation would have been a serious one. Having once attained his main object, Roberts could receive with equanimity the expected news that De Wet with a mobile force of less than two thousand men had, on June 7th, cut the line at Roodeval to the north of Kroonstad. Both rail and telegraph were destroyed, and for a few days the army was isolated. Fortunately there were enough supplies to go on with, and immediate steps were taken to drive away the intruder, though, like a mosquito, he was brushed from one place only to settle upon another.

Before briefly recounting the series of events that occurred along the communication lines, the story must go back to Lord Roberts in Pretoria and describe the operations that followed his takeover of the city. By leaving the undefeated forces of the Free State behind, the British General had definitely taken a serious risk and knew that his railway communication was at risk of being disrupted. Thanks to his quick movements, he managed to reach the enemy’s capital before what he had anticipated happened; however, if Botha had held him in Pretoria while De Wet attacked from behind, the situation would have been dire. Having achieved his main objective, Roberts could calmly receive the expected news that De Wet, with a mobile force of fewer than two thousand men, had cut the line at Roodeval north of Kroonstad on June 7th. Both the rail and telegraph systems were destroyed, and for a few days the army was cut off. Luckily, there were enough supplies to continue, and immediate action was taken to drive away the intruder, though, like a mosquito, he was pushed from one spot only to settle in another.

Leaving others to restore his broken communications, Lord Roberts turned his attention once more to Botha, who still retained ten or fifteen thousand men under his command. The President had fled from Pretoria with a large sum of money, estimated at over two millions sterling, and was known to be living in a saloon railway carriage, which had been transformed into a seat of government even more mobile than that of President Steyn. From Waterval-Boven, a point beyond Middelburg, he was in a position either to continue his journey to Delagoa Bay, and so escape out of the country, or to travel north into that wild Lydenburg country which had always been proclaimed as the last ditch of the defence. Here he remained with his gold-bags waiting the turn of events.

Leaving others to fix his broken communications, Lord Roberts turned his attention back to Botha, who still had about ten to fifteen thousand men under his command. The President had fled from Pretoria with a large sum of money, estimated to be over two million pounds, and was known to be living in a railway carriage that had been converted into a more mobile seat of government than that of President Steyn. From Waterval-Boven, a location beyond Middelburg, he could either continue his journey to Delagoa Bay and escape the country or head north into the wild Lydenburg region, which had always been touted as the last stand of the defense. Here he stayed with his bags of gold, waiting for the situation to change.

Botha and his stalwarts had not gone far from the capital. Fifteen miles out to the east the railway line runs through a gap in the hills called Pienaars Poort, and here was such a position as the Boer loves to hold. It was very strong in front, and it had widely spread formidable flanking hills to hamper those turning movements which had so often been fatal to the Boer generals. Behind was the uncut railway line along which the guns could in case of need be removed. The whole position was over fifteen miles from wing to wing, and it was well known to the Boer general that Lord Roberts had no longer that preponderance of force which would enable him to execute wide turning movements, as he had done in his advance from the south. His army had decreased seriously in numbers. The mounted men, the most essential branch of all, were so ill horsed that brigades were not larger than regiments. One brigade of infantry (the 14th) had been left to garrison Johannesburg, and another (the 18th) had been chosen for special duty in Pretoria. Smith-Dorrien's Brigade had been detached for duty upon the line of communications. With all these deductions and the wastage caused by wounds and disease, the force was in no state to assume a vigorous offensive. So hard pressed were they for men that the three thousand released prisoners from Waterval were hurriedly armed with Boer weapons and sent down the line to help to guard the more vital points.

Botha and his key supporters hadn't traveled far from the capital. Fifteen miles east, the railway runs through a pass in the hills called Pienaars Poort, which was the kind of strong position the Boers valued. It had excellent defensive qualities in the front and had expansive, formidable hills on the sides to hinder any flanking maneuvers that had often been disastrous for Boer generals. Behind them lay the untouched railway line, allowing for the movement of artillery if necessary. The entire position stretched over fifteen miles from side to side, and the Boer general knew well that Lord Roberts no longer had the overwhelming strength to execute wide flanking movements as he had during his advance from the south. His army's numbers had significantly decreased. The mounted troops, the most crucial part of the army, were poorly equipped, with brigades not larger than regiments. One brigade of infantry (the 14th) was left to defend Johannesburg, and another (the 18th) was assigned to special duty in Pretoria. Smith-Dorrien's Brigade was detached for service along the line of communications. With all these forces accounted for and considering the losses from injuries and illness, the troops were not in a position to launch a strong offensive. They were so short on personnel that the three thousand released prisoners from Waterval were quickly armed with Boer weapons and sent down the line to help guard the critical points.

Had Botha withdrawn to a safe distance, Lord Roberts would certainly have halted, as he had done at Bloemfontein, and waited for remounts and reinforcements. But the war could not be allowed to languish when an active enemy lay only fifteen miles off, within striking distance of two cities and of the line of rail. Taking all the troops that he could muster, the British General moved out once more on Monday, June 11th, to drive Botha from his position. He had with him Pole-Carew's 11th Division, which numbered about six thousand men with twenty guns, Ian Hamilton's force, which included one infantry brigade (Bruce Hamilton's), one cavalry brigade, and a corps of mounted infantry, say, six thousand in all, with thirty guns. There remained French's Cavalry Division, with Hutton's Mounted Infantry, which could not have exceeded two thousand sabres and rifles. The total force was, therefore, not more than sixteen or seventeen thousand men, with about seventy guns. Their task was to carry a carefully prepared position held by at least ten thousand burghers with a strong artillery. Had the Boer of June been the Boer of December, the odds would have been against the British.

Had Botha pulled back to a safe distance, Lord Roberts would definitely have stopped, as he did at Bloemfontein, and waited for remounts and reinforcements. But the war couldn't be allowed to drag on with an active enemy just fifteen miles away, within striking distance of two cities and the railway line. Gathering all the troops he could, the British General set out again on Monday, June 11th, to drive Botha from his position. He brought along Pole-Carew's 11th Division, which had about six thousand men and twenty guns, Ian Hamilton's force, which included one infantry brigade (Bruce Hamilton's), one cavalry brigade, and a corps of mounted infantry, totaling around six thousand with thirty guns. There was also French's Cavalry Division, along with Hutton's Mounted Infantry, which couldn't have exceeded two thousand soldiers. So, the total force was no more than sixteen or seventeen thousand men, with about seventy guns. Their job was to take a well-prepared position held by at least ten thousand burghers with strong artillery. If the Boers of June had been like the Boers of December, the odds would have been against the British.

There had been some negotiations for peace between Lord Roberts and Botha, but the news of De Wet's success from the south had hardened the Boer general's heart, and on June 9th the cavalry had their orders to advance. Hamilton was to work round the left wing of the Boers, and French round their right, while the infantry came up in the centre. So wide was the scene of action that the attack and the resistance in each flank and in the centre constituted, on June 11th, three separate actions. Of these the latter was of least importance, as it merely entailed the advance of the infantry to a spot whence they could take advantage of the success of the flanking forces when they had made their presence felt. The centre did not on this as on several other occasions in the campaign make the mistake of advancing before the way had been prepared for it.

There had been some talks about peace between Lord Roberts and Botha, but the news of De Wet's success from the south had made the Boer general more determined, and on June 9th, the cavalry received their orders to move forward. Hamilton was supposed to maneuver around the left side of the Boers, while French would go around their right, with the infantry moving up the center. The area of conflict was so vast that the attack and defense on each flank and in the center made, by June 11th, three distinct battles. Among these, the center battle was the least significant, as it only involved the infantry moving to a position where they could benefit from the successes of the flanking forces once they had engaged the enemy. The center did not, as it had on several other occasions during the campaign, make the mistake of pushing forward before the way had been cleared for them.

French with his attenuated force found so vigorous a resistance on Monday and Tuesday that he was hard put to it to hold his own. Fortunately he had with him three excellent Horse Artillery batteries, G, O, and T, who worked until, at the end of the engagement, they had only twenty rounds in their limbers. The country was an impossible one for cavalry, and the troopers fought dismounted, with intervals of twenty or thirty paces between the men. Exposed all day to rifle and shell fire, unable to advance and unwilling to retreat, it was only owing to their open formation that they escaped with about thirty casualties. With Boers on his front, his flank, and even on his rear, French held grimly on, realising that a retreat upon his part would mean a greater pressure at all other points of the British advance. At night his weary men slept upon the ground which they had held. All Monday and all Tuesday French kept his grip at Kameelsdrift, stolidly indifferent to the attempt of the enemy to cut his line of communications. On Wednesday, Hamilton, upon the other flank, had gained the upper hand, and the pressure was relaxed. French then pushed forward, but the horses were so utterly beaten that no effective pursuit was possible.

French, despite being weakened, faced such strong resistance on Monday and Tuesday that it was tough for him to maintain his position. Luckily, he had three excellent Horse Artillery batteries, G, O, and T, with him, who fought until, by the end of the engagement, they were down to only twenty rounds left in their limbers. The terrain was impossible for cavalry, so the troopers fought on foot, with about twenty or thirty paces between each man. Exposed all day to rifle and shell fire, unable to move forward and not willing to fall back, they managed to limit their losses to about thirty casualties thanks to their open formation. With the Boers in front of him, on his flanks, and even behind him, French held on grimly, knowing that retreating would increase pressure at all other points of the British advance. That night, his exhausted men slept on the ground they had held. Throughout Monday and Tuesday, French maintained his position at Kameelsdrift, stubbornly ignoring the enemy's attempts to cut his supply line. On Wednesday, Hamilton, on the other flank, gained the advantage, and the pressure eased. French then moved forward, but the horses were so worn out that they couldn’t effectively pursue.

During the two days that French had been held up by the Boer right wing Hamilton had also been seriously engaged upon the left—so seriously that at one time the action appeared to have gone against him. The fight presented some distinctive features, which made it welcome to soldiers who were weary of the invisible man with his smokeless gun upon the eternal kopje. It is true that man, gun, and kopje were all present upon this occasion, but in the endeavours to drive him off some new developments took place, which formed for one brisk hour a reversion to picturesque warfare. Perceiving a gap in the enemy's line, Hamilton pushed up the famous Q battery—the guns which had plucked glory out of disaster at Sanna's Post. For the second time in one campaign they were exposed and in imminent danger of capture. A body of mounted Boers with great dash and hardihood galloped down within close range and opened fire. Instantly the 12th Lancers were let loose upon them. How they must have longed for their big-boned long-striding English troop horses as they strove to raise a gallop out of their spiritless overworked Argentines! For once, however, the lance meant more than five pounds dead weight and an encumbrance to the rider. The guns were saved, the Boers fled, and a dozen were left upon the ground. But a cavalry charge has to end in a re-formation, and that is the instant of danger if any unbroken enemy remains within range. Now a sleet of bullets hissed through their ranks as they retired, and the gallant Lord Airlie, as modest and brave a soldier as ever drew sword, was struck through the heart. 'Pray moderate your language!' was his last characteristic remark, made to a battle-drunken sergeant. Two officers, seventeen men, and thirty horses went down with their Colonel, the great majority only slightly injured. In the meantime the increasing pressure upon his right caused Broadwood to order a second charge, of the Life Guards this time, to drive off the assailants. The appearance rather than the swords of the Guards prevailed, and cavalry as cavalry had vindicated their existence more than they had ever done during the campaign. The guns were saved, the flank attack was rolled back, but one other danger had still to be met, for the Heidelberg commando—a corps d'elite of the Boers—had made its way outside Hamilton's flank and threatened to get past him. With cool judgment the British General detached a battalion and a section of a battery, which pushed the Boers back into a less menacing position. The rest of Bruce Hamilton's Brigade were ordered to advance upon the hills in front, and, aided by a heavy artillery fire, they had succeeded, before the closing in of the winter night, in getting possession of this first line of the enemy's defences. Night fell upon an undecided fight, which, after swaying this way and that, had finally inclined to the side of the British. The Sussex and the City Imperial Volunteers were clinging to the enemy's left flank, while the 11th Division were holding them in front. All promised well for the morrow.

During the two days that the French had been stalled by the Boer right flank, Hamilton had also been heavily engaged on the left—so much so that at one point, it seemed like the battle was going against him. The fight had some notable features, which were a welcome change for soldiers tired of facing the unseen enemy with his smokeless gun on the never-ending hill. It’s true that the man, gun, and hill were all there this time, but in the attempt to drive him away, some new developments occurred that temporarily returned the situation to a more colorful style of warfare. Spotting a gap in the enemy's line, Hamilton pushed forward the famous Q battery—the guns that had earned glory from disaster at Sanna's Post. For the second time in this campaign, they were exposed to serious danger of being captured. A group of mounted Boers charged in boldly and opened fire from close range. Instantly, the 12th Lancers were unleashed on them. How they must have wished for their strong, long-legged English troop horses as they tried to gallop with their overworked Argentines! However, this time, the lance was more than just an extra five pounds weighing down the rider. The guns were saved, the Boers retreated, and a dozen of them lay on the ground. But a cavalry charge must end with a reformation, and that moment is when danger hits if any enemy is still within firing range. Now a storm of bullets hissed through their ranks as they withdrew, and the brave Lord Airlie, as modest and courageous a soldier as ever drew a sword, was shot through the heart. “Please moderate your language!” were his last notable words, directed at a battle-excited sergeant. Two officers, seventeen men, and thirty horses fell with their Colonel, the majority only slightly hurt. Meanwhile, the increasing pressure on his right forced Broadwood to order a second charge, this time by the Life Guards, to push back the attackers. It was the impressive sight of the Guards, rather than their swords, that turned the tide, and cavalry had affirmed their usefulness more than they ever had in this campaign. The guns were secured, the flank attack was pushed back, but one more danger remained, as the Heidelberg commando—a special elite unit of the Boers—had gotten around Hamilton's flank and threatened to outmaneuver him. With calm judgment, the British General detached a battalion and a section of a battery, which pushed the Boers back into a less threatening position. The rest of Bruce Hamilton's Brigade was ordered to advance on the hills ahead, and, supported by heavy artillery fire, they managed to take control of this first line of the enemy's defenses before the winter night fell. Darkness settled on an unresolved fight, which, after shifting back and forth, had finally swung in favor of the British. The Sussex and the City Imperial Volunteers were holding onto the enemy's left flank, while the 11th Division kept them occupied in front. All signs pointed to a positive outcome for the next day.

By order of Lord Roberts the Guards were sent round early on Tuesday, the 12th, to support the flank attack of Bruce Hamilton's infantry. It was afternoon before all was ready for the advance, and then the Sussex, the London Volunteers, and the Derbyshires won a position upon the ridge, followed later by the three regiments of Guards. But the ridge was the edge of a considerable plateau, swept by Boer fire, and no advance could be made over its bare expanse save at a considerable loss. The infantry clung in a long fringe to the edge of the position, but for two hours no guns could be brought up to their support, as the steepness of the slope was insurmountable. It was all that the stormers could do to hold their ground, as they were enfiladed by a Vickers-Maxim, and exposed to showers of shrapnel as well as to an incessant rifle fire. Never were guns so welcome as those of the 82nd battery, brought by Major Connolly into the firing line. The enemy's riflemen were only a thousand yards away, and the action of the artillery might have seemed as foolhardy as that of Long at Colenso. Ten horses went down on the instant, and a quarter of the gunners were hit; but the guns roared one by one into action, and their shrapnel soon decided the day. Undoubtedly it is with Connolly and his men that the honours lie.

By order of Lord Roberts, the Guards were sent out early on Tuesday, the 12th, to support Bruce Hamilton's infantry in their flank attack. It was afternoon before everything was ready for the advance, and then the Sussex, the London Volunteers, and the Derbyshires secured a position on the ridge, followed later by the three regiments of Guards. However, the ridge was at the edge of a large plateau, exposed to Boer fire, and any advance across its bare surface would come at a significant cost. The infantry held on along the edge of their position, but for two hours, no artillery could be brought up for support because the slope was too steep. The attackers could only do their best to maintain their position, as they were targeted by a Vickers-Maxim and faced a continuous barrage of shrapnel and rifle fire. The arrival of the 82nd battery’s guns, brought by Major Connolly into the firing line, was incredibly welcome. The enemy's riflemen were only a thousand yards away, and the artillery's actions might have seemed as reckless as Long’s at Colenso. Ten horses went down immediately, and a quarter of the gunners were hit, but the guns fired one after another, and their shrapnel quickly turned the tide. Clearly, the honors belong to Connolly and his men.

At four o'clock, as the sun sank towards the west, the tide of fight had set in favour of the attack. Two more batteries had come up, every rifle was thrown into the firing line, and the Boer reply was decreasing in volume. The temptation to an assault was great, but even now it might mean heavy loss of life, and Hamilton shrank from the sacrifice. In the morning his judgment was justified, for Botha had abandoned the position, and his army was in full retreat. The mounted men followed as far as Elands River Station, which is twenty-five miles from Pretoria, but the enemy was not overtaken, save by a small party of De Lisle's Australians and Regular Mounted Infantry. This force, less than a hundred in number, gained a kopje which overlooked a portion of the Boer army. Had they been more numerous, the effect would have been incalculable. As it was, the Australians fired every cartridge which they possessed into the throng, and killed many horses and men. It would bear examination why it was that only this small corps was present at so vital a point, and why, if they could push the pursuit to such purpose, others should not be able to do the same. Time was bringing some curious revenges. Already Paardeberg had come upon Majuba Day. Buller's victorious soldiers had taken Laing's Nek. Now, the Spruit at which the retreating Boers were so mishandled by the Australians was that same Bronkers Spruit at which, nineteen years before, a regiment had been shot down. Many might have prophesied that the deed would be avenged; but who could ever have guessed the men who would avenge it?

At four o'clock, as the sun dipped towards the west, the momentum of the battle shifted in favor of the attackers. Two more artillery units had arrived, every rifle was on the firing line, and the Boer response was lessening in intensity. The urge to launch an assault was strong, but even now it could lead to significant loss of life, and Hamilton hesitated at the thought of such sacrifice. By morning, his decision proved right, as Botha had retreated from the position, and his forces were in full withdrawal. The mounted troops pursued them as far as Elands River Station, twenty-five miles from Pretoria, but they didn’t catch the enemy, except for a small group of De Lisle's Australians and Regular Mounted Infantry. This unit, numbering less than a hundred, seized a hill that overlooked part of the Boer army. If they had had more men, the impact could have been substantial. As it was, the Australians fired all the ammunition they had into the crowd, killing many horses and men. It raises questions about why only this small unit was at such a crucial point, and why, if they could pursue effectively, others couldn’t do the same. Time was bringing some strange retributions. Already, Paardeberg had coincided with Majuba Day. Buller’s victorious troops had taken Laing's Nek. Now, the stream where the retreating Boers were so poorly handled by the Australians was the same Bronkers Spruit where, nineteen years earlier, a regiment had been decimated. Many might have predicted that the act would be avenged; but who could have foreseen the very men who would carry out that revenge?

Such was the battle of Diamond Hill, as it was called from the name of the ridge which was opposite to Hamilton's attack. The prolonged two days' struggle showed that there was still plenty of fight in the burghers. Lord Roberts had not routed them, nor had he captured their guns; but he had cleared the vicinity of the capital, he had inflicted a loss upon them which was certainly as great as his own, and he had again proved to them that it was vain for them to attempt to stand. A long pause followed at Pretoria, broken by occasional small alarms and excursions, which served no end save to keep the army from ennui. In spite of occasional breaks in his line of communications, horses and supplies were coming up rapidly, and, by the middle of July, Roberts was ready for the field again. At the same time Hunter had come up from Potchefstroom, and Hamilton had taken Heidelberg, and his force was about to join hands with Buller at Standerton. Sporadic warfare broke out here and there in the west, and in the course of it Snyman of Mafeking had reappeared, with two guns, which were promptly taken from him by the Canadian Mounted Rifles. On all sides it was felt that if the redoubtable De Wet could be captured there was every hope that the burghers might discontinue a struggle which was disagreeable to the British and fatal to themselves. As a point of honour it was impossible for Botha to give in while his ally held out. We will turn, therefore, to this famous guerilla chief, and give some account of his exploits. To understand them some description must be given of the general military situation in the Free State.

Such was the battle of Diamond Hill, named after the ridge that faced Hamilton’s attack. The two-day struggle showed that the burghers still had a lot of fight left in them. Lord Roberts hadn’t defeated them or captured their guns; however, he had cleared the area around the capital, inflicted losses on them that were comparable to his own, and demonstrated that it was pointless for them to try to stand their ground. A long pause followed in Pretoria, interrupted by occasional small skirmishes and raids that did little more than keep the army from getting bored. Despite some disruptions in his supply lines, horses and supplies were arriving quickly, and by mid-July, Roberts was ready to head back into the field. At the same time, Hunter had come from Potchefstroom, and Hamilton had taken Heidelberg, with his forces about to team up with Buller at Standerton. Sporadic fighting broke out in the west, during which Snyman from Mafeking reappeared with two guns, but the Canadian Mounted Rifles quickly took those from him. There was a widespread belief that if the formidable De Wet could be captured, there was a good chance the burghers would end a struggle that was detrimental to the British and catastrophic for themselves. Out of a sense of honor, Botha couldn’t surrender while his ally was still holding out. So, let’s turn our attention to this famous guerilla leader and outline some of his exploits. To understand them, we need to describe the overall military situation in the Free State.

When Lord Roberts had swept past to the north he had brushed aside the flower of the Orange Free State army, who occupied the considerable quadrilateral which is formed by the north-east of that State. The function of Rundle's 8th Division and of Brabant's Colonial Division was to separate the sheep from the goats by preventing the fighting burghers from coming south and disturbing those districts which had been settled. For this purpose Rundle formed a long line which should serve as a cordon. Moving up through Trommel and Clocolan, Ficksburg was occupied on May 25th by the Colonial Division, while Rundle seized Senekal, forty miles to the north-west. A small force of forty Yeomanry, who entered the town some time in advance of the main body, was suddenly attacked by the Boers, and the gallant Dalbiac, famous rider and sportsman, was killed, with four of his men. He was a victim, as so many have been in this campaign, to his own proud disregard of danger.

When Lord Roberts moved north, he quickly pushed aside the elite troops of the Orange Free State army, which had taken up a significant position in the northeast of that region. The goal of Rundle's 8th Division and Brabant's Colonial Division was to keep the fighting burghers from coming south and disturbing the settled areas. To accomplish this, Rundle set up a long line to act as a barrier. Advancing through Trommel and Clocolan, the Colonial Division took over Ficksburg on May 25th, while Rundle captured Senekal, forty miles to the northwest. A small group of forty Yeomanry that entered the town ahead of the main force were suddenly attacked by the Boers, resulting in the brave Dalbiac, a notable rider and sportsman, being killed along with four of his men. He fell victim, like many others in this campaign, to his own reckless disregard for danger.

The Boers were in full retreat, but now, as always, they were dangerous. One cannot take them for granted, for the very moment of defeat is that at which they are capable of some surprising effort. Rundle, following them up from Senekal, found them in strong possession of the kopjes at Biddulphsberg, and received a check in his endeavour to drive them off. It was an action fought amid great grass fires, where the possible fate of the wounded was horrible to contemplate. The 2nd Grenadiers, the Scots Guards, the East Yorkshires, and the West Kents were all engaged, with the 2nd and 79th Field Batteries and a force of Yeomanry. Our losses incurred in the open from unseen rifles were thirty killed and 130 wounded, including Colonel Lloyd of the Grenadiers. Two days later Rundle, from Senekal, joined hands with Brabant from Ficksburg, and a defensive line was formed between those two places, which was held unbroken for two months, when the operations ended in the capture of the greater part of the force opposed to him. Clements's Brigade, consisting of the 1st Royal Irish, the 2nd Bedfords, the 2nd Worcesters, and the 2nd Wiltshires, had come to strengthen Rundle, and altogether he may have had as many as twelve thousand men under his orders. It was not a large force with which to hold a mobile adversary at least eight thousand strong, who might attack him at any point of his extended line. So well, however, did he select his positions that every attempt of the enemy, and there were many, ended in failure. Badly supplied with food, he and his half-starved men held bravely to their task, and no soldiers in all that great host deserve better of their country.

The Boers were retreating, but as always, they were still a threat. You can't underestimate them, because the instant they seem defeated is when they can put up an unexpected fight. Rundle, pursuing them from Senekal, found them strongly positioned on the hills at Biddulphsberg and faced a setback in his attempt to push them back. The battle took place amid intense grass fires, and the potential fate of the wounded was terrifying to think about. The 2nd Grenadiers, Scots Guards, East Yorkshires, and West Kents were all involved, along with the 2nd and 79th Field Batteries and a group of Yeomanry. Our casualties from hidden enemy fire were thirty killed and 130 wounded, including Colonel Lloyd of the Grenadiers. Two days later, Rundle, from Senekal, linked up with Brabant from Ficksburg, establishing a defensive line between the two locations that remained unbroken for two months until operations concluded with the capture of most of the enemy force. Clements's Brigade, made up of the 1st Royal Irish, the 2nd Bedfords, the 2nd Worcesters, and the 2nd Wiltshires, had arrived to reinforce Rundle, giving him possibly as many as twelve thousand troops under his command. It wasn't a large force to hold against a mobile enemy of at least eight thousand who could strike at any point along his extended line. However, Rundle chose his positions so well that every enemy attack, and there were many, ended in failure. Despite being poorly supplied with food, he and his half-starved soldiers persevered bravely, and no troops in that large army deserve more recognition from their country.

At the end of May, then, the Colonial Division, Rundle's Division, and Clements's Brigade held the Boers from Ficksburg on the Basuto border to Senekal. This prevented them from coming south. But what was there to prevent them from coming west, and falling upon the railway line? There was the weak point of the British position. Lord Methuen had been brought across from Boshof, and was available with six thousand men. Colvile was on that side also, with the Highland Brigade. A few details were scattered up and down the line, waiting to be gathered up by an enterprising enemy. Kroonstad was held by a single militia battalion; each separate force had to be nourished by convoys with weak escorts. Never was there such a field for a mobile and competent guerilla leader. And, as luck would have it, such a man was at hand, ready to take full advantage of his opportunities.

At the end of May, the Colonial Division, Rundle's Division, and Clements's Brigade managed to hold the Boers from Ficksburg on the Basuto border to Senekal, preventing them from advancing south. But what was stopping them from moving west and attacking the railway line? That was the vulnerable point in the British position. Lord Methuen had been brought over from Boshof and had six thousand men available. Colvile was also stationed on that side with the Highland Brigade. A few small units were scattered along the line, just waiting for an ambitious enemy to take advantage. Kroonstad was defended by just one militia battalion; each separate force relied on convoys with weak escorts for support. There’s never been a better chance for a skilled and mobile guerrilla leader. And as luck would have it, such a leader was ready to seize every opportunity.





CHAPTER 27. THE LINES OF COMMUNICATION.

Christian de Wet, the elder of two brothers of that name, was at this time in the prime of life, a little over forty years of age. He was a burly middle-sized bearded man, poorly educated, but endowed with much energy and common-sense. His military experience dated back to Majuba Hill, and he had a large share of that curious race hatred which is intelligible in the case of the Transvaal, but inexplicable in a Freestater who has received no injury from the British Empire. Some weakness of his sight compels the use of tinted spectacles, and he had now turned these, with a pair of particularly observant eyes behind them, upon the scattered British forces and the long exposed line of railway.

Christian de Wet, the older of two brothers with that name, was at this time in the prime of his life, just over forty years old. He was a stocky, average-sized man with a beard, not well-educated but full of energy and common sense. His military experience went back to the battle at Majuba Hill, and he had a significant amount of that unusual racial animosity which makes sense in the context of the Transvaal but is hard to understand in a Free Stater who has faced no harm from the British Empire. He had some vision issues that required him to wear tinted glasses, and he was now observing the scattered British forces and the long, exposed railway line with his particularly keen gaze behind them.

De Wet's force was an offshoot from the army of Freestaters under De Villiers, Olivier, and Prinsloo, which lay in the mountainous north-east of the State. To him were committed five guns, fifteen hundred men, and the best of the horses. Well armed, well mounted, and operating in a country which consisted of rolling plains with occasional fortress kopjes, his little force had everything in its favour. There were so many tempting objects of attack lying before him that he must have had some difficulty in knowing where to begin. The tinted spectacles were turned first upon the isolated town of Lindley.

De Wet's force was a branch of the Freestater army led by De Villiers, Olivier, and Prinsloo, stationed in the mountainous northeast of the State. He was in charge of five cannons, fifteen hundred men, and the best horses available. Well-armed and well-mounted, operating in a landscape of rolling plains with occasional fortified hills, his small force had all the advantages. With so many appealing targets in front of him, he must have had a hard time deciding where to start. He first set his sights on the isolated town of Lindley.

Colvile with the Highland Brigade had come up from Ventersburg with instructions to move onward to Heilbron, pacifying the country as he passed. The country, however, refused to be pacified, and his march from Ventersburg to Lindley was harassed by snipers every mile of the way. Finding that De Wet and his men were close upon him, he did not linger at Lindley, but passed on to his destination, his entire march of 126 miles costing him sixty-three casualties, of which nine were fatal. It was a difficult and dangerous march, especially for the handful of Eastern Province Horse, upon whom fell all the mounted work. By evil fortune a force of five hundred Yeomanry, the 18th battalion, including the Duke of Cambridge's Own and the Irish companies, had been sent from Kroonstad to join Colvile at Lindley. Colonel Spragge was in command. On May 27th this body of horsemen reached their destination only to find that Colvile had already abandoned it. They appear to have determined to halt for a day in Lindley, and then follow Colvile to Heilbron. Within a few hours of their entering the town they were fiercely attacked by De Wet.

Colvile and the Highland Brigade had come up from Ventersburg with orders to continue to Heilbron, calming the area as they went. However, the region didn't cooperate, and he faced snipers every mile of the way from Ventersburg to Lindley. Realizing that De Wet and his men were closing in, he didn’t stay long at Lindley and moved on to his destination. His journey of 126 miles resulted in sixty-three casualties, nine of which were fatal. It was a tough and risky trek, especially for the small group of Eastern Province Horse, who handled all the mounted tasks. Unfortunately, a force of five hundred Yeomanry from the 18th battalion, including the Duke of Cambridge's Own and the Irish companies, had been sent from Kroonstad to join Colvile at Lindley. Colonel Spragge was in charge. On May 27th, this group of horsemen arrived only to find that Colvile had already left. They seemed to have decided to stay in Lindley for a day and then follow Colvile to Heilbron. Within a few hours of arriving in town, they were fiercely attacked by De Wet.

Colonel Spragge seems to have acted for the best. Under a heavy fire he caused his troopers to fall back upon his transport, which had been left at a point a few miles out upon the Kroonstad Road, where three defensible kopjes sheltered a valley in which the cattle and horses could be herded. A stream ran through it. There were all the materials there for a stand which would have brought glory to the British arms. The men were of peculiarly fine quality, many of them from the public schools and from the universities, and if any would fight to the death these with their sporting spirit and their high sense of honour might have been expected to do so.

Colonel Spragge seemed to have acted in everyone's best interest. Under heavy fire, he ordered his troops to fall back to their transport, which had been left a few miles out on the Kroonstad Road, where three defensible hills protected a valley suitable for herding cattle and horses. A stream flowed through it. Everything needed for a strong defense was there, which could have brought glory to the British forces. The men were of particularly high quality, many of them from public schools and universities, and if anyone was likely to fight to the death, it would have been these men, given their competitive spirit and strong sense of honor.

They had the stronger motive for holding out, as they had taken steps to convey word of their difficulty to Colvile and to Methuen. The former continued his march to Heilbron, and it is hard to blame him for doing so, but Methuen on hearing the message, which was conveyed to him at great personal peril by Corporal Hankey of the Yeomanry, pushed on instantly with the utmost energy, though he arrived too late to prevent, or even to repair, a disaster. It must be remembered that Colvile was under orders to reach Heilbron on a certain date, that he was himself fighting his way, and that the force which he was asked to relieve was much more mobile than his own. His cavalry at that date consisted of 100 men of the Eastern Province Horse.

They had a stronger reason to hold out since they had made efforts to inform Colvile and Methuen about their situation. Colvile continued his march to Heilbron, and it's hard to fault him for that, but Methuen, upon receiving the message relayed to him at great personal risk by Corporal Hankey of the Yeomanry, pushed forward with all his might, even though he arrived too late to prevent or fix a disaster. It's important to note that Colvile was under orders to reach Heilbron by a specific date, that he was actively fighting his way there, and that the force he was asked to assist was much more mobile than his own. At that time, his cavalry consisted of just 100 men from the Eastern Province Horse.

Colonel Spragge's men had held their own for the first three days of their investment, during which they had been simply exposed to a long-range rifle fire which inflicted no very serious loss upon them. Their principal defence consisted of a stone kraal about twenty yards square, which sheltered them from rifle bullets, but must obviously be a perfect death-trap in the not improbable event of the Boers sending for artillery. The spirit of the troopers was admirable. Several dashing sorties were carried out under the leadership of Captain Humby and Lord Longford. The latter was a particularly dashing business, ending in a bayonet charge which cleared a neighbouring ridge. Early in the siege the gallant Keith met his end. On the fourth day the Boers brought up five guns. One would have thought that during so long a time as three days it would have been possible for the officer in command to make such preparations against this obvious possibility as were so successfully taken at a later stage of the war by the handful who garrisoned Ladybrand. Surely in this period, even without engineers, it would not have been hard to construct such trenches as the Boers have again and again opposed to our own artillery. But the preparations which were made proved to be quite inadequate. One of the two smaller kopjes was carried, and the garrison fled to the other. This also was compelled to surrender, and finally the main kopje also hoisted the white flag. No blame can rest upon the men, for their presence there at all is a sufficient proof of their public spirit and their gallantry. But the lessons of the war seem to have been imperfectly learned, especially that very certain lesson that shell fire in a close formation is insupportable, while in an open formation with a little cover it can never compel surrender. The casualty lists (80 killed and wounded out of a force of 470) show that the Yeomanry took considerable punishment before surrendering, but do not permit us to call the defence desperate or heroic. It is only fair to add that Colonel Spragge was acquitted of all blame by a court of inquiry, which agreed, however, that the surrender was premature, and attributed it to the unauthorised hoisting of a white flag upon one of the detached kopjes. With regard to the subsequent controversy as to whether General Colvile might have returned to the relief of the Yeomanry, it is impossible to see how that General could have acted in any other way than he did.

Colonel Spragge's men held their ground for the first three days of their siege, during which they faced long-range rifle fire that caused little serious injury. Their main defense was a stone kraal about twenty yards square, which protected them from bullets but would obviously be a deadly trap if the Boers called in artillery. The morale of the soldiers was commendable. Several bold sorties were led by Captain Humby and Lord Longford, the latter of which was particularly daring and ended in a bayonet charge that cleared a nearby ridge. Early in the siege, the brave Keith lost his life. On the fourth day, the Boers brought in five guns. One might assume that after three days, the officer in charge could have made adequate preparations against this likely scenario, similar to what was successfully done later in the war by the small garrison at Ladybrand. Surely, even without engineers, it wouldn’t have been too difficult to dig trenches like those the Boers had repeatedly used against our artillery. However, the preparations that were made turned out to be insufficient. One of the two smaller hills was taken, forcing the garrison to retreat to the other. This also had to surrender, and eventually, the main hill raised the white flag as well. The soldiers shouldn’t be blamed, as their very presence there is proof of their public spirit and bravery. But it seems that the lessons of the war were not fully understood, particularly that the reality is that being shelled in a close formation is unbearable, while in an open formation with some cover, it doesn’t lead to surrender. The casualty lists (80 killed and wounded out of a force of 470) indicate that the Yeomanry endured considerable damage before yielding, but this doesn’t allow us to describe the defense as desperate or heroic. It’s fair to note that Colonel Spragge was cleared of any wrongdoing by a court of inquiry, which did agree that the surrender was premature and attributed it to the unauthorized raising of a white flag on one of the isolated hills. Regarding the following debate about whether General Colvile might have returned to relieve the Yeomanry, it’s hard to see how he could have acted differently than he did.

Some explanation is needed of Lord Methuen's appearance upon the central scene of warfare, his division having, when last described, been at Boshof, not far from Kimberley, where early in April he fought the successful action which led to the death of Villebois. Thence he proceeded along the Vaal and then south to Kroonstad, arriving there on May 28th. He had with him the 9th Brigade (Douglas's), which contained the troops which had started with him for the relief of Kimberley six months before. These were the Northumberland Fusiliers, Loyal North Lancashires, Northamptons, and Yorkshire Light Infantry. With him also were the Munsters, Lord Chesham's Yeomanry (five companies), with the 4th and 37th batteries, two howitzers and two pom-poms. His total force was about 6000 men. On arriving at Kroonstad he was given the task of relieving Heilbron, where Colvile, with the Highland Brigade, some Colonial horse, Lovat's Scouts, two naval guns, and the 5th battery, were short of food and ammunition. The more urgent message from the Yeomen at Lindley, however, took him on a fruitless journey to that town on June 1st. So vigorous was the pursuit of the Yeomanry that the leading squadrons, consisting of South Notts Hussars and Sherwood Rangers, actually cut into the Boer convoy and might have rescued the prisoners had they been supported. As it was they were recalled, and had to fight their way back to Lindley with some loss, including Colonel Rolleston, the commander, who was badly wounded. A garrison was left under Paget, and the rest of the force pursued its original mission to Heilbron, arriving there on June 7th, when the Highlanders had been reduced to quarter rations. 'The Salvation Army' was the nickname by which they expressed their gratitude to the relieving force.

Some explanation is needed about Lord Methuen's arrival on the battlefield. When we last checked, his division was at Boshof, not far from Kimberley, where he fought a successful battle in early April that resulted in Villebois's death. From there, he moved along the Vaal and then south to Kroonstad, arriving on May 28th. He had with him the 9th Brigade (Douglas's), which included the troops that had set out with him to relieve Kimberley six months earlier. These troops were the Northumberland Fusiliers, Loyal North Lancashires, Northamptons, and Yorkshire Light Infantry. He also had the Munsters, five companies of Lord Chesham's Yeomanry, and the 4th and 37th batteries, along with two howitzers and two pom-poms. His total force was about 6,000 men. Upon arriving at Kroonstad, he was tasked with relieving Heilbron, where Colvile, along with the Highland Brigade, some Colonial horse riders, Lovat's Scouts, two naval guns, and the 5th battery, were low on food and ammunition. However, a more urgent message from the Yeomen at Lindley led him on a fruitless trip to that town on June 1st. The Yeomanry were so determined in their pursuit that the leading squadrons, made up of the South Notts Hussars and Sherwood Rangers, actually intercepted the Boer convoy and could have rescued the prisoners if they had received support. Instead, they were recalled and had to fight their way back to Lindley, suffering some losses, including Colonel Rolleston, the commander, who was seriously injured. A garrison was left under Paget, while the rest of the force continued its original mission to Heilbron, arriving there on June 7th, when the Highlanders were down to quarter rations. They referred to the relieving force as "The Salvation Army" to show their gratitude.

A previous convoy sent to the same destination had less good fortune. On June 1st fifty-five wagons started from the railway line to reach Heilbron. The escort consisted of one hundred and sixty details belonging to Highland regiments without any guns, Captain Corballis in command. But the gentleman with the tinted glasses was waiting on the way. 'I have twelve hundred men and five guns. Surrender at once!' Such was the message which reached the escort, and in their defenceless condition there was nothing for it but to comply. Thus one disaster leads to another, for, had the Yeomanry held out at Lindley, De Wet would not on June 4th have laid hands upon our wagons; and had he not recruited his supplies from our wagons it is doubtful if he could have made his attack upon Roodeval. This was the next point upon which he turned his attention.

A previous convoy sent to the same destination had less luck. On June 1st, fifty-five wagons left the railway line to reach Heilbron. The escort consisted of one hundred and sixty personnel from Highland regiments without any guns, under Captain Corballis's command. But the man with the tinted glasses was waiting on their route. "I have twelve hundred men and five guns. Surrender immediately!" That was the message received by the escort, and in their vulnerable state, they had no choice but to comply. Thus, one disaster leads to another, for if the Yeomanry had held out at Lindley, De Wet would not have taken our wagons on June 4th; and if he hadn't restocked his supplies from our wagons, it's doubtful he could have launched his attack on Roodeval. This was the next point he focused on.

Two miles beyond Roodeval station there is a well-marked kopje by the railway line, with other hills some distance to the right and the left. A militia regiment, the 4th Derbyshire, had been sent up to occupy this post. There were rumours of Boers on the line, and Major Haig, who with one thousand details of various regiments commanded at railhead, had been attacked on June 6th but had beaten off his assailants. De Wet, acting sometimes in company with, and sometimes independently of, his lieutenant Nel, passed down the line looking fur some easier prey, and on the night of June 7th came upon the militia regiment, which was encamped in a position which could be completely commanded by artillery. It is not true that they had neglected to occupy the kopje under which they lay, for two companies had been posted upon it. But there seems to have been no thought of imminent danger, and the regiment had pitched its tents and gone very comfortably to sleep without a thought of the gentleman in the tinted glasses. In the middle of the night he was upon them with a hissing sleet of bullets. At the first dawn the guns opened and the shells began to burst among them. It was a horrible ordeal for raw troops. The men were miners and agricultural labourers, who had never seen more bloodshed than a cut finger in their lives. They had been four months in the country, but their life had been a picnic, as the luxury of their baggage shows. Now in an instant the picnic was ended, and in the grey cold dawn war was upon them—grim war with the whine of bullets, the screams of pain, the crash of shell, the horrible rending and riving of body and limb. In desperate straits, which would have tried the oldest soldiers, the brave miners did well. They never from the beginning had a chance save to show how gamely they could take punishment, but that at least they did. Bullets were coming from all sides at once and yet no enemy was visible. They lined one side of the embankment, and they were shot in the back. They lined the other, and were again shot in the back. Baird-Douglas, the Colonel, vowed to shoot the man who should raise the white flag, and he fell dead himself before he saw the hated emblem. But it had to come. A hundred and forty of the men were down, many of them suffering from the horrible wounds which shell inflicts. The place was a shambles. Then the flag went up and the Boers at last became visible. Outnumbered, outgeneralled, and without guns, there is no shadow of stain upon the good name of the one militia regiment which was ever seriously engaged during the war. Their position was hopeless from the first, and they came out of it with death, mutilation, and honour.

Two miles past Roodeval station, there's a clearly marked hill near the railway, with other hills further away on both sides. The 4th Derbyshire militia regiment had been sent to take this position. There were rumors of Boers along the line, and Major Haig, who commanded the railhead with a thousand men from various regiments, had been attacked on June 6th but successfully fended off the attackers. De Wet, sometimes working with his lieutenant Nel and sometimes acting alone, moved down the line looking for easier targets. On the night of June 7th, he found the militia regiment camped in a spot fully exposed to artillery fire. It's not true that they had neglected to take the hill above them; two companies were actually stationed there. However, they didn't seem to consider any immediate danger, and the regiment had set up camp and gone to sleep comfortably without a thought about the threat that was approaching. In the dead of night, they were hit with a hail of bullets. At first light, the cannons fired, and shells began to explode around them. It was a horrific experience for inexperienced troops. The soldiers were miners and farm workers who had never witnessed more violence than a minor injury. They had been in the country for four months, but their life had been relatively easy, as their gear reflected. Suddenly, that ease was shattered, and in the cold grey dawn, war confronted them—cruel war, marked by the whine of bullets, screams of agony, the blast of shells, and the gruesome tearing of flesh and bone. In a dire situation that would test even the most seasoned soldiers, the courageous miners held their ground. From the start, they had no chance but to demonstrate their ability to endure suffering, and they did so. Bullets rained from all directions, yet no enemy was visible. They lined one side of the embankment, only to be shot from behind. They switched to the other side and were shot in the back again. Colonel Baird-Douglas swore he would shoot anyone who raised a white flag, but he was killed before he ever saw that dreaded symbol. But it was inevitable. A hundred and forty men were down, many suffering from the horrific injuries that shells cause. The place was a slaughterhouse. Then the flag was raised, revealing the Boers at last. Outnumbered, outmaneuvered, and without artillery, there’s no shame in the record of this one militia regiment that faced serious combat during the war. Their situation was hopeless from the beginning, and they emerged with death, injuries, and honor.

Two miles south of the Rhenoster kopje stands Roodeval station, in which, on that June morning, there stood a train containing the mails for the army, a supply of great-coats, and a truck full of enormous shells. A number of details of various sorts, a hundred or more, had alighted from the train, twenty of them Post-office volunteers, some of the Pioneer Railway corps, a few Shropshires, and other waifs and strays. To them in the early morning came the gentleman with the tinted glasses, his hands still red with the blood of the Derbies. 'I have fourteen hundred men and four guns. Surrender!' said the messenger. But it is not in nature for a postman to give up his postbag without a struggle. 'Never!' cried the valiant postmen. But shell after shell battered the corrugated-iron buildings about their ears, and it was not possible for them to answer the guns which were smashing the life out of them. There was no help for it but to surrender. De Wet added samples of the British volunteer and of the British regular to his bag of militia. The station and train were burned down, the great-coats looted, the big shells exploded, and the mails burned. The latter was the one unsportsmanlike action which can up to that date be laid to De Wet's charge. Forty thousand men to the north of him could forego their coats and their food, but they yearned greatly for those home letters, charred fragments of which are still blowing about the veld. [Footnote: Fragments continually met the eye which must have afforded curious reading for the victors. 'I hope you have killed all those Boers by now,' was the beginning of one letter which I could not help observing.]

Two miles south of the Rhenoster kopje is Roodeval station, where, on that June morning, a train carrying the army’s mail, a supply of greatcoats, and a truck full of massive shells was stopped. A bunch of various details, over a hundred in total, had gotten off the train, including twenty Post Office volunteers, some members of the Pioneer Railway Corps, a few Shropshires, and other random individuals. In the early morning, the man with tinted glasses approached them, his hands still stained with the blood from the Derbies. "I have fourteen hundred men and four guns. Surrender!" said the messenger. But it’s not in a postman’s nature to give up his bag without a fight. "Never!" shouted the brave postmen. But shell after shell battered the corrugated-iron buildings around them, and they couldn’t respond to the guns that were destroying them. They had no choice but to surrender. De Wet took some British volunteers and regular soldiers into his militia. The station and train were set on fire, the greatcoats were looted, the big shells exploded, and the mail was burned. This was the one unsportsmanlike act that could be attributed to De Wet up to that point. Forty thousand men to the north could live without their coats and food, but they deeply desired those letters from home, the charred remnants of which are still blowing around the veld. [Footnote: Fragments were often seen that must have given the victors some interesting reading. "I hope you have killed all those Boers by now," was the opening line of one letter I couldn't help noticing.]

For three days De Wet held the line, and during all that time he worked his wicked will upon it. For miles and miles it was wrecked with most scientific completeness. The Rhenoster bridge was destroyed. So, for the second time, was the Roodeval bridge. The rails were blown upwards with dynamite until they looked like an unfinished line to heaven. De Wet's heavy hand was everywhere. Not a telegraph-post remained standing within ten miles. His headquarters continued to be the kopje at Roodeval.

For three days, De Wet held the line, and during that time, he executed his malicious plans to perfection. For miles and miles, it was thoroughly wrecked with impressive precision. The Rhenoster bridge was destroyed. So was the Roodeval bridge for the second time. The rails were blown upward with dynamite until they resembled an incomplete path to the sky. De Wet's heavy hand was evident everywhere. Not a single telegraph pole remained standing within ten miles. His headquarters remained at the kopje at Roodeval.

On June 10th two British forces were converging upon the point of danger. One was Methuen's, from Heilbron. The other was a small force consisting of the Shropshires, the South Wales Borderers, and a battery which had come south with Lord Kitchener. The energetic Chief of the Staff was always sent by Lord Roberts to the point where a strong man was needed, and it was seldom that he failed to justify his mission. Lord Methuen, however, was the first to arrive, and at once attacked De Wet, who moved swiftly away to the eastward. With a tendency to exaggeration, which has been too common during the war, the affair was described as a victory. It was really a strategic and almost bloodless move upon the part of the Boers. It is not the business of guerillas to fight pitched battles. Methuen pushed for the south, having been informed that Kroonstad had been captured. Finding this to be untrue, he turned again to the eastward in search of De Wet.

On June 10th, two British forces were heading towards the point of danger. One was Methuen's, coming from Heilbron. The other was a small group made up of the Shropshires, the South Wales Borderers, and a battery that had traveled south with Lord Kitchener. The proactive Chief of the Staff was always sent by Lord Roberts to wherever a strong leader was needed, and he rarely failed to prove his worth. However, Lord Methuen was the first to arrive and immediately attacked De Wet, who quickly retreated eastward. Due to a tendency to exaggerate that has been quite common throughout the war, the incident was labeled a victory. In reality, it was more of a strategic and almost bloodless maneuver on the part of the Boers. Guerrillas aren’t meant to fight conventional battles. Methuen pushed south, having been told that Kroonstad had been captured. Upon discovering this was false, he turned east again in search of De Wet.

That wily and indefatigable man was not long out of our ken. On June 14th he appeared once more at Rhenoster, where the construction trains, under the famous Girouard, were working furiously at the repair of the damage which he had already done. This time the guard was sufficient to beat him off, and he vanished again to the eastward. He succeeded, however, in doing some harm, and very nearly captured Lord Kitchener himself. A permanent post had been established at Rhenoster under the charge of Colonel Spens of the Shropshires, with his own regiment and several guns. Smith-Dorrien, one of the youngest and most energetic of the divisional commanders, had at the same time undertaken the supervision and patrolling of the line.

That clever and tireless man wasn't gone for long. On June 14th, he reappeared at Rhenoster, where the construction crews, led by the famous Girouard, were working hard to fix the damage he had already caused. This time, the guards were strong enough to drive him off, and he disappeared again to the east. However, he managed to cause some harm and almost captured Lord Kitchener himself. A permanent post had been set up at Rhenoster, overseen by Colonel Spens of the Shropshires, along with his regiment and several guns. Smith-Dorrien, one of the youngest and most energetic divisional commanders, was also tasked with supervising and patrolling the line.

An attack had at this period been made by a commando of some hundred Boers at the Sand River to the south of Kroonstad, where there is a most important bridge. The attempt was frustrated by the Royal Lancaster regiment and the Railway Pioneer regiment, helped by some mounted infantry and Yeomanry. The fight was for a time a brisk one, and the Pioneers, upon whom the brunt of it fell, behaved with great steadiness. The skirmish is principally remarkable for the death of Major Seymour of the Pioneers, a noble American, who gave his services and at last his life for what, in the face of all slander and misrepresentation, he knew to be the cause of justice and of liberty.

An attack had recently taken place by a group of about a hundred Boers at the Sand River, south of Kroonstad, where there’s a very important bridge. The Royal Lancaster regiment and the Railway Pioneer regiment, along with some mounted infantry and Yeomanry, managed to prevent the attempt. The fight was intense for a period, and the Pioneers, who took the brunt of it, showed great composure. This skirmish is mainly notable for the death of Major Seymour of the Pioneers, a noble American, who dedicated his services and ultimately gave his life for what he believed to be the cause of justice and freedom, despite facing slander and misrepresentation.

It was hoped now, after all these precautions, that the last had been seen of the gentleman with the tinted glasses, but on June 21st he was back in his old haunts once more. Honing Spruit Station, about midway between Kroonstad and Roodeval, was the scene of his new raid. On that date his men appeared suddenly as a train waited in the station, and ripped up the rails on either side of it. There were no guns at this point, and the only available troops were three hundred of the prisoners from Pretoria, armed with Martini-Henry rifles and obsolete ammunition. A good man was in command, however—the same Colonel Bullock of the Devons who had distinguished himself at Colenso—and every tattered, half-starved wastrel was nerved by a recollection of the humiliations which he had already endured. For seven hours they lay helpless under the shell-fire, but their constancy was rewarded by the arrival of Colonel Brookfield with 300 Yeomanry and four guns of the 17th R.F.A., followed in the evening by a larger force from the south. The Boers fled, but left some of their number behind them; while of the British, Major Hobbs and four men were killed and nineteen wounded. This defence of three hundred half-armed men against seven hundred Boer riflemen, with three guns firing shell and shrapnel, was a very good performance. The same body of burghers immediately afterwards attacked a post held by Colonel Evans with two companies of the Shropshires and fifty Canadians. They were again beaten back with loss, the Canadians under Inglis especially distinguishing themselves by their desperate resistance in an exposed position.

It was hoped that after all these precautions, the last they had seen of the guy with the tinted glasses was over, but on June 21st, he was back to his usual spots again. Honing Spruit Station, located roughly halfway between Kroonstad and Roodeval, was the site of his latest attack. On that day, his men suddenly appeared while a train was waiting at the station and tore up the rails on either side of it. There were no guns at this location, and the only troops available were three hundred prisoners from Pretoria, armed with Martini-Henry rifles and outdated ammunition. However, a capable leader was in charge—Colonel Bullock of the Devons, who had made a name for himself at Colenso—and every ragged, half-starved soldier was motivated by memories of the humiliations they had already faced. For seven hours, they lay powerless under shell-fire, but their bravery paid off with the arrival of Colonel Brookfield, bringing 300 Yeomanry and four guns from the 17th R.F.A., followed in the evening by a larger force from the south. The Boers retreated, but left some of their men behind; on the British side, Major Hobbs and four others were killed, and nineteen were wounded. This defense by three hundred poorly armed men against seven hundred Boer riflemen, along with three guns firing shells and shrapnel, was quite impressive. Immediately after, the same group of Boers attacked a post held by Colonel Evans, who had two companies of Shropshires and fifty Canadians. They were once again pushed back, suffering losses, with the Canadians under Inglis particularly distinguishing themselves for their fierce resistance in a vulnerable position.

All these attacks, irritating and destructive as they were, were not able to hinder the general progress of the war. After the battle of Diamond Hill the captured position was occupied by the mounted infantry, while the rest of the forces returned to their camps round Pretoria, there to await the much-needed remounts. At other parts of the seat of war the British cordon was being drawn more tightly round the Boer forces. Buller had come as far as Standerton, and Ian Hamilton, in the last week of June, had occupied Heidelberg. A week afterwards the two forces were able to join hands, and so to completely cut off the Free State from the Transvaal armies. Hamilton in these operations had the misfortune to break his collar-bone, and for a time the command of his division passed to Hunter—the one man, perhaps, whom the army would regard as an adequate successor.

All these attacks, frustrating and damaging as they were, couldn't stop the overall progress of the war. After the battle of Diamond Hill, the mounted infantry took over the captured position, while the rest of the troops returned to their camps around Pretoria to wait for much-needed remounts. In other areas of the conflict, the British forces were tightening their grip around the Boer troops. Buller had advanced to Standerton, and Ian Hamilton, in the last week of June, had taken over Heidelberg. A week later, the two forces were able to unite, completely cutting off the Free State from the Transvaal armies. Unfortunately, Hamilton suffered a broken collarbone during these operations, and for a while, command of his division went to Hunter—the one person, perhaps, that the army would consider a suitable replacement.

It was evident now to the British commanders that there would be no peace and no safety for their communications while an undefeated army of seven or eight thousand men, under such leaders as De Wet and Olivier, was lurking amid the hills which flanked their railroad. A determined effort was made, therefore, to clear up that corner of the country. Having closed the only line of escape by the junction of Ian Hamilton and of Buller, the attention of six separate bodies of troops was concentrated upon the stalwart Freestaters. These were the divisions of Rundle and of Brabant from the south, the brigade of Clements on their extreme left, the garrison of Lindley under Paget, the garrison of Heilbron under Macdonald, and, most formidable of all, a detachment under Hunter which was moving from the north. A crisis was evidently approaching.

It was now clear to the British commanders that there would be no peace and no safety for their supply lines while an undefeated army of seven or eight thousand men, led by leaders like De Wet and Olivier, was hiding in the hills alongside their railroad. Therefore, a serious effort was made to secure that part of the country. By cutting off the only escape route through the junction of Ian Hamilton and Buller, six separate groups of troops focused their attention on the strong Freestaters. These included the divisions of Rundle and Brabant from the south, Clements’ brigade on their far left, the Lindley garrison under Paget, the Heilbron garrison under Macdonald, and, most threatening of all, a unit led by Hunter coming from the north. A crisis was clearly approaching.

The nearest Free State town of importance still untaken was Bethlehem—a singular name to connect with the operations of war. The country on the south of it forbade an advance by Rundle or Brabant, but it was more accessible from the west. The first operation of the British consisted, therefore, in massing sufficient troops to be able to advance from this side. This was done by effecting a junction between Clements from Senekal, and Paget who commanded at Lindley, which was carried out upon July 1st near the latter place. Clements encountered some opposition, but besides his excellent infantry regiments, the Royal Irish, Worcesters, Wiltshires, and Bedfords, he had with him the 2nd Brabant's Horse, with yeomanry, mounted infantry, two 5-inch guns, and the 38th R.F.A. Aided by a demonstration on the part of Grenfell and of Brabant, he pushed his way through after three days of continual skirmish.

The nearest important Free State town that was still untaken was Bethlehem—a strange name to associate with wartime activities. The terrain to the south made it hard for Rundle or Brabant to move forward, but it was easier to approach from the west. So, the British's first step was to gather enough troops to advance from that direction. They achieved this by bringing together Clements from Senekal and Paget, who was in charge at Lindley, which took place on July 1st near Lindley. Clements faced some resistance, but in addition to his strong infantry regiments, the Royal Irish, Worcesters, Wiltshires, and Bedfords, he had the 2nd Brabant's Horse, along with yeomanry, mounted infantry, two 5-inch guns, and the 38th R.F.A. With support from Grenfell and Brabant’s demonstration, he managed to push through after three days of constant skirmishing.

On getting into touch with Clements, Paget sallied out from Lindley, leaving the Buffs behind to garrison the town. He had with him Brookfield's mounted brigade one thousand strong, eight guns, and two fine battalions of infantry, the Munster Fusiliers and the Yorkshire Light Infantry. On July 3rd he found near Leeuw Kop a considerable force of Boers with three guns opposed to him, Clements being at that time too far off upon the flank to assist him. Four guns of the 38th R.F.A. (Major Oldfield) and two belonging to the City Volunteers came into action. The Royal Artillery guns appear to have been exposed to a very severe fire, and the losses were so heavy that for a time they could not be served. The escort was inadequate, insufficiently advanced, and badly handled, for the Boer riflemen were able, by creeping up a donga, to get right into the 38th battery, and the gallant major, with Lieutenant Belcher, was killed in the defence of the guns. Captain FitzGerald, the only other officer present, was wounded in two places, and twenty men were struck down, with nearly all the horses of one section. Captain Marks, who was brigade-major of Colonel Brookfield's Yeomanry, with the help of Lieutenant Keevil Davis and the 15th I.Y. came to the rescue of the disorganised and almost annihilated section. At the same time the C.I.V. guns were in imminent danger, but were energetically covered by Captain Budworth, adjutant of the battery. Soon, however, the infantry, Munster Fusiliers, and Yorkshire Light Infantry, which had been carrying out a turning movement, came into action, and the position was taken. The force moved onwards, and on July 6th they were in front of Bethlehem.

After getting in touch with Clements, Paget set out from Lindley, leaving the Buffs behind to defend the town. He brought with him Brookfield's mounted brigade of one thousand troops, eight guns, and two excellent battalions of infantry, the Munster Fusiliers and the Yorkshire Light Infantry. On July 3rd, he encountered a significant force of Boers near Leeuw Kop, who had three guns facing him, while Clements was too far on the flank to assist. Four guns from the 38th R.F.A. (Major Oldfield) and two from the City Volunteers came into action. The Royal Artillery guns faced intense fire, suffering such heavy losses that they couldn't be operated for a time. The escort was inadequate, poorly advanced, and mismanaged, allowing the Boer riflemen to creep up a donga and get right into the 38th battery. The brave major and Lieutenant Belcher were killed while defending the guns. Captain FitzGerald, the only other officer present, was wounded in two places, and twenty men were hit, along with nearly all the horses in one section. Captain Marks, brigade-major of Colonel Brookfield's Yeomanry, along with Lieutenant Keevil Davis and the 15th I.Y., came to the aid of the disorganized and nearly destroyed section. At the same time, the C.I.V. guns were in serious danger but were effectively protected by Captain Budworth, the battery's adjutant. Soon after, the infantry, Munster Fusiliers, and Yorkshire Light Infantry, which had been executing a flanking movement, came into action and took the position. The force continued to advance, and by July 6th, they were in front of Bethlehem.

The place is surrounded by hills, and the enemy was found strongly posted. Clements's force was now on the left and Paget's on the right. From both sides an attempt was made to turn the Boer flanks, but they were found to be very wide and strong. All day a long-range action was kept up while Clements felt his way in the hope of coming upon some weak spot in the position, but in the evening a direct attack was made by Paget's two infantry regiments upon the right, which gave the British a footing on the Boer position. The Munster Fusiliers and the Yorkshire Light Infantry lost forty killed and wounded, including four officers, in this gallant affair, the heavier loss and the greater honour going to the men of Munster.

The area is surrounded by hills, and the enemy was found well entrenched. Clements's troops were on the left and Paget's on the right. Both sides tried to flank the Boer positions, but they turned out to be very wide and strong. All day, there was long-range fighting while Clements probed for a weak spot in their setup. In the evening, Paget launched a direct assault with two infantry regiments on the right, which allowed the British to gain a foothold on the Boer position. The Munster Fusiliers and the Yorkshire Light Infantry suffered forty casualties, including four officers, in this brave effort, with the heavier losses and greater honor going to the Munster men.

The centre of the position was still held, and on the morning of July 7th Clements gave instructions to the colonel of the Royal Irish to storm it if the occasion should seem favourable. Such an order to such a regiment means that the occasion will seem favourable. Up they went in three extended lines, dropping forty or fifty on the way, but arriving breathless and enthusiastic upon the crest of the ridge. Below them, upon the further side, lay the village of Bethlehem. On the slopes beyond hundreds of horsemen were retreating, and a gun was being hurriedly dragged into the town. For a moment it seemed as if nothing had been left as a trophy, but suddenly a keen-eyed sergeant raised a cheer, which was taken up again and again until it resounded over the veld. Under the crest, lying on its side with a broken wheel, was a gun—one of the 15-pounders of Stormberg which it was a point of honour to regain once more. Many a time had the gunners been friends in need to the infantry. Now it was the turn of the infantry to do something in exchange. That evening Clements had occupied Bethlehem, and one more of their towns had passed out of the hands of the Freestaters.

The center of the position was still secure, and on the morning of July 7th, Clements instructed the colonel of the Royal Irish to storm it if the chance seemed right. An order like that to such a regiment indicates that the moment will indeed feel favorable. They set off in three extended lines, losing about forty or fifty along the way, but arrived breathless and excited at the top of the ridge. Below them, on the other side, lay the village of Bethlehem. On the slopes beyond, hundreds of horsemen were retreating, and a gun was being quickly dragged into the town. For a moment, it seemed like there was nothing left to claim as a trophy, but suddenly a sharp-eyed sergeant shouted a cheer, which was picked up again and again until it echoed across the veld. Under the crest, lying on its side with a broken wheel, was a gun—one of the 15-pounders from Stormberg, which it was vital to reclaim. The gunners had often been there for the infantry in times of need. Now it was the infantry's turn to return the favor. That evening, Clements had taken control of Bethlehem, and one more of their towns had fallen out of the hands of the Freestaters.

A word now as to that force under General Hunter which was closing in from the north. The gallant and energetic Hamilton, lean, aquiline, and tireless, had, as already stated, broken his collar-bone at Heidelberg, and it was as his lieutenant that Hunter was leading these troops out of the Transvaal into the Orange River Colony. Most of his infantry was left behind at Heidelberg, but he took with him Broadwood's cavalry (two brigades) and Bruce Hamilton's 21st infantry brigade, with Ridley's mounted infantry, some seven thousand men in all. On the 2nd of July this force reached Frankfort in the north of the Free State without resistance, and on July 3rd they were joined there by Macdonald's force from Heilbron, so that Hunter found himself with over eleven thousand men under his command. Here was an instrument with which surely the coup de grace could be given to the dying State. Passing south, still without meeting serious resistance, Hunter occupied Reitz, and finally sent on Broadwood's cavalry to Bethlehem, where on July 8th they joined Paget and Clements.

A note now about the force under General Hunter that was advancing from the north. The brave and energetic Hamilton, who was lean, sharp-featured, and tireless, had previously broken his collarbone at Heidelberg. It was as his second-in-command that Hunter was leading these troops out of the Transvaal into the Orange River Colony. Most of his infantry remained back at Heidelberg, but he took with him Broadwood's cavalry (two brigades) and Bruce Hamilton's 21st infantry brigade, along with Ridley's mounted infantry, totaling about seven thousand men. On July 2nd, this force reached Frankfort in the north of the Free State without facing any resistance, and on July 3rd they were joined by Macdonald's force from Heilbron, bringing Hunter's command to over eleven thousand men. Here was a tool with which the final blow could surely be struck against the crumbling State. Moving south and still not encountering serious resistance, Hunter occupied Reitz and ultimately sent Broadwood's cavalry ahead to Bethlehem, where on July 8th they linked up with Paget and Clements.

The net was now in position, and about to be drawn tight, but at this last moment the biggest fish of all dashed furiously out from it. Leaving the main Free State force in a hopeless position behind him, De Wet, with fifteen hundred well-mounted men and five guns, broke through Slabbert's Nek between Bethlehem and Ficksburg, and made swiftly for the north-west, closely followed by Paget's and Broadwood's cavalry. It was on July 16th that he made his dash for freedom. On the 19th Little, with the 3rd Cavalry Brigade, had come into touch with him near Lindley. De Wet shook himself clear, and with splendid audacity cut the railway once more to the north of Honing Spruit, gathering up a train as he passed, and taking two hundred details prisoners. On July 22nd De Wet was at Vredefort, still closely followed by Broadwood, Ridley, and Little, who gleaned his wagons and his stragglers. Thence he threw himself into the hilly country some miles to the south of the Vaal River, where he lurked for a week or more while Lord Kitchener came south to direct the operations which would, as it was hoped, lead to a surrender.

The net was now in position, ready to be tightened, but at the last moment, the biggest fish of all burst out furiously from it. Leaving the main Free State force in a desperate situation behind him, De Wet, with fifteen hundred well-mounted men and five guns, broke through Slabbert's Nek between Bethlehem and Ficksburg and quickly headed northwest, closely pursued by Paget's and Broadwood's cavalry. On July 16th, he made his bold move for freedom. By the 19th, Little, with the 3rd Cavalry Brigade, had made contact with him near Lindley. De Wet managed to shake them off and, with impressive daring, cut the railway again to the north of Honing Spruit, grabbing a train as he passed and taking two hundred men prisoner. On July 22nd, De Wet was at Vredefort, still closely followed by Broadwood, Ridley, and Little, who picked off his wagons and stragglers. From there, he slipped into the hilly terrain a few miles south of the Vaal River, where he stayed hidden for about a week while Lord Kitchener came south to oversee the operations that were hoped to lead to a surrender.

Leaving the indomitable guerilla in his hiding-place, the narrative must return to that drawing of the net which still continued in spite of the escape of this one important fish. On all sides the British forces had drawn closer, and they were both more numerous and more formidable in quality. It was evident now that by a rapid advance from Bethlehem in the direction of the Basuto border all Boers to the north of Ficksburg would be hemmed in. On July 22nd the columns were moving. On that date Paget moved out of Bethlehem, and Rundle took a step forward from Ficksburg. Bruce Hamilton had already, at the cost of twenty Cameron Highlanders, got a grip upon a bastion of that rocky country in which the enemy lurked. On the 23rd Hunter's force was held by the Boers at the strong pass of Retief's Nek, but on the 24th they were compelled to abandon it, as the capture of Slabbert's Nek by Clements threatened their rear. This latter pass was fortified most elaborately. It was attacked upon the 23rd by Brabant's Horse and the Royal Irish without success. Later in the day two companies of the Wiltshire Regiment were also brought to a standstill, but retained a position until nightfall within stone-throw of the Boer lines, though a single company had lost 17 killed and wounded. Part of the Royal Irish remained also close to the enemy's trenches. Under cover of darkness, Clements sent four companies of the Royal Irish and two of the Wiltshires under Colonel Guinness to make a flanking movement along the crest of the heights. These six companies completely surprised the enemy, and caused them to hurriedly evacuate the position. Their night march was performed under great difficulties, the men crawling on hands and knees along a rocky path with a drop of 400 feet upon one side. But their exertions were greatly rewarded. Upon the success of their turning movement depended the fall of Slabbert's Nek. Retief's Nek was untenable if we held Slabbert's Nek, and if both were in our hands the retreat of Prinsloo was cut off.

Leaving the unstoppable guerrilla in his hiding spot, the story has to return to the ongoing trap that continued despite the escape of this one important catch. The British forces had closed in on all sides, and they were both more numerous and stronger overall. It was clear now that a quick advance from Bethlehem toward the Basuto border would trap all the Boers north of Ficksburg. On July 22nd, the columns were on the move. On that day, Paget left Bethlehem, and Rundle made progress from Ficksburg. Bruce Hamilton had already secured a foothold in a bastion of the rocky area where the enemy was hiding, at the cost of twenty Cameron Highlanders. On the 23rd, Hunter's force faced resistance from the Boers at the strong pass of Retief's Nek, but by the 24th, they had to give it up, as the capture of Slabbert's Nek by Clements threatened their rear. This latter pass was heavily fortified. It was attacked on the 23rd by Brabant's Horse and the Royal Irish without success. Later that day, two companies of the Wiltshire Regiment were also halted but managed to stay close to the Boer lines until nightfall, although one company had suffered 17 killed and wounded. Part of the Royal Irish also remained close to the enemy's trenches. Under the cover of darkness, Clements sent four companies of the Royal Irish and two of the Wiltshires, led by Colonel Guinness, to perform a flanking maneuver along the ridge. These six companies completely surprised the enemy, forcing them to retreat hastily from their position. Their night march was incredibly challenging, with the men crawling on their hands and knees along a rocky path that dropped 400 feet on one side. However, their efforts were greatly rewarded. The success of their maneuver depended on the fall of Slabbert's Nek. Retief's Nek was unholdable if we captured Slabbert's Nek, and if we held both, Prinsloo's retreat was blocked.

At every opening of the hills the British guns were thundering, and the heads of British columns were appearing on every height. The Highland Brigade had fairly established themselves over the Boer position, though not without hard fighting, in which a hundred men of the Highland Light Infantry had been killed and wounded. The Seaforths and the Sussex had also gripped the positions in front of them, and taken some punishment in doing so. The outworks of the great mountain fortress were all taken, and on July 26th the British columns were converging on Fouriesburg, while Naauwpoort on the line of retreat was held by Macdonald. It was only a matter of time now with the Boers.

At every opening of the hills, the British guns were booming, and British troops were showing up on every hilltop. The Highland Brigade had firmly established themselves over the Boer position, but not without tough fighting, where a hundred men from the Highland Light Infantry had been killed or injured. The Seaforths and the Sussex also secured their positions and took some hits in the process. The outer defenses of the large mountain fortress were all captured, and on July 26th, the British columns were moving toward Fouriesburg, while Naauwpoort on the retreat route was held by Macdonald. It was only a matter of time now for the Boers.

On the 28th Clements was still advancing, and contracting still further the space which was occupied by our stubborn foe. He found himself faced by the stiff position of Slaapkrantz, and a hot little action was needed before the Boers could be dislodged. The fighting fell upon Brabant's Horse, the Royal Irish, and the Wiltshires. Three companies of the latter seized a farm upon the enemy's left, but lost ten men in doing so, while their gallant colonel, Carter, was severely wounded in two places. The Wiltshires, who were excellently handled by Captain Bolton, held on to the farm and were reinforced there by a handful of the Scots Guards. In the night the position was abandoned by the Boers, and the advance swept onwards. On all sides the pressure was becoming unendurable. The burghers in the valley below could see all day the twinkle of British heliographs from every hill, while at night the constant flash of signals told of the sleepless vigilance which hemmed them in. Upon July 29th, Prinsloo sent in a request for an armistice, which was refused. Later in the day he despatched a messenger with the white flag to Hunter, with an announcement of his unconditional surrender.

On the 28th, Clements was still moving forward, tightening the space occupied by our determined enemy. He encountered the tough position at Slaapkrantz, and a fierce skirmish was needed to dislodge the Boers. The fighting involved Brabant's Horse, the Royal Irish, and the Wiltshires. Three companies from the Wiltshires took control of a farm on the enemy's left but lost ten men in the process, while their brave colonel, Carter, was badly injured in two places. The Wiltshires, expertly led by Captain Bolton, held onto the farm and were reinforced by a small number of the Scots Guards. That night, the Boers abandoned their position, and the advance continued. Pressure was mounting from all sides. The burghers in the valley below could see the flashes of British heliographs throughout the day from every hill, while at night, the ongoing signal flashes indicated the relentless vigilance surrounding them. On July 29th, Prinsloo requested an armistice, which was denied. Later that day, he sent a messenger with a white flag to Hunter, announcing his unconditional surrender.

On July 30th the motley army which had held the British off so long emerged from among the mountains. But it soon became evident that in speaking for all Prinsloo had gone beyond his powers. Discipline was low and individualism high in the Boer army. Every man might repudiate the decision of his commandant, as every man might repudiate the white flag of his comrade. On the first day no more than eleven hundred men of the Ficksburg and Ladybrand commandos, with fifteen hundred horses and two guns, were surrendered. Next day seven hundred and fifty more men came in with eight hundred horses, and by August 6th the total of the prisoners had mounted to four thousand one hundred and fifty with three guns, two of which were our own. But Olivier, with fifteen hundred men and several guns, broke away from the captured force and escaped through the hills. Of this incident General Hunter, an honourable soldier, remarks in his official report: 'I regard it as a dishonourable breach of faith upon the part of General Olivier, for which I hold him personally responsible. He admitted that he knew that General Prinsloo had included him in the unconditional surrender.' It is strange that, on Olivier's capture shortly afterwards, he was not court-martialled for this breach of the rules of war, but that good-natured giant, the Empire, is quick—too quick, perhaps—to let byegones be byegones. On August 4th Harrismith surrendered to Macdonald, and thus was secured the opening of the Van Reenen's Pass and the end of the Natal system of railways. This was of the very first importance, as the utmost difficulty had been found in supplying so large a body of troops so far from the Cape base. In a day the base was shifted to Durban, and the distance shortened by two-thirds, while the army came to be on the railway instead of a hundred miles from it. This great success assured Lord Roberts's communications from serious attack, and was of the utmost importance in enabling him to consolidate his position at Pretoria.

On July 30th, the diverse army that had kept the British at bay for so long emerged from the mountains. However, it quickly became clear that Prinsloo had overstepped his authority in speaking for everyone. Discipline was lacking and individualism was high among the Boer army. Each soldier could dismiss the decision of his commander, just as easily as he could reject the white flag of his fellow soldier. On the first day, only eleven hundred men from the Ficksburg and Ladybrand commandos, along with fifteen hundred horses and two guns, surrendered. The next day, seven hundred and fifty more men arrived with eight hundred horses, and by August 6th, the total number of prisoners had risen to four thousand one hundred and fifty, along with three guns, two of which belonged to us. However, Olivier, with fifteen hundred men and several guns, broke away from the captured force and escaped through the hills. General Hunter, an honorable soldier, commented in his official report on this incident: "I regard it as a dishonorable breach of faith on the part of General Olivier, for which I hold him personally responsible. He admitted that he knew General Prinsloo had included him in the unconditional surrender." It's odd that when Olivier was captured shortly after, he wasn't court-martialed for this violation of war rules, but that good-natured giant, the Empire, is quick—perhaps too quick—to let bygones be bygones. On August 4th, Harrismith surrendered to Macdonald, which secured the opening of Van Reenen's Pass and effectively ended the Natal railway system. This was extremely important, as it had been very challenging to supply such a large group of troops so far from the Cape base. In one day, the base moved to Durban, reducing the distance by two-thirds, while the army was now on the railway instead of a hundred miles away from it. This significant success protected Lord Roberts's communications from serious attack and was crucial in helping him consolidate his position in Pretoria.





CHAPTER 28. THE HALT AT PRETORIA.

Lord Roberts had now been six weeks in the capital, and British troops had overrun the greater part of the south and west of the Transvaal, but in spite of this there was continued Boer resistance, which flared suddenly up in places which had been nominally pacified and disarmed. It was found, as has often been shown in history, that it is easier to defeat a republican army than to conquer it. From Klerksdorp, from Ventersdorp, from Rustenburg, came news of risings against the newly imposed British authority. The concealed Mauser and the bandolier were dug up once more from the trampled corner of the cattle kraal, and the farmer was a warrior once again. Vague news of the exploits of De Wet stimulated the fighting burghers and shamed those who had submitted. A letter was intercepted from the guerilla chief to Cronje's son, who had surrendered near Rustenburg. De Wet stated that he had gained two great victories and had fifteen hundred captured rifles with which to replace those which the burghers had given up. Not only were the outlying districts in a state of revolt, but even round Pretoria the Boers were inclined to take the offensive, while both that town and Johannesburg were filled with malcontents who were ready to fly to their arms once more.

Lord Roberts had now been six weeks in the capital, and British troops had taken control of most of the south and west of the Transvaal. Despite this, there was still ongoing Boer resistance that suddenly flared up in areas that had supposedly been pacified and disarmed. History has shown that defeating a republican army is easier than truly conquering it. Reports came from Klerksdorp, Ventersdorp, and Rustenburg about uprisings against the newly imposed British authority. The hidden Mauser and bandolier were dug up again from the beaten corner of the cattle pen, and the farmer became a warrior once more. Vague news of De Wet's exploits energized the fighting burghers and embarrassed those who had submitted. A letter was intercepted from the guerilla chief to Cronje's son, who had surrendered near Rustenburg. De Wet mentioned that he had achieved two significant victories and had fifteen hundred captured rifles to replace those the burghers had given up. Not only were the outlying districts in revolt, but even around Pretoria, the Boers were inclined to take the offensive, while both that city and Johannesburg were filled with disgruntled individuals ready to take up arms once again.

Already at the end of June there were signs that the Boers realised how helpless Lord Roberts was until his remounts should arrive. The mosquitoes buzzed round the crippled lion. On June 29th there was an attack upon Springs near Johannesburg, which was easily beaten off by the Canadians. Early in July some of the cavalry and mounted infantry patrols were snapped up in the neighbourhood of the capital. Lord Roberts gave orders accordingly that Hutton and Mahon should sweep the Boers back upon his right, and push them as far as Bronkhorst Spruit. This was done on July 6th and 7th, the British advance meeting with considerable resistance from artillery as well as rifles. By this movement the pressure upon the right was relieved, which might have created a dangerous unrest in Johannesburg, and it was done at the moderate cost of thirty-four killed and wounded, half of whom belonged to the Imperial Light Horse. This famous corps, which had come across with Mahon from the relief of Mafeking, had, a few days before, ridden with mixed feelings through the streets of Johannesburg and past, in many instances, the deserted houses which had once been their homes. Many weary months were to pass before the survivors might occupy them. On July 9th the Boers again attacked, but were again pushed back to the eastward.

By the end of June, it was clear that the Boers understood how vulnerable Lord Roberts was until his new horses arrived. The mosquitoes buzzed around the injured lion. On June 29th, there was an attack on Springs near Johannesburg, which the Canadians easily repelled. Early in July, some cavalry and mounted infantry patrols were caught in the vicinity of the capital. Lord Roberts then ordered Hutton and Mahon to push the Boers back on his right side and drive them as far as Bronkhorst Spruit. This operation took place on July 6th and 7th, with the British advance encountering significant resistance from both artillery and rifles. This action eased the pressure on the right flank, which could have led to unrest in Johannesburg, and it was accomplished at a relatively modest cost of thirty-four killed and wounded, with half from the Imperial Light Horse. This renowned unit, which had arrived with Mahon from the relief of Mafeking, had just days earlier ridden through the streets of Johannesburg, filled with mixed emotions, passing many deserted houses that had once been their homes. Many long months would pass before the survivors could occupy them again. On July 9th, the Boers attacked once more but were once again pushed back to the east.

It is probable that all these demonstrations of the enemy upon the right of Lord Roberts's extended position were really feints in order to cover the far-reaching plans which Botha had in his mind. The disposition of the Boer forces at this time appears to have been as follows: Botha with his army occupied a position along Delagoa railway line, further east than Diamond Hill, whence he detached the bodies which attacked Hutton upon the extreme right of the British position to the south-east of Pretoria. To the north of Pretoria a second force was acting under Grobler, while a third under De la Rey had been despatched secretly across to the left wing of the British, north-west of Pretoria. While Botha engaged the attention of Lord Roberts by energetic demonstrations on his right, Grobler and De la Rey were to make a sudden attack upon his centre and his left, each point being twelve or fifteen miles from the other. It was well devised and very well carried out; but the inherent defect of it was that, when subdivided in this way, the Boer force was no longer strong enough to gain more than a mere success of outposts.

It’s likely that all these actions by the enemy on the right of Lord Roberts's extended position were actually distractions to hide the extensive plans Botha had. The arrangement of the Boer forces at this time seems to have been as follows: Botha and his army took a position along the Delagoa railway line, further east than Diamond Hill, from where he sent detachments to attack Hutton on the extreme right of the British position to the southeast of Pretoria. To the north of Pretoria, a second force was operating under Grobler, while a third under De la Rey was secretly sent across to the left flank of the British, northwest of Pretoria. While Botha kept Lord Roberts busy with vigorous actions on his right, Grobler and De la Rey aimed to launch a surprise attack on his center and left, with each point being twelve to fifteen miles apart. It was a well-planned and well-executed strategy; however, the fundamental flaw was that, when divided in this way, the Boer force wasn’t strong enough to achieve more than a minor victory at the outposts.

De la Rey's attack was delivered at break of day on July 11th at Uitval's Nek, a post some eighteen miles west of the capital. This position could not be said to be part of Lord Roberts's line, but rather to be a link to connect his army with Rustenburg. It was weakly held by three companies of the Lincolns with two others in support, one squadron of the Scots Greys, and two guns of O battery R.H.A. The attack came with the first grey light of dawn, and for many hours the small garrison bore up against a deadly fire, waiting for the help which never came. All day they held their assailants at bay, and it was not until evening that their ammunition ran short and they were forced to surrender. Nothing could have been better than the behaviour of the men, both infantry, cavalry, and gunners, but their position was a hopeless one. The casualties amounted to eighty killed and wounded. Nearly two hundred were made prisoners and the two guns were taken.

De la Rey's attack began at dawn on July 11th at Uitval's Nek, a location about eighteen miles west of the capital. This position wasn’t technically part of Lord Roberts's line; it was more of a link to connect his army with Rustenburg. It was weakly defended by three companies of the Lincolns with two others in support, one squadron of the Scots Greys, and two guns from O Battery R.H.A. The attack started with the first gray light of day, and for many hours, the small garrison endured a fierce barrage, waiting for help that never arrived. All day, they managed to hold off their attackers, but it wasn't until evening that they ran low on ammunition and were forced to surrender. The conduct of the soldiers—infantry, cavalry, and gunners—was commendable, but their situation was hopeless. The casualties amounted to eighty killed and wounded, nearly two hundred were captured, and the two guns were taken.

On the same day that De la Rey made his coup at Uitval's Nek, Grobler had shown his presence on the north side of the town by treating very roughly a couple of squadrons of the 7th Dragoon Guards which had attacked him. By the help of a section of the ubiquitous O battery and of the 14th Hussars, Colonel Lowe was able to disengage his cavalry from the trap into which they had fallen, but it was at the cost of between thirty and forty officers and men killed, wounded, or taken. The old 'Black Horse' sustained their historical reputation, and fought their way bravely out of an almost desperate situation, where they were exposed to the fire of a thousand riflemen and four guns.

On the same day that De la Rey staged his coup at Uitval's Nek, Grobler had made his presence known on the north side of the town by treating a couple of squadrons of the 7th Dragoon Guards very roughly when they attacked him. With the help of a section of the ever-present O battery and the 14th Hussars, Colonel Lowe was able to get his cavalry out of the trap they had fallen into, but it came at the cost of around thirty to forty officers and men killed, wounded, or captured. The old 'Black Horse' maintained their historical reputation and fought bravely out of an nearly hopeless situation, where they were exposed to the fire of a thousand riflemen and four guns.

On this same day of skirmishes, July 11th, the Gordons had seen some hot work twenty miles or so to the south of Uitval's Nek. Orders had been given to the 19th Brigade (Smith-Dorrien's) to proceed to Krugersdorp, and thence to make their way north. The Scottish Yeomanry and a section of the 78th R.F.A. accompanied them. The idea seems to have been that they would be able to drive north any Boers in that district, who would then find the garrison of Uitval's Nek at their rear. The advance was checked, however, at a place called Dolverkrantz, which was strongly held by Boer riflemen. The two guns were insufficiently protected, and the enemy got within short range of them, killing or wounding many of the gunners. The lieutenant in charge, Mr. A.J. Turner, the famous Essex cricketer, worked the gun with his own hands until he also fell wounded in three places. The situation was now very serious, and became more so when news was flashed of the disaster at Uitval's Nek, and they were ordered to retire. They could not retire and abandon the guns, yet the fire was so hot that it was impossible to remove them. Gallant attempts were made by volunteers from the Gordons—Captain Younger and other brave men throwing away their lives in the vain effort to reach and to limber up the guns. At last, under the cover of night, the teams were harnessed and the two field-pieces successfully removed, while the Boers who rushed in to seize them were scattered by a volley. The losses in the action were thirty-six and the gain nothing. Decidedly July 11th was not a lucky day for the British arms.

On the same day of skirmishes, July 11th, the Gordons had experienced intense fighting about twenty miles south of Uitval's Nek. The 19th Brigade (Smith-Dorrien's) was ordered to head to Krugersdorp and then to move north. The Scottish Yeomanry and a section of the 78th R.F.A. were with them. The plan seemed to be to push back any Boers in that area, who would then find the garrison at Uitval's Nek behind them. However, their advance was halted at a place called Dolverkrantz, which was strongly defended by Boer riflemen. The two guns lacked adequate protection, and the enemy closed in, killing or wounding many of the gunners. The lieutenant in charge, Mr. A.J. Turner, the well-known Essex cricketer, operated the gun himself until he was wounded in three places. The situation grew very serious, especially when news came in about the disaster at Uitval's Nek, leading to orders for a retreat. They couldn’t retreat and leave the guns behind, but the enemy fire was so intense that it was impossible to move them. Brave volunteers from the Gordons, including Captain Younger and other heroes, made heroic efforts to reach and limber up the guns at the cost of their lives. Finally, under the cover of night, the teams were harnessed, and the two field-pieces were successfully removed while the Boers attempting to capture them were dispersed by a volley. The casualties in the battle were thirty-six, with no gains. Clearly, July 11th was not a fortunate day for the British forces.

It was well known to Botha that every train from the south was bringing horses for Lord Roberts's army, and that it had become increasingly difficult for De Wet and his men to hinder their arrival. The last horse must win, and the Empire had the world on which to draw. Any movement which the Boers would make must be made at once, for already both the cavalry and the mounted infantry were rapidly coming back to their full strength once more. This consideration must have urged Botha to deliver an attack on July 16th, which had some success at first, but was afterwards beaten off with heavy loss to the enemy. The fighting fell principally upon Pole-Carew and Hutton, the corps chiefly engaged being the Royal Irish Fusiliers, the New Zealanders, the Shropshires, and the Canadian Mounted Infantry. The enemy tried repeatedly to assault the position, but were beaten back each time with a loss of nearly a hundred killed and wounded. The British loss was about sixty, and included two gallant young Canadian officers, Borden and Birch, the former being the only son of the minister of militia. So ended the last attempt made by Botha upon the British positions round Pretoria. The end of the war was not yet, but already its futility was abundantly evident. This had become more apparent since the junction of Hamilton and of Buller had cut off the Transvaal army from that of the Free State. Unable to send their prisoners away, and also unable to feed them, the Freestaters were compelled to deliver up in Natal the prisoners whom they had taken at Lindley and Roodeval. These men, a ragged and starving battalion, emerged at Ladysmith, having made their way through Van Reenen's Pass. It is a singular fact that no parole appears on these and similar occasions to have been exacted by the Boers.

It was widely known to Botha that every train from the south was bringing horses for Lord Roberts's army, and that it was becoming increasingly difficult for De Wet and his men to stop their arrival. The last horse must win, and the Empire had resources around the globe to draw from. Any move the Boers planned had to happen quickly, as both the cavalry and the mounted infantry were regaining their full strength rapidly. This likely pushed Botha to launch an attack on July 16th, which was initially somewhat successful but was later repelled with heavy losses for the enemy. The main fighting fell on Pole-Carew and Hutton, with the key troops being the Royal Irish Fusiliers, the New Zealanders, the Shropshires, and the Canadian Mounted Infantry. The enemy tried multiple times to storm the position but was pushed back each time, suffering nearly a hundred killed and wounded. The British loss was around sixty, including two brave young Canadian officers, Borden and Birch, with the former being the only son of the minister of militia. Thus ended Botha's last attempt on the British positions around Pretoria. The war was not over yet, but its futility was already very clear. This became even more evident after Hamilton and Buller joined forces, cutting off the Transvaal army from that of the Free State. Unable to send their prisoners away or feed them, the Free Staters had to hand over the prisoners they had captured at Lindley and Roodeval in Natal. These men, a ragged and starving group, emerged at Ladysmith after making their way through Van Reenen's Pass. Interestingly, it seems there was never a parole demanded by the Boers on these or similar occasions.

Lord Roberts, having remounted a large part of his cavalry, was ready now to advance eastward and give Botha battle. The first town of any consequence along the Delagoa Railway is Middelburg, some seventy miles from the capital. This became the British objective, and the forces of Mahon and Hamilton on the north, of Pole-Carew in the centre, and of French and Hutton to the south, all converged upon it. There was no serious resistance, though the weather was abominable, and on July 27th the town was in the hands of the invaders. From that date until the final advance to the eastward French held this advanced post, while Pole-Carew guarded the railway line. Rumours of trouble in the west had convinced Roberts that it was not yet time to push his advantage to the east, and he recalled Ian Hamilton's force to act for a time upon the other side of the seat of the war. This excellent little army, consisting of Mahon's and Pilcher's mounted infantry, M battery R.H.A., the Elswick battery, two 5-inch and two 4.7 guns, with the Berkshires, the Border Regiment, the Argyle and Sutherlands, and the Scottish Borderers, put in as much hard work in marching and in fighting as any body of troops in the whole campaign.

Lord Roberts, having remounted a large part of his cavalry, was now ready to move east and engage Botha in battle. The first significant town along the Delagoa Railway is Middelburg, about seventy miles from the capital. This became the British target, with Mahon and Hamilton's forces to the north, Pole-Carew in the center, and French and Hutton to the south, all converging on it. There was no serious resistance, despite the terrible weather, and on July 27th, the town fell into the hands of the invaders. From that date until the final push east, French held this advanced position while Pole-Carew secured the railway line. Rumors of trouble in the west had convinced Roberts that it wasn't yet time to advance to the east, so he recalled Ian Hamilton's force to operate for a while on the other side of the conflict. This effective little army, made up of Mahon's and Pilcher's mounted infantry, M battery R.H.A., the Elswick battery, two 5-inch and two 4.7-inch guns, along with the Berkshires, the Border Regiment, the Argyle and Sutherlands, and the Scottish Borderers, put in as much hard work in marching and fighting as any troops in the entire campaign.

The renewal of the war in the west had begun some weeks before, but was much accelerated by the transference of De la Rey and his burghers to that side. There is no district in the Transvaal which is better worth fighting for, for it is a fair country side, studded with farmhouses and green with orange-groves, with many clear streams running through it. The first sign of activity appears to have been on July 7th, when a commando with guns appeared upon the hills above Rustenburg. Hanbury Tracy, commandant of Rustenburg, was suddenly confronted with a summons to surrender. He had only 120 men and one gun, but he showed a bold front. Colonel Houldsworth, at the first whisper of danger, had started from Zeerust with a small force of Australian bushmen, and arrived at Rustenburg in time to drive the enemy away in a very spirited action. On the evening of July 8th Baden-Powell took over the command, the garrison being reinforced by Plumer's command.

The fighting in the west had started a few weeks earlier, but it picked up speed when De la Rey and his men moved to that area. There's no region in the Transvaal that's more worth fighting for; it's a beautiful landscape dotted with farmhouses and lush orange groves, with many clear streams flowing through. The first signs of action seemed to emerge on July 7th, when a commando with artillery showed up on the hills above Rustenburg. Hanbury Tracy, the commandant of Rustenburg, was unexpectedly confronted with a demand to surrender. He had just 120 men and one gun, but he stood firm. Colonel Houldsworth, upon hearing of the threat, rushed from Zeerust with a small group of Australian bushmen and arrived at Rustenburg just in time to push the enemy back in a fierce encounter. By the evening of July 8th, Baden-Powell took over command, with the garrison strengthened by Plumer's forces.

The Boer commando was still in existence, however, and it was reinforced and reinvigorated by De la Rey's success at Uitval's Nek. On July 18th they began to close in upon Rustenburg again, and a small skirmish took place between them and the Australians. Methuen's division, which had been doing very arduous service in the north of the Free State during the last six weeks, now received orders to proceed into the Transvaal and to pass northwards through the disturbed districts en route for Rustenburg, which appeared to be the storm centre. The division was transported by train from Kroonstad to Krugersdorp, and advanced on the evening of July 18th upon its mission, through a bare and fire-blackened country. On the 19th Lord Methuen manoeuvred the Boers out of a strong position, with little loss to either side. On the 21st he forced his way through Olifant's Nek, in the Magaliesberg range, and so established communication with Baden-Powell, whose valiant bushmen, under Colonel Airey, had held their own in a severe conflict near Magato Pass, in which they lost six killed, nineteen wounded, and nearly two hundred horses. The fortunate arrival of Captain FitzClarence with the Protectorate Regiment helped on this occasion to avert a disaster. The force, only 300 strong, without guns, had walked into an ugly ambuscade, and only the tenacity and resource of the men enabled them ever to extricate themselves.

The Boer commando was still active, and it was strengthened and energized by De la Rey's victory at Uitval's Nek. On July 18th, they began to move in on Rustenburg again, leading to a small skirmish with the Australians. Methuen's division, which had been working hard in the northern Free State for the past six weeks, was ordered to head into the Transvaal and through the troubled areas towards Rustenburg, which seemed to be the center of the conflict. The division was transported by train from Kroonstad to Krugersdorp and advanced on the evening of July 18th on its mission through a desolate and charred landscape. On the 19th, Lord Methuen maneuvered the Boers out of a strong position with minimal casualties on either side. On the 21st, he broke through Olifant's Nek in the Magaliesberg range, establishing communication with Baden-Powell, whose brave bushmen, led by Colonel Airey, had held their ground in a fierce battle near Magato Pass, resulting in six deaths, nineteen injuries, and nearly two hundred horses lost. The timely arrival of Captain FitzClarence with the Protectorate Regiment helped prevent a disaster in this situation. The force, numbering only 300 and lacking artillery, had walked into a difficult ambush, and only the determination and ingenuity of the soldiers allowed them to escape.

Although Methuen came within reach of Rustenburg, he did not actually join hands with Baden-Powell. No doubt he saw and heard enough to convince him that that astute soldier was very well able to take care of himself. Learning of the existence of a Boer force in his rear, Methuen turned, and on July 29th he was back at Frederickstad on the Potchefstroom to Krugersdorp railway. The sudden change in his plans was caused doubtless by the desire to head off De Wet in case he should cross the Vaal River. Lord Roberts was still anxious to clear the neighbourhood of Rustenburg entirely of the enemy; and he therefore, since Methuen was needed to complete the cordon round De Wet, recalled Hamilton's force from the east and despatched it, as already described, to the west of Pretoria.

Although Methuen got close to Rustenburg, he didn't actually team up with Baden-Powell. He likely saw and heard enough to realize that the clever soldier was more than capable of handling himself. Learning about a Boer force behind him, Methuen turned around, and on July 29th, he was back at Frederickstad on the Potchefstroom to Krugersdorp railway. This sudden change in plans was probably due to the need to intercept De Wet if he attempted to cross the Vaal River. Lord Roberts was still eager to completely clear the Rustenburg area of the enemy; therefore, since Methuen was needed to help encircle De Wet, he recalled Hamilton's force from the east and sent it, as previously mentioned, to the west of Pretoria.

Before going into the details of the great De Wet hunt, in which Methuen's force was to be engaged, I shall follow Hamilton's division across, and give some account of their services. On August 1st he set out from Pretoria for Rustenburg. On that day and on the next he had brisk skirmishes which brought him successfully through the Magaliesberg range with a loss of forty wounded, mostly of the Berkshires. On the 5th of August he had made his way to Rustenburg and drove off the investing force. A smaller siege had been going on to westward, where at Elands River another Mafeking man, Colonel Hore, had been held up by the burghers. For some days it was feared, and even officially announced, that the garrison had surrendered. It was known that an attempt by Carrington to relieve the place on August 5th had been beaten back, and that the state of the country appeared so threatening that he had been compelled, or had imagined himself to be compelled, to retreat as far as Mafeking, evacuating Zeerust and Otto's Hoop, abandoning the considerable stores which were collected at those places. In spite of all these sinister indications the garrison was still holding its own, and on August 16th it was relieved by Lord Kitchener.

Before diving into the details of the great De Wet hunt, where Methuen's forces were to be involved, I'll track Hamilton's division across and summarize their actions. On August 1st, he departed from Pretoria heading to Rustenburg. On that day and the following one, he encountered some active skirmishes that allowed him to successfully navigate through the Magaliesberg range, resulting in forty wounded, mostly from the Berkshires. By August 5th, he reached Rustenburg and drove away the encircling force. Meanwhile, a smaller siege was happening to the west at Elands River, where another Mafeking man, Colonel Hore, was being held up by the burghers. For several days, there were fears, even officially announced, that the garrison had surrendered. It was known that Carrington's attempt to relieve the area on August 5th had been repelled, and the situation in the country looked so precarious that he had to retreat all the way to Mafeking, evacuating Zeerust and Otto's Hoop, leaving behind significant supplies gathered at those locations. Despite these ominous signs, the garrison continued to hold out, and on August 16th, it was rescued by Lord Kitchener.

This stand at Brakfontein on the Elands River appears to have been one of the very finest deeds of arms of the war. The Australians have been so split up during the campaign, that though their valour and efficiency were universally recognised, they had no single exploit which they could call their own. But now they can point to Elands River as proudly as the Canadians can to Paardeberg. They were 500 in number, Victorians, New South Welshmen, and Queenslanders, the latter the larger unit, with a corps of Rhodesians. Under Hore were Major Hopper of the Rhodesians, and Major Toubridge of the Queenslanders. Two thousand five hundred Boers surrounded them, and most favourable terms of surrender were offered and scouted. Six guns were trained upon them, and during 11 days 1800 shells fell within their lines. The river was half a mile off, and every drop of water for man or beast had to come from there. Nearly all their horses and 75 of the men were killed or wounded. With extraordinary energy and ingenuity the little band dug shelters which are said to have exceeded in depth and efficiency any which the Boers have devised. Neither the repulse of Carrington, nor the jamming of their only gun, nor the death of the gallant Annett, was sufficient to dishearten them. They were sworn to die before the white flag should wave above them. And so fortune yielded, as fortune will when brave men set their teeth, and Broadwood's troopers, filled with wonder and admiration, rode into the lines of the reduced and emaciated but indomitable garrison. When the ballad-makers of Australia seek for a subject, let them turn to Elands River, for there was no finer resistance in the war. They will not grudge a place in their record to the 130 gallant Rhodesians who shared with them the honours and the dangers of the exploit.

This stand at Brakfontein on the Elands River seems to have been one of the greatest feats in the war. The Australians got so scattered during the campaign that, even though their bravery and effectiveness were widely acknowledged, they didn't have one specific accomplishment they could claim as their own. But now they can look at Elands River with the same pride as the Canadians have in Paardeberg. There were 500 of them—Victorians, New South Welshmen, and Queenslanders, with Queenslanders being the largest group, along with a corps of Rhodesians. Commanding them was Hore, alongside Major Hopper of the Rhodesians and Major Toubridge of the Queenslanders. They were surrounded by 2,500 Boers, who offered generous terms of surrender that were quickly rejected. Six artillery pieces were aimed at them, and over 11 days, 1,800 shells landed within their perimeter. The river was half a mile away, so every drop of water for both men and animals had to be sourced from there. Almost all their horses and 75 of their men were either killed or injured. With incredible energy and creativity, the small group dug shelters that reportedly surpassed in both depth and effectiveness anything the Boers had created. Neither the defeat of Carrington nor the malfunction of their only gun, nor the death of the brave Annett, could discourage them. They were determined to die rather than let a white flag be raised above them. Eventually, fate favored them, as it often does when brave men fight hard, and Broadwood's troopers, filled with awe and admiration, rode into the lines of the diminished yet unyielding garrison. When Australian songwriters look for a topic, they should turn to Elands River, as there was no better resistance in the war. They won’t hesitate to include the 130 brave Rhodesians who shared the honors and risks of this remarkable feat.

On August 7th Ian Hamilton abandoned Rustenburg, taking Baden-Powell and his men with him. It was obviously unwise to scatter the British forces too widely by attempting to garrison every single town. For the instant the whole interest of the war centred upon De Wet and his dash into the Transvaal. One or two minor events, however, which cannot be fitted into any continuous narrative may be here introduced.

On August 7th, Ian Hamilton left Rustenburg, taking Baden-Powell and his men with him. It clearly wasn’t smart to spread the British forces too thin by trying to garrison every single town. At that moment, all attention in the war focused on De Wet and his bold move into the Transvaal. However, there are one or two minor events that don’t fit into any continuous story and can be mentioned here.

One of these was the action at Faber's Put, by which Sir Charles Warren crushed the rebellion in Griqualand. In that sparsely inhabited country of vast distances it was a most difficult task to bring the revolt to a decisive ending. This Sir Charles Warren, with his special local knowledge and interest, was able to do, and the success is doubly welcome as bringing additional honour to a man who, whatever view one may take of his action at Spion Kop, has grown grey in the service of the Empire. With a column consisting mainly of colonials and of yeomanry he had followed the rebels up to a point within twelve miles of Douglas. Here at the end of May they turned upon him and delivered a fierce night attack, so sudden and so strongly pressed that much credit is due both to General and to troops for having repelled it. The camp was attacked on all sides in the early dawn. The greater part of the horses were stampeded by the firing, and the enemy's riflemen were found to be at very close quarters. For an hour the action was warm, but at the end of that time the Boers fled, leaving a number of dead behind them. The troops engaged in this very creditable action, which might have tried the steadiness of veterans, were four hundred of the Duke of Edinburgh's volunteers, some of Paget's horse and of the 8th Regiment Imperial Yeomanry, four Canadian guns, and twenty-five of Warren's Scouts. Their losses were eighteen killed and thirty wounded. Colonel Spence, of the volunteers, died at the head of his regiment. A few days before, on May 27th, Colonel Adye had won a small engagement at Kheis, some distance to the westward, and the effect of the two actions was to put an end to open resistance. On June 20th De Villiers, the Boer leader, finally surrendered to Sir Charles Warren, handing over two hundred and twenty men with stores, rifles, and ammunition. The last sparks had for the time been stamped out in the colony.

One of these was the battle at Faber's Put, where Sir Charles Warren defeated the rebellion in Griqualand. In that sparsely populated area of vast distances, it was a tough task to bring the revolt to a decisive conclusion. Sir Charles Warren, with his local knowledge and interest, was able to accomplish this, and the success is especially gratifying as it brings more honor to a man who, regardless of one's opinion on his actions at Spion Kop, has dedicated his life to serving the Empire. Leading a column mainly made up of colonials and yeomanry, he pursued the rebels up to a point just twelve miles from Douglas. At the end of May, they turned on him and launched a fierce night attack, so sudden and intense that both the General and his troops deserve much credit for repelling it. The camp was assaulted from all sides in the early morning. Most of the horses were stampeded due to the gunfire, and the enemy's riflemen were found to be very close. The fighting was intense for about an hour, but by the end, the Boers fled, leaving several dead behind. The troops involved in this commendable action, which could have tested the resolve of seasoned soldiers, included four hundred of the Duke of Edinburgh's volunteers, some from Paget's horse, the 8th Regiment of Imperial Yeomanry, four Canadian guns, and twenty-five of Warren's Scouts. They suffered eighteen killed and thirty wounded. Colonel Spence, of the volunteers, died leading his regiment. A few days earlier, on May 27th, Colonel Adye had won a small skirmish at Kheis, some distance to the west, and the outcome of both actions effectively ended open resistance. On June 20th, De Villiers, the Boer leader, finally surrendered to Sir Charles Warren, handing over two hundred and twenty men along with supplies, rifles, and ammunition. The last sparks of rebellion had, for the time being, been extinguished in the colony.

There remain to be mentioned those attacks upon trains and upon the railway which had spread from the Free State to the Transvaal. On July 19th a train was wrecked on the way from Potchefstroom to Krugersdorp without serious injury to the passengers. On July 31st, however, the same thing occurred with more murderous effect, the train running at full speed off the metals. Thirteen of the Shropshires were killed and thirty-seven injured in this deplorable affair, which cost us more than many an important engagement. On August 2nd a train coming up from Bloemfontein was derailed by Sarel Theron and his gang some miles south of Kroonstad. Thirty-five trucks of stores were burned, and six of the passengers (unarmed convalescent soldiers) were killed or wounded. A body of mounted infantry followed up the Boers, who numbered eighty, and succeeded in killing and wounding several of them.

There are still some attacks on trains and railways to mention that spread from the Free State to the Transvaal. On July 19th, a train was wrecked on its journey from Potchefstroom to Krugersdorp, thankfully without serious injuries to the passengers. However, on July 31st, the same thing happened with much deadlier consequences, as the train derailed at full speed. Thirteen members of the Shropshire regiment lost their lives, and thirty-seven were injured in this tragic incident, which cost us more than many significant battles. On August 2nd, a train coming from Bloemfontein was derailed by Sarel Theron and his gang a few miles south of Kroonstad. Thirty-five trucks carrying supplies were burned, and six unarmed convalescent soldiers were either killed or wounded. A unit of mounted infantry pursued the eighty Boers and managed to kill and injure several of them.

On July 21st the Boers made a determined attack upon the railhead at a point thirteen miles east of Heidelberg, where over a hundred Royal Engineers were engaged upon a bridge. They were protected by three hundred Dublin Fusiliers under Major English. For some hours the little party was hard pressed by the burghers, who had two field-pieces and a pom-pom. They could make no impression, however, upon the steady Irish infantry, and after some hours the arrival of General Hart with reinforcements scattered the assailants, who succeeded in getting their guns away in safety.

On July 21st, the Boers launched a determined attack on the railhead located thirteen miles east of Heidelberg, where more than a hundred Royal Engineers were working on a bridge. They were safeguarded by three hundred Dublin Fusiliers commanded by Major English. For several hours, this small group faced intense pressure from the burghers, who had two field guns and a pom-pom. However, they couldn't break the resolve of the steady Irish infantry, and after some time, the arrival of General Hart with reinforcements drove the attackers away, who managed to retreat with their guns intact.

At the beginning of August it must be confessed that the general situation in the Transvaal was not reassuring. Springs near Johannesburg had in some inexplicable way, without fighting, fallen into the hands of the enemy. Klerksdorp, an important place in the south-west, had also been reoccupied, and a handful of men who garrisoned it had been made prisoners without resistance. Rustenburg was about to be abandoned, and the British were known to be falling back from Zeerust and Otto's Hoop, concentrating upon Mafeking. The sequel proved however, that there was no cause for uneasiness in all this. Lord Roberts was concentrating his strength upon those objects which were vital, and letting the others drift for a time. At present the two obviously important things were to hunt down De Wet and to scatter the main Boer army under Botha. The latter enterprise must wait upon the former, so for a fortnight all operations were in abeyance while the flying columns of the British endeavoured to run down their extremely active and energetic antagonist.

At the start of August, it has to be admitted that the overall situation in the Transvaal was not encouraging. Springs near Johannesburg had somehow fallen into the enemy's control without any fighting. Klerksdorp, an important location in the southwest, had also been retaken, and a small group of men guarding it had surrendered without a fight. Rustenburg was about to be abandoned, and the British were falling back from Zeerust and Otto's Hoop, regrouping at Mafeking. However, it later became clear that there was no reason for concern. Lord Roberts was focusing his resources on critical objectives and allowing other areas to be neglected for a while. Right now, the two main priorities were to capture De Wet and to disperse the main Boer army under Botha. The latter task had to wait for the former, so for two weeks, all operations were paused while British units tried to track down their very active and determined opponent.

At the end of July De Wet had taken refuge in some exceedingly difficult country near Reitzburg, seven miles south of the Vaal River. The operations were proceeding vigorously at that time against the main army at Fouriesberg, and sufficient troops could not be spared to attack him, but he was closely observed by Kitchener and Broadwood with a force of cavalry and mounted infantry. With the surrender of Prinsloo a large army was disengaged, and it was obvious that if De Wet remained where he was he must soon be surrounded. On the other hand, there was no place of refuge to the south of him. With great audacity he determined to make a dash for the Transvaal, in the hope of joining hands with De la Rey's force, or else of making his way across the north of Pretoria, and so reaching Botha's army. President Steyn went with him, and a most singular experience it must have been for him to be harried like a mad dog through the country in which he had once been an honoured guest. De Wet's force was exceedingly mobile, each man having a led horse, and the ammunition being carried in light Cape carts.

At the end of July, De Wet had taken shelter in some really tough terrain near Reitzburg, seven miles south of the Vaal River. At that time, military operations were in full swing against the main army at Fouriesberg, and there weren’t enough troops available to go after him, but he was being closely monitored by Kitchener and Broadwood with a cavalry and mounted infantry force. With Prinsloo's surrender, a large army was freed up, and it was clear that if De Wet stayed where he was, he would soon be surrounded. However, there was no safe place for him to retreat to in the south. Boldly, he decided to make a break for the Transvaal, hoping to link up with De la Rey’s forces or find a way across the north of Pretoria to join Botha's army. President Steyn accompanied him, and it must have been a strange experience for him, being chased like a wild animal through territory where he had once been a respected guest. De Wet's force was very agile, with each soldier having a spare horse, and the ammunition transported in light Cape carts.

In the first week of August the British began to thicken round his lurking-place, and De Wet knew that it was time for him to go. He made a great show of fortifying a position, but it was only a ruse to deceive those who watched him. Travelling as lightly as possible, he made a dash on August 7th at the drift which bears his own name, and so won his way across the Vaal River, Kitchener thundering at his heels with his cavalry and mounted infantry. Methuen's force was at that time at Potchefstroom, and instant orders had been sent to him to block the drifts upon the northern side. It was found as he approached the river that the vanguard of the enemy was already across and that it was holding the spurs of the hills which would cover the crossing of their comrades. By the dash of the Royal Welsh Fusiliers and the exertions of the artillery ridge after ridge was carried, but before evening De Wet with supreme skill had got his convoy across, and had broken away, first to the eastward and then to the north. On the 9th Methuen was in touch with him again, and the two savage little armies, Methuen worrying at the haunch, and De Wet snapping back over his shoulder, swept northward over the huge plains. Wherever there was ridge or kopje the Boer riflemen staved off the eager pursuers. Where the ground lay flat and clear the British guns thundered onwards and fired into the lines of wagons. Mile after mile the running fight was sustained, but the other British columns, Broadwood's men and Kitchener's men, had for some reason not come up. Methuen alone was numerically inferior to the men he was chasing, but he held on with admirable energy and spirit. The Boers were hustled off the kopjes from which they tried to cover their rear. Twenty men of the Yorkshire Yeomanry carried one hill with the bayonet, though only twelve of them were left to reach the top.

In the first week of August, the British started to close in on his hiding spot, and De Wet realized it was time to move. He pretended to strengthen his position, but it was just a trick to mislead those watching him. Traveling as lightly as possible, he made a quick move on August 7th at the drift named after him, successfully crossing the Vaal River while Kitchener pursued him closely with his cavalry and mounted infantry. At that time, Methuen's forces were at Potchefstroom, and he received urgent orders to block the drifts on the northern side. As he approached the river, it became clear that the enemy's advance guard had already crossed and was holding the hills that would protect the crossing of their comrades. Thanks to the charge of the Royal Welsh Fusiliers and the efforts of the artillery, they captured ridge after ridge, but by evening, De Wet had skillfully gotten his convoy across and escaped, first heading east and then north. On the 9th, Methuen was back in contact with him, and the two fierce little armies—Methuen pressing from behind and De Wet looking back—swept north across the vast plains. Wherever there were ridges or kopjes, the Boer marksmen held off the eager pursuers. Where the ground was flat and open, the British guns advanced and fired into the lines of wagons. The running fight continued mile after mile, but for some reason, the other British columns, Broadwood's men and Kitchener's men, had not caught up. Methuen was outnumbered by the men he was chasing, but he persisted with impressive energy and spirit. The Boers were pushed off the kopjes they were using to shield their retreat. Twenty men from the Yorkshire Yeomanry took a hill with the bayonet, though only twelve made it to the top.

De Wet trekked onwards during the night of the 9th, shedding wagons and stores as he went. He was able to replace some of his exhausted beasts from the farmhouses which he passed. Methuen on the morning of the 10th struck away to the west, sending messages back to Broadwood and Kitchener in the rear that they should bear to the east, and so nurse the Boer column between them. At the same time he sent on a messenger, who unfortunately never arrived, to warn Smith-Dorrien at Bank Station to throw himself across De Wet's path. On the 11th it was realised that De Wet had succeeded, in spite of great exertions upon the part of Smith-Dorrien's infantry, in crossing the railway line, and that he had left all his pursuers to the south of him. But across his front lay the Magaliesberg range. There are only three passes, the Magato Pass, Olifant's Nek, and Commando Nek. It was understood that all three were held by British troops. It was obvious, therefore, that if Methuen could advance in such a way as to cut De Wet off from slipping through to the west he would be unable to get away. Broadwood and Kitchener would be behind him, and Pretoria, with the main British army, to the east.

De Wet continued his march during the night of the 9th, leaving behind wagons and supplies as he moved. He managed to replace some of his tired animals from the farmhouses he passed. On the morning of the 10th, Methuen headed west, sending messages back to Broadwood and Kitchener behind him, instructing them to turn east and trap the Boer column between them. At the same time, he sent a messenger, who unfortunately never made it, to warn Smith-Dorrien at Bank Station to position himself across De Wet's path. By the 11th, it became clear that De Wet had successfully crossed the railway line, despite the considerable efforts of Smith-Dorrien's infantry, leaving all his pursuers behind him to the south. However, the Magaliesberg range lay ahead of him. There were only three passes: Magato Pass, Olifant's Nek, and Commando Nek. It was known that all three were held by British troops. Therefore, it was clear that if Methuen could advance in a way that cut De Wet off from escaping to the west, he would be stuck. Broadwood and Kitchener would be behind him, and Pretoria, along with the main British army, would be to the east.

Methuen continued to act with great energy and judgment. At three A.M. on the 12th be started from Fredericstadt, and by 5 P.M. on Tuesday he had done eighty miles in sixty hours. The force which accompanied him was all mounted, 1200 of the Colonial Division (1st Brabant's, Cape Mounted Rifles, Kaffrarian Rifles, and Border Horse), and the Yeomanry with ten guns. Douglas with the infantry was to follow behind, and these brave fellows covered sixty-six miles in seventy-six hours in their eagerness to be in time. No men could have made greater efforts than did those of Methuen, for there was not one who did not appreciate the importance of the issue and long to come to close quarters with the wily leader who had baffled us so long.

Methuen continued to act with great energy and judgment. At 3 A.M. on the 12th, he set out from Fredericstadt, and by 5 P.M. on Tuesday, he had covered eighty miles in sixty hours. The force accompanying him was entirely mounted, consisting of 1200 from the Colonial Division (1st Brabant’s, Cape Mounted Rifles, Kaffrarian Rifles, and Border Horse), along with the Yeomanry and ten guns. Douglas, with the infantry, was to follow behind, and these brave soldiers covered sixty-six miles in seventy-six hours in their eagerness to arrive on time. No one could have made a greater effort than Methuen's men, as every one of them understood the importance of the situation and longed to confront the cunning leader who had outsmarted us for so long.

On the 12th Methuen's van again overtook De Wet's rear, and the old game of rearguard riflemen on one side, and a pushing artillery on the other, was once more resumed. All day the Boers streamed over the veld with the guns and the horsemen at their heels. A shot from the 78th battery struck one of De Wet's guns, which was abandoned and captured. Many stores were taken and much more, with the wagons which contained them, burned by the Boers. Fighting incessantly, both armies traversed thirty-five miles of ground that day.

On the 12th, Methuen's van caught up with De Wet's rear again, and the familiar scenario of rearguard riflemen on one side and advancing artillery on the other began again. All day long, the Boers poured over the open land with the guns and horsemen right behind them. A shot from the 78th battery hit one of De Wet's guns, which was then abandoned and captured. Many supplies were taken, and a lot more, along with the wagons carrying them, were burned by the Boers. Both armies fought continuously, covering thirty-five miles that day.

It was fully understood that Olifant's Nek was held by the British, so Methuen felt that if he could block the Magato Pass all would be well. He therefore left De Wet's direct track, knowing that other British forces were behind him, and he continued his swift advance until he had reached the desired position. It really appeared that at last the elusive raider was in a corner. But, alas for fallen hopes, and alas for the wasted efforts of gallant men! Olifant's Nek had been abandoned and De Wet had passed safely through it into the plains beyond, where De la Rey's force was still in possession. In vain Methuen's weary column forced the Magato Pass and descended into Rustenburg. The enemy was in a safe country once more. Whose the fault, or whether there was a fault at all, it is for the future to determine. At least unalloyed praise can be given to the Boer leader for the admirable way in which he had extricated himself from so many dangers. On the 17th., moving along the northern side of the mountains, he appeared at Commando Nek on the Little Crocodile River, where he summoned Baden-Powell to surrender, and received some chaff in reply from that light-hearted commander. Then, swinging to the eastward, he endeavoured to cross to the north of Pretoria. On the 19th he was heard of at Hebron. Baden-Powell and Paget had, however, already barred this path, and De Wet, having sent Steyn on with a small escort, turned back to the Free State. On the 22nd it was reported that, with only a handful of his followers, he had crossed the Magaliesberg range by a bridlepath and was riding southwards. Lord Roberts was at last free to turn his undivided attention upon Botha.

It was clear that Olifant's Nek was controlled by the British, so Methuen figured that if he could block the Magato Pass, everything would be fine. He therefore deviated from De Wet's direct path, knowing that other British forces were behind him, and he continued his rapid advance until he reached the position he wanted. It really seemed like the elusive raider was finally cornered. But, sadly for shattered hopes and the wasted efforts of brave men, Olifant's Nek had been abandoned, and De Wet had safely moved through it into the plains beyond, where De la Rey's force was still in control. In vain, Methuen's tired troops forced their way through the Magato Pass and descended into Rustenburg. The enemy was once again in a secure area. Whose fault it was, or if there was even a fault, is something for the future to decide. At least, full credit goes to the Boer leader for the excellent way he had managed to escape from so many dangers. On the 17th, moving along the northern side of the mountains, he appeared at Commando Nek on the Little Crocodile River, where he demanded Baden-Powell's surrender, only to receive some teasing in response from that carefree commander. Then, moving to the east, he tried to cross north of Pretoria. By the 19th, he was reported to be at Hebron. However, Baden-Powell and Paget had already blocked this route, and De Wet, having sent Steyn on with a small escort, turned back to the Free State. On the 22nd, it was reported that, with only a few followers, he had crossed the Magaliesberg range via a bridlepath and was heading south. Lord Roberts was finally free to focus all his attention on Botha.

Two Boer plots had been discovered during the first half of August, the one in Pretoria and the other in Johannesburg, each having for its object a rising against the British in the town. Of these the former, which was the more serious, involving as it did the kidnapping of Lord Roberts, was broken up by the arrest of the deviser, Hans Cordua, a German lieutenant in the Transvaal Artillery. On its merits it is unlikely that the crime would have been met by the extreme penalty, especially as it was a question whether the agent provocateur had not played a part. But the repeated breaches of parole, by which our prisoners of one day were in the field against us on the next, called imperatively for an example, and it was probably rather for his broken faith than for his hare-brained scheme that Cordua died. At the same time it is impossible not to feel sorrow for this idealist of twenty-three who died for a cause which was not his own. He was shot in the garden of Pretoria Gaol upon August 24th. A fresh and more stringent proclamation from Lord Roberts showed that the British Commander was losing his patience in the face of the wholesale return of paroled men to the field, and announced that such perfidy would in future be severely punished. It was notorious that the same men had been taken and released more than once. One man killed in action was found to have nine signed passes in his pocket. It was against such abuses that the extra severity of the British was aimed.

Two Boer plots were discovered in the first half of August, one in Pretoria and the other in Johannesburg, each aimed at rising up against the British in those towns. The Pretoria plot, which was more serious because it involved the kidnapping of Lord Roberts, was shut down when they arrested Hans Cordua, a German lieutenant in the Transvaal Artillery who devised the plan. It's unlikely that the crime would have been punished severely on its own, especially since there was some doubt about whether an agent provocateur had a role in it. However, the repeated breaches of parole, where our prisoners of one day were fighting against us the next, demanded a definitive response, and Cordua likely faced execution more for his betrayal than for his reckless plan. At the same time, it’s hard not to feel sorry for this 23-year-old idealist who died for a cause that wasn’t even his own. He was shot in the garden of Pretoria Gaol on August 24th. A new, stricter proclamation from Lord Roberts showed that the British Commander was losing patience with the countless return of paroled men to the battlefield, announcing that such treachery would be punished harshly in the future. It was well-known that the same men had been captured and released multiple times. One man killed in action was found with nine signed passes in his pocket. The extra severity from the British was aimed at preventing such abuses.





CHAPTER 29. THE ADVANCE TO KOMATIPOORT.

The time had now come for the great combined movement which was to sweep the main Boer army off the line of the Delagoa railway, cut its source of supplies, and follow it into that remote and mountainous Lydenburg district which had always been proclaimed as the last refuge of the burghers. Before entering upon this most difficult of all his advances Lord Roberts waited until the cavalry and mounted infantry were well mounted again. Then, when all was ready, the first step in this last stage of the regular campaign was taken by General Buller, who moved his army of Natal veterans off the railway line and advanced to a position from which he could threaten the flank and rear of Botha if he held his ground against Lord Roberts. Buller's cavalry had been reinforced by the arrival of Strathcona's Horse, a fine body of Canadian troopers, whose services had been presented to the nation by the public-spirited nobleman whose name they bore. They were distinguished by their fine physique, and by the lassoes, cowboy stirrups, and large spurs of the North-Western plains.

The time had now come for the major combined movement aimed at pushing the main Boer army off the Delagoa railway line, cutting off its supply sources, and following it into the remote and mountainous Lydenburg area, which had always been considered the last refuge of the burghers. Before embarking on this most challenging advance, Lord Roberts waited until the cavalry and mounted infantry were properly equipped again. Once everything was ready, the first step in this final phase of the regular campaign was initiated by General Buller, who moved his army of Natal veterans off the railway line and advanced to a position where he could threaten Botha's flank and rear if he stood firm against Lord Roberts. Buller's cavalry had been bolstered by the arrival of Strathcona's Horse, an impressive group of Canadian troopers whose services had been offered to the nation by the generous nobleman after whom they were named. They were noted for their strong physiques, along with their lassoes, cowboy stirrups, and large spurs typical of the North-Western plains.

It was in the first week of July that Clery joined hands with the Heidelberg garrison, while Coke with the 10th Brigade cleared the right flank of the railway by an expedition as far as Amersfoort. On July 6th the Natal communications were restored, and on the 7th Buller was able to come through to Pretoria and confer with the Commander-in-Chief. A Boer force with heavy guns still hung about the line, and several small skirmishes were fought between Vlakfontein and Greylingstad in order to drive it away. By the middle of July the immediate vicinity of the railway was clear save for some small marauding parties who endeavoured to tamper with the rails and the bridges. Up to the end of the month the whole of the Natal army remained strung along the line of communications from Heidelberg to Standerton, waiting for the collection of forage and transport to enable them to march north against Botha's position.

It was the first week of July when Clery teamed up with the Heidelberg garrison, while Coke and the 10th Brigade cleared the right side of the railway all the way to Amersfoort. On July 6th, the Natal communications were restored, and on the 7th, Buller was able to reach Pretoria and meet with the Commander-in-Chief. A Boer force with heavy guns was still lingering around the line, and several small skirmishes took place between Vlakfontein and Greylingstad to drive them off. By mid-July, the area around the railway was mostly clear, except for some small raiding parties trying to disrupt the rails and bridges. By the end of the month, the entire Natal army was spread along the line of communications from Heidelberg to Standerton, waiting for supplies and transport to march north against Botha's position.

On August 8th Buller's troops advanced to the north-east from Paardekop, pushing a weak Boer force with five guns in front of them. At the cost of twenty-five wounded, principally of the 60th Rifles, the enemy was cleared off, and the town of Amersfoort was occupied. On the 13th, moving on the same line, and meeting with very slight opposition, Buller took possession of Ermelo. His advance was having a good effect upon the district, for on the 12th the Standerton commando, which numbered 182 men, surrendered to Clery. On the 15th, still skirmishing, Buller's men were at Twyfelaar, and had taken possession of Carolina. Here and there a distant horseman riding over the olive-coloured hills showed how closely and incessantly he was watched; but, save for a little sniping upon his flanks, there was no fighting. He was coming now within touch of French's cavalry, operating from Middelburg, and on the 14th heliographic communication was established with Gordon's Brigade.

On August 8th, Buller's troops moved northeast from Paardekop, pushing back a weak Boer force that had five guns with them. At the cost of twenty-five wounded, mostly from the 60th Rifles, the enemy was cleared out, and the town of Amersfoort was occupied. On the 13th, continuing on the same route with very minimal opposition, Buller captured Ermelo. His advance was positively impacting the area, as on the 12th, the Standerton commando, consisting of 182 men, surrendered to Clery. On the 15th, while still skirmishing, Buller's men reached Twyfelaar and took control of Carolina. Occasionally, a distant rider could be seen against the olive-colored hills, indicating how closely they were being watched; however, aside from some sniping on the flanks, no significant fighting occurred. He was now coming within reach of French's cavalry, which was operating from Middelburg, and on the 14th, heliographic communication was set up with Gordon's Brigade.

Buller's column had come nearer to its friends, but it was also nearer to the main body of Boers who were waiting in that very rugged piece of country which lies between Belfast in the west and Machadodorp in the east. From this rocky stronghold they had thrown out mobile bodies to harass the British advance from the south, and every day brought Buller into closer touch with these advance guards of the enemy. On August 21st he had moved eight miles nearer to Belfast, French operating upon his left flank. Here he found the Boers in considerable numbers, but he pushed them northward with his cavalry, mounted infantry, and artillery, losing between thirty and forty killed and wounded, the greater part from the ranks of the 18th Hussars and the Gordon Highlanders. This march brought him within fifteen miles of Belfast, which lay due north of him. At the same time Pole-Carew with the central column of Lord Roberts's force had advanced along the railway line, and on August 24th he occupied Belfast with little resistance. He found, however, that the enemy were holding the formidable ridges which lie between that place and Dalmanutha, and that they showed every sign of giving battle, presenting a firm front to Buller on the south as well as to Roberts's army on the west.

Buller’s column had moved closer to its allies, but it was also nearer to the main group of Boers who were waiting in the tough terrain between Belfast to the west and Machadodorp to the east. From this rocky stronghold, they sent out mobile units to disrupt the British advance from the south, and each day brought Buller closer to these enemy advance guards. On August 21st, he moved eight miles closer to Belfast, with French operating on his left flank. Here he encountered a significant number of Boers, but he pushed them north with his cavalry, mounted infantry, and artillery, suffering around thirty to forty killed and wounded, mostly from the 18th Hussars and the Gordon Highlanders. This march put him within fifteen miles of Belfast, which was directly north of him. At the same time, Pole-Carew with the central column of Lord Roberts's force had advanced along the railway line, and on August 24th he took Belfast with minimal resistance. However, he found that the enemy were holding the strong ridges between that location and Dalmanutha, showing clear signs they were ready to fight, presenting a strong front to Buller from the south as well as to Roberts's army from the west.

On the 23rd some successes attended their efforts to check the advance from the south. During the day Buller had advanced steadily, though under incessant fire. The evening found him only six miles to the south of Dalmanutha, the centre of the Boer position. By some misfortune, however, after dark two companies of the Liverpool Regiment found themselves isolated from their comrades and exposed to a very heavy fire. They had pushed forward too far, and were very near to being surrounded and destroyed. There were fifty-six casualties in their ranks, and thirty-two, including their wounded captain, were taken. The total losses in the day were 121.

On the 23rd, their efforts to halt the advance from the south saw some success. Throughout the day, Buller made steady progress, despite constant gunfire. By evening, he was only six miles south of Dalmanutha, the center of the Boer position. Unfortunately, after dark, two companies of the Liverpool Regiment found themselves cut off from their fellow soldiers and under heavy fire. They had advanced too far and were very close to being surrounded and wiped out. They suffered fifty-six casualties, and thirty-two, including their injured captain, were captured. The total losses for the day were 121.

On August 25th it was evident that important events were at hand, for on that date Lord Roberts arrived at Belfast and held a conference with Buller, French, and Pole-Carew. The general communicated his plans to his three lieutenants, and on the 26th and following days the fruits of the interview were seen in a succession of rapid manoeuvres which drove the Boers out of this, the strongest position which they had held since they left the banks of the Tugela.

On August 25th, it was clear that significant events were unfolding, as Lord Roberts arrived in Belfast and held a meeting with Buller, French, and Pole-Carew. The general shared his plans with his three officers, and on the 26th and the days that followed, the outcomes of their discussion were evident in a series of swift maneuvers that pushed the Boers out of their strongest position since they departed from the banks of the Tugela.

The advance of Lord Roberts was made, as his wont is, with two widespread wings, and a central body to connect them. Such a movement leaves the enemy in doubt as to which flank will really be attacked, while if he denudes his centre in order to strengthen both flanks there is the chance of a frontal advance which might cut him in two. French with two cavalry brigades formed the left advance, Pole-Carew the centre, and Buller the right, the whole operations extending over thirty miles of infamous country. It is probable that Lord Roberts had reckoned that the Boer right was likely to be their strongest position, since if it were turned it would cut off their retreat upon Lydenburg, so his own main attack was directed upon their left. This was carried out by General Buller on August 26th and 27th.

The advance of Lord Roberts was, as usual, made with two wide wings and a central body to connect them. This type of movement leaves the enemy uncertain about which side will actually be attacked, and if they reinforce their center to strengthen both flanks, they risk a frontal advance that could split them in two. French, with two cavalry brigades, led the left advance, Pole-Carew held the center, and Buller took the right, with the entire operation stretching over thirty miles of rough terrain. It’s likely that Lord Roberts anticipated the Boer right to be their strongest position since turning it would block their retreat to Lydenburg, so his main attack was focused on their left. This was executed by General Buller on August 26th and 27th.

On the first day the movement upon Buller's part consisted in a very deliberate reconnaissance of and closing in upon the enemy's position, his troops bivouacking upon the ground which they had won. On the second, finding that all further progress was barred by the strong ridge of Bergendal, he prepared his attack carefully with artillery and then let loose his infantry upon it. It was a gallant feat of arms upon either side. The Boer position was held by a detachment of the Johannesburg Police, who may have been bullies in peace, but were certainly heroes in war. The fire of sixty guns was concentrated for a couple of hours upon a position only a few hundred yards in diameter. In this infernal fire, which left the rocks yellow with lyddite, the survivors still waited grimly for the advance of the infantry. No finer defence was made in the war. The attack was carried out across an open glacis by the 2nd Rifle Brigade and by the Inniskilling Fusiliers, the men of Pieter's Hill. Through a deadly fire the gallant infantry swept over the position, though Metcalfe, the brave colonel of the Rifles, with eight other officers, and seventy men were killed or wounded. Lysley, Steward, and Campbell were all killed in leading their companies, but they could not have met their deaths upon an occasion more honourable to their battalion. Great credit must also be given to A and B companies of the Inniskilling Fusiliers, who were actually the first over the Boer position. The cessation of the artillery fire was admirably timed. It was sustained up to the last possible instant. 'As it was,' said the captain of the leading company, 'a 94-pound shell burst about thirty yards in front of the right of our lot. The smell of the lyddite was awful.' A pom-pom and twenty prisoners, including the commander of the police, were the trophies of the day. An outwork of the Boer position had been carried, and the rumour of defeat and disaster had already spread through their ranks. Braver men than the burghers have never lived, but they had reached the limits of human endurance, and a long experience of defeat in the field had weakened their nerve and lessened their morale. They were no longer men of the same fibre as those who had crept up to the trenches of Spion Kop, or faced the lean warriors of Ladysmith on that grim January morning at Caesar's Camp. Dutch tenacity would not allow them to surrender, and yet they realised how hopeless was the fight in which they were engaged. Nearly fifteen thousand of their best men were prisoners, ten thousand at the least had returned to their farms and taken the oath. Another ten had been killed, wounded, or incapacitated. Most of the European mercenaries had left; they held only the ultimate corner of their own country, they had lost their grip upon the railway line, and their supply of stores and of ammunition was dwindling. To such a pass had eleven months of war reduced that formidable army who had so confidently advanced to the conquest of South Africa.

On the first day, Buller carefully reconnoitered and moved closer to the enemy's position, with his troops camping on the ground they had taken. On the second day, realizing that further progress was blocked by the strong ridge of Bergendal, he meticulously planned his attack with artillery before unleashing his infantry. It was a brave display of combat on both sides. The Boer position was manned by a unit from the Johannesburg Police, who might have been bullies in peace but were undoubtedly heroes in war. For a couple of hours, the fire from sixty guns was concentrated on a position only a few hundred yards wide. In that hellish bombardment, which turned the rocks yellow with lyddite, the remaining defenders grimly awaited the infantry’s advance. No better defense was mounted in the war. The attack was launched across an open glacis by the 2nd Rifle Brigade and the Inniskilling Fusiliers, the men from Pieter's Hill. Through heavy fire, the courageous infantry rushed over the position, though Metcalfe, the brave colonel of the Rifles, along with eight other officers and seventy men, were either killed or wounded. Lysley, Steward, and Campbell were all killed while leading their companies, but they could not have fallen in a more honorable moment for their battalion. Much credit also goes to A and B companies of the Inniskilling Fusiliers, who were the first to reach the Boer position. The stop of the artillery fire was perfectly timed, sustained until the very last moment. "As it was," said the captain of the leading company, "a 94-pound shell exploded about thirty yards in front of our group. The smell of the lyddite was terrible." A pom-pom and twenty prisoners, including the police commander, were the day's trophies. An outpost of the Boer position had been taken, and the news of defeat and disaster had already spread among their ranks. Braver men than the burghers have rarely existed, but they had hit the limits of human endurance, and a long history of battlefield defeats had dulled their spirit and reduced their morale. They were no longer the same resilient men who had crept up to the trenches of Spion Kop or confronted the lean warriors of Ladysmith that grim January morning at Caesar's Camp. Dutch stubbornness prevented them from surrendering, yet they understood how hopeless their situation was. Almost fifteen thousand of their best men were prisoners, at least ten thousand had returned to their farms and sworn an oath, and another ten had been killed, wounded, or incapacitated. Most of the European mercenaries had left; they held only a small part of their country, had lost control of the railway line, and were running low on supplies and ammunition. After eleven months of war, this once-formidable army that had confidently advanced to conquer South Africa had come to such a desperate state.

While Buller had established himself firmly upon the left of the Boer position, Pole-Carew had moved forward to the north of the railway line, and French had advanced as far as Swart Kopjes upon the Boer right. These operations on August 26th and 27th were met with some resistance, and entailed a loss of forty or fifty killed and wounded; but it soon became evident that the punishment which they had received at Bergendal had taken the fight out of the Boers, and that this formidable position was to be abandoned as the others had been. On the 28th the burghers were retreating, and Machadodorp, where Kruger had sat so long in his railway carriage, protesting that he would eventually move west and not east, was occupied by Buller. French, moving on a more northerly route, entered Watervalonder with his cavalry upon the same date, driving a small Boer force before him. Amid rain and mist the British columns were pushing rapidly forwards, but still the burghers held together, and still their artillery was uncaptured. The retirement was swift, but it was not yet a rout.

While Buller had firmly positioned himself on the left side of the Boer line, Pole-Carew had advanced north of the railway, and French had progressed as far as Swart Kopjes on the Boer right. These actions on August 26th and 27th faced some resistance and resulted in about forty to fifty casualties, but it quickly became clear that the beating the Boers took at Bergendal had drained their resolve, and they were likely to abandon this stronghold just like the others. By the 28th, the burghers were retreating, and Machadodorp, where Kruger had spent so much time in his railway carriage insisting he would head west instead of east, was taken by Buller. French, taking a more northern route, entered Watervalonder with his cavalry on the same day, pushing a small Boer force ahead of him. Despite the rain and fog, the British columns were advancing quickly, but the burghers remained organized, and their artillery was still unseized. The retreat was rapid, but it wasn’t complete chaos yet.

On the 30th the British cavalry were within touch of Nooitgedacht, and saw a glad sight in a long trail of ragged men who were hurrying in their direction along the railway line. They were the British prisoners, eighteen hundred in number, half of whom had been brought from Waterval when Pretoria was captured, while the other half represented the men who had been sent from the south by De Wet, or from the west by De la Rey. Much allowance must be made for the treatment of prisoners by a belligerent who is himself short of food, but nothing can excuse the harshness which the Boers showed to the Colonials who fell into their power, or the callous neglect of the sick prisoners at Waterval. It is a humiliating but an interesting fact that from first to last no fewer than seven thousand of our men passed into their power, all of whom were now recovered save some sixty officers, who had been carried off by them in their flight.

On the 30th, the British cavalry got close to Nooitgedacht and saw a hopeful sight: a long line of ragged men rushing toward them along the railway line. These men were British prisoners, numbering eighteen hundred. Half had been brought from Waterval when Pretoria was captured, while the other half had been sent from the south by De Wet or from the west by De la Rey. It's important to consider the circumstances of a belligerent who is low on food when discussing the treatment of prisoners, but nothing can justify the harsh treatment the Boers showed to the Colonials who fell into their hands or the callous neglect of the sick prisoners at Waterval. It's a sad but interesting fact that throughout the whole ordeal, no fewer than seven thousand of our men ended up being captured, and all but about sixty officers—who were taken during the Boer retreat—had since recovered.

On September 1st Lord Roberts showed his sense of the decisive nature of these recent operations by publishing the proclamation which had been issued as early as July 4th, by which the Transvaal became a portion of the British Empire. On the same day General Buller, who had ceased to advance to the east and retraced his steps as far as Helvetia, began his northerly movement in the direction of Lydenburg, which is nearly fifty miles to the north of the railway line. On that date his force made a march of fourteen miles, which brought them over the Crocodile River to Badfontein. Here, on September 2nd, Buller found that the indomitable Botha was still turning back upon him, for he was faced by so heavy a shell fire, coming from so formidable a position, that he had to be content to wait in front of it until some other column should outflank it. The days of unnecessary frontal attacks were for ever over, and his force, though ready for anything which might be asked of it, had gone through a good deal in the recent operations. Since August 21st they had been under fire almost every day, and their losses, though never great on any one occasion, amounted in the aggregate during that time to 365. They had crossed the Tugela, they had relieved Ladysmith, they had forced Laing's Nek, and now it was to them that the honour had fallen of following the enemy into this last fastness. Whatever criticism may be directed against some episodes in the Natal campaign, it must never be forgotten that to Buller and to his men have fallen some of the hardest tasks of the war, and that these tasks have always in the end been successfully carried out. The controversy about the unfortunate message to White, and the memory of the abandoned guns at Colenso, must not lead us to the injustice of ignoring all that is to be set to the credit account.

On September 1st, Lord Roberts demonstrated his understanding of the significant nature of these recent operations by publishing the proclamation that had been issued as early as July 4th, declaring that the Transvaal became part of the British Empire. On the same day, General Buller, who had stopped advancing east and retraced his steps back to Helvetia, began moving north towards Lydenburg, which is almost fifty miles north of the railway line. On that day, his forces marched fourteen miles, crossing the Crocodile River to reach Badfontein. Here, on September 2nd, Buller discovered that the relentless Botha was still countering his moves, as he faced such heavy shell fire from a strong position that he had no choice but to wait until another column could outflank it. The days of pointless frontal assaults were gone, and although his force was prepared for any challenge, they had already endured a lot in the recent operations. Since August 21st, they had been under fire almost daily, and while their losses were never significant on any single occasion, they totaled 365 during that period. They had crossed the Tugela, relieved Ladysmith, forced Laing's Nek, and now it was their honor to pursue the enemy into this final stronghold. Regardless of any criticism directed at certain episodes in the Natal campaign, it's important to remember that Buller and his men faced some of the toughest challenges of the war and ultimately succeeded in their missions. The debate over the unfortunate message to White and the memory of the abandoned guns at Colenso shouldn't lead us to overlook all that has been achieved.

On September 3rd Lord Roberts, finding how strong a position faced Buller, despatched Ian Hamilton with a force to turn it upon the right. Brocklehurst's brigade of cavalry joined Hamilton in his advance. On the 4th he was within signalling distance of Buller, and on the right rear of the Boer position. The occupation of a mountain called Zwaggenhoek would establish Hamilton firmly, and the difficult task of seizing it at night was committed to Colonel Douglas and his fine regiment of Royal Scots. It was Spion Kop over again, but with a happier ending. At break of day the Boers discovered that their position had been rendered untenable and withdrew, leaving the road to Lydenburg clear to Buller. Hamilton and he occupied the town upon the 6th. The Boers had split into two parties, the larger one with the guns falling back upon Kruger's Post, and the others retiring to Pilgrim's Rest. Amid cloud-girt peaks and hardly passable ravines the two long-enduring armies still wrestled for the final mastery.

On September 3rd, Lord Roberts, realizing how strong Buller's position was, sent Ian Hamilton with a force to flank it on the right. Brocklehurst's cavalry brigade joined Hamilton in his advance. By the 4th, he was close enough to signal Buller and was positioned at the right rear of the Boer position. Taking control of a mountain called Zwaggenhoek would solidify Hamilton's position, and the challenging task of seizing it at night was given to Colonel Douglas and his skilled Royal Scots regiment. It was just like Spion Kop, but with a better outcome. By dawn, the Boers realized their position was no longer defensible and withdrew, leaving the road to Lydenburg clear for Buller. On the 6th, Hamilton and Buller both took the town. The Boers had split into two groups, with the larger one retreating back toward Kruger's Post and the others heading to Pilgrim's Rest. Amidst cloud-covered peaks and difficult ravines, the two long-suffering armies continued to struggle for ultimate control.

To the north-east of Lydenburg, between that town and Spitzkop, there is a formidable ridge called the Mauchberg, and here again the enemy were found to be standing at bay. They were even better than their word, for they had always said that they would make their last stand at Lydenburg, and now they were making one beyond it. But the resistance was weakening. Even this fine position could not be held against the rush of the three regiments, the Devons, the Royal Irish, and the Royal Scots, who were let loose upon it. The artillery supported the attack admirably. 'They did nobly,' said one who led the advance. 'It is impossible to overrate the value of their support. They ceased also exactly at the right moment. One more shell would have hit us.' Mountain mists saved the defeated burghers from a close pursuit, but the hills were carried. The British losses on this day, September 8th, were thirteen killed and twenty-five wounded; but of these thirty-eight no less than half were accounted for by one of those strange malignant freaks which can neither be foreseen nor prevented. A shrapnel shell, fired at an incredible distance, burst right over the Volunteer Company of the Gordons who were marching in column. Nineteen men fell, but it is worth recording that, smitten so suddenly and so terribly, the gallant Volunteers continued to advance as steadily as before this misfortune befell them. On the 9th Buller was still pushing forward to Spitzkop, his guns and the 1st Rifles overpowering a weak rearguard resistance of the Boers. On the 10th he had reached Klipgat, which is halfway between the Mauchberg and Spitzkop. So close was the pursuit that the Boers, as they streamed through the passes, flung thirteen of their ammunition wagons over the cliffs to prevent them from falling into the hands of the British horsemen. At one period it looked as if the gallant Boer guns had waited too long in covering the retreat of the burghers. Strathcona's Horse pressed closely upon them. The situation was saved by the extreme coolness and audacity of the Boer gunners. 'When the cavalry were barely half a mile behind the rear gun' says an eye-witness 'and we regarded its capture as certain, the LEADING Long Tom deliberately turned to bay and opened with case shot at the pursuers streaming down the hill in single file over the head of his brother gun. It was a magnificent coup, and perfectly successful. The cavalry had to retire, leaving a few men wounded, and by the time our heavy guns had arrived both Long Toms had got clean away.' But the Boer riflemen would no longer stand. Demoralised after their magnificent struggle of eleven months the burghers were now a beaten and disorderly rabble flying wildly to the eastward, and only held together by the knowledge that in their desperate situation there was more comfort and safety in numbers. The war seemed to be swiftly approaching its close. On the 15th Buller occupied Spitzkop in the north, capturing a quantity of stores, while on the 14th French took Barberton in the south, releasing all the remaining British prisoners and taking possession of forty locomotives, which do not appear to have been injured by the enemy. Meanwhile Pole-Carew had worked along the railway line, and had occupied Kaapmuiden, which was the junction where the Barberton line joins that to Lourenco Marques. Ian Hamilton's force, after the taking of Lydenburg and the action which followed, turned back, leaving Buller to go his own way, and reached Komatipoort on September 24th, having marched since September 9th without a halt through a most difficult country.

To the northeast of Lydenburg, between that town and Spitzkop, there's a daunting ridge called the Mauchberg, where the enemy was found dug in once again. They exceeded their promise, as they had always claimed they would make their last stand at Lydenburg, and now they were doing so beyond it. However, their resistance was fading. Even this strong position couldn't hold against the charge of the three regiments: the Devons, the Royal Irish, and the Royal Scots, who were unleashed upon it. The artillery supported the attack superbly. "They performed admirably," said one who led the advance. "It’s impossible to overstate how valuable their support was. They also stopped exactly at the right moment. One more shell would have hit us." Mountain mists saved the defeated burghers from being closely pursued, but the hills were taken. The British losses on this day, September 8th, were thirteen killed and twenty-five wounded; of these thirty-eight, no less than half were accounted for by one of those strange, malignant freaks that can’t be anticipated or prevented. A shrapnel shell, fired from an incredible distance, burst right over the Volunteer Company of the Gordons as they marched in column. Nineteen men fell, but it’s worth noting that, stricken so suddenly and severely, the brave Volunteers continued to advance as steadily as before this misfortune hit them. On the 9th, Buller was still advancing toward Spitzkop, his guns and the 1st Rifles overpowering a weak rearguard resistance from the Boers. By the 10th, he had reached Klipgat, which is halfway between the Mauchberg and Spitzkop. The pursuit was so close that the Boers, as they streamed through the passes, threw thirteen of their ammunition wagons over the cliffs to keep them from falling into the hands of the British cavalry. At one point, it seemed that the valiant Boer guns had waited too long to cover the retreat of the burghers. Strathcona's Horse was closing in on them. The situation was saved by the incredible calmness and bravery of the Boer gunners. "When the cavalry was barely half a mile behind the rear gun," says an eyewitness, "and we considered its capture a certainty, the LEADING Long Tom deliberately turned to face them and opened fire with case shot at the pursuers streaming down the hill in single file over his brother gun. It was a stunning move, and perfectly executed. The cavalry had to retreat, leaving a few men wounded, and by the time our heavy guns arrived, both Long Toms had escaped." But the Boer riflemen no longer stood firm. Demoralized after their impressive eleven-month struggle, the burghers were now a beaten and chaotic mob fleeing wildly eastward, and only stayed together because in their desperate situation, there was more comfort and safety in numbers. The war seemed rapidly headed toward its end. On the 15th, Buller occupied Spitzkop in the north, seizing a quantity of supplies, while on the 14th, French took Barberton in the south, freeing all remaining British prisoners and seizing forty locomotives, which didn't seem to have been damaged by the enemy. Meanwhile, Pole-Carew had moved along the railway line and had occupied Kaapmuiden, the junction where the Barberton line connects with that to Lourenco Marques. Ian Hamilton's force, after taking Lydenburg and the following actions, turned back, leaving Buller to continue on his own, and reached Komatipoort on September 24th, having marched without a break through very challenging terrain since September 9th.

On September 11th an incident had occurred which must have shown the most credulous believer in Boer prowess that their cause was indeed lost. On that date Paul Kruger, a refugee from the country which he had ruined, arrived at Lourenco Marques, abandoning his beaten commandos and his deluded burghers. How much had happened since those distant days when as a little herdsboy he had walked behind the bullocks on the great northward trek. How piteous this ending to all his strivings and his plottings! A life which might have closed amid the reverence of a nation and the admiration of the world was destined to finish in exile, impotent and undignified. Strange thoughts must have come to him during those hours of flight, memories of his virile and turbulent youth, of the first settlement of those great lands, of wild wars where his hand was heavy upon the natives, of the triumphant days of the war of independence, when England seemed to recoil from the rifles of the burghers. And then the years of prosperity, the years when the simple farmer found himself among the great ones of the earth, his name a household word in Europe, his State rich and powerful, his coffers filled with the spoil of the poor drudges who worked so hard and paid taxes so readily. Those were his great days, the days when he hardened his heart against their appeals for justice and looked beyond his own borders to his kinsmen in the hope of a South Africa which should be all his own. And now what had come of it all? A handful of faithful attendants, and a fugitive old man, clutching in his flight at his papers and his moneybags. The last of the old-world Puritans, he departed poring over his well-thumbed Bible, and proclaiming that the troubles of his country arose, not from his own narrow and corrupt administration, but from some departure on the part of his fellow burghers from the stricter tenets of the dopper sect. So Paul Kruger passed away from the country which he had loved and ruined.

On September 11th, an event took place that must have made even the most gullible supporter of Boer strength realize that their cause was truly lost. On that day, Paul Kruger, a refugee from the country he had devastated, arrived at Lourenco Marques, leaving behind his defeated commandos and his misled followers. So much had changed since those distant days when, as a young herdsboy, he walked behind the cattle on the great northward trek. How tragic this ending was to all his efforts and schemes! A life that could have concluded with the respect of a nation and admiration from the world was destined to end in exile, powerless and shameful. Strange thoughts must have crossed his mind during those hours of escape—memories of his vigorous and tumultuous youth, the first settlement of those vast lands, the fierce conflicts where he was harsh on the natives, the victorious days of the independence war, when England seemed to shrink from the burghers' rifles. And then came the years of wealth, when the ordinary farmer found himself among the elite, his name a common one in Europe, his state rich and influential, his coffers filled with the earnings of the hard-working poor who dutifully paid taxes. Those were his glory days, the times when he hardened his heart against their cries for justice and looked beyond his own borders to his kin, dreaming of a South Africa that would be entirely his own. And what had become of it all? A handful of loyal attendants and a fleeing old man, grasping tightly to his documents and money bags. The last of the old-world Puritans, he left while poring over his well-worn Bible, claiming that the troubles of his country resulted not from his own narrow-minded and corrupt leadership, but from his fellow burghers straying from the stricter beliefs of the dopper sect. So Paul Kruger left the country he had loved and destroyed.

Whilst the main army of Botha had been hustled out of their position at Machadodorp and scattered at Lydenburg and at Barberton, a number of other isolated events had occurred at different points of the seat of war, each of which deserves some mention. The chief of these was a sudden revival of the war in the Orange River Colony, where the band of Olivier was still wandering in the north-eastern districts. Hunter, moving northwards after the capitulation of Prinsloo at Fouriesburg, came into contact on August 15th with this force near Heilbron, and had forty casualties, mainly of the Highland Light Infantry, in a brisk engagement. For a time the British seemed to have completely lost touch with Olivier, who suddenly on August 24th struck at a small detachment consisting almost entirely of Queenstown Rifle Volunteers under Colonel Ridley, who were reconnoitring near Winburg. The Colonial troopers made a gallant defence. Throwing themselves into the farmhouse of Helpmakaar, and occupying every post of vantage around it, they held off more than a thousand assailants, in spite of the three guns which the latter brought to bear upon them. A hundred and thirty-two rounds were fired at the house, but the garrison still refused to surrender. Troopers who had been present at Wepener declared that the smaller action was the warmer of the two. Finally on the morning of the third day a relief force arrived upon the scene, and the enemy dispersed. The British losses were thirty-two killed and wounded. Nothing daunted by his failure, Olivier turned upon the town of Winburg and attempted to regain it, but was defeated again and scattered, he and his three sons being taken. The result was due to the gallantry and craft of a handful of the Queenstown Volunteers, who laid an ambuscade in a donga, and disarmed the Boers as they passed, after the pattern of Sanna's Post. By this action one of the most daring and resourceful of the Dutch leaders fell into the hands of the British. It is a pity that his record is stained by his dishonourable conduct in breaking the compact made on the occasion of the capture of Prinsloo. But for British magnanimity a drumhead court-martial should have taken the place of the hospitality of the Ceylon planters.

While Botha's main army was pushed out of their position at Machadodorp and scattered at Lydenburg and Barberton, several other isolated events occurred at different points in the war, each worthy of mention. The most significant of these was a sudden resurgence of the conflict in the Orange River Colony, where Olivier's group was still roaming in the northeastern districts. Hunter, moving north after Prinsloo surrendered at Fouriesburg, encountered this force near Heilbron on August 15th and suffered forty casualties, mostly from the Highland Light Infantry, in a brief clash. For a time, the British seemed to have completely lost track of Olivier, who unexpectedly struck a small detachment made up mostly of Queenstown Rifle Volunteers under Colonel Ridley, who were scouting near Winburg on August 24th. The Colonial troopers mounted a brave defense. Taking shelter in the farmhouse of Helpmakaar and occupying every advantageous position around it, they held off over a thousand attackers despite the three guns the latter brought to bear on them. A hundred thirty-two rounds were fired at the house, but the defenders still refused to surrender. Troopers who participated in Wepener stated that this smaller skirmish was the more intense of the two. Finally, on the morning of the third day, a relief force arrived, and the enemy scattered. The British losses were thirty-two killed and wounded. Undeterred by his defeat, Olivier targeted the town of Winburg and tried to reclaim it but was defeated again and captured along with his three sons. This outcome was due to the bravery and cunning of a handful of Queenstown Volunteers, who set up an ambush in a donga and disarmed the Boers as they passed, reminiscent of Sanna's Post. Through this operation, one of the boldest and most resourceful Dutch leaders fell into British hands. It’s unfortunate that his record is tarnished by his dishonorable behavior in breaking the agreement made during Prinsloo's capture. With British generosity, a drumhead court-martial might have replaced the hospitality offered by the Ceylon planters.

On September 2nd another commando of Free State Boers under Fourie emerged from the mountain country on the Basuto border, and fell upon Ladybrand, which was held by a feeble garrison consisting of one company of the Worcester regiment and forty-three men of the Wiltshire Yeomanry. The Boers, who had several guns with them, appear to have been the same force which had been repulsed at Winburg. Major White, a gallant marine, whose fighting qualities do not seem to have deteriorated with his distance from salt water, had arranged his defences upon a hill, after the Wepener model, and held his own most stoutly. So great was the disparity of the forces that for days acute anxiety was felt lest another of those humiliating surrenders should interrupt the record of victories, and encourage the Boers to further resistance. The point was distant, and it was some time before relief could reach them. But the dusky chiefs, who from their native mountains looked down on the military drama which was played so close to their frontier, were again, as on the Jammersberg, to see the Boer attack beaten back by the constancy of the British defence. The thin line of soldiers, 150 of them covering a mile and a half of ground, endured a heavy shell and rifle fire with unshaken resolution, repulsed every attempt of the burghers, and held the flag flying until relieved by the forces under White and Bruce Hamilton. In this march to the relief Hamilton's infantry covered eighty miles in four and a half days. Lean and hard, inured to warfare, and far from every temptation of wine or women, the British troops at this stage of the campaign were in such training, and marched so splendidly, that the infantry was often very little slower than the cavalry. Methuen's fine performance in pursuit of De Wet, where Douglas's infantry did sixty-six miles in seventy-five hours, the City Imperial Volunteers covering 224 miles in fourteen days, with a single forced march of thirty miles in seventeen hours, the Shropshires forty-three miles in thirty-two hours, the forty-five miles in twenty-five hours of the Essex Regiment, Bruce Hamilton's march recorded above, and many other fine efforts serve to show the spirit and endurance of the troops.

On September 2nd, another group of Free State Boers led by Fourie came down from the mountains near the Basuto border and attacked Ladybrand. The town was defended by a weak garrison made up of one company from the Worcester regiment and forty-three men from the Wiltshire Yeomanry. The Boers, equipped with several cannons, seemed to be the same group that had been pushed back at Winburg. Major White, a brave marine whose fighting skills remained sharp despite being far from the sea, had set up his defenses on a hill, taking inspiration from the Wepener model, and held his position valiantly. The difference in forces was so stark that for days there was significant worry about another humiliating surrender that could mar the record of victories and motivate the Boers to resist even more. The location was remote, and it took time for help to arrive. However, the local chiefs, watching from their mountains, witnessed, just like at Jammersberg, how the British defense managed to repel the Boer attack. The small line of soldiers, numbering 150 and spread over a mile and a half, withstood intense artillery and gunfire with unwavering resolve, fending off every attempt by the Boer fighters and keeping the flag flying until they were relieved by forces under White and Bruce Hamilton. During this relief effort, Hamilton's infantry marched eighty miles in four and a half days. Lean and battle-hardened, far removed from any temptations of alcohol or women, the British troops at this point in the campaign were in excellent shape and marched so impressively that their infantry was often nearly as fast as the cavalry. Methuen’s remarkable pursuit of De Wet, in which Douglas’s infantry covered sixty-six miles in seventy-five hours, the City Imperial Volunteers trekking 224 miles in fourteen days with a single forced march of thirty miles in seventeen hours, the Shropshires covering forty-three miles in thirty-two hours, and the Essex Regiment marching forty-five miles in twenty-five hours, along with Bruce Hamilton's recorded march and many other outstanding achievements, highlight the determination and endurance of the troops.

In spite of the defeat at Winburg and the repulse at Ladybrand, there still remained a fair number of broken and desperate men in the Free State who held out among the difficult country of the east. A party of these came across in the middle of September and endeavoured to cut the railway near Brandfort. They were pursued and broken up by Macdonald, who, much aided in his operations by the band of scouts which Lord Lovat had brought with him from Scotland, took several prisoners and a large number of wagons and of oxen. A party of these Boers attacked a small post of sixteen Yeomanry under Lieutenant Slater at Bultfontein, but were held at bay until relief came from Brandfort.

In spite of the defeat at Winburg and the setback at Ladybrand, there were still a fair number of broken and desperate men in the Free State who managed to hold on in the tough terrain of the east. A group of them showed up in the middle of September and tried to disrupt the railway near Brandfort. They were chased down and defeated by Macdonald, who was greatly supported in his efforts by the group of scouts that Lord Lovat had brought with him from Scotland. Macdonald captured several prisoners, along with a large number of wagons and oxen. A group of these Boers attacked a small outpost of sixteen Yeomanry led by Lieutenant Slater at Bultfontein, but they were held off until help arrived from Brandfort.

At two other points the Boer and British forces were in contact during these operations. One was to the immediate north of Pretoria, where Grobler's commando was faced by Paget's brigade. On August 18th the Boers were forced with some loss out of Hornies Nek, which is ten miles to the north of the capital. On the 22nd a more important skirmish took place at Pienaar's River, in the same direction, between Baden-Powell's men, who had come thither in pursuit of De Wet, and Grobler's band. The advance guards of the two forces galloped into each other, and for once Boer and Briton looked down the muzzles of each other's rifles. The gallant Rhodesian Regiment, which had done such splendid service during the war, suffered most heavily. Colonel Spreckley and four others were killed, and six or seven wounded. The Boers were broken, however, and fled, leaving twenty-five prisoners to the victors. Baden-Powell and Paget pushed forwards as far as Nylstroom, but finding themselves in wild and profitless country they returned towards Pretoria, and established the British northern posts at a place called Warm Baths. Here Paget commanded, while Baden-Powell shortly afterwards went down to Cape Town to make arrangements for taking over the police force of the conquered countries, and to receive the enthusiastic welcome of his colonial fellow-countrymen. Plumer, with a small force operating from Warm Baths, scattered a Boer commando on September 1st, capturing a few prisoners and a considerable quantity of munitions of war. On the 5th there was another skirmish in the same neighbourhood, during which the enemy attacked a kopje held by a company of Munster Fusiliers, and was driven off with loss. Many thousands of cattle were captured by the British in this part of the field of operations, and were sent into Pretoria, whence they helped to supply the army in the east.

At two other points, the Boer and British forces came into contact during these operations. One was just north of Pretoria, where Grobler's commando faced Paget's brigade. On August 18th, the Boers were pushed out of Hornies Nek, about ten miles north of the capital, with some losses. On the 22nd, a more significant skirmish occurred at Pienaar's River, in the same direction, between Baden-Powell's men, who had arrived in pursuit of De Wet, and Grobler's group. The advance guards of both forces collided, and for once, both Boer and Briton found themselves staring down each other's rifles. The brave Rhodesian Regiment, which had performed exceptionally throughout the war, suffered the most. Colonel Spreckley and four others were killed, and six or seven were wounded. However, the Boers were defeated and fled, leaving twenty-five prisoners for the victors. Baden-Powell and Paget pushed forward as far as Nylstroom, but upon finding themselves in wild and unproductive territory, they returned toward Pretoria and established British northern posts at a location called Warm Baths. Here, Paget was in command while Baden-Powell soon went down to Cape Town to arrange the takeover of the police force in the conquered territories and to receive a warm welcome from his colonial compatriots. Plumer, with a small force operating from Warm Baths, scattered a Boer commando on September 1st, capturing a few prisoners and a significant amount of war supplies. On the 5th, there was another skirmish in the same area, during which the enemy attacked a hill held by a company of Munster Fusiliers but was repelled with losses. The British captured many thousands of cattle in this area of operations, which were sent to Pretoria to help supply the army in the east.

There was still considerable effervescence in the western districts of the Transvaal, and a mounted detachment met with fierce opposition at the end of August on their journey from Zeerust to Krugersdorp. Methuen, after his unsuccessful chase of De Wet, had gone as far as Zeerust, and had then taken his force on to Mafeking to refit. Before leaving Zeerust, however, he had despatched Colonel Little to Pretoria with a column which consisted of his own third cavalry brigade, 1st Brabant's, the Kaffrarian Rifles, R battery of Horse Artillery, and four Colonial guns. They were acting as guard to a very large convoy of 'returned empties.' The district which they had to traverse is one of the most fertile in the Transvaal, a land of clear streams and of orange groves. But the farmers are numerous and aggressive, and the column, which was 900 strong, could clear all resistance from its front, but found it impossible to brush off the snipers upon its flanks and rear. Shortly after their start the column was deprived of the services of its gallant leader, Colonel Little, who was shot while riding with his advance scouts. Colonel Dalgety took over the command. Numerous desultory attacks culminated in a fierce skirmish at Quaggafontein on August 31st, in which the column had sixty casualties. The event might have been serious, as De la Rey's main force appears to have been concentrated upon the British detachment, the brunt of the action falling upon the Kaffrarian Rifles. By a rapid movement the column was able to extricate itself and win its way safely to Krugersdorp, but it narrowly escaped out of the wolf's jaws, and as it emerged into the open country De la Rey's guns were seen galloping for the pass which they had just come through. This force was sent south to Kroonstad to refit.

There was still a lot of excitement in the western districts of the Transvaal, and a mounted unit faced tough resistance at the end of August during their journey from Zeerust to Krugersdorp. Methuen, after unsuccessfully chasing De Wet, had reached Zeerust and then took his forces to Mafeking for repairs. However, before leaving Zeerust, he had sent Colonel Little to Pretoria with a unit made up of his own third cavalry brigade, the 1st Brabant's, the Kaffrarian Rifles, a battery of Horse Artillery, and four Colonial guns. They were serving as protection for a large convoy of 'returned empties.' The area they had to cross is one of the richest in the Transvaal, filled with clear streams and orange groves. But the farmers were many and aggressive, and while the 900-strong column could push through the resistance ahead, it couldn't shake off the snipers on the sides and behind. Shortly after they began, they lost their brave leader, Colonel Little, who was shot while riding with his scouts. Colonel Dalgety took over command. Numerous small attacks led to a fierce skirmish at Quaggafontein on August 31, in which the column suffered sixty casualties. This could have been serious, as De la Rey's main force seemed concentrated on the British unit, with the bulk of the fighting falling on the Kaffrarian Rifles. Through quick action, the column managed to escape and make its way safely to Krugersdorp, but it narrowly avoided disaster, and as it moved into open territory, De la Rey's guns were seen rushing toward the pass they had just crossed. This force was sent south to Kroonstad to refit.

Lord Methuen's army, after its long marches and arduous work, arrived at Mafeking on August 28th for the purpose of refitting. Since his departure from Boshof on May 14th his men had been marching with hardly a rest, and he had during that time fought fourteen engagements. He was off upon the war-path once more, with fresh horses and renewed energy, on September 8th, and on the 9th, with the co-operation of General Douglas, he scattered a Boer force at Malopo, capturing thirty prisoners and a great quantity of stores. On the 14th he ran down a convoy and regained one of the Colenso guns and much ammunition. On the 20th he again made large captures. If in the early phases of the war the Boers had given Paul Methuen some evil hours, he was certainly getting his own back again. At the same time Clements was despatched from Pretoria with a small mobile force for the purpose of clearing the Rustenburg and Krugersdorp districts, which had always been storm centres. These two forces, of Methuen and of Clements, moved through the country, sweeping the scattered Boer bands before them, and hunting them down until they dispersed. At Kekepoort and at Hekspoort Clements fought successful skirmishes, losing at the latter action Lieutenant Stanley of the Yeomanry, the Somersetshire cricketer, who showed, as so many have done, how close is the connection between the good sportsman and the good soldier. On the 12th Douglas took thirty-nine prisoners near Lichtenburg. On the 18th Rundle captured a gun at Bronkhorstfontein. Hart at Potchefstroom, Hildyard in the Utrecht district, Macdonald in the Orange River Colony, everywhere the British Generals were busily stamping out the remaining embers of what had been so terrible a conflagration.

Lord Methuen's army, after its long marches and hard work, arrived at Mafeking on August 28th to refit. Since leaving Boshof on May 14th, his men had been on the move with hardly any breaks, and during that time, he had fought in fourteen engagements. He was back on the warpath once again, with fresh horses and renewed energy, on September 8th. On the 9th, with the help of General Douglas, he scattered a Boer force at Malopo, capturing thirty prisoners and a large amount of supplies. On the 14th, he intercepted a convoy and reclaimed one of the Colenso guns along with a lot of ammunition. On the 20th, he made significant captures again. If the Boers had given Paul Methuen some tough times early in the war, he was definitely getting his revenge now. At the same time, Clements was sent from Pretoria with a small mobile force to clear the Rustenburg and Krugersdorp areas, which had always been hotspots of conflict. These two forces, Methuen's and Clements', moved through the countryside, sweeping aside the scattered Boer groups and hunting them down until they scattered. At Kekepoort and Hekspoort, Clements fought successful skirmishes, losing Lieutenant Stanley of the Yeomanry, the cricketer from Somersetshire, who demonstrated, as many have shown, how closely linked a good sportsman is to a good soldier. On the 12th, Douglas captured thirty-nine prisoners near Lichtenburg. On the 18th, Rundle took a gun at Bronkhorstfontein. Hart at Potchefstroom, Hildyard in the Utrecht district, Macdonald in the Orange River Colony—everywhere, British Generals were actively putting out the remaining sparks of what had been such a terrible fire.

Much trouble but no great damage was inflicted upon the British during this last stage of the war by the incessant attacks upon the lines of railway by roving bands of Boers. The actual interruption of traffic was of little consequence, for the assiduous Sappers with their gangs of Basuto labourers were always at hand to repair the break. But the loss of stores, and occasionally of lives, was more serious. Hardly a day passed that the stokers and drivers were not made targets of by snipers among the kopjes, and occasionally a train was entirely destroyed. [Footnote: It is to be earnestly hoped that those in authority will see that these men obtain the medal and any other reward which can mark our sense of their faithful service. One of them in the Orange River Colony, after narrating to me his many hairbreadth escapes, prophesied bitterly that the memory of his services would pass with the need for them.] Chief among these raiders was the wild Theron, who led a band which contained men of all nations—the same gang who had already, as narrated, held up a train in the Orange River Colony. On August 31st he derailed another at Flip River to the south of Johannesburg, blowing up the engine and burning thirteen trucks. Almost at the same time a train was captured near Kroonstad, which appeared to indicate that the great De Wet was back in his old hunting-grounds. On the same day the line was cut at Standerton. A few days later, however, the impunity with which these feats had been performed was broken, for in a similar venture near Krugersdorp the dashing Theron and several of his associates lost their lives.

Much trouble but no significant damage was caused to the British during this final phase of the war by the constant attacks on the railway lines by roaming bands of Boers. The interruptions to traffic were not a big deal, as the hardworking Sappers with their teams of Basuto laborers were always ready to fix the breaks. However, the loss of supplies and occasionally lives was more serious. Hardly a day went by without stokers and drivers being targeted by snipers hiding in the hills, and at times, a train was completely destroyed. [Footnote: It is sincerely hoped that those in charge will ensure these men receive the medal and any other recognition that expresses our appreciation for their dedicated service. One of them in the Orange River Colony, after sharing his many close calls with me, predicted sadly that the memory of his service would fade with the need for it.] Chief among these raiders was the wild Theron, who led a group made up of men from different nations—the same gang that had previously held up a train in the Orange River Colony. On August 31st, he derailed another train at Flip River, south of Johannesburg, blowing up the engine and destroying thirteen trucks. Almost simultaneously, a train was captured near Kroonstad, indicating that the renowned De Wet was back in his usual hunting grounds. On that same day, the line was cut at Standerton. A few days later, though, the unpunished boldness with which these acts had been carried out came to an end, as in a similar attempt near Krugersdorp, the daring Theron and several of his associates lost their lives.

Two other small actions performed at this period of the war demand a passing notice. One was a smart engagement near Kraai Railway Station, in which Major Broke of the Sappers with a hundred men attacked a superior Boer force upon a kopje and drove them off with loss—a feat which it is safe to say he could not have accomplished six months earlier. The other was the fine defence made by 125 of the Canadian Mounted Rifles, who, while guarding the railway, were attacked by a considerable Boer force with two guns. They proved once more, as Ladybrand and Elands River had shown, that with provisions, cartridges, and brains, the smallest force can successfully hold its own if it confines itself to the defensive.

Two other small actions during this period of the war deserve a quick mention. One was a clever engagement near Kraai Railway Station, where Major Broke of the Sappers, leading a hundred men, attacked a larger Boer force on a hill and drove them off with losses—a feat he definitely couldn't have achieved six months earlier. The other was the excellent defense staged by 125 members of the Canadian Mounted Rifles, who, while guarding the railway, were attacked by a significant Boer force equipped with two guns. They once again proved, as Ladybrand and Elands River had shown, that with supplies, ammunition, and strategy, even the smallest force can successfully defend itself if it sticks to a defensive approach.

And now the Boer cause appeared to be visibly tottering to its fall. The flight of the President had accelerated that process of disintegration which had already set in. Schalk Burger had assumed the office of Vice-President, and the notorious Ben Viljoen had become first lieutenant of Louis Botha in maintaining the struggle. Lord Roberts had issued an extremely judicious proclamation, in which he pointed out the uselessness of further resistance, declared that guerilla warfare would be ruthlessly suppressed, and informed the burghers that no fewer than fifteen thousand of their fellow-countrymen were in his hands as prisoners, and that none of these could be released until the last rifle had been laid down. From all sides in the third week of September the British forces were converging on Komatipoort, the frontier town. Already wild figures, stained and tattered after nearly a year of warfare, were walking the streets of Lourenco Marques, gazed at with wonder and some distrust by the Portuguese inhabitants. The exiled burghers moodily pacing the streets saw their exiled President seated in his corner of the Governor's verandah, the well-known curved pipe still dangling from his mouth, the Bible by his chair. Day by day the number of these refugees increased. On September 17th special trains were arriving crammed with the homeless burghers, and with the mercenaries of many nations—French, German, Irish-American, and Russian—all anxious to make their way home. By the 19th no fewer than seven hundred had passed over.

And now the Boer cause seemed to be visibly collapsing. The President's escape had sped up the breakdown that was already happening. Schalk Burger took on the role of Vice-President, and the infamous Ben Viljoen became Louis Botha's right-hand man in continuing the fight. Lord Roberts issued a very sensible proclamation, pointing out the futility of further resistance, stating that guerrilla warfare would be harshly suppressed, and informing the burghers that at least fifteen thousand of their fellow countrymen were in his custody as prisoners, and none of them could go free until the last weapon was surrendered. During the third week of September, British forces were converging on Komatipoort, the border town. Already, disheveled figures, dirty and worn after nearly a year of fighting, walked the streets of Lourenco Marques, where the Portuguese locals watched them with a mix of curiosity and suspicion. The exiled burghers, moodily strolling the streets, saw their exiled President sitting in his spot on the Governor's verandah, the familiar curved pipe still hanging from his mouth, a Bible by his side. Day by day, the number of these refugees grew. On September 17th, special trains arrived packed with homeless burghers, as well as mercenaries from many countries—French, German, Irish-American, and Russian—all eager to return home. By the 19th, at least seven hundred had come through.

At dawn on September 22nd a half-hearted attempt was made by the commando of Erasmus to attack Elands River Station, but it was beaten back by the garrison. While it was going on Paget fell upon the camp which Erasmus had left behind him, and captured his stores. From all over the country, from Plumer's Bushmen, from Barton at Krugersdorp, from the Colonials at Heilbron, from Clements on the west, came the same reports of dwindling resistance and of the abandoning of cattle, arms, and ammunition.

At dawn on September 22nd, Erasmus’s commando made a half-hearted attempt to attack Elands River Station, but they were pushed back by the garrison. While this was happening, Paget launched an attack on the camp that Erasmus had left behind and seized his supplies. Reports came from all over the country—from Plumer’s Bushmen, from Barton at Krugersdorp, from the Colonials at Heilbron, and from Clements in the west—indicating a decline in resistance and the abandoning of cattle, weapons, and ammunition.

On September 24th came the last chapter in this phase of the campaign in the Eastern Transvaal, when at eight in the morning Pole-Carew and his Guardsmen occupied Komatipoort. They had made desperate marches, one of them through thick bush, where they went for nineteen miles without water, but nothing could shake the cheery gallantry of the men. To them fell the honour, an honour well deserved by their splendid work throughout the whole campaign, of entering and occupying the ultimate eastern point which the Boers could hold. Resistance had been threatened and prepared for, but the grim silent advance of that veteran infantry took the heart out of the defence. With hardly a shot fired the town was occupied. The bridge which would enable the troops to receive their supplies from Lourenco Marques was still intact. General Pienaar and the greater part of his force, amounting to over two thousand men, had crossed the frontier and had been taken down to Delagoa Bay, where they met the respect and attention which brave men in misfortune deserve. Small bands had slipped away to the north and the south, but they were insignificant in numbers and depressed in spirit. For the time it seemed that the campaign was over, but the result showed that there was greater vitality in the resistance of the burghers and less validity in their oaths than any one had imagined.

On September 24th, the last chapter in this phase of the campaign in the Eastern Transvaal unfolded when, at eight in the morning, Pole-Carew and his Guardsmen took control of Komatipoort. They had endured grueling marches, including one through dense bush where they trekked nineteen miles without any water, but nothing could dampen the upbeat courage of the men. They earned the honor—well deserved for their outstanding efforts throughout the entire campaign—of entering and occupying the farthest eastern point that the Boers could hold. Resistance had been anticipated and prepared for, but the determined, silent advance of that veteran infantry broke the spirit of the defenders. With hardly a shot fired, the town was captured. The bridge that would allow the troops to receive supplies from Lourenco Marques remained intact. General Pienaar and most of his force, totaling over two thousand men, had crossed the border and were brought down to Delagoa Bay, where they received the respect and attention that brave men in hardship deserve. Small groups had escaped to the north and south, but their numbers were insignificant, and their spirits were low. For the moment, it appeared that the campaign was over, but the aftermath revealed that the resistance from the burghers was more resilient and their oaths less reliable than anyone had thought.

One find of the utmost importance was made at Komatipoort, and at Hector Spruit on the Crocodile River. That excellent artillery which had fought so gallant a fight against our own more numerous guns, was found destroyed and abandoned. Pole-Carew at Komatipoort got one Long Tom (96-pound) Creusot, and one smaller gun. Ian Hamilton at Hector Spruit found the remains of many guns, which included two of our horse artillery twelve-pounders, two large Creusot guns, two Krupps, one Vickers-Maxim quick firer, two pompoms and four mountain guns.

One significant discovery was made at Komatipoort and at Hector Spruit on the Crocodile River. That impressive artillery, which fought bravely against our own larger forces, was found destroyed and abandoned. Pole-Carew at Komatipoort recovered one Long Tom (96-pound) Creusot and a smaller gun. Ian Hamilton at Hector Spruit found the remains of several guns, including two of our horse artillery twelve-pounders, two large Creusot guns, two Krupps, one Vickers-Maxim quick-firer, two pom-poms, and four mountain guns.





CHAPTER 30. THE CAMPAIGN OF DE WET.

It had been hoped that the dispersal of the main Boer army, the capture of its guns and the expulsion of many both of the burghers and of the foreign mercenaries, would have marked the end of the war. These expectations were, however, disappointed, and South Africa was destined to be afflicted and the British Empire disturbed by a useless guerilla campaign. After the great and dramatic events which characterised the earlier phases of the struggle between the Briton and the Boer for the mastery of South Africa it is somewhat of the nature of an anticlimax to turn one's attention to those scattered operations which prolonged the resistance for a turbulent year at the expense of the lives of many brave men on either side. These raids and skirmishes, which had their origin rather in the hope of vengeance than of victory, inflicted much loss and misery upon the country, but, although we may deplore the desperate resolution which bids brave men prefer death to subjugation, it is not for us, the countrymen of Hereward or Wallace, to condemn it.

It was hoped that the breakup of the main Boer army, the capture of its weapons, and the expulsion of many burghers and foreign mercenaries would signal the end of the war. However, these hopes were dashed, and South Africa was plagued by a pointless guerilla campaign that disrupted the British Empire. After the significant and dramatic events that defined the earlier conflicts between the British and the Boers for control of South Africa, it feels somewhat anticlimactic to focus on the smaller operations that extended the resistance for a chaotic year at the cost of many brave lives on both sides. These raids and skirmishes stemmed more from a desire for revenge than a quest for victory, causing considerable loss and suffering for the country. While we may lament the desperate resolve that leads brave individuals to choose death over subjugation, it is not for us, the descendants of Hereward or Wallace, to judge it.

In one important respect these numerous, though trivial, conflicts differed from the battles in the earlier stages of the war. The British had learned their lesson so thoroughly that they often turned the tables upon their instructors. Again and again the surprise was effected, not by the nation of hunters, but by those rooineks whose want of cunning and of veld-craft had for so long been a subject of derision and merriment. A year of the kopje and the donga had altered all that. And in the proportion of casualties another very marked change had occurred. Time was when in battle after battle a tenth would have been a liberal estimate for the losses of the Boers compared with those of the Briton. So it was at Stormberg; so it was at Colenso; so it may have been at Magersfontein. But in this last stage of the war the balance was rather in favour of the British. It may have been because they were now frequently acting on the defensive, or it may have been from an improvement in their fire, or it may have come from the more desperate mood of the burghers, but in any case the fact remains that every encounter diminished the small reserves of the Boers rather than the ample forces of their opponents.

In one important way, these numerous, though minor, conflicts were different from the battles in the earlier phases of the war. The British had learned their lesson so well that they often flipped the situation on their teachers. Time and again, the surprise came not from the nation of hunters, but from those rooineks whose lack of cleverness and knowledge of the land had long been a source of mockery and laughter. A year spent in the kopje and the donga had changed all that. And in terms of casualties, another significant shift had occurred. There was a time when, in battle after battle, a tenth would have been a generous estimate for the losses of the Boers compared to those of the British. It was so at Stormberg; it was so at Colenso; it may have been the case at Magersfontein. But in this final stage of the war, the balance was more in favor of the British. This may have been because they were now often on the defensive, or it could have been due to an improvement in their shooting, or it might have stemmed from the more desperate state of the burghers, but in any case, the fact remains that every encounter wore down the Boers' small reserves more than the more plentiful forces of their opponents.

One other change had come over the war, which caused more distress and searchings of conscience among some of the people of Great Britain than the darkest hours of their misfortunes. This lay in the increased bitterness of the struggle, and in those more strenuous measures which the British commanders felt themselves entitled and compelled to adopt. Nothing could exceed the lenity of Lord Roberts's early proclamations in the Free State. But, as the months went on and the struggle still continued, the war assumed a harsher aspect. Every farmhouse represented a possible fort, and a probable depot for the enemy. The extreme measure of burning them down was only carried out after a definite offence, such as affording cover for snipers, or as a deterrent to railway wreckers, but in either case it is evident that the women or children who were usually the sole occupants of the farm could not by their own unaided exertions prevent the line from being cut or the riflemen from firing. It is even probable that the Boers may have committed these deeds in the vicinity of houses the destruction of which they would least regret. Thus, on humanitarian grounds there were strong arguments against this policy of destruction being pushed too far, and the political reasons were even stronger, since a homeless man is necessarily the last man to settle down, and a burned-out family the last to become contented British citizens. On the other hand, the impatience of the army towards what they regarded as the abuses of lenity was very great, and they argued that the war would be endless if the women in the farm were allowed always to supply the sniper on the kopje. The irregular and brigand-like fashion in which the struggle was carried out had exasperated the soldiers, and though there were few cases of individual outrage or unauthorised destruction, the general orders were applied with some harshness, and repressive measures were taken which warfare may justify but which civilisation must deplore.

One other change had taken place in the war that caused more distress and soul-searching among some people in Great Britain than even the darkest moments of their misfortunes. This was due to the increased hostility of the struggle and the more aggressive tactics that British commanders felt justified and forced to implement. Nothing could match the leniency of Lord Roberts's early proclamations in the Free State. However, as months passed and the fighting dragged on, the war took on a harsher appearance. Every farmhouse became a potential stronghold and a likely supply point for the enemy. The extreme act of burning them down was only carried out after a clear offense, such as providing cover for snipers or as a deterrent to railway saboteurs, but in either case, it was clear that the women or children who usually occupied the farms couldn't by themselves stop the destruction of the rail line or the firing from rifles. It’s even likely that the Boers may have carried out these actions near houses whose destruction they would care least about. Therefore, on humanitarian grounds, there were strong arguments against this policy of destruction being taken too far, and the political arguments were even stronger, since a homeless man is typically the least likely to settle down, and a burned-out family is the least likely to become content British citizens. On the other hand, the army's impatience towards what they considered the excesses of leniency was very intense, and they argued that the war would be endless if the women on the farms were always allowed to support the snipers on the hills. The irregular and lawless way the struggle was conducted had frustrated the soldiers, and although there were few instances of individual outrage or unauthorized destruction, the general orders were enforced with a degree of harshness, and repressive measures were taken that warfare might justify but which civilization must lament.

After the dispersal of the main army at Komatipoort there remained a considerable number of men in arms, some of them irreconcilable burghers, some of them foreign adventurers, and some of them Cape rebels, to whom British arms were less terrible than British law. These men, who were still well armed and well mounted, spread themselves over the country, and acted with such energy that they gave the impression of a large force. They made their way into the settled districts, and brought fresh hope and fresh disaster to many who had imagined that the war had passed for ever away from them. Under compulsion from their irreconcilable countrymen, a large number of the farmers broke their parole, mounted the horses which British leniency had left with them, and threw themselves once more into the struggle, adding their honour to the other sacrifices which they had made for their country. In any account of the continual brushes between these scattered bands and the British forces, there must be such a similarity in procedure and result, that it would be hard for the writer and intolerable for the reader if they were set forth in detail. As a general statement it may be said that during the months to come there was no British garrison in any one of the numerous posts in the Transvaal, and in that portion of the Orange River Colony which lies east of the railway, which was not surrounded by prowling riflemen, there was no convoy sent to supply those garrisons which was not liable to be attacked upon the road, and there was no train upon any one of the three lines which might not find a rail up and a hundred raiders covering it with their Mausers. With some two thousand miles of railroad to guard, so many garrisons to provide, and an escort to be furnished to every convoy, there remained out of the large body of British troops in the country only a moderate force who were available for actual operations. This force was distributed in different districts scattered over a wide extent of country, and it was evident that while each was strong enough to suppress local resistance, still at any moment a concentration of the Boer scattered forces upon a single British column might place the latter in a serious position. The distribution of the British in October and November was roughly as follows. Methuen was in the Rustenburg district, Barton at Krugersdorp and operating down the line to Klerksdorp, Settle was in the West, Paget at Pienaar's River, Clements in the Magaliesberg, Hart at Potchefstroom, Lyttelton at Middelburg, Smith-Dorrien at Belfast, W. Kitchener at Lydenburg, French in the Eastern Transvaal, Hunter, Rundle, Brabant, and Bruce Hamilton in the Orange River Colony. Each of these forces was occupied in the same sort of work, breaking up small bodies of the enemy, hunting for arms, bringing in refugees, collecting supplies, and rounding up cattle. Some, however, were confronted with organised resistance and some were not. A short account may be given in turn of each separate column.

After the main army dispersed at Komatipoort, there was still a significant number of armed men left, including some unyielding burghers, foreign adventurers, and Cape rebels, who found British arms less frightening than British law. These men, who were still well-armed and well-mounted, spread out across the country and acted with such energy that they seemed like a large force. They moved into settled areas and brought both fresh hope and fresh disaster to many who thought the war had passed them by. Under pressure from their unyielding countrymen, a large number of farmers broke their parole, got back on the horses that British leniency had left them, and rejoined the struggle, adding their honor to the other sacrifices they had made for their country. In any account of the ongoing skirmishes between these scattered groups and the British forces, the similarities in method and outcome would make it tedious for the writer and unbearable for the reader if detailed. Generally speaking, during the upcoming months, there wasn’t a single British garrison in any of the many posts in the Transvaal, or in that part of the Orange River Colony east of the railway, that wasn’t surrounded by lurking riflemen. No convoy sent to supply those garrisons was safe from attack on the road, and no train on any of the three lines could pass without the risk of finding a track torn up and a hundred raiders covering it with their Mausers. With about two thousand miles of railroad to guard, multiple garrisons to cover, and an escort needed for every convoy, only a moderate force from the large body of British troops in the country was available for actual operations. This force was spread across different districts over a wide area, and while each was strong enough to quell local resistance, the concentration of Boer forces on a single British column could still put the latter in a precarious situation. The distribution of the British in October and November was roughly as follows: Methuen in the Rustenburg district, Barton at Krugersdorp and working down the line to Klerksdorp, Settle in the West, Paget at Pienaar's River, Clements in the Magaliesberg, Hart at Potchefstroom, Lyttelton at Middelburg, Smith-Dorrien at Belfast, W. Kitchener at Lydenburg, and French in the Eastern Transvaal, with Hunter, Rundle, Brabant, and Bruce Hamilton in the Orange River Colony. Each of these forces was engaged in similar tasks: breaking up small enemy groups, searching for arms, bringing in refugees, gathering supplies, and rounding up cattle. Some faced organized resistance, while others did not. A brief account can be given in turn of each separate column.

I would treat first the operations of General Barton, because they form the best introduction to that narrative of the doings of Christian De Wet to which this chapter will be devoted.

I will first discuss General Barton's operations, as they provide the best introduction to the story of Christian De Wet, which this chapter will focus on.

The most severe operations during the month of October fell to the lot of this British General, who, with some of the faithful fusiliers whom he had led from the first days in Natal, was covering the line from Krugersdorp to Klerksdorp. It is a long stretch, and one which, as the result shows, is as much within striking distance of the Orange Free Staters as of the men of the Transvaal. Upon October 5th Barton left Krugersdorp with a force which consisted of the Scots and Welsh Fusiliers, five hundred mounted men, the 78th R.F.A., three pom-poms, and a 4.7 naval gun. For a fortnight, as the small army moved slowly down the line of the railroad, their progress was one continual skirmish. On October 6th they brushed the enemy aside in an action in which the volunteer company of the Scots Fusiliers gained the applause of their veteran comrades. On the 8th and 9th there was sharp skirmishing, the brunt of which on the latter date fell upon the Welsh Fusiliers, who had three officers and eleven men injured. The commandos of Douthwaite, Liebenberg, and Van der Merwe seem to have been occupied in harassing the column during their progress through the Gatsrand range. On the 15th the desultory sniping freshened again into a skirmish in which the honours and the victory belonged mainly to the Welshmen and to that very keen and efficient body, the Scottish Yeomanry. Six Boers were left dead upon the ground. On October 17th the column reached Frederickstad, where it halted. On that date six of Marshall's Horse were cut off while collecting supplies. The same evening three hundred of the Imperial Light Horse came in from Krugersdorp.

The toughest operations in October fell to this British General, who, along with some of the loyal fusiliers he had led since the early days in Natal, was securing the line from Krugersdorp to Klerksdorp. It’s a long stretch that, as the results show, is just as close to the Orange Free Staters as it is to the men of the Transvaal. On October 5th, Barton left Krugersdorp with a force made up of the Scots and Welsh Fusiliers, five hundred mounted men, the 78th R.F.A., three pom-poms, and a 4.7 naval gun. For two weeks, as the small army moved slowly along the railroad, their progress was one constant skirmish. On October 6th, they pushed the enemy back in an action where the volunteer company of the Scots Fusiliers earned the respect of their seasoned comrades. On the 8th and 9th, there was intense skirmishing, with the heaviest fighting on the latter day falling on the Welsh Fusiliers, who had three officers and eleven men injured. The commandos of Douthwaite, Liebenberg, and Van der Merwe seemed to be focused on harassing the column as they moved through the Gatsrand range. On the 15th, the sporadic sniping turned into a skirmish in which the Welshmen and the very sharp and effective Scottish Yeomanry largely claimed victory. Six Boers were left dead on the ground. On October 17th, the column reached Frederickstad, where it took a break. That day, six of Marshall's Horse were cut off while gathering supplies. That same evening, three hundred of the Imperial Light Horse arrived from Krugersdorp.

Up to this date the Boer forces which dogged the column had been annoying but not seriously aggressive. On the 19th, however, affairs took an unexpected turn. The British scouts rode in to report a huge dust cloud whirling swiftly northwards from the direction of the Vaal River—soon plainly visible to all, and showing as it drew nearer the hazy outline of a long column of mounted men. The dark coats of the riders, and possibly the speed of their advance, showed that they were Boers, and soon it was rumoured that it was no other than Christian De Wet with his merry men, who, with characteristic audacity, had ridden back into the Transvaal in the hope of overwhelming Barton's column.

Up to this point, the Boer forces trailing the column had been annoying but not seriously aggressive. However, on the 19th, things took an unexpected turn. British scouts rode in to report a massive dust cloud swirling quickly north from the direction of the Vaal River—soon visible to everyone, revealing the hazy outline of a long line of mounted men as it got closer. The dark uniforms of the riders, along with their rapid advance, indicated they were Boers, and it quickly circulated that it was none other than Christian De Wet and his men, who, with their typical boldness, had ridden back into the Transvaal hoping to overwhelm Barton's column.

It is some time since we have seen anything of this energetic gentleman with the tinted glasses, but as the narrative will be much occupied with him in the future a few words are needed to connect him with the past. It has been already told how he escaped through the net which caught so many of his countrymen at the time of the surrender of Prinsloo, and how he was chased at furious speed from the Vaal River to the mountains of Magaliesberg. Here he eluded his pursuers, separated from Steyn, who desired to go east to confer with Kruger, and by the end of August was back again in his favourite recruiting ground in the north of the Orange River Colony. Here for nearly two months he had lain very quiet, refitting and reassembling his scattered force, until now, ready for action once more, and fired by the hope of cutting off an isolated British force, he rode swiftly northwards with two thousand men under that rolling cloud which had been spied by the watchers of Frederickstad.

It’s been a while since we’ve seen anything from this energetic guy with the tinted glasses, but since the story will focus on him more in the future, a few words are needed to connect him to the past. It’s already been mentioned how he escaped from the trap that caught so many of his countrymen when Prinsloo surrendered, and how he was chased at breakneck speed from the Vaal River to the Magaliesberg mountains. There, he managed to shake off his pursuers and separated from Steyn, who wanted to head east to meet up with Kruger. By the end of August, he was back in his favorite recruiting area in the north of the Orange River Colony. For almost two months, he had been lying low, restocking and regrouping his scattered forces, and now, ready for action again and driven by the hope of taking down an isolated British unit, he rode swiftly north with two thousand men under that rolling cloud that had been spotted by the watchers at Frederickstad.

The problem before him was a more serious one, however, than any which he had ever undertaken, for this was no isolated regiment or ill-manned post, but a complete little field force very ready to do battle with him. De Wet's burghers, as they arrived, sprang from their ponies and went into action in their usual invisible but effective fashion, covered by the fire of several guns. The soldiers had thrown up lines of sangars, however, and were able, though exposed to a very heavy fire coming from several directions, to hold their own until nightfall, when the defences were made more secure. On the 20th, 21st, 22nd, 23rd, and 24th the cordon of the attack was drawn gradually closer, the Boers entirely surrounding the British force, and it was evident that they were feeling round for a point at which an assault might be delivered.

The challenge he faced was more serious than anything he had dealt with before, as this wasn’t just an isolated regiment or a poorly staffed post, but a whole little field force ready to fight him. De Wet’s burghers, as they arrived, jumped off their ponies and jumped straight into action in their usual stealthy yet effective way, supported by the fire from several guns. The soldiers had built makeshift defenses, and even though they were exposed to heavy fire from multiple directions, they managed to hold their ground until nightfall, when they strengthened their defenses. From the 20th to the 24th, the ring of the attack tightened gradually, with the Boers completely surrounding the British force, making it clear they were probing for a point to launch an assault.

The position of the defenders upon the morning of October 25th was as follows. The Scots Fusiliers were holding a ridge to the south. General Barton with the rest of his forces occupied a hill some distance off. Between the two was a valley down which ran the line, and also the spruit upon which the British depended for their water supply. On each side of the line were ditches, and at dawn on this seventh day of the investment it was found that these had been occupied by snipers during the night, and that it was impossible to water the animals. One of two things must follow. Either the force must shift its position or it must drive these men out of their cover. No fire could do it, as they lay in perfect safety. They must be turned out at the point of the bayonet.

The defenders' position on the morning of October 25th was as follows. The Scots Fusiliers were holding a ridge to the south. General Barton and the rest of his forces occupied a hill some distance away. Between the two positions was a valley along which the line ran, and also the spruit that the British relied on for their water supply. Ditches were on each side of the line, and at dawn on the seventh day of the siege, it was discovered that these had been occupied by snipers during the night, making it impossible to water the animals. One of two things had to happen: either the force had to shift its position or drive these men out of their cover. Gunfire wouldn't work since they were in perfect safety. They would have to be removed at the point of a bayonet.

About noon several companies of Scots and Welsh Fusiliers advanced from different directions in very extended order upon the ditches. Captain Baillie's company of the former regiment first attracted the fire of the burghers. Wounded twice the brave officer staggered on until a third bullet struck him dead. Six of his men were found lying beside him. The other companies were exposed in their turn to a severe fire, but rushing onwards they closed rapidly in upon the ditches. There have been few finer infantry advances during the war, for the veld was perfectly flat and the fire terrific. A mile of ground was crossed by the fusiliers. Three gallant officers—Dick, Elliot, and Best—went down; but the rush of the men was irresistible. At the edge of the ditches the supports overtook the firing line, and they all surged into the trenches together. Then it was seen how perilous was the situation of the Boer snipers. They had placed themselves between the upper and the nether millstone. There was no escape for them save across the open. It says much for their courage that they took that perilous choice rather than wave the white flag, which would have ensured their safety.

Around noon, several groups of Scots and Welsh Fusiliers advanced from different directions in a wide formation towards the ditches. Captain Baillie's company from the Scots was the first to attract the fire of the local militia. Wounded twice, the brave officer staggered on until a third bullet struck him dead. Six of his men were found lying next to him. The other companies were also exposed to heavy fire, but charging forward, they quickly closed in on the ditches. There have been few finer infantry advances during the war, as the ground was completely flat and the fire was intense. The fusiliers crossed a mile of open ground. Three brave officers—Dick, Elliot, and Best—went down; yet the rush of the men was unstoppable. At the edge of the ditches, the reinforcements caught up with the firing line, and they all surged into the trenches together. Then it became clear how dangerous the situation was for the Boer snipers. They had positioned themselves between a rock and a hard place. There was no escape for them except across the open ground. It speaks volumes about their bravery that they chose that risky option instead of waving the white flag, which would have guaranteed their safety.

The scene which followed has not often been paralleled. About a hundred and fifty burghers rushed out of the ditches, streaming across the veld upon foot to the spot where their horses had been secreted. Rifles, pom-poms, and shrapnel played upon them during this terrible race. 'A black running mob carrying coats, blankets, boots, rifles, &c., was seen to rise as if from nowhere and rush as fast as they could, dropping the various things they carried as they ran.' One of their survivors has described how awful was that wild blind flight, through a dust-cloud thrown up by the shells. For a mile the veld was dotted with those who had fallen. Thirty-six were found dead, thirty were wounded, and thirty more gave themselves up as prisoners. Some were so demoralised that they rushed into the hospital and surrendered to the British doctor. The Imperial Light Horse were for some reason slow to charge. Had they done so at once, many eye-witnesses agree that not a fugitive should have escaped. On the other hand, the officer in command may have feared that in doing so he might mask the fire of the British guns.

The scene that followed is rarely seen. About a hundred and fifty townspeople rushed out of the ditches, streaming across the open land on foot to where their horses were hidden. Bullets, artillery, and shell explosions rained down on them during this chaotic escape. "A panicked group running with coats, blankets, boots, rifles, etc., seemed to appear out of nowhere and fled as fast as they could, dropping the things they carried along the way." One survivor described how terrifying that blind dash was, through a cloud of dust kicked up by the shells. For a mile, the land was scattered with those who had fallen. Thirty-six were found dead, thirty were wounded, and thirty more surrendered as prisoners. Some were so shaken that they ran into the hospital and turned themselves in to the British doctor. The Imperial Light Horse, for some reason, were slow to charge. Many eyewitnesses agree that if they had charged immediately, not a single escapee would have gotten away. On the other hand, the commanding officer might have feared that charging could obstruct the British artillery's fire.

One incident in the action caused some comment at the time. A small party of Imperial Light Horse, gallantly led by Captain Yockney of B Squadron, came to close quarters with a group of Boers. Five of the enemy having held up their hands Yockney passed them and pushed on against their comrades. On this the prisoners seized their rifles once more and fired upon their captors. A fierce fight ensued with only a few feet between the muzzles of the rifles. Three Boers were shot dead, five wounded, and eight taken. Of these eight three were shot next day by order of court-martial for having resumed their weapons after surrender, while two others were acquitted. The death of these men in cold blood is to be deplored, but it is difficult to see how any rules of civilised warfare can be maintained if a flagrant breach of them is not promptly and sternly punished.

One incident during the action drew some attention at the time. A small group of Imperial Light Horse, bravely led by Captain Yockney of B Squadron, found themselves face-to-face with a group of Boers. After five of the enemy raised their hands in surrender, Yockney passed them and charged towards their comrades. At that point, the prisoners grabbed their rifles again and opened fire on their captors. A fierce fight broke out with just a few feet separating the rifle barrels. Three Boers were shot dead, five were wounded, and eight were captured. Of those eight, three were executed the next day by court-martial for taking up their weapons after surrender, while two others were found not guilty. The killing of these men in cold blood is regrettable, but it’s hard to see how any rules of civilized warfare can be upheld if serious violations aren’t dealt with quickly and harshly.

On receiving this severe blow De Wet promptly raised the investment and hastened to regain his favourite haunts. Considerable reinforcements had reached Barton upon the same day, including the Dublins, the Essex, Strathcona's Horse, and the Elswick Battery, with some very welcome supplies of ammunition. As Barton had now more than a thousand mounted men of most excellent quality it is difficult to imagine why he did not pursue his defeated enemy. He seems to have underrated the effect which he had produced, for instead of instantly assuming the offensive he busied himself in strengthening his defences. Yet the British losses in the whole operations had not exceeded one hundred, so that there does not appear to have been any reason why the force should be crippled. As Barton was in direct and constant telegraphic communication with Pretoria, it is possible that he was acting under superior orders in the course which he adopted.

Upon receiving this heavy blow, De Wet quickly rallied the troops and rushed back to his favorite spots. Significant reinforcements arrived at Barton on the same day, including the Dublins, the Essex, Strathcona's Horse, and the Elswick Battery, along with some much-needed ammunition. With over a thousand top-quality mounted men at his disposal, it’s hard to understand why he didn’t go after his defeated enemy. He seems to have underestimated the impact he made, as instead of taking immediate offensive action, he focused on reinforcing his defenses. However, the British losses throughout the entire operation hadn’t exceeded one hundred, so there appeared to be no reason for the force to be weakened. Since Barton was in direct and ongoing telegraphic communication with Pretoria, it’s possible he was following higher orders with the strategy he chose.

It was not destined, however, that De Wet should be allowed to escape with his usual impunity. On the 27th, two days after his retreat from Frederickstad he was overtaken—stumbled upon by pure chance apparently—by the mounted infantry and cavalry of Charles Knox and De Lisle. The Boers, a great disorganised cloud of horsemen, swept swiftly along the northern bank of the Vaal, seeking for a place to cross, while the British rode furiously after them, spraying them with shrapnel at every opportunity. Darkness and a violent storm gave De Wet his opportunity to cross, but the closeness of the pursuit compelled him to abandon two of his guns, one of them a Krupp and the other one of the British twelve-pounders of Sanna's Post, which, to the delight of the gunners, was regained by that very U battery to which it belonged.

It wasn’t meant to be, though, that De Wet would escape as he usually did. On the 27th, two days after he pulled back from Frederickstad, he was caught—seemingly by sheer luck—by the mounted infantry and cavalry led by Charles Knox and De Lisle. The Boers, a chaotic mass of horsemen, rushed along the northern bank of the Vaal, looking for a place to cross, while the British chased them down aggressively, hitting them with shrapnel whenever they could. Nightfall and a fierce storm gave De Wet a chance to cross, but the intensity of the chase forced him to leave behind two of his guns, one a Krupp and the other one of the British twelve-pounders from Sanna's Post, which delighted the gunners who managed to reclaim it for their own U battery.

Once across the river and back in his own country De Wet, having placed seventy miles between himself and his pursuers, took it for granted that he was out of their reach, and halted near the village of Bothaville to refit. But the British were hard upon his track, and for once they were able to catch this indefatigable man unawares. Yet their knowledge of his position seems to have been most hazy, and on the very day before that on which they found him, General Charles Knox, with the main body of the force, turned north, and was out of the subsequent action. De Lisle's mounted troops also turned north, but fortunately not entirely out of call. To the third and smallest body of mounted men, that under Le Gallais, fell the honour of the action which I am about to describe.

Once he crossed the river and returned to his own country, De Wet, having put seventy miles between himself and his pursuers, assumed he was safe and stopped near the village of Bothaville to restock. However, the British were closely following him, and for once, they managed to catch this tireless man off guard. Yet, their understanding of his location seemed quite unclear, and just a day before they found him, General Charles Knox, along with the main part of the force, headed north and missed the action that followed. De Lisle's mounted troops also moved north, but fortunately, they weren't completely out of reach. The third and smallest group of mounted men, led by Le Gallais, had the honor of the engagement I'm about to describe.

It is possible that the move northwards of Charles Knox and of De Lisle had the effect of a most elaborate stratagem, since it persuaded the Boer scouts that the British were retiring. So indeed they were, save only the small force of Le Gallais, which seems to have taken one last cast round to the south before giving up the pursuit. In the grey of the morning of November 6th, Major Lean with forty men of the 5th Mounted Infantry came upon three weary Boers sleeping upon the veld. Having secured the men, and realising that they were an outpost, Lean pushed on, and topping a rise some hundreds of yards further, he and his men saw a remarkable scene. There before them stretched the camp of the Boers, the men sleeping, the horses grazing, the guns parked, and the wagons outspanned.

It’s possible that Charles Knox and De Lisle's move north was part of a clever plan because it made the Boer scouts think the British were retreating. They were indeed retreating, except for the small group led by Le Gallais, who seemed to make one last attempt to head south before stopping the chase. In the early morning of November 6th, Major Lean and forty men from the 5th Mounted Infantry came across three tired Boers sleeping on the open ground. After securing the men and realizing they were an outpost, Lean continued on, and after climbing a rise a few hundred yards further, he and his men witnessed a striking scene. There before them lay the Boer camp, with men asleep, horses grazing, guns parked, and wagons unloaded.

There was little time for consideration. The Kaffir drivers were already afoot and strolling out for their horses, or lighting the fires for their masters' coffee. With splendid decision, although he had but forty men to oppose to over a thousand, Lean sent back for reinforcements and opened fire upon the camp. In an instant it was buzzing like an overturned hive. Up sprang the sleepers, rushed for their horses, and galloped away across the veld, leaving their guns and wagons behind. A few stalwarts remained, however, and their numbers were increased by those whose horses had stampeded, and who were, therefore, unable to get away. They occupied an enclosed kraal and a farmhouse in front of the British, whence they opened a sharp fire. At the same time a number of the Boers who had ridden away came back again, having realised how weak their assailants were, and worked round the British flanks upon either side.

There was little time to think. The Kaffir drivers were already up and heading out for their horses, or starting fires for their masters’ coffee. With remarkable determination, even though he had only forty men against more than a thousand, Lean called for backup and opened fire on the camp. In an instant, it was buzzing like an overturned beehive. The sleepers jumped up, ran for their horses, and raced away across the veld, leaving their guns and wagons behind. A few determined souls stayed behind, and their numbers increased by those whose horses had panicked and couldn’t get away. They took cover in an enclosed kraal and a farmhouse in front of the British, from where they opened a fierce fire. At the same time, several of the Boers who had ridden off returned, realizing how outnumbered their attackers were, and flanked the British on both sides.

Le Gallais, with his men, had come up, but the British force was still far inferior to that which it was attacking. A section of U battery was able to unlimber, and open fire at four hundred yards from the Boer position. The British made no attempt to attack, but contented themselves with holding on to the position from which they could prevent the Boer guns from being removed. The burghers tried desperately to drive off the stubborn fringe of riflemen. A small stone shed in the possession of the British was the centre of the Boer fire, and it was within its walls that Ross of the Durhams was horribly wounded by an explosive ball, and that the brave Jerseyman, Le Gallais, was killed. Before his fall he had despatched his staff officer, Major Hickie, to hurry up men from the rear.

Le Gallais and his men had arrived, but the British forces were still significantly outnumbered by the ones they were facing. A section of U battery managed to set up and fire from four hundred yards away from the Boer position. The British didn't attempt to launch an attack; instead, they focused on maintaining their position to prevent the Boer guns from being moved. The burghers fought hard to drive away the persistent line of riflemen. A small stone shed held by the British became the target of intense Boer fire, and it was inside that Ross from the Durhams suffered severe injuries from an explosive round, and the brave Jerseyman, Le Gallais, was killed. Before he fell, he sent his staff officer, Major Hickie, to call for reinforcements from the back.

On the fall of Ross and Le Gallais the command fell upon Major Taylor of U battery. The position at that time was sufficiently alarming. The Boers were working round each flank in considerable numbers, and they maintained a heavy fire from a stone enclosure in the centre. The British forces actually engaged were insignificant, consisting of forty men of the 5th Mounted Infantry, and two guns in the centre, forty-six men of the 17th and 18th Imperial Yeomanry upon the right, and 105 of the 8th Mounted Infantry on the left or 191 rifles in all. The flanks of this tiny force had to extend to half a mile to hold off the Boer flank attack, but they were heartened in their resistance by the knowledge that their comrades were hastening to their assistance. Taylor, realising that a great effort must be made to tide over the crisis, sent a messenger back with orders that the convoy should be parked, and every available man sent up to strengthen the right flank, which was the weakest. The enemy got close on to one of the guns, and swept down the whole detachment, but a handful of the Suffolk Mounted Infantry under Lieutenant Peebles most gallantly held them off from it. For an hour the pressure was extreme. Then two companies of the 7th Mounted Infantry came up, and were thrown on to each flank. Shortly afterwards Major Welch, with two more companies of the same corps, arrived, and the tide began slowly to turn. The Boers were themselves outflanked by the extension of the British line and were forced to fall back. At half-past eight De Lisle, whose force had trotted and galloped for twelve miles, arrived with several companies of Australians, and the success of the day was assured. The smoke of the Prussian guns at Waterloo was not a more welcome sight than the dust of De Lisle's horsemen. But the question now was whether the Boers, who were in the walled inclosure and farm which formed their centre, would manage to escape. The place was shelled, but here, as often before, it was found how useless a weapon is shrapnel against buildings. There was nothing for it but to storm it, and a grim little storming party of fifty men, half British, half Australian, was actually waiting with fixed bayonets for the whistle which was to be their signal, when the white flag flew out from the farm, and all was over. Warned by many a tragic experience the British still lay low in spite of the flag. 'Come out! come out!' they shouted. Eighty-two unwounded Boers filed out of the enclosure, and the total number of prisoners came to 114, while between twenty and thirty Boers were killed. Six guns, a pom-pom, and 1000 head of cattle were the prizes of the victors.

On the fall of Ross and Le Gallais, command passed to Major Taylor of U Battery. At that moment, the situation was quite alarming. The Boers were working around both flanks in large numbers and were maintaining heavy fire from a stone enclosure in the center. The British forces engaged were minimal, consisting of forty men from the 5th Mounted Infantry and two guns in the center, forty-six men from the 17th and 18th Imperial Yeomanry on the right, and 105 from the 8th Mounted Infantry on the left, totaling 191 rifles. The flanks of this small force had to stretch out to half a mile to fend off the Boer flank attack, but they were encouraged in their defense by the knowledge that their comrades were rushing to help. Realizing that a significant effort was needed to get through the crisis, Taylor sent a messenger back with orders for the convoy to park and every available man to be sent up to reinforce the right flank, which was the weakest. The enemy got close to one of the guns and wiped out the entire detachment, but a small group of Suffolk Mounted Infantry under Lieutenant Peebles bravely held them off. For an hour, the pressure was intense. Then, two companies of the 7th Mounted Infantry arrived and were deployed on each flank. Shortly after, Major Welch, with two more companies from the same unit, showed up, and the tide began to slowly turn. The Boers themselves were outflanked by the extension of the British line and were forced to retreat. At half past eight, De Lisle, whose force had trotted and galloped for twelve miles, arrived with several companies of Australians, ensuring the day’s success. The dust from De Lisle's horsemen was as welcome as the smoke from the Prussian guns at Waterloo. But the question now was whether the Boers, who were inside the walled enclosure and farm that made up their center, would be able to escape. The place was shelled, but as often before, it was found that shrapnel is useless against buildings. There was nothing left to do but storm it, and a determined little storming party of fifty men, half British and half Australian, was ready with fixed bayonets for the whistle that would signal them, when the white flag emerged from the farm, and everything came to an end. Cautioned by many tragic experiences, the British still stayed low despite the flag. “Come out! Come out!” they shouted. Eighty-two unwounded Boers walked out of the enclosure, bringing the total number of prisoners to 114, while between twenty and thirty Boers were killed. The victors claimed six guns, a pom-pom, and 1,000 head of cattle as their prizes.

This excellent little action showed that the British mounted infantry had reached a point of efficiency at which they were quite able to match the Boers at their own game. For hours they held them with an inferior force, and finally, when the numbers became equal, were able to drive them off and capture their guns. The credit is largely due to Major Lean for his prompt initiative on discovering their laager, and to Major Taylor for his handling of the force during a very critical time. Above all, it was due to the dead leader, Le Gallais, who had infected every man under him with his own spirit of reckless daring. 'If I die, tell my mother that I die happy, as we got the guns,' said he, with his failing breath. The British total losses were twelve killed (four officers) and thirty-three wounded (seven officers). Major Welch, a soldier of great promise, much beloved by his men, was one of the slain. Following closely after the repulse at Frederickstad this action was a heavy blow to De Wet. At last, the British were beginning to take something off the score which they owed the bold raider, but there was to be many an item on either side before the long reckoning should be closed. The Boers, with De Wet, fled south, where it was not long before they showed that they were still a military force with which we had to reckon.

This impressive little action demonstrated that the British mounted infantry had reached a level of efficiency where they could effectively compete with the Boers. For hours, they held their ground with fewer troops, and ultimately, when their numbers matched, they were able to drive the Boers away and capture their artillery. Major Lean deserves much of the credit for his quick thinking when he discovered their camp, and Major Taylor for skillfully managing the force during a critical moment. Most importantly, it was thanks to the fallen leader, Le Gallais, who inspired every man under him with his own fearless spirit. "If I die, tell my mother that I die happy, as we got the guns," he said with his last breaths. The British suffered twelve fatalities (four officers) and thirty-three injuries (seven officers). Major Welch, a promising soldier, well-liked by his men, was among those killed. Following closely after the defeat at Frederickstad, this action dealt a significant blow to De Wet. Finally, the British were starting to settle some of the scores they owed the daring raider, but many more exchanges would occur before the long tally could be resolved. The Boers, with De Wet, retreated south, soon proving that they still remained a military force that needed to be taken seriously.

In defiance of chronology it may perhaps make a clearer narrative if I continue at once with the movements of De Wet from the time that he lost his guns at Bothaville, and then come back to the consideration of the campaign in the Transvaal, and to a short account of those scattered and disconnected actions which break the continuity of the story. Before following De Wet, however, it is necessary to say something of the general state of the Orange River Colony and of some military developments which had occurred there. Under the wise and conciliatory rule of General Pretyman the farmers in the south and west were settling down, and for the time it looked as if a large district was finally pacified. The mild taxation was cheerfully paid, schools were reopened, and a peace party made itself apparent, with Fraser and Piet de Wet, the brother of Christian, among its strongest advocates.

In defiance of chronology, it might make for a clearer narrative if I go ahead and discuss De Wet’s actions from the moment he lost his guns at Bothaville, and then return to the campaign in the Transvaal, along with a brief account of those scattered and disconnected battles that interrupt the flow of the story. Before I follow De Wet, though, it’s important to mention the general situation in the Orange River Colony and some military developments that took place there. Under the wise and conciliatory leadership of General Pretyman, the farmers in the south and west were settling down, and for the time being, it seemed like a large area was finally at peace. The light taxes were paid gladly, schools reopened, and a peace movement emerged, with Fraser and Piet de Wet, Christian's brother, among its strongest supporters.

Apart from the operations of De Wet there appeared to be no large force in the field in the Orange River Colony, but early in October of 1900 a small but very mobile and efficient Boer force skirted the eastern outposts of the British, struck the southern line of communications, and then came up the western flank, attacking, where an attack was possible, each of the isolated and weakly garrisoned townlets to which it came, and recruiting its strength from a district which had been hardly touched by the ravages of war, and which by its prosperity alone might have proved the amenity of British military rule. This force seems to have skirted Wepener without attacking a place of such evil omen to their cause. Their subsequent movements are readily traced by a sequence of military events.

Aside from De Wet’s operations, there didn't seem to be any large forces in the Orange River Colony. However, in early October 1900, a small but highly mobile and effective Boer force moved around the eastern outposts of the British, hit the southern supply lines, and then advanced up the western side, attacking each of the isolated and weakly defended towns they encountered whenever possible. They were able to gain strength from a region that had been largely unaffected by the destruction of war, which, due to its prosperity, could have showcased the benefits of British military rule. This force appears to have bypassed Wepener without attacking the town, which was seen as unlucky for their cause. Their later movements can easily be followed through a series of military events.

On October 1st Rouxville was threatened. On the 9th an outpost of the Cheshire Militia was taken and the railway cut for a few hours in the neighbourhood of Bethulie. A week later the Boer riders were dotting the country round Phillipolis, Springfontein and Jagersfontein, the latter town being occupied upon October 16th, while the garrison held out upon the nearest kopje. The town was retaken from the enemy by King Hall and his men, who were Seaforth Highlanders and police. There was fierce fighting in the streets, and from twenty to thirty of each side were killed or wounded. Fauresmith was attacked on October 19th, but was also in the very safe hands of the Seaforths, who held it against a severe assault. Phillipolis was continually attacked between the 18th and the 24th, but made a most notable defence, which was conducted by Gostling, the resident magistrate, with forty civilians. For a week this band of stalwarts held their own against 600 Boers, and were finally relieved by a force from the railway. All the operations were not, however, as successful as these three defences. On October 24th a party of cavalry details belonging to many regiments were snapped up in an ambuscade. On the next day Jacobsdal was attacked, with considerable loss to the British. The place was entered in the night, and the enemy occupied the houses which surrounded the square. The garrison, consisting of about sixty men of the Capetown Highlanders, had encamped in the square, and were helpless when fire was opened upon them in the morning. There was practically no resistance, and yet for hours a murderous fire was kept up upon the tents in which they cowered, so that the affair seems not to have been far removed from murder. Two-thirds of the little force were killed or wounded. The number of the assailants does not appear to have been great, and they vanished upon the appearance of a relieving force from Modder River.

On October 1st, Rouxville faced a threat. On the 9th, a Cheshire Militia outpost was captured, and the railway was disrupted for a few hours near Bethulie. A week later, Boer riders were scattered around Phillipolis, Springfontein, and Jagersfontein, with the latter town being occupied on October 16th, while the garrison defended the nearby kopje. King Hall and his men, composed of Seaforth Highlanders and police, recaptured the town from the enemy. Intense fighting broke out in the streets, resulting in twenty to thirty casualties on each side. Fauresmith was attacked on October 19th but remained secure in the hands of the Seaforths, who resisted a fierce assault. Phillipolis faced continual attacks between the 18th and the 24th but mounted a remarkable defense led by Gostling, the local magistrate, along with forty civilians. For a week, this group of brave defenders stood firm against 600 Boers until they were finally relieved by a force from the railway. However, not all operations were as successful as these three defenses. On October 24th, a cavalry party made up of multiple regiments fell into an ambush. The following day, Jacobsdal was attacked, leading to significant British losses. The enemy entered the town at night and took over houses surrounding the square. The garrison, consisting of about sixty men from the Capetown Highlanders, had set up camp in the square and was caught off guard when fire was opened on them in the morning. They offered practically no resistance, yet for hours they endured a lethal barrage on the tents in which they sheltered, making the situation seem almost like murder. Two-thirds of the small force were killed or wounded. The attackers didn’t seem to be numerous, and they disappeared upon the arrival of a relieving force from Modder River.

After the disaster at Jacobsdal the enemy appeared on November 1st near Kimberley and captured a small convoy. The country round was disturbed, and Settle was sent south with a column to pacify it. In this way we can trace this small cyclone from its origin in the old storm centre in the north-east of the Orange River Colony, sweeping round the whole country, striking one post after another, and finally blowing out at the corresponding point upon the other side of the seat of war.

After the disaster at Jacobsdal, the enemy showed up on November 1st near Kimberley and took over a small convoy. The surrounding area was unsettled, so Settle was sent south with a group to restore order. This way, we can track this small cyclone from its starting point in the old storm center in the northeast of the Orange River Colony, moving across the entire region, hitting one post after another, and eventually dissipating at the corresponding point on the other side of the war zone.

We have last seen De Wet upon November 6th, when he fled south from Bothaville, leaving his guns but not his courage behind him. Trekking across the line, and for a wonder gathering up no train as he passed, he made for that part of the eastern Orange River Colony which had been reoccupied by his countrymen. Here, in the neighbourhood of Thabanchu, he was able to join other forces, probably the commandos of Haasbroek and Fourie, which still retained some guns. At the head of a considerable force he attacked the British garrison of Dewetsdorp, a town some forty miles to the south-east of Bloemfontein.

We last saw De Wet on November 6th when he fled south from Bothaville, leaving his guns behind but not his courage. Crossing the line and, surprisingly, picking up no train as he went, he headed for the part of the eastern Orange River Colony that his fellow countrymen had reoccupied. In the Thabanchu area, he was able to join other forces, likely the commandos of Haasbroek and Fourie, which still had some guns. Leading a significant force, he attacked the British garrison in Dewetsdorp, a town about forty miles southeast of Bloemfontein.

It was on November 18th that De Wet assailed the place, and it fell upon the 24th, after a defence which appears to have been a very creditable one. Several small British columns were moving in the south-east of the Colony, but none of them arrived in time to avert the disaster, which is the more inexplicable as the town is within one day's ride of Bloemfontein. The place is a village hemmed in upon its western side by a semicircle of steep rocky hills broken in the centre by a gully. The position was a very extended one, and had the fatal weakness that the loss of any portion of it meant the loss of it all. The garrison consisted of one company of Highland Light Infantry on the southern horn of the semicircle, three companies of the 2nd Gloucester Regiment on the northern and central part, with two guns of the 68th battery. Some of the Royal Irish Mounted Infantry and a handful of police made up the total of the defenders to something over four hundred, Major Massy in command.

It was on November 18th that De Wet attacked the location, and it fell on the 24th, after a defense that seems to have been quite commendable. Several small British units were operating in the southeast of the Colony, but none arrived in time to prevent the disaster, which is even more puzzling since the town is only a day's ride from Bloemfontein. The place is a village surrounded on its western side by a semicircle of steep rocky hills, broken in the middle by a gully. The position was very extensive and had the critical flaw that losing any part of it meant losing it all. The garrison consisted of one company of the Highland Light Infantry at the southern tip of the semicircle, three companies of the 2nd Gloucester Regiment in the northern and central areas, along with two guns from the 68th battery. A few members of the Royal Irish Mounted Infantry and a small group of police brought the total number of defenders to just over four hundred, with Major Massy in command.

The attack developed at that end of the ridge which was held by the company of Highlanders. Every night the Boer riflemen drew in closer, and every morning found the position more desperate. On the 20th the water supply of the garrison was cut, though a little was still brought up by volunteers during the night. The thirst in the sultry trenches was terrible, but the garrison still, with black lips and parched tongues, held on to their lines. On the 22nd the attack had made such progress that the post had by the Highlanders became untenable, and had to be withdrawn. It was occupied next morning by the Boers, and the whole ridge was at their mercy. Out of eighteen men who served one of the British guns sixteen were killed or wounded, and the last rounds were fired by the sergeant-farrier, who carried, loaded, and fired all by himself. All day the soldiers held out, but the thirst was in itself enough to justify if not to compel a surrender. At half-past five the garrison laid down their arms, having lost about sixty killed or wounded. There does not, as far as one can learn, seem to have been any attempt to injure the two guns which fell into the hands of the enemy. De Wet himself was one of the first to ride into the British trenches, and the prisoners gazed with interest at the short strong figure, with the dark tail coat and the square-topped bowler hat, of the most famous of the Boer leaders.

The attack started at the end of the ridge held by the Highlander company. Every night, the Boer riflemen got closer, and each morning, their position became more desperate. On the 20th, the garrison's water supply was cut off, though a little was still brought up by volunteers during the night. The thirst in the sweltering trenches was intense, but the garrison, with cracked lips and dry mouths, held on to their lines. By the 22nd, the attack had progressed so far that the Highlanders' position became unviable and had to be abandoned. The next morning, the Boers took over, and the entire ridge was at their mercy. Out of eighteen men who operated one of the British guns, sixteen were killed or injured, and the last rounds were fired by the sergeant-farrier, who loaded and fired it all by himself. The soldiers held out all day, but the thirst alone was enough to justify, if not force, a surrender. At half-past five, the garrison laid down their arms, having suffered around sixty casualties. As far as anyone knows, there doesn’t seem to have been any attempt to damage the two guns that fell into enemy hands. De Wet himself was among the first to ride into the British trenches, and the prisoners watched with interest as the short, strong figure in the dark tailcoat and square-topped bowler hat, one of the most famous Boer leaders, approached.

British columns were converging, however, from several quarters, and De Wet had to be at once on the move. On the 26th Dewetsdorp was reoccupied by General Charles Knox with fifteen hundred men. De Wet had two days' start, but so swift was Knox that on the 27th he had run him down at Vaalbank, where he shelled his camp. De Wet broke away, however, and trekking south for eighteen hours without a halt, shook off the pursuit. He had with him at this time nearly 8000 men with several guns under Haasbroek, Fourie, Philip Botha, and Steyn. It was his declared intention to invade Cape Colony with his train of weary footsore prisoners, and the laurels of Dewetsdorp still green upon him. He was much aided in all his plans by that mistaken leniency which had refused to recognise that a horse is in that country as much a weapon as a rifle, and had left great numbers upon the farms with which he could replace his useless animals. So numerous were they that many of the Boers had two or three for their own use. It is not too much to say that our weak treatment of the question of horses will come to be recognised as the one great blot upon the conduct of the war, and that our undue and fantastic scruples have prolonged hostilities for months, and cost the country many lives and many millions of pounds.

British forces were coming together from several directions, and De Wet had to move quickly. On the 26th, Dewetsdorp was retaken by General Charles Knox with fifteen hundred men. De Wet had a two-day head start, but Knox was so fast that by the 27th he caught up with him at Vaalbank, where he shelled De Wet's camp. However, De Wet managed to escape and trekked south for eighteen hours straight, shaking off the pursuit. At that time, he had nearly 8,000 men with several guns under Haasbroek, Fourie, Philip Botha, and Steyn. He intended to invade Cape Colony with his weary, footsore prisoners, still wearing the laurels of Dewetsdorp. He was greatly helped by the misguided leniency that had failed to recognize that in that region, a horse is just as much a weapon as a rifle, leaving many behind on farms to replace his useless animals. There were so many that many of the Boers had two or three for their own use. It’s fair to say that our weak approach to the horse issue will be seen as a significant flaw in how the war was managed, and that our excessive and unrealistic scruples have prolonged the conflict for months, costing the country many lives and millions of pounds.

De Wet's plan for the invasion of the Colony was not yet destined to be realised, for a tenacious man had set himself to frustrate it. Several small but mobile British columns, those of Pilcher, of Barker, and of Herbert, under the supreme direction of Charles Knox, were working desperately to head him off. In torrents of rain which turned every spruit into a river and every road into a quagmire, the British horsemen stuck manfully to their work. De Wet had hurried south, crossed the Caledon River, and made for Odendaal's Drift. But Knox, after the skirmish at Vaalbank, had trekked swiftly south to Bethulie, and was now ready with three mobile columns and a network of scouts and patrols to strike in any direction. For a few days he had lost touch, but his arrangements were such that he must recover it if the Boers either crossed the railroad or approached the river. On December 2nd he had authentic information that De Wet was crossing the Caledon, and in an instant the British columns were all off at full cry once more, sweeping over the country with a front of fifteen miles. On the 3rd and 4th, in spite of frightful weather, the two little armies of horsemen struggled on, fetlock-deep in mud, with the rain lashing their faces. At night without cover, drenched and bitterly cold, the troopers threw themselves down on the sodden veld to snatch a few hours' sleep before renewing the interminable pursuit. The drift over the Caledon flowed deep and strong, but the Boer had passed and the Briton must pass also. Thirty guns took to the water, diving completely under the coffee-coloured surface, to reappear glistening upon the southern bank. Everywhere there were signs of the passage of the enemy. A litter of crippled or dying horses marked their track, and a Krupp gun was found abandoned by the drift. The Dewetsdorp prisoners, too, had been set loose, and began to stumble and stagger back to their countrymen, their boots worn off, and their putties wrapped round their bleeding feet. It is painful to add that they had been treated with a personal violence and a brutality in marked contrast to the elaborate hospitality shown by the British Government to its involuntary guests.

De Wet's plan to invade the Colony wasn't meant to happen yet because a determined man was set on stopping it. Several small but agile British units, led by Pilcher, Barker, and Herbert, under the overall command of Charles Knox, were working hard to intercept him. In pouring rain that turned every stream into a river and every road into a muddy mess, the British horsemen persevered with their mission. De Wet had rushed south, crossed the Caledon River, and headed for Odendaal's Drift. But Knox, after the skirmish at Vaalbank, had quickly traveled south to Bethulie and was now ready with three mobile columns and a network of scouts and patrols to strike in any direction. He had lost contact for a few days, but his plans were such that he was sure to regain it if the Boers crossed the railroad or approached the river. On December 2nd, he received reliable information that De Wet was crossing the Caledon, and in an instant, the British columns were on the move again, sweeping through the land with a front stretching fifteen miles. On the 3rd and 4th, despite dreadful weather, the two small armies of horsemen pressed on, deep in mud, with rain pelting their faces. At night, without shelter, soaked and freezing, the soldiers would throw themselves down on the soaked ground to grab a few hours of sleep before continuing the endless chase. The ford over the Caledon was deep and strong, but the Boer had crossed, and the Brit needed to cross too. Thirty guns were submerged, completely disappearing under the coffee-colored water, only to emerge shining on the southern bank. Everywhere there were signs of the enemy’s passage. A trail of injured or dying horses marked their route, and a Krupp gun was found abandoned at the drift. The Dewetsdorp prisoners had also been released and began to stumble back to their fellow countrymen, their boots worn out and their wrappings around their bleeding feet. It’s painful to note that they had endured personal violence and brutality that starkly contrasted with the generous treatment the British Government afforded its unwilling guests.

On December 6th De Wet had at last reached the Orange River a clear day in front of his pursuers. But it was only to find that his labours had been in vain. At Odendaal, where he had hoped to cross, the river was in spate, the British flag waved from a post upon the further side, and a strong force of expectant Guardsmen eagerly awaited him there. Instantly recognising that the game was up, the Boer leader doubled back for the north and safety. At Rouxville he hesitated as to whether he should snap up the small garrison, but the commandant, Rundle, showed a bold face, and De Wet passed on to the Coomassie Bridge over the Caledon. The small post there refused to be bluffed into a surrender, and the Boers, still dropping their horses fast, passed on, and got over the drift at Amsterdam, their rearguard being hardly across before Knox had also reached the river.

On December 6th, De Wet finally reached the Orange River, enjoying a clear day ahead of his pursuers. But it turned out his efforts were in vain. At Odendaal, where he had planned to cross, the river was swollen, the British flag was flying from a post on the other side, and a strong group of waiting Guardsmen were ready for him. Realizing that the situation was hopeless, the Boer leader turned back north towards safety. At Rouxville, he considered attacking the small garrison, but the commander, Rundle, held his ground, and De Wet moved on to the Coomassie Bridge over the Caledon. The small post there refused to be intimidated into surrendering, and the Boers continued on, quickly losing their horses, and made it over the drift at Amsterdam, not long before Knox also reached the river.

On the 10th the British were in touch again near Helvetia, where there was a rearguard skirmish. On the 11th both parties rode through Reddersberg, a few hours separating them. The Boers in their cross-country trekking go, as one of their prisoners observed, 'slap-bang at everything,' and as they are past-masters in the art of ox and mule driving, and have such a knowledge of the country that they can trek as well by night as by day, it says much for the energy of Knox and his men that he was able for a fortnight to keep in close touch with them.

On the 10th, the British made contact again near Helvetia, where there was a rear-guard skirmish. On the 11th, both sides passed through Reddersberg, with only a few hours between them. The Boers, in their cross-country trek, as one of their prisoners noted, go 'straight at everything,' and since they are experts in handling oxen and mules, and have such a good knowledge of the land that they can travel just as well at night as during the day, it speaks volumes about Knox and his men's determination that they were able to stay closely connected with them for a fortnight.

It became evident now that there was not much chance of overtaking the main body of the burghers, and an attempt was therefore made to interpose a fresh force who might head them off. A line of posts existed between Thabanchu and Ladybrand, and Colonel Thorneycroft was stationed there with a movable column. It was Knox's plan therefore to prevent the Boers from breaking to the west and to head them towards the Basuto border. A small column under Parsons had been sent by Hunter from Bloemfontein, and pushed in upon the flank of De Wet, who had on the 12th got back to Dewetsdorp. Again the pursuit became warm, but De Wet's time was not yet come. He headed for Springhaan Nek, about fifteen miles east of Thabanchu. This pass is about four miles broad, with a British fort upon either side of it. There was only one way to safety, for Knox's mounted infantrymen and lancers were already dotting the southern skyline. Without hesitation the whole Boer force, now some 2500 strong, galloped at full speed in open order through the Nek, braving the long range fire of riflemen and guns. The tactics were those of French in his ride to Kimberley, and the success was as complete. De Wet's force passed through the last barrier which had been held against him, and vanished into the mountainous country round Ficksburg, where it could safely rest and refit.

It was now clear that there wasn’t much chance of catching up to the main group of burghers, so an effort was made to send in a fresh force to cut them off. A line of posts was set up between Thabanchu and Ladybrand, with Colonel Thorneycroft stationed there along with a mobile unit. Knox's plan was to stop the Boers from heading west and guide them towards the Basuto border. A small group led by Parsons had been sent by Hunter from Bloemfontein and moved in on the flank of De Wet, who had returned to Dewetsdorp on the 12th. The chase intensified, but De Wet's time had not yet arrived. He aimed for Springhaan Nek, about fifteen miles east of Thabanchu. This pass is roughly four miles wide, with a British fort on either side. There was only one path to safety, as Knox's mounted infantry and lancers were already appearing on the southern skyline. Without hesitation, the entire Boer force, now about 2500 strong, charged at full speed in open formation through the Nek, braving the long-range fire from riflemen and artillery. Their tactics mirrored those of French during his ride to Kimberley, and the outcome was equally successful. De Wet's force passed through the last barrier that had been held against them and disappeared into the mountainous region around Ficksburg, where they could rest and regroup safely.

The result then of these bustling operations had been that De Wet and his force survived, but that he had failed in his purpose of invading the Colony, and had dropped some five hundred horses, two guns, and about a hundred of his men. Haasbroek's commando had been detached by De Wet to make a feint at another pass while he made his way through the Springhaan. Parsons's force followed Haasbroek up and engaged him, but under cover of night he was able to get away and to join his leader to the north of Thabanchu. On December 13th, this, the second great chase after De Wet, may be said to have closed.

The outcome of these busy operations was that De Wet and his group managed to survive, but he did not succeed in his goal of invading the Colony. He lost around five hundred horses, two guns, and about a hundred of his men. De Wet had sent Haasbroek's commando to create a distraction at another pass while he moved through the Springhaan. Parsons's force followed Haasbroek and engaged him, but under the cover of night, Haasbroek was able to escape and rejoin his leader to the north of Thabanchu. On December 13th, this, the second major chase after De Wet, came to an end.





CHAPTER 31. THE GUERILLA WARFARE IN THE TRANSVAAL: NOOITGEDACHT.

Leaving De Wet in the Ficksburg mountains, where he lurked until after the opening of the New Year, the story of the scattered operations in the Transvaal may now be carried down to the same point—a story comprising many skirmishes and one considerable engagement, but so devoid of any central thread that it is difficult to know how to approach it. From Lichtenburg to Komati, a distance of four hundred miles, there was sporadic warfare everywhere, attacks upon scattered posts, usually beaten off but occasionally successful, attacks upon convoys, attacks upon railway trains, attacks upon anything and everything which could harass the invaders. Each General in his own district had his own work of repression to perform, and so we had best trace the doings of each up to the end of the year 1900.

Leaving De Wet in the Ficksburg mountains, where he stayed hidden until after the New Year, the narrative of the scattered operations in the Transvaal can now continue to the same point—a tale that includes many skirmishes and one major battle, but is so lacking in any central theme that it's hard to know how to tackle it. From Lichtenburg to Komati, a distance of four hundred miles, sporadic warfare broke out everywhere, with attacks on scattered posts, which were usually repelled but occasionally successful, attacks on convoys, attacks on trains, and attacks on anything and everything that could disrupt the invaders. Each General had their own responsibilities in their region, so it’s best to follow their actions up to the end of the year 1900.

Lord Methuen after his pursuit of De Wet in August had gone to Mafeking to refit. From that point, with a force which contained a large proportion of yeomanry and of Australian bushmen, he conducted a long series of operations in the difficult and important district which lies between Rustenburg, Lichtenburg, and Zeerust. Several strong and mobile Boer commandos with guns moved about in it, and an energetic though not very deadly warfare raged between Lemmer, Snyman, and De la Rey on the one side, and the troops of Methuen, Douglas, Broadwood, and Lord Errol upon the other. Methuen moved about incessantly through the broken country, winning small skirmishes and suffering the indignity of continual sniping. From time to time he captured stores, wagons, and small bodies of prisoners. Early in October he and Douglas had successes. On the 15th Broadwood was engaged. On the 20th there was a convoy action. On the 25th Methuen had a success and twenty-eight prisoners. On November 9th he surprised Snyman and took thirty prisoners. On the 10th he got a pom-pom. Early in this month Douglas separated from Methuen, and marched south from Zeerust through Ventersdorp to Klerksdorp, passing over a country which had been hardly touched before, and arriving at his goal with much cattle and some prisoners. Towards the end of the month a considerable stock of provisions were conveyed to Zeerust, and a garrison left to hold that town so as to release Methuen's column for service elsewhere.

Lord Methuen, after pursuing De Wet in August, went to Mafeking to regroup. From there, with a force that included a large number of yeomanry and Australian bushmen, he led a long series of operations in the challenging and crucial area between Rustenburg, Lichtenburg, and Zeerust. Several strong and mobile Boer commandos with guns were active in this region, and an energetic, albeit not very deadly, conflict unfolded between Lemmer, Snyman, and De la Rey on one side, and Methuen, Douglas, Broadwood, and Lord Errol on the other. Methuen continuously moved through the rough terrain, winning small skirmishes while enduring the annoyance of constant sniping. Occasionally, he captured supplies, wagons, and small groups of prisoners. In early October, he and Douglas achieved some successes. On the 15th, Broadwood was engaged. On the 20th, there was a convoy action. On the 25th, Methuen scored a victory, capturing twenty-eight prisoners. On November 9th, he surprised Snyman and took thirty prisoners. On the 10th, he secured a pom-pom. Early in November, Douglas parted ways with Methuen and marched south from Zeerust through Ventersdorp to Klerksdorp, crossing areas that had seen little action before, ultimately reaching his destination with a significant number of cattle and some prisoners. Toward the end of the month, a substantial supply of provisions was sent to Zeerust, and a garrison was left to hold the town, allowing Methuen's column to be free for service elsewhere.

Hart's sphere of action was originally round Potchefstroom. On September 9th he made a fine forced march to surprise this town, which had been left some time before with an entirely inadequate garrison to fall into the hands of the enemy. His infantry covered thirty-six and his cavalry fifty-four miles in fifteen hours. The operation was a complete success, the town with eighty Boers falling into his hands with little opposition. On September 30th Hart returned to Krugersdorp, where, save for one skirmish upon the Gatsrand on November 22nd, he appears to have had no actual fighting to do during the remainder of the year.

Hart's area of operations was originally around Potchefstroom. On September 9th, he made a remarkable forced march to surprise the town, which had previously been left with an insufficient garrison that allowed it to fall into enemy hands. His infantry covered thirty-six miles, and his cavalry covered fifty-four miles in just fifteen hours. The mission was a complete success, capturing the town with eighty Boers with minimal resistance. On September 30th, Hart returned to Krugersdorp, where, aside from one skirmish at Gatsrand on November 22nd, he seemed to have no significant combat for the rest of the year.

After the clearing of the eastern border of the Transvaal by the movement of Pole-Carew along the railway line, and of Buller aided by Ian Hamilton in the mountainous country to the north of it, there were no operations of importance in this district. A guard was kept upon the frontier to prevent the return of refugees and the smuggling of ammunition, while General Kitchener, the brother of the Sirdar, broke up a few small Boer laagers in the neighbourhood of Lydenburg. Smith-Dorrien guarded the line at Belfast, and on two occasions, November 1st and November 6th, he made aggressive movements against the enemy. The first, which was a surprise executed in concert with Colonel Spens of the Shropshires, was frustrated by a severe blizzard, which prevented the troops from pushing home their success. The second was a two days' expedition, which met with a spirited opposition, and demands a fuller notice.

After clearing the eastern border of the Transvaal by moving Pole-Carew along the railway line and Buller with Ian Hamilton in the mountainous region to the north, there weren’t any significant operations in this area. A guard was stationed at the frontier to stop refugees from returning and to prevent ammo smuggling, while General Kitchener, the Sirdar's brother, dismantled a few small Boer camps near Lydenburg. Smith-Dorrien secured the line at Belfast and made aggressive moves against the enemy on two occasions, November 1st and November 6th. The first attack, a surprise operation alongside Colonel Spens from the Shropshires, was thwarted by a harsh blizzard that hindered the troops from capitalizing on their success. The second was a two-day expedition that faced strong resistance and deserves more attention.

This was made from Belfast, and the force, which consisted of about fourteen hundred men, advanced south to the Komati River. The infantry were Suffolks and Shropshires, the cavalry Canadians and 5th Lancers, with two Canadian guns and four of the 84th battery. All day the Boer snipers clung to the column, as they had done to French's cavalry in the same district. Mere route marches without a very definite and adequate objective appear to be rather exasperating than overawing, for so long as the column is moving onwards the most timid farmer may be tempted into long-range fire from the flanks or rear. The river was reached and the Boers driven from a position which they had taken up, but their signal fires brought mounted riflemen from every farm, and the retreat of the troops was pressed as they returned to Belfast. There was all the material for a South African Lexington. The most difficult of military operations, the covering of a detachment from a numerous and aggressive enemy, was admirably carried out by the Canadian gunners and dragoons under the command of Colonel Lessard. So severe was the pressure that sixteen of the latter were for a time in the hands of the enemy, who attempted something in the nature of a charge upon the steadfast rearguard. The movement was repulsed, and the total Boer loss would appear to have been considerable, since two of their leaders, Commandant Henry Prinsloo and General Joachim Fourie, were killed, while General Johann Grobler was wounded. If the rank and file suffered in proportion the losses must have been severe. The British casualties in the two days amounted to eight killed and thirty wounded, a small total when the arduous nature of the service is considered. The Canadians and the Shropshires seem to have borne off the honours of these trying operations.

This was launched from Belfast, and the force, which included around fourteen hundred men, moved south to the Komati River. The infantry were the Suffolks and Shropshires, while the cavalry consisted of Canadians and the 5th Lancers, along with two Canadian guns and four from the 84th battery. All day long, Boer snipers harassed the column, just as they had targeted French's cavalry in the same area. Marching without a clear and strong objective seems more frustrating than intimidating, because as long as the column keeps moving forward, even the most nervous farmer might be tempted to take long-range shots from the sides or back. They reached the river and drove the Boers from a position they had occupied, but their signal fires summoned mounted riflemen from every farm, and the troops faced pressure during their retreat back to Belfast. There was all the potential for a South African Lexington. The toughest military task, protecting a small group from a larger and more aggressive enemy, was excellently handled by the Canadian gunners and dragoons under Colonel Lessard's command. The pressure was so intense that sixteen of the latter were briefly captured by the enemy, who tried to charge the determined rearguard. This charge was repelled, and it seems the Boer losses were significant, as two of their leaders, Commandant Henry Prinsloo and General Joachim Fourie, were killed, while General Johann Grobler was wounded. If the foot soldiers suffered similarly, their losses must have been heavy. The British casualties over the two days totaled eight killed and thirty wounded, a small number considering the demanding nature of the operation. The Canadians and the Shropshires seemed to have earned the honors during these challenging actions.

In the second week of October, General French, with three brigades of cavalry (Dickson's, Gordon's, and Mahon's), started for a cross-country ride from Machadodorp. Three brigades may seem an imposing force, but the actual numbers did not exceed two strong regiments, or about 1500 sabres in all. A wing of the Suffolk Regiment went with them. On October 13th Mahon's brigade met with a sharp resistance, and lost ten killed and twenty-nine wounded. On the 14th the force entered Carolina. On the 16th they lost six killed and twenty wounded, and from the day that they started until they reached Heidelberg on the 27th there was never a day that they could shake themselves clear of their attendant snipers. The total losses of the force were about ninety killed and wounded, but they brought in sixty prisoners and a large quantity of cattle and stores. The march had at least the effect of making it clear that the passage of a column of troops encumbered with baggage through a hostile country is an inefficient means for quelling a popular resistance. Light and mobile parties acting from a central depot were in future to be employed, with greater hopes of success.

In the second week of October, General French, along with three cavalry brigades (Dickson's, Gordon's, and Mahon's), set out for a cross-country ride from Machadodorp. Three brigades might sound impressive, but they actually numbered about two strong regiments, or roughly 1,500 sabers in total. A wing of the Suffolk Regiment accompanied them. On October 13th, Mahon's brigade faced strong resistance, resulting in ten killed and twenty-nine wounded. On the 14th, the force arrived in Carolina. By the 16th, they had lost six killed and twenty wounded, and from the day they started until they reached Heidelberg on the 27th, they were constantly harassed by snipers. The overall losses for the force were around ninety killed and wounded, but they captured sixty prisoners along with a significant amount of cattle and supplies. The march clearly demonstrated that moving a troop column burdened with baggage through hostile territory is an ineffective way to suppress a popular uprising. In the future, lighter and more mobile units operating from a central base would be utilized, with better chances of success.

Some appreciable proportion of the British losses during this phase of the war arose from railway accidents caused by the persistent tampering with the lines. In the first ten days of October there were four such mishaps, in which two Sappers, twenty-three of the Guards (Coldstreams), and eighteen of the 66th battery were killed or wounded. On the last occasion, which occurred on October 10th near Vlakfontein, the reinforcements who came to aid the sufferers were themselves waylaid, and lost twenty, mostly of the Rifle Brigade, killed, wounded, or prisoners. Hardly a day elapsed that the line was not cut at some point. The bringing of supplies was complicated by the fact that the Boer women and children were coming more and more into refugee camps, where they had to be fed by the British, and the strange spectacle was frequently seen of Boer snipers killing or wounding the drivers and stokers of the very trains which were bringing up food upon which Boer families were dependent for their lives. Considering that these tactics were continued for over a year, and that they resulted in the death or mutilation of many hundreds of British officers and men, it is really inexplicable that the British authorities did not employ the means used by all armies under such circumstances—which is to place hostages upon the trains. A truckload of Boers behind every engine would have stopped the practice for ever. Again and again in this war the British have fought with the gloves when their opponents used their knuckles.

Some significant portion of the British losses during this phase of the war came from railway accidents caused by ongoing interference with the tracks. In the first ten days of October, there were four such incidents, resulting in the deaths or injuries of two Sappers, twenty-three members of the Guards (Coldstreams), and eighteen from the 66th battery. The last incident happened on October 10th near Vlakfontein, where the reinforcements sent to help the victims were ambushed, losing twenty, mostly from the Rifle Brigade, either killed, wounded, or captured. Hardly a day went by without some part of the line being cut. The delivery of supplies was complicated by the increasing number of Boer women and children entering refugee camps, where they had to be supported by the British, and it was not uncommon to see Boer snipers targeting the drivers and stokers of the very trains bringing food that their families relied on for survival. Considering these tactics persisted for over a year and led to the death or injury of many hundreds of British officers and soldiers, it’s truly baffling that the British authorities did not take the measures used by all armies in similar situations—which would be to put hostages on the trains. A truckload of Boers behind every locomotive would have ended this practice once and for all. Time and again in this war, the British have fought with kid gloves while their opponents fought bare-knuckled.

We will pass now to a consideration of the doings of General Paget, who was operating to the north and north-east of Pretoria with a force which consisted of two regiments of infantry, about a thousand horsemen, and twelve guns. His mounted men were under the command of Plumer. In the early part of November this force had been withdrawn from Warm Baths and had fallen back upon Pienaar's River, where it had continual skirmishes with the enemy. Towards the end of November, news having reached Pretoria that the enemy under Erasmus and Viljoen were present in force at a place called Rhenoster Kop, which is about twenty miles north of the Delagoa Railway line and fifty miles north-east of the capital, it was arranged that Paget should attack them from the south, while Lyttelton from Middelburg should endeavour to get behind them. The force with which Paget started upon this enterprise was not a very formidable one. He had for mounted troops some Queensland, South Australian, New Zealand, and Tasmanian Bushmen, together with the York, Montgomery, and Warwick Yeomanry. His infantry were the 1st West Riding regiment and four companies of the Munsters. His guns were the 7th and 38th batteries, with two naval quick-firing twelve-pounders and some smaller pieces. The total could not have exceeded some two thousand men. Here, as at other times, it is noticeable that in spite of the two hundred thousand soldiers whom the British kept in the field, the lines of communication absorbed so many that at the actual point of contact they were seldom superior and often inferior in numbers to the enemy. The opening of the Natal and Delagoa lines though valuable in many ways, had been an additional drain. Where every culvert needs its picket and every bridge its company, the guardianship of many hundreds of miles of rail is no light matter.

We will now turn our attention to General Paget, who was operating to the north and northeast of Pretoria with a force made up of two regiments of infantry, about a thousand cavalry, and twelve artillery pieces. His mounted troops were led by Plumer. In early November, this force was pulled back from Warm Baths to Pienaar's River, where they engaged in continuous skirmishes with the enemy. By the end of November, reports reached Pretoria that the enemy, under Erasmus and Viljoen, was strongly positioned at a site called Rhenoster Kop, approximately twenty miles north of the Delagoa Railway line and fifty miles northeast of the capital. It was decided that Paget would launch an attack from the south while Lyttelton would attempt to maneuver behind them from Middelburg. The force Paget took into this operation was not particularly strong. His mounted troops included some Queenslanders, South Australians, New Zealanders, and Tasmanian Bushmen, along with the York, Montgomery, and Warwick Yeomanry. His infantry consisted of the 1st West Riding regiment and four companies of the Munsters. His artillery included the 7th and 38th batteries, two naval quick-firing twelve-pounders, and some smaller guns. The total strength of his forces was unlikely to exceed about two thousand men. Here, as at other times, it's notable that despite having two hundred thousand soldiers in the field, the British army’s lines of communication consumed so many resources that they were often outnumbered, or at best only equal to the enemy at the point of engagement. Although the opening of the Natal and Delagoa lines was valuable in many respects, it added another layer of strain. With every culvert needing its picket and every bridge requiring a company, safeguarding hundreds of miles of railway was no small task.

In the early morning of November 29th Paget's men came in contact with the enemy, who were in some force upon an admirable position. A ridge for their centre, a flanking kopje for their cross fire, and a grass glacis for the approach—it was an ideal Boer battlefield. The colonials and the yeomanry under Plumer on the left, and Hickman on the right, pushed in upon them, until it was evident that they meant to hold their ground. Their advance being checked by a very severe fire, the horsemen dismounted and took such cover as they could. Paget's original idea had been a turning movement, but the Boers were the more numerous body, and it was impossible for the smaller British force to find their flanks, for they extended over at least seven miles. The infantry were moved up into the centre, therefore, between the wings of dismounted horsemen, and the guns were brought up to cover the advance. The country was ill-suited, however, to the use of artillery, and it was only possible to use an indirect fire from under a curve of the grass land. The guns made good practice, however, one section of the 38th battery being in action all day within 800 yards of the Boer line, and putting themselves out of action after 300 rounds by the destruction of their own rifling. Once over the curve every yard of the veld was commanded by the hidden riflemen. The infantry advanced, but could make no headway against the deadly fire which met them. By short rushes the attack managed to get within 300 yards of the enemy, and there it stuck. On the right the Munsters carried a detached kopje which was in front of them, but could do little to aid the main attack. Nothing could have exceeded the tenacity of the Yorkshiremen and the New Zealanders, who were immediately to their left. Though unable to advance they refused to retire, and indeed they were in a position from which a retirement would have been a serious operation. Colonel Lloyd of the West Ridings was hit in three places and killed. Five out of six officers of the New Zealand corps were struck down. There were no reserves to give a fresh impetus to the attack, and the thin scattered line, behind bullet-spotted stones or anthills, could but hold its own while the sun sank slowly upon a day which will not be forgotten by those who endured it. The Boers were reinforced in the afternoon, and the pressure became so severe that the field guns were retired with much difficulty. Many of the infantry had shot away all their cartridges and were helpless. Just one year before British soldiers had lain under similar circumstances on the plain which leads to Modder River, and now on a smaller scale the very same drama was being enacted. Gradually the violet haze of evening deepened into darkness, and the incessant rattle of the rifle fire died away on either side. Again, as at Modder River, the British infantry still lay in their position, determined to take no backward step, and again the Boers stole away in the night, leaving the ridge which they had defended so well. A hundred killed and wounded was the price paid by the British for that line of rock studded hills—a heavier proportion of losses than had befallen Lord Methuen in the corresponding action. Of the Boer losses there was as usual no means of judging, but several grave-mounds, newly dug, showed that they also had something to deplore. Their retreat, however, was not due to exhaustion, but to the demonstration which Lyttelton had been able to make in their rear. The gunners and the infantry had all done well in a most trying action, but by common consent it was with the men from New Zealand that the honours lay. It was no empty compliment when Sir Alfred Milner telegraphed to the Premier of New Zealand his congratulations upon the distinguished behaviour of his fellow countrymen.

In the early morning of November 29th, Paget's men encountered the enemy, who were in significant numbers on a strong position. They had a ridge for their center, a flanking hill for crossfire, and a grass slope for their approach—it was an ideal battlefield for the Boers. The colonials and the yeomanry under Plumer on the left and Hickman on the right advanced toward them, until it became clear that the enemy intended to hold their ground. Their progress was halted by heavy fire, forcing the horsemen to dismount and find whatever cover they could. Paget had initially intended to execute a flanking maneuver, but the Boers were in greater numbers, and it was impossible for the smaller British force to find their flanks, as they stretched over at least seven miles. Therefore, the infantry was moved up to the center, positioned between the wings of dismounted horsemen, and the guns were brought forward to support the advance. The terrain, however, was not well-suited for artillery, and indirect fire could only be used from behind a curve of the grassland. Despite this, the guns performed well, with one section of the 38th battery in action all day within 800 yards of the Boer line, eventually becoming ineffective after firing 300 rounds due to the destruction of their rifling. Beyond the curve, every inch of the open land was under the control of hidden riflemen. The infantry advanced but made no progress against the deadly fire they faced. Through a series of short pushes, they managed to close to within 300 yards of the enemy, but there they stalled. On the right, the Munsters took a detached hill in front of them but could do little to assist the main attack. The determination of the Yorkshiremen and the New Zealanders, who were directly to their left, was remarkable. Although they could not advance, they refused to pull back, and they found themselves in a position where retreat would have been difficult. Colonel Lloyd of the West Ridings was hit three times and killed. Five out of six officers of the New Zealand corps were wounded. There were no reserves available to provide a fresh boost to the attack, and the thin, scattered line behind bullet-marked stones or anthills could only hold its position as the sun slowly set on a day that will not be forgotten by those who experienced it. The Boers received reinforcements in the afternoon, and the pressure intensified so much that retreating the field guns was a challenge. Many soldiers had run out of ammunition and were left helpless. Just a year earlier, British soldiers had found themselves in a similar situation on the plain leading to Modder River, and now, on a smaller scale, the same drama unfolded again. Gradually, the violet haze of evening turned to darkness, and the relentless sound of rifle fire faded away on both sides. Once more, like at Modder River, the British infantry remained in their positions, determined not to retreat, and again, the Boers slipped away under the cover of night, abandoning the ridge they had defended so well. The British paid a price of a hundred killed and wounded for that line of rocky hills—a heavier loss than Lord Methuen faced in the corresponding action. As usual, it was difficult to assess Boer losses, but several freshly dug grave mounds indicated they had suffered as well. Their retreat, however, was not because of exhaustion but rather due to a maneuver Lyttelton successfully executed behind them. The gunners and infantry had all performed admirably in a challenging action, but it was generally agreed that the honors went to the New Zealanders. It was no empty praise when Sir Alfred Milner sent a telegram to the Premier of New Zealand congratulating him on the distinguished actions of his fellow countrymen.

From this time onwards there was nothing of importance in this part of the seat of war.

From this point on, nothing significant happened in this area of the battlefield.

It is necessary now to turn from the north-east to the north-west of Pretoria, where the presence of De la Rey and the cover afforded by the Magaliesberg mountains had kept alive the Boer resistance. Very rugged lines of hill, alternating with fertile valleys, afforded a succession of forts and of granaries to the army which held them. To General Clements' column had been committed the task of clearing this difficult piece of country. His force fluctuated in numbers, but does not appear at any time to have consisted of more than three thousand men, which comprised the Border Regiment, the Yorkshire Light Infantry, the second Northumberland Fusiliers, mounted infantry, yeomanry, the 8th R.F.A., P battery R.H.A., and one heavy gun. With this small army he moved about the district, breaking up Boer bands, capturing supplies, and bringing in refugees. On November 13th he was at Krugersdorp, the southern extremity of his beat. On the 24th he was moving north again, and found himself as he approached the hills in the presence of a force of Boers with cannon. This was the redoubtable De la Rey, who sometimes operated in Methuen's country to the north of the Magaliesberg, and sometimes to the south. He had now apparently fixed upon Clements as his definite opponent. De la Rey was numerically inferior, and Clements had no difficulty in this first encounter in forcing him back with some loss. On November 26th Clements was back at Krugersdorp again with cattle and prisoners. In the early days of December he was moving northwards once more, where a serious disaster awaited him. Before narrating the circumstances connected with the Battle of Nooitgedacht there is one incident which occurred in this same region which should be recounted.

It's time to shift our focus from the northeast to the northwest of Pretoria, where De la Rey's presence and the protection offered by the Magaliesberg mountains kept the Boer resistance alive. The landscape, with its rugged hills and fertile valleys, provided various forts and granaries for the army stationed there. General Clements was given the task of clearing this challenging area. His force varied in size but never seemed to exceed three thousand men, which included the Border Regiment, the Yorkshire Light Infantry, the second Northumberland Fusiliers, mounted infantry, yeomanry, the 8th R.F.A., P battery R.H.A., and one heavy gun. With this small army, he patrolled the region, dismantling Boer groups, seizing supplies, and bringing in refugees. On November 13th, he was at Krugersdorp, the southern edge of his operations. By the 24th, he was heading north again and encountered a Boer force with cannons as he neared the hills. This was the formidable De la Rey, who operated in both Methuen's territory north of the Magaliesberg and to the south. He seemed to have chosen Clements as his primary adversary. Although De la Rey was outnumbered, Clements managed to push him back and inflict some losses in this initial clash. By November 26th, Clements returned to Krugersdorp with cattle and prisoners. In early December, he was moving north again, where a significant disaster awaited him. Before discussing the events surrounding the Battle of Nooitgedacht, there's an incident in this same area that needs to be mentioned.

This consists of the determined attack made by a party of De la Rey's men, upon December 3rd, on a convoy which was proceeding from Pretoria to Rustenburg, and had got as far as Buffel's Hoek. The convoy was a very large one, consisting of 150 wagons, which covered about three miles upon the march. It was guarded by two companies of the West Yorkshires, two guns of the 75th battery, and a handful of the Victoria Mounted Rifles. The escort appears entirely inadequate when it is remembered that these stores, which were of great value, were being taken through a country which was known to be infested by the enemy. What might have been foreseen occurred. Five hundred Boers suddenly rode down upon the helpless line of wagons and took possession of them. The escort rallied, however, upon a kopje, and, though attacked all day, succeeded in holding their own until help arrived. They prevented the Boers from destroying or carrying off as much of the convoy as was under their guns, but the rest was looted and burned. The incident was a most unfortunate one, as it supplied the enemy with a large quantity of stores, of which they were badly in need. It was the more irritating as it was freely rumoured that a Boer attack was pending; and there is evidence that a remonstrance was addressed from the convoy before it left Rietfontein to the General of the district, pointing out the danger to which it was exposed. The result was the loss of 120 wagons and of more than half the escort. The severity of the little action and the hardihood of the defence are indicated by the fact that the small body who held the kopje lost fifteen killed and twenty-two wounded, the gunners losing nine out of fifteen. A relieving force appeared at the close of the action, but no vigorous pursuit was attempted, although the weather was wet and the Boers had actually carried away sixty loaded wagons, which could only go very slowly. It must be confessed that from its feckless start to its spiritless finish the story of the Buffel's Hoek convoy is not a pleasant one to tell.

This describes the determined attack carried out by a group of De la Rey's men on December 3rd, targeting a convoy traveling from Pretoria to Rustenburg, which had reached Buffel's Hoek. The convoy was quite large, consisting of 150 wagons stretching about three miles. It was protected by two companies of the West Yorkshires, two guns from the 75th battery, and a small number of the Victoria Mounted Rifles. The escort seemed completely insufficient when considering the valuable supplies were being transported through an area known to be infested with the enemy. What could have been anticipated did happen. Five hundred Boers suddenly charged down on the defenseless line of wagons and took control of them. However, the escort regrouped on a hill and, despite being attacked all day, managed to hold their ground until reinforcements arrived. They prevented the Boers from destroying or seizing as much of the convoy as was within range, but the rest was looted and burned. This incident was particularly unfortunate, as it provided the enemy with a significant amount of supplies they desperately needed. It was even more frustrating since there were rumors circulating about a possible Boer attack, and evidence suggests that a warning was sent from the convoy before it left Rietfontein to the district General, highlighting the dangers they faced. The outcome was the loss of 120 wagons and more than half of the escort. The intensity of the small skirmish and the bravery of the defense are reflected in the deaths of fifteen and injuries to twenty-two among the small group holding the hill, with the gunners suffering nine casualties out of fifteen. A relief force appeared at the end of the skirmish, but no vigorous pursuit was launched, even though the weather was wet and the Boers had taken away sixty loaded wagons, which could only move very slowly. It must be said that from its ineffective start to its lackluster finish, the story of the Buffel's Hoek convoy is not a pleasant one to recount.

Clements, having made his way once more to the Magaliesberg range, had pitched his camp at a place called Nooitgedacht—not to be confused with the post upon the Delagoa Railway at which the British prisoners had been confined. Here, in the very shadow of the mountain, he halted for five days, during which, with the usual insouciance of British commanders, he does not seem to have troubled himself with any entrenching. He knew, no doubt, that he was too strong for his opponent De la Rey, but what he did not know, but might have feared, was that a second Boer force might appear suddenly upon the scene and join with De la Rey in order to crush him. This second Boer force was that of Commandant Beyers from Warm Baths. By a sudden and skilful movement the two united, and fell like a thunderbolt upon the British column, which was weakened by the absence of the Border Regiment. The result was such a reverse as the British had not sustained since Sanna's Post—a reverse which showed that, though no regular Boer army might exist, still a sudden coalition of scattered bands could at any time produce a force which would be dangerous to any British column which might be taken at a disadvantage. We had thought that the days of battles in this war were over, but an action which showed a missing and casualty roll of 550 proved that in this, as in so many other things, we were mistaken.

Clements, having returned to the Magaliesberg range, set up his camp at a place called Nooitgedacht—not to be confused with the post on the Delagoa Railway where the British prisoners had been held. Here, right in the shadow of the mountain, he stopped for five days, during which, with the usual lack of concern from British commanders, he apparently didn't bother with any fortifications. He likely believed he was too strong for his opponent De la Rey, but what he didn’t realize, and might have feared, was that a second Boer force could suddenly appear and team up with De la Rey to overwhelm him. This second Boer force was led by Commandant Beyers from Warm Baths. Through a sudden and clever maneuver, the two forces combined and struck like a lightning bolt at the British column, which was weakened by the absence of the Border Regiment. The outcome was a setback for the British that they hadn’t faced since Sanna's Post—a setback that demonstrated that even if a regular Boer army didn’t exist, a sudden alliance of scattered groups could anytime form a powerful force that would threaten any British column caught off guard. We had thought the days of battles in this war were over, but an engagement that resulted in 550 casualties showed that, in this and so many other aspects, we were mistaken.

As already stated, the camp of Clements lay under a precipitous cliff, upon the summit of which he had placed four companies of the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers. This strong post was a thousand feet higher than the camp. Below lay the main body of the force, two more companies of fusiliers, four of Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Mounted Infantry, Kitchener's Horse, yeomanry, and the artillery. The latter consisted of one heavy naval gun, four guns of the 8th R.F.A., and P battery R.H.A. The whole force amounted to about fifteen hundred men.

As mentioned earlier, Clements's camp was situated beneath a steep cliff, on top of which he had stationed four companies of the 2nd Northumberland Fusiliers. This strong position was a thousand feet higher than the camp. Below were the main body of the force, which included two more companies of fusiliers, four companies of Yorkshire Light Infantry, the 2nd Mounted Infantry, Kitchener's Horse, yeomanry, and the artillery. The artillery comprised one heavy naval gun, four guns from the 8th R.F.A., and P Battery R.H.A. The entire force totaled about fifteen hundred men.

It was just at the first break of dawn—the hour of fate in South African warfare—that the battle began. The mounted infantry post between the camp and the mountains were aware of moving figures in front of them. In the dim light they could discern that they were clothed in grey, and that they wore the broad-brimmed hats and feathers of some of our own irregular corps. They challenged, and the answer was a shattering volley, instantly returned by the survivors of the picket. So hot was the Boer attack that before help could come every man save one of the picket was on the ground. The sole survivor, Daley of the Dublins, took no backward step, but continued to steadily load and fire until help came from the awakened camp. There followed a savage conflict at point blank-range. The mounted infantry men, rushing half clad to the support of their comrades, were confronted by an ever-thickening swarm of Boer riflemen, who had already, by working round on the flank, established their favourite cross fire. Legge, the leader of the mounted infantry, a hard little Egyptian veteran, was shot through the head, and his men lay thick around him. For some minutes it was as hot a corner as any in the war. But Clements himself had appeared upon the scene, and his cool gallantry turned the tide of fight. An extension of the line checked the cross fire, and gave the British in turn a flanking position. Gradually the Boer riflemen were pushed back, until at last they broke and fled for their horses in the rear. A small body were cut off, many of whom were killed and wounded, while a few were taken prisoners.

It was just at the first light of dawn—the crucial moment in South African warfare—that the battle started. The mounted infantry post between the camp and the mountains noticed moving figures in front of them. In the dim light, they could see that the figures were dressed in grey and wore broad-brimmed hats and feathers similar to some of our own irregular troops. They challenged, and the response was a deafening volley, instantly returned by the surviving members of the picket. The Boer attack was so fierce that before help arrived, every man except one from the picket was down. The only survivor, Daley from the Dublins, didn’t retreat but continued to load and fire steadily until assistance came from the awakened camp. A fierce close-range conflict followed. The mounted infantry soldiers, rushing out mostly undressed to aid their comrades, faced an increasingly dense swarm of Boer riflemen, who had already flanked them and set up their preferred crossfire. Legge, the leader of the mounted infantry, a tough little veteran from Egypt, was shot in the head, and his men lay thick around him. For several minutes, it was one of the hottest spots in the war. But then Clements himself appeared on the scene, and his calm bravery turned the tide of the fight. An extension of the line stopped the crossfire and gave the British a flanking position in return. Gradually, the Boer riflemen were pushed back until they finally broke and fled to their horses in the rear. A small group was cut off, many killed or wounded, while a few were taken prisoner.

This stiff fight of an hour had ended in a complete repulse of the attack, though at a considerable cost. Both Boers and British had lost heavily. Nearly all the staff were killed or wounded, though General Clements had come through untouched. Fifty or sixty of both sides had fallen. But it was noted as an ominous fact that in spite of shell fire the Boers still lingered upon the western flank. Were they coming on again? They showed no signs of it. And yet they waited in groups, and looked up towards the beetling crags above them. What were they waiting for? The sudden crash of a murderous Mauser fire upon the summit, with the rolling volleys of the British infantry, supplied the answer.

This intense hour-long fight ended with a total repulse of the attack, but at a significant cost. Both the Boers and the British suffered heavy losses. Almost all of the staff were killed or wounded, although General Clements emerged unscathed. Around fifty or sixty from both sides had fallen. It was noted as a troubling sign that despite the shelling, the Boers still lingered on the western flank. Were they planning to advance again? They didn't show any indications of that. Yet, they waited in groups, looking up at the steep cliffs above them. What were they waiting for? The sudden crack of deadly Mauser fire from the summit, along with the rolling volleys of British infantry, provided the answer.

Only now must it have been clear to Clements that he was not dealing merely with some spasmodic attack from his old enemy De la Rey, but that this was a largely conceived movement, in which a force at least double the strength of his own had suddenly been concentrated upon him. His camp was still menaced by the men whom he had repulsed, and he could not weaken it by sending reinforcements up the hill. But the roar of the musketry was rising louder and louder. It was becoming clearer that there was the main attack. It was a Majuba Hill action up yonder, a thick swarm of skirmishers closing in from many sides upon a central band of soldiers. But the fusiliers were hopelessly outnumbered, and this rock fighting is that above all others in which the Boer has an advantage over the regular. A helio on the hill cried for help. The losses were heavy, it said, and the assailants numerous. The Boers closed swiftly in upon the flanks, and the fusiliers were no match for their assailants. Till the very climax the helio still cried that they were being overpowered, and it is said that even while working it the soldier in charge was hurled over the cliff by the onrush of the victorious Boers.

Only now must it have been clear to Clements that he was not just facing some random attack from his old enemy De la Rey, but that this was a well-planned movement, with a force at least double his own suddenly concentrated against him. His camp was still threatened by the men he had pushed back, and he couldn't weaken it by sending reinforcements up the hill. But the sound of gunfire was getting louder and louder. It was becoming clear that this was the main assault. It was a Majuba Hill situation up there, with a thick swarm of skirmishers closing in from multiple sides on a central group of soldiers. The fusiliers were hopelessly outnumbered, and this kind of rocky fighting is the one in which the Boer has the upper hand over regular troops. A heliograph on the hill signaled for help. The losses were heavy, it stated, and the attackers were numerous. The Boers quickly closed in on the flanks, and the fusiliers were no match for their foes. Until the very end, the heliograph kept signaling that they were being overwhelmed, and it is said that even while operating it, the soldier in charge was thrown over the cliff by the charge of the victorious Boers.

The fight of the mounted infantry men had been at half-past four. At six the attack upon the hill had developed, and Clements in response to those frantic flashes of light had sent up a hundred men of the yeomanry, from the Fife and Devon squadrons, as a reinforcement. To climb a precipitous thousand feet with rifle, bandolier, and spurs, is no easy feat, yet that roar of battle above them heartened them upon their way. But in spite of all their efforts they were only in time to share the general disaster. The head of the line of hard-breathing yeomen reached the plateau just as the Boers, sweeping over the remnants of the Northumberland Fusiliers, reached the brink of the cliff. One by one the yeomen darted over the edge, and endeavoured to find some cover in the face of an infernal point-blank fire. Captain Mudie of the staff, who went first, was shot down. So was Purvis of the Fifes, who followed him. The others, springing over their bodies, rushed for a small trench, and tried to restore the fight. Lieutenant Campbell, a gallant young fellow, was shot dead as he rallied his men. Of twenty-seven of the Fifeshires upon the hill six were killed and eleven wounded. The statistics of the Devons are equally heroic. Those yeomen who had not yet reached the crest were in a perfectly impossible position, as the Boers were firing from complete cover right down upon them. There was no alternative for them but surrender. By seven o'clock every British soldier upon the hill, yeoman or fusilier, had been killed, wounded, or taken. It is not true that the supply of cartridges ran out, and the fusiliers, with the ill-luck which has pursued the 2nd battalion, were outnumbered and outfought by better skirmishers than themselves.

The fight of the mounted infantry men had started at 4:30. By 6:00, the attack on the hill had intensified, and Clements, reacting to those frantic flashes of light, sent up a hundred men from the yeomanry, specifically from the Fife and Devon squadrons, as reinforcements. Climbing a steep thousand feet with a rifle, bandolier, and spurs is no easy task, yet the sounds of battle above them motivated them on their way. However, despite all their efforts, they only arrived in time to share in the overall disaster. The front of the line of out-of-breath yeomen reached the plateau just as the Boers, sweeping over the remnants of the Northumberland Fusiliers, reached the edge of the cliff. One by one, the yeomen jumped over the edge and tried to find cover against the intense point-blank fire. Captain Mudie of the staff, who went first, was shot down. So was Purvis of the Fifes, who followed him. The others, leaping over their bodies, rushed for a small trench and tried to turn the tide of the fight. Lieutenant Campbell, a brave young man, was shot dead as he rallied his troops. Out of twenty-seven of the Fifeshires on the hill, six were killed and eleven wounded. The numbers for the Devons are just as heroic. Those yeomen who had not yet reached the top were in a completely hopeless situation, as the Boers were firing down on them from full cover. They had no choice but to surrender. By 7:00, every British soldier on the hill, whether yeoman or fusilier, had been killed, wounded, or captured. It's not true that they ran out of cartridges; the fusiliers, plagued by bad luck that has followed the 2nd battalion, were outnumbered and outperformed by better skirmishers than themselves.

Seldom has a General found himself in a more trying position than Clements, or extricated himself more honourably. Not only had he lost nearly half his force, but his camp was no longer tenable, and his whole army was commanded by the fringe of deadly rifles upon the cliff. From the berg to the camp was from 800 to 1000 yards, and a sleet of bullets whistled down upon it. How severe was the fire may be gauged from the fact that the little pet monkey belonging to the yeomanry—a small enough object—was hit three times, though he lived to survive as a battle-scarred veteran. Those wounded in the early action found themselves in a terrible position, laid out in the open under a withering fire, 'like helpless Aunt Sallies,' as one of them described it. 'We must get a red flag up, or we shall be blown off the face of the earth,' says the same correspondent, a corporal of the Ceylon Mounted Infantry. 'We had a pillow-case, but no red paint. Then we saw what would do instead, so they made the upright with my blood, and the horizontal with Paul's.' It is pleasant to add that this grim flag was respected by the Boers. Bullocks and mules fell in heaps, and it was evident that the question was not whether the battle could be restored, but whether the guns could be saved. Leaving a fringe of yeomen, mounted infantry, and Kitchener's Horse to stave off the Boers, who were already descending by the same steep kloof up which the yeomen had climbed, the General bent all his efforts to getting the big naval gun out of danger. Only six oxen were left out of a team of forty, and so desperate did the situation appear that twice dynamite was placed beneath the gun to destroy it. Each time, however, the General intervened, and at last, under a stimulating rain of pom-pom shells, the great cannon lurched slowly forward, quickening its pace as the men pulled on the drag-ropes, and the six oxen broke into a wheezy canter. Its retreat was covered by the smaller guns which rained shrapnel upon the crest of the hill, and upon the Boers who were descending to the camp. Once the big gun was out of danger, the others limbered up and followed, their rear still covered by the staunch mounted infantry, with whom rest all the honours of the battle. Cookson and Brooks with 250 men stood for hours between Clements and absolute disaster. The camp was abandoned as it stood, and all the stores, four hundred picketed horses, and, most serious of all, two wagons of ammunition, fell into the hands of the victors. To have saved all his guns, however, after the destruction of half his force by an active enemy far superior to him in numbers and in mobility, was a feat which goes far to condone the disaster, and to increase rather than to impair the confidence which his troops feel in General Clements. Having retreated for a couple of miles he turned his big gun round upon the hill, which is called Yeomanry Hill, and opened fire upon the camp, which was being looted by swarms of Boers. So bold a face did he present that he was able to remain with his crippled force upon Yeomanry Hill from about nine until four in the afternoon, and no attack was pressed home, though he lay under both shell and rifle fire all day. At four in the afternoon he began his retreat, which did not cease till he had reached Rietfontein, twenty miles off, at six o'clock upon the following morning. His weary men had been working for twenty-six hours, and actually fighting for fourteen, but the bitterness of defeat was alleviated by the feeling that every man, from the General downwards, had done all that was possible, and that there was every prospect of their having a chance before long of getting their own back.

Seldom has a general found himself in a more challenging position than Clements, or managed to extricate himself more honorably. Not only had he lost nearly half his forces, but his camp was no longer defensible, and his entire army was targeted by a deadly line of rifles on the cliff. The distance from the mountain to the camp was between 800 and 1000 yards, and a hail of bullets rained down on them. The intensity of the fire can be measured by the fact that the little pet monkey belonging to the yeomanry—a small creature—was hit three times, though he ultimately survived as a battle-scarred veteran. Those injured in the early fighting found themselves in a dire situation, laying exposed to merciless fire, 'like helpless Aunt Sallies,' as one of them put it. 'We need to raise a red flag, or we'll be blown off the face of the earth,' said the same correspondent, a corporal of the Ceylon Mounted Infantry. 'We had a pillowcase, but no red paint. Then we found what would work instead, so they made the vertical part with my blood, and the horizontal part with Paul's.' It’s nice to note that this grim flag was respected by the Boers. Cattle and mules fell in heaps, and it was clear that the real question wasn’t whether the battle could be salvaged, but whether the guns could be saved. Leaving a small group of yeomen, mounted infantry, and Kitchener's Horse to hold off the Boers, who were already descending the same steep ravine up which the yeomen had previously climbed, the general focused all his efforts on getting the big naval gun out of danger. Only six oxen were left from a team of forty, and the situation seemed so desperate that twice dynamite was prepared beneath the gun to destroy it. Each time, however, the general intervened, and finally, under a relentless rain of pom-pom shells, the great cannon lurched forward, quickly speeding up as the men pulled on the drag ropes and the six oxen broke into a wheezy canter. Its retreat was covered by the smaller guns that showered shrapnel on the hilltop and on the Boers descending to the camp. Once the big gun was safe, the others followed suit, still covered by the brave mounted infantry, to whom all the credit for the battle belongs. Cookson and Brooks with 250 men stood for hours between Clements and complete disaster. The camp was abandoned as it was, and all the supplies, four hundred tied-up horses, and, most critically, two wagons of ammunition fell into the hands of the victors. However, managing to save all his guns after losing half his forces to a far superior enemy in numbers and mobility was a feat that greatly mitigated the disaster and boosted, rather than diminished, the confidence that his troops had in General Clements. After retreating for a couple of miles, he turned his big gun back towards the hill known as Yeomanry Hill and opened fire on the camp, which was being looted by hordes of Boers. He presented such a bold front that he managed to stay with his wounded force on Yeomanry Hill from about nine until four in the afternoon, and no attack was seriously launched, even though he was under both shell and rifle fire all day. At four in the afternoon, he began his retreat, which didn’t end until he reached Rietfontein, twenty miles away, at six o'clock the following morning. His exhausted men had been working for twenty-six hours and actually fighting for fourteen, but the disappointment of defeat was softened by the knowledge that everyone, from the general down, had done everything possible and that there was every expectation of getting their chance for revenge soon.

The British losses at the battle of Nooitgedacht amounted to 60 killed, 180 wounded, and 315 prisoners, all of whom were delivered up a few days later at Rustenburg. Of the Boer losses it is, as usual, impossible to speak with confidence, but all the evidence points to their actual casualties being as heavy as those of the British. There was the long struggle at the camp in which they were heavily punished, the fight on the mountain, where they exposed themselves with unusual recklessness, and the final shelling from shrapnel and from lyddite. All accounts agree that their attack was more open than usual. 'They were mowed down in twenties that day, but it had no effect. They stood like fanatics,' says one who fought against them. From first to last their conduct was most gallant, and great credit is due to their leaders for the skilful sudden concentration by which they threw their whole strength upon the exposed force. Some eighty miles separate Warm Baths from Nooitgedacht, and it seems strange that our Intelligence Department should have remained in ignorance of so large a movement.

The British losses at the battle of Nooitgedacht totaled 60 killed, 180 wounded, and 315 prisoners, all of whom were handed over a few days later at Rustenburg. As usual, it's hard to provide accurate figures for the Boer losses, but all evidence suggests their actual casualties were likely as heavy as those of the British. There was a long struggle at the camp where they suffered significant losses, the fight on the mountain where they exposed themselves recklessly, and the final shelling from shrapnel and lyddite. All reports agree that their attack was more aggressive than usual. "They were cut down in twenties that day, but it made no difference. They stood like fanatics," says one who fought against them. From start to finish, their conduct was incredibly brave, and their leaders deserve great credit for the skillful, sudden concentration that allowed them to unleash their full strength against the vulnerable force. Some eighty miles separate Warm Baths from Nooitgedacht, and it seems odd that our Intelligence Department remained unaware of such a significant movement.

General Broadwood's 2nd Cavalry Brigade had been stationed to the north of Magaliesberg, some twelve miles westward of Clements, and formed the next link in the long chain of British forces. Broadwood does not appear, however, to have appreciated the importance of the engagement, and made no energetic movement to take part in it. If Colvile is open to the charge of having been slow to 'march upon the cannon' at Sanna's Post, it might be urged that Broadwood in turn showed some want of energy and judgment upon this occasion. On the morning of the 13th his force could hear the heavy firing to the eastward, and could even see the shells bursting on the top of the Magaliesberg. It was but ten or twelve miles distant, and, as his Elswick guns have a range of nearly five, a very small advance would have enabled him to make a demonstration against the flank of the Boers, and so to relieve the pressure upon Clements. It is true that his force was not large, but it was exceptionally mobile. Whatever the reasons, no effective advance was made by Broadwood. On hearing the result he fell back upon Rustenburg, the nearest British post, his small force being dangerously isolated.

General Broadwood's 2nd Cavalry Brigade was stationed north of Magaliesberg, about twelve miles west of Clements, and was part of the long line of British forces. However, Broadwood doesn't seem to have grasped the significance of the engagement and took no decisive action to get involved. While Colvile might be criticized for being slow to 'march upon the cannon' at Sanna's Post, it's fair to say that Broadwood also showed a lack of energy and judgment on this occasion. On the morning of the 13th, his troops could hear the heavy firing to the east and even see shells bursting on top of the Magaliesberg. It was only ten or twelve miles away, and since his Elswick guns had a range of nearly five miles, a small advance could have allowed him to make a show against the Boers' flank, relieving some pressure on Clements. It's true that his force was not large, but it was incredibly mobile. For whatever reasons, Broadwood did not make an effective advance. After hearing the outcome, he retreated to Rustenburg, the nearest British post, with his small force in a dangerously isolated position.

Those who expected that General Clements would get his own back had not long to wait. In a few days he was in the field again. The remains of his former force had, however, been sent into Pretoria to refit, and nothing remained of it save the 8th R.F.A. and the indomitable cow-gun still pocked with the bullets of Nooitgedacht. He had also F battery R.H.A., the Inniskillings, the Border regiment, and a force of mounted infantry under Alderson. More important than all, however, was the co-operation of General French, who came out from Pretoria to assist in the operations. On the 19th, only six days after his defeat, Clements found himself on the very same spot fighting some at least of the very same men. This time, however, there was no element of surprise, and the British were able to approach the task with deliberation and method. The result was that both upon the 19th and 20th the Boers were shelled out of successive positions with considerable loss, and driven altogether away from that part of the Magaliesberg. Shortly afterwards General Clements was recalled to Pretoria, to take over the command of the 7th Division, General Tucker having been appointed to the military command of Bloemfontein in the place of the gallant Hunter, who, to the regret of the whole army, was invalided home. General Cunningham henceforward commanded the column which Clements had led back to the Magaliesberg.

Those who thought General Clements would seek revenge didn't have to wait long. In just a few days, he was back in the field. However, the remnants of his previous force had been sent to Pretoria to regroup, and all that remained was the 8th R.F.A. and the resilient cow-gun still marked by the bullets from Nooitgedacht. He also had F Battery R.H.A., the Inniskillings, the Border Regiment, and a group of mounted infantry led by Alderson. More crucial than anything else was the support from General French, who came out from Pretoria to help with the operations. On the 19th, just six days after his defeat, Clements found himself in the exact same location fighting at least some of the same men. This time, though, there was no element of surprise, and the British could approach the task with careful planning. As a result, on both the 19th and 20th, the Boers were shelled out of their positions with significant losses and were completely pushed away from that area of the Magaliesberg. Soon after, General Clements was called back to Pretoria to take command of the 7th Division, as General Tucker had been appointed to lead the military forces in Bloemfontein, taking over from the brave Hunter, who was sadly sent home due to health reasons. From then on, General Cunningham commanded the column that Clements had led back to the Magaliesberg.

Upon November 13th the first of a series of attacks was made upon the posts along the Delagoa Railway line. These were the work of Viljoen's commando, who, moving swiftly from the north, threw themselves upon the small garrisons of Balmoral and of Wilge River, stations which are about six miles apart. At the former was a detachment of the Buffs, and at the latter of the Royal Fusiliers. The attack was well delivered, but in each instance was beaten back with heavy loss to the assailants. A picket of the Buffs was captured at the first rush, and the detachment lost six killed and nine wounded. No impression was made upon the position, however, and the double attack seems to have cost the Boers a large number of casualties.

On November 13th, the first in a series of attacks was launched against the posts along the Delagoa Railway line. These attacks were carried out by Viljoen's commando, who quickly moved in from the north, targeting the small garrisons at Balmoral and Wilge River, which are about six miles apart. Balmoral had a detachment of the Buffs, while Wilge River was defended by the Royal Fusiliers. The attacks were forceful, but in each case, the defenders successfully pushed back the attackers, resulting in heavy losses for them. A picket of the Buffs was taken captive during the initial assault, with the detachment suffering six killed and nine wounded. Despite this, the defenders held their ground, and the coordinated attacks seemed to have inflicted significant casualties on the Boers.

Another incident calling for some mention was the determined attack made by the Boers upon the town of Vryheid, in the extreme south-east of the Transvaal near the Natal border. Throughout November this district had been much disturbed, and the small British garrison had evacuated the town and taken up a position on the adjacent hills. Upon December 11th the Boers attempted to carry the trenches. The garrison of the town appears to have consisted of the 2nd Royal Lancaster regiment, some five hundred strong, a party of the Lancashire Fusiliers, 150 strong, and fifty men of the Royal Garrison Artillery, with a small body of mounted infantry. They held a hill about half a mile north of the town, and commanding it. The attack, which was a surprise in the middle of the night, broke upon the pickets of the British, who held their own in a way which may have been injudicious but was certainly heroic. Instead of falling back when seriously attacked, the young officers in charge of these outposts refused to move, and were speedily under such a fire that it was impossible to reinforce them. There were four outposts, under Woodgate, Theobald, Lippert, and Mangles. The attack at 2.15 on a cold dark morning began at the post held by Woodgate, the Boers coming hand-to-hand before they were detected. Woodgate, who was unarmed at the instant, seized a hammer, and rushed at the nearest Boer, but was struck by two bullets and killed. His post was dispersed or taken. Theobald and Lippert, warned by the firing, held on behind their sangars, and were ready for the storm which burst over them. Lippert was unhappily killed, and his ten men all hit or taken, but young Theobald held his own under a heavy fire for twelve hours. Mangles also, the gallant son of a gallant father, held his post all day with the utmost tenacity. The troops in the trenches behind were never seriously pressed, thanks to the desperate resistance of the outposts, but Colonel Gawne of the Lancasters was unfortunately killed. Towards evening the Boers abandoned the attack, leaving fourteen of their number dead upon the ground, from which it may be guessed that their total casualties were not less than a hundred. The British losses were three officers and five men killed, twenty-two men wounded, and thirty men with one officer missing—the latter being the survivors of those outposts which were overwhelmed by the Boer advance.

Another incident worth mentioning was the fierce attack by the Boers on the town of Vryheid, located in the far southeast of the Transvaal near the Natal border. Throughout November, this area had been quite troubled, and the small British garrison had evacuated the town, taking up a position on the nearby hills. On December 11th, the Boers tried to overrun the trenches. The town's garrison was made up of the 2nd Royal Lancaster regiment, about five hundred strong, a group of the Lancashire Fusiliers, 150 strong, and fifty men from the Royal Garrison Artillery, along with a small unit of mounted infantry. They held a hill approximately half a mile north of the town, which overlooked it. The attack, a surprise in the middle of the night, hit the British pickets, who managed to hold their ground in a way that might have been unwise but was definitely heroic. Instead of retreating when they were seriously attacked, the young officers in charge of these outposts refused to budge, quickly finding themselves under such heavy fire that reinforcement became impossible. There were four outposts, led by Woodgate, Theobald, Lippert, and Mangles. The attack began at 2:15 on a cold, dark morning at Woodgate’s post, with the Boers closing in hand-to-hand before they were noticed. Woodgate, who was unarmed at that moment, grabbed a hammer and charged at the closest Boer but was shot twice and killed. His post was either dispersed or taken. Theobald and Lippert, alerted by the gunfire, held their ground behind their sangars, bracing for the storm that hit them. Unfortunately, Lippert was killed, and all ten of his men were hit or captured, but young Theobald managed to hold out under heavy fire for twelve hours. Mangles, the brave son of a brave father, also held his post all day with incredible determination. The troops in the trenches behind never faced significant pressure, thanks to the desperate resistance from the outposts, but Colonel Gawne of the Lancasters was tragically killed. By evening, the Boers gave up the attack, leaving fourteen of their dead on the ground, suggesting their total casualties were at least a hundred. The British losses included three officers and five men killed, twenty-two men wounded, and thirty men with one officer missing—the latter being the survivors from the outposts overwhelmed by the Boer advance.

A few incidents stand out among the daily bulletins of snipings, skirmishes, and endless marchings which make the dull chronicle of these, the last months of the year 1900. These must be enumerated without any attempt at connecting them. The first is the long-drawn-out siege or investment of Schweizer-Renecke. This small village stands upon the Harts River, on the western border of the Transvaal. It is not easy to understand why the one party should desire to hold, or the other to attack, a position so insignificant. From August 19th onwards it was defended by a garrison of 250 men, under the very capable command of Colonel Chamier, who handled a small business in a way which marks him as a leader. The Boer force, which varied in numbers from five hundred to a thousand, never ventured to push home an attack, for Chamier, fresh from the experience of Kimberley, had taken such precautions that his defences were formidable, if not impregnable. Late in September a relieving force under Colonel Settle threw fresh supplies into the town, but when he passed on upon his endless march the enemy closed in once more, and the siege was renewed. It lasted for several months, until a column withdrew the garrison and abandoned the position.

A few events stand out among the daily updates of shootings, small battles, and constant troop movements that describe the dull record of these last months of 1900. These need to be listed without trying to link them together. The first is the prolonged siege of Schweizer-Renecke. This small village is located on the Harts River, on the western border of the Transvaal. It's hard to grasp why one side wants to hold this position and the other wants to attack it, considering how insignificant it is. From August 19th onward, it was defended by a garrison of 250 men, under the skilled leadership of Colonel Chamier, who managed a small operation in a way that distinguishes him as a leader. The Boer forces, which ranged from five hundred to a thousand, never tried to launch a full-scale attack because Chamier, having just come from the experience at Kimberley, had taken such precautions that his defenses were impressive, if not unbeatable. In late September, a relief force led by Colonel Settle delivered fresh supplies to the town, but once he moved on with his endless march, the enemy closed in again, and the siege resumed. It lasted for several months until a column withdrew the garrison and abandoned the position.

Of all the British detachments, the two which worked hardest and marched furthest during this period of the war was the 21st Brigade (Derbyshires, Sussex, and Camerons) under General Bruce Hamilton, and the column under Settle, which operated down the western border of the Orange River Colony, and worked round and round with such pertinacity that it was familiarly known as Settle's Imperial Circus. Much hard and disagreeable work, far more repugnant to the soldier than the actual dangers of war, fell to the lot of Bruce Hamilton and his men. With Kroonstad as their centre they were continually working through the dangerous Lindley and Heilbron districts, returning to the railway line only to start again immediately upon a fresh quest. It was work for mounted police, not for infantry soldiers, but what they were given to do they did to the best of their ability. Settle's men had a similar thankless task. From the neighbourhood of Kimberley he marched in November with his small column down the border of the Orange River Colony, capturing supplies and bringing in refugees. He fought one brisk action with Hertzog's commando at Kloof, and then, making his way across the colony, struck the railway line again at Edenburg on December 7th, with a train of prisoners and cattle.

Of all the British units, the two that worked the hardest and marched the furthest during this part of the war were the 21st Brigade (Derbyshires, Sussex, and Camerons) under General Bruce Hamilton, and the column led by Settle, which operated along the western border of the Orange River Colony, moving around so persistently that it earned the nickname Settle's Imperial Circus. Much of the tough and unpleasant work, which was far more distasteful to the soldiers than the actual dangers of war, fell to Bruce Hamilton and his men. Centered in Kroonstad, they constantly worked through the hazardous Lindley and Heilbron areas, only returning to the railway line to immediately set out on a new mission. It was a job meant for mounted police, not infantry soldiers, but they did their best with what they were assigned. Settle's men faced a similarly thankless task. From near Kimberley, he marched in November with his small column along the border of the Orange River Colony, capturing supplies and helping refugees. He engaged in a quick skirmish with Hertzog's commando at Kloof, and then, making his way across the colony, reached the railway line again at Edenburg on December 7th, bringing along a train of prisoners and cattle.

Rundle also had put in much hard work in his efforts to control the difficult district in the north-east of the Colony which had been committed to his care. He traversed in November from north to south the same country which he had already so painfully traversed from south to north. With occasional small actions he moved about from Vrede to Reitz, and so to Bethlehem and Harrismith. On him, as on all other commanders, the vicious system of placing small garrisons in the various towns imposed a constant responsibility lest they should be starved or overwhelmed.

Rundle also put in a lot of hard work trying to manage the challenging district in the northeast of the Colony that was assigned to him. In November, he traveled from north to south through the same area he had previously struggled to cross from south to north. With occasional small skirmishes, he moved from Vrede to Reitz, and then on to Bethlehem and Harrismith. Like all the other commanders, he faced the ongoing challenge of the flawed system of stationing small garrisons in various towns, which meant he had to constantly ensure they weren't left without supplies or overrun.

The year and the century ended by a small reverse to the British arms in the Transvaal. This consisted in the capture of a post at Helvetia defended by a detachment of the Liverpool Regiment and by a 4.7 gun. Lydenburg, being seventy miles off the railway line, had a chain of posts connecting it with the junction at Machadodorp. These posts were seven in number, ten miles apart, each defended by 250 men. Of these Helvetia was the second. The key of the position was a strongly fortified hill about three-quarters of a mile from the headquarter camp, and commanding it. This post was held by Captain Kirke with forty garrison artillery to work the big gun, and seventy Liverpool infantry. In spite of the barbed-wire entanglements, the Boers most gallantly rushed this position, and their advance was so rapid, or the garrison so slow, that the place was carried with hardly a shot fired. Major Cotton, who commanded the main lines, found himself deprived in an instant of nearly half his force and fiercely attacked by a victorious and exultant enemy. His position was much too extended for the small force at his disposal, and the line of trenches was pierced and enfiladed at many points. It must be acknowledged that the defences were badly devised—little barbed wire, frail walls, large loopholes, and the outposts so near the trenches that the assailants could reach them as quickly as the supports. With the dawn Cotton's position was serious, if not desperate. He was not only surrounded, but was commanded from Gun Hill. Perhaps it would have been wiser if, after being wounded, he had handed over the command to Jones, his junior officer. A stricken man's judgement can never be so sound as that of the hale. However that may be, he came to the conclusion that the position was untenable, and that it was best to prevent further loss of life. Fifty of the Liverpools were killed and wounded, 200 taken. No ammunition of the gun was captured, but the Boers were able to get safely away with this humiliating evidence of their victory. One post, under Captain Wilkinson with forty men, held out with success, and harassed the enemy in their retreat. As at Dewetsdorp and at Nooitgedacht, the Boers were unable to retain their prisoners, so that the substantial fruits of their enterprise were small, but it forms none the less one more of those incidents which may cause us to respect our enemy and to be critical towards ourselves. [Footnote: Considering that Major Stapelton Cotton was himself wounded in three places during the action (one of these wounds being in the head), he has had hard measure in being deprived of his commission by a court-martial which sat eight months after the event. It is to be earnestly hoped that there may be some revision of this severe sentence.]

The year and century ended with a small defeat for the British forces in the Transvaal. This involved the capture of a post at Helvetia that was defended by a detachment of the Liverpool Regiment and a 4.7 gun. Lydenburg, located seventy miles from the railway line, was connected by a chain of posts leading to the junction at Machadodorp. There were seven posts in total, spaced ten miles apart, each defended by 250 men. Helvetia was the second post in this chain. The key to the position was a strongly fortified hill about three-quarters of a mile from the headquarters camp, which overlooked it. This post was held by Captain Kirke with forty artillery soldiers to operate the big gun and seventy infantry from the Liverpool Regiment. Despite the barbed-wire obstacles, the Boers bravely attacked this position, advancing so quickly or the garrison being so slow that they captured it with hardly any shots fired. Major Cotton, who commanded the main lines, suddenly lost nearly half of his force and found himself fiercely attacked by a victorious and jubilant enemy. His position was far too stretched for the small force he had, and the line of trenches was breached and under fire at many points. It's worth noting that the defenses were poorly designed—minimal barbed wire, weak walls, large loopholes, and the outposts so close to the trenches that the attackers could reach them as fast as the reinforcements could arrive. By dawn, Cotton's situation was serious, if not desperate. He was not only surrounded but also outgunned from Gun Hill. It might have been wiser for him, after being wounded, to hand over command to Jones, his junior officer. A wounded person's judgment is never as sound as that of someone healthy. Regardless, he concluded that the position was unsustainable and that it was best to avoid further loss of life. Fifty men from the Liverpool Regiment were killed and wounded, and 200 were captured. No ammunition from the gun was taken, but the Boers managed to escape with this humiliating reminder of their victory. One post, led by Captain Wilkinson with forty men, held out successfully and harassed the enemy as they retreated. Like at Dewetsdorp and Nooitgedacht, the Boers were unable to keep their prisoners, resulting in minimal substantial gains from their efforts, but it nonetheless serves as another incident that may cause us to respect our enemy and reflect critically on ourselves. [Footnote: Considering that Major Stapelton Cotton was wounded in three places during the action (one of these wounds being to the head), it seems harsh that he was stripped of his command by a court-martial that convened eight months later. It is hoped that this severe verdict may be reconsidered.]

In the last few months of the year some of those corps which had served their time or which were needed elsewhere were allowed to leave the seat of war. By the middle of November the three different corps of the City Imperial Volunteers, the two Canadian contingents, Lumsden's Horse, the Composite Regiment of Guards, six hundred Australians, A battery R.H.A., and the volunteer companies of the regular regiments, were all homeward bound. This loss of several thousand veteran troops before the war was over was to be deplored, and though unavoidable in the case of volunteer contingents, it is difficult to explain where regular troops are concerned. Early in the new year the Government was compelled to send out strong reinforcements to take their place.

In the last few months of the year, some of the units that had completed their service or were needed elsewhere were permitted to leave the battlefront. By mid-November, the three different units of the City Imperial Volunteers, the two Canadian contingents, Lumsden's Horse, the Composite Regiment of Guards, six hundred Australians, a battery of R.H.A., and the volunteer companies of the regular regiments were all on their way home. This loss of several thousand seasoned troops before the war ended was regrettable, and although it was unavoidable for the volunteer contingents, it's hard to explain for regular troops. Early in the new year, the Government had to send out strong reinforcements to replace them.

Early in December Lord Roberts also left the country, to take over the duties of Commander-in-Chief. High as his reputation stood when, in January, he landed at Cape Town, it is safe to say that it had been immensely enhanced when, ten months later, he saw from the quarter-deck of the 'Canada' the Table Mountain growing dimmer in the distance. He found a series of disconnected operations, in which we were uniformly worsted. He speedily converted them into a series of connected operations in which we were almost uniformly successful. Proceeding to the front at the beginning of February, within a fortnight he had relieved Kimberley, within a month he had destroyed Cronje's force, and within six weeks he was in Bloemfontein. Then, after a six weeks' halt which could not possibly have been shortened, he made another of his tiger leaps, and within a month had occupied Johannesburg and Pretoria. From that moment the issue of the campaign was finally settled, and though a third leap was needed, which carried him to Komatipoort, and though brave and obstinate men might still struggle against their destiny, he had done what was essential, and the rest, however difficult, was only the detail of the campaign. A kindly gentleman, as well as a great soldier, his nature revolted from all harshness, and a worse man might have been a better leader in the last hopeless phases of the war. He remembered, no doubt, how Grant had given Lee's army their horses, but Lee at the time had been thoroughly beaten, and his men had laid down their arms. A similar boon to the partially conquered Boers led to very different results, and the prolongation of the war is largely due to this act of clemency. At the same time political and military considerations were opposed to each other upon the point, and his moral position in the use of harsher measures is the stronger since a policy of conciliation had been tried and failed. Lord Roberts returned to London with the respect and love of his soldiers and of his fellow-countrymen. A passage from his farewell address to his troops may show the qualities which endeared him to them.

Early in December, Lord Roberts left the country to take on the role of Commander-in-Chief. While his reputation was already high when he arrived in Cape Town in January, it had significantly increased by the time he viewed Table Mountain fading into the distance from the quarter-deck of the 'Canada' ten months later. He found a series of uncoordinated operations where we were consistently outmatched. He quickly turned them into a series of coordinated operations where we were nearly always successful. After heading to the front at the beginning of February, he relieved Kimberley within two weeks, destroyed Cronje's forces in a month, and reached Bloemfontein in six weeks. Following a necessary six-week pause, he made another bold advance, occupying Johannesburg and Pretoria within a month. From that moment, the outcome of the campaign was effectively determined, and although a third advance was required to reach Komatipoort, and despite the brave efforts of determined individuals, he had accomplished the essential tasks, with the remaining challenges being mere details of the campaign. A kind gentleman as well as a great soldier, he was naturally averse to cruelty, and a more ruthless person might have been a better leader during the desperate final stages of the war. He likely recalled how Grant had allowed Lee's army to keep their horses after they surrendered, but Lee's forces had been thoroughly defeated at that time. Offering a similar mercy to the partially subdued Boers led to very different outcomes, and the extension of the war can largely be attributed to that act of mercy. Simultaneously, political and military interests conflicted on this point, and his moral stance in favor of harsher measures is reinforced since a conciliatory approach had already been attempted and failed. Lord Roberts returned to London with the respect and affection of his soldiers and fellow countrymen. A passage from his farewell address to his troops may illustrate the qualities that endeared him to them.

'The service which the South African Force has performed is, I venture to think, unique in the annals of war, inasmuch as it has been absolutely almost incessant for a whole year, in some cases for more than a year. There has been no rest, no days off to recruit, no going into winter quarters, as in other campaigns which have extended over a long period. For months together, in fierce heat, in biting cold, in pouring rain, you, my comrades, have marched and fought without halt, and bivouacked without shelter from the elements. You frequently have had to continue marching with your clothes in rags and your boots without soles, time being of such consequence that it was impossible for you to remain long enough in one place to refit. When not engaged in actual battle you have been continually shot at from behind kopjes by invisible enemies to whom every inch of the country was familiar, and who, from the peculiar nature of the country, were able to inflict severe punishment while perfectly safe themselves. You have forced your way through dense jungles, over precipitous mountains, through and over which with infinite manual labour you have had to drag heavy guns and ox-wagons. You have covered with almost incredible speed enormous distances, and that often on very short supplies of food. You have endured the sufferings inevitable in war to sick and wounded men far from the base, without a murmur and even with cheerfulness.'

'The service that the South African Force has provided is, I believe, unique in the history of warfare, as it has been nearly non-stop for an entire year, and in some cases even longer. There has been no break, no days off to rest, no winter quarters like in other prolonged campaigns. For months at a time, in sweltering heat, freezing cold, and pouring rain, you, my comrades, have marched and fought without pause, and camped without protection from the elements. You often had to keep going with your clothes in tatters and shoes falling apart, as time was so critical that you couldn’t stay in one place long enough to re-equip. When not actively in battle, you were often shot at from the hills by unseen enemies who knew every inch of the terrain, and who, due to the rugged nature of the land, could cause serious damage while staying safe themselves. You have pushed through dense jungles and steep mountains, dragging heavy guns and ox-wagons with immense effort. You have covered vast distances with incredible speed, often on very limited food supplies. You have faced the hardships that come with war for sick and wounded men far from base, without complaint and even with a sense of optimism.'

The words reflect honour both upon the troops addressed and upon the man who addressed them. From the middle of December 1900 Lord Kitchener took over the control of the campaign.

The words bring honor both to the troops being addressed and to the man who is addressing them. Starting in the middle of December 1900, Lord Kitchener took control of the campaign.





CHAPTER 32. THE SECOND INVASION OF CAPE COLONY.

(DECEMBER 1900 TO APRIL 1901.)

During the whole war the task of the British had been made very much more difficult by the openly expressed sympathy with the Boers from the political association known as the Afrikander Bond, which either inspired or represented the views which prevailed among the great majority of the Dutch inhabitants of Cape Colony. How strong was this rebel impulse may be gauged by the fact that in some of the border districts no less than ninety per cent of the voters joined the Boer invaders upon the occasion of their first entrance into the Colony. It is not pretended that these men suffered from any political grievances whatever, and their action is to be ascribed partly to a natural sympathy with their northern kinsmen, and partly to racial ambition and to personal dislike to their British neighbours. The liberal British policy towards the natives had especially alienated the Dutch, and had made as well-marked a line of cleavage in South Africa as the slave question had done in the States of the Union.

Throughout the entire war, the British faced significant challenges due to the openly voiced support for the Boers from a political group called the Afrikander Bond, which either inspired or represented the opinions of most Dutch residents in Cape Colony. The strength of this rebellious sentiment can be measured by the fact that in some border areas, as many as ninety percent of voters sided with the Boer invaders during their initial entry into the Colony. It's important to note that these individuals did not have any political grievances, and their actions were partly due to a natural sympathy for their northern relatives, as well as racial ambition and a personal disdain for their British neighbors. The British government's liberal policies towards the indigenous people had particularly alienated the Dutch, creating a divide in South Africa as pronounced as the issue of slavery did in the United States.

With the turn of the war the discontent in Cape Colony became less obtrusive, if not less acute, but in the later months of the year 1900 it increased to a degree which became dangerous. The fact of the farm-burning in the conquered countries, and the fiction of outrages by the British troops, raised a storm of indignation. The annexation of the Republics, meaning the final disappearance of any Dutch flag from South Africa, was a racial humiliation which was bitterly resented. The Dutch papers became very violent, and the farmers much excited. The agitation culminated in a conference at Worcester upon December 6th, at which some thousands of delegates were present. It is suggestive of the Imperial nature of the struggle that the assembly of Dutch Afrikanders was carried out under the muzzles of Canadian artillery, and closely watched by Australian cavalry. Had violent words transformed themselves into deeds, all was ready for the crisis.

As the war progressed, the discontent in Cape Colony became less noticeable, though it remained intense. However, by the end of 1900, it grew to a level that became dangerous. The burning of farms in the occupied territories and the exaggerated reports of atrocities committed by British troops sparked widespread outrage. The annexation of the Republics, which meant the complete removal of the Dutch flag from South Africa, was a deep racial humiliation that was fiercely resented. The Dutch newspapers grew increasingly aggressive, and the farmers were highly agitated. This unrest peaked with a conference in Worcester on December 6th, which was attended by thousands of delegates. It’s telling of the colonial nature of the conflict that the gathering of Dutch Afrikanders took place under the watchful eyes of Canadian artillery and Australian cavalry. If harsh words had turned into actions, everything was in place for an explosive situation.

Fortunately the good sense of the assembly prevailed, and the agitation, though bitter, remained within those wide limits which a British constitution permits. Three resolutions were passed, one asking that the war be ended, a second that the independence of the Republics be restored, and a third protesting against the actions of Sir Alfred Milner. A deputation which carried these to the Governor received a courteous but an uncompromising reply. Sir Alfred Milner pointed out that the Home Government, all the great Colonies, and half the Cape were unanimous in their policy, and that it was folly to imagine that it could be reversed on account of a local agitation. All were agreed in the desire to end the war, but the last way of bringing this about was by encouraging desperate men to go on fighting in a hopeless cause. Such was the general nature of the Governor's reply, which was, as might be expected, entirely endorsed by the British Government and people.

Fortunately, the common sense of the assembly won out, and the unrest, although intense, stayed within the broad limits allowed by the British constitution. Three resolutions were passed: one calling for an end to the war, a second demanding the restoration of the Republics' independence, and a third protesting against the actions of Sir Alfred Milner. A delegation that took these resolutions to the Governor received a polite but firm response. Sir Alfred Milner noted that the Home Government, all major Colonies, and half of the Cape were united in their policy, and that it was pointless to think it could be changed because of a local movement. Everyone agreed on the need to end the war, but encouraging desperate people to continue fighting a losing battle was not the way to achieve that. This was the overall message of the Governor's reply, which, as expected, was fully supported by the British Government and the public.

Had De Wet, in the operations which have already been described, evaded Charles Knox and crossed the Orange River, his entrance into the Colony would have been synchronous with the congress at Worcester, and the situation would have become more acute. This peril was fortunately averted. The agitation in the Colony suggested to the Boer leaders, however, that here was an untouched recruiting ground, and that small mobile invading parties might gather strength and become formidable. It was obvious, also, that by enlarging the field of operations the difficulties of the British Commander-in-chief would be very much increased, and the pressure upon the Boer guerillas in the Republics relaxed. Therefore, in spite of De Wet's failure to penetrate the Colony, several smaller bands under less-known leaders were despatched over the Orange River. With the help of the information and the supplies furnished by the local farmers, these bands wandered for many months over the great expanse of the Colony, taking refuge, when hard pressed, among the mountain ranges. They moved swiftly about, obtaining remounts from their friends, and avoiding everything in the nature of an action, save when the odds were overwhelmingly in their favour. Numerous small posts or patrols cut off, many skirmishes, and one or two railway smashes were the fruits of this invasion, which lasted till the end of the war, and kept the Colony in an extreme state of unrest during that period. A short account must be given here of the movement and exploits of these hostile bands, avoiding, as far as possible, that catalogue of obscure 'fonteins' and 'kops' which mark their progress.

Had De Wet, in the previously described actions, managed to avoid Charles Knox and crossed the Orange River, his entry into the Colony would have coincided with the congress at Worcester, making the situation much more critical. Fortunately, this danger was avoided. The unrest in the Colony, however, indicated to the Boer leaders that this was an untouched recruitment area, and that small, agile invading groups could gain strength and become a serious threat. It was also clear that by expanding the area of operations, the challenges for the British Commander-in-chief would significantly increase, and the pressure on the Boer guerrillas in the Republics would ease. Therefore, despite De Wet's failure to enter the Colony, several smaller groups led by less-known leaders were sent over the Orange River. With support from local farmers who provided information and supplies, these groups roamed the vast Colony for many months, seeking refuge in the mountain ranges when pressured. They moved quickly, getting new mounts from their friends and avoiding any confrontation unless the odds were overwhelmingly in their favor. Many small posts or patrols were cut off, numerous skirmishes occurred, and one or two railway disruptions were the results of this invasion, which lasted until the end of the war, keeping the Colony in a state of extreme unrest during that time. A brief account of the movements and actions of these hostile groups must be provided here, steering clear of the long list of obscure 'fonteins' and 'kops' that marked their journey.

The invasion was conducted by two main bodies, which shed off numerous small raiding parties. Of these two, one operated on the western side of the Colony, reaching the sea-coast in the Clanwilliam district, and attaining a point which is less than a hundred miles from Cape Town. The other penetrated even more deeply down the centre of the Colony, reaching almost to the sea in the Mossel Bay direction. Yet the incursion, although so far-reaching, had small effect, since the invaders held nothing save the ground on which they stood, and won their way, not by victory, but by the avoidance of danger. Some recruits were won to their cause, but they do not seem at that time to have been more than a few hundreds in number, and to have been drawn for the most part from the classes of the community which had least to lose and least to offer.

The invasion was carried out by two main groups, which sent out many small raiding parties. Of these two, one worked in the western part of the Colony, reaching the coastline in the Clanwilliam area and getting within a hundred miles of Cape Town. The other pushed even further into the center of the Colony, getting close to the sea in the direction of Mossel Bay. However, despite the extensive reach, the invasion had little impact, since the invaders only controlled the ground they stood on and succeeded not through victories but by dodging danger. They did manage to gain some recruits for their cause, but it seems they numbered only a few hundred at most and came mainly from the parts of the community that had the least to lose and the least to contribute.

The Western Boers were commanded by Judge Hertzog of the Free State, having with him Brand, the son of the former president, and about twelve hundred well-mounted men. Crossing the Orange River at Sand Drift, north of Colesberg, upon December 16th, they paused at Kameelfontein to gather up a small post of thirty yeomen and guardsmen under Lieutenant Fletcher, the wellknown oar. Meeting with a stout resistance, and learning that British forces were already converging upon them, they abandoned the attack, and turning away from Colesberg they headed west, cutting the railway line twenty miles to the north of De Aar. On the 22nd they occupied Britstown, which is eighty miles inside the border, and on the same day they captured a small body of yeomanry who had been following them. These prisoners were released again some days later. Taking a sweep round towards Prieska and Strydenburg, they pushed south again. At the end of the year Hertzog's column was 150 miles deep in the Colony, sweeping through the barren and thinly-inhabited western lands, heading apparently for Fraserburg and Beaufort West.

The Western Boers were led by Judge Hertzog from the Free State, along with Brand, the son of the former president, and about twelve hundred well-mounted men. Crossing the Orange River at Sand Drift, north of Colesberg, on December 16th, they paused at Kameelfontein to gather a small group of thirty yeomen and guardsmen under Lieutenant Fletcher, the well-known oar. Facing strong resistance and realizing that British forces were already closing in on them, they abandoned the attack and turned away from Colesberg, heading west and cutting the railway line twenty miles north of De Aar. On the 22nd, they occupied Britstown, which is eighty miles inside the border, and on the same day, they captured a small group of yeomanry that had been following them. These prisoners were released a few days later. Taking a loop towards Prieska and Strydenburg, they pushed south again. By the end of the year, Hertzog’s column was 150 miles deep in the Colony, traveling through the barren and sparsely populated western lands, seemingly heading for Fraserburg and Beaufort West.

The second column was commanded by Kritzinger, a burgher of Zastron, in the Orange River Colony. His force was about 800 strong. Crossing the border at Rhenoster Hoek upon December 16th, they pushed for Burghersdorp, but were headed off by a British column. Passing through Venterstad, they made for Steynsberg, fighting two indecisive skirmishes with small British forces. The end of the year saw them crossing the rail road at Sherburne, north of Rosmead Junction, where they captured a train as they passed, containing some Colonial troops. At this time they were a hundred miles inside the Colony, and nearly three hundred from Hertzog's western column.

The second column was led by Kritzinger, a local from Zastron in the Orange River Colony. His group was around 800 strong. They crossed the border at Rhenoster Hoek on December 16th and aimed for Burghersdorp, but they were intercepted by a British column. After passing through Venterstad, they headed for Steynsberg, engaging in two inconclusive skirmishes with small British forces. By the end of the year, they crossed the railroad at Sherburne, north of Rosmead Junction, where they captured a train they encountered that was carrying some Colonial troops. At this point, they were a hundred miles inside the Colony and nearly three hundred from Hertzog's western column.

In the meantime Lord Kitchener, who had descended for a few days to De Aar, had shown great energy in organising small mobile columns which should follow and, if possible, destroy the invaders. Martial law was proclaimed in the parts of the Colony affected, and as the invaders came further south the utmost enthusiasm was shown by the loyalists, who formed themselves everywhere into town guards. The existing Colonial regiments, such as Brabant's, the Imperial and South African Light Horse—Thorneycroft's, Rimington's, and the others—had already been brought up to strength again, and now two new regiments were added, Kitchener's Bodyguard and Kitchener's Fighting Scouts, the latter being raised by Johann Colenbrander, who had made a name for himself in the Rhodesian wars. At this period of the war between twenty and thirty thousand Cape colonists were under arms. Many of these were untrained levies, but they possessed the martial spirit of the race, and they set free more seasoned troops for other duties.

In the meantime, Lord Kitchener, who had come down to De Aar for a few days, was very active in organizing small mobile units to pursue and, if possible, eliminate the invaders. Martial law was declared in the affected areas of the Colony, and as the invaders moved further south, the loyalists showed immense enthusiasm by forming town guards everywhere. The existing Colonial regiments, like Brabant's, the Imperial and South African Light Horse—Thorneycroft's, Rimington's, and others—had already been fully manned again, and now two new regiments were established: Kitchener's Bodyguard and Kitchener's Fighting Scouts, the latter formed by Johann Colenbrander, who had gained recognition during the Rhodesian wars. At this time in the war, around twenty to thirty thousand Cape colonists were armed. Many of these were untrained recruits, but they had the fighting spirit of their people, allowing more experienced troops to be freed up for other tasks.

It will be most convenient and least obscure to follow the movements of the western force (Hertzog's), and afterwards to consider those of the eastern (Kritzinger's). The opening of the year saw the mobile column of Free Staters 150 miles over the border, pushing swiftly south over the barren surface of the Karoo. It is a country of scattered farms and scanty population; desolate plains curving upwards until they rise into still more desolate mountain ranges. Moving in a very loose formation over a wide front, the Boers swept southwards. On or about January 4th they took possession of the small town of Calvinia, which remained their headquarters for more than a month. From this point their roving bands made their way as far as the seacoast in the Clanwilliam direction, for they expected at Lambert's Bay to meet with a vessel with mercenaries and guns from Europe. They pushed their outposts also as far as Sutherland and Beaufort West in the south. On January 15th strange horsemen were seen hovering about the line at Touws River, and the citizens of Cape Town learned with amazement that the war had been carried to within a hundred miles of their own doors.

It will be most convenient and least confusing to follow the movements of the western force (Hertzog's), and then consider those of the eastern force (Kritzinger's). At the start of the year, the mobile column of Free Staters was 150 miles over the border, rapidly heading south across the barren terrain of the Karoo. This area consists of scattered farms and a sparse population; desolate plains rise upwards into even more desolate mountain ranges. Moving in a very loose formation across a wide front, the Boers advanced southward. Around January 4th, they took control of the small town of Calvinia, which served as their headquarters for over a month. From there, their roaming groups traveled all the way to the coast in the Clanwilliam direction, as they anticipated meeting a ship carrying mercenaries and weapons from Europe at Lambert's Bay. They also extended their outposts as far as Sutherland and Beaufort West to the south. On January 15th, unusual horsemen were spotted near Touws River, and the citizens of Cape Town were stunned to learn that the war had come within a hundred miles of their doorstep.

Whilst the Boers were making this daring raid a force consisting of several mobile columns was being organised by General Settle to arrest and finally to repel the western invasion. The larger body was under the command of Colonel De Lisle, an officer who brought to the operations of war the same energy and thoroughness with which he had made the polo team of an infantry regiment the champions of the whole British Army. His troops consisted of the 6th Mounted Infantry, the New South Wales Mounted Infantry, the Irish Yeomanry, a section of R battery R.H.A., and a pom-pom. With this small but mobile and hardy force he threw himself in front of Hertzog's line of advance. On January 13th he occupied Piquetburg, eighty miles south of the Boer headquarters. On the 23rd he was at Clanwilliam, fifty miles south-west of them. To his right were three other small British columns under Bethune, Thorneycroft, and Henniker, the latter resting upon the railway at Matjesfontein, and the whole line extending over 120 miles—barring the southern path to the invaders.

While the Boers were executing this bold raid, General Settle was organizing a force made up of several mobile units to halt and ultimately push back the western invasion. The main group was led by Colonel De Lisle, an officer who brought the same energy and dedication to military operations as he did when he turned an infantry regiment's polo team into champions of the entire British Army. His troops included the 6th Mounted Infantry, the New South Wales Mounted Infantry, the Irish Yeomanry, a section of R Battery R.H.A., and a pom-pom. With this small yet agile and resilient force, he positioned himself in front of Hertzog's advancing line. On January 13th, he took control of Piquetburg, eighty miles south of the Boer headquarters. By the 23rd, he had moved to Clanwilliam, fifty miles southwest of them. To his right were three additional small British columns led by Bethune, Thorneycroft, and Henniker, the latter situated along the railway at Matjesfontein, with the entire line stretching over 120 miles—blocking the southern route for the invaders.

Though Hertzog at Calvinia and De Lisle at Clanwilliam were only fifty miles apart, the intervening country is among the most broken and mountainous in South Africa. Between the two points, and nearer to De Lisle than to Hertzog, flows the Doorn River. The Boers advancing from Calvinia came into touch with the British scouts at this point, and drove them in upon January 21st. On the 28th De Lisle, having been reinforced by Bethune's column, was able at last to take the initiative. Bethune's force consisted mainly of Colonials, and included Kitchener's Fighting Scouts, the Cape Mounted Police, Cape Mounted Rifles, Brabant's Horse, and the Diamond Field Horse. At the end of January the united forces of Bethune and of De Lisle advanced upon Calvinia. The difficulties lay rather in the impassable country than in the resistance of an enemy who was determined to refuse battle. On February 6th, after a fine march, De Lisle and his men took possession of Calvinia, which had been abandoned by the Boers. It is painful to add that during the month that they had held the town they appear to have behaved with great harshness, especially to the kaffirs. The flogging and shooting of a coloured man named Esan forms one more incident in the dark story of the Boer and his relations to the native.

Though Hertzog at Calvinia and De Lisle at Clanwilliam were only fifty miles apart, the land between them is some of the most rugged and mountainous in South Africa. Between the two locations, closer to De Lisle than to Hertzog, flows the Doorn River. The Boers advancing from Calvinia encountered the British scouts at this point and pushed them back on January 21st. On the 28th, De Lisle, having been reinforced by Bethune's column, was finally able to take the initiative. Bethune's force mainly consisted of Colonials and included Kitchener's Fighting Scouts, the Cape Mounted Police, Cape Mounted Rifles, Brabant's Horse, and the Diamond Field Horse. By the end of January, the combined forces of Bethune and De Lisle advanced on Calvinia. The challenges came more from the impassable terrain than from an enemy determined to avoid battle. On February 6th, after a successful march, De Lisle and his men took control of Calvinia, which had been deserted by the Boers. It is unfortunate to note that during the month they held the town, they seemed to have acted with considerable cruelty, particularly towards the Black residents. The flogging and shooting of a colored man named Esan is yet another grim incident in the troubling history of the Boer and their treatment of the native population.

The British were now sweeping north on a very extended front. Colenbrander had occupied Van Rhyns Dorp, to the east of Calvinia, while Bethune's force was operating to the west of it. De Lisle hardly halted at Calvinia, but pushed onwards to Williston, covering seventy-two miles of broken country in forty-eight hours, one of the most amazing performances of the war. Quick as he was, the Boers were quicker still, and during his northward march he does not appear to have actually come into contact with them. Their line of retreat lay through Carnarvon, and upon February 22nd they crossed the railway line to the north of De Aar, and joined upon February 26th the new invading force under De Wet, who had now crossed the Orange River. De Lisle, who had passed over five hundred miles of barren country since he advanced from Piquetburg, made for the railway at Victoria West, and was despatched from that place on February 22nd to the scene of action in the north. From all parts Boer and Briton were concentrating in their effort to aid or to repel the inroad of the famous guerilla.

The British were now advancing north across a wide front. Colenbrander had taken over Van Rhyns Dorp, to the east of Calvinia, while Bethune's force was active to the west of it. De Lisle barely stopped at Calvinia and moved on to Williston, covering seventy-two miles of rough terrain in just forty-eight hours, one of the most impressive feats of the war. Despite his speed, the Boers were even quicker, and it seems he didn't actually make contact with them during his northward trek. Their escape route went through Carnarvon, and on February 22nd, they crossed the railway line north of De Aar, reuniting on February 26th with the new invading force led by De Wet, who had now crossed the Orange River. De Lisle, who had journeyed over five hundred miles of desolate land since he moved out from Piquetburg, aimed for the railway at Victoria West and was sent from there on February 22nd to the conflict zone in the north. From all directions, both Boer and Briton were gathering to either support or resist the advance of the famous guerrilla.

Before describing this attempt it would be well to trace the progress of the eastern invasion (Kritzinger's), a movement which may be treated rapidly, since it led to no particular military result at that time, though it lasted long after Hertzog's force had been finally dissipated. Several small columns, those of Williams, Byng, Grenfell, and Lowe, all under the direction of Haig, were organised to drive back these commandos; but so nimble were the invaders, so vast the distances and so broken the country, that it was seldom that the forces came into contact. The operations were conducted over a portion of the Colony which is strongly Dutch in sympathy, and the enemy, though they do not appear to have obtained any large number of recruits, were able to gather stores, horses, and information wherever they went.

Before discussing this attempt, it's important to look at the progress of the eastern invasion (Kritzinger's), a campaign that can be summarized quickly since it didn't lead to any significant military outcome at the time, although it continued long after Hertzog's forces had been completely dispersed. Several small groups, led by Williams, Byng, Grenfell, and Lowe, all under Haig’s command, were organized to push back these commandos; however, the invaders were surprisingly quick, the distances were vast, and the terrain was rough, making it rare for the forces to engage each other. The operations took place in an area of the Colony that strongly favored Dutch sympathies, and while the enemy didn't seem to recruit many new soldiers, they were able to collect supplies, horses, and intelligence wherever they went.

When last mentioned Kritzinger's men had crossed the railway north of Rosmead on December 30th, and held up a train containing some Colonial troops. From then onwards a part of them remained in the Middelburg and Graaf-Reinet districts, while part moved towards the south. On January 11th there was a sharp skirmish near Murraysburg, in which Byng's column was engaged, at the cost of twenty casualties, all of Brabant's or the South African Light Horse. On the 16th a very rapid movement towards the south began. On that date Boers appeared at Aberdeen, and on the 18th at Willowmore, having covered seventy miles in two days. Their long, thin line was shredded out over 150 miles, and from Maraisburg, in the north, to Uniondale, which is only thirty miles from the coast, there was rumour of their presence. In this wild district and in that of Oudtshoorn the Boer vanguard flitted in and out of the hills, Haig's column striving hard to bring them to an action. So well-informed were the invaders that they were always able to avoid the British concentrations, while if a British outpost or patrol was left exposed it was fortunate if it escaped disaster. On February 6th a small body of twenty-five of the 7th King's Dragoon Guards and of the West Australians, under Captain Oliver, were overwhelmed at Klipplaat, after a very fine defence, in which they held their own against 200 Boers for eight hours, and lost nearly fifty per cent of their number. On the 12th a patrol of yeomanry was surprised and taken near Willowmore.

When last mentioned, Kritzinger's men had crossed the railway north of Rosmead on December 30th and stopped a train carrying some Colonial troops. From that point on, some of them stayed in the Middelburg and Graaf-Reinet areas, while others moved southward. On January 11th, there was a fierce fight near Murraysburg, where Byng's column was involved, resulting in twenty casualties, all of Brabant's or the South African Light Horse. A swift movement south began on the 16th. That day, Boers appeared at Aberdeen, and on the 18th at Willowmore, having traveled seventy miles in two days. Their long, narrow line stretched over 150 miles, and from Maraisburg in the north to Uniondale, just thirty miles from the coast, there were reports of their presence. In this rugged area and around Oudtshoorn, the Boer vanguard moved in and out of the hills while Haig's column worked hard to engage them in battle. The invaders were so well informed that they consistently avoided British troop concentrations, and if a British outpost or patrol was left exposed, it was lucky to escape disaster. On February 6th, a small group of twenty-five from the 7th King's Dragoon Guards and the West Australians, led by Captain Oliver, was overwhelmed at Klipplaat after a valiant defense, managing to hold their ground against 200 Boers for eight hours, losing nearly fifty percent of their number. On the 12th, a patrol of yeomanry was caught off guard and captured near Willowmore.

The coming of De Wet had evidently been the signal for all the Boer raiders to concentrate, for in the second week of February Kritzinger also began to fall back, as Hertzog had done in the west, followed closely by the British columns. He did not, however, actually join De Wet, and his evacuation of the country was never complete, as was the case with Hertzog's force. On the 19th Kritzinger was at Bethesda, with Gorringe and Lowe at his heels. On the 23rd an important railway bridge at Fish River, north of Cradock, was attacked, but the attempt was foiled by the resistance of a handful of Cape Police and Lancasters. On March 6th a party of Boers occupied the village of Pearston, capturing a few rifles and some ammunition. On the same date there was a skirmish between Colonel Parsons's column and a party of the enemy to the north of Aberdeen. The main body of the invading force appears to have been lurking in this neighbourhood, as they were able upon April 7th to cut off a strong British patrol, consisting of a hundred Lancers and Yeomanry, seventy-five of whom remained as temporary prisoners in the hands of the enemy. With this success we may for the time leave Kritzinger and his lieutenant, Scheepers, who commanded that portion of his force which had penetrated to the south of the Colony.

The arrival of De Wet clearly signaled all the Boer raiders to come together, because in the second week of February, Kritzinger also started to retreat, similar to Hertzog in the west, closely followed by the British forces. However, he did not actually join forces with De Wet, and his exit from the region was never as complete as Hertzog's. On the 19th, Kritzinger was in Bethesda, with Gorringe and Lowe right behind him. On the 23rd, an important railway bridge at Fish River, north of Cradock, was attacked, but a small group of Cape Police and Lancasters successfully thwarted the attempt. On March 6th, a group of Boers took over the village of Pearston, capturing a few rifles and some ammunition. On the same date, there was a clash between Colonel Parsons's unit and a group of the enemy north of Aberdeen. The main part of the invading force seems to have been hiding in this area, as they managed to cut off a strong British patrol on April 7th, consisting of a hundred Lancers and Yeomanry, with seventy-five of them becoming temporary prisoners of the enemy. With this success, we can momentarily leave Kritzinger and his lieutenant, Scheepers, who led the part of his force that had moved into the southern part of the Colony.

The two invasions which have been here described, that of Hertzog in the west and of Kritzinger in the midlands, would appear in themselves to be unimportant military operations, since they were carried out by small bodies of men whose policy was rather to avoid than to overcome resistance. Their importance, however, is due to the fact that they were really the forerunners of a more important incursion upon the part of De Wet. The object of these two bands of raiders was to spy out the land, so that on the arrival of the main body all might be ready for that general rising of their kinsmen in the Colony which was the last chance, not of winning, but of prolonging the war. It must be confessed that, however much their reason might approve of the Government under which they lived, the sentiment of the Cape Dutch had been cruelly, though unavoidably, hurt in the course of the war. The appearance of so popular a leader as De Wet with a few thousand veterans in the very heart of their country might have stretched their patience to the breaking-point. Inflamed, as they were, by that racial hatred which had always smouldered, and had now been fanned into a blaze by the speeches of their leaders and by the fictions of their newspapers, they were ripe for mischief, while they had before their eyes an object-lesson of the impotence of our military system in those small bands who had kept the country in a ferment for so long. All was propitious, therefore, for the attempt which Steyn and De Wet were about to make to carry the war into the enemy's country.

The two invasions described here, one by Hertzog in the west and the other by Kritzinger in the midlands, may seem like minor military operations since they were executed by small groups of people whose strategy was more about avoiding conflict than facing it head-on. However, their significance lies in the fact that they were essentially precursors to a larger invasion led by De Wet. The goal of these two bands of raiders was to scout the area, ensuring that everything was ready for the arrival of the main force and the anticipated uprising of their fellow countrymen in the Colony, which represented their final opportunity—not to win the war, but to extend it. It must be acknowledged that, regardless of their rational support for the Government they lived under, the feelings of the Cape Dutch had been deeply wounded during the war. The emergence of a well-liked leader like De Wet, accompanied by a few thousand experienced fighters in the heart of their territory, could easily test their patience to its limit. Fueled by the long-standing racial animosity that had been ignited by the speeches of their leaders and sensationalized by their newspapers, they were primed for trouble, especially as they witnessed firsthand the ineffectiveness of our military system, which had struggled against these small groups that had kept the region in turmoil for such a long time. Thus, all conditions were favorable for the attempt that Steyn and De Wet were about to make to take the war into enemy territory.

We last saw De Wet when, after a long chase, he had been headed back from the Orange River, and, winning clear from Knox's pursuit, had in the third week of December passed successfully through the British cordon between Thabanchu and Ladybrand. Thence he made his way to Senekal, and proceeded, in spite of the shaking which he had had, to recruit and recuperate in the amazing way which a Boer army has. There is no force so easy to drive and so difficult to destroy. The British columns still kept in touch with De Wet, but found it impossible to bring him to an action in the difficult district to which he had withdrawn. His force had split up into numerous smaller bodies, capable of reuniting at a signal from their leader. These scattered bodies, mobile as ever, vanished if seriously attacked, while keenly on the alert to pounce upon any British force which might be overpowered before assistance could arrive. Such an opportunity came to the commando led by Philip Botha, and the result was another petty reverse to the British arms.

We last saw De Wet when, after a long chase, he was headed back from the Orange River and, managing to slip away from Knox's pursuit, successfully passed through the British cordon between Thabanchu and Ladybrand in the third week of December. From there, he made his way to Senekal and, despite the rough time he had, proceeded to recover and regroup in the remarkable way that a Boer army does. There’s no force easier to drive and more challenging to destroy. The British columns continued to track De Wet but found it impossible to engage him in the difficult terrain where he had retreated. His force had split into several smaller groups, ready to reassemble at their leader's signal. These scattered units, as mobile as ever, would vanish if faced with serious attack, while staying alert to ambush any British force that might be overwhelmed before help could arrive. Such an opportunity arose for the commando led by Philip Botha, resulting in another setback for the British.

Upon January 3rd Colonel White's small column was pushing north, in co-operation with those of Knox, Pilcher, and the others. Upon that date it had reached a point just north of Lindley, a district which has never been a fortunate one for the invaders. A patrol of Kitchener' s newly raised bodyguard, under Colonel Laing, 120 strong, was sent forward to reconnoitre upon the road from Lindley to Reitz.

On January 3rd, Colonel White's small group was moving north, working alongside Knox, Pilcher, and the others. By that date, they had reached a point just north of Lindley, an area that hasn’t been lucky for the invaders. A patrol from Kitchener's newly formed bodyguard, led by Colonel Laing and consisting of 120 men, was sent ahead to scout the road from Lindley to Reitz.

The scouting appears to have been negligently done, there being only two men out upon each flank. The little force walked into one of those horse-shoe positions which the Boers love, and learned by a sudden volley from a kraal upon their right that the enemy was present in strength. On attempting to withdraw it was instantly evident that the Boers were on all sides and in the rear with a force which numbered at least five to one. The camp of the main column was only four miles away, however, and the bodyguard, having sent messages of their precarious position, did all they could to make a defence until help could reach them. Colonel Laing had fallen, shot through the heart, but found a gallant successor in young Nairne, the adjutant. Part of the force had thrown themselves, under Nairne and Milne, into a donga, which gave some shelter from the sleet of bullets. The others, under Captain Butters, held on to a ruined kraal. The Boers pushed the attack very rapidly, however, and were soon able with their superior numbers to send a raking fire down the donga, which made it a perfect death-trap. Still hoping that the laggard reinforcements would come up, the survivors held desperately on; but both in the kraal and in the donga their numbers were from minute to minute diminishing. There was no formal surrender and no white flag, for, when fifty per cent of the British were down, the Boers closed in swiftly and rushed the position. Philip Botha, the brother of the commandant, who led the Boers, behaved with courtesy and humanity to the survivors; but many of the wounds were inflicted with those horrible explosive and expansive missiles, the use of which among civilised combatants should now and always be a capital offence. To disable one's adversary is a painful necessity of warfare, but nothing can excuse the wilful mutilation and torture which is inflicted by these brutal devices.

The scouting seems to have been done carelessly, with only two men on each side. The small force walked into one of those horseshoe positions that the Boers favor and quickly learned from a sudden volley from a kraal on their right that the enemy was strong. When they tried to retreat, it became clear that the Boers were surrounding them, with a force that outnumbered them at least five to one. Fortunately, the main column's camp was just four miles away, and the bodyguard, after sending messages about their dangerous situation, did everything they could to defend themselves until help arrived. Colonel Laing had been killed, shot through the heart, but young Nairne, the adjutant, stepped up bravely. Part of the force took cover in a donga under Nairne and Milne, which provided some protection from the rain of bullets. The others, under Captain Butters, held on to a ruined kraal. However, the Boers quickly intensified their attack and used their superior numbers to target the donga, turning it into a deadly trap. Still hoping the delayed reinforcements would arrive, the survivors fought tenaciously on; but both in the kraal and in the donga, their numbers were dwindling by the minute. There was no official surrender and no white flag, since when fifty percent of the British were down, the Boers rapidly closed in and charged the position. Philip Botha, the brother of the commandant leading the Boers, treated the survivors with respect and compassion; however, many of the injuries were caused by those terrible explosive and expanding projectiles, which should always be a serious crime between civilized combatants. Disabling an enemy is an unfortunate necessity of war, but nothing can justify the deliberate mutilation and suffering caused by these brutal weapons.

'How many of you are there?' asked Botha. 'A hundred,' said an officer. 'It is not true. There are one hundred and twenty. I counted you as you came along.' The answer of the Boer leader shows how carefully the small force had been nursed until it was in an impossible position. The margin was a narrow one, however, for within fifteen minutes of the disaster White's guns were at work. There may be some question as to whether the rescuing force could have come sooner, but there can be none as to the resistance of the bodyguard. They held out to the last cartridge. Colonel Laing and three officers with sixteen men were killed, four officers and twenty-two men were wounded. The high proportion of fatal casualties can only be explained by the deadly character of the Boer bullets. Hardly a single horse of the bodyguard was left unwounded, and the profit to the victors, since they were unable to carry away their prisoners, lay entirely in the captured rifles. It is worthy of record that the British wounded were despatched to Heilbron without guard through the Boer forces. That they arrived there unmolested is due to the forbearance of the enemy and to the tact and energy of Surgeon-Captain Porter, who commanded the convoy.

"How many of you are there?" Botha asked. "A hundred," an officer replied. "That's not true. There are one hundred and twenty. I counted you as you came through." The Boer leader's answer shows how carefully the small force had been protected until it found itself in an impossible situation. However, the margin was slim, because within fifteen minutes of the disaster, White's guns were already in action. There might be some debate about whether the rescue team could have arrived sooner, but there is no doubt about the resistance from the bodyguard. They fought until their last cartridge. Colonel Laing and three officers along with sixteen men were killed, and four officers and twenty-two men were wounded. The high number of fatalities can only be explained by the lethal nature of the Boer bullets. Almost every horse in the bodyguard was injured, and the only gain for the victors, since they couldn't take their prisoners, was the seized rifles. It's worth noting that the British wounded were sent to Heilbron without a guard through the Boer lines. Their safe arrival is attributed to the enemy's restraint and the skill and determination of Surgeon-Captain Porter, who led the convoy.

Encouraged by this small success, and stimulated by the news that Hertzog and Kritzinger had succeeded in penetrating the Colony without disaster, De Wet now prepared to follow them. British scouts to the north of Kroonstad reported horsemen riding south and east, sometimes alone, sometimes in small parties. They were recruits going to swell the forces of De Wet. On January 23rd five hundred men crossed the line, journeying in the same direction. Before the end of the month, having gathered together about 2500 men with fresh horses at the Doornberg, twenty miles north of Winburg, the Boer leader was ready for one of his lightning treks once more. On January 28th he broke south through the British net, which appears to have had more meshes than cord. Passing the Bloemfontein-Ladybrand line at Israel Poort he swept southwards, with British columns still wearily trailing behind him, like honest bulldogs panting after a greyhound.

Encouraged by this small success and excited by the news that Hertzog and Kritzinger had made it into the Colony without any problems, De Wet now got ready to follow them. British scouts north of Kroonstad reported that horsemen were riding south and east, sometimes alone, sometimes in small groups. They were recruits joining De Wet’s forces. On January 23rd, five hundred men crossed the line, heading in the same direction. By the end of the month, having gathered about 2,500 men with fresh horses at Doornberg, twenty miles north of Winburg, the Boer leader was set for one of his quick raids again. On January 28th, he broke south through the British net, which seemed to have more holes than ropes. As he crossed the Bloemfontein-Ladybrand line at Israel Poort, he moved southward, with British columns still wearily trailing behind him, like loyal bulldogs panting after a greyhound.

Before following him upon this new venture it is necessary to say a few words about that peace movement in the Boer States to which some allusion has already been made. On December 20th Lord Kitchener had issued a proclamation which was intended to have the effect of affording protection to those burghers who desired to cease fighting, but who were unable to do so without incurring the enmity of their irreconcilable brethren. 'It is hereby notified,' said the document, 'to all burghers that if after this date they voluntarily surrender they will be allowed to live with their families in Government laagers until such time as the guerilla warfare now being carried on will admit of their returning safely to their homes. All stock and property brought in at the time of the surrender of such burghers will be respected and paid for if requisitioned.' This wise and liberal offer was sedulously concealed from their men by the leaders of the fighting commandos, but was largely taken advantage of by those Boers to whom it was conveyed. Boer refugee camps were formed at Pretoria, Johannesburg, Kroonstad, Bloemfontein, Warrenton; and other points, to which by degrees the whole civil population came to be transferred. It was the reconcentrado system of Cuba over again, with the essential difference that the guests of the British Government were well fed and well treated during their detention. Within a few months the camps had 50,000 inmates.

Before following him on this new venture, it's important to say a few words about the peace movement in the Boer States that has already been mentioned. On December 20th, Lord Kitchener issued a proclamation aimed at offering protection to those burghers who wanted to stop fighting but couldn't do so without facing hostility from their unyielding comrades. “It is hereby notified,” said the document, “to all burghers that if they voluntarily surrender after this date, they will be allowed to live with their families in Government camps until the current guerrilla warfare allows them to return safely to their homes. All stock and property brought in at the time of the surrender will be respected and compensated for if requisitioned.” This wise and generous offer was carefully hidden from their men by the leaders of the fighting commandos, but many Boers took advantage of it once they learned about it. Boer refugee camps were established in Pretoria, Johannesburg, Kroonstad, Bloemfontein, Warrenton, and other locations, to which the entire civilian population gradually moved. It resembled Cuba's reconcentrado system, with the key difference being that the guests of the British Government were well-fed and treated kindly during their detention. Within a few months, the camps held 50,000 people.

It was natural that some of these people, having experienced the amenity of British rule, and being convinced of the hopelessness of the struggle, should desire to convey their feelings to their friends and relations in the field. Both in the Transvaal and in the Orange River Colony Peace Committees were formed, which endeavoured to persuade their countrymen to bow to the inevitable. A remarkable letter was published from Piet de Wet, a man who had fought bravely for the Boer cause, to his brother, the famous general. 'Which is better for the Republics,' he asked, 'to continue the struggle and run the risk of total ruin as a nation, or to submit? Could we for a moment think of taking back the country if it were offered to us, with thousands of people to be supported by a Government which has not a farthing?... Put passionate feeling aside for a moment and use common-sense, and you will then agree with me that the best thing for the people and the country is to give in, to be loyal to the new government, and to get responsible government...Should the war continue a few months longer the nation will become so poor that they will be the working class in the country, and disappear as a nation in the future... The British are convinced that they have conquered the land and its people, and consider the matter ended, and they only try to treat magnanimously those who are continuing the struggle in order to prevent unnecessary bloodshed.'

It was natural for some of these people, having experienced the comfort of British rule, and believing that the struggle was pointless, to want to share their thoughts with their friends and family in the field. Peace Committees were formed in both the Transvaal and the Orange River Colony, aiming to persuade their fellow countrymen to accept the inevitable. A noteworthy letter was published from Piet de Wet, a man who had fought valiantly for the Boer cause, to his brother, the famous general. 'What’s better for the Republics,' he asked, 'to keep fighting and risk total destruction as a nation, or to submit? Could we even consider reclaiming the country if it were offered back to us, with thousands of people needing support from a government without a penny?... Set aside emotions for a moment and think logically, and you’ll agree with me that the best choice for the people and the country is to give in, to be loyal to the new government, and to work towards responsible governance... If the war drags on for a few more months, the nation will become so impoverished that we'll end up as the working class in the country and fade as a nation in the future... The British believe they have conquered the land and its people, and see the matter as settled. They only try to show generosity towards those who continue to fight to prevent unnecessary bloodshed.'

Such were the sentiments of those of the burghers who were in favour of peace. Their eyes had been opened and their bitterness was transferred from the British Government to those individual Britons who, partly from idealism and partly from party passion, had encouraged them to their undoing. But their attempt to convey their feelings to their countrymen in the field ended in tragedy. Two of their number, Morgendaal and Wessels, who had journeyed to De Wet's camp, were condemned to death by order of that leader. In the case of Morgendaal the execution actually took place, and seems to have been attended by brutal circumstances, the man having been thrashed with a sjambok before being put to death. The circumstances are still surrounded by such obscurity that it is impossible to say whether the message of the peace envoys was to the General himself or to the men under his command. In the former case the man was murdered. In the latter the Boer leader was within his rights, though the rights may have been harshly construed and brutally enforced.

Such were the feelings of those burghers who supported peace. They had realized their true situation, shifting their resentment from the British Government to individual Britons who, driven by idealism and party passion, had led them to their downfall. However, their attempt to share these feelings with their fellow countrymen in the field ended in tragedy. Two of them, Morgendaal and Wessels, traveled to De Wet's camp and were sentenced to death by that leader. Morgendaal was actually executed, and the circumstances were brutal, as he was whipped with a sjambok before being killed. The details surrounding the incident remain unclear, making it impossible to determine whether the peace envoys' message was directed to the General himself or to his men. If it was meant for the General, then the man was murdered. If it was meant for the troops, the Boer leader was acting within his rights, although those rights might have been interpreted harshly and enforced brutally.

On January 29th, in the act of breaking south, De Wet's force, or a portion of it, had a sharp brush with a small British column (Crewe's) at Tabaksberg, which lies about forty miles north-east of Bloemfontein; This small force, seven hundred strong, found itself suddenly in the presence of a very superior body of the enemy, and had some difficulty in extricating itself. A pom-pom was lost in this affair. Crewe fell back upon Knox, and the combined columns made for Bloemfontein, whence they could use the rails for their transport. De Wet meanwhile moved south as far as Smithfield, and then, detaching several small bodies to divert the attention of the British, he struck due west, and crossed the track between Springfontein and Jagersfontein road, capturing the usual supply train as he passed. On February 9th he had reached Phillipolis, well ahead of the British pursuit, and spent a day or two in making his final arrangements before carrying the war over the border. His force consisted at this time of nearly 8000 men, with two 15-pounders, one pom-pom, and one maxim. The garrisons of all the towns in the south-west of the Orange River Colony had been removed in accordance with the policy of concentration, so De Wet found himself for the moment in a friendly country.

On January 29th, while heading south, De Wet's force, or part of it, had a intense encounter with a small British unit (Crewe's) at Tabaksberg, located about forty miles northeast of Bloemfontein. This small force, which had 700 men, suddenly found itself up against a much larger enemy and struggled to get away. They ended up losing a pom-pom during the skirmish. Crewe retreated to Knox, and the combined units headed toward Bloemfontein, where they could use the railway for transport. Meanwhile, De Wet moved south to Smithfield, and then, sending out several small groups to distract the British, he changed direction and moved west, crossing the path between Springfontein and Jagersfontein road, where he captured the usual supply train. By February 9th, he had reached Phillipolis, well ahead of the British forces chasing him, and he spent a couple of days finalizing his plans before carrying the fight across the border. At that time, his force consisted of nearly 8,000 men, along with two 15-pounders, one pom-pom, and one Maxim gun. The garrisons of all the towns in the southwest of the Orange River Colony had been removed as part of the concentration policy, leaving De Wet temporarily in a friendly territory.

The British, realising how serious a situation might arise should De Wet succeed in penetrating the Colony and in joining Hertzog and Kritzinger, made every effort both to head him off and to bar his return. General Lyttelton at Naauwpoort directed the operations, and the possession of the railway line enabled him to concentrate his columns rapidly at the point of danger. On February 11th De Wet forded the Orange River at Zand Drift, and found himself once more upon British territory. Lyttelton's plan of campaign appears to have been to allow De Wet to come some distance south, and then to hold him in front by De Lisle's force, while a number of small mobile columns under Plumer, Crabbe, Henniker, Bethune, Haig, and Thorneycroft should shepherd him behind. On crossing, De Wet at once moved westwards, where, upon February 12th, Plumer's column, consisting of the Queensland Mounted Infantry, the Imperial Bushmen, and part of the King's Dragoon Guards, came into touch with his rearguard. All day upon the 13th and 14th, amid terrific rain, Plumer's hardy troopers followed close upon the enemy, gleaning a few ammunition wagons, a maxim, and some prisoners. The invaders crossed the railway line near Houtnek, to the north of De Aar, in the early hours of the 15th, moving upon a front of six or eight miles. Two armoured trains from the north and the south closed in upon him as he passed, Plumer still thundered in his rear, and a small column under Crabbe came pressing from the south. This sturdy Colonel of Grenadiers had already been wounded four times in the war, so that he might be excused if he felt some personal as well as patriotic reasons for pushing a relentless pursuit. On crossing the railroad De Wet turned furiously upon his pursuers, and, taking an excellent position upon a line of kopjes rising out of the huge expanse of the Karoo, he fought a stubborn rearguard action in order to give time for his convoy to get ahead. He was hustled off the hills, however, the Australian Bushmen with great dash carrying the central kopje, and the guns driving the invaders to the westward. Leaving all his wagons and his reserve ammunition behind him, the guerilla chief struck north-west, moving with great swiftness, but never succeeding in shaking off Plumer's pursuit. The weather continued, however, to be atrocious, rain and hail falling with such violence that the horses could hardly be induced to face it. For a week the two sodden, sleepless, mud-splashed little armies swept onwards over the Karoo. De Wet passed northwards through Strydenburg, past Hopetown, and so to the Orange River, which was found to be too swollen with the rains to permit of his crossing. Here upon the 23rd, after a march of forty-five miles on end, Plumer ran into him once more, and captured with very little fighting a fifteen-pounder, a pom-pom, and close on to a hundred prisoners. Slipping away to the east, De Wet upon February 24th crossed the railroad again between Krankuil and Orange River Station, with Thorneycroft's column hard upon his heels. The Boer leader was now more anxious to escape from the Colony than ever he had been to enter it, and he rushed distractedly from point to point, endeavouring to find a ford over the great turbid river which cut him off from his own country. Here he was joined by Hertzog's commando with a number of invaluable spare horses. It is said also that he had been able to get remounts in the Hopetown district, which had not been cleared—an omission for which, it is to be hoped, someone has been held responsible. The Boer ponies, used to the succulent grasses of the veld, could make nothing of the rank Karoo, and had so fallen away that an enormous advantage should have rested with the pursuers had ill luck and bad management not combined to enable the invaders to renew their mobility at the very moment when Plumer's horses were dropping dead under their riders.

The British, realizing how serious things could get if De Wet managed to enter the Colony and join Hertzog and Kritzinger, did everything they could to stop him and prevent his return. General Lyttelton at Naauwpoort oversaw the operations, and controlling the railway line allowed him to quickly move his units to where the threat was. On February 11th, De Wet forded the Orange River at Zand Drift, finding himself back on British soil. Lyttelton's campaign strategy seems to have been to let De Wet advance a bit further south and then hold him in place with De Lisle's force while several small, mobile units led by Plumer, Crabbe, Henniker, Bethune, Haig, and Thorneycroft would push him back. After crossing, De Wet immediately moved west, where, on February 12th, Plumer’s column, made up of the Queensland Mounted Infantry, the Imperial Bushmen, and part of the King's Dragoon Guards, made contact with his rear guard. Throughout the 13th and 14th, amidst heavy rain, Plumer’s tough soldiers closely followed the enemy, capturing a few ammunition wagons, a Maxim gun, and some prisoners. The invaders crossed the railway line near Houtnek, north of De Aar, in the early hours of the 15th, spreading out over a six to eight-mile front. Two armored trains from the north and the south moved in on him as he passed, Plumer thundered behind, and a small unit under Crabbe pressed from the south. This strong Colonel of Grenadiers had already been wounded four times in the war, so it’s understandable that he had personal as well as patriotic reasons for pushing a relentless pursuit. After crossing the railroad, De Wet turned fiercely on his pursuers, taking a good position on a line of hills rising from the vast Karoo, and fought a tough rearguard action to give his convoy time to get ahead. He was forced off the hills, though, with the Australian Bushmen capturing the central hill and the artillery pushing the invaders west. Leaving all his wagons and reserve ammunition behind, the guerrilla leader moved northwest quickly, but couldn't shake off Plumer's pursuit. The weather was still awful, with rain and hail falling so hard that the horses were reluctant to go out into it. For a week, the two soaked, sleepless, mud-covered armies moved across the Karoo. De Wet passed north through Strydenburg, past Hopetown, and reached the swollen Orange River, which was too high for him to cross. On the 23rd, after marching forty-five miles straight, Plumer encountered him again, capturing with little resistance a fifteen-pounder, a pom-pom, and nearly a hundred prisoners. Slipping away east, on February 24th, De Wet crossed the railroad again between Krankuil and Orange River Station, with Thorneycroft's column hot on his trail. The Boer leader was now more eager than ever to escape the Colony, darting around desperately trying to find a crossing over the turbulent river that separated him from his homeland. Here, he was joined by Hertzog's command, bringing several valuable spare horses. It’s also said that he managed to find remounts in the Hopetown area, which hadn't been cleared—a mistake for which, hopefully, someone has been held accountable. The Boer ponies, used to the rich grasses of the veld, struggled with the coarse Karoo, and had fallen into such poor shape that the pursuers should have had a tremendous advantage if it weren’t for bad luck and poor management allowing the invaders to regain their mobility just as Plumer's horses were collapsing under their riders.

The Boer force was now so scattered that, in spite of the advent of Hertzog, De Wet had fewer men with him than when he entered the Colony. Several hundreds had been taken prisoners, many had deserted, and a few had been killed. It was hoped now that the whole force might be captured, and Thorneycroft's, Crabbe's, Henniker's, and other columns were closing swiftly in upon him, while the swollen river still barred his retreat. There was a sudden drop in the flood, however; one ford became passable, and over it, upon the last day of February, De Wet and his bedraggled, dispirited commando escaped to their own country. There was still a sting in his tail, however; for upon that very day a portion of his force succeeded in capturing sixty and killing or wounding twenty of Colenbrander's new regiment, Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. On the other hand, De Wet was finally relieved upon the same day of all care upon the score of his guns, as the last of them was most gallantly captured by Captain Dallimore and fifteen Victorians, who at the same time brought in thirty-three Boer prisoners. The net result of De Wet's invasion was that he gained nothing, and that he lost about four thousand horses, all his guns, all his convoy, and some three hundred of his men.

The Boer force was now so scattered that, despite Hertzog's arrival, De Wet had fewer men with him than when he first entered the Colony. Several hundred had been captured, many had deserted, and a few had been killed. There was hope that the entire force could be captured, as Thorneycroft's, Crabbe's, Henniker's, and other columns moved in quickly on him, while the swollen river still blocked his escape. However, there was a sudden drop in the flood; one crossing became usable, and on the last day of February, De Wet and his tired, demoralized commando managed to escape back to their own territory. Nonetheless, there was still a sting left; on that very day, part of his force managed to capture sixty and kill or wound twenty of Colenbrander's new regiment, Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. On the other hand, De Wet was finally free from concern over his artillery, as the last of it was bravely captured by Captain Dallimore and fifteen Victorians, who also brought back thirty-three Boer prisoners. The overall result of De Wet's invasion was that he gained nothing and lost about four thousand horses, all his artillery, all his supplies, and around three hundred of his men.

Once safely in his own country again, the guerilla chief pursued his way northwards with his usual celerity and success. The moment that it was certain that De Wet had escaped, the indefatigable Plumer, wiry, tenacious man, had been sent off by train to Springfontein, while Bethune's column followed direct. This latter force crossed the Orange River bridge and marched upon Luckhoff and Fauresmith. At the latter town they overtook Plumer, who was again hard upon the heels of De Wet. Together they ran him across the Riet River and north to Petrusburg, until they gave it up as hopeless upon finding that, with only fifty followers, he had crossed the Modder River at Abram's Kraal. There they abandoned the chase and fell back upon Bloemfontein to refit and prepare for a fresh effort to run down their elusive enemy.

Once safely back in his own country, the guerrilla chief continued his journey northward with his usual speed and success. As soon as it became clear that De Wet had escaped, the tireless Plumer, a wiry and determined man, was sent by train to Springfontein, while Bethune's column followed directly behind. This latter force crossed the Orange River bridge and marched toward Luckhoff and Fauresmith. In Fauresmith, they caught up with Plumer, who was once again hot on De Wet's trail. Together, they chased him across the Riet River and north to Petrusburg until they eventually gave up, realizing that with only fifty followers, he had crossed the Modder River at Abram's Kraal. They then abandoned the pursuit and returned to Bloemfontein to regroup and prepare for another attempt to catch their elusive enemy.

While Plumer and Bethune were following upon the track of De Wet until he left them behind at the Modder, Lyttelton was using the numerous columns which were ready to his hand in effecting a drive up the south-eastern section of the Orange River Colony. It was disheartening to remember that all this large stretch of country had from April to November been as peaceful and almost as prosperous as Kent or Yorkshire. Now the intrusion of the guerilla bands, and the pressure put by them upon the farmers, had raised the whole country once again, and the work of pacification had to be set about once more, with harsher measures than before. A continuous barrier of barbed-wire fencing had been erected from Bloemfontein to the Basuto border, a distance of eighty miles, and this was now strongly held by British posts. From the south Bruce Hamilton, Hickman, Thorneycroft, and Haig swept upwards, stripping the country as they went in the same way that French had done in the Eastern Transvaal, while Pilcher's column waited to the north of the barbed-wire barrier. It was known that Fourie, with a considerable commando, was lurking in this district, but he and his men slipped at night between the British columns and escaped. Pilcher, Bethune, and Byng were able, however, to send in 200 prisoners and very great numbers of cattle. On April 10th Monro, with Bethune's Mounted Infantry, captured eighty fighting Boers near Dewetsdorp, and sixty more were taken by a night attack at Boschberg. There is no striking victory to record in these operations, but they were an important part of that process of attrition which was wearing the Boers out and helping to bring the war to an end. Terrible it is to see that barren countryside, and to think of the depths of misery to which the once flourishing and happy Orange Free State had fallen, through joining in a quarrel with a nation which bore it nothing but sincere friendship and goodwill. With nothing to gain and everything to lose, the part played by the Orange Free State in this South African drama is one of the most inconceivable things in history. Never has a nation so deliberately and so causelessly committed suicide.

While Plumer and Bethune were tracking De Wet until he left them behind at the Modder, Lyttelton was making use of the many columns available to him to push through the southeastern part of the Orange River Colony. It was discouraging to remember that this vast stretch of land had been as peaceful and almost as prosperous as Kent or Yorkshire from April to November. Now, the presence of guerrilla groups and the pressure they put on the farmers had stirred up the entire region once more, forcing the need for pacification to begin again, with harsher measures than before. A continuous barrier of barbed-wire fencing had been put up from Bloemfontein to the Basuto border, spanning eighty miles, and it was now strongly held by British posts. From the south, Bruce Hamilton, Hickman, Thorneycroft, and Haig moved northward, stripping the area as they went, just as French had done in the Eastern Transvaal, while Pilcher's column waited to the north of the barbed-wire barrier. It was known that Fourie, with a significant commando, was hiding in this area, but he and his men slipped through the gaps between the British columns at night and escaped. However, Pilcher, Bethune, and Byng managed to capture 200 prisoners along with a large number of cattle. On April 10th, Monro, accompanied by Bethune's Mounted Infantry, captured eighty fighting Boers near Dewetsdorp, and sixty more were taken in a night raid at Boschberg. There is no significant victory to report from these operations, but they were a crucial part of the attrition process that was exhausting the Boers and helping to bring the war to a close. It is heartbreaking to see that barren landscape and to think of the depths of misery to which the once thriving and happy Orange Free State had fallen for engaging in a conflict with a nation that offered it nothing but true friendship and goodwill. With nothing to gain and everything to lose, the role played by the Orange Free State in this South African narrative is one of the most baffling things in history. Never has a nation so deliberately and causelessly committed suicide.





CHAPTER 33. THE NORTHERN OPERATIONS FROM JANUARY TO APRIL, 1901.

Three consecutive chapters have now given some account of the campaign of De Wet, of the operations in the Transvaal up to the end of the year 1900, and of the invasion of Cape Colony up to April 1901. The present chapter will deal with the events in the Transvaal from the beginning of the new century. The military operations in that country, though extending over a very large area, may be roughly divided into two categories: the attacks by the Boers upon British posts, and the aggressive sweeping movements of British columns. Under the first heading come the attacks on Belfast, on Zuurfontein, on Kaalfontein, on Zeerust, on Modderfontein, and on Lichtenburg, besides many minor affairs. The latter comprises the operations of Babington and of Cunningham to the west and south-west of Pretoria, those of Methuen still further to the south-west, and the large movement of French in the south-east. In no direction did the British forces in the field meet with much active resistance. So long as they moved the gnats did not settle; it was only when quiet that they buzzed about and occasionally stung.

Three consecutive chapters have now provided an account of De Wet's campaign, the operations in the Transvaal up to the end of 1900, and the invasion of Cape Colony up to April 1901. This chapter will focus on the events in the Transvaal from the start of the new century. The military operations in that area, while covering a very large space, can be roughly divided into two categories: the attacks by the Boers on British posts and the aggressive sweeping movements of British forces. The first category includes the attacks on Belfast, Zuurfontein, Kaalfontein, Zeerust, Modderfontein, and Lichtenburg, along with many smaller skirmishes. The second category consists of the operations led by Babington and Cunningham to the west and southwest of Pretoria, those of Methuen even further southwest, and the large movement by French in the southeast. In no direction did the British forces face much active resistance. As long as they were on the move, the gnats didn't settle; it was only when they were still that they buzzed around and occasionally stung.

The early days of January 1901 were not fortunate for the British arms, as the check in which Kitchener's Bodyguard was so roughly handled, near Lindley, was closely followed by a brisk action at Naauwpoort or Zandfontein, near the Magaliesberg, in which De la Rey left his mark upon the Imperial Light Horse. The Boer commandos, having been driven into the mountains by French and Clements in the latter part of December, were still on the look-out to strike a blow at any British force which might expose itself. Several mounted columns had been formed to scour the country, one under Kekewich, one under Gordon, and one under Babington. The two latter, meeting in a mist upon the morning of January 5th, actually turned their rifles upon each other, but fortunately without any casualties resulting. A more deadly rencontre was, however, awaiting them.

The early days of January 1901 weren’t great for the British forces, as the setback Kitchener's Bodyguard faced near Lindley was quickly followed by a fierce battle at Naauwpoort or Zandfontein, close to the Magaliesberg, where De la Rey made a significant impact on the Imperial Light Horse. The Boer commandos, having been pushed into the mountains by French and Clements in late December, were still eager to strike at any British unit that might reveal itself. Several mounted columns were organized to patrol the area, one led by Kekewich, another by Gordon, and another by Babington. The latter two encountered each other in a mist on the morning of January 5th and almost fired on one another, fortunately without causing any injuries. However, a much more deadly encounter was waiting for them.

A force of Boers were observed, as the mist cleared, making for a ridge which would command the road along which the convoy and guns were moving. Two squadrons (B and C) of the Light Horse were instantly detached to seize the point. They do not appear to have realised that they were in the immediate presence of the enemy, and they imagined that the ground over which they were passing had been already reconnoitred by a troop of the 14th Hussars. It is true that four scouts were thrown forward, but as both squadrons were cantering there was no time for these to get ahead. Presently C squadron, which was behind, was ordered to close up upon the left of B squadron, and the 150 horsemen in one long line swept over a low grassy ridge. Some hundreds of De la Rey's men were lying in the long grass upon the further side, and their first volley, fired at a fifty-yard range, emptied a score of saddles. It would have been wiser, if less gallant, to retire at once in the presence of a numerous and invisible enemy, but the survivors were ordered to dismount and return the fire. This was done, but the hail of bullets was terrific and the casualties were numerous. Captain Norman, of C squadron, then retired his men, who withdrew in good order. B squadron having lost Yockney, its brave leader, heard no order, so they held their ground until few of them had escaped the driving sleet of lead. Many of the men were struck three and four times. There was no surrender, and the extermination of B company added another laurel, even at a moment of defeat, to the regiment whose reputation was so grimly upheld. The Boer victors walked in among the litter of stricken men and horses. 'Practically all of them were dressed in khaki and had the water-bottles and haversacks of our soldiers. One of them snatched a bayonet from a dead man, and was about to despatch one of our wounded when he was stopped in the nick of time by a man in a black suit, who, I afterwards heard, was De la Rey himself...The feature of the action was the incomparable heroism of our dear old Colonel Wools-Sampson.' So wrote a survivor of B company, himself shot through the body. It was four hours before a fresh British advance reoccupied the ridge, and by that time the Boers had disappeared. Some seventy killed and wounded, many of them terribly mutilated, were found on the scene of the disaster. It is certainly a singular coincidence that at distant points of the seat of war two of the crack irregular corps should have suffered so severely within three days of each other. In each case, however, their prestige was enhanced rather than lowered by the result. These incidents tend, however, to shake the belief that scouting is better performed in the Colonial than in the regular forces.

A group of Boers was spotted as the mist cleared, heading towards a ridge that would overlook the road the convoy and artillery were traveling on. Two squadrons (B and C) of the Light Horse were quickly sent to take control of the location. They didn’t seem to realize they were very close to the enemy and thought that a troop of the 14th Hussars had already checked out the area they were passing through. While four scouts were sent ahead, both squadrons were cantering, leaving no time for them to get far in front. Soon, C squadron, which was lagging behind, was ordered to catch up on the left side of B squadron, and the 150 horsemen formed a long line as they moved over a low grassy ridge. Several hundred of De la Rey's men were hidden in the tall grass on the other side, and their first volley, fired from fifty yards away, knocked a number of riders off their horses. It would have been smarter, though less heroic, to retreat immediately in front of a large and hidden enemy, but the surviving soldiers were ordered to dismount and return fire. They complied, but the barrage of bullets was overwhelming, leading to heavy casualties. Captain Norman of C squadron then pulled his men back in an orderly fashion. B squadron, having lost their brave leader Yockney, didn’t hear any orders and stayed put until only a few managed to escape the storm of gunfire. Many of the men were hit three or four times. They did not surrender, and the destruction of B company added another honor, even in defeat, to the regiment's grim reputation. The victorious Boers moved among the fallen men and horses. "Almost all of them were dressed in khaki and had the water bottles and haversacks of our soldiers. One of them grabbed a bayonet from a dead man and was about to finish off one of our wounded when he was stopped just in time by a man in a black suit, who I later learned was De la Rey himself...The highlight of the action was the unmatched bravery of our beloved Colonel Wools-Sampson." This was written by a survivor from B company, who had been shot through the body. It took four hours for a new British advance to reclaim the ridge, by which time the Boers had vanished. About seventy killed and wounded, many of them badly injured, were found at the site of the disaster. It’s quite the coincidence that at different locations in the war zone two of the top irregular units suffered so badly within three days of each other. In both cases, however, their reputation was improved rather than diminished by the outcome. These events do, however, challenge the belief that scouting is better done by colonial forces than by regular ones.

Of the Boer attacks upon British posts to which allusion has been made, that upon Belfast, in the early morning of January 7th, appears to have been very gallantly and even desperately pushed. On the same date a number of smaller attacks, which may have been meant simply as diversions, were made upon Wonderfontein, Nooitgedacht, Wildfontein, Pan, Dalmanutha, and Machadodorp. These seven separate attacks, occurring simultaneously over sixty miles, show that the Boer forces were still organised and under one effective control. The general object of the operations was undoubtedly to cut Lord Roberts's communications upon that side and to destroy a considerable section of the railway.

Of the Boer attacks on British posts that have been mentioned, the one on Belfast in the early morning of January 7th seems to have been carried out with great bravery and even desperation. On the same day, several smaller attacks, likely intended as distractions, occurred at Wonderfontein, Nooitgedacht, Wildfontein, Pan, Dalmanutha, and Machadodorp. These seven separate attacks, happening simultaneously over a distance of sixty miles, indicate that the Boer forces were still organized and effectively coordinated. The main goal of these operations was clearly to disrupt Lord Roberts's communications on that side and to damage a significant portion of the railway.

The town of Belfast was strongly held by Smith-Dorrien, with 1750 men, of which 1300 were infantry belonging to the Royal Irish, the Shropshires, and the Gordons. The perimeter of defence, however, was fifteen miles, and each little fort too far from its neighbour for mutual support, though connected with headquarters by telephone. It is probable that the leaders and burghers engaged in this very gallant attack were in part the same as those concerned in the successful attempt at Helvetia upon December 29th, for the assault was delivered in the same way, at the same hour, and apparently with the same primary object. This was to gain possession of the big 5-inch gun, which is as helpless by night as it is formidable by day. At Helvetia they attained their object and even succeeded not merely in destroying, but in removing their gigantic trophy. At Belfast they would have performed the same feat had it not been for the foresight of General Smith-Dorrien, who had the heavy gun trundled back into the town every night.

The town of Belfast was strongly held by Smith-Dorrien, who had 1,750 men, including 1,300 infantry from the Royal Irish, the Shropshires, and the Gordons. However, the defensive perimeter was fifteen miles long, and each small fort was too far from its neighbor for mutual support, although they were connected to headquarters by telephone. It's likely that the leaders and townspeople involved in this brave attack were partly the same as those who participated in the successful effort at Helvetia on December 29th, because the assault was carried out in the same way, at the same hour, and seemingly with the same main goal. This goal was to take control of the large 5-inch gun, which is as defenseless at night as it is powerful during the day. At Helvetia, they achieved their objective and even managed not just to destroy it but to take away their massive prize. At Belfast, they would have accomplished the same thing if it hadn't been for General Smith-Dorrien's foresight, which led him to have the heavy gun rolled back into the town every night.

The attack broke first upon Monument Hill, a post held by Captain Fosbery with eighty-three Royal Irish. Chance or treason guided the Boers to the weak point of the wire entanglement and they surged into the fort, where the garrison fought desperately to hold its own. There was thick mist and driving rain; and the rush of vague and shadowy figures amid the gloom was the first warning of the onslaught. The Irishmen were overborne by a swarm of assailants, but they nobly upheld their traditional reputation. Fosbery met his death like a gallant gentleman, but not more heroically than Barry, the humble private, who, surrounded by Boers, thought neither of himself nor of them, but smashed at the maxim gun with a pickaxe until he fell riddled with bullets. Half the garrison were on the ground before the post was carried.

The attack first hit Monument Hill, which was held by Captain Fosbery and eighty-three Royal Irish soldiers. Whether by chance or betrayal, the Boers found the weak spot in the barbed wire and rushed into the fort, where the garrison fought hard to defend their position. The thick mist and pouring rain created a gloomy environment, and the sight of vague, shadowy figures was the first warning of the assault. The Irishmen were overwhelmed by a swarm of attackers, but they bravely upheld their legendary reputation. Fosbery died like a true gentleman, but not more heroically than Barry, the humble private, who, surrounded by Boers, thought only of fighting and smashed at the Maxim gun with a pickaxe until he was shot down. Half the garrison was down before the post was taken.

A second post upon the other side of the town was defended by Lieutenant Marshall with twenty men, mostly Shropshires. For an hour they held out until Marshall and nine out of his twelve Shropshires had been hit. Then this post also was carried.

A second post on the other side of town was defended by Lieutenant Marshall with twenty men, mostly from Shropshire. They held out for an hour until Marshall and nine of his twelve Shropshire soldiers had been hit. Then this post was also taken.

The Gordon Highlanders held two posts to the southeast and to the south-west of the town, and these also were vigorously attacked. Here, however, the advance spent itself without result. In vain the Ermelo and Carolina commandos stormed up to the Gordon pickets. They were blown back by the steady fire of the infantry. One small post manned by twelve Highlanders was taken, but the rest defied all attack. Seeing therefore that his attempt at a coup-de-main was a failure, Viljoen withdrew his men before daybreak. The Boer casualties have not been ascertained, but twenty-four of their dead were actually picked up within the British lines. The British lost sixty killed and wounded, while about as many were taken prisoners. Altogether the action was a brisk and a gallant one, of which neither side has cause to be ashamed. The simultaneous attacks upon six other stations were none of them pressed home, and were demonstrations rather than assaults.

The Gordon Highlanders held two positions to the southeast and southwest of the town, and these were also fiercely attacked. However, the advance faltered without achieving anything. The Ermelo and Carolina commandos charged towards the Gordon pickets, but they were pushed back by the steady fire from the infantry. A small post manned by twelve Highlanders was captured, but the rest successfully resisted all attempts. Realizing that his surprise attack had failed, Viljoen pulled his men back before dawn. The Boer casualties haven't been confirmed, but twenty-four of their dead were found within the British lines. The British lost sixty killed and injured, while about the same number were taken prisoner. Overall, the action was lively and brave, with neither side having reason to feel ashamed. The simultaneous attacks on six other positions were not pressed hard and were more demonstrations than actual assaults.

The attempts upon Kaalfontein and on Zuurfontein were both made in the early morning of January 12th. These two places are small stations upon the line between Johannesburg and Pretoria. It is clear that the Boers were very certain of their own superior mobility before they ventured to intrude into the very heart of the British position, and the result showed that they were right in supposing that even if their attempt were repulsed, they would still be able to make good their escape. Better horsed, better riders, with better intelligence and a better knowledge of the country, their ventures were always attended by a limited liability.

The attacks on Kaalfontein and Zuurfontein both happened early in the morning on January 12th. These two locations are small stations on the route between Johannesburg and Pretoria. It's clear that the Boers were very confident in their superior mobility before they decided to intrude into the heart of the British position, and the outcome proved that they were right in thinking that even if their attempt was repelled, they would still be able to escape successfully. With better horses, better riders, and better local knowledge, their efforts always came with limited risk.

The attacks seem to have been delivered by a strong commando, said to have been under the command of Beyers, upon its way to join the Boer concentration in the Eastern Transvaal. They had not the satisfaction, however, of carrying the garrison of a British post with them, for at each point they were met by a stout resistance and beaten off. Kaalfontein was garrisoned by 120 men of Cheshire under Williams-Freeman, Zuurfontein by as many Norfolks and a small body of Lincolns under Cordeaux and Atkinson. For six hours the pressure was considerable, the assailants of Kaalfontein keeping up a brisk shell and rifle fire, while those of Zuurfontein were without artillery. At the end of that time two armoured trains came up with reinforcements and the enemy continued his trek to the eastward. Knox 's 2nd cavalry brigade followed them up, but without any very marked result.

The attacks appeared to be carried out by a strong commando, reportedly under the command of Beyers, on its way to join the Boer concentration in Eastern Transvaal. However, they didn’t have the satisfaction of bringing back the garrison of a British post, as they faced solid resistance at every point and were pushed back. Kaalfontein was held by 120 men from Cheshire under Williams-Freeman, while Zuurfontein was defended by about the same number of Norfolks along with a small group of Lincolns under Cordeaux and Atkinson. For six hours, the pressure was intense, with the Kaalfontein attackers launching a steady shell and rifle fire, while those at Zuurfontein had no artillery support. After that time, two armored trains arrived with reinforcements, and the enemy continued their trek eastward. Knox's 2nd cavalry brigade pursued them, but without any significant outcome.

Zeerust and Lichtenburg had each been garrisoned and provisioned by Lord Methuen before he carried his column away to the south-west, where much rough and useful work awaited him. The two towns were at once invested by the enemy, who made an attack upon each of them. That upon Zeerust, on January 7th, was a small matter and easily repulsed. A more formidable one was made on Lichtenburg, on March 3rd. The attack was delivered by De la Rey, Smuts, and Celliers, with 1500 men, who galloped up to the pickets in the early morning. The defenders were 600 in number, consisting of Paget's Horse and three companies of the 1st battalion of the Northumberland Fusiliers, a veteran regiment with a long record of foreign service, not to be confused with that 2nd battalion which was so severely handled upon several occasions. It was well that it was so, for less sturdy material might have been overborne by the vigour of the attack. As it was, the garrison were driven to their last trench, but held out under a very heavy fire all day, and next morning the Boers abandoned the attack. Their losses appear to have been over fifty in number, and included Commandant Celliers, who was badly wounded and afterwards taken prisoner at Warm Baths. The brave garrison lost fourteen killed, including two officers of the Northumberlands, and twenty wounded.

Zeerust and Lichtenburg had both been stocked with supplies and troops by Lord Methuen before he moved his forces southwest, where a lot of tough and important work awaited him. The enemy quickly surrounded the two towns and launched attacks on each of them. The assault on Zeerust on January 7th was minor and easily pushed back. A more serious attack occurred at Lichtenburg on March 3rd. This attack, led by De la Rey, Smuts, and Celliers with 1,500 men, rushed the pickets early in the morning. The defenders numbered 600 and included Paget's Horse and three companies from the 1st battalion of the Northumberland Fusiliers, a seasoned regiment with a long history of service abroad, not to be confused with the 2nd battalion, which had faced severe setbacks on several occasions. Thankfully, it was this strong unit defending, as less resolute troops might have been overwhelmed by the intensity of the assault. The garrison was pushed back to their final trench but managed to hold their ground under heavy fire all day, and by the next morning, the Boers withdrew. Their losses were reported to be over fifty, including Commandant Celliers, who was severely wounded and later captured at Warm Baths. The brave garrison suffered fourteen killed, including two officers from the Northumberlands, and twenty wounded.

In each of these instances the attacks by the Boers upon British posts had ended in a repulse to themselves. They were more fortunate, however, in their attempt upon Modderfontein on the Gatsrand at the end of January. The post was held by 200 of the South Wales Borderers, reinforced by the 59th Imperial Yeomanry, who had come in as escort to a convoy from Krugersdorp. The attack, which lasted all day, was carried out by a commando of 2000 Boers under Smuts, who rushed the position upon the following morning. As usual, the Boers, who were unable to retain their prisoners, had little to show for their success. The British casualties, however, were between thirty and forty, mostly wounded.

In all these cases, the Boer attacks on British outposts ended in failure for them. However, they had better luck with their attempt on Modderfontein on the Gatsrand at the end of January. The post was defended by 200 members of the South Wales Borderers, supported by the 59th Imperial Yeomanry, who had arrived as an escort for a convoy from Krugersdorp. The attack, which went on all day, was executed by a commando of 2,000 Boers led by Smuts, who charged the position the following morning. As was typical, the Boers, unable to hold onto their captives, had little to show for their success. On the British side, however, casualties were between thirty and forty, mostly injuries.

On January 22nd General Cunninghame left Oliphant's Nek with a small force consisting of the Border and Worcester Regiments, the 6th Mounted Infantry, Kitchener's Horse, 7th Imperial Yeomanry, 8th R.F.A., and P battery R.H.A. It had instructions to move south upon the enemy known to be gathering there. By midday this force was warmly engaged, and found itself surrounded by considerable bodies of De la Rey's burghers. That night they camped at Middelfontein, and were strongly attacked in the early morning. So menacing was the Boer attitude, and so formidable the position, that the force was in some danger. Fortunately they were in heliographic communication with Oliphant's Nek, and learned upon the 23rd that Babington had been ordered to their relief. All day Cunninghame's men were under a long-range fire, but on the 24th Babington appeared, and the British force was successfully extricated, having seventy-five casualties. This action of Middelfontein is interesting as having been begun in Queen Victoria's reign, and ended in that of Edward VII.

On January 22nd, General Cunninghame left Oliphant's Nek with a small force made up of the Border and Worcester Regiments, the 6th Mounted Infantry, Kitchener's Horse, 7th Imperial Yeomanry, 8th R.F.A., and P battery R.H.A. They were instructed to move south against the enemy known to be gathering there. By midday, this force was heavily engaged and found itself surrounded by significant numbers of De la Rey's burghers. That night, they camped at Middelfontein and were strongly attacked early the next morning. The Boer threat was serious, and the position was quite dangerous for the force. Luckily, they had heliographic communication with Oliphant's Nek and learned on the 23rd that Babington had been ordered to come to their aid. Throughout the day, Cunninghame's men were under long-range fire, but on the 24th, Babington arrived, successfully extracting the British force with seventy-five casualties. This action at Middelfontein is notable for starting in Queen Victoria's reign and finishing in that of Edward VII.

Cunninghame's force moved on to Krugersdorp, and there, having heard of the fall of the Modderfontein post as already described, a part of his command moved out to the Gatsrand in pursuit of Smuts. It was found, however, that the Boers had taken up a strong defensive position, and the British were not numerous enough to push the attack. On February 3rd Cunninghame endeavoured to outflank the enemy with his small cavalry force while pushing his infantry up in front, but in neither attempt did he succeed, the cavalry failing to find the flank, while the infantry were met with a fire which made further advance impossible. One company of the Border Regiment found itself in such a position that the greater part of it was killed, wounded, or taken. This check constituted the action of Modderfontein. On the 4th, however, Cunningham, assisted by some of the South African Constabulary, made his way round the flank, and dislodged the enemy, who retreated to the south. A few days later some of Smuts's men made an attempt upon the railway near Bank, but were driven off with twenty-six casualties. It was after this that Smuts moved west and joined De la Rey's commando to make the attack already described upon Lichtenburg. These six attempts represent the chief aggressive movements which the Boers made against British posts in the Transvaal during these months. Attacks upon trains were still common, and every variety of sniping appears to have been rife, from the legitimate ambuscade to something little removed from murder.

Cunninghame's force marched on to Krugersdorp. There, after hearing about the fall of the Modderfontein post, part of his command headed to the Gatsrand to pursue Smuts. However, it turned out that the Boers had taken up a strong defensive position, and the British troops were not numerous enough to mount an effective attack. On February 3rd, Cunninghame tried to outflank the enemy with his small cavalry force while pushing his infantry forward, but neither attempt was successful; the cavalry couldn't locate the flank, and the infantry faced heavy fire that made further advancement impossible. One company of the Border Regiment found itself in a position where most of its members were killed, wounded, or captured. This setback marked the action of Modderfontein. On the 4th, however, Cunningham, with help from some of the South African Constabulary, managed to maneuver around the flank and pushed the enemy back, forcing them to retreat southward. A few days later, some of Smuts's men tried to attack the railway near Bank but were repelled with twenty-six casualties. After this, Smuts moved west and joined De la Rey's commando to carry out the attack already mentioned on Lichtenburg. These six attempts represent the main aggressive actions the Boers took against British posts in the Transvaal during these months. Attacks on trains were still common, and a wide range of sniping incidents occurred, ranging from legitimate ambushes to actions that were nearly outright murder.

It has been described in a previous chapter how Lord Kitchener made an offer to the burghers which amounted to an amnesty, and how a number of those Boers who had come under the influence of the British formed themselves into peace committees, and endeavoured to convey to the fighting commandos some information as to the hopelessness of the struggle, and the lenient mood of the British. Unfortunately these well-meant offers appear to have been mistaken for signs of weakness by the Boer leaders, and encouraged them to harden their hearts. Of the delegates who conveyed the terms to their fellow countrymen two at least were shot, several were condemned to death, and few returned without ill-usage. In no case did they bear back a favourable answer. The only result of the proclamation was to burden the British resources by an enormous crowd of women and children who were kept and fed in refugee camps, while their fathers and husbands continued in most cases to fight.

It was explained in a previous chapter how Lord Kitchener made an offer to the burghers that amounted to an amnesty, and how some of the Boers influenced by the British formed peace committees to share information with the fighting commandos about the hopelessness of their struggle and the lenient attitude of the British. Unfortunately, these well-intentioned offers seemed to be interpreted as signs of weakness by the Boer leaders, which discouraged them from softening their stance. Of the delegates who communicated the terms to their fellow countrymen, at least two were shot, several were sentenced to death, and few returned without being mistreated. None of them came back with a positive response. The only outcome of the proclamation was to strain British resources with a large number of women and children who were housed and fed in refugee camps while their fathers and husbands continued to fight in most cases.

This allusion to the peace movement among the burghers may serve as an introduction to the attempt made by Lord Kitchener, at the end of February 1901, to bring the war to a close by negotiation. Throughout its course the fortitude of Great Britain and of the Empire had never for an instant weakened, but her conscience had always been sensitive at the sight of the ruin which had befallen so large a portion of South Africa, and any settlement would have been eagerly hailed which would insure that the work done had not been wasted, and would not need to be done again. A peace on any other terms would simply shift upon the shoulders of our descendants those burdens which we were not manly enough to bear ourselves. There had arisen, as has been said, a considerable peace movement among the burghers of the refugee camps and also among the prisoners of war. It was hoped that some reflection of this might be found among the leaders of the people. To find out if this were so Lord Kitchener, at the end of February, sent a verbal message to Louis Botha, and on the 27th of that month the Boer general rode with an escort of Hussars into Middelburg. 'Sunburned, with a pleasant, fattish face of a German type, and wearing an imperial,' says one who rode beside him. Judging from the sounds of mirth heard by those without, the two leaders seem to have soon got upon amiable terms, and there was hope that a definite settlement might spring from their interview. From the beginning Lord Kitchener explained that the continued independence of the two republics was an impossibility. But on every other point the British Government was prepared to go great lengths in order to satisfy and conciliate the burghers.

This reference to the peace movement among the townspeople serves as an introduction to Lord Kitchener's attempt at the end of February 1901 to end the war through negotiation. Throughout the conflict, Britain's and the Empire's resilience never faltered, but there was always a strong awareness of the devastation experienced by so much of South Africa. Any agreement that would ensure that the efforts put forth had not been in vain, and would not need to be repeated, would have been welcomed. A peace that didn't offer such assurance would simply pass on the difficulties we were unwilling to face ourselves to future generations. As mentioned, a notable peace movement had developed among the townspeople in the refugee camps and also among the prisoners of war. There was hope that this sentiment could be reflected among the community leaders. To explore this possibility, Lord Kitchener sent a verbal message to Louis Botha at the end of February, and on the 27th of that month, the Boer general arrived in Middelburg with a Hussar escort. "Sunburned, with a friendly, slightly overweight German-like face, and dressed in an imperial," said someone who rode alongside him. Based on the laughter coming from outside, it seemed that the two leaders quickly found common ground, fostering hope that their meeting might lead to a solid agreement. From the start, Lord Kitchener made it clear that the continued independence of the two republics was not feasible. However, on all other issues, the British Government was willing to make significant concessions to appease and win over the burghers.

On March 7th Lord Kitchener wrote to Botha from Pretoria, recapitulating the points which he had advanced. The terms offered were certainly as far as, and indeed rather further than, the general sentiment of the Empire would have gone. If the Boers laid down their arms there was to be a complete amnesty, which was apparently to extend to rebels also so long as they did not return to Cape Colony or Natal. Self-government was promised after a necessary interval, during which the two States should be administered as Crown colonies. Law courts should be independent of the Executive from the beginning, and both languages be official. A million pounds of compensation would be paid to the burghers—a most remarkable example of a war indemnity being paid by the victors. Loans were promised to the farmers to restart them in business, and a pledge was made that farms should not be taxed. The Kaffirs were not to have the franchise, but were to have the protection of law. Such were the generous terms offered by the British Government. Public opinion at home, strongly supported by that of the colonies, and especially of the army, felt that the extreme step had been taken in the direction of conciliation, and that to do more would seem not to offer peace, but to implore it. Unfortunately, however, the one thing which the British could not offer was the one thing which the Boers would insist upon having, and the leniency of the proposals in all other directions may have suggested weakness to their minds. On March 15th an answer was returned by General Botha to the effect that nothing short of total independence would satisfy them, and the negotiations were accordingly broken off.

On March 7th, Lord Kitchener wrote to Botha from Pretoria, summarizing the points he had raised. The terms offered were certainly as far as, and even further than, the general sentiment of the Empire would have allowed. If the Boers laid down their arms, there would be complete amnesty, which would apparently extend to rebels as long as they didn't return to Cape Colony or Natal. Self-government was promised after a necessary period, during which the two States would be run as Crown colonies. Courts would be independent of the Executive from the start, and both languages would be official. A million pounds in compensation would be paid to the burghers—a really remarkable instance of a war indemnity being paid by the victors. Loans were promised to farmers to help them restart their businesses, and a commitment was made that farms would not be taxed. The Kaffirs would not get the franchise, but they would receive the protection of the law. These were the generous terms offered by the British Government. Public opinion back home, strongly supported by that of the colonies, especially the army, felt that a major step had been taken toward conciliation, and that doing more would seem not to offer peace but to beg for it. Unfortunately, however, the one thing that the British could not provide was the very thing the Boers insisted upon having, and the leniency of the proposals in other respects may have come off as weakness to them. On March 15th, General Botha replied, stating that nothing short of total independence would satisfy them, and the negotiations were thus called off.

There was a disposition, however, upon the Boer side to renew them, and upon May 10th General Botha applied to Lord Kitchener for permission to cable to President Kruger, and to take his advice as to the making of peace. The stern old man at The Hague was still, however, in an unbending mood. His reply was to the effect that there were great hopes of a successful issue of the war, and that he had taken steps to make proper provision for the Boer prisoners and for the refugee women. These steps, and very efficient ones too, were to leave them entirely to the generosity of that Government which he was so fond of reviling.

There was, however, a willingness on the Boer side to renew talks, and on May 10th, General Botha asked Lord Kitchener for permission to send a cable to President Kruger to get his advice on making peace. The stern old man in The Hague, however, remained inflexible. His response indicated that he had great hopes for a successful outcome of the war and that he had taken steps to properly care for the Boer prisoners and the refugee women. These actions, which were quite effective, relied entirely on the generosity of the government he often criticized.

On the same day upon which Botha applied for leave to use the British cable, a letter was written by Reitz, State Secretary of the Transvaal, to Steyn, in which the desperate condition of the Boers was clearly set forth. This document explained that the burghers were continually surrendering, that the ammunition was nearly exhausted, the food running low, and the nation in danger of extinction. 'The time has come to take the final step,' said the Secretary of State. Steyn wrote back a reply in which, like his brother president, he showed a dour resolution to continue the struggle, prompted by a fatalist conviction that some outside interference would reverse the result of his appeal to arms. His attitude and that of Kruger determined the Boer leaders to hold out for a few more months, a resolution which may have been injudicious, but was certainly heroic. 'It's a fight to a finish this time,' said the two combatants in the 'Punch' cartoon which marked the beginning of the war. It was indeed so, as far as the Boers were concerned. As the victors we can afford to acknowledge that no nation in history has ever made a more desperate and prolonged resistance against a vastly superior antagonist. A Briton may well pray that his own people may be as staunch when their hour of adversity comes round.

On the same day that Botha applied for permission to use the British cable, Reitz, the State Secretary of the Transvaal, wrote a letter to Steyn outlining the desperate situation of the Boers. This document explained that the burghers were continuously surrendering, ammunition was nearly depleted, food supplies were low, and the nation was at risk of extinction. "The time has come to take the final step," said the Secretary of State. Steyn responded with a letter in which, like his fellow president, he expressed a grim determination to continue the fight, driven by a belief that some outside intervention would change the outcome of his military efforts. His and Kruger’s resolve led the Boer leaders to hold out for a few more months, a decision that may have been unwise but was undoubtedly heroic. "It's a fight to a finish this time," said the two fighters in the 'Punch' cartoon that marked the beginning of the war. And it was indeed so, at least for the Boers. As victors, we can acknowledge that no nation in history has ever shown such desperate and prolonged resistance against a vastly superior opponent. A Briton might wish that his own people would be just as steadfast when their time of hardship arises.

The British position at this stage of the war was strengthened by a greater centralisation. Garrisons of outlying towns were withdrawn so that fewer convoys became necessary. The population was removed also and placed near the railway lines, where they could be more easily fed. In this way the scene of action was cleared and the Boer and British forces left face to face. Convinced of the failure of the peace policy, and morally strengthened by having tried it, Lord Kitchener set himself to finish the war by a series of vigorous operations which should sweep the country from end to end. For this purpose mounted troops were essential, and an appeal from him for reinforcements was most nobly answered. Five thousand horsemen were despatched from the colonies, and twenty thousand cavalry, mounted infantry, and Yeomanry were sent from home. Ten thousand mounted men had already been raised in Great Britain, South Africa, and Canada for the Constabulary force which was being organised by Baden-Powell. Altogether the reinforcements of horsemen amounted to more than thirty-five thousand men, all of whom had arrived in South Africa before the end of April. With the remains of his old regiments Lord Kitchener had under him at this final period of the war between fifty and sixty thousand cavalry—such a force as no British General in his happiest dream had ever thought of commanding, and no British war minister in his darkest nightmare had ever imagined himself called upon to supply.

The British position at this stage of the war was strengthened by greater centralization. Garrisons in remote towns were pulled back, reducing the need for convoys. The population was relocated closer to the railway lines, where food was easier to deliver. This cleared the battlefield, leaving the Boer and British forces face to face. After realizing the peace policy had failed and feeling morally strengthened by the attempt, Lord Kitchener set out to end the war with a series of strong operations that would cover the country from one end to the other. For this, mounted troops were essential, and his request for reinforcements was answered generously. Five thousand horsemen were sent from the colonies, along with twenty thousand cavalry, mounted infantry, and Yeomanry from home. Ten thousand mounted men had already been raised in Great Britain, South Africa, and Canada for the Constabulary force that Baden-Powell was organizing. In total, the reinforcements added up to more than thirty-five thousand men, all of whom arrived in South Africa before the end of April. With the remains of his old regiments, Lord Kitchener commanded between fifty and sixty thousand cavalry during this final phase of the war—a force no British General in their wildest dreams had ever expected to lead, and no British war minister in their darkest nightmares had ever thought they would need to supply.

Long before his reinforcements had come to hand, while his Yeomanry was still gathering in long queues upon the London pavement to wait their turn at the recruiting office, Lord Kitchener had dealt the enemy several shrewd blows which materially weakened their resources in men and material. The chief of these was the great drive down the Eastern Transvaal undertaken by seven columns under the command of French. Before considering this, however, a few words must be devoted to the doings of Methuen in the south-west.

Long before his reinforcements arrived, while his Yeomanry was still lining up on the London sidewalk to wait for their chance at the recruiting office, Lord Kitchener had struck the enemy with several smart blows that significantly weakened their manpower and resources. The main action was the major offensive in the Eastern Transvaal led by seven columns under French’s command. Before discussing this, though, a few words should be given to Methuen's activities in the southwest.

This hard-working General, having garrisoned Zeerust and Lichtenburg, had left his old district and journeyed with a force which consisted largely of Bushmen and Yeomanry to the disturbed parts of Bechuanaland which had been invaded by De Villiers. Here he cleared the country as far as Vryburg, which he had reached in the middle of January, working round to Kuruman and thence to Taungs. From Taungs his force crossed the Transvaal border and made for Klerksdorp, working through an area which had never been traversed and which contained the difficult Masakani hills. He left Taungs upon February 2nd, fighting skirmishes at Uitval's Kop, Paardefontein and Lilliefontein, in each of which the enemy was brushed aside. Passing through Wolmaranstad, Methuen turned to the north, where at Haartebeestefontein, on February 19th, he fought a brisk engagement with a considerable force of Boers under De Villiers and Liebenberg. On the day before the fight he successfully outwitted the Boers, for, learning that they had left their laager in order to take up a position for battle, he pounced upon the laager and captured 10,000 head of cattle, forty-three wagons, and forty prisoners. Stimulated by this success, he attacked the Boers next day, and after five hours of hard fighting forced the pass which they were holding against him. As Methuen had but 1500 men, and was attacking a force which was as large as his own in a formidable position, the success was a very creditable one. The Yeomanry all did well, especially the 5th and 10th battalions. So also did the Australians and the Loyal North Lancashires. The British casualties amounted to sixteen killed and thirty-four wounded, while the Boers left eighteen of their dead upon the position which they had abandoned. Lord Methuen's little force returned to Klerksdorp, having deserved right well of their country. From Klerksdorp Methuen struck back westwards to the south of his former route, and on March 14th he was reported at Warrenton. Here also in April came Erroll's small column, bringing with it the garrison and inhabitants of Hoopstad, a post which it had been determined, in accordance with Lord Kitchener's policy of centralisation, to abandon.

This hardworking General, after securing Zeerust and Lichtenburg, had left his previous district and traveled with a force mostly made up of Bushmen and Yeomanry to the troubled areas of Bechuanaland that had been invaded by De Villiers. He cleared the region up to Vryburg, which he reached in mid-January, then moved towards Kuruman and on to Taungs. From Taungs, his force crossed the Transvaal border and headed for Klerksdorp, navigating through an area that had never been crossed before and included the challenging Masakani hills. He left Taungs on February 2nd, engaging in skirmishes at Uitval's Kop, Paardefontein, and Lilliefontein, where the enemy was easily pushed aside. After passing through Wolmaranstad, Methuen turned north, where on February 19th at Haartebeestefontein, he fought a lively battle against a significant force of Boers led by De Villiers and Liebenberg. The day before the battle, he cleverly outsmarted the Boers; upon learning they had left their encampment to prepare for battle, he seized the opportunity to attack their camp and captured 10,000 cattle, forty-three wagons, and forty prisoners. Motivated by this victory, he engaged the Boers the next day, and after five hours of intense fighting, he broke through the pass they were holding. With only 1,500 men, attacking a force of equal size in a strong position made this success very commendable. The Yeomanry performed well, particularly the 5th and 10th battalions, as did the Australians and the Loyal North Lancashires. British casualties were sixteen killed and thirty-four wounded, while the Boers left eighteen dead at the position they abandoned. Lord Methuen's small force returned to Klerksdorp, deserving great credit from their country. From Klerksdorp, Methuen moved back westward, south of his previous route, and on March 14th, he was reported at Warrenton. In April, Erroll's small column also arrived here, bringing the garrison and inhabitants of Hoopstad, a post that was decided to be abandoned in line with Lord Kitchener's policy of centralization.

In the month of January, 1901, there had been a considerable concentration of the Transvaal Boers into that large triangle which is bounded by the Delagoa railway line upon the north, the Natal railway line upon the south, and the Swazi and Zulu frontiers upon the east. The bushveld is at this season of the year unhealthy both for man and beast, so that for the sake of their herds, their families, and themselves the burghers were constrained to descend into the open veld. There seemed the less objection to their doing so since this tract of country, though traversed once both by Buller and by French, had still remained a stronghold of the Boers and a storehouse of supplies. Within its borders are to be found Carolina, Ermelo, Vryheid, and other storm centres. Its possession offers peculiar strategical advantages, as a force lying there can always attack either railway, and might even make, as was indeed intended, a descent into Natal. For these mingled reasons of health and of strategy a considerable number of burghers united in this district under the command of the Bothas and of Smuts.

In January 1901, there was a significant gathering of the Transvaal Boers in a large triangle bordered by the Delagoa railway line to the north, the Natal railway line to the south, and the Swazi and Zulu borders to the east. The bushveld is unhealthy for both people and livestock during this time of year, so for the sake of their herds, families, and themselves, the burghers had to move down into the open veld. It seemed less problematic for them to do this because, even though Buller and French had once crossed this area, it remained a stronghold for the Boers and a supply depot. Inside its borders are places like Carolina, Ermelo, Vryheid, and other key locations. Controlling this area provides unique strategic advantages, as a force stationed there could always strike either railway and could even plan, as intended, an advance into Natal. For these combined reasons of health and strategy, a significant number of burghers came together in this region under the leadership of Botha and Smuts.

Their concentration had not escaped the notice of the British military authorities, who welcomed any movement which might bring to a focus that resistance which had been so nebulous and elusive. Lord Kitchener having once seen the enemy fairly gathered into this huge cover, undertook the difficult task of driving it from end to end. For this enterprise General French was given the chief command, and had under his orders no fewer than seven columns, which started from different points of the Delagoa and of the Natal railway lines, keeping in touch with each other and all trending south and east. A glance at the map would show, however, that it was a very large field for seven guns, and that it would need all their alertness to prevent the driven game from breaking back. Three columns started from the Delagoa line, namely, Smith-Dorrien's from Wonderfontein (the most easterly), Campbell's from Middelburg, and Alderson's from Eerstefabrieken, close to Pretoria. Four columns came from the western railway line: General Knox's from Kaalfontein, Major Allenby's from Zuurfontein (both stations between Pretoria and Johannesburg), General Dartnell's from Springs, close to Johannesburg, and finally General Colville (not to be confused with Colvile) from Greylingstad in the south. The whole movement resembled a huge drag net, of which Wonderfontein and Greylingstad formed the ends, exactly one hundred miles apart. On January 27th the net began to be drawn. Some thousands of Boers with a considerable number of guns were known to be within the enclosure, and it was hoped that even if their own extreme mobility enabled them to escape it would be impossible for them to save their transport and their cannon.

Their focus hadn't gone unnoticed by the British military authorities, who embraced any action that could solidify the previously vague and elusive resistance. Once Lord Kitchener had seen the enemy gathered in this massive cover, he took on the challenging task of pushing them from one end to the other. For this mission, General French was given command and had seven columns at his disposal, all starting from different points along the Delagoa and Natal railway lines, maintaining contact with each other and all moving south and east. However, a quick look at the map revealed that it was a very large area for just seven guns, and they would need to be very alert to keep the fleeing target from escaping. Three columns began from the Delagoa line: Smith-Dorrien's from Wonderfontein (the easternmost), Campbell's from Middelburg, and Alderson's from Eerstefabrieken, near Pretoria. Four columns came from the western railway line: General Knox's from Kaalfontein, Major Allenby's from Zuurfontein (both stations between Pretoria and Johannesburg), General Dartnell's from Springs, near Johannesburg, and lastly General Colville (not to be confused with Colvile) from Greylingstad in the south. The entire operation resembled a giant dragnet, with Wonderfontein and Greylingstad forming the ends, precisely one hundred miles apart. On January 27th, the dragnet began to close. Thousands of Boers, along with a significant number of guns, were known to be enclosed, and it was hoped that even if their extreme mobility allowed for an escape, they would be unable to save their transport and artillery.

Each of the British columns was about 2000 strong, making a total of 14,000 men with about fifty guns engaged in the operations. A front of not less than ten miles was to be maintained by each force. The first decided move was on the part of the extreme left wing, Smith-Dorrien's column, which moved south on Carolina, and thence on Bothwell near Lake Chrissie. The arduous duty of passing supplies down from the line fell mainly upon him, and his force was in consequence larger than the others, consisting of 8500 men with thirteen guns. On the arrival of Smith-Dorrien at Carolina the other columns started, their centre of advance being Ermelo. Over seventy miles of veld the gleam of the helio by day and the flash of the signal lamps at night marked the steady flow of the British tide. Here and there the columns came in touch with the enemy and swept him before them. French had a skirmish at Wilge River at the end of January, and Campbell another south of Middelburg, in which he had twenty casualties. On February 4th Smith-Dorrien was at Lake Chrissie; French had passed through Bethel and the enemy was retiring on Amsterdam. The hundred-mile ends of the drag net were already contracted to a third of that distance, and the game was still known to be within it. On the 5th Ermelo was occupied, and the fresh deep ruts upon the veld told the British horsemen of the huge Boer convoy that was ahead of them. For days enormous herds, endless flocks, and lines of wagons which stretched from horizon to horizon had been trekking eastward. Cavalry and mounted infantry were all hot upon the scent.

Each of the British columns had around 2,000 soldiers, totaling 14,000 men along with about fifty artillery pieces involved in the operations. Each unit had to cover a front of at least ten miles. The first significant move came from the far left wing, Smith-Dorrien's column, which headed south toward Carolina, and then to Bothwell near Lake Chrissie. The challenging task of transporting supplies from the front mainly fell on him, resulting in his force being larger than the others, consisting of 8,500 men with thirteen guns. When Smith-Dorrien arrived at Carolina, the other columns began their advance with Ermelo as their central point. Over seventy miles of open land were marked by the glint of the heliograph during the day and the shine of signal lamps at night, indicating the steady progress of the British forces. Here and there, the columns clashed with the enemy and pushed them back. French engaged in a skirmish at Wilge River at the end of January, while Campbell had another encounter south of Middelburg, resulting in twenty casualties. By February 4th, Smith-Dorrien was at Lake Chrissie; French had moved through Bethel and the enemy was retreating toward Amsterdam. The hundred-mile ends of the dragnet had already been reduced to a third of that distance, and it was known that the target was still within it. On the 5th, Ermelo was taken, and the fresh, deep ruts on the terrain signaled to the British horsemen that a massive Boer convoy was ahead of them. For days, huge herds, countless flocks, and long lines of wagons that stretched from horizon to horizon had been moving east. Cavalry and mounted infantry were all hot on their trail.

Botha, however, was a leader of spirit, not to be hustled with impunity. Having several thousand burghers with him, it was evident that if he threw himself suddenly upon any part of the British line he might hope for a time to make an equal fight, and possibly to overwhelm it. Were Smith-Dorrien out of the way there would be a clear road of escape for his whole convoy to the north, while a defeat of any of the other columns would not help him much. It was on Smith-Dorrien, therefore, that he threw himself with great impetuosity. That General's force was, however, formidable, consisting of the Suffolks, West Yorks and Camerons, 5th Lancers, 2nd Imperial Light Horse, and 3rd Mounted Infantry, with eight field guns and three heavy pieces. Such a force could hardly be defeated in the open, but no one can foresee the effect of a night surprise well pushed home, and such was the attack delivered by Botha at 3 A.M. upon February 6th, when his opponent was encamped at Bothwell Farm.

Botha, however, was a spirited leader who couldn't be taken lightly. With several thousand burghers at his side, it was clear that if he launched a sudden attack on any part of the British line, he might stand a chance for an even fight and possibly gain the upper hand. If Smith-Dorrien were out of the equation, there would be a clear escape route for his entire convoy to the north, while defeating any of the other columns wouldn't benefit him much. So, he directed his efforts with great urgency towards Smith-Dorrien. That General's force was formidable, consisting of the Suffolks, West Yorks, and Camerons, 5th Lancers, 2nd Imperial Light Horse, and 3rd Mounted Infantry, along with eight field guns and three heavy artillery pieces. Such a force would be hard to defeat in the open, but no one can predict the outcome of a well-executed night surprise, and that’s exactly what Botha launched at 3 A.M. on February 6th, when his opponent was camped at Bothwell Farm.

The night was favourable to the attempt, as it was dark and misty. Fortunately, however, the British commander had fortified himself and was ready for an assault. The Boer forlorn hope came on with a gallant dash, driving a troop of loose horses in upon the outposts, and charging forward into the camp. The West Yorkshires, however, who bore the brunt of the attack, were veterans of the Tugela, who were no more to be flurried at three in the morning than at three in the afternoon. The attack was blown backwards, and twenty dead Boers, with their brave leader Spruyt, were left within the British lines. The main body of the Boers contented themselves with a heavy fusillade out of the darkness, which was answered and crushed by the return fire of the infantry. In the morning no trace, save their dead, was to be seen of the enemy, but twenty killed and fifty wounded in Smith-Dorrien's column showed how heavy had been the fire which had swept through the sleeping camp. The Carolina attack, which was to have co-operated with that of the Heidelbergers, was never delivered, through difficulties of the ground, and considerable recriminations ensued among the Boers in consequence.

The night was ideal for the attempt, as it was dark and misty. Fortunately, the British commander had fortified his position and was ready for an attack. The Boer forlorn hope charged in with a brave spirit, hurdling a group of loose horses at the outposts and pushing into the camp. However, the West Yorkshires, who took the brunt of the assault, were veterans from Tugela and were just as steady at three in the morning as they were at three in the afternoon. The attack was pushed back, leaving twenty dead Boers, including their brave leader Spruyt, within the British lines. The main group of Boers settled for a heavy barrage from the darkness, which was met and overwhelmed by the infantry's return fire. By morning, the only evidence of the enemy was their dead, but the twenty killed and fifty wounded in Smith-Dorrien's column showed how intense the fire had been through the sleeping camp. The Carolina attack, which was supposed to work alongside the Heidelbergers, never happened due to difficulties with the terrain, leading to significant blame among the Boers as a result.

Beyond a series of skirmishes and rearguard actions this attack of Botha's was the one effort made to stay the course of French's columns. It did not succeed, however, in arresting them for an hour. From that day began a record of captures of men, herds, guns, and wagons, as the fugitives were rounded up from the north, the west, and the south. The operation was a very thorough one, for the towns and districts occupied were denuded of their inhabitants, who were sent into the refugee camps while the country was laid waste to prevent its furnishing the commandos with supplies in the future. Still moving south-east, General French's columns made their way to Piet Retief upon the Swazi frontier, pushing a disorganised array which he computed at 5000 in front of them. A party of the enemy, including the Carolina commando, had broken back in the middle of February and Louis Botha had got away at the same time, but so successful were his main operations that French was able to report his total results at the end of the month as being 292 Boers killed or wounded, 500 surrendered, 3 guns and one maxim taken, with 600 rifles, 4000 horses, 4500 trek oxen, 1300 wagons and carts, 24,000 cattle, and 165,000 sheep. The whole vast expanse of the eastern veld was dotted with the broken and charred wagons of the enemy.

Beyond a series of skirmishes and rearguard actions, Botha's attack was the only attempt to stop French's columns. It didn’t succeed in slowing them down for even an hour. From that day on, there was a record of captures of men, livestock, guns, and wagons as the fleeing groups were rounded up from the north, west, and south. The operation was very thorough, as towns and regions that were occupied were stripped of their residents, who were sent to refugee camps while the land was destroyed to prevent it from providing supplies to the commandos in the future. Still moving southeast, General French's columns made their way to Piet Retief on the Swazi border, driving a disorganized group that he estimated at 5,000 in front of them. A faction of the enemy, including the Carolina commando, had retreated in mid-February, and Louis Botha had escaped at the same time; however, due to the success of his main operations, French was able to report a total tally at the end of the month of 292 Boers killed or wounded, 500 who surrendered, 3 guns and one Maxim taken, along with 600 rifles, 4,000 horses, 4,500 trek oxen, 1,300 wagons and carts, 24,000 cattle, and 165,000 sheep. The entire vast area of the eastern veld was scattered with the broken and burned wagons of the enemy.

Tremendous rains were falling and the country was one huge quagmire, which crippled although it did not entirely prevent the further operations. All the columns continued to report captures. On March 3rd Dartnell got a maxim and 50 prisoners, while French reported 50 more, and Smith-Dorrien 80. On March 6th French captured two more guns, and on the 14th he reported 46 more Boer casualties and 146 surrenders, with 500 more wagons, and another great haul of sheep and oxen. By the end of March French had moved as far south as Vryheid, his troops having endured the greatest hardships from the continual heavy rains, and the difficulty of bringing up any supplies. On the 27th he reported seventeen more Boer casualties and 140 surrenders, while on the last day of the month he took another gun and two pom-poms. The enemy at that date were still retiring eastward, with Alderson and Dartnell pressing upon their rear. On April 4th French announced the capture of the last piece of artillery which the enemy possessed in that region. The rest of the Boer forces doubled back at night between the columns and escaped over the Zululand border, where 200 of them surrendered. The total trophies of French's drive down the Eastern Transvaal amounted to eleven hundred of the enemy killed, wounded, or taken, the largest number in any operation since the surrender of Prinsloo. There is no doubt that the movement would have been even more successful had the weather been less boisterous, but this considerable loss of men, together with the capture of all the guns in that region, and of such enormous quantities of wagons, munitions, and stock, inflicted a blow upon the Boers from which they never wholly recovered. On April 20th French was back in Johannesburg once more.

Tremendous rains were pouring down, turning the country into one massive mud pit, which hindered, though didn’t completely stop, further operations. All the units continued to report captures. On March 3rd, Dartnell captured a Maxim gun and 50 prisoners, while French reported 50 more, and Smith-Dorrien captured 80. On March 6th, French took two more guns, and by the 14th, he reported 46 more Boer casualties and 146 surrenders, along with 500 more wagons, and another big haul of sheep and oxen. By the end of March, French had advanced as far south as Vryheid, with his troops enduring the toughest challenges from the constant heavy rains and the difficulty of transporting supplies. On the 27th, he reported seventeen more Boer casualties and 140 surrenders, and on the last day of the month, he captured another gun and two pom-poms. The enemy was still retreating eastward at that time, with Alderson and Dartnell closing in on their rear. On April 4th, French announced the capture of the last piece of artillery that the enemy had in that area. The rest of the Boer forces turned back at night between the columns and escaped over the Zululand border, where 200 of them surrendered. The total losses for the Boers due to French's advance down the Eastern Transvaal amounted to eleven hundred killed, wounded, or captured, the largest number in any operation since the surrender of Prinsloo. There’s no doubt that the operation would have been even more successful if the weather had been less harsh, but this significant loss of men, along with the capture of all the guns in that area, and such vast amounts of wagons, ammunition, and livestock, dealt a major blow to the Boers from which they never fully recovered. On April 20th, French was back in Johannesburg once again.

While French had run to earth the last Boer gun in the south-eastern corner of the Transvaal, De la Rey, upon the western side, had still managed to preserve a considerable artillery with which he flitted about the passes of the Magaliesberg or took refuge in the safe districts to the south-west of it. This part of the country had been several times traversed, but had never been subdued by British columns. The Boers, like their own veld grass, need but a few sparks to be left behind to ensure a conflagration breaking out again. It was into this inflammable country that Babington moved in March with Klerksdorp for his base. On March 21st he had reached Haartebeestefontein, the scene not long before of a successful action by Methuen. Here he was joined by Shekleton's Mounted Infantry, and his whole force consisted of these, with the 1st Imperial Light Horse, the 6th Imperial Bushmen, the New Zealanders, a squadron of the 14th Hussars, a wing each of the Somerset Light Infantry and of the Welsh Fusiliers, with Carter's guns and four pom-poms. With this mobile and formidable little force Babington pushed on in search of Smuts and De la Rey, who were known to be in the immediate neighbourhood.

While French had tracked down the last Boer gun in the southeastern corner of the Transvaal, De la Rey, on the western side, managed to keep a significant amount of artillery, using it to move around the passes of the Magaliesberg or to take shelter in the safer areas to the southwest. This region had been crossed several times but had never been conquered by British forces. The Boers, like their own veld grass, only needed a few sparks left behind for a full-blown conflict to ignite once more. It was into this volatile area that Babington advanced in March with Klerksdorp as his base. On March 21st, he reached Haartebeestefontein, the site of a recent successful battle led by Methuen. Here, he was joined by Shekleton's Mounted Infantry, making up his entire force, which included these troops, the 1st Imperial Light Horse, the 6th Imperial Bushmen, the New Zealanders, a squadron of the 14th Hussars, and a wing each from the Somerset Light Infantry and the Welsh Fusiliers, along with Carter's guns and four pom-poms. With this agile and powerful little force, Babington pressed on in search of Smuts and De la Rey, who were known to be nearby.

As a matter of fact the Boers were not only there, but were nearer and in greater force than had been anticipated. On the 22nd three squadrons of the Imperial Light Horse under Major Briggs rode into 1500 of them, and it was only by virtue of their steadiness and gallantry that they succeeded in withdrawing themselves and their pom-pom without a disaster. With Boers in their front and Boers on either flank they fought an admirable rearguard action. So hot was the fire that A squadron alone had twenty-two casualties. They faced it out, however, until their gun had reached a place of safety, when they made an orderly retirement towards Babington's camp, having inflicted as heavy a loss as they had sustained. With Elandslaagte, Waggon Hill, the relief of Mafeking, Naauwpoort, and Haartebeestefontein upon their standards, the Imperial Light Horse, should they take a permanent place in the Army List, will start with a record of which many older regiments might be proud.

Actually, the Boers were not only present but were closer and in greater numbers than expected. On the 22nd, three squadrons of the Imperial Light Horse led by Major Briggs encountered 1,500 of them, and it was only because of their composure and bravery that they managed to retreat with their pom-pom intact and without major disaster. With Boers in front and on both sides, they executed an excellent rearguard action. The intensity of the fire was so fierce that A squadron alone suffered twenty-two casualties. Nevertheless, they held their ground until their gun reached safety, after which they made an orderly withdrawal toward Babington's camp, having caused as much damage to the enemy as they sustained themselves. With Elandslaagte, Waggon Hill, the relief of Mafeking, Naauwpoort, and Haartebeestefontein represented on their colors, the Imperial Light Horse, if they are officially recognized in the Army List, will start with a proud history that many older regiments would envy.

If the Light Horse had a few bad hours on March 22nd at the hands of the Boers, they and their colonial comrades were soon able to return the same with interest. On March 23rd Babington moved forward through Kafir Kraal, the enemy falling back before him. Next morning the British again advanced, and as the New Zealanders and Bushmen, who formed the vanguard under Colonel Gray, emerged from a pass they saw upon the plain in front of them the Boer force with all its guns moving towards them. Whether this was done of set purpose or whether the Boers imagined that the British had turned and were intending to pursue them cannot now be determined, but whatever the cause it is certain that for almost the first time in the campaign a considerable force of each side found themselves in the open and face to face.

If the Light Horse had a tough time on March 22nd against the Boers, they and their colonial allies quickly managed to give it right back. On March 23rd, Babington moved forward through Kafir Kraal, with the enemy retreating in front of him. The next morning, the British advanced again, and as the New Zealanders and Bushmen, who were the vanguard under Colonel Gray, came out of a pass, they saw the Boer force with all its guns moving towards them on the plain ahead. It's unclear whether this was intentional or if the Boers thought the British had turned around and were planning to chase them, but whatever the reason, it was one of the first times in the campaign that a significant force from both sides found themselves out in the open, facing each other.

It was a glorious moment. Setting spurs to their horses, officers and men with a yell dashed forward at the enemy. One of the Boer guns unlimbered and attempted to open fire, but was overwhelmed by the wave of horsemen. The Boer riders broke and fled, leaving their artillery to escape as best it might. The guns dashed over the veld in a mad gallop, but wilder still was the rush of the fiery cavalry behind them. For once the brave and cool-headed Dutchmen were fairly panic-stricken. Hardly a shot was fired at the pursuers, and the riflemen seem to have been only too happy to save their own skins. Two field guns, one pom-pom, six maxims, fifty-six wagons and 140 prisoners were the fruits of that one magnificent charge, while fifty-four stricken Boers were picked up after the action. The pursuit was reluctantly abandoned when the spent horses could go no farther.

It was an amazing moment. Spurs digging into their horses, officers and soldiers charged at the enemy with a shout. One of the Boer guns was set up and tried to fire, but it was overwhelmed by the wave of horsemen. The Boer riders panicked and fled, leaving their artillery to fend for itself. The guns raced across the open land in a wild gallop, but even more intense was the charge of the furious cavalry behind them. For once, the brave and level-headed Dutchmen were completely thrown into a panic. Hardly any shots were fired at the pursuers, and the riflemen seemed more than happy to save their own lives. Two field guns, one pom-pom, six maxims, fifty-six wagons, and 140 prisoners were the results of that one incredible charge, while fifty-four injured Boers were collected after the fight. The chase was reluctantly called off when the exhausted horses could run no more.

While the vanguard had thus scattered the main body of the enemy a detachment of riflemen had ridden round to attack the British rear and convoy. A few volleys from the escort drove them off, however, with some loss. Altogether, what with the loss of nine guns and of at least 200 men, the rout of Haartebeestefontein was a severe blow to the Boer cause. A week or two later Sir H. Rawlinson's column, acting with Babington, rushed Smuts's laager at daylight and effected a further capture of two guns and thirty prisoners. Taken in conjunction with French's successes in the east and Plumer's in the north, these successive blows might have seemed fatal to the Boer cause, but the weary struggle was still destined to go on until it seemed that it must be annihilation rather than incorporation which would at last bring a tragic peace to those unhappy lands.

While the vanguard had scattered the main body of the enemy, a group of riflemen rode around to attack the British rear and convoy. However, a few volleys from the escort pushed them back, albeit with some losses. Overall, with the loss of nine guns and at least 200 men, the defeat at Haartebeestefontein was a serious setback for the Boer cause. A week or two later, Sir H. Rawlinson's column, working with Babington, attacked Smuts's camp at dawn, leading to the capture of two more guns and thirty prisoners. When combined with French's successes in the east and Plumer's in the north, these consecutive blows might have seemed like they would be fatal to the Boer cause, but the exhausting struggle was still set to continue until it appeared that it would take total annihilation rather than incorporation to finally bring a tragic peace to those troubled lands.

All over the country small British columns had been operating during these months—operations which were destined to increase in scope and energy as the cold weather drew in. The weekly tale of prisoners and captures, though small for any one column, gave the aggregate result of a considerable victory. In these scattered and obscure actions there was much good work which can have no reward save the knowledge of duty done. Among many successful raids and skirmishes may be mentioned two by Colonel Park from Lydenburg, which resulted between them in the capture of nearly 100 of the enemy, including Abel Erasmus of sinister reputation. Nor would any summary of these events be complete without a reference to the very gallant defence of Mahlabatini in Zululand, which was successfully held by a handful of police and civilians against an irruption of the Boers. With the advent of winter and of reinforcements the British operations became very energetic in every part of the country, and some account of them will now be added.

All over the country, small British units had been active during these months—operations that were set to expand in size and intensity as the cold weather approached. The weekly count of prisoners and captures, although small for any single unit, contributed to a significant overall victory. In these scattered and low-profile actions, there was a lot of valuable work done that would receive no recognition beyond the satisfaction of duty fulfilled. Among the many successful raids and skirmishes, two conducted by Colonel Park from Lydenburg stand out, resulting in the capture of nearly 100 enemies, including the infamous Abel Erasmus. No summary of these events would be complete without mentioning the very brave defense of Mahlabatini in Zululand, which was successfully held by a small group of police and civilians against an attack from the Boers. With the onset of winter and the arrival of reinforcements, British operations became highly active across the entire country, and a summary of these will now be provided.





CHAPTER 34. THE WINTER CAMPAIGN (APRIL TO SEPTEMBER, 1901).

The African winter extends roughly from April to September, and as the grass during that period would be withered on the veld, the mobility of the Boer commandos must be very much impaired. It was recognised therefore that if the British would avoid another year of war it could only be done by making good use of the months which lay before them. For this reason Lord Kitchener had called for the considerable reinforcements which have been already mentioned, but on the other hand he was forced to lose many thousands of his veteran Yeomanry, Australians, and Canadians, whose term of service was at an end. The volunteer companies of the infantry returned also to England, and so did nine militia battalions, whose place was taken however by an equal number of new-comers.

The African winter lasts about from April to September, and since the grass on the veld would be dry during that time, the movement of the Boer commandos would be significantly limited. It was recognized that if the British wanted to avoid another year of war, they needed to effectively use the months ahead of them. For this reason, Lord Kitchener called for the substantial reinforcements that have already been mentioned, but on the flip side, he had to let go of many thousands of his seasoned Yeomanry, Australians, and Canadians, whose service time was up. The volunteer infantry companies also returned to England, along with nine militia battalions, but they were replaced by an equal number of newcomers.

The British position was very much strengthened during the winter by the adoption of the block-house system. These were small square or hexagonal buildings, made of stone up to nine feet with corrugated iron above it. They were loopholed for musketry fire and held from six to thirty men. These little forts were dotted along the railways at points not more than 2000 yards apart, and when supplemented by a system of armoured trains they made it no easy matter for the Boers to tamper with or to cross the lines. So effective did these prove that their use was extended to the more dangerous portions of the country, and lines were pushed through the Magaliesberg district to form a chain of posts between Krugersdorp and Rustenburg. In the Orange River Colony and on the northern lines of the Cape Colony the same system was extensively applied. I will now attempt to describe the more important operations of the winter, beginning with the incursion of Plumer into the untrodden ground to the north.

The British position was significantly bolstered during the winter by the implementation of the block-house system. These were small square or hexagonal buildings, made of stone up to nine feet tall with corrugated iron on top. They were equipped with loopholes for gunfire and could hold between six and thirty men. These little forts were spread out along the railways at intervals no more than 2000 yards apart, and when combined with a system of armored trains, they made it challenging for the Boers to disrupt or cross the lines. They proved so effective that their usage was expanded to the more dangerous areas, and new lines were established in the Magaliesberg district to create a chain of posts between Krugersdorp and Rustenburg. In the Orange River Colony and along the northern lines of the Cape Colony, the same system was widely applied. I will now attempt to describe the more significant operations of the winter, starting with Plumer's incursion into uncharted territory to the north.

At this period of the war the British forces had overrun, if they had not subdued, the whole of the Orange River Colony and every part of the Transvaal which is south of the Mafeking-Pretoria-Komati line. Through this great tract of country there was not a village and hardly a farmhouse which had not seen the invaders. But in the north there remained a vast district, two hundred miles long and three hundred broad, which had hardly been touched by the war. It is a wild country, scrub-covered, antelope-haunted plains rising into desolate hills, but there are many kloofs and valleys with rich water meadows and lush grazings, which formed natural granaries and depots for the enemy. Here the Boer government continued to exist, and here, screened by their mountains, they were able to organise the continuation of the struggle. It was evident that there could be no end to the war until these last centres of resistance had been broken up.

At this point in the war, the British forces had taken control of, if not fully conquered, the entire Orange River Colony and all parts of the Transvaal south of the Mafeking-Pretoria-Komati line. Throughout this vast area, there wasn't a village or even a farmhouse that hadn't encountered the invaders. However, in the north, there was still a huge region, two hundred miles long and three hundred wide, that had hardly been affected by the war. It was a rugged land, with scrub-covered plains filled with antelopes rising into barren hills, but there were also many kloofs and valleys with fertile water meadows and lush grazing lands that served as natural storages and supply points for the enemy. Here, the Boer government still functioned, and sheltered by their mountains, they were able to organize the ongoing fight. It was clear that the war couldn't end until these last strongholds of resistance were dismantled.

The British forces had advanced as far north as Rustenburg in the west, Pienaar in the centre, and Lydenburg in the east, but here they had halted, unwilling to go farther until their conquests had been made good behind them. A General might well pause before plunging his troops into that vast and rugged district, when an active foe and an exposed line of communication lay for many hundreds of miles to the south of them. But Lord Kitchener with characteristic patience waited for the right hour to come, and then with equally characteristic audacity played swiftly and boldly for his stake. De Wet, impotent for the moment, had been hunted back over the Orange River. French had harried the burghers in the South-east Transvaal, and the main force of the enemy was known to be on that side of the seat of war. The north was exposed, and with one long, straight lunge to the heart, Pietersburg might be transfixed.

The British forces had moved as far north as Rustenburg in the west, Pienaar in the center, and Lydenburg in the east, but here they had stopped, unwilling to proceed until their gains were secured behind them. A General would certainly hesitate before sending his troops into that vast and rugged area, especially with an active enemy and a vulnerable communication line stretching hundreds of miles to the south. But Lord Kitchener, with his usual patience, waited for the right moment, then, with his typical boldness, took decisive action. De Wet, temporarily powerless, had been driven back over the Orange River. French had harassed the burghers in the Southeast Transvaal, and the main enemy force was known to be on that side of the conflict. The north was vulnerable, and with one long, straight push, Pietersburg could be struck at its core.

There could only be one direction for the advance, and that must be along the Pretoria to Pietersburg railroad. This is the only line of rails which leads to the north, and as it was known to be in working order (the Boers were running a bi-weekly service from Pietersburg to Warm Baths), it was hoped that a swift advance might seize it before any extensive damage could be done. With this object a small but very mobile force rapidly assembled at the end of March at Pienaar River, which was the British rail-head forty miles north of Pretoria and a hundred and thirty from Pietersburg. This column consisted of the Bushveld Carbineers, the 4th Imperial Bushmen's Corps, and the 6th New Zealand contingent. With them were the 18th battery R.F.A., and three pom-poms. A detachment of the invaluable mounted Sappers rode with the force, and two infantry regiments, the 2nd Gordons and the Northamptons, were detached to garrison the more vulnerable places upon the line of advance.

There could only be one direction for the move, and that had to be along the Pretoria to Pietersburg railroad. This is the only rail line leading north, and since it was known to be operational (the Boers were running a bi-weekly service from Pietersburg to Warm Baths), it was hoped that a quick advance might secure it before any serious damage could occur. With this goal, a small but very mobile force quickly gathered at the end of March at Pienaar River, which was the British railhead forty miles north of Pretoria and a hundred and thirty from Pietersburg. This column included the Bushveld Carbineers, the 4th Imperial Bushmen's Corps, and the 6th New Zealand contingent. With them were the 18th battery R.F.A. and three pom-poms. A detachment of the crucial mounted Sappers rode with the force, while two infantry regiments, the 2nd Gordons and the Northamptons, were assigned to secure the more vulnerable spots along the route of advance.

Upon March 29th the untiring Plumer, called off from the chase of De Wet, was loosed upon this fresh line, and broke swiftly away to the north. The complete success of his undertaking has obscured our estimate of its danger, but it was no light task to advance so great a distance into a bitterly hostile country with a fighting force of 2000 rifles. As an enterprise it was in many ways not unlike Mahon's dash on Mafeking, but without any friendly force with which to join hands at the end. However from the beginning all went well. On the 30th the force had reached Warm Baths, where a great isolated hotel already marks the site of what will be a rich and fashionable spa. On April 1st the Australian scouts rode into Nylstroom, fifty more miles upon their way. There had been sufficient sniping to enliven the journey, but nothing which could be called an action. Gleaning up prisoners and refugees as they went, with the railway engineers working like bees behind them, the force still swept unchecked upon its way. On April 5th Piet Potgietersrust was entered, another fifty-mile stage, and on the morning of the 8th the British vanguard rode into Pietersburg. Kitchener's judgment and Plumer's energy had met with their reward.

On March 29th, the tireless Plumer, called off from chasing De Wet, was unleashed on this new mission and quickly headed north. Although his success has made us underestimate the risks he faced, it was no small feat to venture so far into a fiercely hostile area with a fighting force of 2,000 rifles. This mission was in many ways similar to Mahon’s swift advance on Mafeking, but without any friendly forces to connect with at the end. However, everything went smoothly from the start. By the 30th, the troops had reached Warm Baths, where a large, isolated hotel already marked the location of what would become a popular resort. On April 1st, the Australian scouts arrived in Nylstroom, another fifty miles along their route. There had been enough sniping to keep things interesting, but nothing that could be classified as a battle. Gathering prisoners and refugees as they moved, with railway engineers working diligently behind them, the force continued forward without obstruction. On April 5th, they entered Piet Potgietersrust, another fifty-mile stretch, and by the morning of the 8th, the British vanguard arrived in Pietersburg. Kitchener's strategic planning and Plumer's determination were rewarded.

The Boer commando had evacuated the town and no serious opposition was made to the British entry. The most effective resistance came from a single schoolmaster, who, in a moment of irrational frenzy or of patriotic exaltation, shot down three of the invaders before he met his own death. Some rolling stock, one small gun, and something under a hundred prisoners were the trophies of the capture, but the Boer arsenal and the printing press were destroyed, and the Government sped off in a couple of Cape carts in search of some new capital. Pietersburg was principally valuable as a base from which a sweeping movement might be made from the north at the same moment as one from the south-east. A glance at the map will show that a force moving from this point in conjunction with another from Lydenburg might form the two crooked claws of a crab to enclose a great space of country, in which smaller columns might collect whatever was to be found. Without an instant of unnecessary delay the dispositions were made, and no fewer than eight columns slipped upon the chase. It will be best to continue to follow the movements of Plumer's force, and then to give some account of the little armies which were operating from the south, with the results of their enterprise.

The Boer commando had cleared out of the town, and there was little serious resistance to the British entering. The strongest opposition came from a single schoolteacher, who, in a moment of wild frenzy or patriotic excitement, shot down three of the invaders before he was killed. They captured some rolling stock, one small gun, and less than a hundred prisoners, but they destroyed the Boer arsenal and the printing press, and the government hurried off in a couple of Cape carts looking for a new capital. Pietersburg was mainly valuable as a base for an attack from the north at the same time as one from the southeast. A quick look at the map shows that a force moving from here alongside another from Lydenburg could create two crooked claws of a crab to encircle a large area of land, where smaller groups could gather anything that was available. Without wasting any time, the plans were set in motion, and no fewer than eight columns went after them. It’s best to continue following the movements of Plumer's force, and then provide some details about the small armies operating from the south and the results of their actions.

It was known that Viljoen and a number of Boers were within the district which lies north of the line in the Middelburg district. An impenetrable bush-veld had offered them a shelter from which they made their constant sallies to wreck a train or to attack a post. This area was now to be systematically cleared up. The first thing was to stop the northern line of retreat. The Oliphant River forms a loop in that direction, and as it is a considerable stream, it would, if securely held, prevent any escape upon that side. With this object Plumer, on April 14th, the sixth day after his occupation of Pietersburg, struck east from that town and trekked over the veld, through the formidable Chunies Pass, and so to the north bank of the Oliphant, picking up thirty or forty Boer prisoners upon the way. His route lay through a fertile country dotted with native kraals. Having reached the river which marked the line which he was to hold, Plumer, upon April 17th, spread his force over many miles, so as to block the principal drifts. The flashes of his helio were answered by flash after flash from many points upon the southern horizon. What these other forces were, and whence they came, must now be made clear to the reader.

It was known that Viljoen and several Boers were in the district north of the line in the Middelburg area. An impenetrable bush-veld had provided them with cover from which they frequently launched attacks to sabotage a train or target a post. This area was now to be cleared systematically. The first step was to cut off the northern escape route. The Oliphant River makes a loop in that direction, and since it’s a significant stream, if secured, it would prevent any escape on that side. To achieve this, Plumer, on April 14th, six days after taking control of Pietersburg, headed east from that town and trekked over the veld, through the challenging Chunies Pass, and reached the north bank of the Oliphant, capturing about thirty or forty Boer prisoners along the way. His route went through a fertile region with native kraals scattered throughout. Once he reached the river, which marked the line he was to hold, Plumer, on April 17th, spread his forces over several miles to block the main crossings. The flashes from his heliograph were responded to by series of flashes from multiple points on the southern horizon. The nature of these other forces and their origins need to be clarified for the reader now.

General Bindon Blood, a successful soldier, had confirmed in the Transvaal a reputation which he had won on the northern frontier of India. He and General Elliot were two of the late comers who had been spared from the great Eastern dependency to take the places of some of those Generals who had returned to England for a well-earned rest. He had distinguished himself by his systematic and effective guardianship of the Delagoa railway line, and he was now selected for the supreme control of the columns which were to advance from the south and sweep the Roos-Senekal district. There were seven of them, which were arranged as follows:

General Bindon Blood, a successful soldier, had established a reputation in the Transvaal that he had earned on the northern frontier of India. He and General Elliot were two of the later arrivals who had been chosen from the vast Eastern colony to take the places of some Generals who had returned to England for a much-deserved break. He had made a name for himself through his organized and effective protection of the Delagoa railway line, and he was now chosen for the overall command of the units set to advance from the south and take control of the Roos-Senekal district. There were seven of them, organized as follows:

Two columns started from Middelburg under Beatson and Benson, which might be called the left wings of the movement. The object of Beatson's column was to hold the drifts of the Crocodile River, while Benson's was to seize the neighbouring hills called the Bothasberg. This it was hoped would pin the Boers from the west, while Kitchener from Lydenburg advanced from the east in three separate columns. Pulteney and Douglas would move up from Belfast in the centre, with Dulstoom for their objective. It was the familiar drag net of French, but facing north instead of south.

Two columns set out from Middelburg led by Beatson and Benson, which could be seen as the left wings of the movement. Beatson's column aimed to secure the crossings of the Crocodile River, while Benson's intended to take control of the nearby hills known as the Bothasberg. The hope was that this would trap the Boers from the west, while Kitchener advanced from the east out of Lydenburg with three separate columns. Pulteney and Douglas would move up from Belfast in the center, targeting Dulstoom. It was the same familiar dragnet strategy from French, but facing north instead of south.

On April 13th the southern columns were started, but already the British preparations had alarmed the Boers, and Botha, with his main commandos, had slipped south across the line into that very district from which he had been so recently driven. Viljoen's commando still remained to the north, and the British troops, pouring in from every side, converged rapidly upon it. The success of the operations was considerable, though not complete. The Tantesberg, which had been the rallying-point of the Boers, was occupied, and Roos-Senekal, their latest capital, was taken, with their State papers and treasure. Viljoen, with a number of followers, slipped through between the columns, but the greater part of the burghers, dashing furiously about like a shoal of fish when they become conscious of the net, were taken by one or other of the columns. A hundred of the Boksburg commando surrendered en masse, fifty more were taken at Roos-Senekal; forty-one of the formidable Zarps with Schroeder, their leader, were captured in the north by the gallantry and wit of a young Australian officer named Reid; sixty more were hunted down by the indefatigable Vialls, leader of the Bushmen. From all parts of the district came the same story of captures and surrenders.

On April 13th, the southern columns were launched, but the British preparations had already alarmed the Boers. Botha, along with his main commandos, had slipped south across the line into the very area from which he had just been driven. Viljoen's commando remained to the north, while British troops poured in from every direction and quickly converged on it. The operations were quite successful, though not entirely. The Tantesberg, which had been a rallying point for the Boers, was occupied, and Roos-Senekal, their most recent capital, was taken along with their state papers and treasure. Viljoen managed to slip through between the columns with a number of followers, but most of the burghers, darting around like a school of fish sensing a net, were captured by one or another of the columns. One hundred members of the Boksburg commando surrendered en masse, fifty more were captured at Roos-Senekal; forty-one of the formidable Zarps, led by Schroeder, were captured in the north thanks to the bravery and cleverness of a young Australian officer named Reid; and sixty more were hunted down by the tireless Vialls, leader of the Bushmen. Everywhere in the district, the same story of captures and surrenders emerged.

Knowing, however, that Botha and Viljoen had slipped through to the south of the railway line, Lord Kitchener determined to rapidly transfer the scene of the operations to that side. At the end of April, after a fortnight's work, during which this large district was cropped, but by no means shaved, the troops turned south again. The results of the operation had been eleven hundred prisoners, almost the same number as French had taken in the south-east, together with a broken Krupp, a pom-pom, and the remains of the big naval gun taken from us at Helvetia.

Knowing that Botha and Viljoen had managed to get past the railway line to the south, Lord Kitchener decided to quickly shift the operations to that area. By the end of April, after two weeks of work that had extensively affected this large district, the troops moved south again. The outcome of the operation included eleven hundred prisoners, nearly the same number that French had captured in the southeast, along with a damaged Krupp gun, a pom-pom, and the remnants of the large naval gun we had lost at Helvetia.

It was determined that Plumer's advance upon Pietersburg should not be a mere raid, but that steps should be taken to secure all that he had gained, and to hold the lines of communication. With this object the 2nd Gordon Highlanders and the 2nd Wiltshires were pushed up along the railroad, followed by Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. These troops garrisoned Pietersburg and took possession of Chunies Poort, and other strategic positions. They also furnished escorts for the convoys which supplied Plumer on the Oliphant River, and they carried out some spirited operations themselves in the neighbourhood of Pietersburg. Grenfell, who commanded the force, broke up several laagers, and captured a number of prisoners, operations in which he was much assisted by Colenbrander and his men. Finally the last of the great Creusot guns, the formidable Long Toms, was found mounted near Haenertsburg. It was the same piece which had in succession scourged Mafeking and Kimberley. The huge gun, driven to bay, showed its powers by opening an effective fire at ten thousand yards. The British galloped in upon it, the Boer riflemen were driven off, and the gun was blown up by its faithful gunners. So by suicide died the last of that iron brood, the four sinister brothers who had wrought much mischief in South Africa. They and their lesson will live in the history of modern artillery.

It was decided that Plumer's move on Pietersburg should be more than just a raid; actions needed to be taken to secure everything he had gained and to maintain the communication lines. To achieve this, the 2nd Gordon Highlanders and the 2nd Wiltshires were sent up along the railroad, followed by Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. These troops took control of Pietersburg and seized Chunies Poort and other strategic locations. They also provided escorts for the convoys that supplied Plumer on the Oliphant River, and they conducted some bold operations around Pietersburg. Grenfell, who led the force, disrupted several boer camps and captured a number of prisoners, with significant help from Colenbrander and his team. Eventually, the last of the powerful Creusot guns, the dreaded Long Toms, was discovered positioned near Haenertsburg. This was the same gun that had previously devastated Mafeking and Kimberley. The massive gun, cornered, demonstrated its firepower by effectively shooting at ten thousand yards. The British charged towards it, the Boer riflemen were pushed back, and the gun was destroyed by its loyal gunners. Thus, in a final act of defiance, the last of that iron lineage perished, the four ominous brothers who had caused significant destruction in South Africa. Their legacy and lessons will be remembered in the history of modern artillery.

The sweeping of the Roos-Senekal district being over, Plumer left his post upon the River of the Elephants, a name which, like Rhenoster, Zeekoe, Kameelfontein, Leeuw Kop, Tigerfontein, Elands River, and so many more, serves as a memorial to the great mammals which once covered the land. On April 28th the force turned south, and on May 4th they had reached the railroad at Eerstefabrieken close to Pretoria. They had come in touch with a small Boer force upon the way, and the indefatigable Vialls hounded them for eighty miles, and tore away the tail of their convoy with thirty prisoners. The main force had left Pretoria on horseback on March 28th, and found themselves back once again upon foot on May 5th. They had something to show, however, for the loss of their horses, since they had covered a circular march of 400 miles, had captured some hundreds of the enemy, and had broken up their last organised capital. From first to last it was a most useful and well-managed expedition.

After completing the sweep of the Roos-Senekal district, Plumer left his position at the River of the Elephants, a name that, like Rhenoster, Zeekoe, Kameelfontein, Leeuw Kop, Tigerfontein, Elands River, and many others, stands as a reminder of the large mammals that once roamed the area. On April 28th, the force moved south, and by May 4th, they had reached the railway at Eerstefabrieken near Pretoria. Along the way, they encountered a small Boer force, and the tireless Vialls pursued them for eighty miles, successfully capturing the rear of their convoy along with thirty prisoners. The main force had left Pretoria on horseback on March 28th, but found themselves on foot again by May 5th. Nevertheless, they had something to show for the loss of their horses, having completed a circular march of 400 miles, captured hundreds of enemy troops, and dismantled their last organized capital. Overall, it was a highly effective and well-executed mission.

It is the more to be regretted that General Blood was recalled from his northern trek before it had attained its full results, because those operations to which he turned did not offer him any great opportunities for success. Withdrawing from the north of the railway with his columns, he at once started upon a sweep of that portion of the country which forms an angle between the Delagoa line and the Swazi frontier—the Barberton district. But again the two big fish, Viljoen and Botha, had slipped away, and the usual collection of sprats was left in the net. The sprats count also, however, and every week now telegrams were reaching England from Lord Kitchener which showed that from three to five hundred more burghers had fallen into our hands. Although the public might begin to look upon the war as interminable, it had become evident to the thoughtful observer that it was now a mathematical question, and that a date could already be predicted by which the whole Boer population would have passed into the power of the British.

It’s unfortunate that General Blood was called back from his northern expedition before it could achieve its full impact, as the new missions he took on didn’t provide him with significant chances for success. After pulling his forces away from the northern railway, he immediately launched a sweep of the area that lies between the Delagoa line and the Swazi border—the Barberton district. However, once more, the two main targets, Viljoen and Botha, managed to escape, leaving only a small catch behind. Still, every catch counts, and each week, telegrams from Lord Kitchener were reaching England, reporting that three to five hundred more burghers had been captured. While the public might start to view the war as endless, it was clear to those who were paying attention that it had become a matter of numbers, and a date could already be predicted when the entire Boer population would be under British control.

Among the numerous small British columns which were at work in different parts of the country, in the latter half of May, there was one under General Dixon which was operating in the neighbourhood of the Magaliesberg Range. This locality has never been a fortunate one for the British arms. The country is peculiarly mountainous and broken, and it was held by the veteran De la Rey and a numerous body of irreconcilable Boers. Here in July we had encountered a check at Uitval's Nek, in December Clements had met a more severe one at Nooitgedacht, while shortly afterwards Cunningham had been repulsed at Middelfontein, and the Light Horse cut up at Naauwpoort. After such experiences one would have thought that no column which was not of overmastering strength would have been sent into this dangerous region, but General Dixon had as a matter of fact by no means a strong force with him. With 1600 men and a battery he was despatched upon a quest after some hidden guns which were said to have been buried in those parts.

Among the many small British units that were active in various parts of the country in the latter half of May, there was one led by General Dixon operating near the Magaliesberg Range. This area has never been lucky for the British military. The terrain is quite mountainous and rugged, and it was occupied by the veteran De la Rey and a large group of determined Boers. Back in July, we had faced a setback at Uitval's Nek, and in December, Clements experienced a more serious failure at Nooitgedacht. Shortly after that, Cunningham was turned back at Middelfontein, and the Light Horse suffered losses at Naauwpoort. After such experiences, one would think that no unit lacking overwhelming strength would be sent into this perilous region, yet General Dixon was, in fact, not leading a particularly strong force. With 1,600 men and a battery, he was dispatched on a mission to find some hidden guns that were rumored to be buried in the area.

On May 26th Dixon's force, consisting of Derbyshires, King's Own Scottish Borderers, Imperial Yeomanry, Scottish Horse, and six guns (four of 8th R.F.A. and two of 28th R.F.A.), broke camp at Naauwpoort and moved to the west. On the 28th they found themselves at a place called Vlakfontein, immediately south of Oliphant's Nek. On that day there were indications that there were a good many Boers in the neighbourhood. Dixon left a guard over his camp and then sallied out in search of the buried guns. His force was divided into three parts, the left column under Major Chance consisting of two guns of the 28th R.F.A., 230 of the Yeomanry, and one company of the Derbys. The centre comprised two guns (8th R.F. A.), one howitzer, two companies of the Scottish Borderers and one of the Derbys; while the right was made up of two guns (8th R.F.A. ), 200 Scottish Horse, and two companies of Borderers. Having ascertained that the guns were not there, the force about midday was returning to the camp, when the storm broke suddenly and fiercely upon the rearguard.

On May 26th, Dixon's troop, made up of Derbyshires, King's Own Scottish Borderers, Imperial Yeomanry, Scottish Horse, and six artillery pieces (four from the 8th R.F.A. and two from the 28th R.F.A.), packed up their camp at Naauwpoort and headed west. By the 28th, they found themselves at a location called Vlakfontein, just south of Oliphant's Nek. That day, there were signs that a significant number of Boers were in the area. Dixon placed a guard over his camp and then set out to search for the buried cannons. His group was split into three sections: the left column, led by Major Chance, included two guns from the 28th R.F.A., 230 Yeomanry, and one company from the Derbys. The center had two guns (8th R.F.A.), one howitzer, two companies of Scottish Borderers, and one from the Derbys; while the right consisted of two guns (8th R.F.A.), 200 Scottish Horse, and two companies of Borderers. After confirming that the guns weren’t there, the force was on its way back to camp around midday when a storm suddenly and violently hit the rearguard.

There had been some sniping during the whole morning, but no indications of the determined attack which was about to be delivered. The force in retiring upon the camp had become divided, and the rearguard consisted of the small column under Major Chance which had originally formed the left wing. A veld fire was raging on one flank of this rearguard, and through the veil of smoke a body of five hundred Boers charged suddenly home with magnificent gallantry upon the guns. We have few records of a more dashing or of a more successful action in the whole course of the war. So rapid was it that hardly any time elapsed between the glimpse of the first dark figures galloping through the haze and the thunder of their hoofs as they dashed in among the gunners. The Yeomanry were driven back and many of them shot down. The charge of the mounted Boers was supported by a very heavy fire from a covering party, and the gun-detachments were killed or wounded almost to a man. The lieutenant in charge and the sergeant were both upon the ground. So far as it is possible to reconstruct the action from the confused accounts of excited eye-witnesses and from the exceedingly obscure official report of General Dixon, there was no longer any resistance round the guns, which were at once turned by their captors upon the nearest British detachment.

There had been some shooting throughout the morning, but no signs of the determined attack that was about to occur. The group retreating to the camp had split up, with the rear guard made up of the small unit under Major Chance that had originally been the left wing. A veld fire was blazing on one side of this rear guard, and through the smoke, a group of five hundred Boers suddenly charged gallantly at the guns. We have few records of a bolder or more successful action in the entire course of the war. The charge happened so quickly that there was hardly any time between seeing the first dark figures racing through the haze and hearing the thunder of their hooves as they crashed into the gunners. The Yeomanry were pushed back, and many were shot down. The charge by the mounted Boers was supported by intense fire from a covering party, and the gun crews were nearly all killed or injured. The lieutenant in charge and the sergeant were both on the ground. From what can be pieced together from the chaotic accounts of excited witnesses and General Dixon's very unclear official report, there was no longer any resistance around the guns, which were immediately turned by their captors on the nearest British unit.

The company of infantry which had helped to escort the guns proved however to be worthy representatives of that historic branch of the British service. They were northerners, men of Derbyshire and Nottingham, the same counties which had furnished the brave militia who had taken their punishment so gamely at Roodeval. Though hustled and broken they re-formed and clung doggedly to their task, firing at the groups of Boers who surrounded the guns. At the same time word had been sent of their pressing need to the Scotch Borderers and the Scottish Horse, who came swarming across the valley to the succour of their comrades. Dixon had brought two guns and a howitzer into action, which subdued the fire of the two captured pieces, and the infantry, Derbys and Borderers, swept over the position, retaking the two guns and shooting down those of the enemy who tried to stand. The greater number vanished into the smoke, which veiled their retreat as it had their advance. Forty-one of them were left dead upon the ground. Six officers and fifty men killed with about a hundred and twenty wounded made up the British losses, to which two guns would certainly have been added but for the gallant counter-attack of the infantry. With Dargai and Vlakfontein to their credit the Derbys have green laurels upon their war-worn colours. They share them on this occasion with the Scottish Borderers, whose volunteer company carried itself as stoutly as the regulars.

The infantry unit that helped escort the guns turned out to be true representatives of that historic part of the British military. They were from the North, specifically Derbyshire and Nottingham, the same counties that had supplied the brave militia who endured their punishment valiantly at Roodeval. Even though they were pushed back and broken, they regrouped and stubbornly held their ground, firing at the groups of Boers surrounding the guns. At the same time, a message was sent regarding their urgent need to the Scottish Borderers and the Scottish Horse, who rushed across the valley to help their comrades. Dixon brought two guns and a howitzer into action, which silenced the fire from the two captured pieces, allowing the infantry, including the Derbys and Borderers, to overtake the position, reclaiming the two guns and shooting down those enemy troops who tried to resist. Most of the enemy disappeared into the smoke that concealed their retreat just as it had hidden their advance. Forty-one of them were left dead on the ground. The British losses included six officers and fifty men killed, with about a hundred and twenty wounded, which would have certainly included two guns if it weren't for the brave counter-attack by the infantry. With Dargai and Vlakfontein as their achievements, the Derbys proudly display green laurels on their war-worn colors. They share this honor on this occasion with the Scottish Borderers, whose volunteer company fought as fiercely as the regulars.

How is such an action to be summed up? To Kemp, the young Boer leader, and his men belongs the credit of the capture of the guns; to the British that of their recapture and of the final possession of the field. The British loss was probably somewhat higher than that of the Boers, but upon the other hand there could be no question as to which side could afford loss the better. The Briton could be replaced, but there were no reserves behind the fighting line of the Boers.

How do we sum up such an action? Credit for capturing the guns goes to Kemp, the young Boer leader, and his men; the British, on the other hand, are credited with recapturing them and ultimately holding the battlefield. The British losses were likely a bit higher than those of the Boers, but it's clear which side could better handle those losses. The British could replace their soldiers, but the Boers had no reserves behind their front lines.

There is one subject which cannot be ignored in discussing this battle, however repugnant it may be. That is the shooting of some of the British wounded who lay round the guns. There is no question at all about the fact, which is attested by many independent witnesses. There is reason to hope that some of the murderers paid for their crimes with their lives before the battle was over. It is pleasant to add that there is at least one witness to the fact that Boer officers interfered with threats to prevent some of these outrages. It is unfair to tarnish the whole Boer nation and cause on account of a few irresponsible villains, who would be disowned by their own decent comrades. Very many—too many—British soldiers have known by experience what it is to fall into the hands of the enemy, and it must be confessed that on the whole they have been dealt with in no ungenerous spirit, while the British treatment of the Boers has been unexampled in all military history for its generosity and humanity. That so fair a tale should be darkened by such ruffianly outrages is indeed deplorable, but the incident is too well authenticated to be left unrecorded in any detailed account of the campaign. General Dixon, finding the Boers very numerous all round him, and being hampered by his wounded, fell back upon Naauwpoort, which he reached on June 1st.

There’s one topic that can’t be overlooked when discussing this battle, no matter how unpleasant it might be. That’s the shooting of some of the British wounded who were lying around the guns. There’s no doubt about it, as many independent witnesses can confirm. There’s hope that some of the perpetrators faced justice with their lives before the battle ended. It’s worth noting that at least one witness reported that Boer officers intervened with threats to stop some of these acts. It’s unfair to tarnish the entire Boer nation and cause because of a few reckless criminals who would be rejected by their own decent peers. Many—too many—British soldiers know from experience what it’s like to fall into enemy hands, and it must be acknowledged that, overall, they have been treated fairly. In contrast, British treatment of the Boers has been unprecedented in military history for its generosity and humanity. It’s truly tragic that such a fair narrative is marred by these brutal acts, but the incident is too well-documented to be omitted from any thorough account of the campaign. General Dixon, seeing that the Boers were very numerous around him and being hindered by his wounded, retreated to Naauwpoort, which he reached on June 1st.

In May, Sir Bindon Blood, having returned to the line to refit, made yet another cast through that thrice-harried belt of country which contains Ermelo, Bethel, and Carolina, in which Botha, Viljoen, and the fighting Boers had now concentrated. Working over the blackened veld he swung round in the Barberton direction, and afterwards made a westerly drive in conjunction with small columns commanded by Walter Kitchener, Douglas, and Campbell of the Rifles, while Colville, Garnett, and Bullock co-operated from the Natal line. Again the results were disappointing when compared with the power of the instrument employed. On July 5th he reached Springs, near Johannesburg, with a considerable amount of stock, but with no great number of prisoners. The elusive Botha had slipped away to the south and was reported upon the Zululand border, while Viljoen had succeeded in crossing the Delagoa line and winning back to his old lair in the district north of Middelburg, from which he had been evicted in April. The commandos were like those pertinacious flies which buzz upwards when a hand approaches them, but only to settle again in the same place. One could but try to make the place less attractive than before.

In May, Sir Bindon Blood, after returning to the front to regroup, made yet another attempt through that heavily contested area containing Ermelo, Bethel, and Carolina, where Botha, Viljoen, and the fighting Boers had now gathered. Navigating over the scorched land, he pivoted toward Barberton and later made a westward push alongside smaller groups led by Walter Kitchener, Douglas, and Campbell of the Rifles, while Colville, Garnett, and Bullock supported him from the Natal line. Once again, the results were disappointing given the strength of the forces involved. On July 5th, he arrived at Springs, near Johannesburg, with a significant amount of cattle but very few prisoners. The elusive Botha had managed to slip away to the south and was reported near the Zululand border, while Viljoen had crossed the Delagoa line, returning to his previous hideout in the area north of Middelburg, from which he had been forced out in April. The commandos were like those stubborn flies that buzz up when a hand approaches, only to land in the same spot again. All one could do was try to make the place less appealing than before.

Before Viljoen's force made its way over the line it had its revenge for the long harrying it had undergone by a well-managed night attack, in which it surprised and defeated a portion of Colonel Beatson's column at a place called Wilmansrust, due south of Middelburg, and between that town and Bethel. Beatson had divided his force, and this section consisted of 850 of the 5th Victorian Mounted Rifles, with thirty gunners and two pom-poms, the whole under the command of Major Morris. Viljoen's force trekking north towards the line came upon this detachment upon June 12th. The British were aware of the presence of the enemy, but do not appear to have posted any extra outposts or taken any special precautions. Long months of commando chasing had imbued them too much with the idea that these were fugitive sheep, and not fierce and wily wolves, whom they were endeavouring to catch. It is said that 700 yards separated the four pickets. With that fine eye for detail which the Boer leaders possess, they had started a veld fire upon the west of the camp and then attacked from the east, so that they were themselves invisible while their enemies were silhouetted against the light. Creeping up between the pickets, the Boers were not seen until they opened fire at point-blank range upon the sleeping men. The rifles were stacked—another noxious military tradition—and many of the troopers were shot down while they rushed for their weapons. Surprised out of their sleep and unable to distinguish their antagonists, the brave Australians did as well as any troops could have done who were placed in so impossible a position. Captain Watson, the officer in charge of the pom-poms, was shot down, and it proved to be impossible to bring the guns into action. Within five minutes the Victorians had lost twenty killed and forty wounded, when the survivors surrendered. It is pleasant to add that they were very well treated by the victors, but the high-spirited colonials felt their reverse most bitterly. 'It is the worst thing that ever happened to Australia!' says one in the letter in which he describes it. The actual number of Boers who rushed the camp was only 180, but 400 more had formed a cordon round it. To Viljoen and his lieutenant Muller great credit must be given for this well-managed affair, which gave them a fresh supply of stores and clothing at a time when they were hard pressed for both. These same Boer officers had led the attack upon Helvetia where the 4.7 gun was taken. The victors succeeded in getting away with all their trophies, and having temporarily taken one of the blockhouses on the railway near Brugspruit, they crossed the line in safety and returned, as already said, to their old quarters in the north, which had been harried but not denuded by the operations of General Blood.

Before Viljoen's force crossed the line, they took revenge for the long harassment they had endured through a well-executed night attack. They surprised and defeated a section of Colonel Beatson's column at a place called Wilmansrust, located directly south of Middelburg and situated between that town and Bethel. Beatson had divided his force, and this segment consisted of 850 members of the 5th Victorian Mounted Rifles, along with thirty gunners and two pom-poms, all under Major Morris’s command. Viljoen's force, moving north towards the line, encountered this detachment on June 12th. The British were aware of the enemy's presence but seemingly did not set up any additional outposts or take special precautions. After months of chasing commandos, they were overly convinced that they were dealing with fleeing sheep rather than dangerous and clever wolves. It’s reported that there were 700 yards separating the four pickets. With their notable attention to detail, the Boer leaders set a veld fire on the west side of the camp and then attacked from the east, making themselves invisible while their enemies were highlighted against the light. They crept up between the pickets and weren’t seen until they opened fire at point-blank range on the sleeping soldiers. The rifles were stacked—an unfortunate military habit—and many troopers were shot down as they rushed to grab their weapons. Shocked out of their sleep and unable to identify their attackers, the brave Australians did as well as could be expected under such impossible circumstances. Captain Watson, the officer in charge of the pom-poms, was shot, making it impossible to bring the guns into action. Within five minutes, the Victorians had suffered twenty killed and forty wounded, and the survivors surrendered. It's worth noting that they were treated very well by their captors, but the proud colonials felt their defeat very deeply. "It is the worst thing that ever happened to Australia!" one wrote in a letter describing the event. Although only 180 Boers charged the camp, another 400 had formed a cordon around it. Viljoen and his lieutenant Muller deserve great credit for this well-organized operation, which provided them with essential supplies and clothing at a time when they were in desperate need. These same Boer officers had led the earlier attack on Helvetia, where the 4.7 gun was captured. The victors managed to carry off all their trophies, and after temporarily seizing one of the blockhouses on the railway near Brugspruit, they crossed the line safely and returned, as previously mentioned, to their old quarters in the north, which had been harried but not stripped bare by General Blood's operations.

It would take a volume to catalogue, and a library to entirely describe the movements and doings of the very large number of British columns which operated over the Transvaal and the Orange River Colony during this cold-weather campaign. If the same columns and the same leaders were consistently working in the same districts, some system of narrative might enable the reader to follow their fortunes, but they were, as a matter of fact, rapidly transferred from one side of the field of action to another in accordance with the concentrations of the enemy. The total number of columns amounted to at least sixty, which varied in number from two hundred to two thousand, and seldom hunted alone. Could their movements be marked in red upon a chart, the whole of that huge district would be criss-crossed, from Taungs to Komati and from Touws River to Pietersburg, with the track of our weary but indomitable soldiers.

It would take a whole book to list and a library to fully describe the activities and movements of the many British columns that operated in the Transvaal and the Orange River Colony during this cold-weather campaign. If the same columns and leaders were consistently working in the same areas, a narrative system might help the reader follow their journeys, but in reality, they were quickly shifted from one side of the battlefield to another based on enemy movements. The total number of columns was at least sixty, ranging from two hundred to two thousand troops, and they rarely operated alone. If their movements were marked in red on a map, the entire region would be crisscrossed, from Taungs to Komati and from Touws River to Pietersburg, mapping out the path of our tired but unyielding soldiers.

Without attempting to enter into details which would be unbecoming to the modesty of a single volume, one may indicate what the other more important groupings were during the course of these months, and which were the columns that took part in them. Of French's drive in the south-east, and of Blood's incursion into the Roos-Senekal district some account has been given, and of his subsequent sweeping of the south. At the same period Babington, Dixon, and Rawlinson were co-operating in the Klerksdorp district, though the former officer transferred his services suddenly to Blood's combination, and afterwards to Elliot's column in the north of Orange River Colony. Williams and Fetherstonhaugh came later to strengthen this Klerksdorp district, in which, after the clearing of the Magaliesberg, De la Rey had united his forces to those of Smuts. This very important work of getting a firm hold upon the Magaliesberg was accomplished in July by Barton, Allenby, Kekewich, and Lord Basing, who penetrated into the wild country and established blockhouses and small forts in very much the same way as Cumberland and Wade in 1746 held down the Highlands. The British position was much strengthened by the firm grip obtained of this formidable stronghold of the enemy, which was dangerous not only on account of its extreme strength, but also of its proximity to the centres of population and of wealth.

Without getting into details that would be inappropriate for a single volume, we can highlight some of the key groupings during these months and the columns involved. Accounts have been given of French's advance in the southeast and Blood's incursion into the Roos-Senekal district, along with his subsequent sweep through the south. Around the same time, Babington, Dixon, and Rawlinson were working together in the Klerksdorp district, although Babington suddenly switched over to Blood's group and later to Elliot's column in the northern part of the Orange River Colony. Williams and Fetherstonhaugh arrived later to reinforce the Klerksdorp area, where, after clearing the Magaliesberg, De la Rey had combined his forces with those of Smuts. This crucial task of gaining a solid foothold on the Magaliesberg was completed in July by Barton, Allenby, Kekewich, and Lord Basing, who ventured into the rugged region to set up blockhouses and small forts, much like Cumberland and Wade did in 1746 to secure the Highlands. The British position was significantly bolstered by their firm control of this formidable enemy stronghold, which posed a threat not only due to its great strength but also because of its proximity to population and wealth centers.

De la Rey, as already stated, had gone down to the Klerksdorp district, whence, for a time at least, he seems to have passed over into the north of the Orange River Colony. The British pressure at Klerksdorp had become severe, and thither in May came the indefatigable Methuen, whom we last traced to Warrenton. From this point on May 1st he railed his troops to Mafeking, whence he trekked to Lichtenburg, and south as far as his old fighting ground of Haartebeestefontein, having one skirmish upon the way and capturing a Boer gun. Thence he returned to Mafeking, where he had to bid adieu to those veteran Yeomanry who had been his comrades on so many a weary march. It was not their fortune to be present at any of the larger battles of the war, but few bodies of troops have returned to England with a finer record of hard and useful service.

De la Rey, as mentioned earlier, had gone down to the Klerksdorp area, from which he seems to have moved north into the Orange River Colony for a while. The British pressure in Klerksdorp had become intense, and in May, the tireless Methuen, who we last saw in Warrenton, arrived there. From this point on May 1st, he transported his troops to Mafeking, then moved on to Lichtenburg, and south to his previous battlefield at Haartebeestefontein, encountering one skirmish along the way and capturing a Boer gun. He then returned to Mafeking, where he had to say goodbye to the veteran Yeomanry who had fought alongside him on so many grueling marches. Although they did not participate in any of the major battles of the war, few groups have returned to England with a better record of hard and valuable service.

No sooner, however, had Methuen laid down one weapon than he snatched up another. Having refitted his men and collected some of the more efficient of the new Yeomanry, he was off once more for a three weeks' circular tour in the direction of Zeerust. It is difficult to believe that the oldest inhabitant could have known more of the western side of the Transvaal, for there was hardly a track which he had not traversed or a kopje from which he had not been sniped. Early in August he had made a fresh start from Mafeking, dividing his force into two columns, the command of the second being given to Von Donop. Having joined hands with Fetherstonhaugh, he moved through the south-west and finally halted at Klerksdorp. The harried Boers moved a hundred miles north to Rustenburg, followed by Methuen, Fetherstonhaugh, Hamilton, Kekewich, and Allenby, who found the commandos of De la Rey and Kemp to be scattering in front of them and hiding in the kloofs and dongas, whence in the early days of September no less than two hundred were extracted. On September 6th and 8th Methuen engaged the main body of De la Rey in the valley of the Great Marico River which lies to the north-west of Rustenburg. In these two actions he pushed the Boers in front of him with a loss of eighteen killed and forty-one prisoners, but the fighting was severe, and fifteen of his men were killed and thirty wounded before the position had been carried. The losses were almost entirely among the newly raised Yeomanry, who had already shown on several occasions that, having shed their weaker members and had some experience of the field, they were now worthy to take their place beside their veteran comrades.

No sooner had Methuen put down one weapon than he picked up another. After refitting his men and gathering some of the more capable new Yeomanry, he set off again for a three-week circular tour towards Zeerust. It's hard to believe that anyone could know the western side of the Transvaal better, as he had hardly missed any track or kopje where he hadn’t faced snipers. Early in August, he started fresh from Mafeking, splitting his forces into two columns, with Von Donop leading the second. After joining Fetherstonhaugh, he moved through the south-west and finally stopped at Klerksdorp. The beleaguered Boers retreated a hundred miles north to Rustenburg, pursued by Methuen, Fetherstonhaugh, Hamilton, Kekewich, and Allenby, who found De la Rey and Kemp's commandos scattering and hiding in the kloofs and dongas, from which they extracted two hundred in early September. On September 6th and 8th, Methuen confronted De la Rey's main group in the valley of the Great Marico River, northwest of Rustenburg. In these two battles, he pushed the Boers back, inflicting eighteen deaths and capturing forty-one prisoners. However, the fighting was tough, resulting in the deaths of fifteen of his men and thirty wounded before they secured the position. Most of the losses were among the newly raised Yeomanry, who had already proven that, having shed their weaker members and gained some field experience, they were now deserving to stand alongside their veteran comrades.

The only other important operation undertaken by the British columns in the Transvaal during this period was in the north, where Beyers and his men were still harried by Grenfell, Colenbrander, and Wilson. A considerable proportion of the prisoners which figured in the weekly lists came from this quarter. On May 30th there was a notable action, the truth of which was much debated but finally established, in which Kitchener's Scouts under Wilson surprised and defeated a Boer force under Pretorius, killing and wounding several, and taking forty prisoners. On July 1st Grenfell took nearly a hundred of Beyers' men with a considerable convoy. North, south, east, and west the tale was ever the same, but so long as Botha, De la Rey, Steyn, and De Wet remained uncaptured, the embers might still at any instant leap into a flame.

The only other significant operation carried out by the British columns in the Transvaal during this time was in the north, where Beyers and his men were still being pursued by Grenfell, Colenbrander, and Wilson. A large number of the prisoners reported in the weekly lists came from this area. On May 30th, there was a notable battle, the details of which were widely debated but ultimately confirmed, where Kitchener's Scouts under Wilson surprised and defeated a Boer force led by Pretorius, killing and wounding several, and capturing forty prisoners. On July 1st, Grenfell captured nearly a hundred of Beyers' men along with a significant convoy. No matter the direction—north, south, east, or west—the story was always the same, but as long as Botha, De la Rey, Steyn, and De Wet remained uncaptured, the embers could still flare up into a fire at any moment.

It only remains to complete this synopsis of the movements of columns within the Transvaal that I should add that after the conclusion of Blood's movement in July, several of his columns continued to clear the country and to harass Viljoen in the Lydenburg and Dulstroom districts. Park, Kitchener, Spens, Beatson, and Benson were all busy at this work, never succeeding in forcing more than a skirmish, but continually whittling away wagons, horses, and men from that nucleus of resistance which the Boer leaders still held together.

It’s worth noting that to finish this summary of the movements of columns within the Transvaal, I should mention that after Blood's operation wrapped up in July, several of his columns kept clearing the area and bothering Viljoen in the Lydenburg and Dulstroom regions. Park, Kitchener, Spens, Beatson, and Benson were all engaged in this task, never managing to initiate more than a skirmish, but consistently wearing down the wagons, horses, and men from the core group of resistance that the Boer leaders still managed to hold together.

Though much hampered by the want of forage for their horses, the Boers were ever watchful for an opportunity to strike back, and the long list of minor successes gained by the British was occasionally interrupted by a petty reverse. Such a one befell the small body of South African Constabulary stationed near Vereeniging, who encountered upon July 13th a strong force of Boers supposed to be the main commando of De Wet. The Constabulary behaved with great gallantry but were hopelessly outnumbered, and lost their seven-pounder gun, four killed, six wounded, and twenty-four prisoners. Another small reverse occurred at a far distant point of the seat of war, for the irregular corps known as Steinacker's Horse was driven from its position at Bremersdorp in Swaziland upon July 24th, and had to fall back sixteen miles, with a loss of ten casualties and thirty prisoners. Thus in the heart of a native state the two great white races of South Africa were to be seen locked in a desperate conflict. However unavoidable, the sight was certainly one to be deplored.

Though heavily limited by a lack of fodder for their horses, the Boers remained vigilant for a chance to retaliate, and the long list of minor victories achieved by the British was occasionally interrupted by small setbacks. One such incident happened to the small group of South African Constabulary stationed near Vereeniging, who encountered a strong force of Boers believed to be the main commando of De Wet on July 13th. The Constabulary fought bravely but were hopelessly outnumbered, losing their seven-pounder gun, four men killed, six wounded, and twenty-four taken as prisoners. Another minor setback occurred at a far-off point in the conflict, as the irregular unit known as Steinacker's Horse was driven from its position at Bremersdorp in Swaziland on July 24th, and had to retreat sixteen miles, suffering ten casualties and thirty prisoners. Thus, in the heart of a native state, the two major white races of South Africa were seen engaged in a fierce struggle. While it was unavoidable, the sight was certainly one to lament.

To the Boer credit, or discredit, are also to be placed those repeated train wreckings, which cost the British during this campaign the lives and limbs of many brave soldiers who were worthy of some less ignoble fate. It is true that the laws of war sanction such enterprises, but there is something indiscriminate in the results which is repellent to humanity, and which appears to justify the most energetic measures to prevent them. Women, children, and sick must all travel by these trains and are exposed to a common danger, while the assailants enjoy a safety which renders their exploit a peculiarly inglorious one. Two Boers, Trichardt and Hindon, the one a youth of twenty-two, the other a man of British birth, distinguished, or disgraced, themselves by this unsavoury work upon the Delagoa line, but with the extension of the blockhouse system the attempts became less successful. There was one, however, upon the northern line near Naboomspruit which cost the lives of Lieutenant Best and eight Gordon Highlanders, while ten were wounded. The party of Gordons continued to resist after the smash, and were killed or wounded to a man. The painful incident is brightened by such an example of military virtue, and by the naive reply of the last survivor, who on being questioned why he continued to fight until he was shot down, answered with fine simplicity, 'Because I am a Gordon Highlander.'

To the Boers' credit, or discredit, we must also mention the repeated train wrecks, which cost the British the lives and limbs of many brave soldiers who deserved a better fate. It's true that the laws of war allow such actions, but the indiscriminate nature of the outcomes is unsettling and seems to justify the strongest measures to prevent them. Women, children, and the sick all have to travel by these trains and face the same danger, while the attackers enjoy a level of safety that makes their actions particularly dishonorable. Two Boers, Trichardt and Hindon, one a twenty-two-year-old and the other a man of British descent, made a name for themselves, for better or worse, with this unsavory work on the Delagoa line, but as the blockhouse system expanded, their attempts became less successful. There was one incident, however, on the northern line near Naboomspruit that resulted in the deaths of Lieutenant Best and eight Gordon Highlanders, with ten more wounded. The Gordons continued to fight after the crash and were killed or wounded to a man. This painful event is brightened by an example of military valor and by the simple response of the last survivor, who, when asked why he kept fighting until he was shot down, replied with touching simplicity, "Because I am a Gordon Highlander."

Another train disaster of an even more tragic character occurred near Waterval, fifteen miles north of Pretoria, upon the last day of August. The explosion of a mine wrecked the train, and a hundred Boers who lined the banks of the cutting opened fire upon the derailed carriages. Colonel Vandeleur, an officer of great promise, was killed and twenty men, chiefly of the West Riding regiment, were shot. Nurse Page was also among the wounded. It was after this fatal affair that the regulation of carrying Boer hostages upon the trains was at last carried out.

Another train disaster of an even more tragic nature happened near Waterval, fifteen miles north of Pretoria, on the last day of August. The explosion of a mine destroyed the train, and a hundred Boers who were along the banks of the cutting started shooting at the derailed carriages. Colonel Vandeleur, a promising officer, was killed, and twenty men, mostly from the West Riding regiment, were shot. Nurse Page was also among the injured. It was after this deadly incident that the rule of carrying Boer hostages on the trains was finally enforced.

It has been already stated that part of Lord Kitchener's policy of concentration lay in his scheme for gathering the civil population into camps along the lines of communication. The reasons for this, both military and humanitarian, were overwhelming. Experience had proved that the men if left at liberty were liable to be persuaded or coerced by the fighting Boers into breaking their parole and rejoining the commandos. As to the women and children, they could not be left upon the farms in a denuded country. That the Boers in the field had no doubts as to the good treatment of these people was shown by the fact that they repeatedly left their families in the way of the columns so that they might be conveyed to the camps. Some consternation was caused in England by a report of Miss Hobhouse, which called public attention to the very high rate of mortality in some of these camps, but examination showed that this was not due to anything insanitary in their situation or arrangement, but to a severe epidemic of measles which had swept away a large number of the children. A fund was started in London to give additional comforts to these people, though there is reason to believe that their general condition was superior to that of the Uitlander refugees, who still waited permission to return to their homes. By the end of July there were no fewer than sixty thousand inmates of the camps in the Transvaal alone, and half as many in the Orange River Colony. So great was the difficulty in providing the supplies for so large a number that it became more and more evident that some at least of the camps must be moved down to the sea coast.

It has already been mentioned that part of Lord Kitchener's strategy for concentration involved gathering the civilian population into camps along the communication routes. The reasons for this, both military and humanitarian, were compelling. Experience had shown that men, if left free, were likely to be persuaded or pressured by the fighting Boers to break their parole and rejoin the commandos. As for the women and children, they couldn't be left on the farms in a ravaged country. The Boers in the field had no doubts about the good treatment of these people, as evidenced by the fact that they repeatedly left their families in the path of the columns so they could be taken to the camps. Some alarm was caused in England by a report from Miss Hobhouse, which brought public attention to the very high death rate in some of these camps, but investigations revealed that this was not due to any unsanitary conditions, but rather to a severe measles epidemic that claimed many children's lives. A fund was set up in London to provide extra comforts for these people, although it seems their overall condition was better than that of the Uitlander refugees, who were still waiting for permission to return home. By the end of July, there were at least sixty thousand people in the camps in the Transvaal alone, and half as many in the Orange River Colony. The challenge of supplying such a large number became increasingly clear, making it obvious that some of the camps would need to be moved closer to the coast.

Passing to the Orange River Colony we find that during this winter period the same British tactics had been met by the same constant evasions on the part of the dwindling commandos. The Colony had been divided into four military districts: that of Bloemfontein, which was given to Charles Knox, that of Lyttelton at Springfontein, that of Rundle at Harrismith, and that of Elliot in the north. The latter was infinitely the most important, and Elliot, the warden of the northern marches, had under him during the greater part of the winter a mobile force of about 6000 men, commanded by such experienced officers as Broadwood, De Lisle, and Bethune. Later in the year Spens, Bullock, Plumer, and Rimington were all sent into the Orange River Colony to help to stamp out the resistance. Numerous skirmishes and snipings were reported from all parts of the country, but a constant stream of prisoners and of surrenders assured the soldiers that, in spite of the difficulty of the country and the obstinacy of the enemy, the term of their labours was rapidly approaching.

Passing to the Orange River Colony, we see that during this winter period, the same British tactics were met with constant evasion from the dwindling commandos. The Colony had been divided into four military districts: Bloemfontein, which was assigned to Charles Knox; Lyttelton at Springfontein; Rundle at Harrismith; and Elliot in the north. The latter was by far the most important, and Elliot, the warden of the northern border, had under him, for most of the winter, a mobile force of about 6000 men, commanded by experienced officers like Broadwood, De Lisle, and Bethune. Later in the year, Spens, Bullock, Plumer, and Rimington were all sent into the Orange River Colony to help eliminate the resistance. Numerous skirmishes and sniper incidents were reported from all over the country, but a steady stream of prisoners and surrenders reassured the soldiers that, despite the challenging terrain and the stubbornness of the enemy, the end of their efforts was rapidly approaching.

In all the petty and yet necessary operations of these columns, two incidents demand more than a mere mention. The first was a hard-fought skirmish in which some of Elliot's horsemen were engaged upon June 6th. His column had trekked during the month of May from Kroonstad to Harrismith, and then turning north found itself upon that date near the hamlet of Reitz. Major Sladen with 200 Mounted Infantry, when detached from the main body, came upon the track of a Boer convoy and ran it down. Over a hundred vehicles with forty-five prisoners were the fruits of their enterprise. Well satisfied with his morning's work, the British leader despatched a party of his men to convey the news to De Lisle, who was behind, while he established himself with his loot and his prisoners in a convenient kraal. Thence they had an excellent view of a large body of horsemen approaching them with scouts, flankers, and all military precautions. One warm-hearted officer seems actually to have sallied out to meet his comrades, and it was not till his greeting of them took the extreme form of handing over his rifle that the suspicion of danger entered the heads of his companions. But if there was some lack of wit there was none of heart in Sladen and his men. With forty-five Boers to hold down, and 500 under Fourie, De Wet, and De la Rey around them, the little band made rapid preparation for a desperate resistance: the prisoners were laid upon their faces, the men knocked loopholes in the mud walls of the kraal, and a blunt soldierly answer was returned to the demand for surrender.

In all the minor yet essential activities of these columns, two incidents stand out. The first was a fierce skirmish involving some of Elliot's horsemen on June 6th. His column had traveled from Kroonstad to Harrismith in May, and then turned north, finding itself near the village of Reitz on that date. Major Sladen, commanding 200 Mounted Infantry, was detached from the main group when he spotted a Boer convoy and took action. They captured over a hundred vehicles and forty-five prisoners as a result of their efforts. Satisfied with their morning's work, the British leader sent a group of his men to inform De Lisle, who was behind them, while he settled in with his spoils and prisoners in a nearby kraal. From there, they had a clear view of a large group of horsemen approaching, complete with scouts, flankers, and all necessary military precautions. One eager officer even seemed to rush out to greet his comrades, and it wasn’t until he offered his rifle to them that his companions started to suspect danger. However, even if there was a lack of caution, there was certainly no lack of courage in Sladen and his men. With forty-five Boers to guard and 500 led by Fourie, De Wet, and De la Rey surrounding them, the small group quickly got ready for a fierce defense: the prisoners were ordered to lie face down, the soldiers made loopholes in the mud walls of the kraal, and a straightforward refusal was given to the demand for surrender.

But it was a desperate business. The attackers were five to one, and the five were soldiers of De Wet, the hard-bitten veterans of a hundred encounters. The captured wagons in a long double row stretched out over the plain, and under this cover the Dutchmen swarmed up to the kraal. But the men who faced them were veterans also, and the defence made up for the disparity of numbers. With fine courage the Boers made their way up to the village, and established themselves in the outlying huts, but the Mounted Infantry clung desperately to their position. Out of the few officers present Findlay was shot through the head, Moir and Cameron through the heart, and Strong through the stomach. It was a Waggon Hill upon a small scale, two dour lines of skirmishers emptying their rifles into each other at point-blank range. Once more, as at Bothaville, the British Mounted Infantry proved that when it came to a dogged pelting match they could stand punishment longer than their enemy. They suffered terribly. Fifty-one out of the little force were on the ground, and the survivors were not much more numerous than their prisoners. To the 1st Gordons, the 2nd Bedfords, the South Australians, and the New South Welsh men belongs the honour of this magnificent defence. For four hours the fierce battle raged, until at last the parched and powder-stained survivors breathed a prayer of thanks as they saw on the southern horizon the vanguard of De Lisle riding furiously to the rescue. For the last hour, since they had despaired of carrying the kraal, the Boers had busied themselves in removing their convoy; but now, for the second time in one day, the drivers found British rifles pointed at their heads, and the oxen were turned once more and brought back to those who had fought so hard to hold them. Twenty-eight killed and twenty-six wounded were the losses in this desperate affair. Of the Boers seventeen were left dead in front of the kraal, and the forty-five had not escaped from the bulldog grip which held them. There seems for some reason to have been no effective pursuit of the Boers, and the British column held on its way to Kroonstad.

But it was a desperate situation. The attackers were five to one, and the five were soldiers of De Wet, tough veterans of many battles. The captured wagons were lined up in a long double row across the plain, and under this cover, the Dutchmen swarmed toward the kraal. However, the men facing them were also veterans, and the defense made up for the difference in numbers. With great courage, the Boers advanced to the village and took over the surrounding huts, but the Mounted Infantry held on fiercely to their position. Of the few officers present, Findlay was shot in the head, Moir and Cameron in the heart, and Strong in the stomach. It was like a smaller version of Waggon Hill, with two determined lines of skirmishers firing at each other at point-blank range. Once again, like at Bothaville, the British Mounted Infantry showed that when it came to a stubborn fight, they could take more punishment than their enemy. They suffered badly. Fifty-one out of the small force were down, and the survivors were not much more than the prisoners. The honor of this magnificent defense belongs to the 1st Gordons, the 2nd Bedfords, the South Australians, and the New South Welsh men. For four hours, the fierce battle raged until, finally, the parched and powder-stained survivors breathed a prayer of thanks as they saw De Lisle's vanguard racing to the rescue on the southern horizon. For the last hour, since they had given up on taking the kraal, the Boers had been busy removing their convoy; but now, for the second time that day, the drivers found British rifles aimed at them, and the oxen were turned around and brought back to those who had fought so hard to hold them. The casualties in this desperate affair were twenty-eight killed and twenty-six wounded. Seventeen Boers were left dead in front of the kraal, and the forty-five did not escape from the tight grip that held them. For some reason, there was no effective pursuit of the Boers, and the British column continued its march to Kroonstad.

The second incident which stands out amid the dreary chronicle of hustlings and snipings is the surprise visit paid by Broadwood with a small British column to the town of Reitz upon July 11th, which resulted in the capture of nearly every member of the late government of the Free State, save only the one man whom they particularly wanted. The column consisted of 200 yeomen, 200 of the 7th Dragoon Guards, and two guns. Starting at 11 P.M., the raiders rode hard all night and broke with the dawn upon the sleeping village. Racing into the main street, they secured the startled Boers as they rushed from the houses. It is easy to criticise such an operation from a distance, and to overlook the practical difficulties in the way, but on the face of it it seems a pity that the holes had not been stopped before the ferret was sent in. A picket at the farther end of the street would have barred Steyn's escape. As it was, he flung himself upon his horse and galloped half-clad out of the town. Sergeant Cobb of the Dragoons snapped a rifle at close quarters upon him, but the cold of the night had frozen the oil on the striker and the cartridge hung fire. On such trifles do the large events of history turn! Two Boer generals, two commandants, Steyn's brother, his secretary, and several other officials were among the nine-and-twenty prisoners. The treasury was also captured, but it is feared that the Yeomen and Dragoons will not be much the richer from their share of the contents.

The second incident that stands out in the bleak account of struggles and skirmishes is the surprise visit by Broadwood with a small British unit to the town of Reitz on July 11th, which led to the capture of almost every member of the former Free State government, except for the one man they really wanted. The unit consisted of 200 yeomen, 200 from the 7th Dragoon Guards, and two guns. They started at 11 PM, riding hard all night and bursting into the sleeping village at dawn. Racing into the main street, they caught the startled Boers as they rushed out of their houses. It's easy to criticize such an operation from afar and overlook the practical challenges involved, but it does seem unfortunate that the exits weren’t blocked before they went in. A picket at the far end of the street could have prevented Steyn's escape. Instead, he jumped on his horse and galloped out of town half-dressed. Sergeant Cobb of the Dragoons aimed a rifle at him up close, but the cold night had frozen the oil on the striker, causing the cartridge to misfire. It's amazing how the fate of history can hinge on such small details! Among the twenty-nine prisoners were two Boer generals, two commandants, Steyn's brother, his secretary, and several other officials. The treasury was also captured, but it’s likely that the Yeomen and Dragoons won’t benefit much from what they found inside.

Save these two incidents, the fight at Reitz and the capture of a portion of Steyn's government at the same place, the winter's campaign furnished little which was of importance, though a great deal of very hard and very useful work was done by the various columns under the direction of the governors of the four military districts. In the south General Bruce Hamilton made two sweeps, one from the railway line to the western frontier, and the second from the south and east in the direction of Petrusburg. The result of the two operations was about 300 prisoners. At the same time Monro and Hickman re-cleared the already twice-cleared districts of Rouxville and Smithfield. The country in the east of the Colony was verging now upon the state which Grant described in the Shenandoah Valley: 'A crow,' said he, 'must carry his own rations when he flies across it.'

Aside from these two events, the fight at Reitz and the capture of part of Steyn's government at the same location, the winter's campaign didn't yield much of significance, although various units under the leadership of the governors of the four military districts performed a lot of hard and useful work. In the south, General Bruce Hamilton conducted two operations, one from the railway line to the western frontier, and the other from the south and east toward Petrusburg. These two operations resulted in around 300 prisoners. Meanwhile, Monro and Hickman re-cleared the already-checked areas of Rouxville and Smithfield. The situation in the eastern part of the Colony was starting to resemble what Grant described in the Shenandoah Valley: "A crow," he said, "must carry his own rations when he flies across it."

In the middle district General Charles Knox, with the columns of Pine-Coffin, Thorneycroft, Pilcher, and Henry, were engaged in the same sort of work with the same sort of results.

In the middle district, General Charles Knox, along with the units of Pine-Coffin, Thorneycroft, Pilcher, and Henry, were involved in the same kind of work with similar outcomes.

The most vigorous operations fell to the lot of General Elliot, who worked over the northern and north-eastern district, which still contained a large number of fighting burghers. In May and June Elliot moved across to Vrede and afterwards down the eastern frontier of the Colony, joining hands at last with Rundle at Harrismith. He then worked his way back to Kroonstad through Reitz and Lindley. It was on this journey that Sladen's Mounted Infantry had the sharp experience which has been already narrated. Western's column, working independently, co-operated with Elliot in this clearing of the north-east. In August there were very large captures by Broadwood's force, which had attained considerable mobility, ninety miles being covered by it on one occasion in two days.

The most intense operations fell to General Elliot, who focused on the northern and northeastern areas, where there were still many active burghers. In May and June, Elliot moved to Vrede and then traveled down the eastern border of the Colony, eventually teaming up with Rundle at Harrismith. He then made his way back to Kroonstad through Reitz and Lindley. During this journey, Sladen's Mounted Infantry had a tough experience, which has already been described. Western's column, operating independently, worked with Elliot to clear out the northeast. In August, Broadwood's force made very large captures, achieving significant mobility, covering ninety miles in just two days at one point.

Of General Rundle there is little to be said, as he was kept busy in exploring the rough country in his own district—the same district which had been the scene of the operations against Prinsloo and the Fouriesburg surrender. Into this district Kritzinger and his men trekked after they were driven from the Colony in July, and many small skirmishes and snipings among the mountains showed that the Boer resistance was still alive.

Of General Rundle, there isn't much to mention, as he was occupied with exploring the challenging terrain in his own area—the same area where operations against Prinsloo and the Fouriesburg surrender took place. Kritzinger and his men moved into this area after they were forced out of the Colony in July, and numerous small skirmishes and sniper attacks in the mountains revealed that the Boer resistance was still active.

July and August were occupied in the Orange River Colony by energetic operations of Spens' and Rimington's columns in the midland districts, and by a considerable drive to the north-eastern corner, which was shared by three columns under Elliot and two under Plumer, with one under Henry and several smaller bodies. A considerable number of prisoners and a large amount of stock were the result of the movement, but it was very evident that there was a waste of energy in the employment of such forces for such an end. The time appeared to be approaching when a strong force of military police stationed permanently in each district might prove a more efficient instrument. One interesting development of this phase of the war was the enrolment of a burgher police among the Boers who had surrendered. These men—well paid, well mounted, and well armed—were an efficient addition to the British forces. The movement spread until before the end of the war there were several thousand burghers under such well-known officers as Celliers, Villonel, and young Cronje, fighting against their own guerilla countrymen. Who, in 1899, could have prophesied such a phenomenon as that!

July and August saw active operations by Spens' and Rimington's columns in the Orange River Colony's midland districts, along with a significant push into the northeastern corner, involving three columns under Elliot, two under Plumer, one under Henry, and several smaller groups. This movement resulted in a notable number of prisoners and a large amount of livestock, but it was clear that such a large deployment of forces for this purpose was an inefficient use of energy. It seemed that the time was nearing when having a strong military police force stationed permanently in each district could be a more effective approach. One interesting development during this phase of the war was the recruitment of a burgher police force from the Boers who had surrendered. These individuals—well-paid, well-mounted, and well-armed—were a valuable addition to the British forces. The movement grew, and by the end of the war, there were several thousand burghers under the command of notable officers such as Celliers, Villonel, and young Cronje, fighting against their own guerilla compatriots. Who could have predicted such a situation back in 1899!

Lord Kitchener's proclamation issued upon August 9th marked one more turn in the screw upon the part of the British authorities. By it the burghers were warned that those who had not laid down their arms by September 15th would in the case of the leaders be banished, and in the case of the burghers be compelled to support their families in the refugee camps. As many of the fighting burghers were men of no substance, the latter threat did not affect them much, but the other, though it had little result at the time, may be useful for the exclusion of firebrands during the period of reconstruction. Some increase was noticeable in the number of surrenders after the proclamation, but on the whole it had not the result which was expected, and its expediency is very open to question. This date may be said to mark the conclusion of the winter campaign and the opening of a new phase in the struggle.

Lord Kitchener's proclamation issued on August 9th marked another tightening of control by the British authorities. It warned the burghers that anyone who hadn't laid down their arms by September 15th would face banishment if they were leaders, and the burghers would have to support their families in the refugee camps. Since many of the fighting burghers were not wealthy, the latter threat didn’t impact them much, but the former, although it had little immediate effect, could be useful for keeping troublemakers away during the reconstruction period. There was a noticeable increase in the number of surrenders after the proclamation, but overall, it didn’t have the expected impact, and its usefulness is highly questionable. This date can be seen as marking the end of the winter campaign and the beginning of a new phase in the conflict.





CHAPTER 35. THE GUERILLA OPERATIONS IN CAPE COLONY.

In the account which has been given in a preceding chapter of the invasion of Cape Colony by the Boer forces, it was shown that the Western bands were almost entirely expelled, or at least that they withdrew, at the time when De Wet was driven across the Orange River. This was at the beginning of March 1901. It was also mentioned that though the Boers evacuated the barren and unprofitable desert of the Karoo, the Eastern bands which had come with Kritzinger did not follow the same course, but continued to infest the mountainous districts of the Central Colony, whence they struck again and again at the railway lines, the small towns, British patrols, or any other quarry which was within their reach and strength. From the surrounding country they gathered a fair number of recruits, and they were able through the sympathy and help of the Dutch farmers to keep themselves well mounted and supplied. In small wandering bands they spread themselves over a vast extent of country, and there were few isolated farmhouses from the Orange River to the Oudtshoorn Mountains, and from the Cape Town railroad in the west to the Fish River in the east, which were not visited by their active and enterprising scouts. The object of the whole movement was, no doubt, to stimulate a general revolt in the Colony; and it must be acknowledged that if the powder did not all explode it was not for want of the match being thoroughly applied.

In the previous chapter about the Boer forces' invasion of Cape Colony, it was explained that the Western groups were nearly completely pushed out, or at least that they retreated, when De Wet was forced across the Orange River at the beginning of March 1901. It was also noted that while the Boers left the barren and unproductive Karoo desert, the Eastern groups that came with Kritzinger chose a different path. They continued to occupy the mountainous areas of the Central Colony, repeatedly attacking the railway lines, small towns, British patrols, or any target within their reach and capability. From the surrounding areas, they recruited a decent number of supporters and managed to stay well-mounted and supplied thanks to the backing of the Dutch farmers. They roamed in small groups across a vast area, and there were few isolated farmhouses from the Orange River to the Oudtshoorn Mountains, and from the Cape Town railroad in the west to the Fish River in the east, that weren't visited by their active and resourceful scouts. The aim of the whole operation was undoubtedly to incite a widespread uprising in the Colony; and it must be acknowledged that if the powder didn't fully ignite, it wasn't for lack of the fuse being thoroughly lit.

It might at first sight seem the simplest of military operations to hunt down these scattered and insignificant bands; but as a matter of fact nothing could be more difficult. Operating in a country which was both vast and difficult, with excellent horses, the best of information and supplies ready for them everywhere, it was impossible for the slow-moving British columns with their guns and their wagons to overtake them. Formidable even in flight, the Boers were always ready to turn upon any force which exposed itself too rashly to retaliation, and so amid the mountain passes the British chiefs had to use an amount of caution which was incompatible with extreme speed. Only when a commando was exactly localised so that two or three converging British forces could be brought to bear upon it, was there a reasonable chance of forcing a fight. Still, with all these heavy odds against them, the various little columns continued month after month to play hide-and-seek with the commandos, and the game was by no means always on the one side. The varied fortunes of this scrambling campaign can only be briefly indicated in these pages.

It might initially seem like the simplest military operation to track down these scattered and seemingly unimportant groups; however, in reality, nothing could be more challenging. Operating in a country that was both vast and rugged, with top-notch horses, the best intelligence, and supplies readily available, it was impossible for the slow-moving British columns, with their artillery and wagons, to catch up with them. Even when in retreat, the Boers were always prepared to counter any force that exposed itself too recklessly to attack, and so among the mountain passes, the British leaders had to exercise a caution that was not compatible with extreme speed. Only when a commando was precisely located, allowing two or three British forces to converge on it, was there a reasonable chance of forcing a confrontation. Still, despite these significant challenges, the various small columns continued month after month to engage in a game of hide-and-seek with the commandos, and this game was by no means one-sided. The mixed outcomes of this chaotic campaign can only be briefly summarized in these pages.

It has already been shown that Kritzinger's original force broke into many bands, which were recruited partly from the Cape rebels and partly from fresh bodies which passed over from the Orange River Colony. The more severe the pressure in the north, the greater reason was there for a trek to this land of plenty. The total number of Boers who were wandering over the eastern and midland districts may have been about two thousand, who were divided into bands which varied from fifty to three hundred. The chief leaders of separate commandos were Kritzinger, Scheepers, Malan, Myburgh, Fouche, Lotter, Smuts, Van Reenen, Lategan, Maritz, and Conroy, the two latter operating on the western side of the country. To hunt down these numerous and active bodies the British were compelled to put many similar detachments into the field, known as the columns of Gorringe, Crabbe, Henniker, Scobell, Doran, Kavanagh, Alexander, and others. These two sets of miniature armies performed an intricate devil's dance over the Colony, the main lines of which are indicated by the red lines upon the map. The Zuurberg mountains to the north of Steynsburg, the Sneeuwberg range to the south of Middelburg, the Oudtshoorn Mountains in the south, the Cradock district, the Murraysburg district, and the Graaf-Reinet district—these were the chief centres of Boer activity.

It has already been shown that Kritzinger's original force split into many groups, which were made up partly of Cape rebels and partly of new recruits from the Orange River Colony. The stronger the pressure in the north, the more reason there was to move to this land of plenty. The total number of Boers roaming the eastern and midland districts was about two thousand, divided into groups ranging from fifty to three hundred. The main leaders of separate commandos were Kritzinger, Scheepers, Malan, Myburgh, Fouche, Lotter, Smuts, Van Reenen, Lategan, Maritz, and Conroy, with the latter two operating on the western side of the country. To track down these numerous and active groups, the British had to deploy many similar detachments, known as the columns of Gorringe, Crabbe, Henniker, Scobell, Doran, Kavanagh, Alexander, and others. These two sets of small armies engaged in a complex game of cat and mouse across the Colony, the main routes of which are shown by the red lines on the map. The Zuurberg mountains north of Steynsburg, the Sneeuwberg range south of Middelburg, the Oudtshoorn Mountains in the south, the Cradock district, the Murraysburg district, and the Graaf-Reinet district were the main centers of Boer activity.

In April Kritzinger made his way north to the Orange River Colony, for the purpose of consulting with De Wet, but he returned with a following of 200 men about the end of May. Continual brushes occurred during this month between the various columns, and much hard marching was done upon either side, but there was nothing which could be claimed as a positive success.

In April, Kritzinger headed north to the Orange River Colony to meet with De Wet, but he came back at the end of May with 200 men. Throughout that month, there were frequent skirmishes between the different groups, and both sides were involved in a lot of tough marching, but there wasn’t anything that could be considered a clear victory.

Early in May two passengers sailed for Europe, the journey of each being in its way historical. The first was the weary and overworked Pro-Consul who had the foresight to distinguish the danger and the courage to meet it. Milner's worn face and prematurely grizzled hair told of the crushing weight which had rested upon him during three eventful years. A gentle scholar, he might have seemed more fitted for a life of academic calm than for the stormy part which the discernment of Mr. Chamberlain had assigned to him. The fine flower of an English university, low-voiced and urbane, it was difficult to imagine what impression he would produce upon those rugged types of which South Africa is so peculiarly prolific. But behind the reserve of a gentleman there lay within him a lofty sense of duty, a singular clearness of vision, and a moral courage which would brace him to follow whither his reason pointed. His visit to England for three months' rest was the occasion for a striking manifestation of loyalty and regard from his fellow-countrymen. He returned in August as Lord Milner to the scene of his labours, with the construction of a united and loyal commonwealth of South Africa as the task of his life.

Early in May, two passengers set sail for Europe, each journey being significant in its own way. The first was the exhausted and overworked Pro-Consul, who had the foresight to recognize the danger and the courage to confront it. Milner's tired face and prematurely graying hair showed the heavy burden he had carried during three eventful years. A gentle scholar, he seemed better suited for a calm academic life than for the turbulent role that Mr. Chamberlain had assigned to him. The refined product of an English university, soft-spoken and cultured, it was hard to imagine the impression he would leave on the rugged individuals that South Africa is so known for. But beneath the gentleman's reserve was a strong sense of duty, a clear vision, and the moral courage that would compel him to follow where his reason led. His three-month visit to England for rest sparked a remarkable display of loyalty and respect from his fellow countrymen. He returned in August as Lord Milner to the scene of his efforts, with the mission of creating a united and loyal commonwealth of South Africa as his life's work.

The second traveller who sailed within a few days of the Governor was Mrs. Botha, the wife of the Boer General, who visited Europe for private as well as political reasons. She bore to Kruger an exact account of the state of the country and of the desperate condition of the burghers. Her mission had no immediate or visible effect, and the weary war, exhausting for the British but fatal for the Boers, went steadily on.

The second traveler who set sail a few days after the Governor was Mrs. Botha, the wife of the Boer General, who went to Europe for both personal and political reasons. She brought Kruger a detailed report on the situation in the country and the dire condition of the burghers. Her mission didn’t have any immediate or noticeable impact, and the exhausting war for the British, which was devastating for the Boers, continued relentlessly.

To continue the survey of the operations in the Cape, the first point scored was by the invaders, for Malan's commando succeeded upon May 13th in overwhelming a strong patrol of the Midland Mounted Rifles, the local colonial corps, to the south of Maraisburg. Six killed, eleven wounded, and forty-one prisoners were the fruits of his little victory, which furnished him also with a fresh supply of rifles and ammunition. On May 21st Crabbe's column was in touch with Lotter and with Lategan, but no very positive result came from the skirmish.

To continue the review of the actions in the Cape, the first success went to the invaders, as Malan's commando managed to overpower a strong patrol of the Midland Mounted Rifles, the local colonial unit, south of Maraisburg on May 13th. Six were killed, eleven wounded, and forty-one were captured as a result of this small victory, which also provided him with a new supply of rifles and ammunition. On May 21st, Crabbe's column was in contact with Lotter and Lategan, but no significant results came from the skirmish.

The end of May showed considerable Boer activity in the Cape Colony, that date corresponding with the return of Kritzinger from the north. Haig had for the moment driven Scheepers back from the extreme southerly point which he had reached, and he was now in the Graaf-Reinet district; but on the other side of the colony Conroy had appeared near Kenhart, and upon May 23rd he fought a sharp skirmish with a party of Border Scouts. The main Boer force under Kritzinger was in the midlands, however, and had concentrated to such an extent in the Cradock district that it was clear that some larger enterprise was on foot. This soon took shape, for on June 2nd, after a long and rapid march, the Boer leader threw himself upon Jamestown, overwhelmed the sixty townsmen who formed the guard, and looted the town, from which he drew some welcome supplies and 100 horses. British columns were full cry upon his heels, however, and the Boers after a few hours left the gutted town and vanished into the hills once more. On June 6th the British had a little luck at last, for on that date Scobell and Lukin in the Barkly East district surprised a laager and took twenty prisoners, 166 horses, and much of the Jamestown loot. On the same day Windham treated Van Reenen in a similar rough fashion near Steynsburg, and took twenty-two prisoners.

The end of May saw a lot of Boer activity in the Cape Colony, coinciding with Kritzinger's return from the north. Haig had temporarily pushed Scheepers back from the southernmost point he had reached, and he was now in the Graaf-Reinet area; however, on the other side of the colony, Conroy had appeared near Kenhart and on May 23rd fought a fierce skirmish with a group of Border Scouts. The main Boer force under Kritzinger was in the midlands, though, and had concentrated so much in the Cradock area that it was clear a larger operation was underway. This soon took shape, as on June 2nd, after a long and quick march, the Boer leader attacked Jamestown, overwhelmed the sixty townsmen guarding it, and looted the town, taking with him some much-needed supplies and 100 horses. British columns were hot on his trail, though, and after a few hours, the Boers abandoned the ravaged town and disappeared into the hills again. On June 6th, the British finally had some luck; on that day, Scobell and Lukin in the Barkly East district surprised a laager and captured twenty prisoners, 166 horses, and much of the Jamestown loot. On the same day, Windham treated Van Reenen similarly near Steynsburg and took twenty-two prisoners.

On June 8th the supreme command of the operations in Cape Colony was undertaken by General French, who from this time forward manoeuvred his numerous columns upon a connected plan with the main idea of pushing the enemy northwards. It was some time, however, before his disposition bore fruit, for the commandos were still better mounted and lighter than their pursuers. On June 13th the youthful and dashing Scheepers, who commanded his own little force at an age when he would have been a junior lieutenant of the British army, raided Murraysburg and captured a patrol. On June 17th Monro with Lovat's Scouts and Bethune's Mounted Infantry had some slight success near Tarkastad, but three days later the ill-fated Midland Mounted Rifles were surprised in the early morning by Kritzinger at Waterkloof, which is thirty miles west of Cradock, and were badly mauled by him. They lost ten killed, eleven wounded, and sixty-six prisoners in this unfortunate affair. Again the myth that colonial alertness is greater than that of regular troops seems to have been exposed.

On June 8th, General French took command of the operations in Cape Colony, and from that point on, he maneuvered his various units with a unified strategy focusing on pushing the enemy northward. However, it took some time before his plans paid off, as the commandos were still better mounted and more agile than their pursuers. On June 13th, the young and daring Scheepers, who led his own small force at an age when he would have been a junior lieutenant in the British army, raided Murraysburg and captured a patrol. On June 17th, Monro, along with Lovat's Scouts and Bethune's Mounted Infantry, had some minor success near Tarkastad, but three days later, the unfortunate Midland Mounted Rifles were caught off guard in the early morning by Kritzinger at Waterkloof, which is thirty miles west of Cradock, and suffered heavy losses. They lost ten killed, eleven wounded, and sixty-six taken prisoner in this unfortunate incident. Once again, the idea that colonial alertness surpasses that of regular troops seems to have been proven wrong.

At the end of June, Fouche, one of the most enterprising of the guerilla chiefs, made a dash from Barkly East into the native reserves of the Transkei in order to obtain horses and supplies. It was a desperate measure, as it was vain to suppose that the warlike Kaffirs would permit their property to be looted without resistance, and if once the assegais were reddened no man could say how far the mischief might go. With great loyalty the British Government, even in the darkest days, had held back those martial races—Zulus, Swazis, and Basutos—who all had old grudges against the Amaboon. Fouche's raid was stopped, however, before it led to serious trouble. A handful of Griqualand Mounted Rifles held it in front, while Dalgety and his colonial veterans moving very swiftly drove him back northwards.

At the end of June, Fouche, one of the most resourceful guerilla leaders, made a quick move from Barkly East into the native reserves of the Transkei to gather horses and supplies. It was a risky decision, as it was unrealistic to think the warlike Kaffirs would allow their possessions to be stolen without a fight, and once the assegais were stained with blood, no one could predict how bad the situation could get. With great loyalty, the British Government had, even in the toughest times, managed to keep those warrior groups—Zulus, Swazis, and Basutos—at bay, all of whom had long-standing grudges against the Amaboon. Fouche's raid was halted, though, before it escalated into serious trouble. A small group of Griqualand Mounted Rifles held them off at the front, while Dalgety and his colonial veterans quickly pushed him back to the north.

Though baulked, Fouche was still formidable, and on July 14th he made a strong attack in the neighbourhood of Jamestown upon a column of Connaught Rangers who were escorting a convoy. Major Moore offered a determined resistance, and eventually after some hours of fighting drove the enemy away and captured their laager. Seven killed and seventeen wounded were the British losses in this spirited engagement.

Though thwarted, Fouche was still powerful, and on July 14th he launched a strong attack near Jamestown against a group of Connaught Rangers who were guarding a convoy. Major Moore put up a fierce fight, and after several hours of combat, he pushed the enemy back and captured their camp. The British suffered seven killed and seventeen wounded in this intense engagement.

On July 10th General French, surveying from a lofty mountain peak the vast expanse of the field of operations, with his heliograph calling up responsive twinkles over one hundred miles of country, gave the order for the convergence of four columns upon the valley in which he knew Scheepers to be lurking. We have it from one of his own letters that his commando at the time consisted of 240 men, of whom forty were Free Staters and the rest colonial rebels. Crewe, Windham, Doran, and Scobell each answered to the call, but the young leader was a man of resource, and a long kloof up the precipitous side of the hill gave him a road to safety. Yet the operations showed a new mobility in the British columns, which shed their guns and their baggage in order to travel faster. The main commando escaped, but twenty-five laggards were taken. The action took place among the hills thirty miles to the west of Graaf-Reinet.

On July 10th, General French, looking out from a high mountain peak over the wide expanse of the field of operations, used his heliograph to signal across more than a hundred miles of terrain. He ordered four columns to converge on the valley where he knew Scheepers was hiding. We have it from one of his own letters that his commando at that time had 240 men, with forty being Free Staters and the rest colonial rebels. Crewe, Windham, Doran, and Scobell each responded to the call, but the young leader was clever, and a long ravine on the steep side of the hill provided him a route to safety. Still, the actions demonstrated a new agility in the British columns, which abandoned their guns and baggage to move faster. The main commando managed to escape, but twenty-five stragglers were captured. The event took place among the hills thirty miles west of Graaf-Reinet.

On July 21st Crabbe and Kritzinger had a skirmish in the mountains near Cradock, in which the Boers were strong enough to hold their own; but on the same date near Murraysburg, Lukin, the gallant colonial gunner, with ninety men rode into 150 of Lategan's band and captured ten of them, with a hundred horses. On July 27th a small party of twenty-one Imperial Yeomanry was captured, after a gallant resistance, by a large force of Boers at the Doorn River on the other side of the Colony. The Kaffir scouts of the British were shot dead in cold blood by their captors after the action. There seems to be no possible excuse for the repeated murders of coloured men by the Boers, as they had themselves from the beginning of the war used their Kaffirs for every purpose short of actually fighting. The war had lost much of the good humour which marked its outset. A fiercer feeling had been engendered on both sides by the long strain, but the execution of rebels by the British, though much to be deplored, is still recognised as one of the rights of a belligerent. When one remembers the condonation upon the part of the British of the use of their own uniforms by the Boers, of the wholesale breaking of paroles, of the continual use of expansive bullets, of the abuse of the pass system and of the red cross, it is impossible to blame them for showing some severity in the stamping out of armed rebellion within their own Colony. If stern measures were eventually adopted it was only after extreme leniency had been tried and failed. The loss of five years' franchise as a penalty for firing upon their own flag is surely the most gentle correction which an Empire ever laid upon a rebellious people.

On July 21st, Crabbe and Kritzinger had a clash in the mountains near Cradock, where the Boers were strong enough to hold their ground; however, on the same day near Murraysburg, the brave colonial gunner Lukin and ninety men rode into 150 members of Lategan's group and captured ten of them along with a hundred horses. On July 27th, a small group of twenty-one Imperial Yeomanry was captured, after a brave fight, by a large force of Boers at the Doorn River on the other side of the Colony. The British Kaffir scouts were executed in cold blood by their captors after the battle. There seems to be no possible justification for the repeated killings of people of color by the Boers, as they had utilized their Kaffirs for every purpose except direct combat since the start of the war. The war had lost much of the good humor that characterized its beginning. A fiercer attitude had developed on both sides due to the long strain, but the execution of rebels by the British, although regrettable, is still recognized as a right of a warring party. When considering the British's tolerance of the Boers using their own uniforms, their widespread breaking of paroles, the ongoing use of expanding bullets, the misuse of the pass system, and the abuse of the Red Cross, it's hard to blame them for taking a harsher stance in suppressing armed rebellion within their own Colony. If strict measures were eventually taken, it was only after attempts at leniency had failed. The loss of five years of franchise as a consequence for firing on their own flag is certainly the mildest punishment ever imposed by an Empire on a rebellious people.

At the beginning of August the connected systematic work of French's columns began to tell. In a huge semicircle the British were pushing north, driving the guerillas in front of them. Scheepers in his usual wayward fashion had broken away to the south, but the others had been unable to penetrate the cordon and were herded over the Stormberg to Naauwport line. The main body of the Boers was hustled swiftly along from August 7th to August 10th, from Graaf-Reinet to Thebus, and thrust over the railway line at that point with some loss of men and a great shedding of horses. It was hoped that the blockhouses on the railroad would have held the enemy, but they slipped across by night and got into the Steynsburg district, where Gorringe's colonials took up the running. On August 18th he followed the commandos from Steynsburg to Venterstad, killing twenty of them and taking several prisoners. On the 15th, Kritzinger with the main body of the invaders passed the Orange River near Bethulie, and made his way to the Wepener district of the Orange River Colony. Scheepers, Lotter, Lategan, and a few small wandering bands were the only Boers left in the Colony, and to these the British columns now turned their attention, with the result that Lategan, towards the end of the month, was also driven over the river. For the time, at least, the situation seemed to have very much improved, but there was a drift of Boers over the north-western frontier, and the long-continued warfare at their own doors was undoubtedly having a dangerous effect upon the Dutch farmers. Small successes from time to time, such as the taking of sixty of French's Scouts by Theron's commando on August 10th, served to keep them from despair. Of the guerilla bands which remained, the most important was that of Scheepers, which now numbered 300 men, well mounted and supplied. He had broken back through the cordon, and made for his old haunts in the south-west. Theron, with a smaller band, was also in the Uniondale and Willowmore district, approaching close to the sea in the Mossel Bay direction, but being headed off by Kavanagh. Scheepers turned in the direction of Cape Town, but swerved aside at Montagu, and moved northwards towards Touws River.

At the start of August, French’s coordinated efforts began to have an impact. The British were pushing north in a large semicircle, driving the guerillas ahead of them. In his usual unpredictable manner, Scheepers had broken away to the south, but the rest were unable to get through the cordon and were driven over the Stormberg to the Naauwport line. From August 7th to August 10th, the main group of Boers was quickly moved from Graaf-Reinet to Thebus, crossing the railway line there with some losses and a significant number of horses gone. It was hoped that the blockhouses along the railroad would hold off the enemy, but they crossed at night and entered the Steynsburg area, where Gorringe's troops took up the chase. On August 18th, he followed the commandos from Steynsburg to Venterstad, killing twenty and capturing several. On the 15th, Kritzinger and the main group of invaders crossed the Orange River near Bethulie and moved towards the Wepener area in the Orange River Colony. Scheepers, Lotter, Lategan, and a few small, roaming bands were the only Boers left in the Colony, and the British columns turned their attention to them, resulting in Lategan being forced over the river by the end of the month. For now, the situation seemed to have improved significantly, but there was a flow of Boers moving over the northwestern border, and the ongoing conflict at their doorsteps was certainly having a troubling effect on the Dutch farmers. Small victories, like Theron’s capture of sixty of French’s Scouts on August 10th, helped prevent them from losing hope. Among the remaining guerilla groups, Scheepers’ was the most significant, with 300 well-mounted and well-supplied men. He had broken back through the cordon, returning to his old haunts in the southwest. Theron, with a smaller group, was also in the Uniondale and Willowmore district, getting close to the coast in the Mossel Bay area but was blocked by Kavanagh. Scheepers headed toward Cape Town but detoured at Montagu and moved north toward Touws River.

So far the British had succeeded in driving and injuring, but never in destroying, the Boer bands. It was a new departure therefore when, upon September 4th, the commando of Lotter was entirely destroyed by the column of Scobell. This column consisted of some of the Cape Mounted Rifles and of the indefatigable 9th Lancers. It marked the enemy down in a valley to the west of Cradock and attacked them in the morning, after having secured all the approaches. The result was a complete success. The Boers threw themselves into a building and held out valiantly, but their position was impossible, and after enduring considerable punishment they were forced to hoist the white flag. Eleven had been killed, forty-six wounded, and fifty-six surrendered—figures which are in themselves a proof of the tenacity of their defence. Lotter was among the prisoners, 260 horses were taken, and a good supply of ammunition, with some dynamite. A few days later, on September 10th, a similar blow, less final in its character, was dealt by Colonel Crabbe to the commando of Van der Merve, which was an offshoot of that of Scheepers. The action was fought near Laingsburg, which is on the main line, just north of Matjesfontein, and it ended in the scattering of the Boer band, the death of their boy leader (he was only eighteen years of age), and the capture of thirty-seven prisoners. Seventy of the Boers escaped by a hidden road. To Colonials and Yeomanry belongs the honour of the action, which cost the British force seven casualties. Colonel Crabbe pushed on after the success, and on September 14th he was in touch with Scheepers's commando near Ladismith (not to be confused with the historical town of Natal), and endured and inflicted some losses. On the 17th a patrol of Grenadier Guards was captured in the north of the Colony, Rebow, the young lieutenant in charge of them, meeting with a soldier's death.

So far, the British had managed to push back and wound the Boer groups, but they had never completely destroyed them. This changed on September 4th, when Lotter's commando was entirely wiped out by Scobell's column. This column included some of the Cape Mounted Rifles and the tireless 9th Lancers. They tracked the enemy to a valley west of Cradock and attacked them in the morning after securing all the routes. The outcome was a complete victory. The Boers took refuge in a building and fought bravely, but their situation was hopeless, and after enduring significant losses, they were forced to raise the white flag. Eleven were killed, forty-six were wounded, and fifty-six surrendered—numbers that highlight the determination of their defense. Lotter was among the captured, along with 260 horses and a considerable amount of ammunition, including some dynamite. A few days later, on September 10th, Colonel Crabbe dealt a similar blow, though not as decisive, to Van der Merve's commando, which was an offshoot of Scheepers's. The confrontation occurred near Laingsburg, located along the main line just north of Matjesfontein, ending with the scattering of the Boer group, the death of their young leader (who was only eighteen), and the capture of thirty-seven prisoners. Seventy of the Boers escaped via a hidden path. The credit for this action goes to the Colonials and Yeomanry, which cost the British forces seven casualties. Colonel Crabbe continued his pursuit after this success, and by September 14th, he made contact with Scheepers's commando near Ladismith (not to be confused with the historical town in Natal) and sustained and inflicted some losses. On the 17th, a patrol of Grenadier Guards was captured in the northern part of the Colony, and Rebow, the young lieutenant in charge, met his fate as a soldier.

On the same day a more serious engagement occurred near Tarkastad, a place which lies to the east of Cradock, a notorious centre of disaffection in the midland district. Smuts's commando, some hundreds strong, was marked down in this part, and several forces converged upon it. One of the outlets, Elands River Poort, was guarded by a single squadron of the 17th Lancers. Upon this the Boers made a sudden and very fierce attack, their approach being facilitated partly by the mist and partly by the use of khaki, a trick which seems never to have grown too stale for successful use. The result was that they were able to ride up to the British camp before any preparations had been made for resistance, and to shoot down a number of the Lancers before they could reach their horses. So terrible was the fire that the single squadron lost thirty-four killed and thirty-six wounded. But the regiment may console itself for the disaster by the fact that the sorely stricken detachment remained true to the spirited motto of the corps, and that no prisoners appear to have been lost.

On the same day, a more serious confrontation took place near Tarkastad, a location east of Cradock, which was known for its discontent in the midland region. Smuts's commando, numbering in the hundreds, was located in this area, and several forces were moving in on it. One of the exits, Elands River Poort, was protected by just one squadron of the 17th Lancers. The Boers launched a sudden and fierce attack, aided partly by the fog and partly by their use of khaki, a tactic that never seemed to lose its effectiveness. As a result, they were able to approach the British camp before any defensive measures could be taken and shot down several Lancers before they could reach their horses. The intensity of the attack was such that the squadron suffered thirty-four deaths and thirty-six injuries. However, the regiment could take solace in the fact that the hard-hit unit remained loyal to their corps's proud motto, and no prisoners appear to have been taken.

After this one sharp engagement there ensued several weeks during which the absence of historical events, or the presence of the military censor, caused a singular lull in the account of the operations. With so many small commandos and so many pursuing columns it is extraordinary that there should not have been a constant succession of actions. That there was not must indicate a sluggishness upon the part of the pursuers, and this sluggishness can only be explained by the condition of their horses. Every train of thought brings the critic back always to the great horse question, and encourages the conclusion that there, at all seasons of the war and in all scenes of it, is to be found the most damning indictment against British foresight, common-sense, and power of organisation. That the third year of the war should dawn without the British forces having yet got the legs of the Boers, after having penetrated every portion of their country and having the horses of the world on which to draw, is the most amazingly inexplicable point in the whole of this strange campaign. From the telegram 'Infantry preferred' addressed to a nation of rough-riders, down to the failure to secure the excellent horses on the spot, while importing them unfit for use from the ends of the earth, there has been nothing but one long series of blunders in this, the most vital question of all. Even up to the end, in the Colony the obvious lesson had not yet been learnt that it is better to give 1000 men two horses each, and to let them reach the enemy, than give 2000 men one horse each, with which they can never attain their object. The chase during two years of the man with two horses by the man with one horse, has been a sight painful to ourselves and ludicrous to others.

After this intense battle, there followed several weeks where the lack of significant events, or the presence of military censors, led to a strange quiet in the reporting of operations. With so many small commandos and pursuing forces, it's surprising there wasn’t a continuous series of encounters. The fact that there wasn't suggests that the pursuers were sluggish, which can only be attributed to the state of their horses. Every line of reasoning brings critics back to the critical issue of horses, leading to the conclusion that this is the most damning indictment of British foresight, common sense, and organizational ability throughout the war. The fact that three years into the war, British forces still hadn’t matched the speed of the Boers, after having traversed their entire territory with access to the best horses, is the most baffling aspect of this entire campaign. From the telegram stating 'Infantry preferred' sent to a nation of horse riders, to the failure to secure great horses locally while importing unsuitable ones from around the world, it has been nothing but a long string of mistakes in this, the most crucial issue of all. Even by the end, in the Colony, the obvious lesson remained unlearned: it’s better to give 1000 men two horses each and let them reach the enemy than to give 2000 men one horse each, which won’t allow them to achieve their goals. The chase over two years by a man with two horses against a man with one horse has been both painful for us and ridiculous to others.

In connection with this account of operations within the Colony, there is one episode which occurred in the extreme north-west which will not fit in with this connected narrative, but which will justify the distraction of the reader's intelligence, for few finer deeds of arms are recorded in the war. This was the heroic defence of a convoy by the 14th Company of Irish Imperial Yeomanry. The convoy was taking food to Griquatown, on the Kimberley side of the seat of war. The town had been long invested by Conroy, and the inhabitants were in such straits that it was highly necessary to relieve them. To this end a convoy, two miles long, was despatched under Major Humby of the Irish Yeomanry. The escort consisted of seventy-five Northumberland Fusiliers, twenty-four local troops, and 100 of the 74th Irish Yeomanry. Fifteen miles from Griquatown, at a place called Rooikopjes, the convoy was attacked by the enemy several hundred in number. Two companies of the Irishmen seized the ridge, however, which commanded the wagons, and held it until they were almost exterminated. The position was covered with bush, and the two parties came to the closest of quarters, the Yeomen refusing to take a backward step, though it was clear that they were vastly outnumbered. Encouraged by the example of Madan and Ford, their gallant young leaders, they deliberately sacrificed their lives in order to give time for the guns to come up and for the convoy to pass. Oliffe, Bonynge, and Maclean, who had been children together, were shot side by side on the ridge, and afterwards buried in one grave. Of forty-three men in action, fourteen were killed and twenty severely wounded. Their sacrifice was not in vain, however. The Boers were beaten back, and the convoy, as well as Griquatown, was saved. Some thirty or forty Boers were killed or wounded in the skirmish, and Conroy, their leader, declared that it was the stiffest fight of his life.

In relation to this account of events in the Colony, there’s one episode from the far northwest that doesn’t quite fit into the overall story but deserves the reader’s attention, as it highlights one of the bravest actions recorded in the war. This was the heroic defense of a convoy by the 14th Company of Irish Imperial Yeomanry. The convoy was carrying food to Griquatown, on the Kimberley side of the conflict. The town had been under siege by Conroy for a long time, and the residents were in dire straits, making it critical to relieve them. To achieve this, a convoy stretching two miles was sent out under Major Humby of the Irish Yeomanry. The escort included seventy-five Northumberland Fusiliers, twenty-four local troops, and 100 from the 74th Irish Yeomanry. Fifteen miles from Griquatown, at a location called Rooikopjes, the convoy was attacked by several hundred enemy soldiers. However, two companies of the Irishmen took control of the ridge that overlooked the wagons and held their ground until they were nearly wiped out. The area was dense with bushes, and the two groups fought at very close quarters, with the Yeomen refusing to retreat despite being vastly outnumbered. Inspired by the bravery of their young leaders, Madan and Ford, they willingly sacrificed their lives to buy time for the artillery to arrive and for the convoy to move forward. Oliffe, Bonynge, and Maclean, who had grown up together, were shot side by side on the ridge and later buried in the same grave. Out of the forty-three men involved in the fight, fourteen were killed, and twenty suffered serious injuries. Their sacrifice was not in vain. The Boers were pushed back, and both the convoy and Griquatown were saved. Approximately thirty or forty Boers were killed or injured in the clash, and Conroy, their leader, remarked that it was the toughest battle he had ever fought.

In the autumn and winter of 1901 General French had steadily pursued the system of clearing certain districts, one at a time, and endeavouring by his blockhouses and by the arrangement of his forces to hold in strict quarantine those sections of the country which were still infested by the commandos. In this manner he succeeded by the November of this year in confining the active forces of the enemy to the extreme north-east and to the south-west of the peninsula. It is doubtful if the whole Boer force, three-quarters of whom were colonial rebels, amounted to more than fifteen hundred men. When we learn that at this period of the war they were indifferently armed, and that many of them were mounted upon donkeys, it is impossible, after making every allowance for the passive assistance of the farmers, and the difficulties of the country, to believe that the pursuit was always pushed with the spirit and vigour which was needful.

In the fall and winter of 1901, General French consistently focused on clearing specific areas, one at a time, and trying to contain those parts of the country still plagued by the commandos through his blockhouses and troop arrangements. By November of that year, he managed to confine the enemy's active forces to the far north-east and the south-west of the peninsula. It's questionable whether the entire Boer force, three-quarters of whom were colonial rebels, numbered more than fifteen hundred men. Given that during this stage of the war they were poorly armed and many of them rode on donkeys, it's hard to believe, even considering the farmers' passive support and the challenging terrain, that the pursuit was always carried out with the determination and energy that was required.

In the north-east, Myburgh, Wessels, and the truculent Fouche were allowed almost a free hand for some months, while the roving bands were rounded up in the midlands and driven along until they were west of the main railroad. Here, in the Calvinia district, several commandos united in October 1901 under Maritz, Louw, Smit, and Theron. Their united bands rode down into the rich grain-growing country round Piquetberg and Malmesbury, pushing south until it seemed as if their academic supporters at Paarl were actually to have a sight of the rebellion which they had fanned to a flame. At one period their patrols were within forty miles of Cape Town. The movement was checked, however, by a small force of Lancers and district troops, and towards the end of October, Maritz, who was chief in this quarter, turned northwards, and on the 29th captured a small British convoy which crossed his line of march. Early in November he doubled back and attacked Piquetberg, but was beaten off with some loss. From that time a steady pressure from the south and east drove these bands farther and farther into the great barren lands of the west, until, in the following April, they had got as far as Namaqualand, many hundred miles away.

In the northeast, Myburgh, Wessels, and the aggressive Fouche were given almost complete freedom for several months while the roaming groups were rounded up in the midlands and pushed until they were west of the main railroad. In the Calvinia district, several commandos came together in October 1901 under Maritz, Louw, Smit, and Theron. Their combined forces moved into the fertile grain-growing areas around Piquetberg and Malmesbury, advancing south until it looked like their academic supporters in Paarl would actually get to see the rebellion they had sparked. At one point, their patrols were only forty miles from Cape Town. However, the movement was stopped by a small force of Lancers and local troops, and by the end of October, Maritz, the leader in this area, headed north and captured a small British convoy that crossed his path on the 29th. In early November, he turned back and attacked Piquetberg but was repelled with some losses. From that time on, a steady pressure from the south and east forced these groups deeper into the vast barren areas of the west until, by the following April, they had made it to Namaqualand, several hundred miles away.

Upon October 9th, the second anniversary of the Ultimatum, the hands of the military were strengthened by the proclamation of Cape Town and all the seaport towns as being in a state of martial law. By this means a possible source of supplies and recruits for the enemy was effectually blocked. That it had not been done two years before is a proof of how far local political considerations can be allowed to over-ride the essentials of Imperial policy. Meanwhile treason courts were sitting, and sentences, increasing rapidly from the most trivial to the most tragic, were teaching the rebel that his danger did not end upon the field of battle. The execution of Lotter and his lieutenants was a sign that the patience of a long-suffering Empire had at last reached an end.

On October 9th, the second anniversary of the Ultimatum, the military gained more power with the announcement that Cape Town and all coastal towns would be under martial law. This effectively blocked a potential source of supplies and recruits for the enemy. The fact that this wasn't done two years earlier shows how much local political concerns can overshadow the core needs of national policy. Meanwhile, treason courts were in session, and sentences, which were rapidly escalating from minor to severe, taught rebels that their risks extended beyond the battlefield. The execution of Lotter and his lieutenants signaled that the patience of a long-suffering nation had finally run out.

The young Boer leader, Scheepers, had long been a thorn in the side of the British. He had infested the southern districts for some months, and he had distinguished himself both by the activity of his movements and by the ruthless vigour of some of his actions. Early in October a serious illness and consequent confinement to his bed brought him at last within the range of British mobility. On his recovery he was tried for repeated breaches of the laws of war, including the murder of several natives. He was condemned to death, and was executed in December. Much sympathy was excited by his gallantry and his youth—he was only twenty-three. On the other hand, our word was pledged to protect the natives, and if he whose hand had been so heavy upon them escaped, all confidence would have been lost in our promises and our justice. That British vengeance was not indiscriminate was shown soon afterwards in the case of a more important commander, Kritzinger, who was the chief leader of the Boers within Cape Colony. Kritzinger was wounded and captured while endeavouring to cross the line near Hanover Road upon December 15th. He was put upon his trial, and his fate turned upon how far he was responsible for the misdeeds of some of his subordinates. It was clearly shown that he had endeavoured to hold them within the bounds of civilised warfare, and with congratulations and handshakings he was acquitted by the military court.

The young Boer leader, Scheepers, had long been a thorn in the side of the British. He had been active in the southern districts for several months, making a name for himself through his quick movements and the harshness of some of his actions. In early October, a serious illness forced him to stay in bed, making him vulnerable to British forces. After he recovered, he was put on trial for repeatedly breaking the laws of war, including the murder of several natives. He was sentenced to death and executed in December. Many felt sympathy for him because of his bravery and youth—he was only twenty-three. However, we had promised to protect the natives, and if someone who had harmed them so severely were to escape, it would lead to a complete loss of trust in our promises and our justice. British retaliation was not random, as demonstrated soon after with the case of a more significant Boer commander, Kritzinger, who was the chief leader of the Boers in Cape Colony. Kritzinger was wounded and captured while trying to cross the line near Hanover Road on December 15th. He was put on trial, and his outcome depended on how accountable he was for the actions of some of his subordinates. It was clearly shown that he had tried to keep them within the limits of civilized warfare, and with congratulations and handshakes, he was acquitted by the military court.

In the last two months of the year 1901, a new system was introduced into the Cape Colony campaign by placing the Colonial and district troops immediately under the command of Colonial officers and of the Colonial Government. It had long been felt that some devolution was necessary, and the change was justified by the result. Without any dramatic incident, an inexorable process of attrition, caused by continual pursuit and hardship, wore out the commandos. Large bands had become small ones, and small ones had vanished. Only by the union of several bodies could any enterprise higher than the looting of a farmhouse be successfully attempted.

In the last two months of 1901, a new system was put in place for the Cape Colony campaign by placing the colonial and district troops directly under the command of colonial officers and the colonial government. It had long been recognized that some decentralization was needed, and the change proved to be effective. Without any major events, an unrelenting process of wear and tear, driven by constant pursuit and hardship, gradually diminished the commandos. Large groups shrank to small ones, and small ones disappeared entirely. Only by joining several groups could any operation beyond raiding a farmhouse be successfully executed.

Such a union occurred, however, in the early days of February 1902, when Smuts, Malan, and several other Boer leaders showed great activity in the country round Calvinia. Their commandos seem to have included a proportion of veteran Republicans from the north, who were more formidable fighting material than the raw Colonial rebels. It happened that several dangerously weak British columns were operating within reach at that time, and it was only owing to the really admirable conduct of the troops that a serious disaster was averted. Two separate actions, each of them severe, were fought on the same date, and in each case the Boers were able to bring very superior numbers into the field.

Such a union happened in early February 1902, when Smuts, Malan, and several other Boer leaders were very active in the area around Calvinia. Their groups seemed to include a number of experienced Republicans from the north, who were tougher fighters than the inexperienced Colonial rebels. At that time, several dangerously weak British units were operating nearby, and it was only due to the truly commendable performance of the troops that a major disaster was avoided. Two separate intense battles took place on the same day, and in each case, the Boers were able to field significantly larger forces.

The first of these was the fight in which Colonel Doran's column extricated itself with severe loss from a most perilous plight. The whole force under Doran consisted of 350 men with two guns, and this handful was divided by an expedition which he, with 150 men, undertook in order to search a distant farm. The remaining two hundred men, under Captain Saunders, were left upon February 5th with the guns and the convoy at a place called Middlepost, which lies about fifty miles south-west of Calvinia. These men were of the 11th, 23rd, and 24th Imperial Yeomanry, with a troop of Cape Police. The Boer Intelligence was excellent, as might be expected in a country which is dotted with farms. The weakened force at Middlepost was instantly attacked by Smuts's commando. Saunders evacuated the camp and abandoned the convoy, which was the only thing he could do, but he concentrated all his efforts upon preserving his guns. The night was illuminated by the blazing wagons, and made hideous by the whoops of the drunken rebels who caroused among the captured stores. With the first light of dawn the small British force was fiercely assailed on all sides, but held its own in a manner which would have done credit to any troops. The much criticised Yeomen fought like veterans. A considerable position had to be covered, and only a handful of men were available at the most important points. One ridge, from which the guns would be enfiladed, was committed to the charge of Lieutenants Tabor and Chichester with eleven men of the 11th Imperial Yeomanry, their instructions being 'to hold it to the death.' The order was obeyed with the utmost heroism. After a desperate defence the ridge was only taken by the Boers when both officers had been killed and nine out of eleven men were on the ground. In spite of the loss of this position the fight was still sustained until shortly after midday, when Doran with the patrol returned. The position was still most dangerous, the losses had been severe, and the Boers were increasing in strength. An immediate retreat was ordered, and the small column, after ten days of hardship and anxiety, reached the railway line in safety. The wounded were left to the care of Smuts, who behaved with chivalry and humanity.

The first event was the battle where Colonel Doran's unit managed to escape from a very dangerous situation but suffered heavy losses. Doran's entire force included 350 men with two guns. He split this group by leading an expedition with 150 men to investigate a distant farm. The remaining 200 men, under Captain Saunders, stayed on February 5th with the guns and the convoy at a location called Middlepost, which is about fifty miles southwest of Calvinia. These soldiers were from the 11th, 23rd, and 24th Imperial Yeomanry, along with a troop of Cape Police. The Boer Intelligence was remarkably good, as you would expect in an area filled with farms. The weakened force at Middlepost was quickly attacked by Smuts's commando. Saunders evacuated the camp and abandoned the convoy, which was the only option he had, but he focused all his efforts on keeping his guns safe. The night lit up with burning wagons, and the sounds of drunken rebels celebrating among the captured supplies filled the air. At dawn, the small British force faced fierce attacks from all sides but held their ground impressively, worthy of any troops. The often-criticized Yeomen fought like seasoned soldiers. They had to cover a significant area with only a few men available at the most critical points. One ridge, where the guns would be exposed to fire, was entrusted to Lieutenants Tabor and Chichester, who had eleven men from the 11th Imperial Yeomanry. Their orders were to "hold it to the death." They followed the orders with extraordinary bravery. After a fierce fight, the Boers only took the ridge after both officers were killed and only two out of the eleven men remained standing. Despite losing that position, the fight continued until shortly after midday when Doran returned with the patrol. The situation was still quite risky, the losses had been significant, and the Boers were gaining strength. An immediate retreat was ordered, and after ten days of hardship and worry, the small unit reached the railway line safely. The wounded were left in the care of Smuts, who acted with honor and compassion.

At about the same date a convoy proceeding from Beaufort West to Fraserburg was attacked by Malan's commando. The escort, which consisted of sixty Colonial Mounted Rifles and 100 of the West Yorkshire militia, was overwhelmed after a good defence, in which Major Crofton, their commander, was killed. The wagons were destroyed, but the Boers were driven off by the arrival of Crabbe's column, followed by those of Capper and Lund. The total losses of the British in these two actions amounted to twenty-three killed and sixty-five wounded.

At around the same time, a convoy traveling from Beaufort West to Fraserburg was attacked by Malan's commando. The escort, made up of sixty Colonial Mounted Rifles and 100 members of the West Yorkshire militia, was overpowered after putting up a strong defense, during which their commander, Major Crofton, was killed. The wagons were destroyed, but the Boers were pushed back by the arrival of Crabbe's column, followed by those of Capper and Lund. The total British casualties in these two engagements were twenty-three killed and sixty-five wounded.

The re-establishment of settled law and order was becoming more marked every week in those south-western districts, which had long been most disturbed. Colonel Crewe in this region, and Colonel Lukin upon the other side of the line, acting entirely with Colonial troops, were pushing back the rebels, and holding, by a well-devised system of district defence, all that they had gained. By the end of February there were none of the enemy south of the Beaufort West and Clanwilliam line. These results were not obtained without much hard marching and a little hard fighting. Small columns under Crabbe, Capper, Wyndham, Nickall, and Lund, were continually on the move, with little to show for it save an ever-widening area of settled country in their rear. In a skirmish on February 20th Judge Hugo, a well-known Boer leader, was killed, and Vanheerden, a notorious rebel, was captured. At the end of this month Fouche's tranquil occupation of the north-east was at last disturbed, and he was driven out of it into the midlands, where he took refuge with the remains of his commando in the Camdeboo Mountains. Malan's men had already sought shelter in the same natural fortress. Malan was wounded and taken in a skirmish near Somerset East a few days before the general Boer surrender. Fouche gave himself up at Cradock on June 2nd.

The re-establishment of law and order was becoming more evident every week in those south-western districts that had been most troubled for a long time. Colonel Crewe in this area, and Colonel Lukin on the other side of the line, working solely with Colonial troops, were pushing back the rebels and maintaining control through a well-planned system of district defense, keeping all that they had gained. By the end of February, there were no enemies south of the Beaufort West and Clanwilliam line. These achievements didn’t come easy; they required a lot of hard marching and some tough fighting. Small groups led by Crabbe, Capper, Wyndham, Nickall, and Lund were constantly on the move, with little to show for it other than an ever-growing area of secured territory behind them. In a skirmish on February 20th, Judge Hugo, a prominent Boer leader, was killed, and Vanheerden, a notorious rebel, was captured. By the end of this month, Fouche's peaceful hold on the north-east was finally disrupted, forcing him into the midlands, where he sought refuge with the remnants of his commando in the Camdeboo Mountains. Malan's men had already found shelter in the same natural stronghold. Malan was wounded and captured in a skirmish near Somerset East just days before the overall Boer surrender. Fouche surrendered in Cradock on June 2nd.

The last incident of this scattered, scrambling, unsatisfactory campaign in the Cape peninsula was the raid made by Smuts, the Transvaal leader, into the Port Nolloth district of Namaqualand, best known for its copper mines. A small railroad has been constructed from the coast at this point, the terminus being the township of Ookiep. The length of the line is about seventy miles. It is difficult to imagine what the Boers expected to gain in this remote corner of the seat of war, unless they had conceived the idea that they might actually obtain possession of Port Nolloth itself, and so restore the communications with their sympathisers and allies. At the end of March the Boer horsemen appeared suddenly out of the desert, drove in the British outposts, and summoned Ookiep to surrender. Colonel Shelton, who commanded the small garrison, sent an uncompromising reply, but he was unable to protect the railway in his rear, which was wrecked, together with some of the blockhouses which had been erected to guard it. The loyal population of the surrounding country had flocked into Ookiep, and the Commandant found himself burdened with the care of six thousand people. The enemy had succeeded in taking the small post of Springbok, and Concordia, the mining centre, was surrendered into their hands without resistance, giving them welcome supplies of arms, ammunition, and dynamite. The latter was used by the Boers in the shape of hand-bombs, and proved to be a very efficient weapon when employed against blockhouses. Several of the British defences were wrecked by them, with considerable loss to the garrison; but in the course of a month's siege, in spite of several attacks, the Boers were never able to carry the frail works which guarded the town. Once more, at the end of the war as at the beginning of it, there was shown the impotence of the Dutch riflemen against a British defence. A relief column, under Colonel Cooper, was quickly organised at Port Nolloth, and advanced along the railway line, forcing Smuts to raise the siege in the first week of May. Immediately afterwards came the news of the negotiations for peace, and the Boer general presented himself at Port Nolloth, whence he was conveyed by ship to Cape Town, and so north again to take part in the deliberations of his fellow-countrymen. Throughout the war he had played a manly and honourable part. It may be hoped that with youth and remarkable experience, both of diplomacy and of war, he may now find a long and brilliant career awaiting him in a wider arena than that for which he strove.

The final event of this disorganized, chaotic, and disappointing campaign in the Cape Peninsula was the raid led by Smuts, the leader from Transvaal, into the Port Nolloth area of Namaqualand, known for its copper mines. A small railway has been built from the coast here, with its endpoint in the town of Ookiep. The length of the line is about seventy miles. It's hard to see what the Boers hoped to achieve in this isolated part of the war zone, unless they thought they could actually take control of Port Nolloth itself, thus restoring their connections with sympathizers and allies. At the end of March, Boer horsemen suddenly emerged from the desert, pushed back the British outposts, and demanded that Ookiep surrender. Colonel Shelton, who was in charge of the small garrison, sent a firm response, but he couldn't protect the railway behind him, which was destroyed, along with some of the blockhouses erected for its defense. The loyal residents from the surrounding areas had gathered in Ookiep, and the Commandant found himself responsible for six thousand people. The enemy succeeded in capturing the small post of Springbok, and Concordia, the mining hub, surrendered without resistance, providing them with much-needed supplies of weaponry, ammunition, and dynamite. The Boers used the dynamite as hand-bombs, which turned out to be an effective weapon against the blockhouses. Several of the British defenses were destroyed by them, causing significant losses to the garrison; however, during the month-long siege, despite several attacks, the Boers were never able to take the weak structures protecting the town. Once again, at the end of the war as at the beginning, the inadequacy of the Dutch riflemen against a British defense was evident. A relief column, led by Colonel Cooper, was quickly organized at Port Nolloth and moved along the railway line, forcing Smuts to abandon the siege in the first week of May. Soon after, news of peace negotiations came through, and the Boer general arrived at Port Nolloth, where he was transported by ship to Cape Town and then north again to participate in discussions with his fellow countrymen. Throughout the war, he had performed in a brave and honorable manner. One can hope that with his youth and remarkable experience in both diplomacy and warfare, he will find a long and successful career ahead of him in a broader arena than that for which he fought.





CHAPTER 36. THE SPRING CAMPAIGN (SEPTEMBER TO DECEMBER, 1901).

The history of the war during the African winter of 1901 has now been sketched, and some account given of the course of events in the Transvaal, the Orange River Colony, and the Cape Colony. The hope of the British that they might stamp out resistance before the grass should restore mobility to the larger bodies of Boers was destined to be disappointed. By the middle of September the veld had turned from drab to green, and the great drama was fated to last for one more act, however anxious all the British and the majority of the Boers might be to ring down the curtain. Exasperating as this senseless prolongation of a hopeless struggle might be, there was still some consolation in the reflection that those who drank this bitter cup to the very lees would be less likely to thirst for it again.

The history of the war during the African winter of 1901 has now been outlined, and an overview of the events in the Transvaal, the Orange River Colony, and the Cape Colony has been provided. The British hoped they could crush the resistance before the grass grew back and allowed larger groups of Boers to move freely, but that hope was not realized. By mid-September, the dry land had transformed into green, and the major conflict was set to drag on for one more act, no matter how much the British and most of the Boers wanted to end it. Frustrating as this pointless prolongation of a losing battle might be, there was some comfort in the thought that those who endured this bitter experience to its end would be less likely to crave it again.

September 15th was the date which brought into force the British Proclamation announcing the banishment of those Boer leaders who continued in arms. It must be confessed that this step may appear harsh and unchivalrous to the impartial observer, so long as those leaders were guilty of no practices which are foreign to the laws of civilised warfare. The imposition of personal penalties upon the officers of an opposing army is a step for which it is difficult to quote a precedent, nor is it wise to officially rule your enemy outside the pale of ordinary warfare, since it is equally open to him to take the same step against you. The only justification for such a course would be its complete success, as this would suggest that the Intelligence Department were aware that the leaders desired some strong excuse for coming in—such an excuse as the Proclamation would afford. The result proved that nothing of the kind was needed, and the whole proceeding must appear to be injudicious and high-handed. In honourable war you conquer your adversary by superior courage, strength, or wit, but you do not terrorise him by particular penalties aimed at individuals. The burghers of the Transvaal and of the late Orange Free State were legitimate belligerents, and to be treated as such—a statement which does not, of course, extend to the Afrikander rebels who were their allies.

September 15th marked the start of the British Proclamation that announced the exile of those Boer leaders who continued to fight. It's true this move might seem harsh and unchivalrous to an unbiased observer, especially since those leaders weren't guilty of actions outside the laws of civilized warfare. Imposing personal penalties on the officers of an opposing army is a difficult precedent to justify, and it's unwise to officially exclude your enemy from the norms of ordinary warfare, as they could just as easily do the same to you. The only reason to justify such a decision would be if it succeeded completely, suggesting that the Intelligence Department knew the leaders needed a strong reason to surrender—like the one the Proclamation would provide. However, the outcome showed that nothing of the sort was necessary, making the whole action seem unwise and heavy-handed. In honorable warfare, you defeat your opponent through superior courage, strength, or intelligence, not by intimidating them with specific penalties targeted at individuals. The burghers of the Transvaal and the former Orange Free State were legitimate combatants and should be treated as such—a claim that doesn't, of course, apply to the Afrikander rebels who were their allies.

The tendency of the British had been to treat their antagonists as a broken and disorganised banditti, but with the breaking of the spring they were sharply reminded that the burghers were still capable of a formidable and coherent effort. The very date which put them beyond the pale as belligerents was that which they seem to have chosen in order to prove what active and valiant soldiers they still remained. A quick succession of encounters occurred at various parts of the seat of war, the general tendency of which was not entirely in favour of the British arms, though the weekly export of prisoners reassured all who noted it as to the sapping and decay of the Boer strength. These incidents must now be set down in the order of their occurrence, with their relation to each other so far as it is possible to trace it.

The British had a habit of viewing their opponents as a shattered and disorganized group of bandits, but with the arrival of spring, they were quickly reminded that the burghers were still capable of a strong and united effort. Ironically, the very date that marked them as enemies was the one they seemed to have chosen to demonstrate that they were still active and brave soldiers. A series of clashes happened in different areas of the battlefield, and while the overall trend wasn’t entirely in favor of the British, the weekly capture of prisoners reassured those who noticed that the Boer strength was waning. These events will now be recorded in the order they happened, and we'll explore their connections where possible.

General Louis Botha, with the double intention of making an offensive move and of distracting the wavering burghers from a close examination of Lord Kitchener's proclamation, assembled his forces in the second week of September in the Ermelo district. Thence he moved them rapidly towards Natal, with the result that the volunteers of that colony had once more to grasp their rifles and hasten to the frontier. The whole situation bore for an instant an absurd resemblance to that of two years before—Botha playing the part of Joubert, and Lyttelton, who commanded on the frontier, that of White. It only remained, to make the parallel complete, that some one should represent Penn Symons, and this perilous role fell to a gallant officer, Major Gough, commanding a detached force which thought itself strong enough to hold its own, and only learned by actual experiment that it was not.

General Louis Botha, aiming both to launch an offensive and to distract the uncertain burghers from a close look at Lord Kitchener's proclamation, gathered his troops in the Ermelo district during the second week of September. He then quickly moved them toward Natal, prompting the volunteers from that colony to once again grab their rifles and rush to the frontier. For a moment, the entire situation absurdly resembled that of two years earlier—Botha taking on the role of Joubert, while Lyttelton, who was leading at the frontier, played the part of White. To completely mirror the situation, someone needed to represent Penn Symons, a risky role taken on by the brave Major Gough, who was in charge of a separate force that believed it was strong enough to defend itself, only to find out through experience that it wasn’t.

This officer, with a small force consisting of three companies of Mounted Infantry with two guns of the 69th R.F.A., was operating in the neighbourhood of Utrecht in the south-eastern corner of the Transvaal, on the very path along which Botha must descend. On September 17th he had crossed De Jagers Drift on the Blood River, not very far from Dundee, when he found himself in touch with the enemy. His mission was to open a path for an empty convoy returning from Vryheid, and in order to do so it was necessary that Blood River Poort, where the Boers were now seen, should be cleared. With admirable zeal Gough pushed rapidly forward, supported by a force of 350 Johannesburg Mounted Rifles under Stewart. Such a proceeding must have seemed natural to any British officer at this stage of the war, when a swift advance was the only chance of closing with the small bodies of Boers; but it is strange that the Intelligence Department had not warned the patrols upon the frontier that a considerable force was coming down upon them, and that they should be careful to avoid action against impossible odds. If Gough had known that Botha's main commando was coming down upon him, it is inconceivable that he would have pushed his advance until he could neither extricate his men nor his guns. A small body of the enemy, said to have been the personal escort of Louis Botha, led him on, until a large force was able to ride down upon him from the flank and rear. Surrounded at Scheepers Nek by many hundreds of riflemen in a difficult country, there was no alternative but a surrender, and so sharp and sudden was the Boer advance that the whole action was over in a very short time. The new tactics of the Boers, already used at Vlakfontein, and afterwards to be successful at Brakenlaagte and at Tweebosch, were put in force. A large body of mounted men, galloping swiftly in open order and firing from the saddle, rode into and over the British. Such temerity should in theory have met with severe punishment, but as a matter of fact the losses of the enemy seem to have been very small. The soldiers were not able to return an effective fire from their horses, and had no time to dismount. The sights and breech-blocks of the two guns are said to have been destroyed, but the former statement seems more credible than the latter. A Colt gun was also captured. Of the small force twenty were killed, forty wounded, and over two hundred taken. Stewart's force was able to extricate itself with some difficulty, and to fall back on the Drift. Gough managed to escape that night and to report that it was Botha himself, with over a thousand men, who had eaten up his detachment. The prisoners and wounded were sent in a few days later to Vryheid, a town which appeared to be in some danger of capture had not Walter Kitchener hastened to carry reinforcements to the garrison. Bruce Hamilton was at the same time despatched to head Botha off, and every step taken to prevent his southern advance. So many columns from all parts converged upon the danger spot that Lyttelton, who commanded upon the Natal frontier, had over 20,000 men under his orders.

This officer, with a small force made up of three companies of Mounted Infantry and two guns from the 69th R.F.A., was operating near Utrecht in the southeastern corner of the Transvaal, right on the path that Botha would take. On September 17th, he crossed De Jagers Drift on the Blood River, not far from Dundee, when he encountered the enemy. His mission was to clear a route for an empty convoy returning from Vryheid, which meant he needed to secure Blood River Poort, where the Boers were currently positioned. With impressive determination, Gough pushed ahead quickly, supported by 350 Johannesburg Mounted Rifles under Stewart. This kind of move must have seemed normal to any British officer at this stage of the war, when a rapid advance was the only way to close in on the small groups of Boers; however, it’s odd that the Intelligence Department hadn’t alerted the patrols on the frontier that a significant force was approaching and to be cautious about engaging against overwhelming odds. If Gough had known that Botha's main commando was heading his way, it’s hard to believe he would have advanced so far that he couldn’t pull his men or guns back. A small group of the enemy, reportedly the personal escort of Louis Botha, led him on, until a larger force was able to come at him from the side and behind. Surrounded at Scheepers Nek by hundreds of riflemen in a challenging area, surrender was the only option, and the Boer advance was so quick and intense that the entire engagement was over in no time. The new strategies used by the Boers, already seen at Vlakfontein and later effective at Brakenlaagte and Tweebosch, were now in play. A large group of mounted men, moving rapidly in open formation and firing from the saddle, charged into and over the British forces. Such recklessness should have theoretically been met with heavy consequences, but in reality, the enemy's losses seemed minimal. The soldiers couldn’t mount an effective return fire from their horses and didn’t have time to dismount. The sights and breech-blocks of the two guns were reportedly destroyed, but that claim seems more credible than the latter. A Colt gun was also captured. Of the small force, twenty were killed, forty wounded, and over two hundred taken prisoner. Stewart's force managed to withdraw with some difficulty and fall back to the Drift. Gough managed to escape that night and reported that it was Botha himself, with over a thousand men, who had overwhelmed his detachment. The prisoners and wounded were sent to Vryheid a few days later, a town that seemed at risk of capture had Walter Kitchener not rushed in reinforcements for the garrison. Bruce Hamilton was dispatched at the same time to intercept Botha and take every measure possible to prevent his southern advance. So many columns from all over converged on the danger zone that Lyttelton, who was in command on the Natal frontier, had over 20,000 men under his command.

Botha's plans appear to have been to work through Zululand and then strike at Natal, an operation which would be the more easy as it would be conducted a considerable distance from the railway line. Pushing on a few days after his successful action with Gough, he crossed the Zulu frontier, and had in front of him an almost unimpeded march as far as the Tugela. Crossing this far from the British base of power, his force could raid the Greytown district and raise recruits among the Dutch farmers, laying waste one of the few spots in South Africa which had been untouched by the blight of war. All this lay before him, and in his path nothing save only two small British posts which might be either disregarded or gathered up as he passed. In an evil moment for himself, tempted by the thought of the supplies which they might contain, he stopped to gather them up, and the force of the wave of invasion broke itself as upon two granite rocks.

Botha's plans seemed to involve moving through Zululand and then attacking Natal, an operation that would be easier since it would be carried out far from the railway line. A few days after his successful encounter with Gough, he crossed into Zulu territory and had an almost clear path ahead as far as the Tugela. By crossing this far from the British stronghold, his forces could raid the Greytown area and recruit among the Dutch farmers, devastating one of the few places in South Africa that had remained untouched by war. All of this was ahead of him, with nothing in his way except for two small British posts that he could either ignore or capture as he went by. In a moment of poor judgment, tempted by the potential supplies they might hold, he decided to collect them, and the tide of invasion crashed against these two minor obstacles like waves hitting granite rocks.

These two so-called forts were posts of very modest strength, a chain of which had been erected at the time of the old Zulu war. Fort Itala, the larger, was garrisoned by 300 men of the 5th Mounted Infantry, drawn from the Dublin Fusiliers, Middlesex, Dorsets, South Lancashires, and Lancashire Fusiliers—most of them old soldiers of many battles. They had two guns of the 69th R.F.A., the same battery which had lost a section the week before. Major Chapman, of the Dublins, was in command.

These two so-called forts were very modest outposts, built during the old Zulu war. Fort Itala, the bigger one, was manned by 300 soldiers from the 5th Mounted Infantry, which included troops from the Dublin Fusiliers, Middlesex, Dorsets, South Lancashires, and Lancashire Fusiliers—most were seasoned veterans of many battles. They had two guns from the 69th R.F.A., the same battery that had lost a section the week before. Major Chapman from the Dublins was in charge.

Upon September 25th the small garrison heard that the main force of the Boers was sweeping towards them, and prepared to give them a soldiers' welcome. The fort is situated upon the flank of a hill, on the summit of which, a mile from the main trenches, a strong outpost was stationed. It was upon this that the first force of the attack broke at midnight of September 25th. The garrison, eighty strong, was fiercely beset by several hundred Boers, and the post was eventually carried after a sharp and bloody contest. Kane, of the South Lancashires, died with the words 'No surrender' upon his lips, and Potgieter, a Boer leader, was pistolled by Kane's fellow officer, Lefroy. Twenty of the small garrison fell, and the remainder were overpowered and taken.

On September 25th, the small garrison learned that the main force of the Boers was advancing toward them, and they got ready to give them a warrior's welcome. The fort is located on the side of a hill, where a strong outpost was set up on the summit, a mile from the main trenches. This outpost was the target of the first wave of the attack at midnight on September 25th. The garrison, which had eighty soldiers, was fiercely attacked by several hundred Boers, and the post was eventually taken after a fierce and bloody battle. Kane, from the South Lancashires, died with the words "No surrender" on his lips, and Potgieter, a Boer leader, was shot by Kane's fellow officer, Lefroy. Twenty members of the small garrison were killed, and the rest were overpowered and captured.

With this vantage-ground in their possession the Boers settled down to the task of overwhelming the main position. They attacked upon three sides, and until morning the force was raked from end to end by unseen riflemen. The two British guns were put out of action and the maxim was made unserviceable by a bullet. At dawn there was a pause in the attack, but it recommenced and continued without intermission until sunset. The span betwixt the rising of the sun and its last red glow in the west is a long one for the man who spends it at his ease, but how never-ending must have seemed the hours to this handful of men, outnumbered, surrounded, pelted by bullets, parched with thirst, torn with anxiety, holding desperately on with dwindling numbers to their frail defences! To them it may have seemed a hard thing to endure so much for a tiny fort in a savage land. The larger view of its vital importance could have scarcely come to console the regimental officer, far less the private. But duty carried them through, and they wrought better than they knew, for the brave Dutchmen, exasperated by so disproportionate a resistance, stormed up to the very trenches and suffered as they had not suffered for many a long month. There have been battles with 10,000 British troops hotly engaged in which the Boer losses have not been so great as in this obscure conflict against an isolated post. When at last, baffled and disheartened, they drew off with the waning light, it is said that no fewer than a hundred of their dead and two hundred of their wounded attested the severity of the fight. So strange are the conditions of South African warfare that this loss, which would have hardly made a skirmish memorable in the slogging days of the Peninsula, was one of the most severe blows which the burghers had sustained in the course of a two years' warfare against a large and aggressive army. There is a conflict of evidence as to the exact figures, but at least they were sufficient to beat the Boer army back and to change their plan of campaign.

With this strong position secured, the Boers focused on overwhelming the main stronghold. They launched attacks from three sides, and throughout the night, the troops were targeted by hidden riflemen. The two British artillery pieces were knocked out of action, and a bullet rendered the maxim gun unusable. At dawn, there was a brief pause in the assault, but it resumed and continued relentlessly until sunset. The time from sunrise to the last hint of red in the west feels long for someone relaxing, but for this small group of outnumbered and surrounded men, bombarded by bullets, suffering from thirst, and filled with anxiety while desperately clinging to their fragile defenses, the hours must have felt endless! They may have thought it was a harsh price to pay for such a small fort in a hostile land. The broader perspective on its significance probably didn't bring much comfort to the regimental officer, let alone the private. But they pushed through out of duty, and they performed better than they realized, as the brave Dutchmen, frustrated by such resistant opponents, charged right up to the trenches and suffered more than they had in many months. There have been battles with 10,000 British troops engaged, where Boer losses were less severe than during this obscure struggle against a lone outpost. When the Boers finally withdrew in the fading light, it's reported that at least a hundred of their dead and two hundred wounded reflected the intensity of the fight. The unique conditions of South African warfare make this loss—rarely significant in the grueling battles of the Peninsula—one of the most devastating the burghers had endured during two years of conflict against a large and aggressive army. There are conflicting accounts regarding the exact numbers, but they were enough to drive the Boer army back and alter their campaign strategy.

Whilst this prolonged contest had raged round Fort Itala, a similar attack upon a smaller scale was being made upon Fort Prospect, some fifteen miles to the eastward. This small post was held by a handful of Durham Artillery Militia and of Dorsets. The attack was delivered by Grobler with several hundred burghers, but it made no advance although it was pushed with great vigour, and repeated many times in the course of the day. Captain Rowley, who was in command, handled his men with such judgment that one killed and eight wounded represented his casualties during a long day's fighting. Here again the Boer losses were in proportion to the resolution of their attack, and are said to have amounted to sixty killed and wounded. Considering the impossibility of replacing the men, and the fruitless waste of valuable ammunition, September 26th was an evil day for the Boer cause. The British casualties amounted to seventy-three.

While the lengthy battle raged around Fort Itala, a similar, smaller attack took place at Fort Prospect, about fifteen miles to the east. This small outpost was held by a few members of the Durham Artillery Militia and Dorsets. The assault was led by Grobler with several hundred burghers, but it didn’t make any progress, despite being launched with great energy and repeated multiple times throughout the day. Captain Rowley, who was in charge, managed his troops so well that they only suffered one death and eight injuries during the long day of fighting. Similarly, the Boer losses were proportional to the intensity of their attack, reportedly totaling sixty killed and wounded. Given the difficulty of replacing their men and the pointless depletion of valuable ammunition, September 26th was a bad day for the Boer cause. The British casualties reached seventy-three.

The water of the garrison of Fort Itala had been cut off early in the attack, and their ammunition had run low by evening. Chapman withdrew his men and his guns therefore to Nkandhla, where the survivors of his gallant garrison received the special thanks of Lord Kitchener. The country around was still swarming with Boers, and on the last day of September a convoy from Melmoth fell into their hands and provided them with some badly needed supplies.

The water supply for the garrison at Fort Itala was cut off early in the attack, and by evening, they were low on ammunition. Chapman pulled his men and guns back to Nkandhla, where the surviving members of his brave garrison received special thanks from Lord Kitchener. The surrounding area was still filled with Boers, and on the last day of September, a convoy from Melmoth was captured, providing them with some much-needed supplies.

But the check which he had received was sufficient to prevent any important advance upon the part of Botha, while the swollen state of the rivers put an additional obstacle in his way. Already the British commanders, delighted to have at last discovered a definite objective, were hurrying to the scene of action. Bruce Hamilton had reached Fort Itala upon September 28th and Walter Kitchener had been despatched to Vryheid. Two British forces, aided by smaller columns, were endeavouring to surround the Boer leader. On October 6th Botha had fallen back to the north-east of Vryheid, whither the British forces had followed him. Like De Wet's invasion of the Cape, Botha's advance upon Natal had ended in placing himself and his army in a critical position. On October 9th he had succeeded in crossing the Privaan River, a branch of the Pongolo, and was pushing north in the direction of Piet Retief, much helped by misty weather and incessant rain. Some of his force escaped between the British columns, and some remained in the kloofs and forests of that difficult country.

But the check he received was enough to stop any significant progress from Botha, and the swollen rivers added another obstacle in his path. The British commanders, thrilled to have finally found a clear objective, were rushing to the scene. Bruce Hamilton arrived at Fort Itala on September 28th, and Walter Kitchener was sent to Vryheid. Two British forces, along with smaller groups, were trying to surround the Boer leader. By October 6th, Botha had retreated to the northeast of Vryheid, where the British forces followed. Just like De Wet's invasion of the Cape, Botha's push into Natal had put him and his army in a tough spot. On October 9th, he managed to cross the Privaan River, a branch of the Pongolo, and was moving north toward Piet Retief, aided by foggy weather and constant rain. Some of his troops escaped between the British forces, while others stayed hidden in the kloofs and forests of that challenging terrain.

Walter Kitchener, who had followed up the Boer retreat, had a brisk engagement with the rearguard upon October 6th. The Boers shook themselves clear with some loss, both to themselves and to their pursuers. On the 10th those of the burghers who held together had reached Luneburg, and shortly afterwards they had got completely away from the British columns. The weather was atrocious, and the lumbering wagons, axle-deep in mud, made it impossible for troops who were attached to them to keep in touch with the light riders who sped before them. For some weeks there was no word of the main Boer force, but at the end of that time they reappeared in a manner which showed that both in numbers and in spirit they were still a formidable body.

Walter Kitchener, who had pursued the Boers as they retreated, had a quick clash with the rearguard on October 6th. The Boers managed to break free, suffering losses on both sides. By the 10th, those burghers who stuck together had reached Luneburg, and soon after, they completely evaded the British forces. The weather was terrible, and the heavy wagons, stuck in deep mud, made it impossible for the troops traveling with them to keep up with the fast-moving light riders ahead. For several weeks, there was no word on the main Boer force, but after that time, they reemerged in a way that demonstrated they were still a strong group in both numbers and morale.

Of all the sixty odd British columns which were traversing the Boer states there was not one which had a better record than that commanded by Colonel Benson. During seven months of continuous service this small force, consisting at that time of the Argyle and Sutherland Highlanders, the 2nd Scottish Horse, the 18th and 19th Mounted Infantry, and two guns, had acted with great energy, and had reduced its work to a complete and highly effective system. Leaving the infantry as a camp guard, Benson operated with mounted troops alone, and no Boer laager within fifty miles was safe from his nocturnal visits. So skilful had he and his men become at these night attacks in a strange, and often difficult country, that out of twenty-eight attempts twenty-one resulted in complete success. In each case the rule was simply to gallop headlong into the Boer laager, and to go on chasing as far as the horses could go. The furious and reckless pace may be judged by the fact that the casualties of the force were far greater from falls than from bullets. In seven months forty-seven Boers were killed and six hundred captured, to say nothing of enormous quantities of munitions and stock. The success of these operations was due, not only to the energy of Benson and his men, but to the untiring exertions of Colonel Wools-Sampson, who acted as intelligence officer. If, during his long persecution by President Kruger, Wools-Sampson in the bitterness of his heart had vowed a feud against the Boer cause, it must be acknowledged that he has most amply fulfilled it, for it would be difficult to point to any single man who has from first to last done them greater harm.

Of all the sixty or so British columns operating in the Boer states, none had a better record than the one led by Colonel Benson. Over seven months of continuous service, this small force, which at the time included the Argyle and Sutherland Highlanders, the 2nd Scottish Horse, the 18th and 19th Mounted Infantry, and two artillery pieces, acted with great energy and developed a highly effective system. While leaving the infantry as a camp guard, Benson operated solely with mounted troops, making every Boer camp within fifty miles vulnerable to his nighttime raids. He and his men became so skilled at these night attacks in unfamiliar, often challenging terrain that out of twenty-eight attempts, twenty-one were complete successes. The strategy was straightforward: charge straight into the Boer camp and keep pursuing for as far as the horses could run. The intense speed is reflected in the fact that the force suffered more casualties from falls than from gunfire. In seven months, they killed forty-seven Boers and captured six hundred, not to mention vast quantities of ammunition and livestock. The success of these missions was not only due to the energy of Benson and his men but also to the tireless efforts of Colonel Wools-Sampson, who served as the intelligence officer. If, during his lengthy troubles with President Kruger, Wools-Sampson had sworn vengeance against the Boer cause, he certainly delivered, as it would be hard to find anyone who has done them more damage from start to finish.

In October Colonel Benson's force was reorganised, and it then consisted of the 2nd Buffs, the 2nd Scottish Horse, the 3rd and 25th Mounted Infantry, and four guns of the 84th battery. With this force, numbering nineteen hundred men, he left Middelburg upon the Delagoa line on October 20th and proceeded south, crossing the course along which the Boers, who were retiring from their abortive raid into Natal, might be expected to come. For several days the column performed its familiar work, and gathered up forty or fifty prisoners. On the 26th came news that the Boer commandos under Grobler were concentrating against it, and that an attack in force might be expected. For two days there was continuous sniping, and the column as it moved through the country saw Boer horsemen keeping pace with it on the far flanks and in the rear. The weather had been very bad, and it was in a deluge of cold driving rain that the British set forth upon October 30th, moving towards Brakenlaagte, which is a point about forty miles due south of Middelburg. It was Benson's intention to return to his base.

In October, Colonel Benson's force was reorganized, and it then included the 2nd Buffs, the 2nd Scottish Horse, the 3rd and 25th Mounted Infantry, and four guns from the 84th battery. With this force, totaling nineteen hundred men, he left Middelburg on the Delagoa line on October 20th and headed south, crossing the path along which the Boers, who were retreating from their unsuccessful raid into Natal, were expected to arrive. For several days, the column carried out its usual operations and captured forty or fifty prisoners. On the 26th, news arrived that the Boer commandos under Grobler were gathering against them, and a strong attack was anticipated. For two days, there was constant sniping, and as the column moved through the area, they saw Boer horsemen keeping pace with them on the far sides and in the back. The weather had been very rough, and it was in a downpour of cold, driving rain that the British set out on October 30th, heading towards Brakenlaagte, which is about forty miles directly south of Middelburg. Benson intended to return to his base.

About midday the column, still escorted by large bodies of aggressive Boers, came to a difficult spruit swollen by the rain. Here the wagons stuck, and it took some hours to get them all across. The Boer fire was continually becoming more severe, and had broken out at the head of the column as well as the rear. The situation was rendered more difficult by the violence of the rain, which raised a thick steam from the ground and made it impossible to see for any distance. Major Anley, in command of the rearguard, peering back, saw through a rift of the clouds a large body of horsemen in extended order sweeping after them. 'There's miles of them, begob!' cried an excited Irish trooper. Next instant the curtain had closed once more, but all who had caught a glimpse of that vision knew that a stern struggle was at hand.

About noon, the column, still accompanied by large groups of aggressive Boers, reached a challenging stream swollen from the rain. Here, the wagons got stuck, and it took several hours to get them all across. The Boer fire was growing increasingly intense, flaring up at both the front and the back of the column. The situation was made worse by the heavy rain, which created a thick mist rising from the ground and made it impossible to see far. Major Anley, commanding the rearguard, looked back and through a break in the clouds spotted a large group of horsemen in formation pursuing them. "There’s miles of them, for sure!" shouted an excited Irish trooper. The next moment, the mist closed in again, but everyone who glimpsed that sight understood that a tough fight was coming.

At this moment two guns of the 84th battery under Major Guinness were in action against Boer riflemen. As a rear screen on the farther side of the guns was a body of the Scottish Horse and of the Yorkshire Mounted Infantry. Near the guns themselves were thirty men of the Buffs. The rest of the Buffs and of the Mounted Infantry were out upon the flanks or else were with the advance guard, which was now engaged, under the direction of Colonel Wools-Sampson, in parking the convoy and in forming the camp. These troops played a small part in the day's fighting, the whole force of which broke with irresistible violence upon the few hundred men who were in front of or around the rear guns. Colonel Benson seems to have just ridden back to the danger point when the Boers delivered their furious attack.

At that moment, two guns from the 84th battery under Major Guinness were firing at Boer riflemen. Behind the guns was a group from the Scottish Horse and the Yorkshire Mounted Infantry. Close to the guns, there were thirty men from the Buffs. The rest of the Buffs and the Mounted Infantry were spread out on the flanks or were with the advance guard, which was currently occupied, under Colonel Wools-Sampson's direction, with parking the convoy and setting up camp. These troops had a minor role in the day’s fighting, as the entire force charged with overwhelming force against the few hundred men positioned in front of or around the rear guns. Colonel Benson appeared to have just returned to the danger area when the Boers launched their fierce attack.

Louis Botha with his commando is said to have ridden sixty miles in order to join the forces of Grobler and Oppermann, and overwhelm the British column. It may have been the presence of their commander or a desire to have vengeance for the harrying which they had undergone upon the Natal border, but whatever the reason, the Boer attack was made with a spirit and dash which earned the enthusiastic applause of every soldier who survived to describe it. With the low roar of a great torrent, several hundred horsemen burst through the curtain of mist, riding at a furious pace for the British guns. The rear screen of Mounted Infantry fell back before this terrific rush, and the two bodies of horsemen came pell-mell down upon the handful of Buffs and the guns. The infantry were ridden into and surrounded by the Boers, who found nothing to stop them from galloping on to the low ridge upon which the guns were stationed. This ridge was held by eighty of the Scottish Horse and forty of the Yorkshire M.I., with a few riflemen from the 25th Mounted Infantry. The latter were the escort of the guns, but the former were the rear screen who had fallen back rapidly because it was the game to do so, but who were in no way shaken, and who instantly dismounted and formed when they reached a defensive position.

Louis Botha and his commando are said to have traveled sixty miles to join Grobler and Oppermann's forces to overpower the British column. Whether it was the presence of their commander or a desire for revenge for the harassment they faced on the Natal border, the Boer attack was launched with such spirit and energy that it earned the enthusiastic applause of every soldier who lived to recount it. With a low roar like a raging torrent, several hundred horsemen burst through the mist, charging at full speed towards the British guns. The rear screen of Mounted Infantry retreated before this fierce assault, and both groups of horsemen came rushing down on the handful of Buffs and the artillery. The infantry were overwhelmed and encircled by the Boers, who had no obstacles preventing them from galloping onto the low ridge where the guns were positioned. This ridge was held by eighty members of the Scottish Horse and forty from the Yorkshire M.I., along with a few riflemen from the 25th Mounted Infantry. The latter were the escorts for the guns, while the former, acting as the rear screen, had fallen back quickly as it was wise to do so, but they were not shaken at all and immediately dismounted and formed up as soon as they reached a strong defensive position.

These men had hardly time to take up their ground when the Boers were on them. With that extraordinary quickness to adapt their tactics to circumstances which is the chief military virtue of the Boers, the horsemen did not gallop over the crest, but lined the edge of it, and poured a withering fire on to the guns and the men beside them. The heroic nature of the defence can be best shown by the plain figures of the casualties. No rhetoric is needed to adorn that simple record. There were thirty-two gunners round the guns, and twenty-nine fell where they stood. Major Guinness was mortally wounded while endeavouring with his own hands to fire a round of case. There were sixty-two casualties out of eighty among the Scottish Horse, and the Yorkshires were practically annihilated. Altogether 123 men fell, out of about 160 on the ridge. 'Hard pounding, gentlemen,' as Wellington remarked at Waterloo, and British troops seemed as ready as ever to endure it.

These men barely had time to get into position when the Boers attacked. With their exceptional ability to adjust their tactics quickly, which is the Boers' main military strength, the horsemen didn't charge over the top but positioned themselves along the edge and unleashed a devastating fire on the artillery and the soldiers nearby. The bravery of the defense is best illustrated by the stark numbers of the casualties. No embellishment is needed to present that straightforward record. There were thirty-two gunners by the artillery, and twenty-nine fell right where they stood. Major Guinness was mortally wounded while trying to load a round himself. Among the Scottish Horse, there were sixty-two casualties out of eighty, and the Yorkshires were nearly wiped out. In total, 123 men were lost out of about 160 on the ridge. "Hard pounding, gentlemen," as Wellington remarked at Waterloo, and British troops seemed as ready as ever to withstand it.

The gunners were, as usual, magnificent. Of the two little bullet-pelted groups of men around the guns there was not one who did not stand to his duty without flinching. Corporal Atkin was shot down with all his comrades, but still endeavoured with his failing strength to twist the breech-block out of the gun. Another bullet passed through his upraised hands as he did it. Sergeant Hayes, badly wounded, and the last survivor of the crew, seized the lanyard, crawled up the trail, and fired a last round before he fainted. Sergeant Mathews, with three bullets through him, kept steadily to his duty. Five drivers tried to bring up a limber and remove the gun, but all of them, with all the horses, were hit. There have been incidents in this war which have not increased our military reputation, but you might search the classical records of valour and fail to find anything finer than the consistent conduct of the British artillery.

The gunners were, as always, incredible. Of the two small groups of men around the guns, not one of them wavered in their duty. Corporal Atkin was shot down along with all his comrades, yet he still tried with his dwindling strength to remove the breech-block from the gun. Another bullet went through his raised hands as he did so. Sergeant Hayes, badly injured and the last one left of the crew, grabbed the lanyard, crawled up the trail, and fired one last round before he passed out. Sergeant Mathews, with three bullets in him, continued to fulfill his duty. Five drivers attempted to bring up a limber and move the gun, but all of them, along with all the horses, ended up getting hit. There have been incidents in this war that haven't improved our military reputation, but you could look through the classic records of bravery and still not find anything better than the unwavering conduct of the British artillery.

Colonel Benson was hit in the knee and again in the stomach, but wounded as he was he despatched a message back to Wools-Sampson, asking him to burst shrapnel over the ridge so as to prevent the Boers from carrying off the guns. The burghers had ridden in among the litter of dead and wounded men which marked the British position, and some of the baser of them, much against the will of their commanders, handled the injured soldiers with great brutality. The shell-fire drove them back, however, and the two guns were left standing alone, with no one near them save their prostrate gunners and escort.

Colonel Benson was shot in the knee and again in the stomach, but despite his injuries, he sent a message back to Wools-Sampson, asking him to fire shrapnel over the ridge to stop the Boers from taking the guns. The burghers had charged into the chaos of dead and wounded men that marked the British position, and some of the more ruthless among them, disregarding their commanders' wishes, treated the injured soldiers with great cruelty. However, the shellfire pushed them back, leaving the two guns standing alone, with no one near them except for their fallen gunners and escort.

There has been some misunderstanding as to the part played by the Buffs in this action, and words have been used which seem to imply that they had in some way failed their mounted companions. It is due to the honour of one of the finest regiments in the British army to clear this up. As a matter of fact, the greater part of the regiment under Major Dauglish was engaged in defending the camp. Near the guns there were four separate small bodies of Buffs, none of which appears to have been detailed as an escort. One of these parties, consisting of thirty men under Lieutenant Greatwood, was ridden over by the horsemen, and the same fate befell a party of twenty who were far out upon the flank. Another small body under Lieutenant Lynch was over taken by the same charge, and was practically destroyed, losing nineteen killed and wounded out of thirty. In the rear of the guns was a larger body of Buffs, 130 in number, under Major Eales. When the guns were taken this handful attempted a counter-attack, but Eales soon saw that it was a hopeless effort, and he lost thirty of his men before he could extricate himself. Had these men been with the others on the gun ridge they might have restored the fight, but they had not reached it when the position was taken, and to persevere in the attempt to retake it would have led to certain disaster. The only just criticism to which the regiment is open is that, having just come off blockhouse duty, they were much out of condition, which caused the men to straggle and the movements to be unduly slow.

There has been some misunderstanding about the role the Buffs played in this action, and some words have been used that suggest they somehow let down their mounted companions. It's important to clarify this for the honor of one of the finest regiments in the British army. In reality, most of the regiment under Major Dauglish was busy defending the camp. Close to the guns, there were four separate small groups of Buffs, none of which were assigned as an escort. One of these groups, made up of thirty men under Lieutenant Greatwood, was overtaken by the horsemen, and the same happened to a group of twenty that was far out on the flank. Another small group under Lieutenant Lynch was also caught by the charge and was nearly wiped out, suffering nineteen casualties out of thirty. At the rear of the guns was a larger group of Buffs, numbering 130, under Major Eales. When the guns were taken, this small group tried to launch a counter-attack, but Eales quickly realized it was a lost cause, and he lost thirty men before he could extricate himself. If these men had been with the others on the gun ridge, they might have turned the tide, but they hadn't reached it by the time the position fell, and pressing on to retake it would have certainly led to disaster. The only fair criticism the regiment faces is that, having just finished blockhouse duty, they were out of shape, which caused the men to straggle and their movements to be slower than usual.

It was fortunate that the command of the column devolved upon so experienced and cool-headed a soldier as Wools-Sampson. To attempt a counter-attack for the purpose of recapturing the guns would, in case of disaster, have risked the camp and the convoy. The latter was the prize which the Boers had particularly in view, and to expose it would be to play their game. Very wisely, therefore, Wools-Sampson held the attacking Boers off with his guns and his riflemen, while every spare pair of hands was set to work entrenching the position and making it impregnable against attack. Outposts were stationed upon all those surrounding points which might command the camp, and a summons to surrender from the Boer leader was treated with contempt. All day a long-range fire, occasionally very severe, rained upon the camp. Colonel Benson was brought in by the ambulance, and used his dying breath in exhorting his subordinate to hold out. 'No more night marches' are said to have been the last words spoken by this gallant soldier as he passed away in the early morning after the action. On October 31st the force remained on the defensive, but early on November 1st the gleaming of two heliographs, one to the north-east and one to the south-west, told that two British columns, those of De Lisle and of Barter, were hastening to the rescue. But the Boers had passed as the storm does, and nothing but their swathe of destruction was left to show where they had been. They had taken away the guns during the night, and were already beyond the reach of pursuit.

It was lucky that the command of the column fell to such an experienced and level-headed soldier as Wools-Sampson. Attempting a counter-attack to recapture the guns would have put the camp and the convoy at risk in case of failure. The convoy was exactly what the Boers were after, and exposing it would have played right into their hands. So, Wools-Sampson wisely held off the attacking Boers with his guns and riflemen, while every available hand worked on fortifying the position to make it secure against any attack. Outposts were set up at all the surrounding points that could overlook the camp, and a demand to surrender from the Boer leader was dismissed with disdain. All day long, a long-range fire, sometimes intense, fell on the camp. Colonel Benson was brought in by the ambulance and used his last breath to urge his subordinate to hold on. "No more night marches" are said to be the final words of this brave soldier as he passed away in the early morning after the battle. On October 31st the force stayed on the defensive, but early on November 1st, the flashing of two heliographs, one to the northeast and one to the southwest, indicated that two British columns, led by De Lisle and Barter, were rushing to the rescue. However, the Boers had moved on like a storm, leaving only their trail of destruction to mark their presence. They had evacuated the guns during the night and were already out of reach of any pursuit.

Such was the action at Brakenlaagte, which cost the British sixty men killed and 170 wounded, together with two guns. Colonel Benson, Colonel Guinness, Captain Eyre Lloyd of the Guards, Major Murray and Captain Lindsay of the Scottish Horse, with seven other officers were among the dead, while sixteen officers were wounded. The net result of the action was that the British rear-guard had been annihilated, but that the main body and the convoy, which was the chief object of the attack, was saved. The Boer loss was considerable, being about one hundred and fifty. In spite of the Boer success nothing could suit the British better than hard fighting of the sort, since whatever the immediate result of it might be, it must necessarily cause a wastage among the enemy which could never be replaced. The gallantry of the Boer charge was only equalled by that of the resistance offered round the guns, and it is an action to which both sides can look back without shame or regret. It was feared that the captured guns would soon be used to break the blockhouse line, but nothing of the kind was attempted, and within a few weeks they were both recovered by British columns.

The battle at Brakenlaagte resulted in the British losing sixty men killed and 170 wounded, along with two guns. Colonel Benson, Colonel Guinness, Captain Eyre Lloyd of the Guards, Major Murray, and Captain Lindsay of the Scottish Horse, along with seven other officers, were among the dead, while sixteen officers were wounded. The overall result of the battle was the complete destruction of the British rear-guard, but the main force and the convoy— the primary target of the attack— were saved. The Boer casualties were significant, totaling about one hundred and fifty. Despite the Boer success, the British preferred direct combat of this nature, as it inevitably led to enemy losses that would be hard to replace. The bravery of the Boer charge matched that of the defense around the guns, and both sides can reflect on this engagement without shame or regret. There were concerns that the captured guns would soon be used to breach the blockhouse line, but that never happened, and within a few weeks, both guns were reclaimed by British forces.

In order to make a consecutive and intelligible narrative, I will continue with an account of the operations in this south-eastern portion of the Transvaal from the action of Brakenlaagte down to the end of the year 1901. These were placed in the early part of November, under the supreme command of General Bruce Hamilton, and that energetic commander set in motion a number of small columns, which effected numerous captures. He was much helped in his work by the new lines of blockhouses, one of which extended from Standerton to Ermelo, while another connected Brugspruit with Greylingstad. The huge country was thus cut into manageable districts, and the fruits were soon seen by the large returns of prisoners which came from this part of the seat of war.

To provide a clear and coherent narrative, I will continue with an account of the events in the southeastern part of the Transvaal from the battle of Brakenlaagte until the end of 1901. In early November, these operations were put under the overall command of General Bruce Hamilton, who quickly mobilized several small units that achieved numerous captures. His efforts were greatly supported by the new blockhouse lines, one of which stretched from Standerton to Ermelo, and another that linked Brugspruit with Greylingstad. This vast area was effectively divided into manageable districts, and the results were soon evident in the significant number of prisoners captured from this part of the conflict.

Upon December 3rd Bruce Hamilton, who had the valuable assistance of Wools-Sampson to direct his intelligence, struck swiftly out from Ermelo and fell upon a Boer laager in the early morning, capturing ninety-six prisoners. On the 10th he overwhelmed the Bethel commando by a similar march, killing seven and capturing 131. Williams and Wing commanded separate columns in this operation, and their energy may be judged from the fact that they covered fifty-one miles during the twenty-four hours. On the 12th Hamilton's columns were on the war-path once more, and another commando was wiped out. Sixteen killed and seventy prisoners were the fruits of this expedition. For the second time in a week the columns had done their fifty miles a day, and it was no surprise to hear from their commander that they were in need of a rest. Nearly four hundred prisoners had been taken from the most warlike portion of the Transvaal in ten days by one energetic commander, with a list of twenty-five casualties to ourselves. The thanks of the Secretary of War were specially sent to him for his brilliant work. From then until the end of the year 1901, numbers of smaller captures continued to be reported from the same region, where Plumer, Spens, Mackenzie, Rawlinson, and others were working. On the other hand there was one small setback which occurred to a body of two hundred Mounted Infantry under Major Bridgford, who had been detached from Spens's column to search some farmhouses at a place called Holland, to the south of Ermelo. The expedition set forth upon the night of December 19th, and next morning surrounded and examined the farms.

On December 3rd, Bruce Hamilton, with the helpful guidance of Wools-Sampson, quickly launched an attack from Ermelo and targeted a Boer camp early in the morning, capturing ninety-six prisoners. On the 10th, he overwhelmed the Bethel commando with a similar tactic, resulting in seven killed and 131 captured. Williams and Wing led separate units during this operation, demonstrating their determination by covering fifty-one miles in just twenty-four hours. On the 12th, Hamilton's forces were back in action, wiping out another commando, which resulted in sixteen killed and seventy captured. For the second time in a week, the units had achieved fifty miles in a day, so it was no surprise when their commander reported they needed a break. In just ten days, nearly four hundred prisoners had been taken from the most aggressive part of the Transvaal by one determined commander, with our own casualties totaling twenty-five. The Secretary of War conveyed special thanks to him for his outstanding efforts. From then until the end of 1901, numerous smaller captures continued to be reported from the same area, where Plumer, Spens, Mackenzie, Rawlinson, and others were active. However, there was one minor setback for a group of two hundred Mounted Infantry under Major Bridgford, who had been sent from Spens's column to search some farms in a place called Holland, south of Ermelo. The expedition departed on the night of December 19th and the next morning surrounded and examined the farms.

The British force became divided in doing this work, and were suddenly attacked by several hundred of Britz's commando, who came to close quarters through their khaki dress, which enabled them to pass as Plumer's vanguard. The brunt of the fight fell upon an outlying body of fifty men, nearly all of whom were killed, wounded or taken. A second body of fifty men were overpowered in the same way, after a creditable defence. Fifteen of the British were killed and thirty wounded, while Bridgford the commander was also taken. Spens came up shortly afterwards with the column, and the Boers were driven off. There seems every reason to think that upon this occasion the plans of the British had leaked out, and that a deliberate ambush had been laid for them round the farms, but in such operations these are chances against which it is not always possible to guard. Considering the number of the Boers, and the cleverness of their dispositions, the British were fortunate in being able to extricate their force without greater loss, a feat which was largely due to the leading of Lieutenant Sterling.

The British forces became split while doing this task and were suddenly attacked by several hundred of Britz's commandos, who managed to get close in their khaki uniforms, allowing them to pass as Plumer's vanguard. The bulk of the fighting fell on a group of fifty men, most of whom were killed, wounded, or captured. A second group of fifty men was overwhelmed in a similar fashion after a commendable defense. Fifteen British soldiers were killed and thirty were wounded, and Bridgford, the commander, was also captured. Spens arrived shortly afterward with the column, and the Boers were pushed back. There’s strong reason to believe that the British plans had somehow gotten out, and a deliberate ambush was set up for them around the farms, but in such operations, these are risks that aren’t always avoidable. Considering the number of Boers and the cleverness of their tactics, the British were fortunate to pull their forces out with fewer losses, a success largely thanks to Lieutenant Sterling's leadership.

Leaving the Eastern Transvaal, the narrative must now return to several incidents of importance which had occurred at various points of the seat of war during the latter months of 1901.

Leaving the Eastern Transvaal, the story must now go back to several important events that took place at different locations in the war zone during the last months of 1901.

On September 19th, two days after Gough's disaster, a misfortune occurred near Bloemfontein by which two guns and a hundred and forty men fell temporarily into the hands of the enemy. These guns, belonging to U battery, were moving south under an escort of Mounted Infantry, from that very Sanna's Post which had been so fatal to the same battery eighteen months before. When fifteen miles south of the Waterworks, at a place called Vlakfontein (another Vlakfontein from that of General Dixon's engagement), the small force was surrounded and captured by Ackermann's commando. The gunner officer, Lieutenant Barry, died beside his guns in the way that gunner officers have. Guns and men were taken, however, the latter to be released, and the former to be recovered a week or two later by the British columns. It is certainly a credit to the Boers that the spring campaign should have opened by four British guns falling into their hands, and it is impossible to withhold our admiration for those gallant farmers who, after two years of exhausting warfare, were still able to turn upon a formidable and victorious enemy, and to renovate their supplies at his expense.

On September 19th, two days after Gough's disaster, a misfortune took place near Bloemfontein where two guns and one hundred and forty men briefly fell into enemy hands. These guns, which belonged to U battery, were moving south under the protection of Mounted Infantry, from the same Sanna's Post that had been so disastrous for that battery eighteen months prior. About fifteen miles south of the Waterworks, at a location called Vlakfontein (a different Vlakfontein from General Dixon's engagement), the small group was surrounded and captured by Ackermann's commando. The gunner officer, Lieutenant Barry, died next to his guns, as gunner officers do. The guns and men were taken, but the men were released later, while the guns were recovered a week or two later by the British columns. It is certainly impressive that the Boers opened the spring campaign with four British guns in their possession, and we can’t help but admire those brave farmers who, after two exhausting years of warfare, were still able to confront a formidable and victorious enemy and replenish their supplies at his expense.

Two days later, hard on the heels of Gough's mishap, of the Vlakfontein incident, and of the annihilation of the squadron of Lancers in the Cape, there was a serious affair at Elands Kloof, near Zastron, in the extreme south of the Orange River Colony. In this a detachment of the Highland Scouts raised by the public spirit of Lord Lovat was surprised at night and very severely handled by Kritzinger's commando. The loss of Colonel Murray, their commander, of the adjutant of the same name, and of forty-two out of eighty of the Scouts, shows how fell was the attack, which broke as sudden and as strong as a South African thunderstorm upon the unconscious camp. The Boers appear to have eluded the outposts and crept right among the sleeping troops, as they did in the case of the Victorians at Wilmansrust. Twelve gunners were also hit, and the only field gun taken. The retiring Boers were swiftly followed up by Thorneycroft's column, however, and the gun was retaken, together with twenty of Kritzinger's men. It must be confessed that there seems some irony in the fact that, within five days of the British ruling by which the Boers were no longer a military force, these non-belligerents had inflicted a loss of nearly six hundred men killed, wounded, or taken. Two small commandos, that of Koch in the Orange River Colony, and that of Carolina, had been captured by Williams and Benson. Combined they only numbered a hundred and nine men, but here, as always, they were men who could never be replaced.

Two days later, right on the heels of Gough's accident, the Vlakfontein incident, and the destruction of the Lancer squadron in the Cape, there was a serious situation at Elands Kloof, near Zastron, in the far south of the Orange River Colony. A detachment of the Highland Scouts, formed by the public spirit of Lord Lovat, was caught off guard at night and badly beaten by Kritzinger's commando. The loss of Colonel Murray, their commander, the adjutant of the same name, and forty-two out of eighty Scouts shows how fierce the attack was, striking suddenly and powerfully like a South African thunderstorm on the unsuspecting camp. The Boers managed to get past the outposts and crept right among the sleeping troops, similar to what happened with the Victorians at Wilmansrust. Twelve gunners were also hit, and the only field gun was captured. However, Thorneycroft's column quickly pursued the retreating Boers, retaking the gun along with twenty of Kritzinger's men. It must be noted that it seems somewhat ironic that, within five days of the British decision declaring the Boers no longer a military force, these non-combatants had caused a loss of nearly six hundred men, whether killed, wounded, or captured. Two small commandos, one led by Koch in the Orange River Colony and the other by Carolina, were captured by Williams and Benson. Combined, they only had a hundred and nine men, but like always, these were irreplaceable troops.

Those who had followed the war with care, and had speculated upon the future, were prepared on hearing of Botha's movement upon Natal to learn that De la Rey had also made some energetic attack in the western quarter of the Transvaal. Those who had formed this expectation were not disappointed, for upon the last day of September the Boer chief struck fiercely at Kekewich's column in a vigorous night attack, which led to as stern an encounter as any in the campaign. This was the action at Moedwill, near Magato Nek, in the Magaliesberg.

Those who had been closely following the war and speculating about the future were ready to hear about Botha's movement toward Natal and to learn that De la Rey had also launched a strong attack in the western part of the Transvaal. Those with this expectation were not let down, as on the last day of September, the Boer leader launched a fierce night attack on Kekewich's column, resulting in a confrontation as intense as any in the campaign. This was the battle at Moedwill, near Magato Nek, in the Magaliesberg.

When last mentioned De la Rey was in the Marico district, near Zeerust, where he fought two actions with Methuen in the early part of September. Thence he made his way to Rustenburg and into the Magaliesberg country, where he joined Kemp. The Boer force was followed up by two British columns under Kekewich and Fetherstonhaugh. The former commander had camped upon the night of Sunday, September 30th, at the farm of Moedwill, in a strong position within a triangle formed by the Selous River on the west, a donga on the east, and the Zeerust-Rustenburg road as a base. The apex of the triangle pointed north, with a ridge on the farther side of the river.

When we last heard about De la Rey, he was in the Marico district, near Zeerust, where he fought two battles against Methuen in early September. From there, he made his way to Rustenburg and into the Magaliesberg area, where he joined Kemp. The Boer force was being pursued by two British columns led by Kekewich and Fetherstonhaugh. The first commander camped on the night of Sunday, September 30th, at the Moedwill farm, in a strong position within a triangle formed by the Selous River on the west, a donga on the east, and the Zeerust-Rustenburg road serving as a base. The top point of the triangle faced north, with a ridge on the other side of the river.

The men with Kekewich were for the most part the same as those who had fought in the Vlakfontein engagement—the Derbys, the 1st Scottish Horse, the Yeomanry, and the 28th R.F.A. Every precaution appears to have been taken by the leader, and his pickets were thrown out so far that ample warning was assured of an attack. The Boer onslaught came so suddenly and fiercely, however, in the early morning, that the posts upon the river bank were driven in or destroyed and the riflemen from the ridge on the farther side were able to sweep the camp with their fire. In numbers the two forces were not unequal, but the Boers had already obtained the tactical advantage, and were playing a game in which they are the schoolmasters of the world. Never has the British spirit flamed up more fiercely, and from the commander to the latest yeoman recruit there was not a man who flinched from a difficult and almost a desperate task. The Boers must at all hazard be driven from the position which enabled them to command the camp. No retreat was possible without such an abandonment of stores as would amount to a disaster. In the confusion and the uncertain light of early dawn there was no chance of a concerted movement, though Kekewich made such dispositions as were possible with admirable coolness and promptness. Squadrons and companies closed in upon the river bank with the one thought of coming to close quarters and driving the enemy from their commanding position. Already more than half the horses and a very large number of officers and men had gone down before the pelting bullets. Scottish Horse, Yeomanry, and Derbys pushed on, the young soldiers of the two former corps keeping pace with the veteran regiment. 'All the men behaved simply splendidly,' said a spectator, 'taking what little cover there was and advancing yard by yard. An order was given to try and saddle up a squadron, with the idea of getting round their flank. I had the saddle almost on one of my ponies when he was hit in two places. Two men trying to saddle alongside of me were both shot dead, and Lieutenant Wortley was shot through the knee. I ran back to where I had been firing from and found the Colonel slightly hit, the Adjutant wounded and dying, and men dead and wounded all round.' But the counter-attack soon began to make way. At first the advance was slow, but soon it quickened into a magnificent rush, the wounded Kekewich whooping on his men, and the guns coming into action as the enemy began to fall back before the fierce charge of the British riflemen. At six o'clock De la Rey's burghers had seen that their attempt was hopeless, and were in full retreat—a retreat which could not be harassed by the victors, whose cavalry had been converted by that hail of bullets into footmen. The repulse had been absolute and complete, for not a man or a cartridge had been taken from the British, but the price paid in killed and wounded was a heavy one. No fewer than 161 had been hit, including the gallant leader, whose hurt did not prevent him from resuming his duties within a few days. The heaviest losses fell upon the Scottish Horse, and upon the Derbys; but the Yeomanry also proved on this, as on some other occasions, how ungenerous were the criticisms to which they had been exposed. There are few actions in the war which appear to have been more creditable to the troops engaged.

The men with Kekewich were mostly the same as those who had fought at Vlakfontein—the Derbys, the 1st Scottish Horse, the Yeomanry, and the 28th R.F.A. The leader took every precaution, and his pickets were positioned far enough out to provide early warning of an attack. However, the Boer assault came unexpectedly and fiercely in the early morning, overwhelming the posts on the riverbank and allowing riflemen from the ridge on the other side to target the camp with their fire. While the two forces were roughly equal in number, the Boers had already gained the tactical upper hand and were playing a game in which they excel. The British spirit never burned brighter; from the commander to the newest recruit, every man was determined to face a tough and seemingly hopeless task. The Boers had to be forced out of their position controlling the camp. There could be no retreat without abandoning supplies, which would lead to disaster. In the chaos and dim light of dawn, a coordinated movement was impossible, but Kekewich remained remarkably calm and quick in his orders. Squadrons and companies closed in on the riverbank focused on getting close enough to drive the enemy from their strategic position. By this point, more than half of the horses and a significant number of officers and men had already fallen under the relentless gunfire. The Scottish Horse, Yeomanry, and Derbys pressed on, with the younger soldiers of the first two units keeping pace with the veteran regiment. "All the men performed brilliantly," said an observer, "using whatever cover they could find and advancing step by step. An order was given to try to saddle up a squadron with the aim of outflanking them. I was just about to saddle one of my ponies when he got hit in two places. Two men next to me trying to saddle were both shot dead, and Lieutenant Wortley was shot in the knee. I ran back to where I had been firing and found the Colonel slightly injured, the Adjutant wounded and dying, with dead and injured men everywhere." However, the counter-attack quickly gained momentum. Initially slow, it soon turned into a powerful advance, with the wounded Kekewich rallying his men, while the guns opened fire as the enemy began to retreat under the fierce charge of the British riflemen. By six o'clock, De la Rey's troops realized their efforts were futile and were in full retreat—a retreat that the victors couldn’t pursue since their cavalry had been reduced to foot soldiers by the heavy fire. The defeat for the Boers was total; they took neither men nor ammunition from the British, but the cost in lives was significant. A total of 161 were hit, including the brave leader, whose injury didn’t stop him from returning to duty within days. The Scottish Horse and the Derbys faced the heaviest losses, but the Yeomanry also demonstrated, as they did on other occasions, how unfair the criticism they faced had been. There are few battles in this war that reflect more creditably on the troops involved.

Though repulsed at Moedwill, De la Rey, the grim, long-bearded fighting man, was by no means discouraged. From the earliest days of the campaign, when he first faced Methuen upon the road to Kimberley, he had shown that he was a most dangerous antagonist, tenacious, ingenious, and indomitable. With him were a body of irreconcilable burghers, who were the veterans of many engagements, and in Kemp he had an excellent fighting subordinate. His command extended over a wide stretch of populous country, and at any time he could bring considerable reinforcements to his aid, who would separate again to their farms and hiding-places when their venture was accomplished. For some weeks after the fight at Moedwill the Boer forces remained quiet in that district. Two British columns had left Zeerust on October 17th, under Methuen and Von Donop, in order to sweep the surrounding country, the one working in the direction of Elands River and the other in that of Rustenburg. They returned to Zeerust twelve days later, after a successful foray, which had been attended with much sniping and skirmishing, but only one action which is worthy of record.

Though he was frustrated at Moedwill, De la Rey, the stern, long-bearded warrior, was far from discouraged. From the early days of the campaign, when he first faced Methuen on the road to Kimberley, he proved to be a formidable opponent—persistent, clever, and unyielding. Alongside him were a group of relentless burghers, veterans of many battles, and he had Kemp as a superb fighting second-in-command. His command spanned a large, populated area, and he could quickly call on substantial reinforcements, who would return to their farms and hiding spots once their mission was complete. For several weeks after the battle at Moedwill, the Boer forces stayed quiet in that region. Two British columns left Zeerust on October 17th, led by Methuen and Von Donop, to patrol the surrounding area—one heading toward Elands River and the other toward Rustenburg. They returned to Zeerust twelve days later after a successful operation that involved a lot of sniping and skirmishes, but only one engagement worth mentioning.

This was fought on October 24th at a spot near Kleinfontein, upon the Great Marico River, which runs to the north-east of Zeerust. Von Donop's column was straggling through very broken and bush-covered country when it was furiously charged in the flank and rear by two separate bodies of burghers. Kemp, who commanded the flank attack, cut into the line of wagons and destroyed eight of them, killing many of the Kaffir drivers, before he could be driven off. De la Rey and Steenkamp, who rushed the rear-guard, had a more desperate contest. The Boer horsemen got among the two guns of the 4th R.F.A., and held temporary possession of them, but the small escort were veterans of the 'Fighting Fifth,' who lived up to the traditions of their famous north-country regiment. Of the gun crews of the section, amounting to about twenty-six men, the young officer, Hill, and sixteen men were hit. Of the escort of Northumberland Fusiliers hardly a man was left standing, and forty-one of the supporting Yeomanry were killed and wounded. It was for some little time a fierce and concentrated struggle at the shortest of ranges. The British horsemen came galloping to the rescue, however, and the attack was finally driven back into that broken country from which it had come. Forty dead Boers upon the ground, with their brave chieftain, Ouisterhuisen, amongst them, showed how manfully the attack had been driven home. The British losses were twenty-eight killed and fifty-six wounded. Somewhat mauled, and with eight missing wagons, the small column made its way back to Zeerust.

This battle took place on October 24th near Kleinfontein, along the Great Marico River, which flows northeast of Zeerust. Von Donop's column was navigating through rough, bush-covered terrain when it was suddenly charged on the sides and from behind by two groups of burghers. Kemp, leading the flank attack, broke into the line of wagons and destroyed eight of them, killing many of the African drivers, before being forced to retreat. De la Rey and Steenkamp, who attacked the rear guard, faced a more intense fight. The Boer horsemen managed to get among the two guns of the 4th R.F.A. and temporarily took control of them, but the small escort consisted of veterans from the 'Fighting Fifth,' who upheld the proud traditions of their well-known northern regiment. Of the gun crew members, around twenty-six men, the young officer, Hill, and sixteen others were injured. The escort from the Northumberland Fusiliers had hardly anyone left standing, and forty-one of the supporting Yeomanry were killed or wounded. For a while, it was a fierce and concentrated battle at very close range. However, British horsemen rushed in to help, and the attack was finally pushed back into the rugged terrain from which it had come. Forty dead Boers lay on the ground, including their brave leader, Ouisterhuisen, showcasing the determination of the attack. The British losses amounted to twenty-eight killed and fifty-six wounded. A bit battered and with eight wagons missing, the small column made its way back to Zeerust.

From this incident until the end of the year nothing of importance occurred in this part of the seat of war, save for a sharp and well-managed action at Beestekraal upon October 29th, in which seventy-nine Boers were surrounded and captured by Kekewich's horsemen. The process of attrition went very steadily forwards, and each of the British columns returned its constant tale of prisoners. The blockhouse system had now been extended to such an extent that the Magaliesberg was securely held, and a line had been pushed through from Klerksdorp and Fredericstad to Ventersdorp. One of Colonel Hickie's Yeomanry patrols was roughly handled near Brakspruit upon November 13th, but with this exception the points scored were all upon one side. Methuen and Kekewich came across early in November from Zeerust to Klerksdorp, and operated from the railway line. The end of the year saw them both in the Wolmaranstad district, where they were gathering up prisoners and clearing the country.

From this incident until the end of the year, nothing significant happened in this part of the war zone, except for a sharp and well-executed action at Beestekraal on October 29th, where seventy-nine Boers were surrounded and captured by Kekewich's cavalry. The process of attrition continued steadily, and each British column reported a steady flow of prisoners. The blockhouse system had been expanded to the point that the Magaliesberg was securely held, and a line had been established from Klerksdorp and Fredericstad to Ventersdorp. One of Colonel Hickie's Yeomanry patrols faced a rough encounter near Brakspruit on November 13th, but other than that, all the successes were on one side. Methuen and Kekewich moved from Zeerust to Klerksdorp in early November and operated along the railway line. By the end of the year, they were in the Wolmaranstad area, where they were rounding up prisoners and clearing the region.

Of the events in the other parts of the Transvaal, during the last three months of the year 1901, there is not much to be said. In all parts the lines of blockhouses and of constabulary posts were neutralising the Boer mobility, and bringing them more and more within reach of the British. The only fighting forces left in the Transvaal were those under Botha in the south-east and those under De la Rey in the west. The others attempted nothing save to escape from their pursuers, and when overtaken they usually gave in without serious opposition. Among the larger hauls may be mentioned that of Dawkins in the Nylstrom district (seventy-six prisoners), Kekewich (seventy-eight), Colenbrander in the north (fifty-seven), Dawkins and Colenbrander (104), Colenbrander (sixty-two); but the great majority of the captures were in smaller bodies, gleaned from the caves, the kloofs, and the farmhouses.

During the last three months of 1901, not much happened in the other parts of the Transvaal. The network of blockhouses and constabulary posts was limiting the mobility of the Boers and bringing them closer to the British forces. The only remaining fighting forces in the Transvaal were those led by Botha in the southeast and De la Rey in the west. The rest simply tried to escape from their pursuers, and when caught, they typically surrendered without much resistance. Among the larger captures were Dawkins in the Nylstrom district (seventy-six prisoners), Kekewich (seventy-eight), Colenbrander in the north (fifty-seven), Dawkins and Colenbrander (104), and Colenbrander (sixty-two); however, the vast majority of the captures were smaller groups taken from caves, kloofs, and farmhouses.

Only two small actions during these months appear to call for any separate notice. The first was an attack made by Buys' commando, upon November 20th, on the Railway Pioneers when at work near Villiersdorp, in the extreme north-east of the Orange River Colony. This corps, consisting mainly of miners from Johannesburg, had done invaluable service during the war. On this occasion a working party of them was suddenly attacked, and most of them taken prisoners. Major Fisher, who commanded the pioneers, was killed, and three other officers with several men were wounded. Colonel Rimington's column appeared upon the scene, however, and drove off the Boers, who left their leader, Buys, a wounded prisoner in our hands.

Only two small actions during these months seem to warrant any separate mention. The first was an attack by Buys' commando on November 20th against the Railway Pioneers while they were working near Villiersdorp, in the far north-east of the Orange River Colony. This unit, mostly made up of miners from Johannesburg, had provided invaluable service during the war. On this occasion, a working party was suddenly attacked, and most of them were captured. Major Fisher, who led the pioneers, was killed, and three other officers along with several men were wounded. However, Colonel Rimington's column arrived on the scene and drove off the Boers, who left their leader, Buys, a wounded prisoner in our custody.

The second action was a sharp attack delivered by Muller's Boers upon Colonel Park's column on the night of December 19th, at Elandspruit. The fight was sharp while it lasted, but it ended in the repulse of the assailants. The British casualties were six killed and twenty-four wounded. The Boers, who left eight dead behind them, suffered probably to about the same extent.

The second action was a sudden attack by Muller's Boers on Colonel Park's column on the night of December 19th, at Elandspruit. The battle was fierce while it lasted, but it ended with the attackers being driven back. The British had six killed and twenty-four wounded. The Boers, who left behind eight dead, likely suffered losses similar to those of the British.

Already the most striking and pleasing feature in the Transvaal was the tranquillity of its central provinces, and the way in which the population was settling down to its old avocations. Pretoria had resumed its normal quiet life, while its larger and more energetic neighbour was rapidly recovering from its two years of paralysis. Every week more stamps were dropped in the mines, and from month to month a steady increase in the output showed that the great staple industry of the place would soon be as vigorous as ever. Most pleasing of all was the restoration of safety upon the railway lines, which, save for some precautions at night, had resumed their normal traffic. When the observer took his eyes from the dark clouds which shadowed every horizon, he could not but rejoice at the ever-widening central stretch of peaceful blue which told that the storm was nearing its end.

Already, the most striking and pleasing aspect of the Transvaal was the calm of its central provinces and how the population was settling back into its usual routines. Pretoria had returned to its normal peaceful life, while its larger and more vibrant neighbor was quickly bouncing back from two years of stagnation. Every week, more stamps were being dropped in the mines, and month after month, a steady increase in output indicated that the area’s main industry would soon be as strong as ever. Most encouraging was the return of safety on the railway lines, which, aside from some precautions at night, had resumed regular service. When observers looked away from the dark clouds that loomed over every horizon, they couldn't help but feel joy at the increasingly wide stretch of peaceful blue, signaling that the storm was finally coming to an end.

Having now dealt with the campaign in the Transvaal down to the end of 1901, it only remains to bring the chronicle of the events in the Orange River Colony down to the same date. Reference has already been made to two small British reverses which occurred in September, the loss of two guns to the south of the Waterworks near Bloemfontein, and the surprise of the camp of Lord Lovat's Scouts. There were some indications at this time that a movement had been planned through the passes of the Drakensberg by a small Free State force which should aid Louis Botha's invasion of Natal. The main movement was checked, however, and the demonstration in aid of it came to nothing.

Having now covered the campaign in the Transvaal up to the end of 1901, the next step is to summarize the events in the Orange River Colony up to the same date. There's already been mention of two minor British setbacks that happened in September: the loss of two guns south of the Waterworks near Bloemfontein and the surprise attack on Lord Lovat's Scouts' camp. At this time, there were signs that a small Free State force was planning a movement through the Drakensberg passes to support Louis Botha's invasion of Natal. However, the main offensive was halted, and any supporting actions amounted to nothing.

The blockhouse system had been developed to a very complete extent in the Orange River Colony, and the small bands of Boers found it increasingly difficult to escape from the British columns who were for ever at their heels. The southern portion of the country had been cut off from the northern by a line which extended through Bloemfontein on the east to the Basuto frontier, and on the west to Jacobsdal. To the south of this line the Boer resistance had practically ceased, although several columns moved continually through it, and gleaned up the broken fragments of the commandos. The north-west had also settled down to a large extent, and during the last three months of 1901 no action of importance occurred in that region. Even in the turbulent north-east, which had always been the centre of resistance, there was little opposition to the British columns, which continued every week to send in their tale of prisoners. Of the column commanders, Williams, Damant, Du Moulin, Lowry Cole, and Wilson were the most successful. In their operations they were much aided by the South African Constabulary. One young officer of this force, Major Pack-Beresford, especially distinguished himself by his gallantry and ability. His premature death from enteric was a grave loss to the British army. Save for one skirmish of Colonel Wilson's early in October, and another of Byng's on November 14th, there can hardly be said to have been any actual fighting until the events late in December which I am about to describe.

The blockhouse system was fully developed in the Orange River Colony, making it increasingly tough for small groups of Boers to escape from the British troops who were always on their tails. The southern part of the country was separated from the northern by a line stretching from Bloemfontein in the east to the Basuto frontier, and west to Jacobsdal. South of this line, Boer resistance had almost stopped, although several columns continually moved through it, picking up the remnants of the commandos. The northwest had also settled down significantly, and during the last three months of 1901, there were no major actions in that area. Even in the restless northeast, which had always been the stronghold of resistance, there was little opposition to the British columns, which regularly reported on their captured prisoners. Among the column commanders, Williams, Damant, Du Moulin, Lowry Cole, and Wilson were the most effective. They received considerable support from the South African Constabulary. One young officer from this force, Major Pack-Beresford, notably stood out for his bravery and skills. His untimely death from enteric was a significant loss to the British army. Aside from one skirmish by Colonel Wilson in early October and another by Byng on November 14th, there was hardly any real fighting until the events in late December that I am about to describe.

In the meanwhile the peaceful organisation of the country was being pushed forward as rapidly as in the Transvaal, although here the problems presented were of a different order, and the population an exclusively Dutch one. The schools already showed a higher attendance than in the days before the war, while a continual stream of burghers presented themselves to take the oath of allegiance, and even to join the ranks against their own irreconcilable countrymen, whom they looked upon with justice as the real authors of their troubles.

In the meantime, the orderly setup of the country was progressing as quickly as in the Transvaal, although the challenges here were different, and the population was entirely Dutch. Schools were showing higher attendance than they did before the war, while a steady stream of citizens came forward to take the oath of loyalty and even to fight alongside those they once considered enemies, whom they rightly viewed as the real cause of their problems.

Towards the end of November there were signs that the word had gone forth for a fresh concentration of the fighting Boers in their old haunts in the Heilbron district, and early in December it was known that the indefatigable De Wet was again in the field. He had remained quiet so long that there had been persistent rumours of his injury and even of his death, but he was soon to show that he was as alive as ever. President Steyn was ill of a most serious complaint, caused possibly by the mental and physical sufferings which he had undergone; but with an indomitable resolution which makes one forget and forgive the fatuous policy which brought him and his State to such a pass, he still appeared in his Cape cart at the laager of the faithful remnant of his commandos. To those who remembered how widespread was our conviction of the half-heartedness of the Free Staters at the outbreak of the war, it was indeed a revelation to see them after two years still making a stand against the forces which had crushed them.

Toward the end of November, there were signs that word had spread for a new gathering of the fighting Boers in their old areas in the Heilbron district, and by early December it was known that the tireless De Wet was back in action. He had stayed quiet for so long that there were persistent rumors about his injury and even his death, but he was about to prove he was as alive as ever. President Steyn was suffering from a serious illness, likely due to the mental and physical hardships he had faced; however, with an unyielding determination that makes one forget and overlook the foolish policies that led him and his State to such a situation, he still appeared in his Cape cart at the camp of the faithful remnant of his commandos. For those who remembered how widespread our belief was in the Free Staters' lack of commitment when the war began, it was truly surprising to see them still standing up against the forces that had defeated them after two years.

It had been long evident that the present British tactics of scouring the country and capturing the isolated burghers must in time bring the war to a conclusion. From the Boer point of view the only hope, or at least the only glory, lay in reassembling once more in larger bodies and trying conclusions with some of the British columns. It was with this purpose that De Wet early in December assembled Wessels, Manie Botha, and others of his lieutenants, together with a force of about two thousand men, in the Heilbron district. Small as this force was, it was admirably mobile, and every man in it was a veteran, toughened and seasoned by two years of constant fighting. De Wet's first operations were directed against an isolated column of Colonel Wilson's, which was surrounded within twenty miles of Heilbron. Rimington, in response to a heliographic call for assistance, hurried with admirable promptitude to the scene of action, and joined hands with Wilson. De Wet's men were as numerous, however, as the two columns combined, and they harassed the return march into Heilbron. A determined attack was made on the convoy and on the rearguard, but it was beaten off. That night Rimington's camp was fired into by a large body of Boers, but he had cleverly moved his men away from the fires, so that no harm was done. The losses in these operations were small, but with troops which had not been trained in this method of fighting the situation would have been a serious one. For a fortnight or more after this the burghers contented themselves by skirmishing with British columns and avoiding a drive which Elliot's forces made against them. On December 18th they took the offensive, however, and within a week fought three actions, two of which ended in their favour.

It had long been clear that the current British strategy of sweeping across the countryside and capturing isolated fighters would eventually end the war. From the Boer perspective, their only hope—or at least their only chance for glory—was to regroup in larger numbers and confront some of the British units. With this goal in mind, De Wet gathered Wessels, Manie Botha, and other lieutenants, along with a force of about two thousand men, in the Heilbron district at the beginning of December. Although this force was small, it was highly mobile, and every member was a veteran, toughened and experienced from two years of continuous fighting. De Wet's first operations targeted an isolated column of Colonel Wilson's, which was surrounded less than twenty miles from Heilbron. Rimington, responding to a heliographic request for help, quickly rushed to the area and linked up with Wilson. However, De Wet's numbers matched those of the two columns combined, and they troubled the retreat into Heilbron. They launched a determined attack on the convoy and the rearguard, but it was repelled. That night, Rimington's camp was shot at by a large group of Boers, but he had wisely moved his men away from the fires, so no harm was done. The losses in these operations were minor, but without troops trained for this kind of fighting, the situation could have been serious. For about two weeks after this, the burghers focused on skirmishing with British units and evading the drive that Elliot's forces made against them. On December 18th, however, they took the offensive and, within a week, fought three battles, two of which they won.

News had come to British headquarters that Kaffir's Kop, to the north-west of Bethlehem, was a centre of Boer activity. Three columns were therefore turned in that direction, Elliot's, Barker's, and Dartnell's. Some desultory skirmishing ensued, which was only remarkable for the death of Haasbroek, a well-known Boer leader. As the columns separated again, unable to find an objective, De Wet suddenly showed one of them that their failure was not due to his absence. Dartnell had retraced his steps nearly as far as Eland's River Bridge, when the Boer leader sprang out of his lair in the Langberg and threw himself upon him. The burghers attempted to ride in, as they had successfully done at Brakenlaagte, but they were opposed by the steady old troopers of the two regiments of Imperial Horse, and by a General who was familiar with every Boer ruse. The horsemen never got nearer than 150 yards to the British line, and were beaten back by the steady fire which met them. Finding that he made no headway, and learning that Campbell's column was coming up from Bethlehem, De Wet withdrew his men after four hours' fighting. Fifteen were hit upon the British side, and the Boer loss seems to have been certainly as great or greater.

News reached British headquarters that Kaffir's Kop, to the northwest of Bethlehem, was a hub of Boer activity. Consequently, three columns were directed that way: Elliot's, Barker's, and Dartnell's. Some sporadic skirmishing followed, notable only for the death of Haasbroek, a well-known Boer leader. As the columns dispersed again, unable to find a target, De Wet unexpectedly demonstrated to one of them that their lack of success was not due to his absence. Dartnell had almost retraced his steps back to Eland's River Bridge when the Boer leader emerged from his hiding place in the Langberg and attacked him. The burghers tried to charge in, as they had successfully done at Brakenlaagte, but they faced the resolute old troopers of the two regiments of Imperial Horse, along with a General who was well-acquainted with every Boer tactic. The horsemen never got closer than 150 yards to the British line and were pushed back by the consistent fire they encountered. Realizing he was making no progress and learning that Campbell's column was advancing from Bethlehem, De Wet pulled his men back after four hours of fighting. Fifteen were injured on the British side, and the Boer loss appears to have been at least as significant, if not greater.

De Wet's general aim in his operations seems to have been to check the British blockhouse building. With his main force in the Langberg he could threaten the line which was now being erected between Bethlehem and Harrismith, a line against which his main commando was destined, only two months later, to beat itself in vain. Sixty miles to the north a second line was being run across country from Frankfort to Standerton, and had reached a place called Tafelkop. A covering party of East Lancashires and Yeomanry watched over the workers, but De Wet had left a portion of his force in that neighbourhood, and they harassed the blockhouse builders to such an extent that General Hamilton, who was in command, found it necessary to send in to Frankfort for support. The British columns there had just returned exhausted from a drive, but three bodies under Damant, Rimington, and Wilson were at once despatched to clear away the enemy.

De Wet’s main goal in his operations seemed to be to stop the British from building blockhouses. With his main force located in the Langberg, he could threaten the line that was being built between Bethlehem and Harrismith, a line that his main commando would, just two months later, futilely attempt to break through. Sixty miles to the north, a second line was being constructed from Frankfort to Standerton, and it had reached a place called Tafelkop. A covering group from the East Lancashires and Yeomanry was monitoring the workers, but De Wet had left part of his force in that area, and they troubled the blockhouse builders so much that General Hamilton, who was in charge, found it necessary to request support from Frankfort. The British troops there had just returned exhausted from a mission, but three units under Damant, Rimington, and Wilson were quickly sent out to clear the area of the enemy.

The weather was so atrocious that the veld resembled an inland sea, with the kopjes as islands rising out of it. By this stage of the war the troops were hardened to all weathers, and they pushed swiftly on to the scene of action. As they approached the spot where the Boers had been reported, the line had been extended over many miles, with the result that it had become very attenuated and dangerously weak in the centre. At this point Colonel Damant and his small staff were alone with the two guns and the maxim, save for a handful of Imperial Yeomanry (91st), who acted as escort to the guns. Across the face of this small force there rode a body of men in khaki uniforms, keeping British formation, and actually firing bogus volleys from time to time in the direction of some distant Boers. Damant and his staff seem to have taken it for granted that these were Rimington's men, and the clever ruse succeeded to perfection. Nearer and nearer came the strangers, and suddenly throwing off all disguise, they made a dash for the guns. Four rounds of case failed to stop them, and in a few minutes they were over the kopje on which the guns stood and had ridden among the gunners, supported in their attack by a flank fire from a number of dismounted riflemen.

The weather was so terrible that the open land looked like an inland sea, with the hills rising out of it like islands. By this point in the war, the troops were tough enough to handle any weather, and they moved quickly towards the combat area. As they got closer to where the Boers had been spotted, the line had stretched over many miles, which made it very thin and dangerously weak in the center. At this moment, Colonel Damant and his small staff were alone with the two guns and the Maxim gun, except for a few Imperial Yeomanry (91st), who were escorting the guns. Riding in front of this small group were men in khaki uniforms, maintaining British formation, and occasionally firing fake volleys toward some distant Boers. Damant and his staff seemed to assume these were Rimington's men, and the clever trick worked perfectly. The strangers rode closer and closer, and suddenly dropped all pretense, making a dash for the guns. Four rounds of case ammunition failed to stop them, and within a few minutes they were on the hill where the guns were located and had charged into the gunners, backed up in their attack by flank fire from several dismounted riflemen.

The instant that the danger was realised Damant, his staff, and the forty Yeomen who formed the escort dashed for the crest in the hope of anticipating the Boers. So rapid was the charge of the others that they had overwhelmed the gunners before the supports could reach the hill, and the latter found themselves under the deadly fire of the Boer rifles from above. Damant was hit in four places, all of his staff were wounded, and hardly a man of the small body of Yeomanry was left standing. Nothing could exceed their gallantry. Gaussen their captain fell at their head. On the ridge the men about the guns were nearly all killed or wounded. Of the gun detachment only two men remained, both of them hit, and Jeffcoat their dying captain bequeathed them fifty pounds each in a will drawn upon the spot. In half an hour the centre of the British line had been absolutely annihilated. Modern warfare is on the whole much less bloody than of old, but when one party has gained the tactical mastery it is a choice between speedy surrender and total destruction.

The moment the danger was realized, Damant, his team, and the forty Yeomen who made up the escort rushed to the ridge, hoping to get ahead of the Boers. The others charged so quickly that they had overwhelmed the gunners before the reinforcements could reach the hill, and those reinforcements found themselves under heavy fire from the Boer rifles above. Damant was hit in four places, all his staff were wounded, and hardly any of the small group of Yeomanry was left standing. Their bravery was unmatched. Gaussen, their captain, fell leading them. On the ridge, nearly all the men near the guns were either killed or wounded. Of the gun team, only two men remained, both injured, and Jeffcoat, their dying captain, left them fifty pounds each in a will written right there. In half an hour, the center of the British line had been completely destroyed. Modern warfare is generally less bloody than in the past, but when one side gains the tactical advantage, it becomes a choice between quick surrender and total annihilation.

The wide-spread British wings had begun to understand that there was something amiss, and to ride in towards the centre. An officer on the far right peering through his glasses saw those tell-tale puffs at the very muzzles of the British guns, which showed that they were firing case at close quarters. He turned his squadron inwards and soon gathered up Scott's squadron of Damant's Horse, and both rode for the kopje. Rimington's men were appearing on the other side, and the Boers rode off. They were unable to remove the guns which they had taken, because all the horses had perished. 'I actually thought,' says one officer who saw them ride away, 'that I had made a mistake and been fighting our own men. They were dressed in our uniforms and some of them wore the tiger-skin, the badge of Damant's Horse, round their hats.' The same officer gives an account of the scene on the gun-kopje. 'The result when we got to the guns was this, gunners all killed except two (both wounded), pom-pom officers and men all killed, maxim all killed, 91st (the gun escort) one officer and one man not hit, all the rest killed or wounded; staff, every officer hit.' That is what it means to those who are caught in the vortex of the cyclone. The total loss was about seventy-five.

The widespread British forces had started to realize that something was wrong and began to move towards the center. An officer on the far right, looking through his binoculars, noticed those tell-tale puffs of smoke coming from the British guns, indicating they were firing case shots at close range. He redirected his squadron inward and quickly linked up with Scott's squadron of Damant's Horse, and both rode towards the kopje. Rimington's men were appearing on the other side, causing the Boers to retreat. They couldn't take the guns they had captured because all the horses had died. "I honestly thought," said one officer who watched them leave, "that I had made a mistake and was fighting our own men. They were dressed in our uniforms, and some of them were wearing the tiger-skin, the badge of Damant's Horse, around their hats." The same officer described the scene at the gun-kopje: "When we got to the guns, this is what we found: all the gunners killed except for two (both wounded), all the pom-pom officers and men killed, the maxim crew all killed, the 91st (the gun escort) had one officer and one man who weren't hit, all the rest were killed or wounded; of the staff, every officer was hit." That's what it means for those caught in the eye of the storm. The total loss was around seventy-five.

In this action the Boers, who were under the command of Wessels, delivered their attack with a cleverness and dash which deserved success. Their stratagem, however, depending as it did upon the use of British uniforms and methods, was illegitimate by all the laws of war, and one can but marvel at the long-suffering patience of officers and men who endured such things without any attempt at retaliation. There is too much reason to believe also, that considerable brutality was shown by those Boers who carried the kopje, and the very high proportion of killed to wounded among the British who lay there corroborates the statement of the survivors that several were shot at close quarters after all resistance had ceased.

In this action, the Boers, led by Wessels, launched their attack with skill and flair that deserved success. However, their tactic, relying on British uniforms and methods, was against the laws of war, and one can't help but admire the enduring patience of the officers and soldiers who accepted such behavior without retaliating. There's also good reason to believe that significant brutality was displayed by the Boers who took the kopje, and the very high ratio of killed to wounded among the British there supports the accounts of survivors that several were shot at close range after they had surrendered.

This rough encounter of Tafelkop was followed only four days later by a very much more serious one at Tweefontein, which proved that even after two years of experience we had not yet sufficiently understood the courage and the cunning of our antagonist. The blockhouse line was being gradually extended from Harrismith to Bethlehem, so as to hold down this turbulent portion of the country. The Harrismith section had been pushed as far as Tweefontein, which is nine miles west of Elands River Bridge, and here a small force was stationed to cover the workers. This column consisted of four squadrons of the 4th Imperial Yeomanry, one gun of the 79th battery, and one pom-pom, the whole under the temporary command of Major Williams of the South Staffords, Colonel Firmin being absent.

This tough confrontation at Tafelkop was only followed four days later by a much more serious one at Tweefontein, which showed that even after two years of experience, we still hadn’t fully grasped the bravery and cunning of our opponent. The blockhouse line was gradually being extended from Harrismith to Bethlehem to keep control over this restless area. The Harrismith section had been pushed to Tweefontein, which is nine miles west of Elands River Bridge, and a small force was stationed here to protect the workers. This force consisted of four squadrons of the 4th Imperial Yeomanry, one gun from the 79th battery, and one pom-pom, all temporarily commanded by Major Williams of the South Staffords, as Colonel Firmin was absent.

Knowing that De Wet and his men were in the neighbourhood, the camp of the Yeomen had been pitched in a position which seemed to secure it against attack. A solitary kopje presented a long slope to the north, while the southern end was precipitous. The outposts were pushed well out upon the plain, and a line of sentries was placed along the crest. The only precaution which seems to have been neglected was to have other outposts at the base of the southern declivity. It appears to have been taken for granted, however, that no attack was to be apprehended from that side, and that in any case it would be impossible to evade the vigilance of the sentries upon the top.

Knowing that De Wet and his men were nearby, the Yeomen set up camp in a spot that seemed to protect them from an attack. A single kopje had a long slope facing north, while the southern end dropped off steeply. The outposts were pushed out far onto the plain, and a line of sentries was positioned along the top. The only precaution that seemed to be overlooked was placing additional outposts at the bottom of the southern slope. However, it appeared to be assumed that no attack was expected from that direction, and that, in any case, it would be impossible to escape the watchfulness of the sentries on top.

Of all the daring and skilful attacks delivered by the Boers during the war there is certainly none more remarkable than this one. At two o'clock in the morning of a moonlight night De Wet's forlorn hope assembled at the base of the hill and clambered up to the summit. The fact that it was Christmas Eve may conceivably have had something to do with the want of vigilance upon the part of the sentries. In a season of good will and conviviality the rigour of military discipline may insensibly relax. Little did the sleeping Yeomen in the tents, or the drowsy outposts upon the crest, think of the terrible Christmas visitors who were creeping on to them, or of the grim morning gift which Santa Claus was bearing.

Of all the bold and skillful attacks made by the Boers during the war, this one is definitely the most notable. At two o'clock in the morning on a moonlit night, De Wet's small group gathered at the foot of the hill and climbed to the top. The fact that it was Christmas Eve might have contributed to the soldiers' lack of vigilance. During a season of goodwill and celebration, the strictness of military discipline can easily loosen up. The sleeping Yeomen in their tents and the sleepy outposts on the ridge had no idea about the terrifying Christmas visitors approaching them, or the grim morning surprise Santa Claus was bringing.

The Boers, stealing up in their stockinged feet, poured under the crest until they were numerous enough to make a rush. It is almost inconceivable how they could have got so far without their presence being suspected by the sentries—but so it was. At last, feeling strong enough to advance, they sprang over the crest and fired into the pickets, and past them into the sleeping camp. The top of the hill being once gained, there was nothing to prevent their comrades from swarming up, and in a very few minutes nearly a thousand Boers were in a position to command the camp. The British were not only completely outnumbered, but were hurried from their sleep into the fight without any clear idea as to the danger or how to meet it, while the hissing sleet of bullets struck many of them down as they rushed out of their tents. Considering how terrible the ordeal was to which they were exposed, these untried Yeomen seem to have behaved very well. 'Some brave gentlemen ran away at the first shot, but I am thankful to say they were not many,' says one of their number. The most veteran troops would have been tried very high had they been placed in such a position. 'The noise and the clamour,' says one spectator, 'were awful. The yells of the Dutch, the screams and shrieks of dying men and horses, the cries of natives, howls of dogs, the firing, the galloping of horses, the whistling of bullets, and the whirr volleys make in the air, made up such a compound of awful and diabolical sounds as I never heard before nor hope to hear again. In the confusion some of the men killed each other and some killed themselves. Two Boers who put on helmets were killed by their own people. The men were given no time to rally or to collect their thoughts, for the gallant Boers barged right into them, shooting them down, and occasionally being shot down, at a range of a few yards. Harwich and Watney, who had charge of the maxim, died nobly with all the men of their gun section round them. Reed, the sergeant-major, rushed at the enemy with his clubbed rifle, but was riddled with bullets. Major Williams, the commander, was shot through the stomach as he rallied his men. The gunners had time to fire two rounds before they were overpowered and shot down to a man. For half an hour the resistance was maintained, but at the end of that time the Boers had the whole camp in their possession, and were already hastening to get their prisoners away before the morning should bring a rescue.

The Boers, sneaking up in their socks, moved under the ridge until they were numerous enough to charge. It’s almost unbelievable how they managed to get so close without the guards noticing—but that’s exactly what happened. Finally feeling strong enough to attack, they leaped over the ridge and opened fire on the outposts, and beyond them into the sleeping camp. Once they reached the top of the hill, nothing stopped their fellow fighters from flooding in, and very soon nearly a thousand Boers were in a position to take over the camp. The British were not only completely outnumbered, but they were also jolted from their sleep and thrown into battle without really understanding the threat or how to respond, while the relentless rain of bullets took many of them down as they rushed out of their tents. Given the terrifying situation they faced, these inexperienced Yeomen seemed to have acted quite well. “Some brave gentlemen ran away at the first shot, but thankfully they weren’t many,” said one of their own. Even the most seasoned troops would have been severely tested in such a situation. “The noise and the chaos,” said one observer, “were terrifying. The shouts of the Dutch, the screams and cries of dying men and horses, the calls of natives, howls of dogs, gunfire, the thundering of horses, the whistling of bullets, and the whirr of volleys creating a mix of horrific and demonic sounds that I have never heard before and hope to never hear again. In the confusion, some of the men shot each other and some shot themselves. Two Boers who donned helmets were killed by their comrades. The men had no time to regroup or gather their thoughts, as the brave Boers charged right into them, shooting them down while getting shot themselves at just a few yards away. Harwich and Watney, who were in charge of the Maxim gun, died valiantly with all the men in their section around them. Reed, the sergeant-major, charged at the enemy with his rifle but was hit by bullets. Major Williams, the commander, was shot in the stomach as he rallied his men. The gunners managed to fire two rounds before they were overwhelmed and shot down. For half an hour, the fight continued, but by then the Boers had taken the entire camp and were already moving to get their prisoners away before morning brought a rescue.

The casualties are in themselves enough to show how creditable was the resistance of the Yeomanry. Out of a force of under four hundred men they had six officers and fifty-one men killed, eight officers and eighty men wounded. There have been very few surrenders during the war in which there has been such evidence as this of a determined stand. Nor was it a bloodless victory upon the part of the Boers, for there was evidence that their losses, though less than those of the British, were still severe.

The casualties alone demonstrate how commendable the Yeomanry's resistance was. From a force of less than four hundred men, they suffered the loss of six officers and fifty-one men killed, along with eight officers and eighty men wounded. There have been very few surrenders during the war that show such a strong stand. It wasn't a bloodless victory for the Boers either, as their losses, while lower than those of the British, were still significant.

The prisoners, over two hundred in number, were hurried away by the Boers, who seemed under the immediate eye of De Wet to have behaved with exemplary humanity to the wounded. The captives were taken by forced marches to the Basuto border, where they were turned adrift, half clad and without food. By devious ways and after many adventures, they all made their way back again to the British lines. It was well for De Wet that he had shown such promptness in getting away, for within three hours of the end of the action the two regiments of Imperial Horse appeared upon the scene, having travelled seventeen miles in the time. Already, however, the rearguard of the Boers was disappearing into the fastness of the Langberg, where all pursuit was vain.

The prisoners, numbering over two hundred, were quickly taken away by the Boers, who, under De Wet's watchful eye, seemed to treat the wounded with remarkable compassion. The captives were marched forcefully to the Basuto border, where they were released, poorly dressed and without food. Through winding paths and after many struggles, they all managed to find their way back to the British lines. It was fortunate for De Wet that he had acted quickly in making his escape, as within three hours after the battle ended, two regiments of Imperial Horse arrived on the scene, having traveled seventeen miles in that time. However, the Boer rearguard was already disappearing into the depths of the Langberg, where any pursuit would be futile.

Such was the short but vigorous campaign of De Wet in the last part of December of the year 1901. It had been a brilliant one, but none the less his bolt was shot, and Tweefontein was the last encounter in which British troops should feel his heavy hand. His operations, bold as they had been, had not delayed by a day the building of that iron cage which was gradually enclosing him. Already it was nearly completed, and in a few more weeks he was destined to find himself and his commando struggling against bars.

Such was the brief but intense campaign of De Wet in late December 1901. It had been impressive, but nonetheless, his chance had passed, and Tweefontein was the final confrontation where British troops would face his heavy hand. His operations, as daring as they were, had not postponed by even a day the construction of that iron cage that was slowly closing in on him. It was already almost finished, and in a few more weeks, he was destined to find himself and his commando battling against bars.





CHAPTER 37. THE CAMPAIGN OF JANUARY TO APRIL, 1902.

At the opening of the year 1902 it was evident to every observer that the Boer resistance, spirited as it was, must be nearing its close. By a long succession of captures their forces were much reduced in numbers. They were isolated from the world, and had no means save precarious smuggling of renewing their supplies of ammunition. It was known also that their mobility, which had been their great strength, was decreasing, and that in spite of their admirable horsemastership their supply of remounts was becoming exhausted. An increasing number of the burghers were volunteering for service against their own people, and it was found that all fears as to this delicate experiment were misplaced, and that in the whole army there were no keener and more loyal soldiers.

At the start of 1902, it was clear to everyone observing that the Boer resistance, although spirited, was nearing its end. A long series of captures had significantly reduced their numbers. They were cut off from the world, relying only on risky smuggling to replenish their ammunition supplies. It was also known that their mobility, which had been their main advantage, was declining, and despite their excellent horsemanship, their supply of remounts was running low. More and more of the burghers were volunteering to fight against their own people, and it turned out that concerns about this fragile situation were unfounded; the entire army had no more dedicated and loyal soldiers.

The chief factor, however, in bringing the Boers to their knees was the elaborate and wonderful blockhouse system, which had been strung across the whole of the enemy's country. The original blockhouses had been far apart, and were a hindrance and an annoyance rather than an absolute barrier to the burghers. The new models, however, were only six hundred yards apart, and were connected by such impenetrable strands of wire that a Boer pithily described it by saying that if one's hat blew over the line anywhere between Ermelo and Standerton one had to walk round Ermelo to fetch it. Use was made of such barriers by the Spaniards in Cuba, but an application of them on such a scale over such an enormous tract of country is one of the curiosities of warfare, and will remain one of several novelties which will make the South African campaign for ever interesting to students of military history.

The main reason the Boers were defeated was the impressive blockhouse system that stretched across their entire territory. The original blockhouses were widely spaced and more of an annoyance than a true barrier to the burghers. The new ones, however, were only six hundred yards apart and connected by such strong wire that a Boer cleverly noted that if one's hat blew over the line anywhere between Ermelo and Standerton, one would have to walk all the way around Ermelo to get it. The Spanish used similar barriers in Cuba, but applying them on such a large scale over such a vast area is a unique aspect of warfare and will remain one of the many interesting elements of the South African campaign for military history enthusiasts.

The spines of this great system were always the railway lines, which were guarded on either side, and down which, as down a road, went flocks, herds, pedestrians, and everything which wished to travel in safety. From these long central cords the lines branched out to right and left, cutting up the great country into manageable districts. A category of them would but weary the reader, but suffice it that by the beginning of the year the south-east of the Transvaal and the north-east of the Orange River Colony, the haunts of Botha and De Wet, had been so intersected that it was obvious that the situation must soon be impossible for both of them. Only on the west of the Transvaal was there a clear run for De la Rey and Kemp. Hence it was expected, as actually occurred, that in this quarter the most stirring events of the close of the campaign would happen.

The backbone of this extensive system was always the railway lines, which were protected on both sides, and along which, like on a highway, traveled flocks, herds, pedestrians, and anyone else wanting to move safely. From these long central lines, branches extended to the right and left, dividing the vast country into manageable areas. Listing them all would bore the reader, but it’s enough to say that by the start of the year, the southeastern part of Transvaal and the northeastern part of the Orange River Colony, where Botha and De Wet operated, had been so crisscrossed that it became clear the situation would soon be untenable for both of them. Only on the western side of Transvaal did De la Rey and Kemp have a clear route. Therefore, it was expected—and it indeed happened—that this area would see the most significant events as the campaign drew to a close.

General Bruce Hamilton in the Eastern Transvaal had continued the energetic tactics which had given such good results in the past. With the new year his number of prisoners fell, but he had taken so many, and had hustled the remainder to such an extent, that the fight seemed to have gone out of the Boers in this district. On January 1st he presented the first-fruits of the year in the shape of twenty-two of Grobler's burghers. On the 3rd he captured forty-nine, while Wing, co-operating with him, took twenty more. Among these was General Erasmus, who had helped, or failed to help, General Lucas Meyer at Talana Hill. On the 10th Colonel Wing's column, which was part of Hamilton's force, struck out again and took forty-two prisoners, including the two Wolmarans. Only two days later Hamilton returned to the same spot, and was rewarded with thirty-two more captures. On the 18th he took twenty-seven, on the 24th twelve, and on the 26th no fewer than ninety. So severe were these blows, and so difficult was it for the Boers to know how to get away from an antagonist who was ready to ride thirty miles in a night in order to fall upon their laager, that the enemy became much scattered and too demoralised for offensive operations. Finding that they had grown too shy in this much shot over district, Hamilton moved farther south, and early in March took a cast round the Vryheid district, where he made some captures, notably General Cherry Emmett, a descendant of the famous Irish rebel, and brother-in-law of Louis Botha. For all these repeated successes it was to the Intelligence Department, so admirably controlled by Colonel Wools-Sampson, that thanks are mainly due.

General Bruce Hamilton in the Eastern Transvaal continued the aggressive tactics that had been successful in the past. With the start of the new year, the number of prisoners he captured decreased, but he had taken so many and pressured the remainder to such an extent that the fight seemed to have gone out of the Boers in this area. On January 1st, he marked the beginning of the year by capturing twenty-two of Grobler's burghers. On the 3rd, he captured forty-nine, while Wing, who was working alongside him, took twenty more. Among those captured was General Erasmus, who had aided, or failed to aid, General Lucas Meyer at Talana Hill. On the 10th, Colonel Wing's column, part of Hamilton's force, set out again and captured forty-two prisoners, including the two Wolmarans. Just two days later, Hamilton returned to the same area and was rewarded with thirty-two more captures. On the 18th, he took twenty-seven, on the 24th, twelve, and on the 26th, an impressive ninety. The impact of these attacks was so severe, and it was so challenging for the Boers to escape from an opponent willing to ride thirty miles in a night to ambush their camp, that the enemy became scattered and too demoralized for offensive actions. Noticing that the Boers had become too hesitant in this heavily targeted region, Hamilton advanced further south and, in early March, took a detour around the Vryheid district, where he made some captures, notably General Cherry Emmett, a descendant of the famous Irish rebel and brother-in-law of Louis Botha. For all these consistent successes, much credit is due to the Intelligence Department, expertly managed by Colonel Wools-Sampson.

Whilst Bruce Hamilton was operating so successfully in the Ermelo district, several British columns under Plumer, Spens, and Colville were stationed some fifty miles south to prevent the fugitives from getting away into the mountainous country which lies to the north of Wakkerstroom. On January 3rd a small force of Plumer's New Zealanders had a brisk skirmish with a party of Boers, whose cattle they captured, though at some loss to themselves. These Boers were strongly reinforced, however, and when on the following day Major Vallentin pursued them with fifty men he found himself at Onverwacht in the presence of several hundred of the enemy, led by Oppermann and Christian Botha. Vallentin was killed and almost all of his small force were hit before British reinforcements, under Colonel Pulteney, drove the Boers off. Nineteen killed and twenty-three wounded were our losses in this most sanguinary little skirmish. Nine dead Boers, with Oppermann himself, were left upon the field of battle. His loss was a serious one to the enemy, as he was one of their most experienced Generals.

While Bruce Hamilton was operating successfully in the Ermelo district, several British columns under Plumer, Spens, and Colville were stationed about fifty miles south to stop the escapees from getting into the mountainous region north of Wakkerstroom. On January 3rd, a small group of Plumer's New Zealanders had a quick skirmish with a group of Boers and captured their cattle, though they suffered some losses. These Boers, however, were strongly reinforced, and when Major Vallentin chased them the next day with fifty men, he found himself at Onverwacht confronted by several hundred enemy troops led by Oppermann and Christian Botha. Vallentin was killed, and almost all of his small force was hit before British reinforcements under Colonel Pulteney pushed the Boers back. We suffered nineteen dead and twenty-three wounded in this bloody skirmish. Nine dead Boers, including Oppermann himself, were left on the battlefield. His loss was significant for the enemy, as he was one of their most experienced generals.

From that time until the end these columns, together with Mackenzie's column to the north of Ermelo, continued to break up all combinations, and to send in their share of prisoners to swell Lord Kitchener's weekly list. A final drive, organised on April 11th against the Standerton line, resulted in 134 prisoners.

From that time until the end, these columns, along with Mackenzie's column to the north of Ermelo, kept disrupting all plans and sending in their share of prisoners to add to Lord Kitchener's weekly count. A final offensive, organized on April 11th against the Standerton line, led to 134 prisoners.

In spite of the very large army in South Africa, so many men were absorbed by the huge lines of communications and the blockhouse system that the number available for active operations was never more than forty or fifty thousand men. With another fifty thousand there is no doubt that at least six months would have been taken from the duration of the war. On account of this shorthandedness Lord Kitchener had to leave certain districts alone, while he directed his attention to those which were more essential. Thus to the north of the Delagoa Railway line there was only one town, Lydenburg, which was occupied by the British. They had, however, an energetic commander in Park of the Devons. This leader, striking out from his stronghold among the mountains, and aided by Urmston from Belfast, kept the commando of Ben Viljoen and the peripatetic Government of Schalk Burger continually upon the move. As already narrated, Park fought a sharp night action upon December 19th, after which, in combination with Urmston, he occupied Dulstroom, only missing the government by a few hours. In January Park and Urmston were again upon the war-path, though the incessant winds, fogs, and rains of that most inclement portion of the Transvaal seriously hampered their operations. Several skirmishes with the commandos of Muller and Trichardt gave no very decisive result, but a piece of luck befell the British on January 25th in the capture of General Viljoen by an ambuscade cleverly arranged by Major Orr in the neighbourhood of Lydenburg. Though a great firebrand before the war, Viljoen had fought bravely and honourably throughout the contest, and he had won the respect and esteem of his enemy.

Despite the large army in South Africa, many soldiers were tied up with the extensive supply lines and the blockhouse system, so the number available for active operations never exceeded forty or fifty thousand. With an additional fifty thousand, it’s clear that at least six months could have been cut from the war’s duration. Because of this shortage, Lord Kitchener had to leave certain areas untouched while focusing on the more critical ones. North of the Delagoa Railway line, the only British-occupied town was Lydenburg. However, they had a dynamic commander in Park of the Devons. He emerged from his mountain stronghold and, with help from Urmston in Belfast, kept the commando of Ben Viljoen and the roaming Government of Schalk Burger constantly on the move. As previously mentioned, Park engaged in an intense night battle on December 19th, and afterward, along with Urmston, he took Dulstroom, just missing the government by a few hours. In January, Park and Urmston were back in action, although the relentless winds, fogs, and rains of that harsh area of the Transvaal severely hindered their efforts. Several skirmishes with the commandos of Muller and Trichardt yielded no significant outcomes, but on January 25th, the British scored a fortunate victory by capturing General Viljoen through a clever ambush set up by Major Orr near Lydenburg. Although he was a fierce figure before the war, Viljoen fought bravely and honorably throughout the conflict, earning the respect and esteem of his adversaries.

Colonel Park had had no great success in his last two expeditions, but on February 20th he made an admirable march, and fell upon a Boer laager which lay in placid security in the heart of the hills. One hundred and sixty-four prisoners, including many Boer officers, were the fruits of this success, in which the National Scouts, or 'tame Boers,' as they were familiarly called, played a prominent part. This commando was that of Middelburg, which was acting as escort to the government, who again escaped dissolution. Early in March Park was again out on trek, upon one occasion covering seventy miles in a single day. Nothing further of importance came from this portion of the seat of war until March 23rd, when the news reached England that Schalk Burger, Reitz, Lucas Meyer, and others of the Transvaal Government had come into Middelburg, and that they were anxious to proceed to Pretoria to treat. On the Eastern horizon had appeared the first golden gleam of the dawning peace.

Colonel Park had not achieved much success in his last two missions, but on February 20th, he executed an impressive march and attacked a Boer camp that was comfortably situated in the hills. This success resulted in the capture of one hundred and sixty-four prisoners, including several Boer officers, with the National Scouts, or 'tame Boers' as they were commonly known, playing a key role. This commando was from Middelburg, providing security for the government, which narrowly avoided collapse again. Early in March, Park was out on trek again, at one point covering seventy miles in a single day. Nothing significant happened in this area of the conflict until March 23rd, when news reached England that Schalk Burger, Reitz, Lucas Meyer, and others from the Transvaal Government had arrived in Middelburg and were eager to go to Pretoria to negotiate. The first signs of a hopeful peace were beginning to show on the Eastern horizon.

Having indicated the course of events in the Eastern Transvaal, north and south of the railway line, I will now treat one or two incidents which occurred in the more central and northern portions of the country. I will then give some account of De Wet's doings in the Orange River Colony, and finally describe that brilliant effort of De la Rey's in the west which shed a last glory upon the Boer arms.

Having outlined what happened in the Eastern Transvaal, both north and south of the railway line, I will now discuss a couple of incidents that took place in the more central and northern parts of the country. After that, I'll provide some details about De Wet's activities in the Orange River Colony, and finally, I'll describe that impressive effort by De la Rey in the west that brought one last moment of glory to the Boer forces.

In the latter days of December, Colenbrander and Dawkins operating together had put in a great deal of useful work in the northern district, and from Nylstrom to Pietersburg the burghers were continually harried by the activity of these leaders. Late in the month Dawkins was sent down into the Orange River Colony in order to reinforce the troops who were opposed to De Wet. Colenbrander alone, with his hardy colonial forces, swept through the Magaliesburg, and had the double satisfaction of capturing a number of the enemy and of heading off and sending back a war party of Linchwe's Kaffirs who, incensed by a cattle raid of Kemp's, were moving down in a direction which would have brought them dangerously near to the Dutch women and children. This instance and several similar ones in the campaign show how vile are the lies which have been told of the use, save under certain well-defined conditions, of armed natives by the British during the war. It would have been a perfectly easy thing at any time for the Government to have raised all the fighting native races of South Africa, but it is not probable that we, who held back our admirable and highly disciplined Sikhs and Ghoorkas, would break our self-imposed restrictions in order to enrol the inferior but more savage races of Africa. Yet no charge has been more often repeated and has caused more piteous protests among the soft-hearted and soft-headed editors of Continental journals.

In the late days of December, Colenbrander and Dawkins worked together to accomplish a lot of valuable tasks in the northern district, and from Nylstrom to Pietersburg, the locals were constantly troubled by the actions of these leaders. Late in the month, Dawkins was sent down to the Orange River Colony to strengthen the troops against De Wet. Colenbrander, alone with his tough colonial forces, moved through the Magaliesburg, achieving the double victory of capturing several enemies and intercepting a war party of Linchwe's Kaffirs who, angry about a cattle raid by Kemp, were heading toward the Dutch women and children. This situation and several similar ones in the campaign highlight the baseless claims made about the use of armed natives by the British during the war, except under specific conditions. The Government could have easily mobilized all the fighting native races in South Africa, but it’s unlikely that we, who held back our excellent and well-trained Sikhs and Ghoorkas, would break our self-imposed rules to recruit the less advanced but more savage races of Africa. Still, this accusation has been repeated so often, causing many heartfelt outcries from the overly sympathetic and misguided editors of European newspapers.

The absence of Colenbrander in the Rustenburg country gave Beyers a chance of which he was not slow to avail himself. On January 24th, in the early morning, he delivered an attack upon Pietersburg itself, but he was easily driven off by the small garrison. It is probable, however, that the attack was a mere feint in order to enable a number of the inmates of the refugee camp to escape. About a hundred and fifty made off, and rejoined the commandos. There were three thousand Boers in all in this camp, which was shortly afterwards moved down to Natal in order to avoid the recurrence of such an incident.

The absence of Colenbrander in the Rustenburg area gave Beyers an opportunity he quickly took advantage of. On January 24th, early in the morning, he launched an attack on Pietersburg itself, but was easily pushed back by the small garrison. However, it’s likely that the attack was just a distraction to allow some of the people in the refugee camp to escape. About one hundred and fifty managed to get away and rejoined the commandos. There were three thousand Boers in total in this camp, which was soon moved down to Natal to prevent such incidents from happening again.

Colenbrander, having returned to Pietersburg once more, determined to return Beyers's visit, and upon April 8th he moved out with a small force to surprise the Boer laager. The Inniskilling Fusiliers seized the ground which commanded the enemy's position. The latter retreated, but were followed up, and altogether about one hundred and fifty were killed, wounded, and taken. On May 3rd a fresh operation against Beyers was undertaken, and resulted in about the same loss to the Boers. On the other hand, the Boers had a small success against Kitchener's Scouts, killing eighteen and taking thirty prisoners.

Colenbrander, back in Pietersburg again, decided to return Beyers's visit, and on April 8th he set out with a small group to catch the Boer laager by surprise. The Inniskilling Fusiliers took control of the high ground that overlooked the enemy's position. The Boers retreated but were pursued, resulting in around one hundred and fifty killed, wounded, or captured. On May 3rd, another operation was launched against Beyers, leading to a similar level of losses for the Boers. However, the Boers had a minor victory against Kitchener's Scouts, killing eighteen and capturing thirty.

There is one incident, however, in connection with the war in this region which one would desire to pass over in silence if such a course were permissible. Some eighty miles to the east of Pietersburg is a wild part of the country called the Spelonken. In this region an irregular corps, named the Bushveld Carbineers, had been operating. It was raised in South Africa, but contained both Colonials and British in its ranks. Its wild duties, its mixed composition, and its isolated situation must have all militated against discipline and restraint, and it appears to have degenerated into a band not unlike those Southern 'bush-whackers' in the American war to whom the Federals showed little mercy. They had given short shrift to the Boer prisoners who had fallen into their hands, the excuse offered for their barbarous conduct being that an officer who had served in the corps had himself been murdered by the Boers. Such a reason, even if it were true, could of course offer no justification for indiscriminate revenge. The crimes were committed in July and August 1901, but it was not until January 1902 that five of the officers were put upon their trial and were found to be guilty as principals or accessories of twelve murders. The corps was disbanded, and three of the accused officers, Handcock, Wilton, and Morant, were sentenced to death, while another, Picton, was cashiered. Handcock and Morant were actually executed. This stern measure shows more clearly than volumes of argument could do how high was the standard of discipline in the British Army, and how heavy was the punishment, and how vain all excuses, where it had been infringed. In the face of this actual outrage and its prompt punishment how absurd becomes that crusade against imaginary outrages preached by an ignorant press abroad, and by renegade Englishmen at home.

There is one incident related to the war in this area that one would wish to ignore if that were possible. About eighty miles east of Pietersburg lies a wild region known as the Spelonken. An irregular unit called the Bushveld Carbineers had been active in this area. It was formed in South Africa but included both Colonials and British soldiers. Its chaotic tasks, diverse makeup, and remote location must have worked against discipline and control, and it seems to have turned into a group not unlike the Southern 'bush-whackers' during the American Civil War, to whom the Federals showed little mercy. They were quick to deal harshly with the Boer prisoners they captured, justifying their brutal actions by claiming that an officer from their unit had been killed by the Boers. Such reasoning, even if true, cannot excuse indiscriminate revenge. The crimes occurred in July and August 1901, but it wasn't until January 1902 that five officers were put on trial and found guilty as main perpetrators or accomplices in twelve murders. The unit was disbanded, and three of the accused officers, Handcock, Wilton, and Morant, were sentenced to death, while another, Picton, was discharged. Handcock and Morant were actually executed. This harsh response illustrates more clearly than endless discussions ever could the high standard of discipline in the British Army, the severity of punishment, and the futility of all excuses when that discipline was violated. In light of this clear outrage and its swift punishment, the campaign against imagined injustices promoted by an uninformed press abroad and by disgraced Englishmen at home seems utterly ridiculous.

To the south of Johannesburg, half-way between that town and the frontier, there is a range of hills called the Zuikerboschrand, which extends across from one railway system to the other. A number of Boers were known to have sought refuge in this country, so upon February 12th a small British force left Klip River Post in order to clear them out. There were 320 men in all, composing the 28th Mounted Infantry, drawn from the Lancashire Fusiliers, Warwicks, and Derbys, most of whom had just arrived from Malta, which one would certainly imagine to be the last place where mounted infantry could be effectively trained. Major Dowell was in command. An advance was made into the hilly country, but it was found that the enemy was in much greater force than had been imagined. The familiar Boer tactics were used with the customary success. The British line was held by a sharp fire in front, while strong flanking parties galloped round each of the wings. It was with great difficulty that any of the British extricated themselves from their perilous position, and the safety of a portion of the force was only secured by the devotion of a handful of officers and men, who gave their lives in order to gain time for their comrades to get away. Twelve killed and fifty wounded were our losses in this unfortunate skirmish, and about one hundred prisoners supplied the victors with a useful addition to their rifles and ammunition. A stronger British force came up next day, and the enemy were driven out of the hills.

To the south of Johannesburg, halfway between the town and the border, there’s a range of hills called the Zuikerboschrand, which spans from one railway system to another. It was known that several Boers had taken refuge in this area, so on February 12th, a small British force left Klip River Post to drive them out. There were 320 men in total, made up of the 28th Mounted Infantry, drawn from the Lancashire Fusiliers, Warwicks, and Derbys, most of whom had just arrived from Malta, which you'd think would be the last place to effectively train mounted infantry. Major Dowell was in charge. They advanced into the hilly terrain but quickly discovered that the enemy was much stronger than they had expected. The familiar Boer tactics were employed with their usual success. The British line faced intense fire in front while strong flanking parties rode around both sides. It was incredibly difficult for any of the British to escape from their dangerous situation, and the safety of part of the force was only ensured by the bravery of a few officers and men, who sacrificed their lives to buy time for their comrades to retreat. We suffered twelve killed and fifty wounded in this unfortunate skirmish, and about one hundred prisoners provided the victors with a useful supply of rifles and ammunition. A larger British force arrived the following day, and the enemy was driven out of the hills.

A week later, upon February 18th, there occurred another skirmish at Klippan, near Springs, between a squadron of the Scots Greys and a party of Boers who had broken into this central reserve which Lord Kitchener had long kept clear of the enemy. In this action the cavalry were treated as roughly as the mounted infantry had been the week before, losing three officers killed, eight men killed or wounded, and forty-six taken. They had formed a flanking party to General Gilbert Hamilton's column, but were attacked and overwhelmed so rapidly that the blow had fallen before their comrades could come to their assistance.

A week later, on February 18th, another clash happened at Klippan, near Springs, between a squad of the Scots Greys and a group of Boers who had invaded a central reserve that Lord Kitchener had kept clear of the enemy for a long time. In this fight, the cavalry faced as much rough treatment as the mounted infantry did the week before, losing three officers killed, eight men either killed or wounded, and forty-six taken prisoner. They had formed a flanking unit for General Gilbert Hamilton's column, but they were attacked and overwhelmed so quickly that the blow struck before their comrades could come to help.

One of the consequences of the successful drives about to be described in the Orange River Colony was that a number of the Free Staters came north of the Vaal in order to get away from the extreme pressure upon the south. At the end of March a considerable number had reinforced the local commandos in that district to the east of Springs, no very great distance from Johannesburg, which had always been a storm centre. A cavalry force was stationed at this spot which consisted at that time of the 2nd Queen's Bays, the 7th Hussars, and some National Scouts, all under Colonel Lawley of the Hussars. After a series of minor engagements east of Springs, Lawley had possessed himself of Boschman's Kop, eighteen miles from that town, close to the district which was the chief scene of Boer activity. From this base he despatched upon the morning of April 1st three squadrons of the Bays under Colonel Fanshawe, for the purpose of surprising a small force of the enemy which was reported at one of the farms. Fanshawe's strength was about three hundred men.

One of the outcomes of the successful operations about to be described in the Orange River Colony was that a number of Free Staters moved north of the Vaal to escape the intense pressure from the south. By the end of March, a significant number had joined the local commandos in the area east of Springs, not far from Johannesburg, which had always been a hotspot. A cavalry unit was stationed there, made up of the 2nd Queen's Bays, the 7th Hussars, and some National Scouts, all under Colonel Lawley of the Hussars. After several minor skirmishes east of Springs, Lawley took control of Boschman's Kop, eighteen miles from town, near the area that was the main hub of Boer activity. From this base, he sent out three squadrons of the Bays under Colonel Fanshawe on the morning of April 1st, aiming to surprise a small enemy force reported at one of the farms. Fanshawe's contingent numbered about three hundred men.

The British cavalry found themselves, however, in the position of the hunter who, when he is out for a snipe, puts up a tiger. All went well with the expedition as far as Holspruit, the farm which they had started to search. Commandant Pretorius, to whom it belonged, was taken by the energy of Major Vaughan, who pursued and overtook his Cape cart. It was found, however, that Alberts's commando was camped at the farm, and that the Bays were in the presence of a very superior force of the enemy. The night was dark, and when firing began it was almost muzzle to muzzle, with the greatest possible difficulty in telling friend from foe. The three squadrons fell back upon some rising ground, keeping admirable order under most difficult circumstances. In spite of the darkness the attack was pressed fiercely home, and with their favourite tactics the burghers rapidly outflanked the position taken up by the cavalry. The British moved by alternate squadrons on to a higher rocky kopje on the east, which could be vaguely distinguished looming in the darkness against the skyline. B squadron, the last to retire, was actually charged and ridden through by the brave assailants, firing from their saddles as they broke through the ranks. The British had hardly time to reach the kopje and to dismount and line its edge when the Boers, yelling loudly, charged with their horses up the steep flanks. Twice they were beaten back, but the third time they seized one corner of the hill and opened a hot fire upon the rear of the line of men who were defending the other side. Dawn was now breaking, and the situation most serious, for the Boers were in very superior numbers and were pushing their pursuit with the utmost vigour and determination. A small party of officers and men whose horses had been shot covered the retreat of their comrades, and continued to fire until all of them, two officers and twenty-three men, were killed or wounded, the whole of their desperate defence being conducted within from thirty to fifty yards of the enemy. The remainder of the regiment was now retired to successive ridges, each of which was rapidly outflanked by the Boers, whose whole method of conducting their attack was extraordinarily skilful. Nothing but the excellent discipline of the overmatched troopers prevented the retreat from becoming a rout. Fortunately, before the pressure became intolerable the 7th Hussars with some artillery came to the rescue, and turned the tide. The Hussars galloped in with such dash that some of them actually got among the Boers with their swords, but the enemy rapidly fell back and disappeared.

The British cavalry found themselves in the same situation as a hunter who, while out looking for a snipe, unexpectedly stumbles upon a tiger. Everything went well for the expedition up to Holspruit, the farm they had set out to search. Commandant Pretorius, the owner of the farm, was caught off guard by Major Vaughan's determination, who chased down and caught up with his Cape cart. However, it turned out that Alberts's commando was camped at the farm, placing the Bays in front of a much larger enemy force. The night was dark, and when the shooting started, it was nearly point-blank, making it extremely difficult to distinguish between friend and foe. The three squadrons retreated to higher ground, maintaining excellent order under very challenging circumstances. Despite the darkness, the attack was fiercely pressed, and the Boer fighters quickly outflanked the position held by the cavalry. The British advanced with alternate squadrons onto a higher rocky hill to the east, which could barely be seen against the dark skyline. B squadron, the last to pull back, was charged and overrun by the brave attackers, who fired from their saddles as they broke through the lines. The British barely had time to reach the hill, dismount, and line its edge when the Boers, shouting loudly, charged up the steep slopes on horseback. They were repelled twice, but on the third attempt, they captured one corner of the hill and opened fire on the rear of the men defending the other side. Dawn began to break, highlighting the seriousness of the situation, as the Boers had overwhelming numbers and were relentlessly pursuing. A small group of officers and men, whose horses had been shot, covered their comrades' retreat and continued firing until all of them—two officers and twenty-three men—were killed or wounded, conducting their desperate defense from just thirty to fifty yards away from the enemy. The rest of the regiment retreated to successive ridges, each of which was quickly outflanked by the Boers, whose approach was exceptionally skillful. Only the excellent discipline of the outmatched troopers prevented the retreat from turning into a rout. Fortunately, just as the pressure was becoming unbearable, the 7th Hussars, along with some artillery, arrived to help and changed the course of the battle. The Hussars charged in so boldly that some even got among the Boers with their swords, but the enemy quickly fell back and vanished.

In this very sharp and sanguinary cavalry skirmish the Bays lost eighty killed and wounded out of a total force of 270. To stand such losses under such circumstances, and to preserve absolute discipline and order, is a fine test of soldierly virtue. The adjutant, the squadron leaders, and six out of ten officers were killed or wounded. The Boers lost equally heavily. Two Prinsloos, one of them a commandant, and three field-cornets were among the slain, with seventy other casualties. The force under General Alberts was a considerable one, not fewer than six hundred rifles, so that the action at Holspruit is one which adds another name of honour to the battle-roll of the Bays. It is pleasing to add that in this and the other actions which were fought at the end of the war our wounded met with kindness and consideration from the enemy.

In this intense and bloody cavalry clash, the Bays lost eighty men killed and wounded out of a total force of 270. Enduring such losses in those conditions while maintaining complete discipline and order is a true test of a soldier's character. The adjutant, squadron leaders, and six out of ten officers were killed or injured. The Boers suffered similar heavy losses. Two Prinsloos, one a commandant, and three field-cornets were among the dead, along with seventy other casualties. General Alberts led a significant force of no fewer than six hundred rifles, making the action at Holspruit another honorable addition to the Bays' battle record. It's also gratifying to note that during this and other fights toward the end of the war, our wounded were treated with kindness and respect by the enemy.

We may now descend to the Orange River Colony and trace the course of those operations which were destined to break the power of De Wet's commando. On these we may concentrate our attention, for the marchings and gleanings and snipings of the numerous small columns in the other portions of the colony, although they involved much arduous and useful work, do not claim a particular account.

We can now head to the Orange River Colony and follow the events that aimed to defeat De Wet's commando. Let’s focus on these, as the movements, scouting, and small engagements of the various smaller units in other parts of the colony, while they included a lot of hard and valuable work, don’t require a detailed account.

After the heavy blow which he dealt Firmin's Yeomanry, De Wet retired, as has been told, into the Langberg, whence he afterwards retreated towards Reitz. There he was energetically pushed by Elliot's columns, which had attained such mobility that 150 miles were performed in three days within a single week. Our rough schoolmasters had taught us our lesson, and the soldiering which accomplished the marches of Bruce Hamilton, Elliot, Rimington, and the other leaders of the end of the war was very far removed from that which is associated with ox-wagons and harmoniums.

After the heavy blow he dealt to Firmin's Yeomanry, De Wet retired, as mentioned, into the Langberg, from where he later retreated toward Reitz. He was vigorously pursued by Elliot's columns, which had become so mobile that they covered 150 miles in three days within just one week. Our tough teachers had taught us our lesson, and the military strategies that enabled the marches of Bruce Hamilton, Elliot, Rimington, and the other leaders at the end of the war were a far cry from the ones associated with ox-wagons and harmoniums.

Moving rapidly, and covering himself by a succession of rearguard skirmishes, De Wet danced like a will-o'the-wisp in front of and round the British columns. De Lisle, Fanshawe, Byng, Rimington, Dawkins, and Rawlinson were all snatching at him and finding him just beyond their finger-tips. The master-mind at Pretoria had, however, thought out a scheme which was worthy of De Wet himself in its ingenuity. A glance at the map will show that the little branch from Heilbron to Wolvehoek forms an acute angle with the main line. Both these railways were strongly blockhoused and barbed-wired, so that any force which was driven into the angle, and held in it by a force behind it, would be in a perilous position. To attempt to round De Wet's mobile burghers into this obvious pen would have been to show one's hand too clearly. In vain is the net laid in sight of the bird. The drive was therefore made away from this point, with the confident expectation that the guerilla chief would break back through the columns, and that they might then pivot round upon him and hustle him so rapidly into the desired position that he would not realise his danger until it was too late. Byng's column was left behind the driving line to be ready for the expected backward break. All came off exactly as expected. De Wet doubled back through the columns, and one of his commandos stumbled upon Byng's men, who were waiting on the Vlei River to the west of Reitz. The Boers seem to have taken it for granted that, having passed the British driving line, they were out of danger, and for once it was they who were surprised. The South African Light Horse, the New Zealanders, and the Queensland Bushmen all rode in upon them. A fifteen-pounder, the one taken at Tweefontein, and two pom-poms were captured, with thirty prisoners and a considerable quantity of stores.

Moving quickly and covering himself with a series of rear-guard skirmishes, De Wet darted around the British columns like a will-o'-the-wisp. De Lisle, Fanshawe, Byng, Rimington, Dawkins, and Rawlinson were all trying to catch him but found him just out of reach. The strategist in Pretoria, however, devised a plan that was as clever as De Wet himself. Looking at the map, you can see that the small branch from Heilbron to Wolvehoek forms an acute angle with the main line. Both railways were heavily blockaded with blockhouses and barbed wire, so any force pushed into the angle and trapped there would be in a dangerous spot. Trying to corner De Wet's agile burghers in this apparent trap would have revealed intentions too clearly. After all, a net shouldn't be set in sight of the bird. The maneuver was made away from this point, with the strong expectation that the guerrilla leader would retreat back through the columns, allowing them to pivot and surround him so quickly that he wouldn't realize the danger until it was too late. Byng's column stayed behind the main line to be ready for the anticipated retreat. Everything went as planned. De Wet turned back through the columns, and one of his commandos encountered Byng's men, who were waiting by the Vlei River to the west of Reitz. The Boers seemed to assume that since they had passed the British main line, they were safe, and for once, it was they who were caught off guard. The South African Light Horse, the New Zealanders, and the Queensland Bushmen all charged in on them. A fifteen-pounder, the one captured at Tweefontein, along with two pom-poms, were taken, along with thirty prisoners and a significant amount of supplies.

This successful skirmish was a small matter, however, compared to the importance of being in close touch with De Wet and having a definite objective for the drive. The columns behind expanded suddenly into a spray of mounted men forming a continuous line for over sixty miles. On February 5th the line was advancing, and on the 6th it was known that De Wet was actually within the angle, the mouth of which was spanned by the British line. Hope ran high in Pretoria. The space into which the burgher chief had been driven was bounded by sixty-six miles of blockhouse and wire on one side and thirty on the other, while the third side of the triangle was crossed by fifty-five miles of British horsemen, flanked by a blockhouse line between Kroonstad and Lindley. The tension along the lines of defence was extreme. Infantry guarded every yard of them, and armoured trains patrolled them, while at night searchlights at regular intervals shed their vivid rays over the black expanse of the veld and illuminated the mounted figures who flitted from time to time across their narrow belts of light.

This successful skirmish was minor compared to the importance of staying in close contact with De Wet and having a clear goal for the operation. The columns behind suddenly expanded into a wave of mounted troops forming a continuous line for over sixty miles. On February 5th, the line was advancing, and on the 6th, it was reported that De Wet was actually within the area surrounded by the British line. There was a lot of optimism in Pretoria. The space where the burgher chief had been cornered was bordered by sixty-six miles of blockhouses and barbed wire on one side and thirty miles on the other, while the third side of the triangle was covered by fifty-five miles of British cavalry, flanked by a blockhouse line between Kroonstad and Lindley. The tension along the defensive lines was intense. Infantry guarded every inch of them, and armored trains patrolled the area, while at night, searchlights periodically swept their bright beams across the dark expanse of the veld, illuminating the mounted figures that occasionally moved through their narrow paths of light.

On the 6th De Wet realised his position, and with characteristic audacity and promptness he took means to clear the formidable toils which had been woven round him. The greater part of his command scattered, with orders to make their way as best they might out of the danger. Working in their own country, where every crease and fold of the ground was familiar to them, it is not surprising that most of them managed to make their way through gaps in the attenuated line of horsemen behind them. A few were killed, and a considerable number taken, 270 being the respectable total of the prisoners. Three or four slipped through, however, for every one who stuck in the meshes. De Wet himself was reported to have made his escape by driving cattle against the wire fences which enclosed him. It seems, however, to have been nothing more romantic than a wire-cutter which cleared his path, though cattle no doubt made their way through the gap which he left. With a loss of only three of his immediate followers be Wet won his way out of the most dangerous position which even his adventurous career had ever known. Lord Kitchener had descended to Wolvehoek to be present at the climax of the operations, but it was not fated that he was to receive the submission of the most energetic of his opponents, and he returned to Pretoria to weave a fresh mesh around him.

On the 6th, De Wet realized his situation, and with his usual boldness and quick action, he took steps to escape the serious trap that had been set for him. Most of his troops scattered, following orders to find their way out of danger as best they could. Working in their own territory, where every dip and rise in the land was familiar to them, it’s not surprising that many managed to slip through gaps in the thin line of horsemen behind them. A few were killed, and a significant number were captured, totaling 270 prisoners. However, for every one who got caught, three or four managed to get away. De Wet was reported to have escaped by driving cattle against the wire fences around him. It turns out, though, that it was nothing more dramatic than a wire-cutter that cleared his way, although the cattle likely went through the gap he created. With the loss of only three of his closest followers, De Wet got out of the most dangerous situation he had ever faced in his adventurous career. Lord Kitchener had gone down to Wolvehoek to witness the peak of the operations, but it wasn’t meant for him to receive the surrender of his most active opponent, and he returned to Pretoria to set another trap.

This was not hard to do, as the Boer General had simply escaped from one pen into another, though a larger one. After a short rest to restore the columns, the whole pack were full cry upon his heels once more. An acute angle is formed by the Wilge River on one side and the line of blockhouses between Harrismith and Van Reenen upon the other. This was strongly manned by troops and five columns; those of Rawlinson, Nixon, Byng, Rimington, and Keir herded the broken commandos into the trap. From February 20th the troops swept in an enormous skirmish line across the country, ascending hills, exploring kloofs, searching river banks, and always keeping the enemy in front of them. At last, when the pressure was severely felt, there came the usual breakback, which took the form of a most determined night attack upon the British line. This was delivered shortly after midnight on February 23rd. It struck the British cordon at the point of juncture between Byng's column and that of Rimington. So huge were the distances which had to be covered, and so attenuated was the force which covered them, that the historical thin red line was a massive formation compared to its khaki equivalent. The chain was frail and the links were not all carefully joined, but each particular link was good metal, and the Boer impact came upon one of the best. This was the 7th New Zealand Contingent, who proved themselves to be worthy comrades to their six gallant predecessors. Their patrols were broken by the rush of wild, yelling, firing horsemen, but the troopers made a most gallant resistance. Having pierced the line the Boers, who were led in their fiery rush by Manie Botha, turned to their flank, and, charging down the line of weak patrols, overwhelmed one after another and threatened to roll up the whole line. They had cleared a gap of half a mile, and it seemed as if the whole Boer force would certainly escape through so long a gap in the defences. The desperate defence of the New Zealanders gave time, however, for the further patrols, which consisted of Cox's New South Wales Mounted Infantry, to fall back almost at right angles so as to present a fresh face to the attack. The pivot of the resistance was a maxim gun, most gallantly handled by Captain Begbie and his men. The fight at this point was almost muzzle to muzzle, fifty or sixty New Zealanders and Australians with the British gunners holding off a force of several hundred of the best fighting men of the Boer forces. In this desperate duel many dropped on both sides. Begbie died beside his gun, which fired eighty rounds before it jammed. It was run back by its crew in order to save it from capture. But reinforcements were coming up, and the Boer attack was beaten back. A number of them had escaped, however, through the opening which they had cleared, and it was conjectured that the wonderful De Wet was among them. How fierce was the storm which had broken on the New Zealanders may be shown by their roll of twenty killed and forty wounded, while thirty dead Boers were picked up in front of their picket line. Of eight New Zealand officers seven are reported to have been hit, an even higher proportion than that which the same gallant race endured at the battle of Rhenoster Kop more than a year before.

This was not difficult to do, as the Boer General had simply moved from one confinement area to another, albeit a larger one. After a short break to regroup, the entire unit was back in pursuit of him. An acute angle is formed by the Wilge River on one side and the line of blockhouses between Harrismith and Van Reenen on the other. This area was heavily staffed with troops and five columns; Rawlinson, Nixon, Byng, Rimington, and Keir herded the disorganized commandos into the trap. From February 20th, the troops swept across the countryside in a vast skirmish line, ascending hills, exploring ravines, searching riverbanks, and always keeping the enemy in front of them. Finally, when the pressure became intense, there was the usual counterattack, taking the form of a determined night assault on the British line. This occurred shortly after midnight on February 23rd. It struck the British perimeter at the junction between Byng's column and Rimington's. The distances that had to be covered were immense, and the force covering them was so reduced that the famed thin red line seemed like a robust formation compared to its khaki counterpart. The chain was fragile and not all the links were securely fastened, but each link was solid, and the Boer impact came against one of the strongest. This was the 7th New Zealand Contingent, who proved to be worthy allies to their six brave predecessors. Their patrols were disrupted by the charge of wild, yelling, firing horsemen, but the troopers put up a courageous resistance. After breaking through the line, the Boers, led in their furious rush by Manie Botha, turned to the side and, sweeping down the line of weak patrols, overwhelmed them one after another, threatening to sweep through the entire line. They had created a gap of half a mile, and it seemed certain that the entire Boer force would escape through such a wide breach in the defenses. However, the determined defense of the New Zealanders bought time for additional patrols, consisting of Cox's New South Wales Mounted Infantry, to retreat almost at right angles, presenting a fresh front to the assault. The core of the resistance was a maxim gun, bravely operated by Captain Begbie and his men. The fight at this point was almost face-to-face, with fifty or sixty New Zealanders and Australians holding off a force of several hundred of the best fighters among the Boer forces. In this fierce duel, many fell on both sides. Begbie died beside his gun, which fired eighty rounds before it jammed. It was pulled back by its crew to save it from capture. But reinforcements were on the way, and the Boer attack was repelled. However, several of them escaped through the gap they had created, with speculation that the remarkable De Wet was among them. The intensity of the assault on the New Zealanders is reflected in their toll of twenty killed and forty wounded, while thirty dead Boers were found in front of their picket line. Of eight New Zealand officers, seven are reported to have been hit, an even higher proportion than the brave individuals endured at the battle of Rhenoster Kop more than a year prior.

It was feared at first that the greater part of the Boers might have escaped upon this night of the 23rd, when Manie Botha's storming party burst through the ranks of the New Zealanders. It was soon discovered that this was not so, and the columns as they closed in had evidence from the numerous horsemen who scampered aimlessly over the hills in front of them that the main body of the enemy was still in the toils. The advance was in tempestuous weather and over rugged country, but the men were filled with eagerness, and no precaution was neglected to keep the line intact.

It was initially feared that most of the Boers might have escaped that night of the 23rd when Manie Botha's attacking force broke through the ranks of the New Zealanders. However, it was soon found that this wasn’t the case, as the closing columns noticed the many horsemen running aimlessly over the hills in front of them, indicating that the main body of the enemy was still trapped. The advance took place in stormy weather and over rough terrain, but the soldiers were filled with enthusiasm, and no effort was spared to maintain the line.

This time their efforts were crowned with considerable success. A second attempt was made by the corraled burghers to break out on the night of February 26th, but it was easily repulsed by Nixon. The task of the troopers as the cordon drew south was more and more difficult, and there were places traversed upon the Natal border where an alpen stock would have been a more useful adjunct than a horse. At six o'clock on the morning of the 27th came the end. Two Boers appeared in front of the advancing line of the Imperial Light Horse and held up a flag. They proved to be Truter and De Jager, ready to make terms for their commando. The only terms offered were absolute surrender within the hour. The Boers had been swept into a very confined space, which was closely hemmed in by troops, so that any resistance must have ended in a tragedy. Fortunately there was no reason for desperate councils in their case, since they did not fight as Lotter had done, with the shadow of judgment hanging over him. The burghers piled arms, and all was over.

This time their efforts were met with significant success. A second attempt was made by the surrounded burghers to escape on the night of February 26th, but it was easily thwarted by Nixon. As the cordon moved south, the task for the troopers became increasingly challenging, and there were areas along the Natal border where a trekking pole would have been more helpful than a horse. At six o'clock on the morning of the 27th, the end came. Two Boers showed up in front of the advancing line of the Imperial Light Horse and raised a flag. They turned out to be Truter and De Jager, ready to negotiate terms for their commando. The only terms offered were complete surrender within the hour. The Boers had been pushed into a very tight space, which was closely surrounded by troops, meaning any resistance would have resulted in tragedy. Luckily, there was no need for desperate decisions in their case, since they didn’t fight like Lotter, who faced the threat of judgment. The burghers laid down their arms, and all was finished.

The total number captured in this important drive was 780 men, including several leaders, one of whom was De Wet's own son. It was found that De Wet himself had been among those who had got away through the picket lines on the night of the 23rd. Most of the commando were Transvaalers, and it was typical of the wide sweep of the net that many of them were the men who had been engaged against the 28th Mounted Infantry in the district south of Johannesburg upon the 12th of the same month. The loss of 2000 horses and 50,000 cartridges meant as much as that of the men to the Boer army. It was evident that a few more such blows would clear the Orange River Colony altogether.

The total number captured in this crucial operation was 780 men, including several leaders, one of whom was De Wet's own son. It turned out that De Wet himself had managed to escape through the picket lines on the night of the 23rd. Most of the commando were from Transvaal, and it was typical of the wide reach of the net that many of them were the same men who had fought against the 28th Mounted Infantry in the area south of Johannesburg on the 12th of the same month. The loss of 2000 horses and 50,000 cartridges was as significant to the Boer army as the loss of men. It was clear that a few more hits like this would completely wipe out the Orange River Colony.

The wearied troopers were allowed little rest, for in a couple of days after their rendezvous at Harrismith they were sweeping back again to pick up all that they had missed. This drive, which was over the same ground, but sweeping backwards towards the Heilbron to Wolvehoek line, ended in the total capture of 147 of the enemy, who were picked out of holes, retrieved from amid the reeds of the river, called down out of trees, or otherwise collected. So thorough were the operations that it is recorded that the angle which formed the apex of the drive was one drove of game upon the last day, all the many types of antelope, which form one of the characteristics and charms of the country, having been herded into it.

The tired soldiers were given little time to rest because just a few days after their meeting at Harrismith, they were heading back to recover everything they had missed. This operation, which retraced their steps but moved back toward the Heilbron to Wolvehoek line, resulted in the capture of 147 enemy soldiers. They were pulled out of hiding spots, dragged from the river reeds, called down from trees, or gathered in other ways. The thoroughness of the mission was such that it's noted that the angle at the apex of the drive turned into a gathering of wildlife on the last day, with various types of antelope, which are a defining feature and beauty of the region, being herded into it.

More important even than the results of the drive was the discovery of one of De Wet's arsenals in a cave in the Vrede district. Half-way down a precipitous krantz, with its mouth covered by creepers, no writer of romance could have imagined a more fitting headquarters for a guerilla chief. The find was made by Ross's Canadian Scouts, who celebrated Dominion Day by this most useful achievement. Forty wagon-loads of ammunition and supplies were taken out of the cave. De Wet was known to have left the north-east district, and to have got across the railway, travelling towards the Vaal as if it were his intention to join De la Rey in the Transvaal. The Boer resistance had suddenly become exceedingly energetic in that part, and several important actions had been fought, to which we will presently turn.

More significant than the results of the operation was the discovery of one of De Wet's arms caches in a cave in the Vrede area. Halfway down a steep cliff, its entrance concealed by vines, no writer of adventure stories could have imagined a more fitting base for a guerrilla leader. The find was made by Ross's Canadian Scouts, who celebrated Dominion Day with this valuable achievement. Forty wagonloads of ammunition and supplies were removed from the cave. De Wet was known to have left the northeast area and crossed the railway, heading toward the Vaal, as if he intended to join De la Rey in the Transvaal. The Boer resistance had suddenly become very active in that region, and several significant battles had taken place, which we will discuss shortly.

Before doing so it would be as well to bring the chronicle of events in the Orange River Colony down to the conclusion of peace. There were still a great number of wandering Boers in the northern districts and in the frontier mountains, who were assiduously, but not always successfully, hunted down by the British troops. Much arduous and useful work was done by several small columns, the Colonial Horse and the Artillery Mounted Rifles especially distinguishing themselves. The latter corps, formed from the gunners whose field-pieces were no longer needed, proved themselves to be a most useful body of men; and the British gunner, when he took to carrying his gun, vindicated the reputation which he had won when his gun had carried him.

Before proceeding, it’s important to summarize the events in the Orange River Colony up until the end of the peace process. There were still many wandering Boers in the northern areas and the mountains along the border, who were diligently, though not always successfully, tracked down by British forces. Several small units did a lot of hard and valuable work, particularly the Colonial Horse and the Artillery Mounted Rifles, who really stood out. The latter group, made up of gunners whose artillery pieces were no longer needed, proved to be an extremely valuable force; and when British gunners took to carrying their weapons, they upheld the reputation they had earned when their guns had once supported them.

From the 1st to the 4th of May a successful drive was conducted by many columns in the often harried but never deserted Lindley to Kroonstad district. The result was propitious, as no fewer than 321 prisoners were brought in. Of these, 150 under Mentz were captured in one body as they attempted to break through the encircling cordon.

From May 1st to 4th, a successful operation took place by several groups in the frequently troubled but never abandoned Lindley to Kroonstad area. The outcome was positive, as at least 321 prisoners were taken. Of these, 150 under Mentz were captured all at once while trying to break through the surrounding cordon.

Amid many small drives and many skirmishes, one stands out for its severity. It is remarkable as being the last action of any importance in the campaign. This was the fight at Moolman's Spruit, near Ficksburg, upon April 20th, 1902. A force of about one hundred Yeomanry and forty Mounted Infantry (South Staffords) was despatched by night to attack an isolated farm in which a small body of Boers was supposed to be sleeping. Colonel Perceval was in command. The farm was reached after a difficult march, but the enemy were found to have been forewarned, and to be in much greater strength than was anticipated. A furious fire was opened on the advancing troops, who were clearly visible in the light of a full moon. Sir Thomas Fowler was killed and several men of the Yeomanry were hit. The British charged up to the very walls, but were unable to effect an entrance, as the place was barricaded and loopholed. Captain Blackwood, of the Staffords, was killed in the attack. Finding that the place was impregnable, and that the enemy outnumbered him, Colonel Perceval gave the order to retire, a movement which was only successfully carried out because the greater part of the Boer horses had been shot. By morning the small British force had extricated itself, from its perilous position with a total loss of six killed, nineteen wounded, and six missing. The whole affair was undoubtedly a cleverly planned Boer ambush, and the small force was most fortunate in escaping destruction.

Amid many small operations and skirmishes, one stands out for its intensity. It's notable as the last significant action in the campaign. This was the battle at Moolman's Spruit, near Ficksburg, on April 20th, 1902. A force of about one hundred Yeomanry and forty Mounted Infantry (South Staffords) was sent at night to attack an isolated farm where a small group of Boers was believed to be resting. Colonel Perceval was in charge. They reached the farm after a challenging march, but the enemy had been warned and was much stronger than expected. A heavy fire opened up on the advancing troops, who were clearly visible in the light of a full moon. Sir Thomas Fowler was killed, and several Yeomanry members were hit. The British charged right up to the walls but couldn’t get inside, as the place was barricaded and loopholed. Captain Blackwood from the Staffords was killed in the assault. Realizing that the position was impregnable and that he was outnumbered, Colonel Perceval ordered a retreat, which was only successful because most of the Boer horses had been shot. By morning, the small British force had managed to get out of their dangerous situation with a total loss of six killed, nineteen wounded, and six missing. The entire incident was clearly a well-planned Boer ambush, and the small force was very lucky to escape destruction.

One other isolated incident may be mentioned here, though it occurred far away in the Vryheid district of the Transvaal. This was the unfortunate encounter between Zulus and Boers by which the latter lost over fifty of their numbers under deplorable circumstances. This portion of the Transvaal has only recently been annexed, and is inhabited by warlike Zulus, who are very different from the debased Kaffirs of the rest of the country. These men had a blood-feud against the Boers, which was embittered by the fact that they had lost heavily through Boer depredations. Knowing that a party of fifty-nine men were sleeping in a farmhouse, the Zulus crept on to it and slaughtered every man of the inmates. Such an incident is much to be regretted, and yet, looking back upon the long course of the war, and remembering the turbulent tribes who surrounded the combatants—Swazis, Basutos, and Zulus—we may well congratulate ourselves that we have been able to restrain those black warriors, and to escape the brutalities and the bitter memories of a barbarian invasion.

One other isolated incident can be mentioned here, although it took place far away in the Vryheid district of the Transvaal. This was the tragic encounter between the Zulus and the Boers, in which the latter lost over fifty men in horrific circumstances. This part of the Transvaal has only recently been annexed and is home to fierce Zulus, who are quite different from the oppressed Kaffirs in the rest of the country. These men had a blood feud with the Boers, made worse by the fact that they had suffered significant losses due to Boer raids. Knowing that a group of fifty-nine men were sleeping in a farmhouse, the Zulus sneaked in and killed every one of them. Such an incident is deeply regrettable, but looking back on the long course of the war and considering the volatile tribes surrounding the fighters—Swazis, Basutos, and Zulus—we can be thankful that we managed to keep those warriors in check and avoid the brutality and painful memories of a barbaric invasion.





CHAPTER 38. DE LA REY'S CAMPAIGN OF 1902.

IT will be remembered that at the close of 1901 Lord Methuen and Colonel Kekewich had both come across to the eastern side of their district and made their base at the railway line in the Klerksdorp section. Their position was strengthened by the fact that a blockhouse cordon now ran from Klerksdorp to Ventersdorp, and from Ventersdorp to Potchefstroom, so that this triangle could be effectively controlled. There remained, however, a huge tract of difficult country which was practically in the occupation of the enemy. Several thousand stalwarts were known to be riding with De la Rey and his energetic lieutenant Kemp. The strenuous operations of the British in the Eastern Transvaal and in the Orange River Colony had caused this district to be comparatively neglected, and so everything was in favour of an aggressive movement of the Boers. There was a long lull after the unsuccessful attack upon Kekewich's camp at Moedwill, but close observers of the war distrusted this ominous calm and expected a storm to follow.

It will be remembered that at the end of 1901, Lord Methuen and Colonel Kekewich had both moved to the eastern side of their district and set up their base along the railway line in the Klerksdorp area. Their position was bolstered by the fact that a line of blockhouses now extended from Klerksdorp to Ventersdorp, and from Ventersdorp to Potchefstroom, allowing for effective control of this triangle. However, there was still a vast area of difficult terrain that was essentially under enemy control. Several thousand fighters were known to be riding with De la Rey and his active lieutenant Kemp. The intense operations by the British in Eastern Transvaal and the Orange River Colony had left this area relatively neglected, which favored an aggressive move by the Boers. There was a long period of quiet after the unsuccessful attack on Kekewich's camp at Moedwill, but keen observers of the war sensed an impending storm following this unsettling calm.

The new year found the British connecting Ventersdorp with Tafelkop by a blockhouse line. The latter place had been a centre of Boer activity. Colonel Hickie's column covered this operation. Meanwhile Methuen had struck across through Wolmaranstad as far as Vryburg. In these operations, which resulted in constant small captures, he was assisted by a column under Major Paris working from Kimberley. From Vryburg Lord Methuen made his way in the middle of January to Lichtenburg, meeting with a small rebuff in the neighbourhood of that town, for a detachment of Yeomanry was overwhelmed by General Celliers, who killed eight, wounded fifteen, and captured forty. From Lichtenburg Lord Methuen continued his enormous trek, and arrived on February 1st at Klerksdorp once more. Little rest was given to his hard-worked troops, and they were sent off again within the week under the command of Von Donop, with the result that on February 8th, near Wolmaranstad, they captured Potgieter's laager with forty Boer prisoners. Von Donop remained at Wolmaranstad until late in February; On the 23rd he despatched an empty convoy back to Klerksdorp, the fate of which will be afterwards narrated.

The new year found the British connecting Ventersdorp with Tafelkop through a blockhouse line. Tafelkop had been a hub of Boer activity. Colonel Hickie's column was in charge of this operation. Meanwhile, Methuen had advanced through Wolmaranstad as far as Vryburg. In these operations, which led to constant small captures, he was helped by a column under Major Paris coming from Kimberley. From Vryburg, Lord Methuen made his way to Lichtenburg in mid-January, facing a minor setback near that town when a detachment of Yeomanry was overwhelmed by General Celliers, who killed eight, wounded fifteen, and captured forty. From Lichtenburg, Lord Methuen continued his extensive journey and arrived at Klerksdorp again on February 1st. His exhausted troops were given little rest and were sent off again within the week under Von Donop's command, resulting in the capture of Potgieter's laager with forty Boer prisoners near Wolmaranstad on February 8th. Von Donop stayed at Wolmaranstad until late February; on the 23rd, he sent an empty convoy back to Klerksdorp, the fate of which will be explained later.

Kekewich and Hickie had combined their forces at the beginning of February. On February 4th an attempt was made by them to surprise General De la Rey. The mounted troops who were despatched under Major Leader failed in this enterprise, but they found and overwhelmed the laager of Sarel Alberts, capturing 132 prisoners. By stampeding the horses the Boer retreat was cut off, and the attack was so furiously driven home, especially by the admirable Scottish Horse, that few of the enemy got away. Alberts himself with all his officers were among the prisoners. From this time until the end of February this column was not seriously engaged.

Kekewich and Hickie joined forces at the start of February. On February 4th, they attempted to catch General De la Rey off guard. The mounted troops sent under Major Leader failed in this mission, but they found and took over Sarel Alberts' camp, capturing 132 prisoners. By stampeding the horses, they cut off the Boer retreat, and the attack was so forcefully executed, especially by the impressive Scottish Horse, that few of the enemy managed to escape. Alberts himself and all his officers were among the prisoners. From that point until the end of February, this column was not seriously engaged.

It has been stated above that on February 23rd Von Donop sent in an empty convoy from Wolmaranstad to Klerksdorp, a distance of about fifty miles. Nothing had been heard for some time of De la Rey, but he had called together his men and was waiting to bring off some coup. The convoy gave him the very opportunity for which he sought.

It has been mentioned earlier that on February 23rd, Von Donop sent an empty convoy from Wolmaranstad to Klerksdorp, roughly fifty miles apart. There hadn’t been any news from De la Rey for a while, but he had gathered his men and was ready to make a move. The convoy provided him with the perfect opportunity he was looking for.

The escort of the convoy consisted of the 5th Imperial Yeomanry, sixty of Paget's Horse, three companies of the ubiquitous Northumberland Fusiliers, two guns of the 4th R.F.A., and a pom-pom, amounting in all to 630 men. Colonel Anderson was in command. On the morning of Tuesday, February 25th, the convoy was within ten miles of its destination, and the sentries on the kopjes round the town could see the gleam of the long line of white-tilted wagons. Their hazardous voyage was nearly over, and yet they were destined to most complete and fatal wreck within sight of port. So confident were they that the detachment of Paget's Horse was permitted to ride on the night before into the town. It was as well, for such a handful would have shared and could not have averted the disaster.

The convoy was escorted by the 5th Imperial Yeomanry, sixty members of Paget's Horse, three companies of the ever-present Northumberland Fusiliers, two guns from the 4th R.F.A., and a pom-pom, totaling 630 men. Colonel Anderson was in charge. On the morning of Tuesday, February 25th, the convoy was just ten miles away from its destination, and the sentries on the hills around the town could see the glimmer of the long line of white-covered wagons. Their risky journey was almost over, yet they were about to face total and deadly disaster just within sight of the port. They were so sure of themselves that Paget's Horse was allowed to ride into town the night before. It was fortunate, as that small group wouldn’t have been able to prevent the impending catastrophe.

The night had been dark and wet, and the Boers under cover of it had crept between the sleeping convoy and the town. Some bushes which afford excellent cover lie within a few hundred yards of the road, and here the main ambush was laid. In the first grey of the morning the long line of the convoy, 130 wagons in all, came trailing past—guns and Yeomanry in front, Fusiliers upon the flanks and rear. Suddenly the black bank of scrub was outlined in flame, and a furious rifle fire was opened upon the head of the column. The troops behaved admirably under most difficult circumstances. A counter-attack by the Fusiliers and some of the Yeomanry, under cover of shrapnel from the guns, drove the enemy out of the scrub and silenced his fire at this point. It was evident, however, that he was present in force, for firing soon broke out along the whole left flank, and the rearguard found itself as warmly attacked as the van. Again, however, the assailants were driven off. It was now broad daylight, and the wagons, which had got into great confusion in the first turmoil of battle, had been remarshalled and arranged. It was Colonel Anderson's hope that he might be able to send them on into safety while he with the escort covered their retreat. His plan was certainly the best one, and if it did not succeed it was due to nothing which he could avert, but to the nature of the ground and the gallantry of the enemy.

The night had been dark and rainy, and the Boers had taken advantage of it to sneak between the sleeping convoy and the town. Some bushes that offered great cover were only a few hundred yards from the road, and this is where the main ambush was set up. In the first light of morning, the long line of the convoy, with 130 wagons total, began to move past—guns and Yeomanry in the front, Fusiliers on the flanks and rear. Suddenly, the dark mass of scrub burst into flames, and intense rifle fire erupted at the head of the column. The troops performed admirably under extremely challenging conditions. A counter-attack by the Fusiliers and some of the Yeomanry, supported by shrapnel from the guns, pushed the enemy out of the scrub and silenced their fire at this point. However, it was clear that the enemy was present in force, as firing soon broke out along the entire left flank, and the rearguard found itself under just as much attack as the front. Yet again, the attackers were pushed back. It was now broad daylight, and the wagons, which had become greatly disordered in the initial chaos of battle, had been reorganized and arranged. Colonel Anderson hoped he could send them on to safety while he and the escort covered their retreat. His plan was certainly the best one, and if it didn’t succeed, it was due to factors beyond his control, specifically the nature of the ground and the bravery of the enemy.

The physical obstacle consisted in a very deep and difficult spruit, the Jagd Spruit, which forms an ugly passage in times of peace, but which when crowded and choked with stampeding mules and splintering wagons, under their terrified conductors, soon became impassable. Here the head of the column was clubbed and the whole line came to a stand. Meanwhile the enemy, adopting their new tactics, came galloping in on the left flank and on the rear. The first attack was repelled by the steady fire of the Fusiliers, but on the second occasion the horsemen got up to the wagons, and galloping down them were able to overwhelm in detail the little knots of soldiers who were scattered along the flank. The British, who were outnumbered by at least three to one, made a stout resistance, and it was not until seven o'clock that the last shot was fired. The result was a complete success to the burghers, but one which leaves no shadow of discredit on any officer or man among those who were engaged. Eleven officers and 176 men fell out of about 550 actually engaged. The two guns were taken. The convoy was no use to the Boers, so the teams were shot and the wagons burned before they withdrew. The prisoners too, they were unable to retain, and their sole permanent trophies consisted of the two guns, the rifles, and the ammunition. Their own losses amounted to about fifty killed and wounded.

The physical challenge was a very deep and difficult stream, the Jagd Spruit, which is a tough passage in peacetime. However, when it became filled with stampeding mules and splintering wagons, driven by terrified men, it quickly became impassable. Here, the front of the column got stuck, causing the entire line to stop. Meanwhile, the enemy, using their new tactics, charged in from the left flank and the rear. The first attack was pushed back by the steady fire of the Fusiliers, but in the second attack, the horsemen reached the wagons. They swept along them, overwhelming the small groups of soldiers scattered on the flank. The British, outnumbered by at least three to one, put up a strong fight, not firing the last shot until seven o'clock. The outcome was a complete victory for the burghers, but it cast no blame on any officer or soldier involved. Eleven officers and 176 men were lost out of about 550 who fought. The two guns were captured. The convoy wasn't useful to the Boers, so they shot the teams and burned the wagons before leaving. They also couldn't keep the prisoners, and their only permanent gains were the two guns, rifles, and ammunition. Their own casualties amounted to about fifty killed and wounded.

A small force sallied out from Klerksdorp in the hope of helping Anderson, but on reaching the Jagd Drift it was found that the fighting was over and that the field was in possession of the Boers. De la Rey was seen in person among the burghers, and it is pleasant to add that he made himself conspicuous by his humanity to the wounded. His force drew off in the course of the morning, and was soon out of reach of immediate pursuit, though this was attempted by Kekewich, Von Donop, and Grenfell. It was important to regain the guns if possible, as they were always a menace to the blockhouse system, and for this purpose Grenfell with sixteen hundred horsemen was despatched to a point south of Lichtenburg, which was conjectured to be upon the Boer line of retreat. At the same time Lord Methuen was ordered up from Vryburg in order to cooperate in this movement, and to join his forces to those of Grenfell. It was obvious that with an energetic and resolute adversary like De la Rey there was great danger of these two forces being taken in detail, but it was hoped that each was strong enough to hold its own until the other could come to its aid. The result was to show that the danger was real and the hope fallacious.

A small group set out from Klerksdorp hoping to assist Anderson, but when they reached the Jagd Drift, they found that the fighting was over and the Boers had taken control of the area. De la Rey was seen among the burghers, and it's nice to note that he stood out for his kindness to the wounded. His force withdrew during the morning and quickly moved out of reach of immediate pursuit, although Kekewich, Von Donop, and Grenfell tried to follow them. Regaining the guns was crucial because they posed a constant threat to the blockhouse system. To this end, Grenfell was sent with sixteen hundred cavalry to a location south of Lichtenburg, which was believed to be on the Boer retreat path. At the same time, Lord Methuen was ordered to come up from Vryburg to support this operation and join forces with Grenfell. It was clear that with a determined opponent like De la Rey, there was a significant risk of the two forces being engaged separately, but it was hoped that each would be strong enough to defend itself until the other arrived. The outcome revealed that the threat was real and the optimism misguided.

It was on March 2nd that Methuen left Vryburg. The column was not his old one, consisting of veterans of the trek, but was the Kimberley column under Major Paris, a body of men who had seen much less service and were in every way less reliable. It included a curious mixture of units, the most solid of which were four guns (two of the 4th, and two of the 38th R.F.A.), 200 Northumberland Fusiliers, and 100 Loyal North Lancashires. The mounted men included 5th Imperial Yeomanry (184), Cape Police (233), Cullinan's Horse (64), 86th Imperial Yeomanry (110), Diamond Fields Horse (92), Dennison' s Scouts (58), Ashburner's Horse (126), and British South African Police (24). Such a collection of samples would be more in place, one would imagine, in a London procession than in an operation which called for discipline and cohesion. In warfare the half is often greater than the whole, and the presence of a proportion of halfhearted and inexperienced men may be a positive danger to their more capable companions.

It was on March 2nd that Methuen left Vryburg. The group was not his usual one, made up of experienced veterans of the trek, but rather the Kimberley column under Major Paris, a team of men who had seen much less action and were generally less dependable. It included an unusual mix of units, the most reliable being four guns (two from the 4th, and two from the 38th R.F.A.), 200 Northumberland Fusiliers, and 100 Loyal North Lancashires. The mounted forces consisted of the 5th Imperial Yeomanry (184), Cape Police (233), Cullinan's Horse (64), 86th Imperial Yeomanry (110), Diamond Fields Horse (92), Dennison's Scouts (58), Ashburner's Horse (126), and British South African Police (24). Such a collection would seem more suited for a London parade than for an operation requiring discipline and cohesion. In warfare, the contribution of a few uninspired and inexperienced men can pose a significant threat to their more skilled counterparts.

Upon March 6th Methuen, marching east towards Lichtenburg, came in touch near Leeuwspruit with Van Zyl's commando, and learned in the small skirmish which ensued that some of his Yeomanry were unreliable and ill-instructed. Having driven the enemy off by his artillery fire, Methuen moved to Tweebosch, where he laagered until next morning. At 3 A.M. of the 7th the ox-convoy was sent on, under escort of half of his little force. The other half followed at 4. 20, so as to give the slow-moving oxen a chance of keeping ahead. It was evident, however, immediately after the column had got started that the enemy were all round in great numbers, and that an attack in force was to be expected. Lord Methuen gave orders therefore that the ox-wagons should be halted and that the mule-transport should close upon them so as to form one solid block, instead of a straggling line. At the same time he reinforced his rearguard with mounted men and with two guns, for it was in that quarter that the enemy appeared to be most numerous and aggressive. An attack was also developing upon the right flank, which was held off by the infantry and by the second section of the guns.

On March 6th, Methuen, heading east towards Lichtenburg, encountered Van Zyl's commando near Leeuwspruit. In the small skirmish that followed, he discovered that some of his Yeomanry were unreliable and poorly trained. After driving the enemy back with artillery fire, Methuen moved to Tweebosch, where he camped until the next morning. At 3 A.M. on the 7th, the ox convoy was sent forward, escorted by half of his small force. The other half followed at 4:20 to give the slow-moving oxen a chance to stay ahead. However, it quickly became clear that the enemy was surrounding them in large numbers, and an attack was expected. Lord Methuen ordered the ox-wagons to be halted and for the mule transport to close in, forming one solid block instead of a scattered line. At the same time, he reinforced his rearguard with mounted troops and two guns, as the enemy seemed to be most numerous and aggressive in that area. An attack was also beginning on the right flank, which was held off by the infantry and the second section of the guns.

It has been said that Methuen's horsemen were for the most part inexperienced irregulars. Such men become in time excellent soldiers, as all this campaign bears witness, but it is too much to expose them to a severe ordeal in the open field when they are still raw and untrained. As it happened, this particular ordeal was exceedingly severe, but nothing can excuse the absolute failure of the troops concerned to rise to the occasion. Had Methuen's rearguard consisted of Imperial Light Horse, or Scottish Horse, it is safe to say that the battle of Tweebosch would have had a very different ending.

It has been said that Methuen's cavalry were mostly inexperienced irregulars. These men can become excellent soldiers over time, as this campaign shows, but it’s unreasonable to subject them to a tough challenge in the open field while they're still inexperienced and untrained. Unfortunately, this particular challenge was extremely difficult, but nothing can justify the complete failure of the troops involved to meet the moment. If Methuen's rearguard had included Imperial Light Horse or Scottish Horse, it's fair to say that the battle of Tweebosch would have had a very different outcome.

What happened was that a large body of Boers formed up in five lines and charged straight home at the rear screen and rearguard, firing from their saddles as they had done at Brakenlaagte. The sight of those wide-flung lines of determined men galloping over the plain seems to have been too much for the nerves of the unseasoned troopers. A panic spread through their ranks, and in an instant they had turned their horses' heads and were thundering to their rear, leaving the two guns uncovered and streaming in wild confusion past the left flank of the jeering infantry who were lying round the wagons. The limit of their flight seems to have been the wind of their horses, and most of them never drew rein until they had placed many miles between themselves and the comrades whom they had deserted. 'It was pitiable,' says an eye-witness, 'to see the grand old General begging them to stop, but they would not; a large body of them arrived in Kraaipan without firing a shot,' It was a South African 'Battle of the Spurs.'

What happened was that a large group of Boers formed up in five lines and charged directly at the rear screen and rearguard, shooting from their saddles just like they had at Brakenlaagte. The sight of those wide-spread lines of determined men galloping across the plain seemed to overwhelm the nerves of the inexperienced soldiers. A panic spread through their ranks, and in an instant, they turned their horses around and bolted to the back, leaving the two guns unprotected and rushing past the mocking infantry who were lounging around the wagons in chaos. It seems the limit of their flight was dictated by their horses' speed, and most of them didn’t stop until they had put several miles between themselves and the comrades they had abandoned. "It was pitiful," says an eyewitness, "to see the grand old General pleading with them to stop, but they wouldn’t; a large group of them reached Kraaipan without firing a shot." It was a South African "Battle of the Spurs."

By this defection of the greater portion of the force the handful of brave men who remained were left in a hopeless position. The two guns of the 38th battery were overwhelmed and ridden over by the Boer horsemen, every man being killed or wounded, including Lieutenant Nesham, who acted up to the highest traditions of his corps.

By the defection of most of the troops, the few brave men who stayed were left in a hopeless situation. The two guns of the 38th battery were overrun and trampled by the Boer cavalry, with every man either killed or injured, including Lieutenant Nesham, who upheld the highest traditions of his unit.

The battle, however, was not yet over. The infantry were few in number, but they were experienced troops, and they maintained the struggle for some hours in the face of overwhelming numbers. Two hundred of the Northumberland Fusiliers lay round the wagons and held the Boers off from their prey. With them were the two remaining guns, which were a mark for a thousand Boer riflemen. It was while encouraging by his presence and example the much-tried gunners of this section that the gallant Methuen was wounded by a bullet which broke the bone of his thigh. Lieutenant Venning and all the detachment fell with their General round the guns.

The battle, however, wasn't over yet. The infantry was few in number, but they were seasoned soldiers who continued to fight for several hours against overwhelming odds. Two hundred of the Northumberland Fusiliers lay around the wagons, keeping the Boers at bay from what they wanted. Alongside them were the two remaining guns, which were targets for a thousand Boer riflemen. It was while he was motivating the weary gunners of this section by his presence and example that the brave Methuen was injured by a bullet that broke his thigh bone. Lieutenant Venning and the entire detachment fell with their General around the guns.

An attempt had been made to rally some of the flying troopers at a neighbouring kraal, and a small body of Cape Police and Yeomanry under the command of Major Paris held out there for some hours. A hundred of the Lancashire Infantry aided them in their stout defence. But the guns taken by the Boers from Von Donop's convoy had free play now that the British guns were out of action, and they were brought to bear with crushing effect upon both the kraal and the wagons. Further resistance meant a useless slaughter, and orders were given for a surrender. Convoy, ammunition, guns, horses—nothing was saved except the honour of the infantry and the gunners. The losses, 68 killed and 121 wounded, fell chiefly upon these two branches of the service. There were 205 unwounded prisoners.

An effort was made to gather some of the flying troopers at a nearby kraal, and a small group of Cape Police and Yeomanry led by Major Paris held out there for several hours. A hundred members of the Lancashire Infantry supported them in their strong defense. However, the guns that the Boers had taken from Von Donop's convoy were now able to fire freely since the British guns were out of action, and they had a devastating impact on both the kraal and the wagons. Continuing to resist would mean unnecessary slaughter, so orders were given to surrender. The convoy, ammunition, guns, and horses were lost—nothing was saved except for the honor of the infantry and the gunners. The casualties, 68 killed and 121 wounded, mainly affected these two branches of service. There were 205 uninjured prisoners.

This, the last Boer victory in the war, reflected equal credit upon their valour and humanity, qualities which had not always gone hand in hand in our experience of them. Courtesy and attention were extended to the British wounded, and Lord Methuen was sent under charge of his chief medical officer, Colonel Townsend (the doctor as severely wounded as the patient), into Klerksdorp. In De la Rey we have always found an opponent who was as chivalrous as he was formidable. The remainder of the force reached the Kimberley to Mafeking railway line in the direction of Kraaipan, the spot where the first bloodshed of the war had occurred some twenty-nine months before.

This last Boer victory in the war showcased their bravery and compassion, qualities that haven't always been evident based on our previous experiences with them. They showed kindness and care to the British wounded, and Lord Methuen was escorted by his chief medical officer, Colonel Townsend (who was just as injured as he was), into Klerksdorp. With De la Rey, we've consistently found an opponent who was both gallant and tough. The rest of the force made its way to the Kimberley to Mafeking railway line toward Kraaipan, the site where the first blood was shed in the war about twenty-nine months earlier.

On Lord Methuen himself no blame can rest for this unsuccessful action. If the workman's tool snaps in his hand he cannot be held responsible for the failure of his task. The troops who misbehaved were none of his training. 'If you hear anyone slang him,' says one of his men, 'you are to tell them that he is the finest General and the truest gentleman that ever fought in this war.' Such was the tone of his own troopers, and such also that of the spokesmen of the nation when they commented upon the disaster in the Houses of Parliament. It was a fine example of British justice and sense of fair play, even in that bitter moment, that to hear his eulogy one would have thought that the occasion had been one when thanks were being returned for a victory. It is a generous public with fine instincts, and Paul Methuen, wounded and broken, still remained in their eyes the heroic soldier and the chivalrous man of honour.

On Lord Methuen himself, no blame can be assigned for this unsuccessful action. If a worker's tool breaks in his hands, he can't be held responsible for not completing the job. The troops who acted out of line weren't trained by him. "If you hear anyone criticize him," says one of his men, "you should tell them he's the best General and the most honorable gentleman who ever fought in this war." This was also the sentiment among his own soldiers and the voices of the nation when they discussed the disaster in Parliament. It was a great display of British fairness and justice that, despite the grim situation, listening to his praises would make you think it was a moment of celebrating a victory. The public is generous with fine instincts, and Paul Methuen, wounded and shattered, still stood in their eyes as the heroic soldier and noble man of honor.

The De Wet country had been pretty well cleared by the series of drives which have already been described, and Louis Botha's force in the Eastern Transvaal had been much diminished by the tactics of Bruce Hamilton and Wools-Sampson. Lord Kitchener was able, therefore, to concentrate his troops and his attention upon that wide-spread western area in which General De la Rey had dealt two such shrewd blows within a few weeks of each other. Troops were rapidly concentrated at Klerksdorp. Kekewich, Walter Kitchener, Rawlinson, and Rochfort, with a number of small columns, were ready in the third week of March to endeavour to avenge Lord Methuen.

The De Wet country had been mostly cleared by the series of drives already described, and Louis Botha's forces in the Eastern Transvaal had been significantly reduced by the strategies of Bruce Hamilton and Wools-Sampson. Lord Kitchener was therefore able to focus his troops and attention on the extensive western area where General De la Rey had dealt two sharp blows within a few weeks of each other. Troops were quickly assembled at Klerksdorp. Kekewich, Walter Kitchener, Rawlinson, and Rochfort, along with several small units, were prepared in the third week of March to try to avenge Lord Methuen.

The problem with which Lord Kitchener was confronted was a very difficult one, and he has never shown more originality and audacity than in the fashion in which he handled it. De la Rey's force was scattered over a long tract of country, capable of rapidly concentrating for a blow, but otherwise as intangible and elusive as a phantom army. Were Lord Kitchener simply to launch ten thousand horsemen at him, the result would be a weary ride over illimitable plains without sight of a Boer, unless it were a distant scout upon the extreme horizon. De la Rey and his men would have slipped away to his northern hiding-places beyond the Marico River. There was no solid obstacle here, as in the Orange River Colony, against which the flying enemy could be rounded up. One line of blockhouses there was, it is true—the one called the Schoonspruit cordon, which flanked the De la Rey country. It flanked it, however, upon the same side as that on which the troops were assembled. If the troops were only on the other side, and De la Rey was between them and the blockhouse line, then, indeed, something might be done. But to place the troops there, and then bring them instantly back again, was to put such a strain upon men and horses as had never yet been done upon a large scale in the course of the war. Yet Lord Kitchener knew the mettle of the men whom he commanded, and he was aware that there were no exertions of which the human frame is capable which he might not confidently demand.

The challenge that Lord Kitchener faced was quite tough, and he showed remarkable creativity and boldness in how he dealt with it. De la Rey's forces were spread out over a large area, able to quickly regroup for an attack, but they were also as elusive as a ghost army. If Lord Kitchener simply sent ten thousand cavalry after them, it would lead to a tiring journey across endless plains with no sign of a Boer, except maybe a distant scout on the far horizon. De la Rey and his men would have vanished to their northern hideouts beyond the Marico River. Unlike the Orange River Colony, there wasn’t a solid barrier to round up the fleeing enemy here. There was one line of blockhouses—the Schoonspruit cordon—that bordered De la Rey’s territory. However, it flanked the same side where the troops were gathered. If the troops were on the opposite side and De la Rey was positioned between them and the blockhouse line, then something could indeed be achieved. But to move the troops there and then pull them back immediately would put an unprecedented strain on both men and horses during the war. Still, Lord Kitchener was confident in the capabilities of his soldiers and knew they could handle any demands made of them.

The precise location of the Boer laagers does not appear to have been known, but it was certain that a considerable number of them were scattered about thirty miles or so to the west of Klerksdorp and the Schoonspruit line. The plan was to march a British force right through them, then spread out into a wide line and come straight back, driving the burghers on to the cordon of blockhouses, which had been strengthened by the arrival of three regiments of Highlanders. But to get to the other side of the Boers it was necessary to march the columns through by night. It was a hazardous operation, but the secret was well kept, and the movement was so well carried out that the enemy had no time to check it. On the night of Sunday, March 23rd, the British horsemen passed stealthily in column through the De la Rey country, and then, spreading out into a line, which from the left wing at Lichtenburg to the right wing at Commando Drift measured a good eighty miles, they proceeded to sweep back upon their traces. In order to reach their positions the columns had, of course, started at different points of the British blockhouse line, and some had a good deal farther to go than others, while the southern extension of the line was formed by Rochfort's troops, who had moved up from the Vaal. Above him from south to north came Walter Kitchener, Rawlinson, and Kekewich in the order named.

The exact location of the Boer camps wasn’t really known, but it was clear that quite a few of them were spread out about thirty miles or so west of Klerksdorp and the Schoonspruit line. The plan was for a British force to march right through them, then fan out in a wide line and come back, driving the burghers toward a cordon of blockhouses that had been reinforced by three regiments of Highlanders. To get beyond the Boers, the columns had to march through at night. It was a risky operation, but the secrecy was maintained, and the movement was executed so well that the enemy didn’t have time to respond. On the night of Sunday, March 23rd, the British cavalry moved quietly in column through the De la Rey area, and then, spreading out into a line that stretched about eighty miles from the left wing at Lichtenburg to the right wing at Commando Drift, they began to push back along their path. To reach their positions, the columns had started from different points along the British blockhouse line, with some needing to travel much farther than others, while the southern part of the line was made up of Rochfort's troops, who had advanced from the Vaal. Above him, moving from south to north, were Walter Kitchener, Rawlinson, and Kekewich in that order.

On the morning of Monday, March 24th, a line of eighty miles of horsemen, without guns or transport, was sweeping back towards the blockhouses, while the country between was filled with scattered parties of Boers who were seeking for gaps by which to escape. It was soon learned from the first prisoners that De la Rey was not within the cordon. His laager had been some distance farther west. But the sight of fugitive horsemen rising and dipping over the rolling veld assured the British that they had something within their net. The catch was, however, by no means as complete as might have been desired. Three hundred men in khaki slipped through between the two columns in the early morning. Another large party escaped to the southwards. Some of the Boers adopted extraordinary devices in order to escape from the ever-narrowing cordon. 'Three, in charge of some cattle, buried themselves, and left a small hole to breathe through with a tube. Some men began to probe with bayonets in the new-turned earth and got immediate and vociferous subterranean yells. Another man tried the same game and a horse stepped on him. He writhed and reared the horse, and practically the horse found the prisoner for us.' But the operations achieved one result, which must have lifted a load of anxiety from Lord Kitchener's mind. Three fifteen-pounders, two pom-poms, and a large amount of ammunition were taken. To Kekewich and the Scottish Horse fell the honour of the capture, Colonel Wools-Sampson and Captain Rice heading the charge and pursuit. By this means the constant menace to the blockhouses was lessened, if not entirely removed. One hundred and seventy-five Boers were disposed of, nearly all as prisoners, and a considerable quantity of transport was captured. In this operation the troops had averaged from seventy to eighty miles in twenty-six hours without change of horses. To such a point had the slow-moving ponderous British Army attained after two years' training of that stern drill-master, necessity.

On the morning of Monday, March 24th, a line of eighty miles of horsemen, without guns or transport, was moving back toward the blockhouses while the area in between was filled with scattered groups of Boers looking for ways to escape. It was soon discovered from the first prisoners that De la Rey was not within the cordon; his camp had been situated some distance farther west. However, the sight of fleeing horsemen rising and disappearing over the rolling grasslands reassured the British that they had something within their net. The catch, though, was not as complete as hoped. Three hundred men in khaki managed to slip through between the two columns in the early morning. Another large group escaped to the south. Some of the Boers came up with unusual tactics to get away from the ever-narrowing cordon. ‘Three of them, in charge of some cattle, buried themselves and left a small hole to breathe through with a tube. Some men started probing with bayonets in the newly turned earth and immediately heard loud underground yells. Another man tried the same thing, and a horse stepped on him. He writhed and threw off the horse, practically leading it to find the prisoner for us.’ But the operations did achieve one result that must have eased Lord Kitchener's worries. Three fifteen-pounders, two pom-poms, and a large amount of ammunition were captured. The honor of the capture fell to Kekewich and the Scottish Horse, with Colonel Wools-Sampson and Captain Rice leading the charge and pursuit. This helped reduce, if not completely eliminate, the constant threat to the blockhouses. One hundred and seventy-five Boers were dealt with, nearly all captured, and a significant amount of transport was seized. In this operation, the troops averaged seventy to eighty miles in twenty-six hours without changing horses. This is how far the slow-moving, heavy British Army had come after two years of training under the harsh discipline of necessity.

The operations had attained some success, but nothing commensurate with the daring of the plan or the exertions of the soldiers. Without an instant's delay, however, Lord Kitchener struck a second blow at his enemy. Before the end of March Kekewich, Rawlinson, and Walter Kitchener were all upon the trek once more. Their operations were pushed farther to the west than in the last drive, since it was known that on that occasion De la Rey and his main commando had been outside the cordon.

The operations had seen some success, but it was nowhere near what the bold plan or the soldiers' efforts deserved. Without wasting any time, Lord Kitchener launched another attack on his enemy. By the end of March, Kekewich, Rawlinson, and Walter Kitchener were all on the move again. Their efforts were pushed further west than in the last campaign because it was known that during that attempt, De la Rey and his main commando had been outside the cordon.

It was to one of Walter Kitchener's lieutenants that the honour fell to come in direct contact with the main force of the burghers. This General had moved out to a point about forty miles west of Klerksdorp. Forming his laager there, he despatched Cookson on March 30th with seventeen hundred men to work further westward in the direction of the Harts River. Under Cookson's immediate command were the 2nd Canadian Mounted Infantry, Damant's Horse, and four guns of the 7th R.F.A. His lieutenant, Keir, commanded the 28th Mounted Infantry, the Artillery Mounted Rifles, and 2nd Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. The force was well mounted, and carried the minimum of baggage.

It was one of Walter Kitchener's lieutenants who got the honor of coming into direct contact with the main group of burghers. This general had moved out to a location about forty miles west of Klerksdorp. Setting up his laager there, he sent Cookson on March 30th with seventeen hundred men to push further west toward the Harts River. Under Cookson's direct command were the 2nd Canadian Mounted Infantry, Damant's Horse, and four guns from the 7th R.F.A. His lieutenant, Keir, led the 28th Mounted Infantry, the Artillery Mounted Rifles, and 2nd Kitchener's Fighting Scouts. The force was well-mounted and carried only the essentials.

It was not long before this mobile force found itself within touch of the enemy. The broad weal made by the passing of a convoy set them off at full cry, and they were soon encouraged by the distant cloud of dust which shrouded the Boer wagons. The advance guard of the column galloped at the top of their speed for eight miles, and closed in upon the convoy, but found themselves faced by an escort of five hundred Boers, who fought a clever rearguard action, and covered their charge with great skill. At the same time Cookson closed in upon his mounted infantry, while on the other side De la Rey's main force fell back in order to reinforce the escort. British and Boers were both riding furiously to help their own comrades. The two forces were fairly face to face.

It wasn't long before this mobile force got close to the enemy. The wide track left by the passing convoy got them moving full speed, and they were soon motivated by the distant cloud of dust hiding the Boer wagons. The advance guard of the column charged ahead at top speed for eight miles and closed in on the convoy but found themselves confronted by an escort of five hundred Boers, who fought a smart rearguard action and covered their retreat skillfully. At the same time, Cookson moved in with his mounted infantry, while on the other side, De la Rey's main force pulled back to reinforce the escort. Both British and Boers were riding hard to assist their comrades. The two forces were now directly facing each other.

Perceiving that he was in front of the whole Boer army, and knowing that he might expect reinforcements, Cookson decided to act upon the defensive. A position was rapidly taken up along the Brakspruit, and preparations made to resist the impending attack. The line of defence was roughly the line of the spruit, but for some reason, probably to establish a cross fire, one advanced position was occupied upon either flank. On the left flank was a farmhouse, which was held by two hundred men of the Artillery Rifles. On the extreme right was another outpost of twenty-four Canadians and forty-five Mounted Infantry. They occupied no defensible position, and their situation was evidently a most dangerous one, only to be justified by some strong military reason which is not explained by any account of the action.

Seeing that he was facing the entire Boer army and knowing that reinforcements might be on the way, Cookson decided to take a defensive stance. A position was quickly established along the Brakspruit, and preparations were made to fend off the upcoming attack. The defensive line roughly followed the spruit, but for some reason, likely to create a crossfire, an advanced position was held on either flank. On the left flank was a farmhouse, manned by two hundred soldiers from the Artillery Rifles. On the far right was another outpost consisting of twenty-four Canadians and forty-five Mounted Infantry. They didn't occupy a defensible position, and their situation was clearly very risky, only justifiable by some strong military reasoning that isn't explained in any accounts of the battle.

The Boer guns had opened fire, and considerable bodies of the enemy appeared upon the flanks and in front. Their first efforts were devoted towards getting possession of the farmhouse, which would give them a point d'appui from which they could turn the whole line. Some five hundred of them charged on horseback, but were met by a very steady fire from the Artillery Rifles, while the guns raked them with shrapnel. They reached a point within five hundred yards of the building, but the fire was too hot, and they wheeled round in rapid retreat. Dismounting in a mealie-patch they skirmished up towards the farmhouse once more, but they were again checked by the fire of the defenders and by a pompom which Colonel Keir had brought up. No progress whatever was made by the attack in this quarter.

The Boer guns had opened fire, and large groups of the enemy appeared on the flanks and in front. Their initial efforts focused on taking control of the farmhouse, which would give them a strong point to outflank the entire line. Around five hundred of them charged on horseback but faced a solid barrage from the Artillery Rifles, while the guns fired shrapnel at them. They got within five hundred yards of the building, but the fire was too intense, and they quickly retreated. Dismounting in a mealie-patch, they pushed toward the farmhouse again, but once more, they were halted by the defenders' fire and a pompom that Colonel Keir had brought up. No progress was made by the attack in this area.

In the meantime the fate which might have been foretold had befallen the isolated detachment of Canadians and 28th Mounted Infantry upon the extreme right. Bruce Carruthers, the Canadian officer in command, behaved with the utmost gallantry, and was splendidly seconded by his men. Overwhelmed by vastly superior numbers, amid a perfect hail of bullets they fought like heroes to the end. 'There have been few finer instances of heroism in the course of the campaign,' says the reticent Kitchener in his official despatch. Of the Canadians eighteen were hit out of twenty-one, and the Mounted Infantry hard by lost thirty out of forty-five before they surrendered.

In the meantime, the fate that could have been predicted hit the isolated group of Canadians and the 28th Mounted Infantry on the far right. Bruce Carruthers, the Canadian officer in charge, showed incredible bravery, supported exceptionally well by his men. Overwhelmed by much larger numbers, they fought like heroes until the end amidst a storm of bullets. "There have been few finer instances of heroism in the course of the campaign," says the reserved Kitchener in his official report. Out of the Canadians, eighteen were injured out of twenty-one, and the Mounted Infantry nearby lost thirty out of forty-five before they surrendered.

This advantage gained upon the right flank was of no assistance to the Boers in breaking the British line. The fact that it was so makes it the more difficult to understand why this outpost was so exposed. The burghers had practically surrounded Cookson's force, and De la Rey and Kemp urged on the attack; but their artillery fire was dominated by the British guns, and no weak point could be found in the defence. At 1 o'clock the attack had been begun, and at 5.30 it was finally abandoned, and De la Rey was in full retreat. That he was in no sense routed is shown by the fact that Cookson did not attempt to follow him up or to capture his guns; but at least he had failed in his purpose, and had lost more heavily than in any engagement which he had yet fought. The moral effect of his previous victories had also been weakened, and his burghers had learned, if they had illusions upon the subject, that the men who fled at Tweebosch were not typical troopers of the British Army. Altogether, it was a well-fought and useful action, though it cost the British force some two hundred casualties, of which thirty-five were fatal. Cookson's force stood to arms all night until the arrival of Walter Kitchener's men in the morning.

This advantage gained on the right flank did not help the Boers in breaking the British line. The fact that it didn’t makes it harder to understand why this outpost was so vulnerable. The burghers had almost completely surrounded Cookson's force, and De la Rey and Kemp pushed for the attack; however, their artillery fire was overpowered by the British guns, and they couldn't find any weak spots in the defense. The attack started at 1 o'clock and was finally called off at 5:30, with De la Rey in full retreat. His retreat wasn't a rout, as shown by the fact that Cookson didn't try to pursue him or capture his guns; but he did fail in his objective and suffered heavier losses than in any previous engagement. The psychological impact of his earlier victories also diminished, and his burghers realized, if they had any doubts before, that the men who fled at Tweebosch were not typical soldiers of the British Army. Overall, it was a well-fought and significant battle, though it cost the British force around two hundred casualties, thirty-five of which were fatal. Cookson's force stood armed all night until Walter Kitchener’s men arrived in the morning.

General Ian Hamilton, who had acted for some time as Chief of the Staff to Lord Kitchener, had arrived on April 8th at Klerksdorp to take supreme command of the whole operations against De la Rey. Early in April the three main British columns had made a rapid cast round without success. To the very end the better intelligence and the higher mobility seem to have remained upon the side of the Boers, who could always force a fight when they wished and escape when they wished. Occasionally, however, they forced one at the wrong time, as in the instance which I am about to describe.

General Ian Hamilton, who had been serving as Chief of Staff to Lord Kitchener for some time, arrived in Klerksdorp on April 8th to take overall command of the operations against De la Rey. Earlier in April, the three main British columns had quickly moved around the area but without success. Until the very end, the Boers seemed to have the advantage in intelligence and mobility, allowing them to dictate when to engage in battle and when to retreat. However, there were times when they chose to fight at inopportune moments, as I'll describe in the following example.

Hamilton had planned a drive to cover the southern portion of De la Rey's country, and for this purpose, with Hartebeestefontein for his centre, he was manoeuvring his columns so as to swing them into line and then sweep back towards Klerksdorp. Kekewich, Rawlinson, and Walter Kitchener were all manoeuvring for this purpose. The Boers, however, game to the last, although they were aware that their leaders had gone in to treat, and that peace was probably due within a few days, determined to have one last gallant fall with a British column. The forces of Kekewich were the farthest to the westward, and also, as the burghers thought, the most isolated, and it was upon them, accordingly, that the attack was made. In the morning of April 11th, at a place called Rooiwal, the enemy, who had moved up from Wolmaranstad, nineteen hundred strong, under Kemp and Vermaas, fell with the utmost impetuosity upon the British column. There was no preliminary skirmishing, and a single gallant charge by 1500 Boers both opened and ended the engagement. 'I was just saying to the staff officer that there were no Boers within twenty miles,' says one who was present, 'when we heard a roar of musketry and saw a lot of men galloping down on us.' The British were surprised but not shaken by this unexpected apparition. 'I never saw a more splendid attack. They kept a distinct line,' says the eye-witness. Another spectator says, 'They came on in one long line four deep and knee to knee.' It was an old-fashioned cavalry charge, and the fact that it got as far as it did shows that we have over rated the stopping power of modern rifles. They came for a good five hundred yards under direct fire, and were only turned within a hundred of the British line. The Yeomanry, the Scottish Horse, and the Constabulary poured a steady fire upon the advancing wave of horsemen, and the guns opened with case at two hundred yards. The Boers were stopped, staggered, and turned. Their fire, or rather the covering fire of those who had not joined in the charge, had caused some fifty casualties, but their own losses were very much more severe. The fierce Potgieter fell just in front of the British guns. 'Thank goodness he is dead!' cried one of his wounded burghers, 'for he sjamboked me into the firing line this morning.' Fifty dead and a great number of wounded were left upon the field of battle. Rawlinson's column came up on Kekewich's left, and the Boer flight became a rout, for they were chased for twenty miles, and their two guns were captured. It was a brisk and decisive little engagement, and it closed the Western campaign, leaving the last trick, as well as the game, to the credit of the British. From this time until the end there was a gleaning of prisoners but little fighting in De la Rey's country, the most noteworthy event being a surprise visit to Schweizer-Renecke by Rochfort, by which some sixty prisoners were taken, and afterwards the drive of Ian Hamilton's forces against the Mafeking railway line by which no fewer than 364 prisoners were secured. In this difficult and well-managed operation the gaps between the British columns were concealed by the lighting of long veld-fires and the discharge of rifles by scattered scouts. The newly arrived Australian Commonwealth Regiments gave a brilliant start to the military history of their united country by the energy of their marching and the thoroughness of their entrenching.

Hamilton had planned a drive to cover the southern part of De la Rey's territory, and with Hartebeestefontein as his base, he was maneuvering his columns to line up and then sweep back toward Klerksdorp. Kekewich, Rawlinson, and Walter Kitchener were all involved in this maneuvering. However, the Boers, determined to go down fighting despite knowing that their leaders had gone to negotiate peace and that an agreement was likely within days, decided to make one last brave stand against a British column. Kekewich's forces were the furthest west and, as the Boers believed, the most isolated, so they were the target of the attack. On the morning of April 11th, at a place called Rooiwal, the enemy, who had come up from Wolmaranstad in a force of 1,900 under Kemp and Vermaas, launched a fierce assault on the British column. There was no initial skirmish, and a single bold charge by 1,500 Boers both initiated and concluded the engagement. "I was just telling the staff officer there were no Boers within twenty miles," said one eyewitness, "when we heard a roar of gunfire and saw a lot of men galloping towards us." The British were surprised but not shaken by this sudden appearance. "I’ve never seen a more impressive attack. They maintained a distinct line," said the observer. Another witness added, "They advanced in a single long line, four deep and knee to knee." It was a traditional cavalry charge, and the fact that they got as close as they did shows we might have overestimated the stopping power of modern rifles. They came for a good five hundred yards under direct fire and were only halted within a hundred yards of the British line. The Yeomanry, Scottish Horse, and Constabulary fired steadily upon the wave of horsemen, while the guns opened fire with case shot at two hundred yards. The Boers were stopped, staggered, and forced to retreat. Their fire caused about fifty casualties, but their own losses were much heavier. The fierce Potgieter fell right in front of the British guns. "Thank goodness he's dead!" exclaimed one of his wounded fellow fighters, "because he pushed me into the firing line this morning." They left behind fifty dead and many wounded on the battlefield. Rawlinson's column came up on Kekewich's left, turning the Boer retreat into a rout, as they were pursued for twenty miles and two of their guns were captured. It was a quick and decisive engagement that ended the Western campaign, securing the last blow for the British. From that point until the end, there were only captures with little fighting in De la Rey's territory, the most notable event being a surprise visit to Schweizer-Renecke by Rochfort, which resulted in about sixty prisoners being taken, and later, the drive by Ian Hamilton's forces against the Mafeking railway line, capturing no fewer than 364 prisoners. In this challenging and well-executed operation, the gaps between British columns were hidden by starting long veld-fires and the gunfire of scattered scouts. The newly arrived Australian Commonwealth Regiments kicked off their military history with remarkable energy in their marching and thoroughness in entrenching.

Upon May 29th, only two days before the final declaration of peace, a raid was made by a few Boers upon the native cattle reserves near Fredericstad. A handful of horsemen pursued them, and were ambushed by a considerable body of the enemy in some hilly country ten miles from the British lines. Most of the pursuers got away in safety, but young Sutherland, second lieutenant of the Seaforths, and only a few months from Eton, found himself separated from his horse and in a hopeless position. Scorning to surrender, the lad actually fought his way upon foot for over a mile before he was shot down by the horsemen who circled round him. Well might the Boer commander declare that in the whole course of the war he had seen no finer example of British courage. It is indeed sad that at this last instant a young life should be thrown away, but Sutherland died in a noble fashion for a noble cause, and many inglorious years would be a poor substitute for the example and tradition which such a death will leave behind.

On May 29th, just two days before the final peace agreement, a small group of Boers launched a raid on the native cattle reserves near Fredericstad. A handful of horsemen chased after them and got ambushed by a sizable enemy force in some hilly terrain ten miles from the British lines. Most of the pursuers managed to escape safely, but young Sutherland, a second lieutenant of the Seaforths and only a few months out of Eton, found himself separated from his horse and in a desperate situation. Refusing to surrender, the young man fought his way on foot for over a mile before being shot down by the horsemen who surrounded him. It is no wonder the Boer commander stated that throughout the war he had seen no better example of British bravery. It is truly tragic that a young life should be lost at this final moment, but Sutherland died heroically for a noble cause, and many unremarkable years would be a poor trade for the legacy and inspiration his death will leave behind.





CHAPTER 39. THE END.

It only remains in one short chapter to narrate the progress of the peace negotiations, the ultimate settlement, and the final consequences of this long-drawn war. However disheartening the successive incidents may have been in which the Boers were able to inflict heavy losses upon us and to renew their supplies of arms and ammunition, it was none the less certain that their numbers were waning and that the inevitable end was steadily approaching. With mathematical precision the scientific soldier in Pretoria, with his web of barbed wire radiating out over the whole country, was week by week wearing them steadily down. And yet after the recent victory of De la Rey and various braggadocio pronouncements from the refugees at The Hague, it was somewhat of a surprise to the British public when it was announced upon March 22nd that the acting Government of the Transvaal, consisting of Messrs. Schalk Burger, Lucas Meyer, Reitz, Jacoby, Krogh, and Van Velden had come into Middelburg and requested to be forwarded by train to Pretoria for the purpose of discussing terms of peace with Lord Kitchener. A thrill of hope ran through the Empire at the news, but so doubtful did the issue seem that none of the preparations were relaxed which would ensure a vigorous campaign in the immediate future. In the South African as in the Peninsular and in the Crimean wars, it may truly be said that Great Britain was never so ready to fight as at the dawning of peace. At least two years of failure and experience are needed to turn a civilian and commercial nation into a military power.

It only takes one short chapter to talk about the progress of the peace negotiations, the final agreement, and the ultimate consequences of this drawn-out war. No matter how discouraging the ongoing incidents were, with the Boers able to inflict significant losses on us and replenish their supplies of weapons and ammunition, it was still clear that their numbers were diminishing and the inevitable end was drawing closer. With mathematical precision, the skilled soldiers in Pretoria, with their network of barbed wire spanning the entire country, were gradually wearing them down week by week. And yet, after De la Rey's recent victory and various boastful statements from the refugees at The Hague, it came as a bit of a surprise to the British public when it was announced on March 22nd that the acting Government of the Transvaal, made up of Messrs. Schalk Burger, Lucas Meyer, Reitz, Jacoby, Krogh, and Van Velden, had arrived in Middelburg and requested to be taken by train to Pretoria to discuss peace terms with Lord Kitchener. A wave of hope spread through the Empire at this news, but the outcome seemed so uncertain that none of the preparations were eased to ensure a strong campaign in the near future. In the South African conflict, as in the Peninsular and Crimean wars, it can truly be said that Great Britain was never more ready to fight than at the brink of peace. At least two years of setbacks and learning are necessary to transform a civilian and commercial nation into a military power.

In spite of the optimistic pronouncements of Mr. Fischer and the absurd forecasts of Dr. Leyds the power of the Boers was really broken, and they had come in with the genuine intention of surrender. In a race with such individuality it was not enough that the government should form its conclusion. It was necessary for them to persuade their burghers that the game was really up, and that they had no choice but to throw down their well-worn rifles and their ill-filled bandoliers. For this purpose a long series of negotiations had to be entered into which put a strain upon the complacency of the authorities in South Africa and upon the patience of the attentive public at home. Their ultimate success shows that this complacency and this patience were eminently the right attitude to adopt.

Despite the optimistic statements from Mr. Fischer and the ridiculous predictions from Dr. Leyds, the Boers' power was genuinely broken, and they had come with the real intention of surrendering. In a group with such strong individuality, it wasn't enough for the government to come to a conclusion on its own. They needed to convince their burghers that the situation was truly hopeless and that they had no choice but to put down their well-used rifles and poorly stocked bandoliers. To achieve this, a lengthy series of negotiations had to take place, which tested the complacency of the authorities in South Africa and the patience of the attentive public back home. Their eventual success shows that this complacency and patience were definitely the right approach to take.

On March 23rd the Transvaal representatives were despatched to Kroonstad for the purpose of opening up the matter with Steyn and De Wet. Messengers were sent to communicate with these two leaders, but had they been British columns instead of fellow-countrymen they could not have found greater difficulty in running them to earth. At last, however, at the end of the month the message was conveyed, and resulted in the appearance of De Wet, De la Rey, and Steyn at the British outposts at Klerksdorp. The other delegates had come north again from Kroonstad, and all were united in the same small town, which, by a whimsical fate, had suddenly become the centre both for the making of peace and for the prosecution of the war, with the eyes of the whole world fixed upon its insignificant litter of houses. On April 11th, after repeated conferences, both parties moved on to Pretoria, and the most sceptical observers began to confess that there was something in the negotiations after all. After conferring with Lord Kitchener the Boer leaders upon April 18th left Pretoria again and rode out to the commandos to explain the situation to them. The result of this mission was that two delegates were chosen from each body in the field, who assembled at Vereeniging upon May 15th for the purpose of settling the question by vote. Never was a high matter of state decided in so democratic a fashion.

On March 23rd, the representatives from Transvaal were sent to Kroonstad to discuss matters with Steyn and De Wet. Messengers were dispatched to reach out to these two leaders, but they faced more challenges in tracking them down than if they had been British troops. Eventually, by the end of the month, the message got through, leading to the appearance of De Wet, De la Rey, and Steyn at the British outposts in Klerksdorp. The other delegates had returned north from Kroonstad, and they all gathered in the same small town, which, by a strange twist of fate, had suddenly become the focal point for both peace talks and the ongoing war, with the entire world watching its small collection of houses. On April 11th, after numerous meetings, both sides moved to Pretoria, and even the most skeptical observers started to acknowledge that there was something significant happening with the negotiations. After discussions with Lord Kitchener, the Boer leaders left Pretoria again on April 18th and rode out to the commandos to update them on the situation. As a result of this mission, two delegates were chosen from each group in the field, who gathered at Vereeniging on May 15th to decide the issue by vote. Never before had such an important state matter been decided in such a democratic way.

Up to that period the Boer leaders had made a succession of tentative suggestions, each of which had been put aside by the British Government. Their first had been that they should merely concede those points which had been at issue at the beginning of the war. This was set aside. The second was that they should be allowed to consult their friends in Europe. This also was refused. The next was that an armistice should be granted, but again Lord Kitchener was obdurate. A definite period was suggested within which the burghers should make their final choice between surrender and a war which must finally exterminate them as a people. It was tacitly understood, if not definitely promised, that the conditions which the British Government would be prepared to grant would not differ much in essentials from those which had been refused by the Boers a twelvemonth before, after the Middelburg interview.

Up to that time, the Boer leaders had made a series of tentative suggestions, each of which the British Government had dismissed. Their first suggestion was to concede only those points that had been in dispute at the start of the war. This was rejected. The second was to allow them to consult their friends in Europe. This was also denied. Next, they proposed that an armistice should be granted, but once again, Lord Kitchener was unyielding. A specific timeframe was suggested for the burghers to make their final decision between surrender and a war that would ultimately wipe them out as a people. It was understood, though not explicitly promised, that the conditions the British Government would be willing to offer wouldn't differ much in key aspects from those that the Boers had turned down a year earlier after the Middelburg meeting.

On May 15th the Boer conference opened at Vereeniging. Sixty-four delegates from the commandos met with the military and political chiefs of the late republics, the whole amounting to 150 persons. A more singular gathering has not met in our time. There was Botha, the young lawyer, who had found himself by a strange turn of fate commanding a victorious army in a great war. De Wet was there, with his grim mouth and sun-browned face; De la Rey, also, with the grizzled beard and the strong aquiline features. There, too, were the politicians, the grey-bearded, genial Reitz, a little graver than when he looked upon 'the whole matter as an immense joke,' and the unfortunate Steyn, stumbling and groping, a broken and ruined man. The burly Lucas Meyer, smart young Smuts fresh from the siege of Ookiep, Beyers from the north, Kemp the dashing cavalry leader, Muller the hero of many fights—all these with many others of their sun-blackened, gaunt, hard-featured comrades were grouped within the great tent of Vereeniging. The discussions were heated and prolonged. But the logic of facts was inexorable, and the cold still voice of common-sense had more power than all the ravings of enthusiasts. The vote showed that the great majority of the delegates were in favour of surrender upon the terms offered by the British Government. On May 31st this resolution was notified to Lord Kitchener, and at half-past ten of the same night the delegates arrived at Pretoria and set their names to the treaty of peace. After two years seven and a half months of hostilities the Dutch republics had acquiesced in their own destruction, and the whole of South Africa, from Cape Town to the Zambesi, had been added to the British Empire. The great struggle had cost us twenty thousand lives and a hundred thousand stricken men, with two hundred millions of money; but, apart from a peaceful South Africa, it had won for us a national resuscitation of spirit and a closer union with our great Colonies which could in no other way have been attained. We had hoped that we were a solid empire when we engaged in the struggle, but we knew that we were when we emerged from it. In that change lies an ample recompense for all the blood and treasure spent.

On May 15th, the Boer conference started at Vereeniging. Sixty-four delegates from the commandos met with the military and political leaders of the former republics, totaling 150 people. A more unique gathering hasn’t happened in our time. There was Botha, the young lawyer who, due to a strange twist of fate, found himself leading a victorious army in a major war. De Wet was there, with his serious expression and sun-tanned face; De la Rey, too, with his grizzled beard and strong, prominent features. The politicians were present as well, like the grey-bearded, friendly Reitz, who seemed a bit more serious than when he viewed 'the whole situation as a huge joke,' and the unfortunate Steyn, who appeared lost and struggling, a broken man. The burly Lucas Meyer, the sharp young Smuts fresh from the siege of Ookiep, Beyers from the north, the daring cavalry leader Kemp, and Muller, the hero of many battles—all these, along with many others of their sun-scorched, hard-featured comrades, were gathered inside the large tent at Vereeniging. The discussions were intense and lengthy. But the logic of the situation was relentless, and the calm voice of common sense held more weight than all the passionate outbursts of enthusiasts. The vote revealed that the vast majority of the delegates supported surrendering under the terms proposed by the British Government. On May 31st, this decision was communicated to Lord Kitchener, and at 10:30 that same night, the delegates arrived in Pretoria and signed the peace treaty. After two years and seven and a half months of conflict, the Dutch republics had accepted their own downfall, and all of South Africa, from Cape Town to the Zambezi, had become part of the British Empire. The immense struggle had cost us twenty thousand lives and a hundred thousand wounded men, along with two hundred million in expenses; but apart from a peaceful South Africa, it had brought us a revival of national spirit and a closer bond with our great Colonies that couldn’t have been achieved in any other way. We had thought we were a solid empire when we engaged in the fight, but we realized we were when we came out of it. That transformation provides a substantial reward for all the blood and resources spent.

The following were in brief the terms of surrender:—

The following are a brief overview of the surrender terms:—

   1. That the burghers lay down their arms and acknowledge themselves
         subjects of Edward VII.
   2. That all prisoners taking the oath of allegiance be returned.
   3. That their liberty and property be inviolate.
   4. That an amnesty be granted—save in special cases.
   5. That the Dutch language be allowed in schools and law-courts.
   6. That rifles be allowed if registered.
   7. That self-government be granted as soon as possible.
   8. That no franchise be granted for natives until after
         self-government.
   9. That no special land tax be levied.
  10. That the people be helped to reoccupy the farms.
  11. That 3,000,000 pounds be given to help the farmers.
  12. That the rebels be disfranchised and their leaders tried, on
         condition that no death penalty be inflicted.
   1. That the citizens lay down their weapons and acknowledge themselves as subjects of Edward VII.  
   2. That all prisoners who take the oath of allegiance be released.  
   3. That their freedom and property be protected.  
   4. That an amnesty be granted, except in special cases.  
   5. That the Dutch language be permitted in schools and courts.  
   6. That rifles be allowed if they are registered.  
   7. That self-governance be granted as soon as possible.  
   8. That no voting rights be granted to natives until after self-governance is established.  
   9. That no special land tax be imposed.  
  10. That the people be assisted in returning to the farms.  
  11. That 3,000,000 pounds be allocated to support the farmers.  
  12. That the rebels be stripped of their voting rights and their leaders put on trial, with the condition that no death penalty be imposed.  

These terms were practically the same as those which had been refused by Botha in March 1901. Thirteen months of useless warfare had left the situation as it was.

These terms were almost identical to those that Botha had rejected in March 1901. Thirteen months of pointless fighting had left things unchanged.

It had been a war of surprises, but the surprises have unhappily been hitherto invariably unpleasant ones. Now at last the balance swung the other way, for in all the long paradoxical history of South African strife there is nothing more wonderful than the way in which these two sturdy and unemotional races clasped hands the instant that the fight was done. The fact is in itself a final answer to the ill-natured critics of the Continent. Men do not so easily grasp a hand which is reddened with the blood of women and children. From all parts as the commandos came in there was welcome news of the fraternisation between them and the soldiers; while the Boer leaders, as loyal to their new ties as they had been to their old ones, exerted themselves to promote good feeling among their people. A few weeks seemed to do more to lessen racial bitterness than some of us had hoped for in as many years. One can but pray that it will last.

It had been a war full of surprises, but unfortunately, those surprises had mostly been negative. Now, finally, things took a positive turn, because in the complex history of conflict in South Africa, nothing is more remarkable than the way these two strong and stoic races shook hands the moment the fighting ended. This fact alone is a strong rebuttal to the harsh critics of the continent. People don’t easily shake hands with someone whose hands are stained with the blood of women and children. As the commandos returned from all directions, there was encouraging news about the camaraderie between them and the soldiers; meanwhile, the Boer leaders, as committed to their new relationships as they had been to their previous ones, worked hard to foster goodwill among their communities. A few weeks seemed to achieve more in reducing racial tensions than many of us had hoped could happen in years. One can only hope that this peace will endure.

The surrenders amounted in all to twenty thousand men, and showed that in all parts of the seat of war the enemy had more men in the field than we had imagined, a fact which may take the sting out of several of our later mishaps. About twelve thousand surrendered in the Transvaal, six thousand in the Orange River Colony, and about two thousand in the Cape Colony, showing that the movement in the rebel districts had always been more vexatious than formidable. A computation of the prisoners of war, the surrenders, the mercenaries, and the casualties, shows that the total forces to which we were opposed were certainly not fewer than seventy-five thousand well-armed mounted men, while they may have considerably exceeded that number. No wonder that the Boer leaders showed great confidence at the outset of the war.

The total surrenders reached twenty thousand men, revealing that in all areas of the battlefield, the enemy had more troops in the field than we had thought, which might help explain several of our later setbacks. About twelve thousand surrendered in the Transvaal, six thousand in the Orange River Colony, and around two thousand in the Cape Colony, indicating that the activity in the rebel territories was always more annoying than truly threatening. An analysis of the prisoners of war, the surrenders, the mercenaries, and the casualties shows that the total forces we faced were definitely not fewer than seventy-five thousand well-armed mounted troops, and they could have significantly outnumbered that. It's no surprise that the Boer leaders felt very confident at the beginning of the war.

That the heavy losses caused us by the war were borne without a murmur is surely evidence enough how deep was the conviction of the nation that the war was not only just but essential—that the possession of South Africa and the unity of the Empire were at stake. Could it be shown, or were it even remotely possible, that ministers had incurred so immense a responsibility and entailed such tremendous sacrifices upon their people without adequate cause, is it not certain that, the task once done, an explosion of rage from the deceived and the bereaved would have driven them for ever from public life? Among high and low, in England, in Scotland, in Ireland, in the great Colonies, how many high hopes had been crushed, how often the soldier son had gone forth and never returned, or come back maimed and stricken in the pride of his youth. Everywhere was the voice of pity and sorrow, but nowhere that of reproach. The deepest instincts of the nation told it that it must fight and win, or for ever abdicate its position in the world. Through dark days which brought out the virtues of our race as nothing has done in our generation, we struggled grimly on until the light had fully broken once again. And of all gifts that God has given to Britain there is none to compare with those days of sorrow, for it was in them that the nation was assured of its unity, and learned for all time that blood is stronger to bind than salt water is to part. The only difference in the point of view of the Briton from Britain and the Briton from the ends of the earth, was that the latter with the energy of youth was more whole-souled in the Imperial cause. Who has seen that Army and can forget it—its spirit, its picturesqueness—above all, what it stands for in the future history of the world? Cowboys from the vast plains of the North-West, gentlemen who ride hard with the Quorn or the Belvoir, gillies from the Sutherland deer-forests, bushmen from the back blocks of Australia, exquisites of the Raleigh Club or the Bachelor's, hard men from Ontario, dandy sportsmen from India and Ceylon, the horsemen of New Zealand, the wiry South African irregulars—these are the Reserves whose existence was chronicled in no Blue-book, and whose appearance came as a shock to the pedant soldiers of the Continent who had sneered so long at our little Army, since long years of peace have caused them to forget its exploits. On the plains of South Africa, in common danger and in common privation, the blood brotherhood of the Empire was sealed.

That the heavy losses we suffered from the war were accepted without complaint is surely enough evidence of how deeply the nation believed the war was not only right but necessary—that the control of South Africa and the unity of the Empire were at stake. If it could be shown, or even if there were a slight possibility, that the ministers had taken on such a huge responsibility and caused such tremendous sacrifices for their people without a valid reason, isn't it certain that, once the task was complete, an outburst of anger from the deceived and grieving would have driven them out of public life forever? Among the rich and poor, in England, Scotland, Ireland, and the great Colonies, how many high hopes were shattered, how often did the soldier son go off and never return, or come back injured and scarred in the pride of his youth? Everywhere, there was a voice of pity and sorrow, but nowhere was there blame. The deepest instincts of the nation indicated that it had to fight and win, or else permanently give up its place in the world. Through the dark days that brought out the virtues of our race like nothing else in our generation, we pressed on determinedly until the light broke once again. And of all the gifts that God has given to Britain, none compares to those days of sorrow, for during them the nation was reassured of its unity and learned for all time that blood is stronger to unite than salt water is to separate. The only difference between the Briton from Britain and the Briton from the far reaches of the earth was that the latter, with youthful energy, was more enthusiastic about the Imperial cause. Who has seen that Army and can forget it—its spirit, its vividness—above all, what it signifies in the future history of the world? Cowboys from the vast plains of the North-West, gentlemen who ride hard with the Quorn or the Belvoir, gillies from the Sutherland deer-forests, bushmen from the remote areas of Australia, stylish members of the Raleigh Club or the Bachelor's, tough men from Ontario, dandy sportsmen from India and Ceylon, horsemen from New Zealand, the wiry South African irregulars—these are the Reserves whose existence was never recorded in any official documents and whose arrival shocked the academic soldiers of the Continent who had long mocked our small Army, as years of peace had caused them to forget its achievements. On the plains of South Africa, in shared danger and shared hardship, the blood bond of the Empire was forged.

So much for the Empire. But what of South Africa? There in the end we must reap as we sow. If we are worthy of the trust, it will be left to us. If we are unworthy of it, it will be taken away. Kruger's downfall should teach us that it is not rifles but Justice which is the title-deed of a nation. The British flag under our best administrators will mean clean government, honest laws, liberty and equality to all men. So long as it continues to do so, we shall hold South Africa. When, out of fear or out or greed, we fall from that ideal, we may know that we are stricken with that disease which has killed every great empire before us.

So much for the Empire. But what about South Africa? In the end, we must reap what we sow. If we're deserving of the trust, it will be given to us. If we're not, it will be taken away. Kruger's downfall should remind us that it's not weapons but Justice that is the foundation of a nation. The British flag, under our best leaders, will signify clean government, fair laws, freedom, and equality for all. As long as it continues to represent those values, we'll keep South Africa. When we stray from that ideal out of fear or greed, we must recognize that we've been stricken by the same disease that has led to the downfall of every great empire before us.









5_south_africa (131K)









app_1 (67K)
app_2 (83K)
app_3 (80K)

Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!